"; ", UU b rl i t;-t~ w II r BO ~:~` 9LP;k B"l.i~~#i:~lIE i, " ~t "- ~I" "ha 11 ii;.,~-e i; dr, 11111 i lr' I I I rtn n I I Ir I I s II I I I Ir r rr I rl'll TI 11 ('1 1111(((mill I iI 'i II Y1 ~~Lf II ~I ! l I I B.i NOTICES AND TESTIMONIALS CONCERNING Farmer's History of Detroit and Michigan. From the Detroit Free Press. "A MONUMENT OF INDUSTRY. AN UNRIVALED CYCLOPEDIA OF DETROIT. SILAS FARMER'S WONDERFUL HISTORY. A MOST REMARKABLE WORK OF RESEARCH. MICROSCOPIC MINUTENESS.-ONE THOUSAND PAGES.OVER 600 PICTURES, AND AN INDEX OF 8,o00 SEPARATE REFERENCES. " This ' History of Detroit and Michigan' demonstrates the antiquity and the importance of the city, not merely in its I,ooo pages of handsome paper and clear imprint, or its 648 engravings, but in the length of time spent in its composition, its thorough research, and the untiring energy of its compiler. * * * * ^ * " The work is divided into parts: i. Locality; comprising a history of its names and surroundings-the river, the islands, the streams, the mills, the game, grain, fruits, the French farms, the Park lots, the 10,ooo acre tract, etc. 2. Hygienic; its climate, a history of its diseases and doctors, its cemeteries and coroners, its health officers, its sewerage, its water, parks, boulevard, pastures and pounds. 3. Governmental; the French and English, its legislatures and laws, its officials, its political campaigns and local government. 4. Judicial; its courts and legal machinery. 5. Military; its forts, defenses, conspiracy of Pontiac, the revolutionary war, war of 1812, Hull's surrender, the Black Hawk and patriot war, the war with the South. 6. Social; Indian agents and early visitors, manners and customs, marriage laws, slavery, recreations and amusements, music and the drama, artists and inventors. 7. Architecturehouses and homes; lighting and heating, public edifices, old taverns and hotels, fires and fire departments, etc. 8. Religious; early missionaries, preachers and priests, churches and denominations, benevolent societies, etc. 9. Literary; newspapers, books, citizen and visiting authors, literary, historical and scientific societies, schools, colleges, libraries. Io. Commercial. II. Communication; navigation, railroads, postal facilities, streets, street railways, etc.; making a total of eighty-eight chapters, and embodying a mass of information, facts, names and dates, microscopic in their character, but often relieved by liveliness of narrative, and novelty of treatment." From the Evening News, Detroit. The following extracts are from a series of articles extending through eight numbers of the paper and covering ten columns. "After ten years of work in which laborious care and minuteness of research have been joined to patience, discrimination and a genuine love of the subject, Mr. Farmer has told the tale of his native city and county. So fully and clearly has the task been done, and with such genuine literary ability, that Mr. Farmer's name in the future will always be associated with the history of the City of the Straits. * * * * It is a monument to the author's skill and research and it is extremely probable that a century will pass before any work on the subject will equal or surpass it. * * * * The subject is well worthy of the greatest pen. * * * * * A valuable feature of the department entitled 'locality' in Mr. Farmer's work is a description of the old French farms or ' private claims.' Only real estate men and lawyers can appreciate the intricate and exhaustive work here accomplished. * * * * This work contains the first detailed evidence of the date (of the original occupation of Detroit by American troops) all previous historians having given up the attempt to find it in despair. * * * * * Mr. Farmer devotes ten pages of his work to an examination of the conduct of Gen. Hull on surrendering Detroit. It is a careful, discriminating analysis of the evidence pro and con, and the reader after perusing it becomes satisfied that Hull was a cowardly, inefficient commander. Extracts from Gen. Hull's 'memoirs'; the testimony given at his court-martial at Albany, where he was acquitted of treason, but found guilty of cowardice; quotations from 'Dearlorn's defense' of his father, Gen. Dearborn; and copies of original letters from Jefferson, Madison and others have all been analyzed by the author, with the result already quoted. In his researches on this point he has shown that diligence of research and judicial balancing of evidence which marks the true historian. * * * * * * * It is a local and general history in i,ooo pages, which no work of its kind has ever equalled or surpassed. The reviewer has had such an absolute embarrassment of riches that selection seems difficult and even invidious, where so many choice pieces of information have to be sacrificed because of the space imperiously needed to chronicle the news of the day." From the Detroit Post. * - i * " As our readers know, Mr. Farmer has had this work in hand for the last ten years or more, and he has pursued his investigations with great industry and thoroughness. A list of the persons and authorities consulted would fill several columns in this paper. * * * * The appearance of a work of such magnitude is itself an important event in the annals of the city, and especially so since it is the first of its kind; for it is a noteworthy fact that though the City of the Straits has had a most eventful history, extending back over two centuries, yet that history has never before been written. * * * * The narrative covers not only the events of the city proper but also of the territory and State, of which it has been at different times the capital. The multifarious materials which have rewarded Mr. Farmer's long and painstaking search he has classified under twelve different heads and arranged in eighty chapters." * * * From the Army and Navy Register,Washington. ~ * * "Any city in the United States might well be proud of much a historical work as this. It is indeed awonderful specimen of book making. * * * Detroit has al ways been a point of military interest, and the chapter devoted to its military history contains accounts of the French and English war, the conspiracy of Pontiac, the Revolutionary war, the British and Indian wars, the surrender of 1812, the conflict with Mexico, and the war of the rebellion, valuable for their elaboration and accuracy. A highly interesting list is published of the French commandants from 170I to 1760, the English commanding officers from 1760 to 1796, and the American commanding officers from 1796 to the present time The War Department was not able to furnish a list of these commanding officers prior to I8I5. The author is enabled to supply them from old records, and a list of the commanders of Fort Shelby is furnished from 1815 to 1823, of those at Detroit Barracks from 1836 to 1856, and at Fort Wayne, first occupied in x86i, down to 1877. The author has ransacked all the historical collections of the country to obtain facts bearing upon the history of Detroit. He has even had recourse to foreign collections. Some idea of the amount of labor he has put into his book may be gained from his statement that he has received 2, 66 letters from correspondents on historical points connected with his work His preface, giving an account of the authorities selected and the manner in which he has obtained his facts, is, in itself, a remarkable story. It would be impossible to exceed the fullness of the table of contents and the indexes covering every fact and name introduced in the work. The paragraphic annals of Detroit form one of the final chapters of the work, and this chapter by itself gives a complete history of the events in the life of the city. We sincerely trust there is possible a proper remuneration for the author of such a remarkable municipal history as this. We suppose that only a very live, flourishing, and public-spirited city could produce such a work, which must conduce greatly tc the honor and advantage of the city wherever it is seen." From the Magazine of American History, N.Y. " The history of a city two hundred years old, or nearly, that has twice been besieged by savages, once captured in war, once destroyed by fire, whose allegiance has been claimed by three different sovereignties, and whose flag has changed five times, cannot otherwise than possess a charmed interest for the American people. Mr. Farmer's work seems to have been undertaken in the true historical spirit, and executed with painstaking and conscientious care. The author tells us, in his preface, that he found it impossible to carry along in one narrative all the various themes pertaing to the history of the city of Detroit and its surrounding territory, therefore he classified the different branches of the subject and treated each in a special manner by itself. This method, with its many objections, has a decided advantage in respect to the result as a work of reference, as some matters are amplified, which could not otherwise have been done with propriety. One notable chapter of thirty pages is devoted to the British and Indian wars, the French and Spanish intrigues, and the war of the Revolution. Another chapter treats of Indian from I790 to 1812; and two chapters (XLI.) and (XLII.) contain the history of the war of 1812. Mr. Farmer has written this portion of the work admirably, bringing forward fresh information of priceless value. The ' Conspiracy of Pontiac,' and the 'Biography of Cadillac,' also form chapters of peculiar attractions. * * * * One third of the work is occupied with matters appertaining to Michigan in general, owing to the close relation of the city to the territorial government. A novel feature of this history is nearly one hundred pages of continuous city —the homes of the citi zens of Detroit-illustrated. There are not less than one hundred and seventy houses thus pictorially presented in well executed engravings. Following these, the chapters of ecclesiastical history are also illustrated with seventy or more churches. * * * * The preparation of the work has involved more than ten years of persistent and faithful labor, and it is one of thoseproductions which no library in the country can afford to miss from its shelves. It is printed on extra fine paper, and elegantly bound in genuine Turkey morocco with cloth sides." From Magazine of Western History, Cleveland. " No other local historical work we have ever seen equals Mr. Farmer's ' History of Detroit,' in comprehensiveness of scope, thoroughness of treatment and conscientious regard for accuracy. Undertaking the work as long ago as i874 with the view of having it ready for issue in the centennial year of 1876, he soon found the time entirely inadequate for the completion of the history with any degree of satisfaction. His ambition was to produce a work of permanent value. He had to deal with a city nearly two hundred years old. To write the history properly he soon saw that years of patient indefatigable industry would be required. He therefore abandoned the plan of its appearance in the year of the national centenary, and gave himself up to the production of such a history of his native city as would be a standard work for all time to come. For ten years Mr. Farmer toiled on with earnest, patient industry, with a love and enthusiasm for his work, and now has the satisfaction of knowing that the result of all this fidelity to his undertaking has brought him a reward which is of priceless value-the approval of a good conscience, the gratitude of his fellow-townsmen, and the thanks of students of history the country over." * * * From the Chicago Legal News. * * - * "The style of Mr. Farmer is pleasing, concise and accurate, all necessary requisites for a historian. As exhibiting the history of the city and state from which emanated the laws that formerly governed our city, the volume should be especially interesting to the legal fraternity of Chicago and Illinois. The chapters on ' Legislatures and Laws,' 'Justice in the Olcen Time,' and on the ' Supreme Courts of the Territory,' show phases of legal affairs in the early day that are duplicated in the history of no other locality, and shown in no other volume. Owing to the relations which Detroit held to the old northwest, everything that relates to her early history is important, and of interest to the people of the northwestern states. * * * In the small space allotted to this review, we are not able to convey an accurate idea of the merits of this valuable work. It should be in every library in the United States. " From the Christian Advocate, New York. "A work has recently been issued in Michigan, which deserves unqualified commendation, and is suitable as a model of works of the kind. * * * Its author is Mr. Silas Farmer, a native and life-long resident of the city of Detroit. The plan is exhaustive. * * * There is more about the early history of Michzgan in the work than in all other published volumes, besides a large amount of hitherto unpublished material, of the greatest value to all persons interested in the old northwest territory and the states formed therefrom. Let it not be supposed that we would give so much space even to a history so admirable, if its interest was confined solely to the 'City of the Straits.' Mr. Farmer has produced a work worthy of a place in every library in the United States, and in every historical library where the English language is understood. We know of no thousand pages more crowded with valuable matter no plan more comprehensive and at the same time interesting." From the Dial of Chicago. * * * "The work is a rich repository of facts and incidents pertaining to the development of a thriving commonwealth and its capital city. It has been accumulated at the expense of years of enthusiastic and diligent research. Its parallel in the amount of material presented, and in the fullness and minuteness of detail, has seldom if ever been produced in a merely local memoir. The contribution it makes to the general history of the United States is quite considerable, and therefore its interest is not restricted to the limits of the scene in which the narrative centres." * * From " The Book Buyer," Chas. Scribner Sons. "It is a large octavo volume of nearly a thousand pages, luxuriously illustrated by pictures of all events and places of local interest. The author informs us in his preface that the preparation of the work has occupied more than ten years. The enormous amount of care and labor that has been spent upon the book is evident everywhere; nothing which concerns the history of Michigan has been overlooked, and there is much in addition which pertains to a broader historical interest." From the Central Law Journal at St. Louis. " This book seems to be a very considerable advance upon the ordinary town and county histories, which are too often gotten up, not for the purpose of placing in permanent form matters of local history which are worthy of preserving, but rather for the purpose of making money by ministering to local vanity. This work has peculiar interest for the legal profession, on account of its chapters on ' Legislatures and Laws,' 'Justice in the Olden Time,' and 'The Supreme Courts of the Territory.' These chapters exhibit phases of legal affairs that are exhibited in the history of no other locality." From Letter of Hon. C. I. Walker, of Detroit. " My expectations were very high; for I had known something of the time and labor you had given to the work and the indefatigable zeal with which you had pursued your historical researches and the passion for accuracy even in the minutest details, which has animated you. But the book far surpasses my highest expectations. I have seen and somewhat carefully examined many local histories, but I have never seen its equal. I congratulate you most heartily on its great excellence, and I congratulate the City and our State, that this great metropolis has had such a historian. Your chapters upon the 'Judicial History' are especially valuable and will make the book of great interest to the legal profession as well as to the general reader. The manner of getting up the book is in keeping with its marvelous excellence in other respects. " Very truly yours, "C. I. WALKER." From Letter of C. W. Butterfield, of Madison, Wis. Author of " Crawford's Campaign against Sandusky." " Washington-Irvine Correspondence," and several other works. "I have been thinking for some time about writing to you to congratulate you upon your great achievement the ' History of Detroit and Michigan.' It is grand. No book of the kind west of the Alleghanies is its equal." Letter from Judge James V. Campbell, of the Supreme Court of Michigan. "SILAS FARMER, Esq.: "Dear Sir:-I have been examining with some care your chapters bearing on judicial matters in Detroit and Michigan, and have been much struck, not only with the accuracy of your work, but still more with the labor and research evident throughout. Even since the American occupation there have always been matters little known, and hard to search out. You have not only, so far as I can see, exhausted this branch of the subject, but you have discovered very interesting facts concerning legal administration under both French and British rule, which have never seen the light before, at least in this region. All who are connected with legal affairs-and most people are either occasional actors or sufferers-owe you greatly for your complete and thorough treatment of a very important branch of historical knowledge. Your book is always full and trustworthy, but this is a peculiarly difficult subject. Yours very truly, "JAMES V. CAMPBELL." Letter from C. H. Borgess, Bishop of Detroit. "We take pleasure in recommending to the public the History of the City of Detroit, published by Mr. Silas Farmer of this city, as the successful result of years of painstaking labors. The author is thoroughly conscientious and free from bias in all his statements concerning the Catholic church in this city, which he submitted before publication to the revision of a Rev. gentleman of our diocese.* We hope Mr. Farmer will meet with the financial success he deserves. "C. H. BORGESS, 'Bishop of Detroit'." Letter from Geo. V. N. Lothrop, of Detroit. "SILAS FARMER, Esq.: "My Dear Sir:- I have found your History of Detroit a mine of most interesting information. It exhibits proof of the most patient and thorough research in every quarter where the real facts could be elicited. Hereafter, whoever would know the true history of Detroit, which at one time represented a great part of the great northwest, must go to your volume. * * * Every lawyer who desires full information of the early matters which concern his profession at Detroit, will make himself familiar with the 'Judicial ' chapters of your book. "Very Truly, &c., "GEO. V. N. LOTHROP." * le only suggested a change in a single word. -S. F. Boston Evening Transcript. "If Boston, New York, Philadelphia or Baltimore had such a history of its earlier years, a treasure would they have. * * "The local information in this book is simply immense, and the manner in which all this information is "boiled down," and the method by which it is put together, is truly a marvel. * * * " The relation which Detroit held to the great Northwest of a half-century ago makes this book of large interest to all who are studying the formation of the western cities and States, and the growth of the laws peculiar to their respective localities. It has much unpublished and fresh information. * * * " The history of Detroit will never have to be written a second time." Harper's Magazine, June, 1887. "Since our national centennial especial attention has been given by many writers in different parts of the country to the development of local history, and their researches have led to numerous publications of more or less value according to the temper and industry of the writers. Among the most important as well as the most interesting of these publications is the superb volume prepared by Silas Farmer, entitled The History of Detroit and Michigan. The author has brought to his subject not only a mind of rare intelligence, but a soul in love with the Queen City of the Straits. We have here the result of many years' patient, diligent, and painstaking industry; and this is not more admirable than the taste and judgment which have shaped the materials drawn from so many sources into a harmonious whole. The style is simple, direct, and elegant, worthy of a more ambitious work. The scope of the volume is not narrow. In the writer's mind his narrative ' epitomizes the history of half a continent.' Only here can be found any adequate view of the early history of Michigan. * * * * The completeness of the work is astonishing. The author has not only exhausted the rich materials to be found in published works; he has gathered much that is interesting from an extensive personal correspondence with men who possessed in one shape or another unpublished materials; he has not only utilized numerous old French letters, documents, and manuscripts, but has instituted special inquiries in France, especially in connection with the career of Cadillac; and he has ransacked not only all the documentary reports and correspondence bearing upon his subject, but also the old files of local newspapers in various parts of the country. * * * * It need not be said that such a work is not only a history but a cyclopaedia of Detroit and of the Territorial history of Michigan. It can be said of no fact relating to the subject to be found in any other work that it is not found here, and it contains a rich store of material that cannot be found elsewhere. Every writer upon the subject, since Mr. Farmer's book was published, not only could find here everything he might wish to know, but, if he would be assured of his accuracy as to details and dates he must consult this book. * * * * A work that must stand forever as the most complete book of reference on all matters concerning the early history of Detroit and Michigan." Detroit Evening Journal. * * * * "Mr. Farmer has made his work so thorough, so complete, so exact that there seems to be little opportunity for critical carping. There is nothing in local history which the student might require that may not be found in the volume. Every topic is treated fully, satisfactorily, impartially, and the preparation has been made with a care that indicates the good judgment displayed in selecting Mr. Farmer as historiographer. In the limited space of a newspaper article it is impossible to give in detail the merits possessed by the history. Its every chapter in every department; its excellent arrangement; its careful, painstaking compilation are all worthy of commendation, and the interested student, as well as the business man and mechanic, can con its pages with pleasure and profit. In this history the dryness and drudgery, so frequently noted in works of like character, seem to be entirely wanting, owing to the fact that all details are presented in an entertaining manner and are interspersed at frequent intervals with lively narrative,. novel and interesting. * * * * * * From the New England Historical and Genealogical Register. * * * * "It is not the least wonder that the book has received commendations from leading newspapers, since no editorial room of a Michigan periodical is complete without it. * * * * This book is a history, and not a historical study, though many of its chapters will come as near the last named as works boasting it. * * * * This work of Mr. Farmer's is unique and condensed. It is full of particulars and yet not redundant in statement. It is orderly and well arranged." The Preston Bank of Detroit. "SILAS FARMER, Esq.: "Dear Szir:-I have read, with great interest, in your 'History of Detroit and Michigan,' your article on Banks and Currency. I am glad that their history, so full and complete from I717 to 1885, has been put in this permanent form. * * As a citizen of Detroit and Michigan I am proud of this full and complete History of Detroit, which will surely last as long as Detroit is known in history. I would rather be the author of this work than to be the successful manager of the largest bank in the world, or to be the governor of Michigan, 'Our Michigan.' "DAVID PRESTON, "'resident." Farmer's "Detroit."-From The Critic, New York. " It would be well if every growing city would appoint an official whose duty should be to keep its archives in order, and commit to the press such memorials as its citizens might desire to preserve. Taking this judicious view of the matter, the City Council of Detroit in 1842 wisely established the office of City Historiographer. With less evident wisdom they made the office 'purely honorary.' The result was that, as usual, they got as much as they gave. At length, however, with batter fortune than this parsimony deserved, the office fell to a public-spirited holder, Mr. Silas Farmer, who has performed its duties as well as if it had been accompanied by a salary-and possibly better. In a handsome octavo volume of a thousand pages he has given us a ' History of Detroit and Michigan.' * * * * The contents of the volume comprise everything that the history of an American city should be (xpectec to contain, and the work may well be taken as a model by other civil historians. * * * * I ti C nc einne e3lise de-reverenJgs peres 'arnmes de ateIa nou filt ersevelf ie J6 ctfobr~nS0 IRa f,s r4wk n ^fjf liT(afS ~of the people for whose benefit the grant was made, or to Congress who made '^. V ' rthe grant. That one of \^^. Y^S the judges is directly and ^%<. voluntarily interested to a H,^;'^ ivery large extent in the?ttv alr' > \funds of that trust; and we have reason to believe, A\^"V\ ^ from his conduct as a member of the Land r(~ ^^;^v^Board, that that interest 5O~^ > ' <4g under the Act were kept X K![ Z by the treasurer of the "> 8^ 14Territory in an account called the "Detroit Fund;":',^r ' ^ y ll but the most diligent search has failed to find any re^cord or statement of receipts or expenses credited,.*.T;;|'I or charged to the fund dura —1? - ^ing the first twenty years 2*' I~I of their administration.;"Md^ g} ~The following persons acted as secretaries of the 4I-nl.-~ ' Land Board: I ee udanI8o-10 REDUCED FAC-SIMILE OF THE GOVERNOR AND JUDGES' PLAN. That no account was rendered is made apparent L. I by the fact that the memorial of a committee of citi- E.. zens to Congress, in January, 1823, printed in the Th( Detroit Gazette, says that no statement of the receipts A. ' or expenses of the Territory had ever been made After Nwil j Peter Audrain 1806-I 809 L: I | Joseph Watson 1809-1818 I A. E. Wing 1818-1822 A. G. Whitney 1822-I824 E. A. Brush 1824-I826 H. Chipman I826-1829 B. Sturges 1829 A. Brush i830-I832 omas Rowland 1832-1834 S. Kellogg 1834-1837 the State was admitted into the Union, there THE GOVERNOR AND JUDGES' PLAN.- LAND BOARDS. 31 remained neither territorial governor nor judges legally competent to deal with such lands as remained of the original trust, and of necessity the trust was terminated. The last session of the Governor and Judges as a Land Board was held on July I, 1836, when they conveyed a lot to the Detroit Young Men's Society. Their functions ceased two days after. For twenty-two years after the establishment of a regular city government, the Governor and Judges controlled and disposed of the property originally committed to them, although the occasion and necessity for the continuance of their trust had long before passed away; and not until five years after their authority ceased was any one charged with the duty of closing up their affairs. When their regime closed various city lots were still undisposed of, the titles of others were not secured to their rightful owners, and the business generally was in a confused and unfinished state. On April 25, I837, a Committee of the Common Council was appointed to inquire into the state of the Detroit Fund, and on May 9 the council directed the recorder to prepare documents to be presented to Congress, in order to obtain the transfer to the city of the balance of the funds, or lots. On August 5 the recorder presented the form of a memorial which was adopted; and on March 24, I838, $200 were ordered to be paid to Ross Wilkins for making investigations and preparing the memorial. No action was taken by Congress, and the work of petitioning was repeated in I840. On April 14 a memorial was signed by all the members of the council; and on August 29, I842, Congress passed a law making the mayor, recorder, and aldermen the successors of the Governor and Judges, and directing them to take an oath to carry out the law which authorized them to sit as a Land Board. The law also required them to report, on or before January I, 1844. This last requirement, however, they neglected to observe. On September 27, I842, the city clerk was directed to take charge of all the old Land Board documents; and on December 20, I842, Bela Hubbard and C. O'Flynn were appointed "to make a full examination and report concerning the origin, administration, and present condition of the trust originally committed to the Governor and Judges." On November 26, 1844, they presented an elaborate report, with many interesting details, including a complete list of the changes in numbers of lots, resulting from the various and conflicting plans of the Governor and Judges. The numbers according to the new plan are the numbers now used, the numbers according to the old plan being of value only in tracing early ownership. LIST OF CHANGES IN NUMBERS OF LOTS. Old New )ld New O ld New Old New Plan. Plan. Plan. Plan. Plan. Plan. Pla. Plan. SECTION 1. 5 59 49 48 57 59 9& 2 1 52 6o 50 49 58 36 40 4 Oj 62 52 51 60 62 37 41 i! 63 53 52 6 6 36 442 56 64 54 53 62 64 9 54 7 65 55 54 63 65 44 63 5 2 63 44 49 8 66 56 55 64 6 4426;i 48 45 5 29 3 68 | 64 54 5 64 46 5I 82 97! 77 75 69 72 47 532 83 98 78 76 70 73 43 48 49 4 50 84 991 9 77 71 74 4950 54 87 97 103 8o 78 72 7. 47 54 4.6 44 56 55 6 6 450 5' 5 C 8 579 73 76 45 56 SECTION. 83 80 74 77 52 57, 84 8i 7 7 78 53 58 37 53 82 76 79 57 63 I 38 i 4 86 83 77 8o 58 64i 39 55 8 69 & 60 G5 60 58 79 7 6 59 & 6o 6 40 6 SECTION 7- 8o 82 60 & 59 66 42 10 7 81 83 61 67 41 108 2T21 21& 22 82 84 62 68 64 70 49a 23 24 64 70 49 53 "4 25 21 21 & 22 65 72 50 54 25 26 22 23 66 72 51 55 26 271 23 24 67 & "151 73 52 56 27 28 24 25 68 74 53 57 28 29 25 26 84 92 54 58 29 30 26 27 86 93 153 & 55 59 30 3' 27 28 87 94 56 6o 32 i 28 29 SECTION 2. p e 62 32 33 I 29 30 58 62 ~33 34 30 31 16 19 59 63 34 356 3I 32 58 19 6o 64 17 20 6 6 35 36 32 33 18 21 6i 66 36 37 33 34 19 22 62 66 7 38 34 35 20 23 & 24 63 38 39 35 36 20Tim 4' pr 23 coninued 23 27 SCTI 41 42 38 39 24 28 42 43 39 40 25 29 35 34 43 44 40 41 26 30 36 35 44 45 2 42 27 31 & 32 37 6 45 47 82 43 28 33 38 37 6 6 48 42 44 41 48 39 38 47 49 43 45 42 49 40 39 48 50 44 4 43 50 41 40 49 5j 45 47 44 51 42 41 I 50 52 46 48 45 52 43 42 51 53 47 49 46 53 44 43 52 54 48 50 47 54 45 44 53 55 55 49 51 48 55 46 45 54 56 5" 52 49 56 47 46 55 57 51 53 50 57 48 47 56 3 8 52 54 Their report showed that the city had become the absolute owner of twenty-nine lots, with possible or part title in nearly seventy others. Ever since 1842, as occasion has required, land-board sessions of the council have been held, decisions made, and deeds issued to claimants and purchasers. Sessions have also been held from time to time to perfect titles of property originally deeded by the Governor and Judges, and to define the powers and rights of the city as to various parks laid out on the original plan. In i88o a session of the council as a Land Board was held to perfect the title to a portion of St. Ann's Church property. It seems hardly possible that Congress by the Act of 1842 intended to give the city government, for an indefinite length of time, the peculiar power it has since continued to exercise, and a limitation of its power in this direction would probably be no injustice. CHAP TER VI. MAPS OF DETROIT.- CITY BOUNDARY AT DIFFERENT PERIODS. CASS AND BRUSH FARMS.- MILITARY RESERVES. MAPS OF )DETROIT. THE earliest plans or maps yet discovered were made in 1749 and I 754 by Joseph Gaspard Chaussegros de Lery, a French lieutenant and engineer. A few of his papers fell into the possession of Father Peter Potier, and in 1845, Jacques Viger, of Montreal, made copies of some of them, including the maps named. In 1854 C. I. Walker obtained tracings of them, one of which is here reproduced. The only differences between the plans of I749 and 1754 are as follows: In the plan of I754 the stockade is extended a little farther east, and the location of a bake-house and store-house are marked, while the location of the cemetery is not designated. From an examination of the plan of 1749 it will be seen that in its general outline and method of laying out the streets, it is almost a facsimile of the earliest map of New Orleans. The next oldest plan of Detroit is the one made by T. Smith in I816, showing the city as it was in I796. In I877 what is believed to be the original copy of this map was in the possession of Eugene Robinson. PLAN OF DETROIT IN 1749. [32] MAPS OF DI)E1TROIT. 33 MAPS (iF l)ETROIT. 33 It was bought by A. E. Hathon, of Detroit, of Henry Berthelet, of Montreal, for fifteen dollars. The plan in Mrs. Sheldon's " History of Michigan" was made from it by J. F. Munroe. The full title of the map is " Plan of the Town and Fortifications of Detroit as they stood before the year 1796." About I825 J. 0. Lewis, of Detroit, engraved and published a small map of the city, which is, probably, a fair representation of the proposed plans of I805 and I806, with the addition of public PLA buildings as they existed at the time PA h of publication. This map is on "rom 7,r4 a scale of five hundred feet to one inch, and was, probably, drawn by - John Mullett; it had no official sanction. In 1877 copies were pos- i sessed by Sidney D. Miller and I others. An engraved copy of the map with " 807" attached to the FOR, title, and without the numbers of the lots, was in possession of James / A. Girardin in 1878. It was litho- 1k graphed by Compton & Gibson, at I Buffalo, New York. A copy of one -J~oCLE_ of the original maps is reproduced I in Volume V. of the American l State Papers, Public Land Series, I 1 / in connection with the report of I Lthe Governor and Judges. A fac- a simile, reduced to one half size, is M - given herein. I In 1830 John Mullett made and I published a map of the city. It, however, laid down alleys which had no legal existence, and failed to show the lines of many claims and lots, the boundaries of and rights to which had been recognized by the Governor and Judges. This map is also reproduced, with a slight change in title, in Volume V. of the Ameri- ^ar/ can State Papers, Public Land Se- E TI ries. In 1878 J. C. Holmes had a copy of the original map, of which five hundred copies are said to have been sold at a dollar a copy. The plan of 1831, drawn by John Farmer, is described in connection with tne history of the Governor and Judges' Plan. The next map was drawn by John Farmer while holding the office of district surveyor. It was published in I835, and was the first map of Detroit which gave accurately the size of the lots, and carefully delineated the old land lines. The size of the map was 30x44 inches. Its price was three dollars. It had 3 a very large sale and has furnished the ground-work for all the maps of the city that have since been made. The copyright of this map was sold to J. H. Colton & Co., and it was subsequently published by A. E. Hathon. Hie issued two editions, dated 1846 and 1856 respectively. In 1837 Morse & Brother issued a hastily prepared map of the city; and in 1853 Henry Hart published a map showing the location of the buildings. In MAl' OF THE CITY IN 1796. 1858 J. F. Munroe, city surveyor, issued the best map made from 1835 till then. On account of the growth of the city, it was necessarily much larger than any that preceded it. A new edition was published in I868. In 1871 Eugene Robinson, city surveyor, compiled a large map, which was published by Calvert & Company. A second edition was issued in I879. 34 MAPS OF DETROIT.-CITY BOUNDARY AT DIFFERENT P'IRIODS. 34~~~~~~~~~ ---~ Several small maps of the city have been published in connection with the city directories, that of James Dale Johnson being the first. Complete small street maps of the city were first published in 1863, and have been issued almost yearly since, by the firm of S. Farmer & Company. In 1875 this firm issued the first edition of a " Map of the City of Detroitand Its Environs." It was drawn by C. H. sides of the river are shown, with the Canadian villages of Walkertown, Windsor, and Sandwich. CITY BOUNDARY AT I)IFFERENT' PERIODS. In I803 Mr. C. Jouett, the Indian agent, wrote to the War Department that "of the two hundred and twenty-five acres granted to Cadillac in 1701, only four were occupied by the...~ — _town and Fort Lernoult; P LAN the remainder, except o w l ' tvtwenty-four acres added to William McComb's D E T ROIT farm, is acommon." The -A v E E.N. boundaries of the town, ' SIJS EH i gi l by the Act of 1802, were i1 j# BS tF as follows: -- Bounded toU il in front by the river, or ^/^^ ^^^^/^^ Strait of I)etroit; eastwardly by the division line between John Askin, Esq., and Antoine Beaua? XL 4 t X Xbien; westwardly by the ^ ^\ division line between the t ^a^l farms belonging to the I heirs of the late William ~^5, ~ H,5; | ~ McComb and Pierre Chesne; extending back &@@ \>^ W- n l from said river two miles, at an equal width rear as ^M.<} in front." ^^ '^^ ^^ ^ The Pierre Chesne "'~-7.~. Am ~ I Farm is now known as -<.9S f I I the Jones or Crane Farm. i^^ ^ 64%^ XThe adopted Plan of >. ~,..~ ~ ~the Governor and Judges left out the Brush and L. E'rT,'.-.r Beaubien farms on the.A& v- F X U l ' It4|4.|4j [.gL ~ Ef Feast, and the Cass Farm ____: '_"__ 1 —f 15 —,on the west, and extended 1W1FF_ Bti3i AIl only about one mile back A;.ire - from the river, thus reducing the limits of the town on three sides. On October 24, 1815, JD JUDGES' PRO'OSED PLAN. the city limits were extended so as to include the Cass Farm for a distance of two miles from the river; hut by Act of March 30, 1820, the Cass Farm was again thrown outside of the city. The Witherell Farm, which became part of Detroit by the Act taking effect April 4, 1836, was left outside of the city by the Act of February 15, 1842. By Act of April 12, J873, parts of the townships of Hamtramck and Greenfield were added to the REU.)CEI) FAC-SIMILE OF THE LEWIS MAP OF THE GOVERNOR AN Ellis, is four by five feet in-size, and shows all of Detroit with a large portion of the adjoining townships of Hamtramck, Springwells, and Greenfield, including the Ten-Thousand-Acre Tract and the village of Norris; it takes in the new Water Works and Belle Isle, on the east, and extends far enough west to include Fort Wayne, Delray, the Grand Trunk Junction, and Woodmere Cemetery. Both CITY BOUNI)ARY AT I)IFFERENT PERIOI)S.- CASS ANI) BRUSH FARMS. 35 ------- ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ city, but the Supreme Court decided that the Act was illegal. By Act of June 20, 1885, the city was enlarged by taking in portions of adjoining townships. It thus appears that the boundaries of the city have been curtailed no less than four times. Its limits have, however, been actually and permanently extended no less than seven times, as appears from the accompanying map, which, with the above explanations, gives a complete showing of the area of Detroit at different periods of time. CASS AND BRUSH FARMS. Among all the old claims embraced within the city, probably none are so frequently mentioned as the Cass and Brush farms. These farms bounded the original Governor and Judges' Plan, the Brush Farm lying on the easterly, and the Cass Farm on the westerly side of the town. Portions of the tract now included in the Cass Farm were granted to Robert Navarre on May I, 1747, and other portions, in 1750, to three several persons, ---Messsrs. Barrois, Godet, and St. Martin. The Pontiac Manuscript shows that the person last named was occupying a portion of the farm in 1763. On March 20, 1781, it was purchased at auction of the estate of Jacques St. Martin by W. Macomb for i0o6o. About this time, twenty-four acres are said to have been added to the tract, without authority so ~ far as is known. The tract now known as the Cass Farm embraces Private Claim No. 55, confirmed, by the United States Commissioners, to John, William, and David Macomb on November 16, 1807; MAPI OF ADDITIONS TO CITY LIMITS. 36 CASS AND BRUSH FARMS.-MILITARY RESERVES.. and also Private Claim No, 592, which was confirmed to the same parties on December 31, I8o8. The occasion of the transfer to Governor Cass was as follows:-The ordinance of 1787, and Acts creating subsequent Territorial Governments based on that ordinance, required the governor to be a freeholder to the extent of at least one thousand acres of land. Governor Cass, in order to conform to this law, after he had brought his family from Ohio, purchased of the Macombs in I816 the farm which has since borne his name, and about the same time bought a large tract near the mouth of the river. The front of the farm was originally a very high bank, the river coming up to where stores are now located at the intersection of Jefferson Avenue and Second Street. The bank was dug away and the streets graded in I836, twenty-five thousand cords of earth being removed. In September and October of that year lots on the "Cass front," embracing that part of the farm between Lamed Street and the river, were offered for sale at auction, the entire tract having previously been sold to a company of ten persons for one hundred thousand dollars. The property was then so far away from the center of the city that the lots would not sell, and after spending a large amount of money in improvements, the majority of the original purchasers were very glad to have General Cass take back the property at the price they had originally agreed to pay. That part of the farm between Larned Street and Michigan Avenue, was laid out in May, 1841, the portion north of Michigan Avenue in I851, the lots north of (rand River in 1859. The land now known as the Brush Farm was conceded to Eustache Gamelin on May I, 1747, and on March 15, 1759, by consent of Commandant Bellestre it was transferred to Jacques Pilet. On October 31, 1806, the farm, except a few lots on the western side, was conveyed by John Askin to Elijah Brush. The entire farm, as far north as High Street, was laid out into lots in 1835, and north of High Street in 1862. A large number of the lots have always been leased, the rental being determined by a valuation of the lots, new appraisals being made from time to time as agreed upon. The southern ends of both the Cass and Brush farms were built upon and improved many years ago, but the larger part was not sold or leased until improvements had been made on either side; consequently the owners were able, on account of the demand for central property, to affix conditions of sale that have been greatly to the advantage of themselves and purchasers. Houses of a certain value were required to be erected within a definite number of years, and thus these farms are now largely covered with elegant and comfortable residences, more being found on them than in any other part of the city. MILITARY RESERVES. When the English surrendered the city in 1796, the grounds occupied by the fort, the citadel, and other government buildings became the special property of the United States Government. The plan of the Governor and Judges was made to include the government property, but as they had no control over it, the plan was so far inoperative, and the Reserves remained in possession of the United States until May 26, 1824, when Congress gave to the city the Military Reserve between Lamed Street and Jefferson Avenue, bounded west by the street leading to the public barn (now Wayne Street), and east by the line of the large Reserve, near the line of the present Griswold Street. On May 20, 1826, Congress granted the balance of the Military Reserves to the city, including the grounds occupied by Fort Shelby,- reserving only the arsenal and military store-keepers' lots,-the grant being conditioned upon the building, by the corporation, of a magazine outside of the city. In accordance with the provisions of the Act, the city, on November 8, I830, advertised for proposals for building a powder magazine for the United States, on the Gratiot Road, near what is now Russell Street, where the barracks were afterwards located. The magazine was completed in September, 1831. The city was put in formal possession of the Reserve on September I, 1826, and on April 4, 1827, the Legislative Council gave the Common Council power to alter all that part of the Governor and Judges' Plan lying north of Lamed Street, south of what is now Adams Avenue, and between Cass and Brush Streets. Individuals owning lots within the boundaries designated, whose rights were disturbed, were to have other lots assigned them, or be paid the value of their lots. Against this action many citizens protested vigorously; and on the same day that the Act was passed a memorial was sent to Congress praying that body to prevent the proposed change in the plan. The protest was of no avail, and by ordinance of April 23, I827, the city provided for obtaining the consent of lot-owners to the plan of the new sub-division as laid out by John Mullett. His plan was finally agreed to, and on May I6, 1827, a public auction of lots on the site of the old fort took place at Military Hall, one of the old buildings of the cantonment. The conditions of sale were that a stone, brick, or frame house, two stories in height, be erected on each lot before the expiration of the time for the last payment, or else all previous payments and rights to the lot were to be forfeited. Some buildings belonging to the old fort were fitted up for tenants, and for several years the city performed the part of landlord. For further particulars as to the sale of lots see chapter on Taxation and Finances. C H A P T ER VII. PUBLIC SURVEIYS.-UNITEI) STATES LAND OFFICE. PUBLIC SURVEYS. IN the earliest days of the settlement, lands were surveyed under the direction of the king, by an officer appointed for the purpose, and the same method prevailed under English rule. This copy of an old document making such appointment is of interest: In consequence of repeated complaints made by several of the inhabitants that their neighbors have encroached on their farms, and that they do not actually possess the quantity specified in the primitive grants, and for which they pay rents to His Majesty; therefore, Mr. James Sterling being an experienced and approved surveyor, I have appointed him King's Surveyor at Detroit; and for the future his surveys only shall be looked upon as valid and decisive; and all whom it may concern are hereby ordered to conform thereto. Given under my hand and seal at Ietroit, April 21, 1774. HEI.N Y 1 SSE TT, lljor and Commandant. From other old records it appears that Philip Frey was the surveyor on March 27, 1785. He appointed Thomas Smith his deputy on May 8, I787. P. McNiff acted as surveyor in 1794 and 1799. Under the American Government, by law of May 16, I812, Aaron (reely was paid $5,565.92 for surveying private claims in Michigan. The first public surveys under a general law were commenced in 1815, and the survey of the entire State was completed in 1857. In the month of May, 1845, the office of surveyor-general for the district including Michigan was removed from Cinlcinnati to l)etroit. William Johnson was then surveyor-general. The subsequent aplointees were as follo\s: 1 845 to I851, Lucius I.yonl; I851 to 1853, Charles Noble 1853 to I857, Leander Chapman; 1857, Charles J. Emerson. The office was closed at I)etroit May I I, 1857, and the Record of Surveys deposited with the Commissioner of the Land Office at Lansing. The records show that the State contains 56,451 square miles or 36, I 28,64o acres. UNITED SLTATES LAND OFFICE. The first Land Office in what is now Michigan was established at Detroit under Act of Congress on March 26, 1804. On May I, I818, a proclamation of President Monroe authorized the first public auction sale of lands in Michigan. It took place at the Council House on July 6, 1818. The prices ranged from $2 to $40 per acre, the average price being $4. Up to 1826, United States lands were sold on credit, only a small amount being required to be paid down. In 1826 the law requiring full payment went into effect, and sales were greatly reduced. The receipts for United States lands sold at Detroit up to 1830 were as follows: One half year of 1820, $2,860.32; 1821, $7,444.39; 1822, $17,359.38; I823, $30,173.34; 1824, $6,917.15; I825, $92,332.55; 1826, $41,125.13; I827, $34,805.45; 1828, $17,433.72; 1829, $23,329.48. Total, $718,548.36. From I825 to 1837, the immigration from the Eastern States increased so rapidly that business flourished, and by the purchase and clearing of lands large sums of money were brought into and scattered about the Territory. As early as 1833 capitalists began to come from New York to invest in wild lands. In 1836 the number of immigrants was simply amazing; the steamers and sailing vessels were literally loaded down with people who came to settle in Michigan and the West. From five hundred to seven hundred frequently arrived on a single boat. During the month of May public lands were entered so rapidly that on Monday, May 9, the register had to close his door and receive applications through the window, and the receipts at the Land Office between the Ist and the 25th of the month were $278,000. The total am6unt received at the three Michigan land offices, namely, Detroit, Kalamazoo, and Monroe, was over $i,ooo,ooo. During the year the total sales in Michigan amounted to the enormous sum of $7,000,000. Numerotls associations were formed for the purchase of wild lands and embryo city sites, and at the mouth of every western river, and almost every township corner, towns were laid out. "On paper," creeks were magnified into streams, and comparatively insignificant streams were transformed into large rivers floating steamboats and other water-craft, while on the land the speculator's dreams took form in imaginary hotels, churches, schools, and railroads. Absolute forests were in imagination transformed into cities, and sold at ten thousand per cent advance. The laying out and making maps of these "paper cities" kept the few draughtsmen then in Detroit busy all day long and far into the night. Hundreds of dollars, in the "wildcat" currency of the times, were frequently paid for a draughtsman's services for a single day. Leading men of both parties formed pools with fifty or a hundred thousand dollars, and committed the amounts to the discre [371 38 UNITED STATES LAND OFFICE. tion of agents who were to be compensated by a share of the profits in the lands purchased. The details of some of these enterprises are so ludicrous as to be hardly credible. There remain to this day survivors of the crowds which, in the height of the season, occupied the entire width of Jefferson Avenue in front of the Land Office, each individual awaiting his turn to enter and secure his prize. Sometimes large sums were given to secure the services of the fortunate man at the head of the column by another who was far in the rear. Horses were mercilessly driven and killed in the race to reach the Land Office. In one instance, at midday, two men on horseback were seen turning the corner of Woodward and Jefferson Avenues, hastening at full speed to the Land Office. It turned out that they were victims of a cruel joker in Genesee County. Each of them had ridden all night, breaking down two horses apiece in the seventy-mile race, in order to be the first to enter a certain tract of land. The sequel showed that they desired to purchase entirely different parcels. Men who one day were the possessors of meadow or pasture lots near some village or city found themselves, the next day, the proprietors of innumerable fractions into which their acres had been subdivided, and could hardly believe they were the same persons who, so short a time before, had been hewers of wood and drawers of water. It is utterly impossible to describe, in terms which the present generation would comprehend, the actual condition of the public mind at that period. This abnormal activity began to show itself in 1834, grew rapidly in 1835, and culminated in 1836; and when the panic came, the sites of many "paper cities" could be bought for less than the price of wild land, and to this day are owned and assessed as farm lands. At the present time the Detroit District of the United States Land Office embraces parts of the counties of Huron, Sanilac, Lapeer, St. Clair, Macomb, Oakland, Livingston, Ingham, Jackson, Washtenaw, Wayne, Hillsdale, Lenawee, and Monroe. All the government lands, however, in these counties are sold. The district also embraces the counties of Cheboygan, Presque Isle, Alpena, Montmorency, and Otsego, in parts of which government land is for sale. In I880 about one hundred thousand acres were still subject to entry. Lands within six miles of an existing or proposed railroad are held at twenty shillings per acre. All other government lands are sold for ten shillings per acre. No credit is given, and payment must be made in cash, or lands may be selected, and obtained by the use of Bounty Land Warrants or United States scrip, so called. This scrip is of the nature of a due-bill, issued by the Government to holders of land claims, in some of the Southern and Western States, at the time certain territory was ceded by foreign governments. The Land Office contains a record of the names of the original purchasers of all government lands in the counties above named; and where parties have failed to call or send for the patent issued by the Government and have it put on record, the names of original owners can be obtained only from this office and the Land Office at Washington. When payments are made for lands, a receipt is given for the money, and a record is forwarded to Washington. The government patent or deed is then issued. The receipt of the receiver for the payment of the price of a piece of land is considered good evidence of ownership, but unless the government patent or deed is placed on file the chain of title is not complete in the county records. That many persons neglect to obtain their patents is evident from the fact that there are between twenty and thirty thousand uncalled-for patents in the office at Detroit. There are two officers connected with this office, one is designated as the "register," the other as the "receiver," and each of them has a salary of five hundred dollars per year and one half of the fees. The fees consist of two per cent on the gross value of all selections for which cash or land-warrants are received, and two per cent on the cash valuation of lands taken up under the Homestead Act. There is also a government fee of ten dollars when the amount of land entered is over eighty acres, and five dollars when eighty acres or less are entered. The total receipts by the United States from sales of land in Michigan, up to June 30, 1883, amounted to $18,501,522. The following persons have served as registers of the Land Office: 1804 and 1805, George Hoffman; I806-I82I, Peter Audrain; 1821-1823, Henry B. Brevoort; 1823-I837, John Biddle; 1837-1839, Thomas Hunt; 1839-1841, Olmstead Hough; 1841-I847, Robert A. Forsyth; I847-I849, Elisha Taylor; 1849-1853, Lansing B. Mizner; 1853-1857, Daniel J. Campau; 1857-i86I, Charles F. Heyerman; I86I-I863, J. G. Peterson; I863-I869, Arnold Kaichen; I869-I871, Addison Mandell; 1871-1877, Frederick Morley; 1877-1883, Joseph B. Bloss; I883-I886, Adam E. Bloom; 1886-, W. Foxen. The receivers of the Land Office have been as follows: 1804-1807, Frederick Bates; 1807-18I9, James Abbott; I819-1851, Jonathan Kearsley; I85I-I853, Ezra Rood; I853-I857, Elisha Taylor; 1857-186I, Jacob Beeson; 186I-I865, H. K. Sanger; I865-I869, Edward Le Favour; 1869 to October, I88i,John M. Farland; I881 to July, 1882, E. W. Cottrell; 1882 -i886, Lyman G. Wiltcox; i886-, J. M. Welch. CHAPTER VIII. DEEDS, MORTGAGES, AND TITLES.- PAST AND PRESENT PRICES OF LANDS. DEEDS, MORTGAGES, AND TITLES. UNDER French and English rule, all deeds were recorded by a notary in a book kept for the purpose. By law of June I8, 1795, of the Northwest Territory, the office of register was created. The first Act concerning the registering of deeds under Michigan Territory was passed August 29, I805; it provided that deeds might be recorded with the clerk of any court. An Act, passed on January I9, I8i, authorized the register of probate to record deeds; and by Act of November 4, 1815, deeds were required to be recorded in his office. On April I2, 1827, the register was directed to provide a book for the recording of mortgages. On January 29, 1835, the office of county register was created, and the register of probate ceased to have the recording of deeds or mortgages. The deeds and mortgages are recorded in separate volumes, which are numbered or lettered in the order in which they are filled. The records are open to free consultation. Under the Revised Statutes of I846, the register is required to keep and record alphabetically the name of every party to each instrument, with a reference to the book and page where the name is recorded. These index volumes are so numerous and the arrangement so incomplete that in almost all transfers of real estate reference is had to abstracts furnished by private parties. The most thorough and comprehensive abstract history of lands in Wayne County is possessed by Charles M. Burton. Many thousands of dollars and years of labor were spent by E. C. Skinner in making the compilations and collections, all of them being stored in an elegant fireproof building erected especially for their preservation. Upon so important a question as the title to real estate there ought to be nothing vague or uncertain. A very few lots are held under deeds obtained under English rule, and for these a long chain of title can be shown. All other titles to lands in the city are derived primarily from the United States; and secondarily: ist, from persons to whom old French farms were confirmed by the United States commissioners; 2d, from the Governor and Judges, who were authorized to convey by Congress; 3d, from the "Mayor, Recorder and Aldermen" of the city, and later the Common Council, who were made the successors of the Governor and Judges, and who also received some of the Military Reserves as a gift from the United States; 4th, from the United States, who deeded directly some of the Government Reserves; and 5th, from the State, which issues deeds for lands on which the taxes are not paid to any one who will pay the amount due. To constitute a perfect title there should be a chain of deeds starting from some one of these classes, and continuing, without a break, down to the Jatest claimant or owner; and each new deed should be signed by all the parties to whom the property had previously been deeded, or their heirs or assigns. If any of the parties have married since the deed was made to them, the deed should be signed by the new parties, and the man and wife should in all cases unite in the signing of deeds. If any of the parties making a new deed are the heirs of parties who made the last conveyance, it should be so stated in the deed. The description of the property conveyed should be the same in each deed; or, at least, it should be carefully examined to see that it covers the same land. To make it certain that there are no tax titles on the land, the books of the county and city treasurers should be examined, or, as is usual, a certificate or statement should be obtained from each of these officers showing that nothing is due for taxes or special assessments. If the land has been sold for taxes, this is a cloud upon the title that needs to be removed, and the books in either office will show who has acquired the tax title. A warranty deed from a responsible party is considered to insure a perfect title, but as mistakes may happen in the making out of deeds, and parties may cease to be able to make good their warranty, the safe course is to make sure that the abstract of title shows the title to be vested in the party or parties who convey. A quit claim deed from parties in whom the title to land is clearly vested, is considered as good as a warranty deed. If any mortgages have been given covering the land, it should be seen that they are all discharged by the parties to whom they were given. A discharge may be made either by a written document, which should be placed on record, l391 40 PAST AND PRESENT PRICES OF LANDS. 40PAT NDPRSET RIESOFLADS or by the mortgagee writing "Discharged" on the face of the original record, with the date and their name. By law of March 9, 1844, deeds from the Governor and Judges were required to be recorded at length; and a transcript of the same was to be firima facie evidence in cases where the original deed would be evidence. A further law of May 7, 1847, provided that it should not be necessary to have or prove the acknowledgments of the Mayor and Aldermen, in the case of deeds duly executed by them. An Act of April I, 1850, provided that in the case of deeds and conveyances from the Governor and Judges heretofore recorded, but not acknowledged, the record of such deed, or a certified copy, should be evidence in case it is proved the original deed is lost. In addition to the other records, in the office of the register of deeds, all subdivisions of property in the city or county, and all plats affecting the division of property, are required to be filed. Up to January I, 1881, the county register received no salary, hired his own clerks, and was paid solely by the fees of the office, which were estimated to amount to from ten to twelve thousand dollars yearly. By law of I879, his salary is fixed by the county auditors at not less than twenty-five hundred dollars nor more than three thousand dollars per annum, and all the fees are required to be paid into the county treasury. The county registers have been as follows: 1835, R. S. Rice; 1836, C. W. Whipple; 1837-1841, George R. Griswold; 1841 and 1842, Josiah Snow; I843-I847, Silas A. Bagg; 1847-1851, C. V. Selkrig; I851-I855, Henry Campau; I855 and 1856, H. R. Nowland; 1857-1861, H. S. Roberts; I86I and 1862, H. M. Whittlesey; 1863 and 1864, E. N. Lacroix; I865-I869, WV. E. Warner; 1869-1873, Alonzo Eaton; 1873 and 1874, John W. McMillan; I875-1879, Charles Dupont; 1879 and i88o, Henry Plass; 1881-1883, J. I. Mitchell; 1883-1887, C. M. Rousseau; 1887-, M. P. Roulo. Under Act of July 28, I818, the governor was authorized to appoint a city register for Detroit, to record all papers concerning real estate. A further law of March 27, 1820, provided that his compensation should be the same as that of the register of probate; and all deeds and mortgages, in order to be valid as against any new purchaser, were required to be recorded before December I, 1821. A law of July 14, 1830, authorized the register to appoint a deputy. By law of March 22, 1837, the office was abolished and its duties combined with those of the county register. The following persons served as city registers: 1798-1804, Peter Audrain; I806-1818, Joseph Watson; 1818-1822, A. E. Wing; 1822 and I823, A. G. Whitney; 1823-1825, E. A. Brush; 1825, P. Lecuyer; 1826-1830, John Whip pie; 1830-1835, Theodore Williams; 1836, C. W. Whipple. PAST AND PRESENT PRICES OF LANDS. In I760 M. de Bellestre, the French commandant, paid M. Vernet a sum equal to $2,500 for two lots whose combined size was only 30x50 feet. In I767, under English rule, ~220, New York currency, was paid for a lot forty feet wide on St. James Street extending through to St. Ann's Street. These prices for that early period seem enormous; yet it is well known that such prices were frequently paid. Judge Woodward, in a letter dated March 6, I8o6, states that property in the old town of Detroit bore so enormous a value that he "would not name it, as it would be deemed incredible." The protection afforded by the stockade, and the privileges of trading, had much to do with the value put on lots within the pickets. After the town passed under the control of the United States, real estate resumed its normal value, and prices became more definite. According to the report of a committee appointed by the proprietors of lots, after the fire of I805, the value of lots 27x54 feet was $123.50, and of lots 161x175 feet, $614.50. The total value of all lots owned by the sixty-nine proprietors was $14,205.50. After the fire, and the distribution of the lots, the highest sum paid for the excess was seven cents, and the average four cents per square foot. On March 6, 1809, forty-one of the Park Lots, containing five and ten acres each, were sold at auction, the auctioneer being paid one fourth of one per cent commission. The conditions of sale were one fourth cash, one fourth in six months, and the remaining half in twelve months from date of sale. Upon these terms the following persons bought the lots indicated, at the prices named: Purchaser. John Palmer No. of Lot. 8i Jacob Sanders 21 Ianiel Stevens 5 and 52 William Scott 40 " " I I, 12, 13, 14 Richard Smythe 72 and 73.... it 53 and 54 Solomon Sibley 49 and 50 it " 22 and 23... 42 and 43 " 74, 75, 76, 77, and 78.. ( 8 and 9 B. Woodworth 24, 25, 26, 27 John R. Williams 55... i47 and 48 it 44 and 45 " ( I, 2, 3, and 4 John Whipple 68 and 69 Price. $55 oo 21 50 27 I3 20 00 195 62 23 78 30 50 24 74 26 87 45 62 123 52 115 00 70 oo 12 55 31 37 45 62 i88 75 22 20 PAST AND PRESENT PRICES OF LANDS. 4I As late as 1817 the Park Lots were valued at only fifteen dollars per acre. In I815 Governor Cass purchased five hundred acres of land, now known as the "Cass Farm," for $I2,000. In I816 the southwest corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues, with a frontage of forty feet on Jefferson Avenue by one hundred on Woodward Avenue, was sold for $2,0IO. In November, r8r6, Lot 49, 40x80 feet, on the northwest corner of Griswold and Woodbridge Streets, was sold to B. Stead for $I 1.90. In I817 the University Lot, on the northwest corner of Bates and Lamed Streets, eighty feet on Lamed by two hundred and ten on Bates Street, sold for $80. On April 15, 1864, it was bought by Farrand, Sheley, & Co. for $22,010. In I8I9 a large number of lots in the vicinity of the present City Hall were sold at auction by the Governor and Judges. Among the purchasers was Judge Sibley. After the sale Major Rowland said to C. C. Trowbridge, "A fool and his money are soon parted. Sibley has just been buying about twenty lots at seven dollars each, and I would not give him seventy cents each." In 1829 David Cooper bought the lot on Michigan Avenue, for many years occupied by his residence, for $200. On October 27, 1829, Robert Abbott reported that there were seventy-four city lots still unsold, which were then worth $5,000, or an average of less than seventy dollars each. On June IO, I835, the Journal and Courier contained the following: Buying and selling is the order of the day. Our city is filled with speculators, who are all on tiptoe. Several snug fortunes of from ten to twenty thousand dollars have already been made. Governor Cass has disposed of the front part of his farm, as far back as Lamed Street, for $ioo,ooo. In January, 1836, real estate was very active, and over three hundred and fifty thousand dollars' worth of property changed hands. In February, I836, one of the city papers said: As proof of the rapidly increasing value of property in the city, ten acres of land, one mile from the river on the Pontiac Road, without any buildings, has been sold for $1o,ooo. On June 15, 1836, several lots on Jefferson Avenue, near Cass Street, were sold at auction, bringing from $300 to $450 per foot front. On October 18, 1836, lots on the Cass front, to the amount of $19o,ooo, were sold at auction, the water lots selling at from $I46 to $220 per foot. In January, 1843, the lot on the southeast corner of Griswold and Congress Streets was sold by the Bank of Michigan to the county for $1,800, and on July 25, I859, it was sold at auction to C. H. Buhl for $I2,550. The lot has a frontage of thirty-five feet on Griswold Street. In 1842 Colonel Winder bought ten acres of land on the northeast corner of Woodward Avenue and High Street for $1,500. On May 28, 1846, forty-two acres were purchased for the proposed Elmwood Cemetery, for $t,858. A lot on Jefferson Avenue, nearly opposite the Exchange, fifty-two feet front by seventy feet deep, was sold at auction, February 17, I85I, for $6,400, or about $I23 per foot front. The same year St. Paul's Church Society sold sixty feet front by one hundred feet deep, on \Voodward Avenue, where the church then stood, for $12,642, and four years later the adjoining property, on the south, was sold by the Presbyterian Church for $50,ooo. In 1848 and I850 H. R. Andrews bought the ground on which the Detroit Opera House is located for $6,500. In I86I it was sold by the executors of his estate for $23,500. In I867 it was sold for $50,000, and in I868 Dr. E. M. Clark paid $55,000 for the property. The ground and building occupied by the First National Bank were sold at auction October 4, 1855, for $24,00ooo, one third cash, and the remainder in two years, without interest. In February, 1860, the property on southwest corner of Griswold and Congress Streets, eighty feet front on Griswold by one hundred feet on Congress Street, was sold to C. H. Buhl for $334 per foot front. In 1862 Mr. E. S. Heineman bought the house and grounds on the north corner of Woodward Avenue and Adelaide Street for $20,000. In I863 the five lots now occupied by the Central M. E. Church were bought for $8,600. In October of the same year the lot on the northeast corner of Congress and Randolph Streets, with a frontage of fifty-four feet on Randolph Street by ninety feet on Congress Street, with the building, sold for $9,ooo. On November I I, 1863, two lots on the north side of Jefferson Avenue, near Wayne Street, twenty-five feet front each, sold for $83 per foot front. On July o1, 1873, one hundred and fifty-two lots at the Grand Trunk Junction were sold for an aggregate of $55,455; and on July I8 ninety-two more lots were sold for the sum of $28,I Io. The lot on the northwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street was sold to Albert Ives in September, 1876, for $27,000. The size of lots varies according to the fancy of those who make the subdivisions. The usual sizes are 30x100 and 50ox50. According to the location, either business or residence lots sell at from $10 to $1,500 per foot frontage. Among the many persons who have laid out large tracts into city lots, Messrs. F. J. B. Crane, W. B. Wesson, Walter Crane, John Gibson, and J. W. Johnston have been especially prominent. They have enriched themselves, and promoted the interests of the city by their business sagacity, and it is largely owing to their efforts that so great a proportion of our inhabitants are freeholders. . PART II. H Y G I EN IC. I ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~~~~~ CHAPTER IX. THE CLIMATE OF DETROIT. THE climate of Detroit very favorably impressed the early travelers. M. de Bougainville, who was here in I757, says: "The atmosphere is of great beauty and serenity. It is a magnificent climate, having almost no cold weather, and only a little snow. The cattle stay in the fields all winter and find their living there." All investigations indicate that the climate is modified by the surrounding bodies of water. Of late it seems to be more variable than formerly, but it is seldom subject to such extremes of heat and cold as are common to the latitude. The mean of summer temperature is 67~; in winter the mean is 26". A diary of the weather, kept in I816, from the 24th of July to the 22d of October, or for eighty-nine days, showed that fifty-seven days were fair and twelve cloudy, and that on twenty days showers fell. A record kept at the fort for one hundred and five days, from November 15, I8 8, to February 28, I819, showed forty days clear, forty days cloudy, thirteen variable, and twelve cloudy, with rain and snow. In the winter of I818-I819 the average temperature in November was 43~, in December 25~, in January 30~, and in February 33~ Fahrenheit. 'Faking the years together, the mean temperature is about the same as that of Elmira, Albany, Portland, Boston, Buffalo, and Rochester. The uncommon beauty and serenity of the autumns and the usual mildness of our winters have often been the subject of remark. The increased temperature, due to the extensive and open-water surfaces of this region, causes the snow to melt almost as soon as it falls. In manywinters the snow has been hardly sufficient for good sleighing. A mild and open winter is ordinarily succeeded by an early spring, the proportion as to cold or late springs being about two to one. Cold, snowy winters are always followed by cold and backward springs. Our deepest and longest lasting snow usually occurs in February, which is also the, coldest month. Winter often "lingers in the lap of Spring," and then, with a bound, leaps into the arms of Summer. The region is noted for the clearness of its atmosphere, the intense blue of its sky, the brilliancy of its moonlight, and the gorgeous and glowing colors of its sunsets. Indeed, in these particulars, it not [451 only excels the Eastern States, but rivals the farfamed skies of southern Italy. We have in a single month more clear firmament, and of an intenser blue, than that land has in half a year. The autumn here is one of the most enjoyable of the seasons, affording a wonderful contrast to the dull, wet seasons of European countries in the same latitude. The latter part of November is usually so mild that it is known and enjoyed as the Indian Summer. True, the leaves are mostly gone from the trees, and nature would seem cheerless but for a dreamy haze and a springlike mildness in the atmosphere that more than atones for the lost glories of summer. The climate is the driest in the United States, east of the head-waters of the Mississippi. The rains are quite equally distributed through all but the winter months, and they have only one sixth of the entire precipitation. Crops seldom suffer for want of moisture. About the end of September it is usual to expect a rainy period of some days' duration, known as the "equinoctial storm," but oftentimes no such storm appears. During midsummer violent rains of brief duration frequently come to cool and clear the atmosphere, and a feature peculiar to this locality is the rains that so often occur during nights which are preceded and followed by cloudless days. In the months of December and February there is the least rainfall. From February to June there is a kradual increase. The mean fall of the spring months is 2.8 inches. In June, the month of largest precipitation, it amounts to 3.9 inches, and the mean of the summer is 3.1 inches. The mean for September reaches 3.3 inches; in the autumn it is 2.4 inches. The average yearly rainfall, for the period between 1840 and 1860, was 31 feet. The greatest fall of rain was 6 feet in I855; the least was 2 4 feet in I859. As a rule, warm summers, if succeeded by dry, pleasant autumns, are followed by mild and open winters. Cold summers and autumns are ordinarily succeeded by cold winters, the exceptions being about one to two, and the probabilities are four to one that early springs will be followed by warm and pleasant summers. In winter the prevailing winds are west or west 46 CLIMATE OF DETROIT. erly. In the spring, for nearly half the time, east and northeast winds prevail. The winds vary from east to west and from northeast to south, seldom coming from the northwest. In summer southwest winds are most prevalent; east and west winds are also frequent, but there are few northwest or southeast. Autumn brings westerly winds, varying from southwest to south. Taking the yearly average, probably two thirds of the winds are southwest, west, and northwest. Of course there are exceptions to all the above general rules, and some of these exceptions, gleaned from old records and letters, will astonish the "oldest inhabitant." Jonathan Carver states that in October, 1762, dense black clouds hung over the city, from which fell rain of a sulphurous odor, and of such dark color that some was collected and used as ink. The winter of I779-1780 was the most severe on record. Horses and cattle died from exposure to the cold, and in the spring hundreds of them were found dead in the woods. On May 16, 1780, Colonel De Peyster wrote to Colonel Bolton at Niagara, saying: "After the most severe winter ever remembered at Detroit, this is the earliest we think prudent to venture a vessel to Fort Erie." In the spring and summer of 1782 the rains, the most violent ever known, washed away a large portion of the embankment of Fort Lernoult. Early in 1784 an extraordinary frost set in, extending all over this region. The oldest resident could not remember any such deep snow as that of the succeeding winter; in some places it was five or six feet deep, and caused great distress. As late as March 6 the snow was four feet deep. In Lake St. Clair, a mile from the shore, the ice was three feet thick, and it did not disappear until May. The winter of 8I 1-1 812 brought an earthquake in place of storms. Its first and most destructive manifestations occurred at New Madrid on the Mississippi. On December 16, I8I, it destroyed the entire village, which was located on a bluff, fifteen feet above high-water mark, sinking it five feet under water. Sand-bars and islands disappeared, lakes sixty miles long and one hundred feet deep were formed, and the air was full of sulphurous vapor. Up to December 21 shocks were of daily occurrence, and they were felt at intervals until late in February. They were especially severe about thirty miles below New Madrid, and were felt all over the valley of the Ohio as far east as Iittsburgh. They were especially noticeable at Detroit on January 22 and 23, on the 24th, at 7 P. M., and also on February 7, 1812. In 1816, at Detroit, ice formed every month in the year. From the 14th to the 2oth of April, I821, eight inches of snow fell. The winter of 1823 was very mild. Flowers blossomed in the winter out of doors, and a vessel arrived from Sandusky on Janu ary I3. On May I, 1824, there was a foot of snow on the ground. In 1826 the winter was so mild that grass is said to have grown a foot in January. November 12, 1827, was remarkable as being a very dark day. In October, 1828, there were extensive fires in the woods, caused by lack of rain, and lasting for two weeks. They began on the Huron River, and ran over a large portion of the State. It was impossible to see houses along the road. Articles exposed gathered a sticky residuum from the smoke. It was humorously said that a pig which one man killed became good bacon while he was dressing it. I829 was a dry season, but the traditional "six weeks of sleighing in the month of February" were duly enjoyed. On December 4, 1833, there was no ice, and steamers and schooners were arriving and departing. February 22, 1834, there was a great gale of wind that blew down chimneys and unroofed houses. February 8, 1835, the mercury was below zero all over the country. The winter of 1838 was particularly mild. On January 8 the steamer Robert Fulton arrived from Buffalo. March 23, 1840, a snow-storm began which lasted eighteen hours, and eight inches of snow fell. In 1845 steamers arrived from Buffalo every month in the year. In 1853, with the exception of a slight shower on September 14, there was no rain all the summer and autumn, up to October 21. Fires in the woods were numerous, and the fog in Detroit was disagreeable and dangerous, old citizens actually losing their way in the streets. The spring and summer of 1855 were rainy, and the wheat was generally damaged; the winter-was quite severe. In January and February, I856, there was continuous sleighing. In the fall of I856 and the winter of 1857 the public were amused with the prophecies of W. W. Ryan in regard to the weather. On January 27 he gave a lecture at the City Hall. In I859 there was frost every month, and especially heavy frosts on the 4th and ioth of June and the 3d and 4th of July did great damage to fruits and vegetables. January I, 1864, there was a sudden fall in temperature from Io~ above freezing point on December 31 to 20~ below on January I. The summer of 1865 was one of the hottest for many years, and much rain fell; the Indian Summer, extending all through November, was particularly warm. From the I9th to the 2oth of January, I866, the temperature fell 60~. On the 2d and the 4th of May, I867, there was a frost. On the st and the 2d of March, 1868, immense quantities of snow fell, almost stopping travel. Other snow-storms came on the 2d, 3d, 4th, 7th, i8th, and 25th of April; in fact, all through the month, and all through May, there were frosts, which were especially noticeable on the I8th. On April 12, 1869, there was a light fall of snow, and on the next day a heavy snow-storm. On October 23, while the'trees were in full foliage, six inches of snow fell, and many trees CLIMATE OF DETROIT. 47 were broken with its weight. On April 26, 1870, over one hundred vessels were waiting at the St. Clair Flats for the ice to move out of the channel, where it was fully ten feet in height. On April 20, 1871, ice one fourth of an inch in thickness formed at night; and on August 17, 8, and 19 there were heavy frosts. No rain had fallen for a long time, and it was very dry. In September and October there were extensive fires in Michigan and the West, followed by the great fire in Chicago. December 23, 1871, there was a severe wind-storm. The winter which followed was very severe. April 13, 1872, occurred a storm of wind, which did much damage to vessels and poorly built houses. January 29, I873, was the coldest day of the season, the mercury ranging from i8~ to 35~ below zero. April 3 two inches of snow fell. On December 4 a wind-storm did much damage, blowing down chimneys and signs and unroofing houses. April 5, 1874, snow fell sufficient for good sleighing, and on May 7 ice formed. The next month, on June 28, the mercury was 98~ in the shade. uprooted, carriages and wagons overturned, vessels dragged their anchors, and the ferry-boats were compelled to stop running. In December ice twelve inches in thickness was formed in the river. On the 15th and I6th, there was a very severe wind, and the snow and ice were piled up in great masses in front of the city. On January 15, I877, there was a heavy snowstorm, which for a time stopped all travel. February 7 was extraordinarily warm, and on March 20 there was a sharp snow-storm, accompanied by thunder and lightning. It so affected the electrical apparatus in connection with the City Hall bell that at every flash the bell struck one. In 1878 no ice formed until February 9. There was no snow until February I I, and boats kept on running. For a week in the July following, the mercury ranged from 9go to Ioo~. On July I there was a very heavy thunder-storm and much rain. In January and February, 1879, there were no frosts, but on the 6th and the I7th of June this remissness of the winter was atoned for. On July 10 there was an immense fall of rain, flooding the sewers and filling cellars. On August I hailstones as large as walnuts fell in great quantities; during the last week in January, I88i, and the first two weeks in the February following, we had clear weather and sunshine every day, and the ground was entirely free from snow. The first two weeks of February, 1883, were in marked contrast; there were several inches of snow, and the trees during the entire period were covered with sleet and ice. During the night of Monday, May 21, there was a heavy wind, accompanied with rain, which turned to hail and snow the next morning, the storm continuing at intervals all the day. On the night of September 8 there was a heavy frost, which did great damage to fruits and vegetables. A remarkable snow storm began at 12 A. M. April 6, i886, and by 3 P. M. there were seventeen inches of snow on a level, and by I I o'clock it had reached a depth of twenty-four inches. A high wind also prevailed, blowing the snow into such drifts that travel was almost impossible. The street cars stopped running, and twenty-six cars were left in the snow on the Woodward Avenue line between the Campus Martius and the Grand Circus, and no cars ran until noon on April 7. A noticeable feature of the summer of 1887 was the intense heat that prevailed; the season was the hottest known for fifty years. The heat reached its maximum on July I6 and 17, when thermometers registered IIO~, the wind being like a blast from a furnace. SP'ECI11FN OF TORN DO WORK. (Fromr 7t hotograpih.) On March 3, I875, snow fell fifteen inches on a level. On June 27 there was an occurrence entirely unusual. About 6 P. MI. a whirlwind commenced ':car the corner of Ash Street and Williams Avenue, and made its way across Grand River Avenue, a distance of nearly a mile, sweeping a track fully one hundred and fifty feet wide, destroying thirty-three small buildings and injuring twenty-eight others. Two persons were killed and ten slightly injured. March 20, 1876, there was a severe snow-storm. July 5, there was a very heavy wind; trees were CHAPTER X. DISEASES.- DOCTORS.- MEDICAL SOCIETIES. DISEASES. DETROIT cannot be recommended as the paradise of physicians. The general mildness of the climate, the pure breezes from the river and lake, the complete system of drainage, for which there are exceptional facilities, the inexhaustible supply of superior water, the abundance and variety of fish, meat, fruits, and vegetables in its markets, the favorable sanitary conditions, resulting from our wide and well-kept streets, the enlightened and efficient efforts of the Health Officers and Sanitary Police, the almost entire absence of tenement houses, and the fact ihat a large majority of the inhabitants own their homes, are all to be taken into account in explaining its fortunate condition as one of the most healthy cities in the world. In cases of disease, these advantages are favorable to the physicians, making their prescriptions more effective and increasing the average of cures. The doctors thus get full credit for their skill, and this fact, added to other desirable features, makes the city attractive to physicians as a place of residence, notwithstanding its general healthfulness. During the last forty years the prevailing diseases have been malarious fever, rheumatism, pneumonia, choleraic affections, croup, and pleurisy. There have also been occasional visitations of the ordinary epidemic and contagious diseases, such as influenza, measles, scarlet-fever, small-pox, etc., and within twenty years typhoid, or rather typhomalarial fevers and diphtheria have been added to the above list, which, it will be observed, embraces only the diseases common to temperate climates. Detroit has an advantage over other ordinarily healthy cities in the same latitude, in that these diseases, when they occur, are exceptionally mild in type. The yearly death-rate averages only about twenty for every I,ooo persons. The total number of deaths reported in I880 was I,074; in 188I, 1,709; in 1882, 2,712; and in 1883, 2,957. Old records show that in 1703 the small-pox made severe inroads upon the infant colony. It appears from statements made in Zeisberger's diary, that small-pox was very prevalent at Detroit in December, 1785, and that the population generally were greatly alarmed. It also appears that in September. I789, a pestilence of some sort prevailed of which many people died. It is also undoubtedly true that the first American settlers suffered much from fever and ague, and whiskey, as an antidote, was freely used by almost every one. In course of time quinine was substituted, and this, combined with other remedies, was first administered under the name of Dr. Sappington's Pills. In the fall and winter of I813 a severe epidemic prevailed in General Harrison's army. Hundreds of soldiers died, and were buried near the fort. The removal of their remains in 1826, at the time the Military Reserve was laid out into lots, was doubtless one of the causes of the illness of that year which carried away H. J. Hunt, A. G. Whitney, and other prominent citizens. The first serious epidemic among citizens occurred in 1832, and in anticipation of its coming the Board of Health, on June 25, issued printed instructions for the prevention and cure of the cholera, including lists of medicines and prescriptions for children and adults. The mayor's proclamation, appended to these instructions, forbade vessels from any other port to approach within a hundred yards, or to land any person until after an examination by a health officer. On July 4 the steamer Henry Clay arrived; she was on her way to Chicago with three hundred and seventy soldiers for the Black Hawk War, under command of Colonel Twiggs. On July 5 one of the soldiers died of cholera, and the vessel was immediately ordered to Hog Island. From there she went on her way, but the disease attacked so many of the troops that it was useless for the vessel to proceed and she was compelled to stop at Fort Gratiot. From there the soldiers began to make their way to Detroit, but many of them died on the road, and were devoured by wild beasts; only one hundred and fifty reached the city, arriving here about July 8. They then embarked on the steamboat Wm. Penn, but the disease compelled them to leave the vessel, and they went into camp at Springwells, where they remained until the scourge had expended its force. [48] DISEASES. 49 Meanwhile, on July 6, two citizens died of the disease, and a panic was at once created. Many persons left their business and fled from the city. In the country the excitement was even greater than at Detroit. On the arrival of the mail-coach at Ypsilanti, the driver was ordered by a health officer to stop, that an examination of passengers might be made. The driver refusing, his horses were fired on; one was killed, and the driver himself had a narrow escape. At other places fences were built across the roads, and travelers were compelled to turn back. At Rochester persons from Detroit were turned out of the hotel and their baggage thrown after them, and the bridges were torn up to prevent persons from entering the village. At Pontiac a body of men were armed, and sentinels were stationed on the highway to prevent ingress. One of the citizens of this latter place, Dr. Porter, came here to investigate the disease, but on his return he was refused admittance to his own home and compelled to revisit our city. In Detroit the Board of Health issued regular bulletins, and the court and juryrooms in the old capitol were used for hospital purposes. By August 15 the epidemic was practically over. The deaths, ninety-six in number, could be traced in most instances to intemperance and carelessness. Two years later the disease again appeared, and this time with added horrors. It began its work of destruction the first of August, and continued till the last of September. The greatest number of deaths in any one day was sixteen. In twenty days there were one hundred and twenty-two deaths from cholera, and fifty-seven from other causes. Ninetyfive of these victims were strangers. Seven per cent of the population died in a month. The oldest and best citizens, as well as those comparatively unknown, were numbered among the dead. Business was hardly thought of. The air appeared unusually oppressive, and to purify it large kettles of pitch were burned at night in front of various houses, and at intervals along the streets; the burial rite was shortened; and persons were not allowed to enter or leave the city without inspection and due delay. It had been the custom to toll the bell on the occasion of a death, but the tolling became so frequent that it increased the panic, and was therefore discontinued. Mayor Trowbridge was especially active. Day after day he visited the hospital, and in many ways cared for the sick, most honorably fulfilling his duties as the chief magistrate of the city in its time of greatest need. A nurse corps was organized, and among those who gave special and personal attention to the patients were Drs. Whiting, Rice, and Chapin, Peter Desnoyers, Z. Chandler, John Farmer, and W. N. Carpenter. Some of the patients were saved by the care of volunteer attendants after they had been given up by the regular physicians. In the case of one man thus given over, Mr. Farmer asked if he might give the man some " No. 6." The answer was " Yes; give him arsenic if you want to,"-meaning that the man's case was hopeless, Some "No. 6" was administered; the man's pulse returned, he got better, and in three days was up and at his work. Tall, strong, brave Father Martin Kundig outshone and outdid all others by his tireless devotion to the sick and the dying. Soon after the cholera made its appearance, Father Kundig bought the old Presbyterian Church, which had just been moved to the northwest corner of Bates Street and Michigan Grand Avenue, and divided it into two apartments, for male and female patients respectively. Out of four rows of pews, every second one was removed, and his hospital was ready. A one-horse ambulance was then prepared, and morning after morning, night after night, he went here and there, gathering in the sick and taking them to the refuge which combined sanctuary and hospital. He was so much of the time among the patients that he was avoided on the streets lest he should spread the contagion. Dying patients, as they passed away, committed their children to his care, and the trust was faithfully administered. The Legislature, on March I8, 1837, voted him $3,000 in acknowledgment of his services; but, as is shown elsewhere, he was never fully reimbursed for the expenses he incurred. Father Kundig was ably seconded by the Catholic Female Association and by the Sisters of St. Claire. Mr. Alpheus White also rendered efficient aid, not only neglecting his business himself, but giving also the time of his employees. In June, I849, the reappearance of the cholera was feared, and the following notice appeared in the daily papers: THE PUBLIC SCHOOLS. Friday, the 22d inst. having been appointed by his Honor, the Mayor, as a day of prayer, fasting, and thanksgiving in view of an impending and terrible yet withheld epidemic, the Public Schools of the city will therefore be dismissed for that day. LEVI BISHOP, Chairmnan Con mittee on Schools. At this time the citizens turned out in force to clean up the city and to see that all nuisances were abated. The Common Council, at the suggestion of the Board of Health, passed an ordinance forbidding the sale of fresh fish, oysters, fruits, vegetables, veal, or pork. On July 9 the first death took place. July I6 there were three deaths. July 18 there were four, and on the I9th there were ten cases of cholera. On the 23d three died, and on the 25th seven deaths were reported. The mortality continued to increase, the aggregate of interments for 50 DISEASES.-DOCTORS.-MEDICAL SOCIETIES. the month being seven hundred and eighty-one. The average of deaths from cholera was twelve per day, and on several days the number of deaths ranged from thirty-five to forty. From the 1st to the 20th of August the number of deaths was two hundred and eighty. The scourge, at this time, was a national one, and by proclamation of President Taylor the first Friday in August was observed as a day of fasting and prayer. Soon after this the mortality decreased, and on August 22 a Committee of the Council, appointed to make a daily report, was discharged, and the ordinance prohibiting the sale of certain fruits, meats and vegetables was rescinded. On August 25 the disease again broke out, raged with virulence until the early part of September, and then gradually subsided. Its last victim died on September 12. In I854 the pestilence again visited the city, and the papers made daily appeals to citizens to " sprinkle lime." It made its appearance in the latter part of May. In June the number of deaths averaged two or three per day. In July the number of deaths from all causes was two hundred and fifty-nine, a majority being reported as from cholera. During August the scourge disappeared. DOCTORS. "Medicine men" are no modern innovation. The red men of the forest used long words and mysterious decoctions long before the French chirurgeons came. The Wa-be-no, a secret society of Indian prophets, or medicine men, once held its annual meeting near Springwells, and their mystic incantations and incomprehensible compounds formed a fitting prelude to the cabalistic signs and abbreviated Latin of their regular and irregular successors. The old records of St. Anne's Church contain the names, not only of the cures, but of the healers as well, and as early as May 9, I710, the name of M. Henry Bellisle, Chirurgeon, was inscribed therein. The names of others appear, on the following dates: November 26, 1715, M. Jean Baptiste Forester; January 20, 1720, M. Pierre Jean Chapoton, Jr. February 8, 1755, the name of Gabriel Christopher Legrand, "Surgeon-Major of the Troops," appears. The records also show that, as a titled surgeon, he outranked any of his predecessors or successors. He was the " son of Gabriel Louis Legrand, Esq., Sieur de Sintre, Viscount de Mortoim, Chevalier of the Royal and Military Order of St. Louis, and of Henriette Catharine de Cremay." A return of January 12, I761, by George Croghan, of persons employed by the Government at Detroit, contains the name of " Doctor Antoney," at " five shillings per day." This is undoubtedly meant for the name of Dr. George C. Anthon. He came to Detroit on November 29, 1760, with Major Rogers, and was the sole medical officer of the post. The troops of the army and navy, the inhabitants, and the Indians, all alike in turn were patients of this gifted physician. He resigned on August 4, 1786. In 1780 the name of Dr. William Menzies appears. The earlier physicians carried medicines and little scales, weighing out their prescriptions at the houses of their patients, and their long cues, powdered hair, and ruffled shirt-fronts enforced the respect which their profession commanded. In his relation to their personal well-being, the doctor often comes to be esteemed and reverenced among men as much as the pastor. His touch and his tread become known and loved, and his questions and his quassia even are longed for. The names of some of the physicians of the past are "as ointment poured forth," and their memory lingers like the perfume of cedars; strength and grace were theirs. Among the, most widely known of the physicians of former days were the following: William McCoskry, William Brown. Stephen C. Henry, J. L. Whiting, Marshall Chapin, Douglas Houghton, E. Hurd, Zina Pitcher, A. L. Porter, R. S. Rice, Shelomith S. Hall, A. R Terry, George B. Russel, Abraham Sagar, J. B. Scovel, L. F. Starkey. Robert McMillan, T. B. Clark, E. A. Theller, H. P. Cobb, L. H. Cobb, E. G. Desnoyers, Francis Breckenridge, Justin Rice, Linus Mott. J. H. Bagg, E. W. Cowles, Pliny Power, Moses Gunn, J. C. Gorton, E. Batwell, C. S. Tripler, C. N. Ege, Ira M. Allen, J. M. Alden, Richard Inglis, E. H. Drake. George Bigelow, E. M. Clark, A. L. Leland, J. J. Oakley, Isaac S. Smith, N. D. Stebbins, S. B. Thayer, S. M. Axford, Rufus Brown, D. Day, E. Kane, A. B. Palmer, L. C. Rose, M. P. Stewart, S. G. Armor, A. S. Heaton, and D. O. Farrand. The physicians now resident in Detroit are located conveniently all over the city. Many of them are established on and near Lafayette Avenue, and those desiring treatment by any of the popular "pathies" of the day can be accommodated. The Medical College graduates a large number of students every year, several excellent hospitals afford exceptional clinical advantages, and a number of valuable medical journals are published in the city. MEDICAL SOCIETIES. While the doctors have often been enabled to keep their patients alive, their own societies have over and again died for want of care and because of improper treatment. It is evidently easier to compound drugs than to harmonize the views of members of the profession, and a diagnosis of some " Society" cases would perhaps reveal symptoms of mental poisoning. The first society was authorized by an Act of the MEDICAL SOCIETIES. 5I I ---- LL-L3)~~~~~~~~~~~~ --- — Legislative Council of June 14, 1819. Under this Act the physicians and surgeons of the Territory were authorized to meet in Detroit on July 3, I819, to form a medical society. The Act also provided for the formation of county societies, who were authorized to examine persons seeking to practice, and to grant diplomas. A fee of $Io was to be paid for each diploma, and without such diploma no one might practice. Disaster of some kind soon terminated the existence of these organizations. In 1839 the Michigan Medical Society was in existence, with I). O. Hoyt as president and E. W. Cowles as secretary. A few years later the Sydenham Medical Society was organized. It ceased in 1848. The Wayne County Medical Society was organized in May, I866, and lived for ten years. It was then disbanded, and on August 17, 1876, a new society by the same name was organized. William Brodie, president, and W. H. Rouse,, secretary, have served from its organization, except for 1884 and 1885. when C. C, Yemans was President. A Wayne County Homoeopathic Institute was organized July 3, 1868, and continued in existence for ten years. It was succeeded, in 1878, by the Homceopathic College of Physicians and Surgeons, organized October 21, 1878, and incorporated on January 20, 1879. The presidents and recorders of this institute have been as follows: Presidents,1878-1881, F. X. Spranger; i88I, C. C. Miller; 1882, R. C. Olin; 1883, J. McGuire; I884-1887, Phil. Porter; I887, E. P. Gaylord. Recorders,1878-1883, J. G. Gilchrist; 1883-, J. M. Griffin. Since April, 1880, it has maintained a Free Dispensary, which is a continuation of a Free Homceopathic Dispensary organized by a number of ladies in 1876. The Detroit Academy of Medicine was organized on September 18, I869, at the office of Richard Inglis. The officers have been as follows: Presi. dents, —T869, Richard Inglis; 1870, E. W. Jenks; I87I, H. F. Lyster; 1872, James F. Noyes; I873, Henry A. Cleland; 1874, E. L. Shurly; 1875, C. B. Gilbert; 1876, George P. Andrews; 1877, Leartus Connor; 1878, A. B. Lyons; I879 and I880, Theodore A. McGraw; 188I, I-. 0. Walker; 1882 -1884, Judson Bradley; 1884, W. H. Long; I885, J. E. Emerson; 1886-, W. H. Long. Secretaries, — 869, W. H. Lathrop; 870, A. B. Lyons; 187, L. Connor; 1872, A. B. Lyons; 1873, Frank Livermore; 1874, A. B. Lyons; 1875, H. O. Walker; I876 and I877, James D. Munson; 1878, E. A. Chapoton; 1879 and I880, J. W. Robertson; I88I, A. E. Carrier; I882, Morse Stewart, Jr.; 1883 -A. B. Lyons. The Detroit Medical and Library Association was organized October 4, I876, and incorporated March 12, 1877. The officers have been as follows: Presidents,-I877, J. A. Brown; 1878, A. S. Heaton; 1879, E. L. Shurly; I88o, H. A. Cleland; i88i, T. A. McGraw; 1882, N. W. Webber; 1883-1885. R. A. Jamieson; I885, D. Inglis; I886, C. J. Lundy; 1887, H. O. Walker. Secretaries,-I877 and 1878, T F. Kerr; 1879, F. D. Porter; 1880-1885, Willard Chaney; I885-1887, Geo. Duffield; 1887, F. W. Mann. CHAPTER XI. CEMETERIES.-BURIALS AND SEXTONS. - COUNTY CORONERS. CEMETERI ES. THE cemeteries of the past and the present are naturally divided into eight classes, viz.: The old Indian burial places, the Military, Catholic, Protestant, City, Jewish, and Lutheran grounds, and the cemeteries of private corporations. Indian Burial Places. "They have put the sand over him" was the common Indian expression when telling of the death of one of the tribe. One of the places where the Indian dead were buried was the Navarre Farm, more lately known as the Brevoort Farm. Both the village and the burial place of the Potowatamies were there, and the tribe deeded the entire farm to Robert Navarre on May 26, 177I. The deed said, " We give him this land forever that he may cultivate the same, light a fire thereon, and take care of our dead; and for surety of our word we have made our marks, supported by two branches of wampum." At various times since the deed was made the march of improvement and the shovel of the Milesian have seriously disturbed the remains of the dusky forms there buried. In 1867, while Woodbridge Street was being graded, twentyfive or thirty skeletons were exhumed. There were also found several pipe-bowls, together with tomahawks and flints in great number. Other remains have been found within the last few years. Military Burying Grounds. As early as 1763, and probably much earlier, the ground immediately in the rear of the present First National Bank was used as a military burial-place. After the battle of Bloody Bridge, or Bloody Run, the remains of Captain Dalyell,l and other officers who perished in that fearful massacre, were buried there. In 1847, while workmen were excavating for a building near the northeast corner of Griswold and Woodbridge Streets, skeletons and portions of old tombstones were found; and one stone was broken up and put in the cellar-wall. It is a sad commentary on the spirit of the age that there is scarce a grave or gravestone left, or even a record of the present place of burial of those who died at 1 Often written Dalzell. Detroit a century ago. All, all, have disappeared! The tombstone of Hamtramck alone remains as a memorial stone for the thousands who passed away before him. In 18I3, and later, a portion of the grounds belonging to Fort Shelby, and even the glacis itself, were used as burial places. Seven hundred soldiers were buried west of the fort in the winter of 1813 -I8I4. On October 31, 1817, Lieutenant John Brooks was buried on the grounds of the fort. There was a long funeral procession, and the services were conducted by Rev. Mr. Lamed. After the granting of the Military Reserve to the city, the street commissioner, on August 27, 1827, was directed to re-inter, in the new cemetery, the bones of soldiers which were exposed by grading about the fort; and a large number were removed. The ground was located between Michigan and Lafayette Avenues, and occupied a part of both blocks between Wayne and First Streets. In 1855, when Cass Street was being paved, many coffins were dug up, and excavations for cellars in that locality have frequently unearthed other old graves. In I869 twenty-five bodies were dug up on Cass Street, and in 1881, while preparing foundations for a new block on the corner of Michigan Avenue and Cass Street, the remains of several bodies were revealed. The little enclosure shown at the left in the picture of Detroit in I796 is believed to have been a graveyard, and from a comparison of maps and plans it seems probable that the bones alluded to in the Detroit Journal of December 9, I829, were from this little military burial-place. The Journal says: The workmen employed by Major Schwartz in removing earth from premises adjoining the Mansion House in this city discovered a tombstone inscribed to Ensign John Gage of 3Ist Regiment of Foot. Masonic emblems are engraved on it. The date is 1778. What was done with the stone is now unknown. Catholic Cemeteries. The location of the earliest known burial-place is shown on the maps of I749 and 1796. The records of St. Anne's Church state that on June 25, 1755, certain bodies were transferred from the old cemetery to the new one. This new cemetery was inside of the stockade, and covered a portion of the grounds of St. Anne's Church, then located on what is now Jefferson Avenue, between Griswold and Shelby [52] CEMETERIES. 53 Streets. The records of St. Anne's Church give the names of a number of priests, commandants, and other persons of distinction who, at various periods, were buried even within the church walls. The stockade was enlarged just before the removal in 1755, and this seems to have been deemed a fitting time to bring certain remains into ground nearer the church. It is well known that many persons were buried about the old church, and there are living witnesses who, as late as 1818, saw graves occupying a portion of what is now Jefferson Avenue; and from time to time since then, as excavations have been made for sewers and cellars in the vicinity, remains have been uncovered. When the new town was laid out in I806, the question of allowing the old graveyards to remain gave rise to much hard feeling, and for nearly a dozen years there was a quadrangular struggle between two parties in the church, Father Richard, the priest, and the Governor and Judges, as to the vacating of the grounds. The question was not settled until the arrival of Bishop Flaget, in I818. The following transcript from St. Anrie's records gives the date of removal of certain remains from the old grounds: 1817, the first day of May and the fifth of the same month, we, undersigned priest rector of St. Anne's, have made disinterment of a certain quantity of bones from the middle of the main street, where were formerly the old burying grounds and old Church of St. Anne. We buried these remains, with all the required ceremonies, in a square grave, in the middle of the new burying ground; this in presence of the undersigned, Etienne Dubois, and a great number of people. (Signed) ETIENNE Dunois, GABRIEL RICHARD. It was as a quid pro quo for these grounds that St. Anne's Church received the large tract on Lamed Street, east of Bates Street. An old memorial, dated April 22, 1807, addressed to the Governor and Judges, says: About the year 1796 or '97 it was deemed expedient for the benefit and health of the inhabitants of the ancient town of Detroit (considering the great length of time that the small space of ground adjacent to the church has been used as a public place of interment) that a new burial-ground should be allotted to our congregation on the then public commons. Accordingly the ground which we now hold was picketed in, with the approbation of the corporation of Detroit, and the consent of Colonel Hamtramck, the military commandant of this place, under whose jurisdiction the commons was then in some measure considered. The statements of the memorial are confirmed by a letter from Peter Audrain to Governor St. Clair, dated November I, 1798, on file at Columbus, Ohio. It says: I think it my duty to inform your Excellency that the commandant of this post has granted an acre of ground on the commons joining the town, to be used as a burying ground by the Roman Catholics. This grant answers a very good purpose, as the old burying ground joining their church and within the pickets is so full that it is a real public nuisance, and has been presented as such by several grand juries. The grounds on Lamed Street, thus obtained, continued to be used up to 1827, when the city gave the Catholics the use of one half of the then new City Cemetery on the Beaubien Farm. Aount Elliott Cemetery. This is located on the Leib Farm, and is bounded by Waterloo Street on the north, Macomb Street on the south, Mount Elliott Avenue on the east, and Ellmwood Cemetery on the west. In 1882 it contained sixty-five acres. The first purchase of eleven acres was made on August 31, I841. The cemetery is named after Robert T. Elliott, one of the original projectors and purchasers. His own interment, the first in the grounds, took place on SeptemberI2, 1841. From: that day to January, I884,.. -...- the aggregate of interments reached about 25,765, not including the remains of I,490 graves D o~ 5 ~removed from the old City Cemetery on the Beaubien -- " Farm in the fall of i869. The ground is laid out Y. i ~S _q ~ into about 6,ooo lots, of which upwards of 4,000 have been sold at prices ranging from $25 to $300. Single graves are sold at a fixed price and the poor are buried free. The cost ~x -: --... of the several purchases of land up to i884 amounted v. to $45, 90, and nearly an ENTRANCE TO MT. ELLIOTT CEMETERI 54 CEMETERIES..~ ~ ~~ ~ ~~ ~ ~~ ~ ~~ ~ ~~ ~~~ ~~~ ~~~ ~~~ ~~~ ~ ~.. equal amount has been expended for improvements. The cemetery was opened in September, 1841, and was consecrated the same year by Bishop Lefevere. A second lot of ground was consecrated by the same prelate on December 7, 1865, and a later purchase by Bishop Borgess on October 16, 1881. A stone gateway was completed in September, 1882, at a cost of $6,000. The cemetery was originally under the direct care of the bishop of the diocese. On November 5, 1865, it was incorporated, and placed in the care of twelve trustees, two each being elected from the parishes of SS. Peter and Paul, St. Anne's, St. Mary's, Holy Trinity, St. Joseph's, and St. Patrick's. Since October I, 1884, the cemetery has been managed by nine trustees, representing the different nationalities of the several Roman Catholic parishes of Detroit. The Board of Trustees in 1887 was as follows: Richard R. Elliott, Henry D. Barnard, Alexander E. Viger, Joseph B. Moore, Francis Petz, Joseph Schulte, Jeremiah Calnon, John Monaghan, A. Petz, John Heffron, C. J. O'Flynn. When the ground was first opened it was placed in charge of P. Burns, who in 1872 was succeeded by John Reid. One of the chief points of interest is the grave and tombstone of Colonel John Francis Hamtramck, the first American commandant at Detroit. He was originally buried in the graveyard of St. Anne's, but in July, I866, under the superintendence of R. R. Elliott, the remains were removed, placed in an oaken casket, and deposited in Mount Elliott. The grave is located at the intersection of Shawe and Resurrection Avenues. The inscription on the stone is as follows: Sacred to the Memory of John Francis Hamtramck, Esq., Colonel of the ist United States Regiment of Infantry and Commandant of Detroit and its Dependencies. He departed this life on the Iith of April, 1803, Aged 45 years, 7 months & 28 days. True Patriotism, And a zealous attachment to National liberty, Joined to a laudable ambition led him into Military service at an early period of his life. He was a soldier even before he was a man. He was an active participator in all the Dangers, Difficulties and honors of the Revolutionary War; And his heroism and uniform good conduct procured him the attention and personal thanks of the immortal Washington. The United States in him have lost A valuable officer and a good citizen, And Society an Useful and Pleasant Member; to his family the loss is incalculable, and his friends will never forget the Memory of Hamtramck. This humble monument is placed over his Remains by the officers who had the Honor to serve under his commandA small but grateful tribute to his merit and his worth. MAP OF MT. ELLIOTT CEMETERY. CEMETERIES. 55 Protestant Cemeteries. The earliest record concerning a Protestant cemetery is contained in the proceedings of the Board of Trustees for October 3, I803. It says, "It is well known that the Protestant burying ground is in very bad order, and Charles Curry is requested to open a subscription for that object." The ground referred to covered a portion of what is now Woodward Avenue, between Lamed and Congress Streets, and was probably a part of the same grounds shown in the maps of I749 and 1796. In I818 it was known as the English burying ground, and meetings of citizens were held on July I8 and 25, to consider the necessity of enclosing the grounds; and on being petitioned to do so, the trustees resolved to enclose them, by tax if necessary. On July 26, I819, a portion of this burying ground was granted by the Governor and Judges to the First Protestant Society. It was used for burials up to June, 1827, and then the city passed an ordinance forbidding its further use for such purposes. The remains of persons buried in the grounds were removed at various times as necessity demanded. A notice from the trustees, requesting the removal of the remains by friends, was published as late as February 5, I851. City Cemeteries. The establishment of the first City Cemetery grew out of a meeting of citizens held on December 16, 1826, when a committee was appointed to report upon a site for burial purposes outside of the city. The Common Council then took action, and a committee was appointed to procure suitable grounds. On March 22, 1827, they reported that they had purchased of Antoine Beaubien two and one half acres for a burial ground, for which they paid $500. At the same meeting the mayor submitted a resolution for the payment of the $500 which had been borrowed from the Bank of Michigan. The purchase was fully consummated on June I, 1827, and on June 19 the council appointed a committee, consisting of Recorder E. P. Hastings and Alderman P. J. Desnoyers, to divide the grounds into two equal parts, and these parts were thereafter designated respectively as the Catholic and the Protestant Cemetery. The lots had been laid out previous to this division, and when the dividing fence was erected it ran directly across many of the lots. This fact, however, proved of great practical convenience, for many families, who had both Protestant and Catholic relatives, bought these lots lying along the line of the fence, and buried their Catholic friends on one side and their Protestant relatives on the other; thus the sanctity of the ground was preserved, while in the same lot, and yet in two different cemeteries, those of opposite faiths reposed in peace. On Sundays this place was a favorite resort. Being within easy walking distance, scores and hundreds of children and grown people, on pleasant Sabbaths, wandered about the grounds, reading and comparing the tombstone inscriptions. The first lots in the Protestant portion of the cemetery were sold at auction on March 26, 1828, and the money received was used for improvements. The grounds lay between (ratiot and Clinton Streets, and extended a little east of St. Antoine Street, bounded on the west by what is now known as Paton Street. This last street was then called Cemetery Lane, and extended from the Gratiot Road to Jefferson Avenue. In 1836 a gate was erected at the entrance on Jefferson Avenue, midway between Beaubien and St. Antoine Streets. The lane was laid out in 1827, partially enclosed in 1836, and fully enclosed in I843. In June, 1845, a petition was circulated to have it opened, but it was decided that the city had no rights therein. After 1855 no interments were allowed to be made in the cemetery, and in February, I859, Mullett Street was opened through the grounds. A large portion is now designated as Clinton Park. The second City Cemetery dates from May 31, 1834. The mayor on that day bought at auction, for $2,010, fifty-five acres of the Guoin Farm, just north of the Gratiot Road, and now bounded on the west by Russell Street. The tract was deemed too large for a cemetery, and thirty-five acres were divided into lots and sold. A plan of the grounds was adopted on September 30, 1835, and the price of lots was fixed at $IO for full, and $5 for half lots. Originally the city sexton had charge of the grounds and sold the lots. From 1841 to 1863 sales were made by the city clerk, and after 1863 the comptroller was charged with the care of the plan and the sale of lots. On April 20, 1869, it was ordered that no more bodies be buried in the grounds, and on May I4, 1879, an order of the Circuit Court was issued vacating the cemetery. This gave the city full control over it for other purposes, and since then the work of removing the graves has gone rapidly forward. One thousand four hundred and ninety-three bodies were removed in i880, at a cost of $2,019, and buried at Grosse Point, a portion of the hospital grounds having been set apart for the purpose; in 1881 one thousand six hundred and sixty-eight additional bodies were removed, and during 1882 the work was completed by the removal of the remains of one thousand three hundred and fifty-seven bodies. The House of Correction and one of the Hay and Wood Markets occupy a portion of the ground; and, as opportunity offers, the city is perfecting its title to the entire cemetery by buying up the rights of lot-owners. 56 CEMETERIES. - Elmnwood Cemetery. This beautiful cemetery lies in the eastern part of the city. The ground is of a light, porous nature, and from its natural conformation admirably adapted for the purpose. Parent's Creek, or Bloody Run, winds gracefully through the grounds and adds much to the attraction of the place. The money to purchase the first forty-one acres was obtained by $Ioo each. On January I, I884, there were about 3,500 lot-owners, and 55 lots were still unsold. The total number of interments at that date was 21,421. The first trustees were A. I). Fraser, president; John Owen, treasurer; Henry Ledyard, secretary; C. C. Trowbridge, Israel Coe, and J. S. Jenness. On August 9, 1854, C. I. Walker took the place of Israel Coe, removed to New York. On July I6, I86I, D. B. Duffield was elected in place of H. Ledyard, and C. I. Walker became secretary. On June 14, 1862, Caleb Van Husan became a trustee in place of J. S. Jenness, removed from the city. On April 4, i868, Mr. Walker resigned, and William A. Butler was then elected a trustee and D. B. Duffield chosen secretary. On January 22, 1878, R. P. Toms succeeded A. D. Fraser as a trustee, and in 1883, after the death of C. C. Trowbridge, his place was filled by the appointment of A. H. Dey. On September 5, 1884, Wm. A. Moore and J. HuffJones were elected trustees in place of Caleb Van Husan and Robert P. Toms, deceased. From the time the cemetery was opened until May 2, 1870, at which date the office was discontinued, Robert Bell acted as collector and agent of the trustees. The superintendents have been as follows. Wim. Hudson to April, 1855; Thomas Matthews to April, 1856; and D Gladewitz to August 5, 1868, William R. Hamilton was appointed September 3, 1868, and his successor, George H. Harris, on March i, 1875. Mr. Harris resigned February 9, I876, and on April 12 1876, A. W. Blain was appointed. IW}oodmlere Celletery. This cemetery lies in the town of Springwells, four and one half miles froIn the City Hall, and occupies part of the Ship Yard Tract. It is bounded west ENTRANCE TO EI.,MWOO) CKMETERY. subscription. The land cost $i,858, and was contracted for in the spring of I846. On October 8, following, the cemetery was opened, and the next day, at an auction sale, the subscribers had their choice of the lots. Those of the subscribers who did not want lots, had their subscriptions refunded. The association was incorporated by special Act on March 5, 1849, and under the Act all moneys received from sale of lots, over and above the cost of the grounds, must be devoted to their improvement. The deed for the first purchase was dated July 10, i850. The date and cost of subsequent purchases are as follows: August 26, I851, IT.89 acres, $1,200; December 6, 185i, Lots 21 and 22 of Hunt Farm, $600; January 24, 1852, 2.22 acres. $200; September 12, 1864, five acres of D. C. Whitwood, $3,500; May 12, I871, I i acres, $i6,ooo. By the opening of German Street three and one third acres were left outside the enclosure, leaving seventy-eight acres in the grounds. In 1852 a tasteful and substantial monument was erected on the grounds designated as the Strangers' Lot. The Chapel was built in I855, and cost $4,000. It is a Norman Gothic structure of quarried limestone, about thirty-four feet long by twenty wide. The stone gateway, fronting Elmwood Avenue, at the head of Croghan Street, was completed in 1870, and cost $6,ooo. The size of lots varies from 15 x 20 to 20x30; the prices in I850 were from $15 to ENTRANCE TO WOODMERE CEMETERY. by Baby Creek, a wide bayou, which extends within the grounds; on the south the grounds are bounded by Fort Street, and on the east by the Dix Cross CEMETERIES. -BURIALS AND SEXTONS. 57 Road. Woodmere Station, on the L. S. and C. S. Railroads, is located within easy walking distance of the entrance. It is a coincidence worthy of passing notice that a locality known as World's End, on the river Rouge, is quite near the grounds. The name of the cemetery is a compound of "wood" and "mere," and is suggestive of its woods and waters. The grounds embrace two hundred and two acres, are exempt from taxation, well adapted for burial purposes, and capable of being made very attractive. The association was organized July 8, 1867, and reorganized February 19, 1869, and in the fall of this last year the first interments were made. On April 6, 1868, the board authorized the construction of the entrance, and in I869 it was built. On May Io, 1869, the following persons were chosen directors: John J. Bagley, E. WV. Hudson, C. I. Walker, M. S. Smith, M. W. Field, Bela I lubbard, 1). M. Richardson. G. W. Lloyd, I)aniel Scotten, IE. A. Elliott, William Phelps, Amos C. Hubbard, and George Kirby. At a subsequent meeting the following officers were elected: John J. Bagley, president; E. W. Hudson, vice-president; C. I. Walker, secretary; M. S. Smith, treasurer; Moses W. Field and Bela Hubbard, Executive Committee. The officers in 1883 were R. W. Gillett, president; E. Y. Swift, vice-president; M. S. Smith, treasurer; C. I. Walker, secretary; with the following persons as additional directors: G. W. Latimer, E. Y. Swift, M. W. Field, Philo Parsons, B. Hubbard, J. Greusel, S. J. Murphy, R. W. Allen, and George Kirby. The cemetery was formally dedicated July I4, 1869, when an address was delivered by C. I. Walker. The number of lot-owners up to 1884 was 1,487, and there were about 17,oo0 lots still for sale. The number of interments, exclusive of the 2,000 removed from the old City Cemetery, was 6,541. In November, I868, the city contracted for about five acres, at ten cents a square foot, to be used for the burial of the city poor. The ordinary price for lots is from twenty-five to fifty cents a square foot. The general rules of the cemetery are as follows: All erections known as head and foot boards are prohibited. All family burial lots and all single graves are sodded and kept in good order by the corporation without charge. Hedges, wooden trellises, and posts and chains are not allowed for the purpose of enclosure. No corpse is allowed to remain in the public vault over one week, unless permission is obtained in writing from the president or secretary. F. W. Higgins is superintendent; office at the cemetery. Jewish Cemeteries. The Reform Congregation Beth El Temple, on Washington Avenue, opened a cemetery adjoining Elmwood about I850. It was formally recognized as a cemetery by the council on July 16, I86I, but no regular record of interments was kept till about I870. It is now used only by those who own lots there; no new lots are sold. On April 5, 1873, the congregation contracted with the officers of Woodmere for the sole control of about three acres in Section F north. In 1864 the congregation of Shaary Zedec purchased one and one half acres for cemetery purposes near the I). & M. R. R. Junction, for $450. In 1882 half an acre was used by the congregation of Beth Israel, one fourth of an acre by the Detroit Lodge Kesher Shel Basal, and three fourths of an acre by the original purchasers. Lztheran Cemetery. This cemetery, containing ten acres, is located about three miles from the City Hall, on the lefthand side of the Gratiot Road, on the Meldrum Farm. It was purchased January 1 I, I868, at a cost of $2,600. It is controlled by the congregation of the Trinity Lutheran Church on the corner of Gratiot Avenue and Prospect Street. The price of lots is $30. The officers in 1883 were, H. A. Christiansen, secretary, and C. H. Beyer, treasurer, with Christian Schroeder as superintendent. BURIALS AND SEXTONS. The use of hearses in Detroit dates from about 1830. Prior to their introduction, coffins were carried to the grave upon biers or bars, borne sometimes upon the shoulders, and often carried by hand. At the funeral of a person of wealth, the bearers were provided with long white linen scarfs. These scarfs were tied with linen cambric, which, according to custom, was used for the bosoms of the shirts which the bearers were expected to have made from the scarfs. Formerly there was great carelessness in the keeping of the records by cemetery officials and sextons. At the present time permits for burials must be obtained from the health officer, and are issued only upon evidence within his knowledge as such officer, or upon the certificate of a reputable physician, or a coroner. A city sexton was appointed as early as 1827, but the office was not definitely created until March 17, I829. It was the duty of the sexton to superintend interments in the Protestant ground, and he was paid by the amounts received for his services, which were prescribed by ordinance. It was possibly at this time that The doctor told the sexton, And the sexton tolled the bell, as an ordinance allowed the latter fifty cents for "tolling." On September 18, I829, the council was petitioned to prevent the further tolling of the bell, 58 BURIALS AND SEXTONS.-COUNTY CORONERS. -- and this part of his duties ceased for a time. In 1841 it was made his duty to report the names of all persons dying in the city, with the cause of death, and the name of the attending physician. More recently it was his duty to file the physician's certificate with the city clerk. He was also charged with the care of the grounds of the City Cemetery. He was appointed by the council on nomination of the mayor. From 1863 he had a salary of $200 per year in addition to the amounts allowed to be charged for the burial of paupers. By ordinance of 1870 the amount allowed was $8 if buried in Elmwood or Mt. Elliott, and $9 if buried in Woodmere. On an order from the Director of the Poor, it was the duty of the sexton to give any person, dying without means, or the body of any pauper or criminal, a burial. By a charter amendment in I879 the office terminated with that year, and the duties were transferred to the Commissioners of the Poor. The following persons served as city sextons: 1827, E. W. Barnes; 1828-1833, Israel Noble; 1833-1835, George Combs; 1835-1841, I. Noble; 1841-1844, C. H. Eckliff; 1844-1847, R. C. Scadin; 1847-1850, James Sutherland; 1850-1852, E. Myers; 1852-1857, F. Deinecke; I857-I859, P. Clessen; I859-I861, A. T. Ray; I86i, Joseph Parkinson; 1862-1864, V. Geist; 1864, Neil Flattery; I865-I868, Thomas Roche; 1868-1871, V. Geist; I871-I874, George Heron; I874-1876, R. Bronson; I876-I878, James Hickey; 1878, V. Geist. COUNTY CORONERS. The office of coroner is as old as the Northwest Territory. Under Michigan Territory, by Act of September 13, 18o5, the territorial marshal was constituted coroner. Act of November 3, I815, provided that coroners should be appointed by the governor. Act of April 21, 1825, provided for their election on the second Tuesday of October for terms of three years. Under Constitution of 1835 the term of office was two years. By law of 1836 two were to be elected instead of one as before, The Constitution of I850 made no provision for the office, and none were elected between 1851 and 1857. The Revised Statutes of I857 revived the office. In any case where death is sudden, and not to be accounted for on natural grounds, the coroner may hold an inquest. The fees are paid by the county auditors and are as follows: For viewing a body, $3; for each mile traveled in going to the place, ten cents; for each subpoena served on witnesses called to aid in determining cause of death, twenty-five cents; for administering oath to witnesses, ten cents. Jurymen serving on coroner's inquests are paid $2 per day. Six persons constitute a jury. The names of the coroners, with their terms of service, are as follows: 1796, Herman Eberts; 1799 and I80o, John Dodemead; I803, Joseph Harrison; 1804, Joseph Wilkinson; November 21, 1815 to 1836, Benjamin Woodworth; 1836, 13. Woodworth, A. S. Schoolcraft; 1837-1840, D. Petty, A. Y. Murray; 1840, A. Y. Murray, David French; 1841 and 1842, James Hanmer, James Gunning; 1843, James Beaubien, John Simons; 1844, W. W. Howland, J. B. Sprague; I845 and 1846, Paschal Mason, Alexander Leadbeter; I847-1850, John H. Hill, H. R. Nowland; I850, C. W. Jackson, Alanson Parsons; 1851 and 1852, D. D. Hustis; E. Lewis; 1857, George Moran, Daniel Murray; 1858-1861, C. W. Tuttle, A. W. Sprague; 1861-1863, E. Lauderdale, C. H. Barrett; 1863-1865, J. W. Daly, Reuben Huston; I865-I867, Timothy McCarthy, J. W. Daly; I867 -1869, P. B. Austin, J. W. Daly; 1869-1873, John Gnau, James Cahill; 1873, A. F. Jennings, J. S. Griffin; 1874, N. B. Rowley, J. S. Griffin; 1875 and 1876, N. B. Rowley, James Cahill; 1877, Peter Oaks, John Wilson; 1878 and 1879, Peter Oaks, Adam Schulte; I880, A. Schulte; I88I, A. E. Carrier, J. D. Richards; 1882, W. Y. Clark, A. E. Carrier; I883 -I885, M. Denne, J. Locke; 1885, J. Locke, R. M. Keefe; 1886-, R. R. Lansing, R. M. Keefe. CHAPTER XII. HEALTH OFFICERS. -DRAINS ANI SEWERS.-SCAVENGERS. HEALTH OFFICERS. THE first mention made of a Board of Health is found in the Council Proceedings of I831. The board was composed of Drs. J. L. Whiting and R. S. Rice; in I832 Drs. Henry and Chapin were added; and on account of the prevalence of cholera, the aldermen also, occasionally, resolved themselves into a Board of Health. In I837 fear of small-pox again led the council to institute a Health Board. Several physicians were appointed to vaccinate the poor, and on April 12 they were requested to organize for that purpose. In I849 the fear of cholera led to the appointment of a Board of Health, consisting of Drs. L. H. Cobb, R. S. Rice, and Z. Pitcher. A board was also provided for by ordirnances of I86I and 1870. It consisted of the senior alderman of each ward and four physicians, appointed by the council, two of whom were required to be city physicians. The president of the Board of Police Commissioners, by virtue of his office, was a member of the board. Five members constituted a quorum; the city clerk kept the records. No regular meetings were held, but members were called together whenever it was deemed desirable. They were paid $I.50 for each session attended. The board had power to do all things needful for the health of the city, but matters involving special expenditures required the approval of the council. The ordinance of I86I was not fully carried out until 1864, and the first appointments of physicians as members of the board were made that year. The physicians, other than city physicians, appointed under the ordinance were as follows: 1864, J. C. Gorton, C. H. Barrett; i865, Z. Pitcher, C. Brumme; I866-I87I, Z. Pitcher, William Brodie; I871, D. O. Farrand, H. E. Smith; 1872, W. A. Chandler, E. H. Drake; 1873, E. H. Drake, H. F. Lyster; I874, C. C. Yemans, A. Borrowman; I875, G. A. Foster, J. H. Carstens; I876, T. F. Kerr, J. H. Carstens,; I877, E. Leach, A. F. Hoke; 1878, H. A. Torrey, E. Leach; I879, G. A. Foster, E. Leach, P. P. Gilmartin, and Duncan McLeod; I880, D. O. Farrand, Morse Stewart, and John Flinterman. An entirely new organization was provided by the law of May 26, 1881. Under this law three practicing physicians are appointed by the council on nomination of the mayor; the first appointees were to serve for one, two, and three years each, and then beginning with 1882, one was to be appointed yearly on the third Tuesday of June, for a term of three years. These physicians, with the mayor, comptroller, and president of the Police Board, constitute the Board of Health. The medical members of the board have been as follows: 1881-1883, D. O. Farrand, J. Flinterman, Morse Stewart; I883 -I886, T. A. McGraw, J. Flinterman, Morse Stewart; 1886, Peter Klein, Morse Stewart, T. A. McGra\\; I887-, W. Brodie, Peter Kline, Geo. P. Andrews. In I88i the board appointed O. W. Wight as the health officer, at a salary of $3,000 per year. Under his supervision the Health Department ob tained an efficiency never before possessed. He was succeeded in 1887 by S. P. Duffield. All burial permits are issued from this office, and full statements of the age of the deceased, cause of death, name of attending physician, and place of burial are required to be filed with the officer. Monthly statements of these and other facts pertaining to the health of the city are regularly printed and issued. The Health Officer has the aid of the sanitary squad of the Police Department, and placards all houses where infectious diseases exist, using for cases of small-pox notices printed on yellow cards, for scarlet fever, red cards, and for diphtheria, blue cards. An oversight is kept of such premises as are placarded, and after the recovery or death of the patient, they are disinfected. The scavengers and meat inspector are required to co-operate with the Board of Health, and legislation is hoped for that, if obtained, will secure pure ice, pure milk, proper ventilation, good plumbing, and freedom from obnoxious sewer-gas and coal-smoke. In October, 1872, thirty-four acres of land in Grosse Pointe, on P. C. 641, were purchased for $6,000 of Fred, Ruehle for a city hospital. but the city made no use of the grounds until 188r. when a hospital twenty-six by seventy-six feet, one story high, was erected at a cost of $3,000. It was designed especially to accommodate small-pox patients. A dwelling on the property was intended as a residence for doctors and nurses. The distance of the rs9] 60 DRAINS AND SEWERS. hospital from the city and the objection made by residents of the township to the use of it for smallpox patients caused the abandonment of the plan, and the property was rented for individual occupancy. During 1885, an arrangement was made with the county to provide a more suitable site, with the understanding that the city would erect an appropriate and commodious building for the care of patients having contagious diseases. Accordingly. on December 3, i885, the county auditors purchased lots 4 and 5, on section 46 of the ten thousand acre tract in Greenfield, containing ten acres, at a cost of $7,000, the fencing, draining, etc., costing $2,426 additional. Upon this property, which is on the west side of Crawford Avenue, about three-fourths of a mile beyond the city limits, the city erected a very complete and picturesque building at a cost, including furnishing, of about $14,000. The building consists of six external octagon rooms or pavilions, each twenty-four feet in diameter, and six external square rooms, each ten feet across. These inclose two octagon rooms of the same size of those outside, with an intervening square room. All are separated from each other by solid wood partitions, but there is intercommunication throughout by means of doors large enough to permit the passage through them of an ordinary hospital bed. The roofs, or more properly the roof, is broken up into separates cones and is built of solid wood two inches thick, covered with tin. All of the hospital rooms are open from the double floor to the roof, and the apex of each room is provided with a ventilating shaft rising four feet above the roof, hooded to prevent the entrance of rain or snow. The bath rooms are in the center square room. The outside walls are five inches thick; the floors are double, and every room is so painted that the furniture can be removed and every part of it, including the ceiling, washed. The building is fireproof. The basement rooms all open into each other, and in the basement are the kitchen, laundry, bath rooms, etc., the ceilings of the rooms being the planed under surface of the floors above. The hospital will accommodate fifty patients without crowding. In one corner of the grounds four hundred and fifty feet from the main building are three small houses, each I6x24 feet, built with the same care as the hospital proper, and furnished with water, sewerage, etc. These are designed for the care of small-pox patients, while the main building will be reserved for those sick with other contagions, except in case an epidemic of small-pox should compel its use. These " huts," like the main building, can be thoroughly disinfected at any time. Under contract with the Sisters of Charity, they have charge of the hospital, furnish all supplies and receive $r2 per week for each patient, the city and county sharing equally in the cost of caring for patients. DRAINS AND SEWERS. An Act of April 24, 1824, gave the council power to provide for the construction of sewers, but the desirability of building them seems to have been for many years an unsettled question. On March 12, 1827, a committee consisting of Lewis Cass, John Biddle, J. Kearsley, D. C. McKinstry, P. J. Desnoy — ers, and John Mullett presented a lengthy report to the council, in which they said: " In regard to common sewers, doubts have been expressed respecting their effect upon the public health, yet we are inclined to think it would be expedient to make an experiment by establishing one in Woodbridge Street." In the light of facts that now exist, such a report signed by such persons seems curious indeed. On May i, I827, it was determined to "make an experiment," and the council adopted the following: Resolved, that the drain or ravine commonly called the River Savoyard, be deepened from the outlet into the Detroit River, through the farm of Governor Cass, to the line of the Military Reservation, with the consent of the proprietor of said farm; and that a drain in continuation thereof be extended through the said reservation in the alley between Congress and Larned Streets to its easterly termination. This plan was carried out, and the timbers from old Fort Shelby were used to form the sides of an open sewer which followed the course of the stream. At that time, even the ditches in the streets were made and owned by private parties; and on June 20, 1828, the council appointed a committee "to confer with the proprietor of the ditch leading along Bates Street to the great sewer, with a view to purchase the same for the use of the city." Old records show that the city expended $1,278, in I828, in digging these open sewers or ditches. These primitive drains offended the eye and outraged the nostrils for several years. But little real progress was made in building drains or sewers until May 20, 1835. A committee of the council then presented an elaborate report on the'subject, and recommended the construction of what is known as the Grand Sewer. This was agreed to, and in December, 1835, the council offered a premium of $0oo for an acceptable plan for draining the city between the Cass and Brush farms. A plan was adopted, and in I836 the first underground sewer was built, at a cost of $22,607. It is still doing excellent service, and deserves its name of " Grand." Its route is from Beaubien Street on Fort to Randolph, through Michigan Grand Avenue to Bates Street, along Bates and Congress to Griswold, diagonally across Griswold to the alley between Congress and Lamed Streets, along the alley to First Street, and down First Street to the river. It DRAINS AND SEWERS.-SCAVENGERS. 61 is constructed of stone, having side walls eighteen inches thick, with a brick arch of two feet spring. The bottom is paved with hard-burned brick. It is four feet six inches wide and five feet high in the clear; the average depth of the excavation is ten feet. In the main it follows the route of the Savoyard. The sewer proved such a success that others followed, and from year to year the number has increased. For many years, however, there was no general system, and contractors were often careless, and ignorant of the first principles of drainage. It s a fact of record that during I849 sewers in the First and Fifth wards, and on Randolph Street, were so constructed that, when nearly complete, it was found the water, instead of taking the direction desired, ran towards the locality sought to be drained. In 1856 the great sewer in Woodward Avenue south of Congress Street was built, and for months afterwards immense banks of earth remained in the street as monuments of the stupidity and mismanagement of contractors and officials. Until 1857 all private sewers were built by individuals, of such materials and in such places as they pleased. The result was that many lots were without drainage, and others with only partial or defective drains. The city charter of 1857 remedied these evils by providing for a board of three sewer commissioners, to be nominated by the mayor and appointed by the council. They served without pay, and were originally appointed for terms of three, four, and five years, and then for five years each. More of system was now introduced; all sewers, public and private, were placed under their control and built by their direction, and no drain could be put in without their approval. Sewers are called public sewers when built by order of the Common Council and paid for by public tax for general drainage purposes. These are almost invariably built in the streets. Lateral sewers are usually built in the alleys, and are paid for by special assessment upon the particular lots benefitted, each lot paying according to the number of square feet it contains. The theory is that every lot is entitled to drainage; and on the petition of even one person, a lateral sewer may be built in order to drain his lot, and the adjoining lots must help to pay the cost. Persons desiring to connect a drain with a lateral sewer are required to pay $I.oo for the privilege of the connection, which is made, without further charge, by the Board of Public Works. By Act of April I3, I871, the city was authorized to issue $300,000 in bonds for the purpose of building sewers, provided the citizens' meeting approved. Under this law, in 1872, $80,ooo were raised by the sale of bonds, and the number of public sewers was largely increased. In 1874, on the creation of the Board of Public Works, the powers of the sewer commissioners were transferred to that body. By Act of February i8, 1875, the council was again authorized to issue $300,000 in bonds for sewer purposes; and under the two laws of 1871 and 1875 bonds for building public sewers, to the amount of $397,500, were issued. Both public and lateral sewers are built of brick; the connections from houses are generally of sewer pipe, although wood is sometimes used. The main sewers vary in size from 21 x 28 inches to 6 x 8 feet, and are from twenty to forty feet below the surface. Lateral sewers are generally of egg shape, and 15 x 20 inches. The public sewer in Griswold Street, from Congress Street to the river, was built in I877, by tunneling under the street instead of excavating from the surface, and was the first sewer so built in the city. The method proved advantageous, as travel on the street was not materially interfered with, and it has since been generally adopted. The total length of public sewers built from 1835 to 1887, is 95 miles, and the cost $2,366,329. The length of lateral sewers built since r855 is 138 miles, and they have cost $684,ooo. The superintendents of sewers were, 1852, C. Jackson; 1853, Stephen Martin; 1854, J. M. Davis, Matthew Oliver; I855, H. C. Moors; I856, Isaac Finehart. The members of the Board of Sewer Commissioners were as follows: I857, C. Hurlbut, A. Chapoton, James Shearer; 1858, J. Houghton, C. W. Jackson, A. Chapoton; 1859, C. Hurlbut, W. Barclay, T. H. Hinchman; 186o-1863, W. Barclay, A. Sheley, T. H. Hinchman; 1863-1866, W. Barclay, A. Sheley, A. Chapoton; i866, A. E. Bissell, A. S. Bagg, W. Barclay; 1867-1871, A. E. Bissell, William Barclay, A. Sheley; 1871, W. H. Coots, Williamn Barclay, A. E. Bissell; I872-I874, A. E. Bissell, Harvey King, W. H. Coots. The following persons served as engineers of sewers: 1859-1862, E. W. Smith; I862-I874, Thos. Ledbeter. SCAVENGERS. The office of scavenger was created by ordinance of I852, which provided that a scavenger should be appointed yearly by the council. By ordinance of 1855 several scavengers might be appointed, and they were authorized to charge eight cents a cubic foot for the' cleaning of vaults and drains. In r883 the legal charge was twelve cents. In 1864 that part of the business pertaining to the removal and burial of dead animals was first done by contract. Ordinances of 1863 and I870 provide that, by paying one dollar and giving surety for faithful services, any proper person may be licensed by the mayor as a scavenger. They are under the direction of the Board of Health. CHAPTER XIII. WATER AND WATER-WORKS.-PUBLIC DRINKING FOUNTAINS. WATER AND WATER-WORKS. THE first settlers had no need for wells, engines, pumps, or reservoirs. The water along the shore was not defiled by sewers and refuse from shop and factory; instead of containing impurities, it washed and whitened the sandy beach and was everywhere as clear as a diamond. Each farmhouse had its single rough-hewn log or plank projecting into the stream, and barefooted maidens, morning by morning, "walked the plank," dashed a bucket into the river, and with the rope to which it was attached drew out the water for their daily needs. There were no assessors to inquire how many the family included. " Shut-offs" were unknown. The supply was literally "as free as air," and whosoever would might draw or dpink. As the settlement grew, buckets gave partial place to barrels, therefore the wharf was used, and when the " Bostonians" came they brought "rules and regulations." One of the earliest Acts of the Board of Trustees was the passage on July I6, I804, of an ordinance requiring each person taking water from the Merchants' Wharf to pay one dollar in advance for the privilege of so doing. This did not please the French and on August 6, the ordinance was repealed. After the fire of 1805 the Governor and Judges concluded that it was not safe to rely altogether upon the river for a water supply, and they undertook to provide public wells. On November 29, 1806, an account was presented by George Huff for "smithwork done at the pumps," and on December 3 following the governor was appointed a committee " to cause the pumps to be stored and painted." An appropriation bill, passed by the Governor and Judges on March 20, 1807, contains the following item: " For completing wells and pumps in the vicinity of the court-house and prison, $1oo chargeable to Detroit Fund." Their records for March 28, 1807, state that the marshal is "authorized to complete the wells and pumps in the vicinity of the court-house by causing the said wells to be deepened, and walled with bricks or stones, and causing the said pumps to be put in complete order for use." One of the last named wells was on Jefferson [62: Avenue near Wayne Street. Wells were also provided on the commons back of the town, in the region of the square now designated as the Campus Martius. The digging of wells in this locality gave great offence to the people. Both cattle and persons fell into them, and on May 7, I808, the Grand Jury presented "the wells on the domain as a dangerous nuisance." In consequence of this action, on December 15, I808, the marshal was " directed to dispose of the pumps, stone and other articles which have heretofore been furnished for the wells on the commons." On March 7, I809, W. McD. Scott presented an account of $134.50 for expenses incurred in digging public wells, which was duly allowed. One of the wells with a pump was located on the north side of Jefferson Avenue between Bates and Randolph Streets. On February 3, I819, Mr. Stead was paid $30 for repairing well and putting in a pump. It was worked with a windlass, and was in use for several years. In 1828 the city paid $2.37 for filling it up. During these years water was frequently carried in buckets suspended from the ends of a wooden yoke, borne upon the shoulders. It was also hauled in barrels in the old two-wheeled French carts, and sold at sixpence per barrel. Two barrels were considered a load, and from them, as the carts jogged over the rough, unpaved streets, much water was distributed along the way. The erection of water-works was publicly suggested by the trustees of the city for the first time on February 25, 1820, on which date a notice was published inviting proposals, to be made before June I, for the exclusive privilege of erecting such works. The first proposition, from John W. Tompkins, was received March 2,.I820. His offer was not satisfactory, and meantime the authority of the corporation to grant the exclusive right for supplying the city with water having been called in question, on June I H. J. Hunt was appointed to examine and report on the subject. His report was doubtless satisfactory, for further proposals were invited, and on July 27, 1820, the trustees voted to meet August IO, to receive them. The proceedings of the trustees do not indicate that any proposals were received WATER AND WATER-WORKS. 63 at this meeting, and on October 19 "$20 was appropriated towards expense of digging a well in Jefferson Avenue already erected near Dr. William Brown's." The subject of water-works continued to be agitated, and on June I, 1822, a meeting of citizens was held at the council-house to consider a proposition from George Deming for furnishing the city with water, and on June 4 they resolved that "it is expedient to promote the enterprise of George Deming and his associates for supplying the city with water, and that upon equitable conditions we favor his having exclusive privileges for a certain number of years." The enterprise was " without bottom," or the resolution "leaked," for no water-works were obtained. The next step in the history of our water supply was the passage of an Act on August 5, 1824, "authorizing Peter Berthelet to erect a wharf on the river Detroit in the continuation of Randolph Street and running to the ship channel of said river," provided "that the said Peter Berthelet, his heirs and assigns, shall at all times during the existence of the above grant, at his own or their own expense, erect, make, and keep in repair, at some convenient place, at or near the end of said wharf, next the channel of the river, a good and sufficient pump, at which all persons who may reside in the city of Detroit shall be at all times free of wharfage or other expenses, entitled to take and draw water for their own use and convenience; and for that purpose a free use of said wharf shall be given, for carts, wagons, sleighs, or other machinery to be used in drawing and carrying away the water." The dock and pump were duly erected, and the pump remained until March I9, 1835, when it was removed by the City Council. The pump, although an improvement, was still an unsatisfactory method of obtaining water, and occasioned much complaint. The same year that Berthelet's pump was authorized, the father of Jacob S. Farrand, Bethuel Farrand, having a friend engaged in the manufacture of pumps at Aurelius, Cayuga County, New York, learned of the condition of affairs, and conceived the idea of getting the right to erect water-works at Detroit. He came on foot to the city, and submitted his proposition to the council on February i6, 1825, and on February 19 a meeting of citizens was held to consider his offer. It met their approval, and on February 21 the council appointed a committee to conclude the contract. The next day they passed an "Act granting to Bethuel Farrand and his legal representatives the sole and exclusive right of watering the city of Detroit and for other purposes." Mr. Farrand went home, and in May, accompanied by Rufus Wells, he again arrived in Detroit. He at once commenced operations, spending the summer in cutting and rafting tamarac logs from'the Clinton River for the purpose of making pipes. Before the works were fairly established, Mr. Wells purchased Mr. Farrand's interest, and on March 31, 1827, an ordinance was passed " granting to Rufus Wells, or his legal representatives, the exclusive right of supplying the city of Detroit with water." A further ordinance, passed October io, 1827, granted additional rights. The pump-house was located on the Berthelet Wharf. It was a frame building, twenty feet square, with two pumps of five inches bore. By means of horse-power the water was forced into a forty-gallon cask, located in the cupola of the pump-house, which was forty feet above the wharf, from where it was conveyed by wooden logs to the reservoir located on Randolph Street, at the rear of the lot now occupied by Firemen's Hall. The reservoir was sixteen feet square, built of white oak plank, two inches thick and six feet long, caulked with oakum; it rested on a frame of timber sixteen feet high, was covered with a shingle roof, and had a capacity of 9, 580 imperial gallons. A few wooden logs conveyed water through portions of Jefferson Avenue, Larned and Congress Streets. All the arrangements were very primitive; upon one occasion a wooden plug at one of the houses on Lamed Street was carelessly knocked out, and the cellar was soon filled with water, and the reservoir nearly emptied, causing almost every pen-stock to fail. The company were required to put in service pipes, and for both pipes and water families paid but $io per year in quarterly instalments. After a few years, other parties became interested with Mr. Wells, and in June, I829, as it was evident that works of greater capacity were needed, the Hydraulic Company, as the association was called, received from the city a grant of the south end of Lot 8,-the second lot from the southeast corner of Wayne and Fort Streets. On this lot they were to erect a new reservoir, and bore for water, the idea having gained prevalence that water could be had more easily from a well than from the river. On August 6, 1829, The Gazette contained this item: The Hydraulic Company of this city are boring for water on the site of the old fort, the highest ground within the limits of the corporation. They have penetrated one hundred and twenty feet and are still going on with their labor. After boring a hole four inches in diameter to the depth of two hundred and sixty feet, one hundred and forty-four feet of which was tubed with cast-iron tubing, the pebbles and quicksand accumulated in the pipe, and early in April, I830, the project was abandoned. The chief engineer of the company, at this time, was Mr. Failing, who seems to have been appropriately named. 64 WATER AND WATER-WORKS. The company now determined to again erect pumping works and resort to the river, and in view of the greater expense that they must incur, they sought to be relieved from furnishing service pipes and penstocks, to obtain an extension of the time during which they were to have the exclusive privilege of supplying water, and also to be released from the obligation of surrendering their works without compensation at the termination of their charter. After various meetings and excited discussions, their demands were granted, and in 1830 new works were constructed. The reservoir, located on the Fort Street lot, was of brick, eighteen feet square and nine feet deep, enclosed with wood; it held 21,811 gallons. On August 4, 1830, the company commenced laying water-pipes from the river to Jefferson Avenue, just above the Mansion House; their new works went into operation at 2 P. M. on Saturday, August 21, 1830. A large crowd gathered at the engine-house to witness the letting on of the water. The water was distributed through wooden pipes of only three inches bore. which were put together with iron thimbles, and these pipes could hardly be called prophetic of the iron pipes nearly four feet in diameter now in use. Governor (:ass, who was present, was called upon for a speech. Mounting a barrel near by, and casting his eye on the route of pipe, he began by saying: " Fellow-citizens, what an age of progress!" No one then thought his words sarcastic. The pumping was done by a ten-horse power engine belonging to the Detroit Iron Works, located on the southwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Cass Street. The engine did double duty, supplying power for its owners as well as for the Hydraulic Company. In consequence of a defect in the boiler, during a whole week in November, 1831, no water could be pumped. At this time there were but two lines of wooden logs of three inches bore. In 1831 an additional reservoir was constructed, adjoining the old one; it was built of oak plank, was forty feet square, ten feet deep, and held 119,680 gallons. The reservoir first built remained in use until I839, when it was sold and taken down. The other one was used occasionally up to 1842, during which year the logs were relaid, many of them having been impaired by frost in the winters of 1830 and 1831. At the same time a twenty-horsepower engine was built, and located in a building erected for it on the north side of Woodbridge Street, between Wayne and Cass Streets. The company supplied water until 1836, losing money each year, and hearing constant and wellgrounded complaints that the water was neither clear, pure, nor wholesome, and very uncertain as to quantity. Finally a Committee of the Council was appointed to examine the matter. They reported that the company had failed to fulfill their contract, and that their charter was null and void. After much discussion, it was decided that the city would buy the works, and on May 18, 1836, a Committee of the Council reported that they had purchased all the real and personal estate of the Hydraulic Company for $20,503, the property to be surrendered June I, 1836, and to be paid for in city bonds bearing six per cent interest, due on June I, 1856. A special session of the council was next held on June 9, when it was Resolved, that Noah Sutton be, and he is hereby appointed, as agent for this Board, to proceed to the cities of Pittsburg, Philadelphia, New York, to examine the water-works in those cities, and obtain all needful information in regard to the construction and operation thereof; and the said agent to be authorized and empowered to contract in the behalf of the corporation of this city for cast and wrought iron pipes for conducting the water into the city. Resolved, that the sum of $50o be appropriated for the defraying the expenses of the agent of the corporation, and that a warrant for that amount be issued on the Treasury. A committee was also appointed to purchase a water lot above the city, upon which to erect works. On June 15, 1836, the recorder reported that they had "purchased from Major Antoine Dequindre three water lots in front of the Dequindre Farm, with a front of 350 feet on the river, for $5,500." The work of building was begun at once, and on June 30, I836, John Farrar was appointed to superintend and inspect the erection of the wharf. It is evident that there were some misgivings as to the success or desirability of the plan for obtaining water from the river, for on the same day the council proceedings show the passage of the following resolution: Resolved, that David French and H. Wilmarth be appointed a committee to examine the several springs in Northville and Southfield, also others in the vicinity, to ascertain if a sufficient quantity of pure water can be obtained from them to supply this city, and the probable cost of conveying it hither. On August 3 Mr. French reported that by a concentration of several springs in the town of Farmington an abundant supply of pure water could be obtained. Nothing further came of this report, and, in the light of later experiences, one cannot help wondering whether the members of the council had not been drinking something besides water when they adopted the resolution. Meantime the newly purchased works continued to be used, and in i836 an ordinance was passed "that, on application, water may be conveyed 50 feet from front line of lots to be kept flowing at least twelve hours out of the twenty-four, provided the corporation does not have to make more than Ioo feet of new pipe to supply any one applicant." In 1837 work was begun on the reservoir at the foot of Orleans Street. In 1838 iron pipes, the first WATER AND WATER-WORKS. 65. in the city, were laid on Jefferson Avenue, from Randolph Street to Woodward Avenue. In I840 a contract was made with Charles Jackson and Noah Sutton to build an engine-house, lay nine miles of tlAlmarack lols. four and one half of iron pipes, furnish a forty-five-horse-power engine, erect the iron reservoir, and finish its tower. The plan of the reservoir, or round-house, was copied by Noah Sutton from the old Manhattan Works of New York City. William Burnell was the contractor for the brickwork, which was completed in I838. John Scott superintended the construction. The brick part was fifty feet high, surrounded by a wooden top twenty feet in height. The iron tank, twenty feet high and sixty feet in diameter, was located in the upper portion of the building, resting on numerous brick piers and arches. A narrow, crooked, and winding stairway, with a rough, wooden platform extending out over the reservoir, led to the top of the building, from which a fine view could be obtained; in the olden time a visit to this reservoir was one of the things to be enjoyed by all visitors. with these additional facilities, the supply of water was uncertain, and in 185 four acres of land on the Mullett Farm were purchased as a site for a new reservoir. This investment gave rise to much discussion, and in the winter of I85i and 1852 the papers were filled with arguments and communications for and against proposals to sell the waterworks to a private corporation. Finally, by ordiance passed February 24, I852, the management of the works was vested in a board of five trustees, and a year later, on February 14, the same trustees, by Act of the Legislature, were constituted a Board of Water Commissioners. From this time the board had control of all the property of the waterworks, which, on December 30, 1862, was conveyed to them by deed of the council. The continued increase of the city and its prospective wants led the commissioners to dispose of the four acres on the Mullett Farm; and in 1854 they purchased ten acres on the Dequindre Farm, a mile and a half from the river, at a cost of $7,363. This ground, the highest in the city available for the purpose, is twenty feet higher than the level at the corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues. A new reservoir was begun upon this site in 1854. It was first used in November, I857, but was not fully completed until I86o. It is bounded by Wilkins, Calhoun, Rlopelle, and Dequindre Streets, and consists of two basins enclosed by a sloping embankment thirty feet high, composed principally of clay. The embankment is one hundred and three feet thick at the base and fifteen feet wide at the top. The outside is handsomely sodded. The basins were originally lined with brick. After a few months' use, heavier and more durable material was deemed necessary, and stone, with brick for a few feet at the top, was substituted. Steps lead from the northwest corner to the top of the embankment. upon which there is a gravel walk I,003 feet long. The two basins are surrounded by a neat fence, and a flight of steps from top to bottom of the interior of each affords easy access for cleaning or repairs. The dividing wall between the basins contains a stairway leading to the shut-offs, so that water can be let on or shut off from either basin without interfering with the other. Each basin is two hundred feet square at the top, one hundred and fourteen feet square at the bottom, and twenty-eight and one half feet deep; and together they cover an area of 530 x 320 feet, or nearly four acres. The capacity of the two is 9,ooo,ooo gallons. The water is forced in and distributed through pipes two feet in diameter. The total cost of the reservoir, aside from the ground, was $I I6,287.58. A keeper resides on the grounds, and on week-days from April I to December I, from 9 A. M. till sunset, and on Sundays from 2 P. M. to sunset, the grounds are open to visitors. OLD ROUND HOUSE, FOOT OF ORLEANS STREET. The reservoir had a capacity of 422,979 United States standard gallons, and weighed one hundred and forty tons. It was in constant use until 1857 and in partial use until I860. In 1866 the roundhouse was torn down. The work was begun on March 27, and the old land mark soon disappeared. Meanwhile the rapid growth of the city made it apparent that more extensive works were needed, and in anticipation of the erection of reservoirs outside of the city, a charter amendment of March 16, 1847, gave control over any works that should be established. In i850 an additional pumping engine of onehundred-and-fifty-horse-power was set up. Even 5 66 WATER AND WATER-WORKS. As the top is seventy-seven and one half feet above the river, it commands an extensive view of the northeastern portion of the city. The various extensions and enlargements demanded increased expenditures, and the commissioners were authorized by Act of February 6. I855, to borrow $250,000, and an Act of February 10, 1857, gave power to borrow an additional $250,000. In July, 1858, a new pipe was sunk in the river, the inlet end being one hundred and seventy-five feet from the wharf-line, and the quality of the water obtained was greatly improved. In I856 a new engine was contracted for, to be built in New York. It was completed and delivered, but failed to do the work agreed upon, and was rejected by the commissioners, who refused to pay for it. A suit was instituted against them, and a decision rendered under which the contractors recovered $26,500. In I862 a new engine was procured, which cost $25,ooo. Again it became necessary to enlarge the capacity of the works, and on February 17, I869, the Legislature authorized the board to borrow $250,00o. A further Act of April 5 gave power to levy a tax of three cents a foot frontage on all vacant lots passed by the supply pipes, with power to sell the lots after a certain time if the taxes were not paid. Comparatively few persons paid the tax, and in June, 1876, the law was decided to be illegal, and all moneys collected under it have been, or are liable to be, refunded. During 1870 many persons who lived adjoining the city petitioned to be served from the waterworks, and in October the pipes, for the first time, were extended outside the corporation. In this same year the ever-recurring consideration of enlargement was again a prominent theme, and the question of an entirely new location occasioned much research and investigation. Various plans and locations were discussed by city officers, private citizens, and the Water Board. The Legislature, on MIarch 8, I873, gave the board power to borrow $,,ooo,ooo for the purpose of erecting new works, and the Act provided for the raising of $75,000 yearly by direct tax, the surplus over the necessities of the board to be RES;EIVOIR AND EMBANKMENT BETWEEN RIOPELLE AND DEQUINDRE STREETS. WATER AND WATER-WORKS. 67 set apart as a sinking fund. A further Act of April 12, 1873, defined with much detail the powers of the board, provided for condemning private property for their use, and gave them power to erect and control works outside the city. In furtherance of plans for enlargement, the board, in January, 1874, bought seventy acres for $35,o00 of Robert P. Toms as a site for the new works. The land has a frontage on the Grosse Pointe Road of 967 feet and extends to the river, a distance of 2,7I 5 feet; it covers parts of Private Claims Nos. 337 and 257 in Hamtramck, about four miles from the City Hall. The wisdom of the location was called in question, and Generals G. W. Greene and G. Weitzel were appointed by the mayor and the Board of Public Works to investigate the subject of location and of the proposed works. Their report was presented in August, 1874. They approved of the location purchased, and advised the erection of works substantially as recommended by D. Farrand Henry, the engineer of the board. The bill of General Greene for his services on this occation was $1, 34 and that of General Weitzel, $1,074.35. These bills were presented August I8, and ordered paid on August 24, I874. The reasons given in favor of the new location were that the works would be beyond the reach of fire from adjoining premises, and would be accessible at all seasons of the year; the water would be obtained from a river channel seldom or never contaminated. and, by means of settling basins, could be freed from impurities. Proposals for constructing the settling basin, docks, and a short slip or canal were invited, and the contract was let to Messrs. Lacey, Walton, & \Valker for $I6, 130. Work was begun in December, 1874, the works were completed in three years, and on I)ecenmber, 15, 1877, water for the first time was supplied therefrom. The first inlet pipe was laid in about twentyseven feet of water, and at right angles with the current; it is of wrought iron, one fourth of an inch thick, five feet in diameter, made in lengths of twenty-five feet, and extends eleven hundred feet into the river, where it is enclosed by a crib in twenty-two feet of water. The strainer boxes are of plate iron, six feet high, five feet wide and thirty feet long. They are fastened to oak timbers laid on the bed of the river. The opening for the admission of the water is on the westerly side, and is two feet above the bed of the river, the water being admitted between slats of hard wood. A second inlet pipe was laid in 1884. The water is forced by gravity through the strainer, influent pipe, and gate-well into the settling basin, thence, intercepted by submerged bulkhead, into effluent gate-well, effluent pipe, and strainer wells to the pump wells, whence it is pumped into the forty-two-inch mains; these are so connected PLAN OF DETROIT WATER-WORKS. 68 WATER AND WATER-WORKS. that either or both can be used; they run by different routes, one 6,000 feet in length, the other 28,000 feet, to the supplying mains. The settling basin is three hundred and sixty-five feet wide and the two sides measure seven hundred and fifty and eight hundred feet respectively. It varies in depth from thirteen feet at the channel or south bank to seventeen feet on the north or engine side at low-water mark; it is separated from the river by a natural bank of solid earth two hundred feet in width; on the other three sides there are plank walls supported by piles driven seven feet in blue clay; outside of the plank walls there are solid embankments of blue clay, puddled in by hand, from eleven to fourteen feet wide. On the west side the embankment, which is covered with plank, connects with and leads to the dock, which is nineteen hundred feet long and twenty-five feet wide. West of the embankment is a canal forty-five feet wide and seventeen feet deep. About seventy-five feet from the north bank of the settling basin is a submerged breakwater, which prevents a direct current from the inlet to the outlet pipe, and facilitates the deposit of any sedimentary matter. The basin has an area of something over six acres, and the pipe conveying the water from it to the well in the engine-house, like the inlet pipe, is six feet above the bed of the basin, thus allow ing all sediment to fall below the mouth of the pipe. The upper portion of the grounds is occupied by coal-house, settling basin, and canal; the lower portion is reserved for the site of an additional basin, should it be required. The grounds adjacent to the street are graded, seeded, and ornamented with shrubbery and two small lakes; driveways lead to the engine-house. The engine-house, of brick, stands nearly in the centre of the upper half of the grounds, eight hundred feet from the front line. The height of the building to the top of the main walls is forty feet, to the peak of the roof seventy-five feet, and to the top of the tower one hundred anl fourteen feet. The engine-room proper is I40x69 feet, and is open to the roof. Two boiler-houses join the rear, and are each fifty-three and six tenths by forty-seven and four tenths feet inside measurement, with a height of forty feet. A space of thirty-seven feet between them is used as store-room, wash-room, and workshop. The brick chimneys on the outer wall of each boiler-room are five feet in diameter inside, and one hundred and twenty feet high. There are three compound-beam pumping engines, all designed by John E. Edwards, and each of them capable of pumping 24,000,000 gallons daily. All of them are models of strength and beauty. TIHE NEW WATER-WORKS ENGINE HOUSE, AND TOWER OF STAND PI'E. WATER AND WATER-WORKS. 69. One of the engines was first used in 1877, and was built by the Detroit Locomotive Works; another was completed in 1881 by S. F. Hodge, at the Riverside Iron Works, and in I885 they finished a third The engine built by the Detroit Locomotive Works has a high steam cylinder, forty-two inches in diameter, and a low steam cylinder, eighty-four inches in diameter, with six-foot stroke. The beam is composed of six halfinch steel plates, twentyfive feet long by five feet six inches wide. The centre column, which supports the beam and forms the air vessel, is forty-four feet high, ten ieet in diameter at the base, and seven feet five inches at the top. The total height from base plate to top of beam is fifty feet three inches. The fly-wheel is twentyfour feet in diameter, and weighs about thirty tons; ' - the crank shaft is fifteen _ inches in diameter. The engine built by the Riverside IronWorks differs slightly from that built by the Detroit Locomotive Works. The lil high steam cylinder has Bll four inches more, and the l11 pump three fourths of an Il inch more diameter. The beam of this engine is I l composed of four three- I!' l fourth-inch steel plates, twenty- five feet four inches long by five feet six inches wide, weighing 3,350 pounds each. The fly-wheel is twenty-four feet four inches in diameter and weighs nearly forty tons. The pumping wells are forty-one feet long, twenty-one feet wide, and twenty-two feet deep, with walls about four feet thick. Each engine with its air-pumps weighs nearly five hundred tons. There are eight boilers, usually called marine boilers, each of them eight feet in diameter by nineteen feet six inches long; height from bottom of furnace to top of shell, eight feet eight and one half inches; weight of each boiler, seventeen and one half tons; heating surface, 1,364 square feet. The stand-pipe is made of boiler iron and has a diameter of five feet at the base and thirty inches at the top. It has a height of one hundred and thirty-two feet from the foundation upon which it rests Since November 7, i886, the pumping has been done by its aid alone, and water is delivered one hundred and ten feet above the level of the river. The tower which encircles it is built of the best quality of pressed ONE OF TIlE ENGINES. brick; the base or lower section is extended outward from the main shaft to allow of a passageway or vestibule to the winding stairway one hundred and twenty-four feet high, which leads to an observatory at the top. There are two hundred and four steps. An analysis of the water by Professor Douglass in 1854 showed the contents of X,ooo grammes to be: sulphate of potassia,.00283 grammes; sulphate of soda,.0075; carbonate of lime,.033; phosphate of 7o \WATER ANID WATER -WORKS. lime,.0311; alumina,.oI05; silica,.005; and carbonate of iron,.oo814; or a total of.09807 grammes of solid matter in i,ooo; in other words, a gallon of water contained only 5.722 grains of solid matter, and this of such minerals, in such proportions, as to be of no real detriment. The iron pipe from which the water for analysis was taken extended only twenty-five feet beyond the wharf-line. An analysis of a gallon of water by Professor A. B. Lyons in September, 1879, from water obtained at the new works gave the following result: potassium, trace; sodium chloride,.229; sodium carbonate,.394; calcium sulphate, I.043; calcium carbonate, 3.353; magnesium carbonate, 1.209; alumina,.241; ferrous carbonate, trace; silica,.306. Total, 6.775 grains. The cost of the new works, including the grounds, up to January, 1887, was $1,448, 053. All general distribution pipes are laid at the expense of the city as fast as the commissioners deem necessary; and all applications for extensions made at the office are carefully considered. Service pipes are required to be put in by a licensed plumber, at the expense of the individual. Plumbers pay five dollars a year to the board as a license fee. A contrast between the methods and facilities of the past and the present is suggested in the following item from a daily paper of July, I850: Plumber.-Why is it that in a city of 25,000 inhabitants, with one Hydraulic Works, and the very extensive improvements everywhere going forward, that we have no professional plumber among us? Petitions to make connections with the waterpipes must be made at the office, on blank forms there furnished, and a charge of $1.75 to $3.00 for service cock and for connecting must be paid when the permit is granted. Between the first day of December and the first day of March no connections are allowed to be made without special permit. Up to January i, I887, there were 23,297 service connections in the iron pipes, and 7,265 in the wooden logs; there was a total of two hundred and thirty-six miles of iron pipe, and sixty-four miles of wooden logs. The iron pipe varies in size from three to forty-two inches in diameter, and the bore of the wooden logs from two and one quarter to four inches. The winter of I874-I875 being remarkably cold, the water-pipes were more generally affected than ever before, and many of the street mains froze and burst, causing serious inconvenience. In I827 the force mains, or main pipes, delivering to the supply pipes consisted of tamarac logs of four-and-one-half-inch bore. In 1830 three-inch iron pipes were used, in 1840 ten-inch pipes, in 1854 twenty-four-inch pipes, and in 1875 pipes of three feet six inches in diameter were first employed. The following table gives a good idea of the growth and extent of the water-works: Value of I Amount of Interest Cost of Works. Debt. paid. operating. 1853 $ 355,240 $ 252,771 $13,356 I86o 689,783 650,o0o $43,837 14,543 1870 1,176,076 850,OC ) 54,757 35,1"9 1880 2,750,700 1,503,000 99,6o 45,732 i886 3,88'5,240 1,447,000 9r,862 71,176 Water No. of Gallons Miles of Rates. Families. pumped. Pipeage. i853 $ 25,482 4,283 303,531,743 G6 I860 49,434 6,950 870,036,451 63 1870 127,143 14,717 i,866,o6o,o68 129 i88o 227,452 22,733 5,552,965,3IO 209 i886 314,952 33,904 10,576,571,254 301 The office was at one time located in the old City Hall. In 1852 it was removed to the old Firemen's Hall, on the corner of Bates and Lamed Streets. In July, I862, it was moved to a store in the Biddle House Block, and in May, 1872, to the north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Bates and Randolph Streets. In 1877 the office was moved to Griswold Street, between Michigan Avenue and State Street, and in 1887 it was permanently located in the building formerly known as Fireman's Hall, which was purch}ased at a cost of $40,000. Under ordinance of 1836 the water rates were as follows: Each common dwelling-house, $o1 yearly; each dwelling " larger than common," with one horse or cow, $12; each family in house with several families, $8; each livery with four horses, $IO; each store, $6; each office, $5. The tax was to be paid six months in advance, and no water supplied for less than six months. As at present managed, in May and June of each year personal inspection and inquiry is instituted throughout the city; and from facts thus obtained a list of consumers is made. On the last business day in June the rolls are confirmed, and are final and conclusive except as additional assessments may become necessary by increased use of water. Any reduction claimed by reason of diminished use of water can apply only to the succeeding quarter. The present rates for each house range from five dollars upwards, with special rates for varying circumstances and particular kinds of business. If not paid within the first month of the quarter, five per cent is added; if not paid before the expiration of the quarter, ten per cent is added; and if not then paid, the supply of water is shut off, and before it is let on again, not only the water tax but an extra charge of fifty cents for turning on the water must be paid. A law of 1873 required the board to charge for the pipes, and double rates for water supplied to persons living outside of the corporation. After ten years, trial, in 1883, discretionary power was given to the board as to the amount to be charged. WATER AND WATER-W\ORKS. 7I Water meters were tested in I854, but can hardly be said to have been in use until I874, and in I883 there were but thirty-two meters and twelve waterindicators in the city. The rate in 1875 was two cents, in I883 one cent for each one hundred gallons registered. When the city took charge of the works, the superintendent had( c(arge of assessments and collections. In 1845 the rates were collected by the city collector. The following advertisement indicates the sternness of municipal management in that day PAY YOUR WATER TAXES.-I will be at the Common Council Room every morning from ten until half-past twelve o'clock to receive the delinquent water-taxes. Every man and woman who does not pay up by Monday, the 21St instant, will be reported to -he Council, and the water in every case shut off. I am not joking. MORGAN BATES, City Collector. DETROIT, April 10, 1845. In 1848, under a permissive ordinance of I842, assessors of water-rates were appointed by the council. At the present time, and since the crea tion of the Water Commission, the board appoints the collectors. The assessors of water-taxes appointed by the council were as follows: I848, W. Barclay, E. Benham; 1849, N. B. Carpenter, G. Spencer; I850, L. D. Clairoux, John E, Norton; I851, N. T. Taylor, Francis McDonald. From 1836 to I849 the council appointed the superintendent of the works. The salary in 1839 was $500 a year. By charter of I849, it became an elective office, and so remained up to the creation of the Water Commission in 1853. The following persons served as superintendents: I827-1833, A. E. Hathon; I833-I837, David French; 1837, Sanford Brittain; 1838-I840, Edward M. McGraw; I840-I843, William Barclay; 1843, B. B. Moore; I844-I846, David Thompson; I846-I848, James Stewart; 1848, Washington Burley, N. Greusel; 1849-I85I, David Edsall; I85I1854, E. McDonald. The engineers have been as follows: I830-1840, Charles Howard; 1840, E. H. Rees; I84I, Benjamin Keeney; 1842-1861, F. M. Wing; I86I-, J. E. Edwards. In 1853 Jacob Houghton was appointed general superintendent and engineer and served until I86I. In 1872 D. Farrand Henry was appointed chief engineer. Under his supervision the new works were carried into successful operation. B. B. Moore was appointed Superintendent of Extension and Repairs in 185o, and continued to serve until his death. In April, 1877, he was succeeded by Henry Bridge, who became also Chief Engineer and Superintendent of Construction. Robert E. Roberts was appointed secretary on the organization of the board, and continued in office until 1872, when he was succeeded by Henry Starkey. George E. Kunze, the receiving clerk, has been in the office since 1872. The Act creating the Water Commission named five commissioners, who were to serve for three, four, five, six, and seven years respectively; and in April, 1856, and yearly thereafter, one was to be elected annually by the Common Council for the term of five years. They were to serve without compensation. Under law of 1879 their terms were to begin on the first Tuesday of May, and by Act of I88I members of the commission can be appointed only on the nomination of the mayor. The board organized May I6, 1853, and consisted of S. Conant, president; J. A. Vandyke, Wr. R. Noyes, E. A. Brush, and H. Ledyard. In I855 James A. Vandyke died, and A. I). Fraser was appointed to fill.his place. At the expiration of the term of S. Conant in I859, he was succeeded by J. I). Morton, and the same year John V. Ruehle was appointed successor to Henry Ledyard, who removed from the city. In 1861 J. V. Ruehle entered the army, and his place was filled by Chauncy Hurlbut. His term expired in 1863, and S. G. Wight was appointed. In I865 W. R. Noyes resigned, and the vacancy was filled by the appointment of Jacob S. Farrand. In the same year the vacancy occasioned by the decease of J. D. Morton was filled by the appointment of John Owen. In I868 E. A. Brush resigned, and Caleb Van Husan was appointed, and the term of S. G. Wight having expired, Chauncy Hurlbut was again appointed a member of the board. The term of A. D. Fraser closed in 1871, and Samuel F. Hodge succeeded him, and the next year Elijah Smith took the place of Caleb Van Husan. He was succeeded in 1877 by Michael Martz. In I879 James Beatty was appointed in place of S. F. Hodge, and John Pridgeon in place of John Owen. In 1885 S. G. Caskey took the place of C. Hurlbut, and E. F. Conely was appointed in place of J. Beatty. Mr. Conely soon resigned, and in I886 was succeeded by M. H. Godfrey. Mr. Hurlbut, who died in I885, left to the board a valuable library and an estate of about a quarter of a million, which was to be devoted to the increasing and care of the library, and the improvement of the grounds. The work of the board is sytematized by the appointment of various committees, and regular meetings of the commissioners are held monthly on the Wednesday after the first Saturday in each month. About forty persons are constantly employed by the board, with salaries varying from $100 to $2,200 yearly. During the summer season, when new pipes and extensions are laid, from seventy-five to one hundred and fifty additional men are employed, and $60,ooo is yearly paid out for salaries and labor. 72 PUBLIC DRINKING FOUNTAINS. PUBLIC DRINKING FOUNTAINS. Both citizens and dumb animals are indebted to Moses W. Field for the suggestion of public drinking fountains. He petitioned the council in regard to them on May 23, 1871. On the 30th a committee reported favorably, and on June 27 the comptroller was directed to advertise for seven. Nine more were ordered in July, 1874. They are generally placed at the intersection of streets. In 1887 fountains were located at the corner of McDougall and Jefferson, Orleans and Franklin, Riopelle and Gratiot, Gratiot and Randolph, Congress and Bates, foot of Woodward, First and Jefferson, Twenty-first and Woodbridge, Twelfth and Fort, Fourteenth and Michigan, Twenty-fourth and Michigan, Cass and Ledyard, Grand River and Trumbull, Twelfth and Baker, and at East and West Hay and Wood Markets. It is the duty of the gas inspector to care for them. The Bagley fountain, which is by far the most elegant of any in the city, is located at the intersection of Woodward Avenue and Fort Street, and cost upwards of $5,000. Its erection was provided for by the will of the late John J. Bagley. It was unveiled on May 30, 1887, and during the same year over $,500o was raised by private subscription to add to it a bronze bust of the donor. CHAPTER XIV. THE PARKS AND THE BOULEVARD.- PASTURES AND POUNDS. THE PARKS AND THE BOULEVARD. WE are certainly indebted to Chief Justice Woodward for our half-acre parks and broad avenues bordered with thrifty elms and maples. His suggestions were embodied in one of the earliest Acts of the Governor and Judges, which made provision for the planting of trees on the streets, squares, and avenues. Of all the smaller parks, the Grand Circus is the most beautiful., As we rest in the shade of the trees, enjoy the plash of the fountains, or watch the children at play upon the lawns, it is hard to realize that up to I844 these parks were ponds and marshes, enlivened only by the music of the bullfrog, and used as a place of deposit for refuse of every kind. In that year a number of citizens combined for their improvement, and, under the direction of H. H. LeRoy, the grounds were raised from one to four feet. In I846 the council appropriated a lot on the southwest corner of Clifford and Adams Avenue, and also a lot on west side of Macomb Avenue near Clifford, to pay for additional improvements, and directed that the lots be sold at auction on July 26, -the first lot to be sold for not less than $i50, and the other for at least $125. In the spring of 1853 the further sum of $1,500 was expended in setting out trees and building fences. The park on the west side of Woodward Avenue received the most attention, a fountain being there erected and walks laid out in the summer of 1860. In September, 1866, the speaker's stand was moved from the Campus Martius to the park. It was erected on August 27, 1862, on the present site of the City Hall, for use at the reception of General 0. B. Willcox. In 1874 a fountain was placed in the East Circus Park. Two years later it was removed to Adelaide Campau Park, and replaced by another. In order to insure the perfect rooting of the trees and grass, the parks were kept closed until May, 1866, when they were opened to the public on Sundays. In July, 1873, the fences were removed from all the parks except the Clinton and Cass. The fence of the latter park was reduced in height at the same time, and in 1879 was entirely removed. All the smaller parks have been much used and appreciated since they were thrown open. Linden 'L731 Park, located in the township of Hamtramck, is three miles from the City Hall, about three fourths of a mile beyond the eastern limits of the city, and half a mile north of the river, between Lincoln and Baldwin Avenues. It contains twenty-five and seventy one-hundredths acres. It was given to the city by Moses W. Field, on October I, I875, upon condition that the city appropriate $3,000 annually for improving it. On February 25 Mr. Field gave another piece of land six hundred feet wide, on the north side of the park, and so modified the conditions of his first gift that, upon spending $4,500 in improving the grounds, the city should have a full title. Including Linden Park, seven of the thirteen parks have been given by individuals. The list is as follows: NAME. LOCATION. GIVEN BY. WHEN GIVEN. Elton Intersec. of th Crane & esso ec 28 and Orchard, essonDec. 28 50 Crawford Intersec. of 5th Crane & Wesson Dec. 28, '850 and High, Cass 2d St bet. Led- Lewis Cass, July io, i860 yard and Bagg Stanton ntersec.o 7t S. K. Stanton, July 23, i86i and Marquette and Rose, Macomb 1.and Rs"^*e, ~t t S. K. Stanton, July 23, I86i AdelaideCarn- Intersec. J Sept. 6, 86 Campau and J.&D. J. S pau _ Clinton Aves. Campa, S Centre Park, named February I, 1840, is between Farmer, Farrar, and Gratiot Streets, and is occupied by the Public Library. School Park, between Griswold, Rowland, and State Streets, is occupied entirely by the High School buildings. Clinton Park is part of the old City Cemetery. It was dedicated as Clinton Park on August 7, I868. It is located between Gratiot, Clinton, Paton, and St. Antoine Streets. Randolph Park was so named April 27, I869; it was formerly called Miami Square and also North Park. East Park is located between Farmer, Bates, and Randolph Streets. In 1883 it was given to the police commissioners as a site for a new building to be occupied as their headquarters. West Park lies between West Park Place, Park Place, and State Street. The following table shows the number of acres in each park, except Belle Isle: Adelaide Campau, 95-Ioo acres; Linden, 25 and 71-Ioo; 74 THE Randolph, 24-100; Centre or Library Park, 27-Ioo; School, 524-IOO0; West, 524-10oo; Grand Circus, 4 and 595-I000; Clinton, I and 32-1000; Elton, 703-1000; Crawford, 703-1000; Stanton, 61I - oo; Macomb, 489-I000; and Cass, 4 and i8-o00. Total, 40 and 53-I00 acres. The most prominent public square is the Campus Martius, so named after the principal square at Marietta, the first settlement and capital of the Northwest.Territory. That square was named Canrus Martius by the directors and agents on July 2, 1788, because the blockhouse stood in the centre of it. The Campus Martius of ancient Rome was the most celebrated of its parks or public grounds. It was at first set apart for military exercises and contests, but afterwards became a public park or pleasure-ground, with gardens, theaters, baths, etc. It received the name of Martius from being originally consecrated to Mars, the God of War. One would think that our Campus Martius had been dedicated to every deity, for everything in turn has centered at this hub of the city. It has been occupied as a hay and wood market, as a standing-place for farmers' wagons, and a rendezvous for hucksters and peddlers of every kind. Here patent medicinemen, "lightning calculators," cheap jewelry auctioneers, peddlers of knife-sharpeners, cements, toyballoons, oranges and bananas, have filled the air with their cries; and "lifting," "striking," "electrical" and "lung testing" machines have all been operated on this famous square. Huge bonfires have often illuminated the surrounding buildings, and hundreds of political speeches have here been made to the throngs that so many times gathered at this grand old meeting-place. It was not always so attractive as now. Rough, muddy, unpaved, and uneven, only a prophet could have foreseen the present beauty of the place and its surroundings. The first step towards its improvement was made on April 22, 1835, when the recorder of the city submitted a resolution for a committee to cause the Campus Martius to be graded, enclosed, planted with trees, and sodded. The resolution was adopted, and the recorder and Alderman Palmer were appointed as said committee. Under their direction the square was graded down fully four feet, and the earth dug away used to fill in the valley of the Savoyard. The decorating was left until more recent years; and now the wide walks, the plats of grass, the fountains, the flower-beds, and the view afforded, are worthy of any city. A Committee on Parks was first appointed on May 30, I854; and in 1863 a superintendent was appointed to serve during the summer season. Since 1870 the smaller parks have been under the care of the Board of Public Works. The following persons have served as Superintendents of Parks: PARKS. I862, Timothy Ryan; I863, G. F. Jones; I864 -1867, Timothy Ryan; 1867, Luke Daly and A. Blumma; I868- 870, George IHenrion; 1870, August Goebel. No history of the parks would be complete without some reference to the Park Question which agitated all I)etroit from I870 to I873. The desirability of a park or parks and a boulevard had been the subject of numerous articles in the daily papers during the fall of 1870, and on June 24, 1871, an informal meeting of citizens was held at Young Men's Hall to consider the subject. The project of laying out a large park met with great favor, and on April 15 the Legislature passed an Act appointing commissioners to receive propositions for sites and giving them power to decide as to location. The commission met and organized, and soon received offers from various parties for locations in all parts of the city and its suburbs. They decided that the most desirable location was a tract of land in Hamtramck, a little over three miles from the City Hall, embracing parts of Private Claims I80 and 734, with a river frontage of half a mile. The decision of the commission was unsatisfactory to many, but the council approved their action, and on November 21, 1871, a resolution was offered authorizing the comptroller to prepare bonds to the amount of $200,000 to pay for the grounds. The resolution was postponed for two weeks, when, on December 27, at the call of the mayor, a citizens' meeting was held in the Circuit Court room, to vote on the question of issuing the bonds. There was an immense crowd present, and amid great confusion the vote was declared carried; but there was so much doubt and dissatisfaction that neither the council nor the citizens regarded the vote as decisive. In order to obtain a more satisfactory vote the council, on April 19, 1872, requested the mayor to call another meeting to reconsider the question. Accordingly, on May I, a meeting was held at the Griswold Street front of the City Hall. Again a great crowd assembled. There was plenty of amusement and much confusion, but no decision was reached. This was the last so-called citizens' meeting. It was unsatisfactory to all good citizens, who were generally agreed that some better method of approving the tax estimates should be devised. Meantime, on March 14, 1873, the Legislature, by special Act, gave the Park Commissioners power to purchase the grounds, and directed "the council to provide means to pay for them." Soon after they passed Acts abolishing citizens' meetings, providing for a Board of Estimates, and annexing a large part of the townships of Hamtramck and Greenfield to the city. It was generally believed that these Acts were drawn in the interest of those who wished to have THEI PARKS. 75 the park lbcated in Hamtramck, and the opponents of the park united in an endeavor to secure a Board of Estimates who would oppose the purchase of the park. On April 2 they held a large meeting at Young Men's Hall, and so successful was their protest that on April 7 a board was elected composed of persons known to be unfavorable to the location of the park in Hamtramck. The question, however, was still unsettled, as both the council and the Park Commission desired to purchase the ground selected for the park. Those opposed to the plan did not relinquish their efforts, and on August I8 and 21 anti-park meetings were held to protest against the providing of money by the council to pay for the lands contracted for. The Park Commissioners, however, proposed to complete the purchase. The question of their right to do so was brought before the Supreme Court, and on December 3, 1873, they reported to the council that the court had decided they had no power to bind the city to pay for the lands; they therefore asked the council to determine what action they should take. The council took the ground that, as the Park Act said, " The council shall provide money to pay for the purchase of the park," they were under obligations to do so, and on December 12 they recommended the issue of bonds to the amount of $200,ooo, and directed the comptroller to prepare them. On December I6 Mayor Moffat disapproved of the action of the council, as the law creating the Board of Estimates provided that no bonds should be issued unless authorized by them, and the council, on the same day, again directed the comptroller to prepare bonds. On December 30 the Iark Commissioners reported that they had bought the lands. Meantime the bonds had not been prepared, and on January 6, 1874, the council again directed the mayor and comptroller to issue them. On January 9 Mayor Moffat returned unapproved that part of the proceedings relating to these directions for the same reasons given by him on December I6, and said moreover that the council was without authority over his actions and could not compel him to sign the bonds. The council, for the third time, repeated its order to issue the bonds, and on February 20 directed the city councillor to take legal proceedings to compel the mayor to sign the Park Bonds. The council persisted and the mayor resisted, and finally the question was brought before the Supreme Court, where, on May 12, I874, it was decided that the purchase must be approved by the Board of Estimates. Their approval could not be obtained, and the subject dropped. Thus ended one of the most persistent and bitter conflicts in regard to municipal matters that ever transpired in Detroit. The idea of purchasing Belle Isle for park purposes was first conceived by L. L. Barbour. He consulted the several owners, obtained refusals of their interests, and arranged that the contracts to sell should be made in the names of several gentlemen whom he interested in the subject. On April 8, I879, these gentlemen, Messrs. George C. Langdon, J. J. Bagley, Bela Hubbard, C. I. Walker, M. S. Smith, and D. O. Farrand, sent a communication to the council suggesting that the city purchase Belle Isle; they stated that they had procured agreements which would give the city the entire island for $200,000, and that the proposal was entirely devoid of any personal or pecuniary interest. Another communication from leading citizens petitioned the council to seek legislation for the purpose of buying the island and building a bridge. It was a favorable time to present the project, for the question of bridging or tunneling the river for railroad purposes was then being discussed. The communication was favorably received, and a resolution was adopted praying the Legislature to pass an Act authorizing the city to issue bonds to the amount of $700,000 to purchase Belle Isle and construct a bridge. Many citizens objected, but on May 27, I879, the Legislature authorized the city, with consent of the. Board of Estimates, to issue bonds for the amount proposed, a portion of them to be used to secure the building of either a bridge or a tunnel. The Act also gave the council power to improve parks either within or without the city limits. On May 27 the Legislature passed an additional Act authorizing the council, with consent of the Board of Estimates, to purchase the island and improve it as a park, to issue bonds for not more than $200,000, and giving them power to erect a bridge to the island. On June 30 the Board of Estimates approved of the purchase, and on September 25 it was consummated. The care of the park was next considered, and on December 23, I879, acting under the old Park Act of 1871, Mayor Langdon nominated and the council confirmed six commissioners. On January 3, I880, they organized, and on May 28, I88o, the council voted to turn over the park to their care. The next day, during the absence of Mayor Thompson, Charles Ewers, as acting mayor, approved of the proceedings of the council. During that same day Mayor Thompson returned, and in a communication to the council disapproved of their action of the 28th, on the ground that the Act under which the commission had organized was a nullity. He also claimed that the approval of the action of the council by the acting mayor was not legal, inasmuch as he had not been absent from the city long enough to make action upon the proceedings necessary. The opinion of Mayor Thompson was sustained by the Supreme Court in a decision rendered 76 THE PARKS. 76 THE PARKS. November 10, i 88o, and a further decision on June iS, i88i, declared that the commissioners appointed by Mayor Langdon had no legal control over Belle '~ Isle Park. Under ordinance of August 29, -- i 88 i, the following persons have.~.. ~ served as a Board of Park Corn- %% Mills, A. Marxhausen, W. A..*.. * Moore, Jas. McMillan; 1883, A. *". "' Marxhausen, W. A Moore, WV. B. Moran, Jas McMillan; 1 884- p Z~ Moore, W. B. Moran, D. M. Ferry; i 886, A. Marxhausen, F'. 4',',.L. Seitz, Elliott T. Slocum, J. A. ~~ X'~. Marsh: 1 887, F. L. Seitz, E. TF. Slocum, J. A. Marsh, F. Adams. *.~\ The board organized on Sep-?. tember 8, i 88 i; on December.,4 I17 elected John Stirling as secretary, and soon after contracted with Frederick Law Olmstead to lay out the park. A survey was. made by Eugene Robinson in W> i882 andthe orkof pannig E 1882, ad the wrk of panning and preparing the island for park purposes was begun. In 1882 the council appropriated ~ $20,000 for the park, and $4,000 $tl' additional was received for rent of fishing grounds, ice privi-:. leges, restaurants, etc. Of these. -. **' P amounts, $14,504 were expended.*... in that year. By law of March:r. '...S,~ 28, i1883, the board was given * full control over all taxes levied.., for the purpose of maintaining * ~ A the park. Abundant indications of the appreciation of the privileges of tfie island are afforded in the ~ ~ ~ fact that between May i o and. 1 September 23, i886, I52,000. adults visited the park. During 1 883 the circular canal ~ ~~~ at the upper end of the island, 4 * shown in the proposed plan, was completed at a cost of about Uri $1 i,ooo. The canal is five feet deep and fifty feet wide. During the French occupancy of Detroit, Belle Isle, a portion of it at least, was treated as an appendage of the garrison and THE PARKS. 77 POLICE STATION, BELLE ISLE. used as a place for pasturage. On June 12, 1752, the governor and intendant granted the island to M. Douville Dequindre, but it is probable that this grant was not confirmed by the king, as there are indications that the Government continued to exercise control over it. On May 9, 1763, when Pontiac's conspiracy was discovered, a party of Indians crossed to the island, and finding there Sergeant James Fisher, his wife and two children, killed them, and also'the twentyfour cattle belonging to the garrison, which had been left in their charge. Iuring the subsequent siege most of the wood for the fort was obtained from the island by sending large parties there under the protection of armed schooners. On May 4, 1768, George III. and his council gave to Lieutenant George McDougall permission to occupy the island so long as the military establish - -------- -- --- I. SUPERINTENDENT'S HOUSE, BELLE ISLE PARK. 78 THE PARKS. 78 THE PARKS. ment was continued at Detroit, provided that he could do so without causing dissatisfaction to the Indians, and that the improvements he made should be of such character as to be of service in supplying the wants of the fort and garrison. On June 5 of the following year Lieutenant McDougall bought the island of the Ottawa and Chippewa Indians for five barrels of rum, three rolls of tobacco, three pounds of vermilion, and a belt of wampum, an additional three barrels of rum and three pounds of paint to be delivered when possession was taken. The value of the island was estimated at ~194 IOS. In I77I Lieutenant McDougall had it surveyed by a Mr. Boyd, who reported that it contained seven hundred and four acres. The same year MIcDougall built a dwelling-house and out-buildings, and his tenant, one Cassity, cultivated about thirty acres. 'After a few years John Loughton took Cassity's lease. There were then two farms on the island, comprising eighty acres of cultivated land, together with houses and barns. One of the farms was cultivated by a man named Ridley. On January 15, 1778, Lieutenant-Governor Hamilton wrote to Governor Carlton as follows: The inhabitants having represented to me the losses and damage they suffer by being deprived of the cominonage of Hog Island, I have directed Captain McDougall's brother-in-law, who is his attorney at this place, to acquaint him that, unless I have your excellency's orders to the contrary, the inhabitants shall be re-instated in the possession of it on the ist day of May, 1779, which is time sufficient for him to prove a right. Meantime McDougall died, and General Haldimand, who had succeeded Governor Carlton, wrote to Major De Peyster at Detroit that the executors of Colonel McDougall must not be allowed to offer Isle au Cochon for sale, as he intended to reclaim it for the use of the garrison at Ietroit. He said further that Mrs. McDougall "need not be alarmed"; that he would see that her rights were protected. On July 13, I780, in a letter from Haldimand to De Peyster, after informing him that in order to raise food and diminish expenses he proposed to have ground cultivated at each post, he added: " I have therefore to desire you will immediately reclaim for his Majesty's use the ground commonly known by the name of Hog Island, and appropriate it to the above-mentioned purpose, exactly upon the same terms and footing with those at Niagara, agreeably to the enclosed articles." The articles alluded to provided that he should establish settlers upon the island, and furnish them with implements. This letter contained also this direction: " As I wish to make Mrs. McDougall a reasonable compensation for what houses, etc., may be found upon the island, you will please to appoint proper persons to appraise them and transmit me their report." Accordingly, on September 5, 1780, the buildings on Hog Island were appraised by Nathan Williams and J. B. Craite, master carpenters. Their report was as follows: I dwelling house ~ 250 I old barn without a top ~ 18 I " It 40 A fowl house 6 I " 10 Some lumber 10 Total (N. Y. currency); 334 On September 9 De Peyster wrote to Haldimand, saying: I propose to settle Mr. Riddle's family, with three other families, on the island as soon as possible, reserving part of the meadow ground for the grazing of the king's cattle." On October IO he wrote: "Agreeably to your excellency's desire, I have fixed loyalists upon Hog Island conformable to the terms prescribed. * * * The island is, however, sufficient for two substantial families only, there being much meadow ground and swamp on it, and it being absolutely necessary to preserve a run for the king's cattle; that being the only place of security. * * * I have sent your excellency a sketch of the island, which contains only seven hundred and sixty-eight acres." Eventually William McComb, guardian of the heirs of McDougall, petitioned Sir Frederick Haldimand, the governor-general, for redress against De Peyster, who then offered six hundred guineas for the island. This offer was rejected, and De Peyster was compelled to restore the island, and to erect a barn and furnish a scow as compensation for the use of it. On November II, 1793, the heirs of McDougall sold the island to William McComb. Like all titles originating prior to American occupancy, the claim to this island was passed upon by the United States Commissioners. The deed from the Indians was of but little force, as neither the British nor the American Government recognized deeds from Indians to private parties; but as the McCombs were in possession before the Americans came, the commissioners, on November 6, 1809, confirmed the island, or six hundred and forty acres of it, to the heirs of William McComb. No one claim at that time was allowed to include more than six hundred and forty acres, and then, and even as late as 1833 (when surveyed by J. Mullett), it was considered doubtful if the island contained that amount of land. On January 7, 1817, the register of probate and a committee assigned the island to D. B. McComb, as one of the heirs of William McComb. On March 31, i817, D. B. McComb conveyed it to B. Campau for $5,000, which amount, tradition says, was paid in bills of suspended Ohio banks. On November i, 1823, the United States Commissioners on Claims recommended that the entire island be Confirmed to B. Campau. The island has borne no less than four different names. Originally called Mah-nah-be-zee, " The THE BOULEVARD.-PASTURES AND POUNDS. 79 Swan," by the Indians; it was re-named by the French, Isle St. Claire. At one time it was overrun with rattlesnakes, and a number of hogs were allowed to run at large in order to destroy them; eventually the hogs became so numerous that the island came to be known as Isle au Cochons, or Hog Island. During the years just previous to 1845 the island became a very popular place of resort for picnic parties, and just prior to July 4, 1845, it was announced in the daily papers that on the Fourth a picnic party would give it a more euphonious name. Accordingly, about five o'clock P. M., a large number having assembled on the island, Morgan Bates was called to the chair, and William Duane Wilson elected secretary; and on motion of Mr. Goodell, it was resolved that the island be known hereafter as Belle Isle, possibly in honor of the ladies who frequently patronized it on picnic occasions. The island is covered with beautiful hickory, oak, maple, and elm trees interspersed with numerous natural lawns. At the time of its purchase by the city, two avenues, fifty feet wide. extended from end to end, and it was possible also to drive entirely around the shore. It was surveyed in 1882, and found to contain nearly 690 acres; in its greatest extent it is o1,8oo feet long and 2,400 feet wide. During the agitation of the Park question from 1871 to 1875 much was said concerning the advantage that would be derived from a boulevard extending entirely around the city. Six years later the subject was again agitated, and on May 21, I879, the Legislature provided for a Board of Boulevard Commissioners, to consist of one person each from the townships of Greenfield, Hamtramck, and Springwells, together with the mayor and Board of Public Works of Detroit. The members from the townships were chosen on the first Monday in April, I880, and were to serve three years, or until their successors were elected, and all were to serve without pay. The board was authorized to lay out a boulevard, not less than one hundred and fifty feet wide, from Jefferson Avenue in Hamtramck to such a point in Springwells as might be agreed upon, and were given power to condemn and take possession of lands in the same way that roads are opened; they were also authorized to construct and improve the boulevard when established, the cost of the boulevard to be raised by general taxation from both city and townships. The commissioners from the townships have been: 1880-1883, Hamtramck, J. V. Ruehle; Springwells, John Greusel, Jr.; Greenfield, E. Chope. 1883, Hamtramck, A. S. Bagg; Greenfield, E. Chope; Springwells, C. Clippert. 1884, Hamtramck, J. V. Ruehle; Greenfield, Thos. Langley; Springwells, C. Clippert. Under the annexation act of 1885, the boulevard came within the city, and since then it has been under the control of the Mayor and Board of Public Works The route was established on February I, 1882, and the boulevard was formally dedicated on September 28, I882. PASTURES AND POUNDS. A large portion of the commons about the stockade of Detroit was once used for pasturage, and in comparatively recent years much of the land within the city limits was unenclosed and used as public property. Prior to I850 the milkman's bell was unknown; almost every family kept a cow or cows, or bought milk of their neighbors. The cows were turned out in the morning, and found their way to unoccupied lands, where they browsed at their leisure, or perchance, if this public feed grew scarce, they were driven to and from an enclosed field. These customs have almost entirely passed away. The milk-carts traverse every street, and the call of " Co' bos! " "( Co' bos!" can no longer be numbered among the street cries of Detroit. Prior to the fire of I805 the narrowness of the streets.made it necessary that animals and fowls should be prevented from running at large. Pounds were therefore established and pound-keepers appointed at an early date, and if age confers dignity on an office, then that of pound-keeper is the most " ancient and honorable " in the city, for there is none other so old. On March 12, I80o, Elias Wallen was appointed pound-keeper, and the old records of the Court of Common Pleas for Wayne County of that date have this entry: The Court of Common Pleas, with the approbation of Major Hunt, commanding officer of the garrison of Detroit, order that the yard of the Council House be used as a Pound. The council house referred to was located near the river, between what are now Griswold and Shelby Streets. Although the dignity of that locality may be somewhat disturbed by this reminiscence, there can be no doubt of its truth. Under ordinance of I836 any person could take up an animal running at large and be paid twelve and one half cents a day for its keeping. Notice was to be given within twelve hours to the marshal, and after advertising four days any animal was sold. The marshal received ten per cent on total proceeds for his services; the person impounding had one half of the balance, and the other half was to go to the Poor Fund. None of the early ordinances as to pounds were strictly enforced, and up to very recent times cattle were allowed to roam at their own sweet will in various parts of the city. By ordinance of I855 two pound-keepers might be, and in I86I two were required to be, appointed to serve for eight months, at a salary of $45 a month. Under ordi 80 PASTURES AND POUNDS. 8o PASTURES AND POUNDS. nance of March 24, 1870, amended May 4, the pounds were to be open between April I and December i, and the keepers were paid $60 per month for the term of eight months. After 1874 they were appointed for the full year, and paid the same amount per month. The pounds are located on the same grounds as the wood and hay markets. The following persons have served as pound-keepers: 1854, D: L. Shaw; 1855, Peter Laderoot; I856, J. J. Reid, D. L. Shaw; 1857, A. B. Solis, J. Normandin, William Barry; 1858, C. Gebhart, C. R. Page; 1859 and I860, J. C. Schultz, F. Fulda; I86I, H. H. Covert, John Greenwood; 1862, J. Stork, John Brennan; 1863 and I864, J. Stork, R. Sullivan; I865 and i866, N. Jungblut, John Ivers; 1867, J. Dieler, J. Ivers; I868, J. Dieler, G. O. Walker; I869, A. Taubits, George Ridette; 1870, A. Taubits, James Joy; 1871 and 1872, Harris Jacobs, Robert Watson; 1873 and I874, A. Peine, F. C. Niepoth; 1875, A. Peine, J. Ivers; 1876, Noah Sutton, George Crabb; I877, Charles Schmidt, B. Reilly; 1878, E. W. Pindar, T. Mahoney; 1879, Eastern District, E. Fiertz, Western District, D. J. Spinning; I880, Eastern District, D. J. Briggs, Western District, H. Jacobs; I88i and 1882, Eastern District, Thomas Rooks, Western District, Henry Gross; 1883, Eastern District, H. Stebner, Western District, H. Gross. In 1805 the law provided that the owner of "every dog three months old and upwards, kept by any one person or family, shall pay a tax for the same of fifty cents." There can be no doubt that a dog tax was then necessary, for in I805, with only five hundred and twenty-five heads of families, there were two hundred and nineteen dogs in the town of Detroit. A like proportion now would give eight thousand dogs, but there were only about two thousand licensed in I883. Dogs were deemed essential as a protection against the Indians in past time, and some families evidently believed in "protection." During the War of 1812, after the arrival of Harrison's troops, a Frenchman came one day to the officer of the day, and complained, "The soldiers last night killed most all my dogs."-"How many did they kill?"-"Nine.""How many have you left?" —"Only eight." Considering the condition of things which then existed, and continued to exist for many years, it is no wonder that the question, "Would a diminution of dogs in the city of Detroit and its vicinity redound to the public benefit?" was proposed in I819, as a subject for discussion in the Detroit 'lyceum. Coming down to recent years, we find that an ordinance providing for the licensing of dogs was approved on May 2, I881, and a dog-pound established on July I. No record was kept of the number of dogs impounded until November i, 1881. From that date up to November I, 1882, there were captured eighteen hundred and sixty-eight unlicensed dogs, and of this number fifteen hundred and sixteen were drowned, one hundred and fourteen redeemed on payment of the pound or license fee, seventy-seven released on proof of having been licensed, seventy-five sold, sixty given to medical colleges for dissection, eighteen escaped, and eight died a natural death. The number of dogs captured in 1886, was nineteen hundred and five. I)rowned dogs are delivered to the city scavenger. Unlicensed dogs are captured by means of a net attached to a long pole, and are then deposited in a covered wagon for conveyance to the pound. A policeman is detailed to catch the dogs, and there is also a driver for the wagon. The license fee for male dogs is one dollar, for females two dollars, and ten cents additional must be paid for the brass license-check which is required to be attached to the collar of all dogs. The money from licenses, and all moneys obtained through the dog-pound, are required to be paid to the city treasurer. The dog-pound is located at the foot of Military Avenue and is in charge of a policeman. PAR~T 11.1. GOVERNMENTAL. I CHAPTER XV. FRENCH AND ENGLISH RULE. THE fish of Newfoundland, the furs of New France, and French jealousy of Spanish achievements, were all prime factors in the efforts made by France to obtain possession of this new world. Added to these, there were political and religious ambitions that knew no limit, incarnated in men who feared nothing and would dare everything to further the interests of la be/ll Francet and the Jesuit order. They went everywhere, and everywhere the Lily and the Cross marked the route they traveled. Colonies followed in their wake, and all deeds done in each were spread before the king, and discoursed upon by his ministers. From the time M. de Champlain visited the lakes, the FIrench Government claimed this region as its own. All of Canada, and what is now known as the Northwest, was variously designated as New France, Louisiana, or Canada. During French rule, no less than three kings and three regents exercised authority ovei Detroit and its surroundings. After the death of Henry IV., on May 14, I61o, his widow, Mary de Medici, became regent, and continued as such until 1617, when Louis XIII., at the age of sixteen, assumed the kingship. The celebrated Cardinal Richelieu was appointed as his prime minister, and served until I642. During his sway, on July 29, 1629, Quebec was captured by the English, and remained in their possession, with Louis Kertk as governor, until the treaty of March 29, 1632, when it was surrendered to the French. Louis XIII. died May I4, 1643, and his widow, Anne of Austria, became regent, with Cardinal Mazarin as prime minister. He continued in office until I66i. The regency of Anne of Austria ended in 165I, and Louis XIV., at the age of fourteen, became king. He reigned until his death, September 1, 1715. The Duke of Orleals then became regent, serving until 1723, when Louis XV., then only thirteen years old, was crowned king. During his reign, on September 8, I76o, Canada was surrendered by Marquis Vaudreuil to General Jeffrey Amherst, and on November 29, I76o, Detroit was given up by the French Commandant Bellestre to Major Robert Rogers. In 1763, by the Treaty of Paris, sometimes called the Treaty of Versailles, it was fully surrendered, and George III. of England became the sovereign of Detroit. Four kings, therefore, have ruled this region. Under the French Government, a governor-general, appointed by the king, commanded at Quebec. Local commandants were appointed for Detroit and other posts with almost plenary power, but they were supposed to, and probably did, conform their authority as far as possible to French law. They were held responsible to the governor-general, to whom they reported. The following is a list of the French governors of New France: I603-1612, iM. Chauvin, Commander de Chastes, and MI. de Monts. 1612-1619, Samuel de Champlain, with Prince de Conde as acting governor. 1619-I629, Admiral Montmorenci as acting gov ernor. 1633-I635, I636, 1637-1647, I647-1651, 65 r-I656, 1656-I657, I657-I658, 1658-i66I, I661-I663, 1663-1665, 1665-1672, I672-1682, I682-1685, 1685-1689, 1689-1699, 1699-1705, 1705-1726, 1726-1747, 1747-1749, 1749-1752, I752, a short time. I752-1755, 1755-1760, dreuil-Cavagn Se M M I MI amuel de Champlain.. de Chateaufort. I. de Montmagny. d. d'Aillebout. NM. Jean de Lauson. M. Charles de Lauson-Charny. M. d'Aillebout. Viscount d'Argenson. Baron d'Avangour. Chevalier de Saffrey-Mesy. Chevalier de Courcelies. Comte Frontenac. M. Lefebere de la Barre. Marquis de Denonville. Comte Frontenac. Chevalier de Callieres. Marquis de Vaudreuil. Marquis de Beauharnois. Comte de la Galissonere. Marquis de la Jonquire. Baron de Longueuil, acting governor Marquis Duquesne de Menneville. Pierre de Rigaud, Marquis de Vaual. [83] 84 FRENCH AND ENGLISH RULE. After the surrender of Canada by the Marquis Vaudreuil to General Amherst, the following military governors were appointed: General James Murray to command at Quebec, General Gage at Montreal, and Colonel Benton at Three Rivers. In 1763, by proclamation of George III., the boundary of Quebec and other provinces was established, but no part of the territory northwest of the Ohio was included in any of the provinces then created. The same proclamation appointed General James Murray governor-general, and provided for his forming a council composed of the lieutenantgovernors of Montreal and Three Rivers, the chief justice, the inspector of customs, and eight leading citizens. On June 22, 1774, under the so-called Quebec Act, a civil government was first provided for the territory which included Detroit. By the terms of this Act the legislative power was vested in the governor, lieutenant-governor or commander-inchief, and a council of not less than seventeen nor more than twenty-three persons, to be appointed by the king. None of the governor-generals, however, exercised any authority over this region, except as military officers. As under French government, so also under English rule, the resident commandant exer cised the functions of both a civil and a military officer, subject to the orders of the commanding general; and all posts west of Detroit were governed from this establishment. A law dividing the province of Quebec into the two general provinces of Upper and Lower Canada became operative on December 26, 1791, and as the Ottawa River was the dividing line, Michigan thereafter formed part of Upper Canada. The following is a list of the English governors: 1760-1763, General Jeffrey Amherst. 1763-1766, General James Murray. 1766-, Paulius Emelius Irvine (President of Executive Council), for 3 months. I766-I770, Sir Guy Carleton (Lieut.-Governor). I770-1774, Hector T. Cramahe (President of Executive Council). 1774-I778, Sir Guy Carleton. I778-1784, General Frederick Haldimand (Lieut.Governor). 1784-, Henry Hamilton (Lieut.-Governor). 1785-, Colonel Henry Hope (President of Council). I785-1792, Guy Carleton, as Lord Dorchester. I792-I796, John Graves Simcoe (Lieut.-Governor of Upper Canada). CHAPTER XVI. TERRITORIAL AND STATE GOVERNMENTS. THE question as to what State, by virtue of its original colonial charter, possessed this portion of the West has been frequently discussed. The claim of Virginia seems as well founded as that of any of the other States, and her claims were fortified by the fact that she was the only colonial State that ever attempted to exercise authority or jurisdiction in the Territories north and west of the Ohio. In October, (778, as appears by the Statutes at Large (Vol. IX., page 557), the Assembly of Virginia organized the territory on the west of the Ohio, adjacent to the Mississippi, into the county of Illinois, and appointed Colonel John Todd military commandant. It is also shown by a letter from Winthrop Sargent, addressed to the President on July 31, 1790, and quoted in American State Papers, Public Land Series, Vol. I., that Todd transferred certain powers to a Mr. Legras, and that a court was held at Vincennes and various acts performed under direction of its judges. This would seem to be almost conclusive evidence of the rights of Virginia. Dissensions in regard to the claims of the several States hindered the formation of the Union; but all of the States finally surrendered their claims. To prepare the way for the cession, a law was passed in October, I780, providing that the territory to be ceded should be disposed of for the common benefit of the whole Union; that the States erected therein should be of suitable extent, not less than one hundred nor more than one hundred and fifty miles square. After the passage of this law, on March I, 1781, New York released her claims; Virginia, on March I, I784; Massachusetts, on April 19, 1785; and Connecticut, on September 14, 1786, and May 30, I8oo. The particular region embracing Detroit was ceded by Massachusetts. The iorthwest Territory. On July 13, 1787, Congress passed an ordinance for the government of the territory of the United States northwest of the river Ohio. Nathan Dane, of Beverly, Massachusetts, founder of the Dane Law School of Cambridge, has been generally credited with the authorship of the ordinance. There is, however, no probability that the vital points of the ordinance were originated by Mr. Dane. As long ago as October, 1841, an article appeared in the North American Review containing copious extracts from the diary of Dr. Manasseh Cutler, in which he distinctly claimed the authorship, without amendment, of portions of the ordinance. As the ordinance was expressly framed in the interest of the land company he represented, it is presumably the portion excluding slavery and providing for schools that is attributable to him. Further evidence of his authorship is contained in an elaborate article in the same periodical for April, 1876, written by William MAP OF TERRITORIAL BOUNDARY.-NO. I. F. Poole, librarian of the Public Library of Chicago. He shows that at the time the ordinance was framed the country was in debt and in great need of money; and that the ordinance was designed to insure the sale to Dr. Manasseh Cutler, agent of the Ohio Company of Associates, of one and one half million acres of land in the Northwest Territory. Further, by the history and language of all the preceding proposed ordinances, and of the committees on them; by a comparison of the language of the ordinance as passed, with the style of Mr. Dane and the statements of his own biographer; by the names of the committee who reported the final ordinance; by an analysis of the vote by which it was passed; by a history of the organization in 1786-1787 of the Ohio [851 86 TERRITORIAL AND STATi GOVERNMENTS. Company of Associates; and, finally, by direct quotations from Dr. Cutler's own memoranda, in which there are evidences of clear-headed business capacity, and rare ability as a writer, diplomat, and correspondent, he proves that Dr. Cutler was the author of the language which gives character to that most remarkable document. Mr. Poole also shows that General St. Clair, then president of Congress, was induced to aid in the promotion of the scheme by the promise of being made governor; and that Winthrop Sargent, the first secretary of the Northwest Territory, was one of the officers of the company which founded the first settlement at Marietta, Ohio. The ordinance provided for the appointment, from time to time, by Congress, of a governor, whose commission should continue in force three years, unless sooner revoked. He was to reside in the district, and, while acting as governor, was required to have therein a freehold estate of one thousand acres of land. The secretary, whose commission was to continue in force for four years unless revoked, was also to reside in the district, and was required to possess five hundred acres of land while in office. By law of I792 the United States Secretary of State was directed to provide a seal for the officers of the Territory. The seal furnished was really symbolic. It shows the short, thick trunk of a prostrate tree, evidently a buckeye, felled by a woodman's axe, while near by stands an apple-tree laden with fruit. The buckeye is a species of the horsechestnut, indigenous to and very numerous on the banks of the Ohio and tributary streams, and not found elsewhere. From this fact the tree derives unfailing evidence of the richest soil, yet the tree was worth little except for its shade. The felling of the useless buckeye, and the substitution of the fruit-tree, gives force to the motto, " Meliorem lapsa locavit." (The fallen has made room for a better.) The aptness'of the seal and motto is enforced by the fact that Ohio orchards, almost from the first, have been noted for the profusion and good quality of their fruit. In early days most of the supply for Detroit came from that State. The first territorial officers were appointed on July 13, 1787. They were as follows: Arthur St. Clair, governor; Samuel H. Parsons, James M. Varnum, and John Cleves Symmes, judges; and Winthrop Sargent, secretary. Governor St. Clair continued in office, even after the Territory of Indiana was created, and was the only governor this region had under the Northwest Territory. Winthrop Sargent was succeeded on June 28, I798, by William Henry Harrison, and he in turn by Charles Willing Byrd. John Rice Jones was attorney-general in i8oo, and William McIntosh, territorial treasurer in 18oI. By law of May 7, 800o, W. TERRITOR N W. TECRRITORY the Northwest Territory N. BWY TERITWO was divided, and the Ter^v'^ MayTo800 7ritoryof Indiana created; and on April 30, I802, Congress provided that when the citizens of the region to be called Ohio adopted a constitution, conforming to certain conditions prescribed by ritIR.UerY./ s Congress, the region inc eluding Detroit should be attached to the Territory of Indiana. Although a Kentucky R. majority of the people of the Territory were opMAP OF posed to the holding of TERRITORIAL BOUNDARY. No. 2. a convention, and the creation of the State of Ohio, yet a convention was called. It began at Chillicothe on November I, I802, and closed November 29. Notwithstanding the fact that the proposed State of Ohio embraced a portion of what was then Wayne County, and the population of the entire county was counted to make up the requisite number of inhabitants for a State, yet delegates from Wayne County were not admitted to the convention. Neither was the constitution which the convention framed submitted to vote of the people. The convention modified the conditions made by Congress, the 'modifications were accepted on March 3, 1803, and the admission of Ohio was thus completed. SEAL OF NORTHWEST TERRITORY. (ExaCt size.) its specific name, Ohioenszs. The abundance of these trees gave the name of Buckeye State to Ohio. The tree is called buckeye from the resemblance of the nuts to the beautiful brown eyes of the native deer. The presence of the buckeye tree was an TERRITORIAL AND STATE (GOVERNMENTS. 87 Half of what is now the State of Michigan, including Detroit, was thus annexed to Indiana Territory without the wish or consent of the citizens, and in defiance of their protests. The Territory of Indiana. The officers of Indiana Territory, during our connection with that commonwealth, were as follows: MAP OF TERRITORIAIL 1IOU;NDAKY.- NO. 3. governor, William Henry Harrison; secretary, John Gibson (it was to him that the celebrated chief Logan made his noted speech in 1774); attorneygenerals, J. R. Jones and Benjamin Park. The grade of government. On Saturday, October 13, 1804, a town-meeting was held in Detroit to petition the General Government for a separate territory. The "Annals of Congress," pages 20 and 21, show that on December 5, I804, Mr. Worthington presented the petition of James May and others, praying that that part of Indiana Territory north of an east and west line, extending to the southern boundary of Lake Michigan, may be a separate territory. On December 6 Mr. Worthington also presented the petition of " The Democratic Republicans of the County of Wayne, in the Territory of Indiana," signed by their chairman, Robert Abbott, praying for a division of said Territory. It received the same reference as the previous petition of James May and others. While these proceedings were being had, an Act of March 26, 1804, which took effect October I, I804,'placed under the government of Indiana all of the newly acquired Territory of Louisiana which lay north of an east and west line on the thirty-third degree of north latitude. For a period of three months Detroit was thus included in a territorial government which had jurisdiction over all of the present States of Michigan, Wisconsin, Iowa, Minnesota, Missouri, Arkansas, and Nebraska, nearly all of Kansas and Wyoming, over one third of Colorado and Indian Territories, and all of Dakota, Montana, Idaho, Oregon, and Washington. The Territory of ADich-gzan. On January I, I805, by a law to take effect June 30, I805, Congress divided Indiana Territory into two territories, named Indiana and Michigan. The latter was to include that part of Indiana Territory lying north of a line drawn east from the softhern end of Lake Michigan to Lake Erie; and on July 2, I805, the oath of office was administered at Detroit to the Governor and Judges. A territorial seal was adopted on July 9, I8o5, probably identical with the private seal of Governor I -ull. A seal, designed expressly for a territorial seal, was described by Governor Cass, and recorded on December i, I814. The motto, "Tandem fit surculus arbor" (The shoot at length becomes a tree), indicated that a measure of independence was secured by a separate territorial government. On February 16, 1818, the people of the Territory voted on the question of passing to what was known as the second grade of government, and, strange to say, the majority was against it. In April, I816, Congress took a strip from the southern part of the Territory, and included it in the bounds of the new State of Indiana. Two years later, on April 18, 1818, Congress increased the size of the Territory by adding to it all of what is now the State of Wisconsin and the western half of the Upper Peninsula. SEAL OF INDIANA TERRITORY. (Exact size.) officials of Indiana seemed indifferent as to their relation to Detroit, or realized that it was only of a temporary character. A vote of the Territory on September II, I804, showed a majority of one hundred and thirty-eight in favor of a General Assembly, and Governor Harrison issued a procla-& mation that the Territory had passed into the second 88 TERRITORIAL AND STA By Act of Congress of July i6, I 89, the Territory was authorized to elect a delegate to Congress. On March 3, 1823, Congress transferred the government of the Territory from the Governor and Judges to the governor and a council of nine persons, to be tTE GOVERNMENTS. selected by the President from eighteen persons elected by the people of the Territory. By Act of January 29, 1827, the people of the Territory were authorized to elect thirteen persons to constitute the legislative council. A second addition to the territorial limits of Michigan was made on June 28, I834. All of the present States of Iowa, Minnesota, Wisconsin, Michigan. and a large part of Dakota, were then included in Michigan Territory. On January 26, I835, the legislative council provided for the election, on April 4, of eighty-nine delegates to a convention, to form a State constitution. The convention assembled at Detroit on May 11, 1835, and concluded its labors on June 24. The following delegates from Wayne County were present at the convention: Caleb Harrington, John McDonnell, Ammon Brown, John R. Williams, Theophilus E. Tallman, Alpheus White, George W. Ferrington, Amos Stevens, Asa H. Otis, Conrad Ten Eyck, Charles F. Irwin, Louis Beaufait, Wm. Woodbridge, Peter Van Every, John Biddle, J. D. Davis, and John Norvell. The convention proposed to Congress that certain lands be set apart for the establishment of schools for the university, and for the erection of public buildings; and also that the State have a certain number of the salt springs, and a percentage on the sales of all public lands lying within the State. It also asked that the northern boundary should be fixed in accordance with the provisions of the ordinance of I787 and the Act of I805, which created Michigan Territory. The constitution, thus prepared, was adopted by the people at an election held the first Monday of October, 1835. The officers of the Territory of Michigan, so far as known, were as follows. The list is necessarily somewhat incomplete, because the records of appointments by the governor, prior. to 1814, were destroyed in the War of 1812: MAP OF TERRITORIAL BOUNDARY. —NO. 4. SEAL OF THE TERKKITORY OF MICHIGAN. (Exacg size.) GOVERNORS. William Hull, March I, 1805, to October 29, 813. Lewis Cass, October 29, 1813, to August 6, 1831. p George B. Porter, August 6, 1831, to July 6, I834. Stevens T. Mason, July 6, 1834, to September 20, 1835. John S. Horner, September 20, 1835, to November 2, I835. SECRETARIES. Stanley Griswold, March I, i805, to March I8, 1808. Reuben Attwater, March i8, i8o3, to October 15, I814., Wm. Woodbridge, October I5, I814, to January 15, 1828. MAP OF TERRITORIAL BOUNDARY.-NO. 5. TERRITORIAL AND STATE GOVERNMENTS. 89 James Witherell, January 15, 1828, to May 20, I830. John T. Mason, May 20, I830, to July 12, 1831. Stevens T. Mason, July 12, 1831, to September 30, I835. John R. Williams, August 2, I818, to April 14, I829. De Garmo Jones, April 14, I829, to October 23, I829. W. L. Newberry, October 23, I829, to March 14, 1831. John E. Schwartz, March 14, 1831. JUDGE-ADVOCATES. A. G. Whitney, - to September, 1823. B. F. H. Witherell, September, 1823, to -. QUARTERMASTER-GENERALS. James McCloskey, August 14, I818, toSEALERS OF LEATHER. Calvin Baker, August 10, 1822, to-. Jefferson Morris, March 7, 1834, to -. MAP OF TERRITORIAL BOUNDARY.-No. 6. John S. Horner. September 30, I835, to November 13, 1835. TREASURERS. Frederick Bates, I805 to November 26, i8o6. Elijah Brush, November 26, i8o6, to December 13, I813. Robert Abbott, December I3, 1813, to January I, I830. Levi Cook, January I, 1830, to February 19, 1836. The State of Mlichzgan. The history of the legislation in regard to the boundaries of the Territory and the State of Michigan is a history of alternate enlargement and contraction of her possessions. The autocratic and unjustifiable exclusion of delegates of Wayne County from participation in the convention which carved out the State of Ohio has already been mentioned. In 1828 a proposition was made in Congress to organize a Territory by the name of Huron, and to make the Lake Superior region a part of it. On February 15, AHIGAN TERRITORY I828, a meeting of citizens of B-5-T L_: XW Detroit was held to protest Junoe28r,834. against it, and the project failed. ^lg^^^5 ~ The next effort of this kind, in 1835, was more successful, and is described in connection with the Toledo War. On March I8, 1836, a public meeting was held in Detroit to protest against permitting Ohio to possess the territory in dispute, which consisted of about four hundred and seventy square miles on the southern boundary of the State. Meantime, by Act of April 20, I836, which took effect on July 3, 1836, the State of Wisconsin was created. All protests against the curtailing of the southern boundary were unavailing; and on June 15, 1836, Congress passed an Act admitting Michigan as a State, provided she would accept of boundaries which gave the disputed territory to Ohio. A few days later, on June 23, Congress passed another Act, accepting the proposition of the convention of 1835, with some modifications, which denied to Michigan the boundary she claimed. This last proposition of MAP OF TERRITORIAL BOUNDARY.-NO. 7. AUDITORS OF PUBLIC ACCOUNTS. Robert Abbott, I809 to February 19, 1836. Solomon Sibley, October 4, 1814, to 81 7. George McDougall, October, 1814, to 1817. Richard Smyth, December 21, I817. James McCloskey, August 8, 1817. ADJUTANT-GENERALS. James May, October 3, r805, to September 29, i8o6. George McDougall, September 29, i8o6, to August 2, 1818. 90 TERRITORIAL AND STATE GOVERNMENTS. -- - -- MAP OF TERRITORIAI. BOUNDARY.-No. 8. Congress occasioned much controversy, agitating the public mind all through 1836. Meetings were held in Detroit, on September 2 and October r2, to oppose the yielding of the territory to Ohio, and to arrange for the election of county officers who would oppose it. Finally the legislature of Michigan Territory, by Act of July 20, 1836, provided for the election of delegates to a convention, which was to be assembled to settle the question. The following delegates from Wayne County were elected on September 12: Titus Dort, D. C. McKinstry, Louis Beaufait, B. B. Kercheval, Ammon Brown, Eli Bradshaw, H. A. Noyes, and John McDonnell. The convention met at Ann Arbor September 26, 1836, and decided against accepting admission with the boundary as proposed by Congress. On November 14 following the Democratic County Committee issued a circular, recommending the holding of another convention at Ann Arbor on December 14. They urged that the people of the State elect delegates to such a convention, saying that, although the vote of the Washtenaw County delegates defeated the acceptance of the proposition of Congress, the people of that county had since then elected members of the Legislature who were in favor of accepting the terms of Congress. They further urged that speedy action was necessary, in order to secure to the new State a share of the surplus revenue that Congress was about to distribute, and also the percentage on sales of public lands in Michigan. Governor Mason favored the project, and the convention was held as proposed. The following persons were present, as delegates from Wayne County: John R. Williams, Ross Wilkins, Charles Moran, Marshall J. Bacon, D. Goodwin, B. F. H. Witherell, J. E. Schwartz, Reynold Gillett, Eli Bradshaw, H. A. Noyes, Elihu Morse, Warner Tuttle, A. Y. Murray, James Bucklin, Josiah Mason, and Charles F. Irwin. This last convention unanimously resolved to accept the prescribed conditions of admission; the validity of its action was recognized by Congress, and on January 26, 1837, the State was, by a new Act, formally admitted as the twenty-sixth State of the Union. It thus appears that a convention, called by a political party as such, brought about the admission of Michigan as a State. A suggestive feature of the convention was the fact that there were no delegates present from Monroe County, in which Toledo was then located. The action of the convention that provided for the admission of Ohio in I802, and refused to admit delegates from Wayne County, was thus fully equalled. The people were now relieved of an anomalous government, neither territorial nor state. Without specific congressional authority, they had possessed a state government, with a full set of officers, for a period of nearly two and a quarter years before the State was recognized as such by Congress. Under the ordinance of 1787, the people of the Territory, however, had a right to a state government, as the Territory contained sixty thousand inhabitants. The citizens were exceedingly pleased at the final settlement of the question of admission to the Union; and on February 9, 1837, a great celebration was had in honor of the event. The Brady Guards paraded, twenty-six guns were fired, Jefferson Avenue was illuminated, and bonfires flamed everywhere. A State seal was adopted by the constitutional convention of I835. On June 2 the president of the convention stated that he had received a design for a seal; and on the same day Mr. Wilkins of Lenawee offered the following: Resolved, that the president of the convention tender to Hon orable Lewis Cass the thanks of this convention, representing the people of Michigan, for the handsome State Seal presented by him to the forthcoming State. This resolution was laid on the table, and adopted on June 22. On the same day that the design was presented, on motion of Mr. Norvell of Wayne, the following was adopted as part of the proposed constitution: "A great seal shall be provided by the governor, to contain device and inscription, described in papers relating thereto, signed by the president of the convention, and deposited in the office of the Secretary of Territory." Concerning the mottoes on the seal, D. B. Duffield, in a letter to General John Robertson, quoted in his ("Flags of Michigan," gives this information: He says, "When a law student with Major Lewis Cass, in the year I841, we had some conversation on the subject, and as I now recall it, he then stated that * * * the late General Cass selected and modified the celebrated inscription upon the black marble slab that marks the tomb of Sir Christopher Wren in the crypt of St. Paul's Cathedral, of which he was the distinguished architect." That inscription reads, "Si monumentum requiris, circumspice." (If you require a monument, look around you.) TERRITORIAL AND ST In view of the distinguishing feature of the State, its peninsular character, General Cass modified the inscription as given on Wren's tomb by substituting "quaxris peninsulam amcrnam" for the words " monumentum requiris," so that the motto, in its new form, would read "If you seek a pleasant peninsula, look around you." Mr. Duffield had no facts as to why the word tluebor was used, but surmised that it had reference to the frontier position of Michigan, as a defender on the border of British territory. More probably it was suggested by the desire and determination of the people to hold the territory 6n the south, then claimed by Ohio. The holding of that territory occupied a prominent place in the discussions of the very convention that adopted the seal. The description of the seal says that it shows a man with a gun in his hand. The word " man " was evidently used designedly, the idea being that it was a citizen or settler, not a soldier, that stood ready with his gun, saying, " Tuebor," I will defend. 'ATE GOVERNMIENTS. 91 the Legislature. The Constitution of 1850 made these officers elective, and fixed their salaries. The original constitution provided that the Legislature might establish courts, and appoint regents of the university; that of I850 prescribed what courts should be established, allowing only municipal courts to be created by the Legislature, and provided for the election of regents of the university. The Constitution of 1835 provided for annual sessions of the Legislature; that of 1850, for biennial sessions. The one of 1835 prohibited the passage of laws for general corporate organizations, and authorized special charters; that of 1850 prescribed a course directly the reverse. The first constitution provided that private property might be taken for public use by allowing just compensation, and the powers of boards of supervisors were quite restricted. The Constitution of 1850 made more stringent provision as to taking private property for public use, and gave larger legislative power to boards of supervisors. The Constitution of 1835 said nothing about the licensing of the sale of liquor; that of I850 prohibited the Legislature from authorizing licenses for its sale. A third constitutional convention came together at Lansing, on Mlay 15, 1867, and continued in session until August 22. The delegates from Wayne County were Robert McClelland, Daniel Goodwin, Peter Iesnoyers, WVm. A. Smith, Jonathan Shearer, and W. E. WVarner. The result of their labors was disapproved by the people. In 1873 a constitutional commission, provided for by the Legislature, held sessions at Lansing, from August 27 to October I6, 1873. Ashley Pond and E. W. Meddaugh were delegates from the first district, which embraced Wayne County. Nearly all of the recommendations of the commission failed of adoption. The Constitution of 1835 provided that Detroit should be the capital until I847, when the final location was to be determined by the Legislature. Under a bill approved March I6, I847, the capital was located at ILansing, and on December 25 it was there established. The name Lansing was probably given to that towrn because its first settlers came from Lansing, Tompkins County, N. Y., which town was named after John Lansing, Chancellor of the State of New York from I80o to 1814. The State officers and their terms of office, have been: GREAT SEAL OF TIHE STATE OF MICHIGAN. (Exacl size.) After fifteen years of growth, a new constitution was deemed desirable. June 3, 1850, the second constitutional convention opened its session at Lansing. It concluded its work on August 15. The delegates from Wayne County were: D. Goodwin, H. J. Alvord, J. H. Bagg, A. Brown, P. Desnoyers, E. C. Eaton, H. Fralick, H. T. Backus, B. F. H. Witherell, and J. Gibson. The new constitution was submitted to the people, and approved on the first Tuesday of November, 1850, becoming operative on January i, I85i. The chief points of difference between the Constitution of 1835 and that of 1850 are as follows: By the Constitution of 1835, all judges and all State officers, except the governor and lieutenant-governor, were appointed, and their salaries determined, by Governors. Stevens T. Mason William Woodbridge J. Wright Gordon (acting) John S. Barry TERMS BEGAN. ENDED. 1835 1840 1840 I84I 1841 I842 1842 1846 92 92 ~~TERRITORIAL AND STATE GOVERNMENTS. Alpheus Felch \Villiam L. Greenly (acting) Epaphroditus Ransom John S. Barry Robert McClelland Andrew Parsons (acting) 1K.insley S. Bingham Moses Wisner Austin Blair Henry H. Crapo, Henry P. Baldwin John J. Bagley Charles M. Crosswell D. H. Jerome J. WV. Begole Russell A. Alger Cyrus G. Luce Lieutenant-Governors. Edward Mundy J. Wright Gordon T. J. Drake (acting) Origen D. Richardson William L. Greenly C. P. Bush (acting) William M. Fenton Andrew Parsons G. R. Griswold George A. Coe Edmund B. Fairfield James Birney Joseph R. Williams Henry T. Backus Charles S. May E. 0. Grosvenor Dwight May Morgan Bates Henry H. Holt Alonzo Sessions M. S. Crosby Archibald Butters J. Hf. Macdonald Secretaries of State. Kintzing Pritchette Ranrdolph Manning Thomas Rowland Robert P. Eldridge Gideon 0. Whittemore George W. Peck George Redfield Charles H. Taylor William Graves John McKinney Nelson G. Isbell 'rERNIS BEGAN. ENDED. I1846 i1847 James B. Porter I1847 1848 Oliver- L. Spaulding 1848 i85o Daniel Striker 1850 I852 E. G. D. Holden 1852 I853 William Jenney 1853 1855 Harry A. Conant I855 1859 G. R. Osmun 1859 i86i i86i 1865 St;atle i865 i1869 Henry Howard 1 869 1873 Peter Desnoyers 1873 18677 Robert Stuart 1877 i88I George W. Germain i88i 1 883 John J. Adam 1 883 ~885 George Redfield i885 1 887 George B. Cooper 1 887 Bernard C. Whitemore Silas M. Holmes John McKinney 1835 1840 John Owen 1840 1841 Ebenezer 0. Grosvenor 1841 1842 Victory P. Collier 1 842 1846 William B. McCreery 1 846 1847 B. D. Pritchard 1 847 1848 Edward H1. Butler 1 848 1852 G. L. Maltz 1852 1853 Audilt 1853 1855 i855 1859 Robert Abbott 1859 i 86i Henry Howard i86i i 86, Eurotas P. Hastings i86i 1 862 Alpheus Felch 1 862 1863 Henry L. Whipple 1 863 1865 Charles G. Hammond 1 865 1 867 John J. Adam 1 867 1 869 Digby V. Bell 1 869 1873 John J. Adam 1873 I877 John Swegles, Jr. 1 877 i88i Whitney Jones i88i i 885 Daniel L. Case 1885 1 887 Langford G. Berry 1 887 Emil Anneke William Humphrey Ralph Ely 1835 1 838 W. Irving Lattimer 1838 1 840 William C. Stevens 1 840 1 842 H. H. Aplin 1 842 1846 to, 1 846 1848 Atr 1 848 i 85o Daniel LeRoy 185o 1850 Peter Morey i 85o 1853 Zephaniah Platt 1853 i855 Elon Farnsworth i85 1859 Henry N. Walker 1859 1861 George V. N. Lothrop, TEEMS BEGAN. ENDED. 1861 1 867 1 867 1871 1871 1875 1875 1879 1879 1883 1883 1 887 1 887 Treasurers. 1836 1 839 1840 1 841 1 842 1 845 1846 1850 1859 i 86i i1867 1871 i875 1 879 1 883 i1887 1 839 i1840 1 841 1 842 1 845 1 846 I 85o 1I859 i86r 1 867 1 871 1875 1 879 1 883 i1887 or-Generals. i 836 i1839 1 840 1 842 1842 1 842 1845 1846 1 848 i855 1859 186i 1 863 1 867 1875 1 879 1883 1887 1 839 1 840 1842 1842 1842 1 845 1846 1848 i855i 1859 1861 1 863 1 867 1875 1 879 1883 1 887 1 837 1 841 1 843 1 845 1848 i 85,e y-Generals. i'836 i1837 1 841 i 843 i 845 i1848 TERRITORIAL AND STATE GOVERNMENTS. 93 William Hale Jacob M. Howard Charles Upson Albert Williams William L. Stoughton Dwight May Byron D. Ball Isaac Marston Andrew J. Smith Otto Kirchner J. J. Van Riper Moses Taggart TERMS BEGAN. ENDED. 1851 1855 1855 i86i i86i i863 1863 1867 1867 1869 1869 1873 1873 1874 1874 i875 1875 i877 1877 i88i i88i i885 1885 - Leverett A. Clapp Benjamin F. Partridge James M. Neasmith Minor S. Newell R. D. Dix Supierintendents of John D. Pierce Franklin Sawyer, Jr. Oliver C. Comstock, Sr. Ira Mayhew Francis WV. Shearman Ira Mayhew John M. Gregory Oramel Horsford Daniel B. Briggs Horace S. Tarbell Cornelius A. Gower Herschel R. Gass Theo. Nelson J.- Estabrook TEEMS BEGAN. ENDED. 1873 1877 1877 1879 1879 1883 1883 1887 1 887 - Commissioners of State Land Qflice. Digby V. Bell 1 844 Abiel Silver 1846 Porter Kibbee i85o Seymour B. Treadwell 1855 James WV. Sanborn 1859 Samuel S. Lacey i86i Cyrus Hewitt i865 Benjamin D. Pritchard 1 867 Charles A. Edmonds 1871 i1846 i85o 1859 i86i 1865 i1867 i 871 1 873 Public lnst~-uction. 1 838 1 841 1843 1845 1 849 1859 i 865 1873 i1877 i 878 1 883 1885 i1887 1 841 1 843 i1845 1 849 1859 1865 1 873 i1877 i878 i883 1885 1 887 CHAPTER XVII. LEGISLATURES AND LAWS. THE first Legislature under English rule was called by prtclamation from Kingston, in the name of the king, on July I6, I792. Lieutenant-governor Simcoe, of Canada, then defined the limits of nineteen counties. Kent County included the region embracing Ietroit, and was to have two members of the Legislature. In August, I792, an election was held, and Wm. Macomb and Wm. Grant were elected as members of the first Legislature of Upper Canada from the county of Kent. The legislative session began September I7, at Newark, now Niagara, and closed October 15, 1792. The second session began at Newark on May 31, 1793, and lasted till July 9. The third session began June 2, 1794, and closed July 9. The fourth session lasted from July 6, I795, to August Io, and the fifth from May I6 to June 3, 1796. Under the Act of Congress of I787, the Governor and Judges of the Northwest Territory constituted the Legislature. They arrived at Marietta on July 9, 1788, and their first enactments were dated from that place, and published by being nailed on a tree on the banks of the Muskingum. As Detroit was in possession of the English, none of their laws were in force here until after July II, 1796. The laws of the Governor and Judges were issued from Marietta, Vincennes, and Cincinnati. This last named place was originally called Losantiville; it was so named by Israel Ludlow, one of the original proprietors. As the town was opposite the mouth of the Licking River, he took the first letter of that name, the Latin word os (the mouth), the Greek word anti (opposite), and the French vzlle (a town), and built up the name, thus rivalling in his ingenuity the linguistic feats of our Judge Woodward. Cincinnati was made the seat of justice on January 2, 1790, and in 1795 the Governor and Judges assembled there to revise their former regulations and adopt new laws. By the ordinance of 1787, as soon as there were five thousand free male inhabitants in the Territory, an assembly was to be elected, with one member for each five hundred free white males. When the number of delegates reached twenty-five, the assembly was to regulate the ratio of representation. Having ascertained that there were in the Territory the requisite number of male citizens, over twentyone years of age, Governor St. Clair, on October 29, 179I, issued a proclamation, directing the electors to choose representatives to a General Assembly, which he ordered to convene at Cincinnati on January 22, 1799. Three members were allotted to Wayne County, and an election was held on the third Monday of December, 1799. Owing to some informality or fraud, another election was deemed necessary, and was held at Ietroit, and in other parts of Wayne County, on January 14 and 15, I799, resulting in the election of Solomon Sibley, Jacob Visger, and Charles F. Chabert Joncaire. Although the Assembly was to have met on January 22, I799, its sessions did not begin until February 4. An tpper house or council, as it was called, was created, consisting of five persons, selected by the President and confirmed by Congress, from persons nominated by the Assembly. This first council consisted of James Findlay, Jacob Burnet, Henry Vanderburg, David Vance, and Robert Oliver. On the creation of the Territory of Indiana, Judge Vanderburg, who lived within its limits, lost his seat in the council; Solomon Sibley, of Detroit, was appointed in his place, and Jonathan Schiefflin was elected Sibley's successor in the Legislative Assembly. The delegates from Wayne County, at the first session of the second Assembly, on November 23, I80I, consisted of Charles F. Chabert Joncaire, George McDougall, and Jonathan Schiefflin. It is a curious fact, illustrating the pliant principles and politics of that day, that Schiefflin and Joncaire, both of whom served under Governor Hamilton, and joined with the Indians in killing and scalping the white inhabitants in the Territory, were afterwards elected to represent in the Territorial Legislature the very regions they had ravaged. As late as May, 1797, Jonathan Schiefflin had officially declared himself an English subject, and affirmed that he did not intend to become an American citizen. After the nomination of ten persons as councilmen by the Assembly, it was prorogued by the governor, until September I6, 1799, at which time he ordered it to assemble at Cincinnati. When the Assembly convened, there was present only one member of the [94] LEGISLATURES AND LAWS. 95 council, Jacob Burnet, and but four representatives,Messrs. Goforth, McMillan, Smith, and Ludlow. By September 24 the rest of the members had arrived, and both houses organized, and continued in session till December I9, when, having finished their business, the governor, at their request, prorogued the Assembly until the first Monday of the following November. After the closing of the session, on August 20, I798, Congress passed a law removing the seat of government from Cincinnati to Chillicothe, and on November 3, 800oo, the Assembly met at that place. On November 23, I80I, the General Assembly again met at Chillicothe, continuing in session until January 23, 1802, when it was adjourned by the governor, to meet at Cincinnati on the fourth Monday of the following November. The proposed removal of the seat of government did not please the inhabitants of Chillicothe, and some of them attacked the house at which the governor and Mr. Schiefflin were boarding. The member from Detroit produced a brace of pistols, and the mob soon dispersed. Before the Assembly again convened, Congress, by law of April 30, 1802, attached what is now Michigan to Indiana Territory. The law, however, did not take full effect until certain conditions were complied with, and these were not fulfilled until March 3, 1803. Under Indiana Territory, no Legislature was provided for until called by proclamation of Governor Harrison. He fixed January 3, I805, as the time for holding an election for members of an Assembly, to meet at Vincennes on February i. The proclamation did not reach Wayne County in time, and no election was held, and no representatives sent. Other representatives assembled, and on February 7, I805, they elected ten persons, whose names were to be forwarded to the President, from which number he was to select five to constitute the council. Among the ten names sent were those of James May and James Henry of Detroit. President Jefferson declined to select, as he was unacquainted with the persons, and left the selection to Governor Harrison. Meantime, by law taking effect June 30, I805, Michigan Territory was created. The governor and the three judges, who were constituted the Legislature, met on July 4, 1805, and organized for business. The first law passed and published by them was dated July 9, I805. It described and adopted a seal for the Territory. The laws adopted by the Governor and Judges, prior to May, 1806, were adopted as a whole at that time. Most, if not all, of them had been drafted by Judge Woodward, and were designated as "the Woodward Code." They were printed in Washington, and on June I8, I807, Judge Woodward wrote to the Secretary of State that "the laws of the Territory had just arrived, and that hitherto there had been but one copy in the Territory, and of the Northwestern and Indiana laws there is not a complete copy in the Territory." In view of their official position, the disregard of the Sabbath by the Governor and Judges is especially noticeable. On Sunday, February 26, I809, one of the judges introduced a bill, which was read three times and passed; other sessions were also held on the Sabbath. Many of their sessions were held in Richard Smyth's tavern, on Woodward Avenue, near Woodbridge Street. There was constant disagreement and trouble between Governor Hull and Judge Woodward; and on all points of difference, the vote generally stood Hull and Bates, or Witherell, against Woodward and Griffin. Judge Woodward also disagreed with Stanley Griswold, the secretary of the Territory. On March, 17, 808, he wrote as follows concerning the governor and the secretary: I have found it embarrassing and almost an impossible task to avoid the enmity of their respective adherents, according as I happen to be succcssively suspected of favoring the one or the other. The only mode I could adopt was to avoid, as far as practicable, plrticular intercourse with both. For sixteen months past I have had no intercourse whatever with the secretary, and for about eight months none with the governor. Among the curiosities of the legislation of this period was the passage of an Act on September 14, 18 o, "To regulate the internal government and police of the several districts of the Territory of Michigan." It provided for the election of five selectmen, or councilors, in each district, with power "to provide for the support of the poor, for the maintenance and repair of roads and bridges, and, generally, for the internal government and police of the district, for the education of youth, and for these and other purposes shall levy and collect rates and taxes." Under this Act, Richard Smyth, Gabriel Godfroy, Sr., Peter Desnoyers, Augustus B. Woodward, and James McCloskey were elected for the district of Detroit, on October 8, I8i I, and in I812 the same persons were serving, except that H. J. Hunt had taken the place of A. B. Woodward. The Governor and Judges seemed to have a morbid fear that some of the old English laws would remain in force, and therefore, at intervals of every few years, a new Act was passed, abolishing. either specifically or generally, all Acts of the English Parliament. An Act of February 21, 1821 (page 800, section 12, of Volume I. of Territorial Laws), repeals "so much of any law, or supposed law, as might operate to require four knights girt with swords to be on the jury for the trial of the issue, joined in an action of right, be, and the same is abolished, abrogated, and repealed." An Act of May I, 1820 (page 586, Volume I.), abolished trial by battle, and this was again specifically abolished 96 LEGISLATURES AND LAWS. by law of February 21, 1821 (page 802). As late as April I2, 1827, a law gravely provided that "the benefit of clergy shall be, and the same is hereby abolished." The term "clergy," originally limited to ecclesiastics, had long been construed to mean any person who could read, and all such, at one time, were exempt from capital punishment. Between I820 and 1824, a few laws were adopted, and printed in pamphlet form. The following judges, with the governor, or the secretary of the Territory as acting governor, constituted the Legislature: I805 to November, I806, A. B. Woodward, F. Bates, John Griffin; November, I806, to October, i808, A. B. Woodward, John Griffin; October, I808, to June 7, 1824, A. B. Woodward, John Griffin, James Witherell. The following persons acted as secretaries to the governor and judges in their legislative capacity: I805 to 1807, Peter Audrain; 1807 to 1814, Joseph Watson; 1814 to i817, Geo. McDougall; I817, John Stockton; 1 88 to 1823, A.G. Whitney; 1823 to 1825, E. A. Brush. Many of the doings of the Governor and Judges were so utterly devoid of justice and such a mockery of government that the inhabitants, almost en masse, were enraged and disgusted. There is abundant evidence that the picture of their misdoings could scarcely be overdrawn. So intolerable did their action become that John Gentle, in 1807, published in The Philadelphia Aurora and Pittsburgh Gazette a series of articles detailing the grievances of the people in language that was far from being of the tenor the author's name might indicate. These articles criticized not only the doings of the Governor and Judges as legislators, but also their court proceedings and their actions as a Land Board; and intimated that they were controlling for their own pecuniary advantage the lots in the city and the Ten-Thousand-Acre Tract, and that the Detroit Bank was a scheme designed to further the same object. Governor Hull and Judge Woodward especially were charged with intrigue, deception, and untruth; and the charges were apparently proven. It was believed by many of the people that Hull was in league with Aaron Burr, and that his design was to impoverish the people and drive them out of the Territory, that his plans might be more easily carried out; some even affected to believe, or did believe, that the burning of the town the day before the arrival of the Governor and Judges was a part of their conspiracy. It was claimed in the articles of Mr. Gentle, and also in other published articles, that Governor Hull fabricated stories of Indian attacks and excited false alarms, in order to divert the thoughts of the people from his wrong-doing. It does not appear that Governor Hull made any published reply to the articles of Mr. Gentle; he cer tainly did not in the paper which contained the charges. In I808 Judge Woodward replied in a series of articles published also in the Pittsburgh Commonwealth. His defence consisted chiefly in attributing the articles to spite, caused by the rejection of the author's claim for a donation lot, and in denying that he was in any way interested in lands. The records, however, show that, if not then interested, he soon after became an extensive owner of real estate in this region; and though a desire for retaliation may have incited the articles of Gentle, their truthfulness, at least in the main, must be conceded. Judge Woodward made no attempt to defend Governor Hull; on the contrary, he intimated strongly that the governor was interested in the Detroit Bank, as a matter of speculation, and conceded that he had been precipitate in erecting fortifications and stockades. The charges of Mr. Gentle seem more than half proven by the lame defence of Judge Woodward, and by his testimony in regard to Governor Hull. In so far as Woodward was concerned, the articles in the Detroit Gazette of October and November, 1822, many of them written by James D. Doty, afterwards Governor of Wisconsin, show that Woodward's conduct was so unexampled, so extravagantly illegal, that any one in official position, who, having the power to prevent or expose his action, neglected to do so, must have been either in sympathy with him or cowardly in the extreme. At the time Mr. Gentle published his articles, there was no paper issued in Detroit. Gentle says he published a portion of one of the articles in Detroit. John L. Talbot, in his sketch of early times, written nearly forty years ago, says this was done by writing each article, which was then " hung out dur. ing the day from the houses, guarded by arms, and taken in at night." The fact that they were resisted and defied in De. troit greatly exasperated the Governor and Judges. Mr. Gentle was attacked in his own house by some of their friends, but was protected by Mr. Campau. It is stated in the Gazette for November I, 1823, that he was indicted for libel. "When arraigned, he plead that he was guilty of the writing and publishing, and offered to prove the truth of every fact stated." In those days, however, the truth of a libel could not be given in evidence, and he was found guilty. The majority of the people, however, did not approve of the verdict. One of his articles says: A meeting of the citizens of Detroit was again called to draft a memorial to the general government, praying for redress of our grievances. E. B. and G. McD., who still remained neuter, now came forward (or rather were sent forward by the governor), and declared in favor of the people, and by the force of their eloquence changed the intention of the meeting into a resolve that a committee be chosen to draft an impeachment against Judges Woodward and Bates, and they had the address to have themselves LEGISLATURES AND LAWS. 97 chosen on the committee, along with James Abbott, J. Harvey, and H. R. Martin. The committee sat at Mr. B.'s, and labored several days, framing the impeachment. All on a sudden, Mr. B. was appointed by the governor treasurer of the Territory, in place of Judge Bates, and G. McD. was appointed clerk of the district court. Progress of the impeachment was then by degrees relaxed, till at last it was totally abandoned. A memorial, signed by about four hundred inhabitants, dated September I, I808, was, however, sent to the President, praying for the removal of Hull and Woodward, but it was unheeded. The Governor and Judges were empowered, by the Act appointing them, to "adopt" such of the laws of the original thirteen States as they deemed best suited to the needs of the Territory. That they violated both the letter and the spirit of the ordinance of 1787 is abundantly evident. Instead of merely adopting laws from some of the original States, they would take the title of the Act from laws of one State and parts of Acts from laws of different States, and this so frequently that the origin of a territorial law could not be traced. The following statement may be taken as almost literally true. They would "parade the laws of the original States before them on the table, and cull letters from the laws of Maryland; syllables from the laws of Virginia, words from the laws of New York, sentences from the laws of Pennsylvania, verses from the laws of Kentucky, and chapters from the laws of Connecticut." And many times they did not trouble themselves to make selections from laws of the original States, but used any that they could find. After a full and candid examination of the whole subject, I have no doubt that even the following statement of Mr. Gentle was true: Several attempts were made about this time, December, I8o6, by the Governor and Judges to revive and introduce, for the wellbeing and good government of this Territory, that famous code of ancient and provincial laws, by the New England folks, commonly distinguished by the appellation of the Blue Laws of Connecticut. The governor first presented his version to the Legislature, and after the usual routine of disputation, it was rejected by his associates, we suppose, for its tyrannical and destructive tendency. But we were, as usual, egregiously mistaken; for the day following Judge Woodward displayed a second edition, enlarged and improved, which covered the surface of several sheets of paper, exhibiting, at one view, the most refined system of barbarity methodized that was ever proposed, even by the ringleader of a den of thieves for the government of banditti. The transmigration into this Territory of the aforesaid Blue Laws of Connecticut, revised, enlarged, and improved, "as far as necessary, and suitable to the circumstances of Michigan," excited serious alarm. We went forward in great numbers to the legislative board, and manifested our disapprobation and abhorrence of this diabolical system of subordination by horrid grins and dismal smiles, expressive, although symbolically, of our aversion to, and disbelief in, the doctrine of non-resistance and passive obedience. Finding, by the reports of their spies, that the sentiments entertained by the people out of doors coincided with the grimaces of those within doors, the Governor and Judges deemed it expedient to postpone the adoption of the Blue Laws until a more convenient season. They made laws themselves, and frequently passed 7 them without deliberation. A single judge would draw up a law, and then carry it around to the lodgings of the other judges to be there signed. The governor, on one occasion, undertook to sign a law, and publish it, without the requisite majority of the board. The judges pronounced this a violation of the law, and a contest arose. The governor issued an inflammatory proclamation, calling the military to his aid; the judges declared his action calumnious, denounced him for calling for aid from the military authorities, and decided that if they granted the mandamus, requested by the law in question, they would subvert their own decisions. This ended the matter, and the dignity of the court was finally sustained. The judges often submerged their dignity and reversed their own decisions, but they had no idea of allowing others to do it for them. Though the Governor and Judges observed no regular place or time of meeting for official duties, the time for refreshments was duly observed, as the following authentic copy of a bill against the Territory clearly shows: October 28, i8o6. TERRITORY OF i\ICHIGAN. To James May, Dr. Six bottles of cyderSept. 9, for use of Legislature, is 6s Six black bottles " " ( " I s 6d gs Three pint tumblers, double flint cut, " los LI Ios Six bottles cyder September 13, for use of " 6s During the winter of I808-I809, while Judge Woodward was absent at Washington, under the supervision of Judge Witherell many radical changes were made in the laws, forty-four new Acts were passed, and what was called the Witherell Code, took the place of the Woodward Code. When Judge Woodward returned, he refused to recognize the legality of the Acts passed in his absence, asserting that they were not properly attested, and the business of the courts was greatly deranged. In connection with this difficulty, on August 24, I8Io, Judge Witherell introduced the following preamble and resolution: Whereas, by the most extraordinary and unwarrantable stretch of power ever attempted to be exercised by the Judiciary over the Legislature and a free government, two of the judges of the Supreme Court of this Territory, at the September term of said Court in 1809, did declare and decide on the bench of said court, in their judicial capacity, that the laws adopted and published the preceding winter, by the Governor and two of the Judges of said Territory, were unconstitutional, and not binding on the people of the said Territory, under the frivolous pretext that they were signed only by the Governor as presiding officer; and whereas, by the said declaration and decision of the said judges, the peace and happiness, the rights and interests, of the good people of this Territory have been and are still very much disturbed and put in jeopardy; and whereas the good people of this Territory, after nearly one year and a half acquaintance with the said laws, have manifested strong wishes that the same, with a few exceptions, should be continued in operation in the said Territory, in order to effect which and remove all doubt on the subject, Resolved, that the Governor and Judges, or a majority of them, do proceed immediately to sign said laws. 98 LEGISLATURES AND LAWS. This resolution was considered and rejected; and for nearly a year there ensued alternate victory and defeat for both parties. Finally Judge Witherell triumphed, at least in part; and many of the laws in question are embraced in the reprint of the territorial laws. It should be mentioned here that the severest criticisms were applied to the doings of the legislative board before Judge Witherell was appointed. In I816, during the administration of Governor Cass, some entire laws, and portions of others, were collected, and printed at Detroit in one volume, and this was designated as the Cass Code. In 1820 they were again collected, and those printed at that time are known as the Code of 1820." In the winter of i819, and until November 27, 1820, Judge Woodward absented himself entirely from the legislative board. Judge Griffin took no interest in the revision of the laws and drew up but one statute. He is quoted as having said that the others made a mere drudge of him. The eccentricities of Judge Woodward became at length utterly unbearable. The people were weary of being governed by four men, none of whom were chosen by themselves. From being restive they became determined. On March II, 1822, a meeting was held at the Council House to petition Congress "to separate the judicial from the legislative power, and to vest the latter in a certain number of our citizens." A petition was duly drawn up and forwarded, setting forth the fact that Congress had failed to correct or review the acts of the Governor and Judges, except in the single instance of the Act incorporating the Bank of Detroit and praying them to take action in behalf of the people. On October 26, 1822, a numerously signed call brought the citizens together in the Council House, and again a committee was appointed to draw up a petition to Congress. The names of the committee were, John Biddle, A. E. Wing, John L. Leib, James McCloskey, A. G. Whitney, Shubael Conant, Richard Smyth, John S. Roby, David C. McKinstry, Louis Dequindre, Calvin Baker, John Meldrum, John P. Sheldon, Ebenezer Reed. In January, I823, they sent to the Judiciary Committee of Congress what was called a "statement of facts," giving reasons why a change in the government of the Territory was necessary. Their statement, printed in the Detroit Gazette for January 24, 1823, says: The legislative board do not meet to do business at the time fixed by their own statutes for that purpose, and they have no known place of meeting; and when they do meet, no public notice of the time or place is given; and when that can be ascertained by inquiry, they are found sometimes at private rooms or offices, where none have a right, and few except those immediately interested in the passage of the laws have the assurance to intrude themselves, or can find room or seats if they should. Laws are frequently passed and others repealed, which take effect fron the date, and vitally affect the rights of the citizens, and are not promulgated or made known to the community for many months. This statement of facts was effective, and on March 3, 1823, Congress enacted that the government of the Territory be transferred to the governor and a council. The people were to elect eighteen persons, from whom the President was to select nine, who should, on confirmation of the Senate, constitute the Council of the Territory. The mail which arrived at Detroit at noon on Thursday, March 27, I823, brought the news of the passage of this law. Colonel Smyth, of the Sagina Hotel, was at once requested by several citizens to prepare a supper. At sunset Captain Woodworth's company fired a federal salute, with an extra gun or two for Michigan; and at eight o'clock there was music and firing of guns and crackers. Supper was served soon after, Governor Cass presiding. On June 7, I824, the first territorial council was held in Detroit. One of the sessions was opened with prayer by Rev. Father Richard, the Catholic priest, who prayed that " the legislators may make laws for the people, and not for themselves,"-a prayer that might be appropriately made at every session of a legislative body. By Act of February 5, I825, provision was made for increasing the size of the council by the election of twenty-six persons, from whom the President was to select thirteen, to constitute the council. By Act of April I2, 1825, Wayne County was made the first district, and was to elect eight of the twenty-six persons whose names were to be forwarded to the President. By Act, approved January 29, 1827, the people were authorized to elect thirteen persons, who should constitute the council, without requiring the approval or confirmation of the President. The passage of this Act caused much rejoicing. The members of the legislative council from Wayne County were as follows: First Legislative Council, June 7, 1824, Abraham Edwards. Second Legislative Council, November 2, 1826, Abraham Edwards, Henry Connor, Robert A. Forsyth. Third Legislative Council, May 5, 1828, Henry Connor, William Brown, Abraham Edwards, John McDonnell. Fourth Legislative Council, May II, I830, William Brown, William Bartow, John McDonnell, William A. Fletcher. Fifth Legislative Council, May i, 1832, John McDonnell, Joseph W. Torrey, Charles Moran. Sixth Legislative Council, January 7, 1834, Charles Moran, John McDonnell, Elon Farnsworth. A second session of the sixth legislative council was held at Detroit, lasting from August 17 to 25. I835. They passed an Act providing for the elec. LEGISLATURES AND LAWS. 99 tion of a delegate to Congress, together with numerous other Acts. What is sometimes designated as the seventh legislative council was held at Green Bay from January 6 to 13, I836. It was called by proclamation of John S. Horner, acting governor, in order to petition Congress to provide for the organization of the Territory of Wisconsin. A memorial was also adopted to be presented to Congress for an appropriation to secure the improvement of the Fox and Wisconsin rivers. Only three counties, in what was afterwards Wisconsin, were represented in the council, viz., Brown, Milwaukee, and Crawford. The Territory now known as Iowa was also represented. Governor Horner not being present, Colonel W. S. Hamilton was chosen president. A. G. Ellis was secretary. In 1824 the legislative board published a compilation of the laws then in force. Most of the copies of these early laws have disappeared, and a complete set of all the laws cannot now be found. In 1833 the laws were again condensed, arranged, and published by the legislative council. On March 8, 1836, William A. Fletcher was appointed to prepare a code of laws for the State. He was afterwards appointed chief justice, and Messrs. E. B Harrington and E. Y. Roberts were appointed by the governor to complete the work. At an extra session of the Legislature the revisions were accepted, and became the law of the State in September, 1838. In 1846, by authority of the Legislature, Judge Sanford M. Green prepared a revision of the laws, which is known as the " Revised Statutes of 1846." In 1857 Thomas M. Cooley prepared a compilation in two volumes, which is designated as the "Compiled Laws of 1857." In 1871 Judge James S. Dewey, by authority of the Legislature, prepared a similar compilation, which was published in two volumes, under the title of " Compiled Laws of I871." By law of May 4, 1883, a compilation prepared by Judge Andrew Howell, of Adrian, was authorized to be received as evidence, and the purchase of nine thousand copies, at five dollars each, was ordered. The laws of each session are published at Lansing, and since 1871 they have been somewhat systematized when published, by issuing the private and local laws in one volume and the general laws in another. Copies of all the laws are sent to the county clerk, who furnishes them free of charge to all judges and justices, regents of the university, county officers, to the supervisor and town clerk of each township, and also to the city clerk. In 1871 and 1874 copies of such territorial laws as could be obtained were published by the State, in three volumes. The compilation, however, is incomplete, in that it omits all the laws passed at the second session of the sixth legislative council. A list of early laws, known to be missing, is given in one of the volumes; since then a number of them have been found. Under a provision of the Constitution of 1835, and anticipating admission as a State, one regular and one extra session of the Legislature was held in 1835 and 1836, before the State was formally admitted to the Union. The first regular State Legislature began its session January 2, 1837. Annual sessions were held up to 1851, since which time, in accordance with the Constitution of I850, regular sessions have been held every two years. The last regular session in Detroit closed on March 17, 1847. The sessions since then have been held at Lansing, which city, after that year, became the State capital. Up to 1883 nine extra sessions had been held, the occasions for them and their dates being as follows: In 185I, to provide for paying the indebtedness of the State and for a new legislative and congressional apportionment, also to provide for elections and other matters made necessary by the new constitution. In 1858, to redistrict the State for circuit courts, and to provide for paying State bonds. In I86I, to provide men and means for the war then in progress, and to furnish relief for families of volunteers. In I862, to consider the question of assuming a portion of the direct tax proposed to be levied by the United States, and to provide for enrolling the militia. In I864, to provide for filling the State quota of troops, to provide a State bounty, and to arrange for receiving the votes of soldiers in the field. In 1870, to provide for submitting an amendment to the constitution, authorizing payment, by counties, of bonds voted by them in aid of proposed railroads. In 1872, to make new apportionments for representatives to Congress, and provide for investigation of the State land office. In 1874, to provide for extending time of completion of railroad from Mackinaw to Marquette, and to make provision for submitting the question of woman suffrage at a State election. In 1882, to make a new congressional apportionment, provide a new tax law, and to aid sufferers by fires in Eastern Michigan. By Constitution of 1835, the State House of Representatives was to consist of not less than forty-eight nor more than one hundred members. The Senate was to number, as near as possible, one third as many members as the House. Under Constitution of I850, the House was to consist of not less than sixty-four nor more than one hundred, and the Senate was to have thirty-two members. By an amendment to the constitution, adopted November 8, 1874, the House of Representatives may consist of not less than sixty-four nor more than one hundred persons. No township or city may be divided to form representative districts; but all, I00 LEGISLATURES~ AND LAWS. L from each city, are to be elected on a general ticket. Counties entitled to more than one representative, are to be divided for election purposes, by the Board of Supervisors. Wayne County has always been in the first senatorial district of the State. The convention of 1835 provided that it alone should constitute the first district, with three senators. By law of April 3, 1838, the first district was to have but two senators. By law of April 12, I841, Wayne, Macomb, St. Clair, Sanilac, and Huron Counties were constituted the first senatorial district. By Act of March O1, 1846, the first district was composed of Wayne, Macomb, and St. Clair Counties. An Act of June 27, I85I, provided that Wayne County should be divided into several districts, as follows: First District: Third, Fourth, Sixth, and Seventh Wards, Hamtramck and Grosse Pointe. Second District: First, Second, Fifth and Eighth Wards, Springwells, Greenfield, Ecorce, and Monguagon. Third District: Brownstown, Huron, Sumpter, Taylor, Romulus, Van Buren, Canton, Plymouth, Livonia, Nankin, I)earborn, and Redford. By Act of February 13, 1855, Wayne County was divided as follows: First District: Third, Fourth, and Seventh Wards, Hamtramck, and Grosse Pointe. Second District: Second, Fifth, and Sixth Wards. Third District: First and Eighth \Vards, Greenfield, Springwells, Ecorce, and Monguagon. Fourth District: Plymouth, Livonia, Redford, Dearborn, Nankin, Canton, Van Buren, Romulus, Taylor, Brownstown, Huron, and Sumpter. By Acts of March 15, I86i, and May I, 1875, the districts in Wayne County were as follows: First District: Second, Third, Fourth, Seventh, and Tenth Wards, Greenfield, Hamtramck, and Grosse Pointe. Second District: First, Fifth, Sixth, Eighth, and Ninth Wards. Third District: All towns except the three above named. The names of State senators from Wayne County in various years have been as follows: I835-I837, John McDonnell, Conrad Ten Eyck, Jonathan D. Davis. 1838-1839, B. B. Kercheval, Wm. Woodbridge, John McDonnell. I840-1841, De Garmo Jones, B. F. H. Witherell. 1842, Jonathan Shearer, Lyman Granger. 1843- I 844 Jonathan Shearer. 1845-1846, William Hale. 1847, A. T. McReynolds, John E. Schwartz. I848, John E. Schwartz, Geo. R. Griswold. 1849, Geo. R. Griswold, Titus Dort. 1850-I85I, A. Harvey, Titus Dort. 1853, G. R. Griswold, A. H. Stowell, H. Fralick. I855, 13. Wight, G. Jerome, N. Ladd. 1857, A. H. Redfield, Geo. Jerome. H. Ledyard, J. L. Near. I859. A. Dudgeon, H. Barns, T. F. Brodhead, W. E. Warner. I86I, William Adair, H. P. Baldwin, H. T. Backus, J. L. Near. 1863, Wm. Adair, W. C. Duncan, W. E. Warner. 1865, Wm. Adair, Joseph Godfrey, Adam Minnis. 1867, Paul Gies, Alanson Sheley, Oliver C. Abell. 1869, Wm. Adair, Lorenzo M. Mason, Elliot T. Slocum. 1871, James W. Romeyn, Alanson Sheley, Robt. I). Briggs. 1873, W. B1. Wesson, I). M. Richardson, W. C. Sutton. 1875, Win. Adair, John Greusel, James I. David. 1877, Wm. Adair, Thos. H. Hinchman, Matthew Markey. 1879, J. 1). Weir, T. W. Palmer, W. W. Duffield. 1881, James Caplis, John Greusel, Thos. Morrison. 1883, James W. Romeyn, John Greusel, James Hueston. 1885. Michael Greiner, T. D. Hawley, James Hueston. 1887, John Rairden, C. B. Crosby, B. O'Reilly. The convention of 1835 provided that Wayne County should have eight representatives. Subsequent apportionments have given it the following number of representatives: Act of 1838, seven. Acts of I841 and I846, six. Act of 1851, seven. Acts of I855, i86I, and I87I, nine. Act of I875, ten. The names of representatives have been as follows: I835-1836, Peter Van Every, Chas. W. Whipple, Jonathan P. Foy, Ammon Brown, H. A. Noyes, Geo. W. Ferrington, John Strong, Eli Bradshaw. 1837, Chas. W. Whipple, Wm. Munger, Job Smith, John Martin, Ammon Brown, N. P. Thayer, Caleb Herrington, Geo. W. Ferrington. 1838, A. W. Buel, Louis Beaufait, Levi Cook, L. Goodman, J. M. Howard, Joshua Howard, Chas. Moran, Theodore Williams. 1839, Louis Beaufait, J. L. Near, A. Mack, Harry Saunders, Ebenezer Eaton, T. F. Sheldon, Titus Dort. 1840, Chas. Moran, Joshua Howard, D. E. Harbaugh, A. T. McReynolds, H. T. Backus, Wm. S. Gregory, John Forbes. 1841, John Biddle, A. T. Mather, F. A. Harding, Roswell Root, Eurotas Morton, L. E. Dolsen, Shadrach Gillett. I842, Titus Dort, James Gunning, Thos. Lewis, John Norvell, John Scott, B. F. H. Witherell. LEGISLATURE~S AND LAWIS. IOI LEGISLATURES AND LAWS. I0I~~~~~~~~~~~~~ I843, Geo. A. O'Keefe, D. H. Rowland, J. C. Vaughan, P. Godfroy, A. Y. Murray, D. Goodell. 1844, John V. Ruehle, Jr., H. N. Walker, John Blindbury, Harry Saunders, Elijah Hawley, Jr., David H. Rowland. 1845, Andrew Harvie, W\m. 0. Rose, John E. Schwartz, Arch. Y. Murray, Wm. Munger, N. W. Pullen. 1846, G. E. Hand, George Moran, Conrad Ten Eyck, Elijah Hawley, Jr., M. E. Ames, Thos. Lewis. 1847, Edward C. Eaton, Geo. W. Ferrington, Henry Fralick, James McFarlane, Geo. W. Moore, Geo. B. Throop. 1848, Jed. P. C. Emmons, Cyrus Howard, Bethuel Noyes, Hiram H. Stone, Abram P. Young, A. W. Buel. I849, Wm. F. Chittenden, Orrin David, E. Hawley, Jr., George Moran, Amos Stevens, Warren Tuttle. I850, H. D. Carpenter, Jonathan Hudson, David Sackett, Bethuel Noyes, Asa H. Otis, Hiram Millspaugh. I851, B. F. Hyde, Jonathan Shearer, Levi Eaton, Alfred B. Gulley, Jared Sexton, George Martin. I853, First District: Wm. F. Chittenden, J. O'Callaghan, John Reno. Second District: W. W. Irwin. Third District: Thos. P. Matthews. Fourth Iistrict: W. H. Gregory. Fifth District: T. IE. Warner. 1855, First District: H. H. Wells, Pliny Power, Asa P. Moorman. Second District: F. C. St. Aubin. Third District: Chas. Noble. Fourth District: W. H. Gregory. Fifth District: Arthur Edwards. I857, First District: Shelidon MclKnight, C. O'Flynn, M. A. Chase, E. Kanter, J. M. Davis. Second District: S. Ludlow. Third District: A. B. Gulley. Fourth District: W. H. Gregory. Fifth District: Wm. Munger. 1859, First District: A. W. Buel, T. J. Campau, D. P. Bushnell, John McDermott, Paul Gies. Second District: R. H. Connor. Third District: J. B. Wallace. Fourth District: Geo. A. Starkweather. Fifth District: J. I. David. I86r, First District: J. F. Joy, J. G. Peterson, Wm. Phelps, T. W. Lockwood, Wm. Chapoton. Second District: John Strong. Third District: J. S. Tibbets. Fourth District: A, J. Leetch. Fifth District: Ira Davis. 1863, First Iistrict: T. W. Lockwood, A. Chapoton, L. M. Mason, S. G. Wight, Wm. Warner. Second District: H. W. Deare. Third District: Alex. Tinham. Fourth District: B. Hodgkinson. Fifth District: R. E. Clark. 1865, First District: Wm. S. Bond, J. Logan Chipman, Paul Gies, Richard Hawley, Wm. P. Wells. Second District: Benjamin May. Third District: Titus Iort. Fourth District: John M. Swift. Fifth District: Moses R. Nowland. 1867, First District; Edward C. Walker, Thos. D. Hawley, Thos. R. Spence, Jefferson Wiley, Wm. Warner. Second District: Chas. B. Chauvin. Third District: C. C. Smith. Fourth District: Geo. W. Swift. Fifth District: Jared A. Sexton. 1869, First District: J. W. Romeyn, C. N. Riopelle, P. Klein, W. Purcell, T. W. Harris. Second District: Peter Ternes. Third District: R. V. Briggs. Fourth District: Geo. W. Swift. Fifth District: James Stewart. 1871, First District: Lyman Cochrane, W. C. Hoyt, J. Greusel, J. Gibson, James McGonegal. Second District: L. Dalton. Third District: B. Pierson. Fourth District: O. R. Pattengil. Fifth District: P. D. Pearl. 1873, First District: J. Greusel, J. Burns, H. D. Edwards, J. Caplis, J. J. Speed. Second District: M. Markey. Third District: O. O. Pierce. Fourth District: Winfield Scott. Fifth District: Henry Gordon. I875 First District. Cleaveland Hunt, James Daly, Wm. Livingston, Jr., James Craig. Peter Klein, Second District: Michael Greiner. Third District: H. N. Ocobock. Fourth District: D. B. Northrop. Fifth District: Cady Neff. 1877, First District: R. HIawley, F. A. Baker, P. McGinnis, E. F. Conely, Stephen Martin, Louis Dillman, Iaul Gies. Second District: Geo. W. Crandall. Third District: Myron Coon. Fourth District: Thos Morrison. I879, First District: A. Goebel, J. C. Donnelly, F. A. Noah, Geo. H. Hopkins, J. E. Girardin, J. Kuhn, Geo. W. Moore. Second District: F. W. A. Kurth. Third District: E. XV. Cottrell. Fourth District: Joseph WValtz. i88I, First I)istrict: Geo. H. Hopkins, Geo. B. Remick, Adam E. Bloom, Robert E. Bolger, M. V. Borgman, Chas. Ewers, Henry Klei. Second District: C. B. Hubbard, Third District: E. W. Cottrell. Fourth District: A. P. Young. 1883, First District: Geo. H. Hopkins, Robert E. Bolger, Conrad Bettinger, W. H. Coots, L. A. Brant, John Devlin, O. N. Case. Second District: H. W. Riopelle. Third District: Alexander Tinham. Fourth District: M. H. Ellis. 1885, First District: O. N. Case, L. A. Brant, L. H. Collins, F. B. Egan, H. McClelend, G. W. Walthew, J. I). Long. Second District: G. W. Coomer. Third District: C. K. Brandon. Fourth District: J. Waltz. 1887, First District: C. Bettinger, Judson Grenell, F. H. Hosford, R. Y. Ogg, T. Rentz, P. Stewart. Second District: A. B. Pierce. Third District: C. H. Cady. Fourth District: J. J. Vrooman. CHAPTER XVIII. PRESIDENTIAL ELECTORS, CABINET OFFICERS, AND MEMBERS OF CONGRESS FROM DETROIT.-PRESIDENTIAL VISITS TO THE CITY. PRESIDENTIAL ELECTORS, CABINET OFFICERS, AND MEMBERS OF CONGRESS. THE direct connection of the State and the city with the Government of the United States comes primarily through the appointment, by vote at the presidential elections, of as many presidential electors as the whole number of United States senators and representatives to which the State is to be entitled when the President elected comes into office. These presidential electors are bound by honor alone to cast the vote of the State in favor of the candidate of the ticket upon which they were elected. They are required to meet on the first Wednesday of December, in their own States, and deposit their votes. The record of their votes is then certified to and sealed, after which some one is appointed to deliver it personally to the president of the Senate, at Washington, before the first Wednesday in January following their meeting. Another copy is sent by mail to the same officer, and a third deposited with the judge of the district. The first presidential election in which Michigan participated was the thirteenth. It was held in the fall of I836, and placed Martin Van Buren in the presidential office. The names of the presidential electors of Michigan, who have lived in Detroit, are as follows: Thirteenth election, David C. McKinstry; fourteenth, none from Detroit; fifteenth, Louis Beaufait; sixteenth, L. M. Mason; seventeenth, D. J. Campau; eighteenth, none from Detroit; nineteenth, George W. Lee and Rufus Hosmer; twentieth, none from Detroit; twenty-first, William Doeltz and John Burt; twenty-second, E. B. Ward and Herman Kiefer; twenty-third, William Doeltz; twenty-fourth, E. H. Butler. All the presidential candidates voted for by Michigan have been elected except Generals Cass and Fremont and James G. Blaine, and Detroit has furnished the following cabinet officers: General Lewis Cass, Secretary of War under President Jackson, and Secretary of State under President Buchanan; Governor Robert McClelland, Secretary of Interior under President Pierce; Zachariah Chandler, Sec retary of Interior under President Grant, and Don M. Dickinson, Postmaster General under President Cleveland. Under the Northwest Territory the following persons were delegates to the United States Congress: I799-I800, W. H. Harrison; I8oo-I8oi, William McMillan; 180o-1803, Paul Fearing. During our connection with Indiana Territory W. H. Harrison was again chosen delegate. As a Territory, Michigan had no representative in Congress until, by Act of February I6, I8I9, she was authorized to elect a delegate. The following persons served as delegates for the terms named; all of them, except Messrs. Wing and Jones, were residents of Detroit: I819-1821, William Woodbridge; I821-1823, Solomon Sibley; I823-I825, Gabriel Richard; 1825-I829, A. E. Wing; I829-I831, John Biddle; 183I-I833, A. E. Wing; 1833-1835, Lucius Lyon; 1835-I836, Geo. W. Jones. United States senators are elected every six years by a majority vote of the State Legislature in joint convention. Of the sixteen different senators elected under the State organization, the following nine have been from Detroit: I836-1840, Lucius Lyon; I836-184I, John Norvell; I840-I845, A. S. Porter; 184 -I847, William Woodbridge; 1845-I857, Iewis Cass; I857-I875 and I879-188I, Zachariah Chandler; I862-I87I, Jacob M. Howard; I88I-1883, H. P. Baldwin; 1883-, Thomas W. Palmer. United States representatives for the several districts are elected directly by the people, for terms of two years. The population of the State at the time of its admission entitled it to only one representative, but its growth was such as to treble the number in 1843. The counties of Wayne, Monroe, Lenawee, Washtenaw, and Hillsdale were, by Act of March 2, I843, made the first district. The census of I850 showed that the State was entitled to four representatives, and the Act of June 26, 1851, made the first district to consist of the counties of Wayne, Washtenaw, Jackson, and Livingston. In 1861 the State had become entitled to six representatives; and an Act of March 15 provided that the first district 021 MEMBERS OF CONGRESS-PRESIDENTIAL VISITS. 103 1) should embrace the counties of Wayne, Monroe, Lenawee, and Hillsdale. The United States census of 1870 showed a population entitled to nine representatives, and an Act of March 29, 1872, made the first district to consist of Wayne County only. The census of I880 showed a population entit, -1 to eleven representatives, and the apportionment under State Law of March 14, 1882, continued Wayne County as the first district. Under the several enlargements of the number of representatives, up to I887, seventy-two different persons have been elected from Michigan, and of the whole number the following twelve were from Ietroit: David Stuart, Jacob M. Howard, Lucius Lyon, Robert McClelland, A. \V. Buel, W. A. Howard, M. W. Field, A. S. Williams, J. S. Newberry, Henry W. Lord, W. C. Maybury and J. L. Chipman. The pay of senators and representatives, under various laws, has been as follows: By law of September 22, 1789, they were each paid six dollars a day while attending the session, and six dollars for each twenty miles traveled in going to Congress. By law of March I9, I816, they were to be paid $1,500, without mileage, for each Congress attended. This law was repealed in I817, and by law of January 22, I818, each was to be paid eirht dollars a day, and eight dollars for each twenty miles traveled. By law of August 15, 1856, they were to receive $6,ooo for the two sessions, also mileage. On December 23, 1857, the law was so amended that they were to receive $250 per month and mileage. A law of March 3, 1873, fixed their pay at $7,500, with actual traveling expenses for one trip each session. PRESIDENTIAL VISITS TO THE CITY. The city has been favored, at different times, with the presence of persons who, at the time of their visit or subsequently, filled the office of President. The first was W. H. Harrison, who was in Detroit on May 10, 1803, as Governor of the Territory, again, on the first day of the re-occupation, September 29, I813, on October 6 following, and also on September 8, 1815. The first time that Detroit was honored with a presidential visit was on August 13, 1817. Unanticipated intelligence was received, about 8 A. M., that President Monroe, with Governor Cass and Generals Brown and Macomb with their suites, were at the mouth of the river, and would be within three miles of the city at ten o'clock. A rheeting of citizens was immediately called, with William Woodbridge in the chair and Major Charles Lamed as secretary, and a committee, consisting of Solomon Sibley, Major A. Edwards, Captain J. McCloskey, A. E. Wing, Charles Lamed, Colonel Stephen Mack, Captain Antoine Dequindre, and 0. W. Miller, was appointed to make suitable arrangements for a reception. At ten o'clock a large number of citizens, in carriages, on horseback, and on foot, collected at Springwells, and proceeded to the river Ecorce, where the presidential party had arrived in barges from the vessel. Solomon Sibley, on behalf of the citizens, congratulated the President on his arrival. A procession was then formed, which escorted the President to the city. When opposite Fort Shelby a salute was fired; the procession then moved on through the principal streets, escorting the President to the residence of Governor Cass. At night the city was illuminated-the bill for which, paid to Abraham Edwards by order of the Common Council, amounted to the sum of $23.26; the vessels in the harbor were tastefully decorated with lights, and there was a display of fireworks, under the direction of Lieutenant Howard of the United States Ordnance Department. The following day the city authorities waited upon the President, and an address was delivered, by Major Charles Lamed, on behalf of the city authorities and the citizens. The day after, at 8 A. M., the troops of the post, under command of Lieutenant-colonel Smith, were reviewed by the President and General Brown; after which a sword, voted by the Legislature of New York to General Macomb, was presented to him by Governor Cass. On Friday evening a ball was given at B. Woodworth's Steamboat Hotel, the President and other notables being in attendance. On Sunday President Monroe attended divine service in the old Indian council-house, located on the site now occupied by Firemen's Hall. He remained in Detroit five days, during which time he received many testimonials of regard, among which was the gift of a carriage and span of horses, presented by the city. On Monday, August 18, he was accompanied by a number of citizens to Springwells, where he embarked in a barge, to meet a vessel waiting for him at the mouth of the river. Our next visitor in this list was a vice-president, Colonel R. M. Johnson, reputed to have killed Tecumseh. He was here in attendance on a democratic meeting, held September 28, I840. Ex-President Martin Van Buren made Detroit a visit on Friday, July 8, 1842, on his return from a trip to Lake Superior. The steamer Fairport, bearing a party of citizens, went up to Lake St. Clair, and met the Great Western, on whlich he was a passenger. The two boats were lashed together, and Major Kearsley, chairman of the committee of arrangements, welcomed the noted politician and ex-president. At 3 P. WM. the boats arrived at the city, where Mr. Van Buren was welcomed by Mayor 1o4 PRESIDENTIAL VISITS TO THE CITY Houghton and Governor Barry. A procession of citizens and military was then formed, and he was escorted through the principal streets to the American Hotel. A company gathered on the upper balcony, and he replied at some length to an address by Alderman Ten Eyck. In the evening, and also on Saturday morning, a reception was held at the hotel, and on Saturday evening Mayor Houghton gave him a reception at the residence of Dr. Pitcher. On Sunday morning Mr. Van Buren attended the Methodist Church, and in the afternoon visited the Roman Catholic and Episcopal Churches; in the evening another reception was held at the hotel. On Monday morning he visited Ann Arbor, returning in the afternoon, when a fourth address was made by John B. Schick, on behalf of the German citizens. At 8 P. M., on Monday, he took his departure for Cleveland on the steamer Fairport, receiving a parting salute of twenty-six guns. In I845, General Zachary Taylor, afterwards twelfth President of the United States, was here on a visit to Captain Joseph Taylor, his brother, then stationed at Detroit. President Grant at one time lived in Detroit, as the accompanying letter shows. On his first arrival Lieutenant Grant boarded at the National Hotel. In July, 1849, he moved to the house, still standing on its original site, known as No. 253 Fort Street East. From there he moved to what, in later years, was known as the Bacon House, which he occupied in company with Captain Gore. The house stood on the northeast corner of Russell Street and Jefferson Avenue. It was sold and moved away in I873. C. R. Bacon has in his possession part of a pane of glass, from one of the chamber windows, on which is the name "Lieutenant U. S. Grant.;" it is believed that he traced it while an occupant of the house. His occupancy of the Fort Street house is verified by the fact that the directory for I850 contains the following: "Grant, Lieutenant U. S. A. N. S. Fort street bet. Russell and Rivard." The Free Press of May 25, I850, contained this advertisement: For Sale, Rent, or Erchange - A two-story dwelling-house on Fort Street, between Rivard and Russell Streets, now occupied by Lieutenant Grant of the U. S. A. Possession given immediately. For further particulars inquire of G. M. Rich, on the corner of Fort and Randolph Streets. Captain Grant left Detroit on June 10, 185i, as is evident from the following item in the Detroit Daily Advertiser of June I, I851: THE DEPARTURE.-Captain Grant and Lieutenant McConnell, U. S. Army, left this city yesterday to form the command at Sackett's Harbor, accompanied by the band of the 4th Infantry. The date of departure given in his letter is evidently the date of the order to depart received by him. On many occasions General Grant has shown a lively interest in the welfare of his old home. His remembrance of old acquaintances in Detroit has always been hearty and appreciative. Even those not personally acquainted have noticed his glad recognition of former citizenship. The writer well remembers the morning of December 16, 1864. Having called at the White House to see Mr. Nicolay, the President's secretary, I was directed by the porter to go up stairs. Reaching the landing 1 found the doors leading from the hall all closed, with no indication as to which might give admittance to Mr. Nicolay. Retracing my steps, I said to the porter, " The doors are all closed, and I did not find him." A cheerful, bright-faced boy near by said, "I think I can find him. Come up stairs again." And up we went, he with a sort of flying leap, as though he felt at home, and surely he had a right, for he was none other than "little Tad." I have always been glad for this brief knowledge of one so dear to "our Lincoln." Opening the door of one of the rooms, Tad called out, "Is Nick here? " (_GENEKRAI. GRANT'S OLD HOME ON F()1o'i S.'REE'T. The reply was, "He is at the War Department." To the War Department I went, and there learned that Grant had come from the army, then before Richmond, and was in consultation with Lincoln and Stanton in an adjoining room. Possibly a dozen persons were waiting in the corridor. Very soon Mr. Stanton came out, and immediately after followed the tall, thin form of Lincoln-thinner and homelier than any representation I have ever seen; mL LR FM G AL -. S. GRA FAC-SIMILE OF LETTER FROM GE:NERAL U. S. GRANT. Io6 PRESIDENTIAL VISITS TO THE CITY. - his eyes were sad, and manner burdened. Stanton made some remark, which did not reach my ear. Instantly Mr. Lincoln responded, in a tone vibrant with anxiety and care, and almost harsh in its imperiousness, "What's that, Mr. Secretary?" A moment more, and he was gone. Immediately after General Grant appeared, and there was at once a rush to greet him. One gentleman stepped up, saying, " I am from New Hampshire; we occasionally hear of you up there." "Ah," said Grant, " I hope you '11 hear of me in Richmond soon." I then gave my residence. "From Ietroit?" said he. "Why, I used to live there once. Have you seen Charley Trowbridge lately?" The name of Detroit proved a passport to his attention, and he evinced great willingness to hear of his old home. It so happened that a detailed account of General Sherman's advance on Savannah had appeared that morning for the first time; the papers were also full of General Thomas' victory over Hood. To an allusion to the good news from Sherman he replied, "Yes, and General Thomas is doing splendidly, splendidly." On August 12, I865, he visited Detroit, and received a welcome that must have been gratifying. He was accompanied by his wife and four children. At Port Huron he was met by a committee which had gone there for the purpose, and on reaching Detroit, at II A. M., he was greeted by immense throngs, which almost blockaded the streets. In the evening he held a reception at the Biddle House, where addresses were made by Theodore Romeyn and Jacob M. Howard. Later in the evening he visited Ex-Governor Cass. On Sunday he attended St. Paul's Church. Monday morning, with a party of about one hundred, he enjoyed an excursion on the United States steamer Michigan. In the evening Senator Chandler gave a reception in his honor; and at 4 P. MI. on Tuesday he departed from the city. On June 15 and I6, 1882, he again visited Detroit, participating in the reunion of the Army of the Potomac. On September 27, I849, Vice-President Millard Fillmore paid a visit to Detroit. He was the guest of Mayor Howard, who gave a reception in the evening. Franklin Pierce, the fourteenth President, was here one day, and part of another, in June, I86I, on a visit to Ex-Secretary McClelland. Andrew Johnson came September 4, 1866, while "swinging round the circle" and " upholding the Constitution" in true stump-speaker style. President Hayes, with his wife and two sons, accompanied by General W. T. Sherman, arrived September I8, I879. The mayor, George C. Langdon, with a party of citizens, went down to Grosse Isle to meet the steamer Northwest, which was on her way to Detroit with the presidential party. The steamer was hailed, the reception party taken on board, and the President duly welcomed. A response was made by General Sherman. On reaching Detroit, at 9 A. M., the party proceeded to the residence of Ex-Governor Baldwin, by whom they were entertained. About eleven o'clock, escorted by the military, the party visited the Fair Grounds, where the President delivered an address. While Mrs. Hayes was on the grounds, Messrs. Pingree & Smith, leading shoe manufacturers, caused the measure of her foot to be taken, and an elegant pair of French kid buttoned boots were cut out, made, and presented to her,- all the work being done in twenty-three minutes. In the evening a reception took place in the lower corridor of the City Hall, which was eleantly decorated for the occasion. An immense throng was in attendance. The following day President Hayes visited the Fair Grounds, Recreation Park, and the National Pin Factory. A reception was given at Ex-Governor Baldwin's in the evening, and the following night the party left the city. Our city was honored more than we then knew by the presence of the lamented Garfield. He visited Detroit no less than four times, on two occasions, at least, accompanied by Mrs. Garfield. At each visit he was the guest of Richard Hawley. His first visit was probably in the summer of I863. In company with Mrs. R. Hawley, J. G. and T. D. Hawley, he and his wife went to Marquette, returning to Detroit the latter part of September or early in October. On the way down, two of the boat's crew quarrelled, and were just about to attack each other, one being armed with a knife, and the other with a heavy bar of wood or iron. Word was brought to the captain, who seemed to hesitate; not so the strong-armed Garfield, who, rushing below, laid hold of the men with a power that thoroughly subdued them, then flung them apart, and the strife was ended. One Sunday afternoon in the summer of 1864, probably in August, he spoke briefly in the Jefferson Avenue Christian Church. In the evening he spoke from Romans xiii., 1-7, on the general subject of the duty of the Christian to the State, or "Christianity in its Relation to Civil Government." On one of his visits, believed to be this one, he delivered a political address in Merrill Hall. On another occasion, in the fall of i866, he again spoke in the Jefferson Avenue Christian Church. Rev. A. J. Hobbs, then pastor of the church, says, " He was with us on Lord's day. He declined to occupy the pulpit, morning or evening, but consented to speak at the communion meeting in the afternoon. His subject was, 'Christ, the Tried Stone.' The Scripture was Isaiah xxviii., PRESIDENTIAL VISITS TO THE CITY. I07 I6, 'Behold, I lay in Zion for a foundation a stone, a tried stone, a precious corner stone, a sure foundation, he that believeth shall not make haste.' He described the various practical tests to which building stones are subjected, to prove their capability of resisting heat or frost, moisture or pressure. He then reviewed the tests to which Jesus Christ had been subjected, and at last the final tests of Gethsemane and of the cross, showing thus his true divinity and fitness to be the foundation of the temple of God. The whole discourse was instruc tive, impressive, tender, and calculated to prepare his hearers for a joint participation, with himself, in the Lord's Supper, which was then celebrated." Mrs. John Harvey has a clear remembrance of the sermon, as has also J. S. Gray, who recalls the circumstance of walking with him to church, their way taking them past the present City Hall, whose foundations were then being laid. It was undoubtedly those very foundation stones that suggested the theme of his brief but well-remembered discourse. CHAPTER XIX. POLITICAL PARTIES AND CAMPAIGNS. -ELECTIONS. POLITICAL PARTIES AND CAMPAIGNS. THE American system of government is based upon the supposition that the people will always feel enough interest in the management of local and national affairs to provide for certain preliminaries for elections without being required to do so by statute. The primary elements in all elections are the nominations, and these are usually arranged by selfappointed committees, or by committees appointed at a political meeting. A caucus is held, and nominations made vi(a voce, by ballot, or by selecting delegates to a nominating convention. The expenses of conventions and public meetings, including the printing of tickets, etc., are voluntarily provided for by the various candidates. The expenses directly connected with the holding of an election, such as the providing of polling places, publishing registration lists, and paying inspectors and clerks, are defrayed by the city. The following caucus notice of the olden time, before party politics governed city elections, is from the Detroit Gazette: City Election.-The citizens of Detroit are requested to meet at the Hotel of Captain Benjamin Woodworth to-morrow evening, at candle lighting, for the purpose of taking into consideration the propriety of forming a ticket, to be supported at the election of corporation officers, on Monday next. DETROIT, Seftember 3, 1824. One of the earliest political parties bore the name of "Democratic Republicans." This party had an existence in Wayne County almost as soon as the county was organized; and even as late as I840 a call for a meeting of members of that party was published in The Detroit Free Press. The Democratic party afterwards succeeded to the first half of the old name, and about I832 the Whig party gave the first signs of vigorous life. In the interest of the latter party, Daniel Webster delivered a speech on the finances, July I, I837, in a grove on the Cass Farm, located, as the city is now laid out, near First Street, and between Fort and Congress Streets. Some fifteen hundred ladies and gentlemen were present at the meeting, after which, at 4 P. M., a dinner was served under the trees to about five hundred people. Mr. Webster, with his family, came to the city on July 8, partly to visit his son, Daniel F. Webster, a lawyer, then residing in Detroit. We of the present day have little realization of the intensity of the party feeling that existed, especially between the years I830 and I844. In the effort to win a victory at the polls, any and every method was deemed legitimate. Voters by the dozen, and even by the hundred, were imported, previous to elections, and their expenses paid. Many other methods employed in those days to influence votes were no better than those more recently in vogue. What was done, however, was done openly. The following notice is from The Advertiser, of March 30, 1838: To the Poor.-The Whigs will distribute one hundred dollars, in bread and pork, among the city poor to-morrow evening. Due notice of the hour and place will be given in the morning paper. Accordingly, on Saturday they distributed bread, pork, and fish to all who called at their headquarters; and in some instances the same persons called again and again, and their efforts to obtain as much as possible were supplemented by the efforts of others who came even from Canada to obtain a share of the bounty. On election day, April 2, both parties were out in full force; and there was an abundance of noisy music, processions, whiskey, and broken heads. Surely, we need not regret the " former times." The presidential campaign of 1840 is remembered by many as the time when, as the stump-speakers said, " the prairies were ablaze, the settlements in flames, and the woods on fire with enthusiastic zeal." " Tippecanoe and Tyler too " and " Johnson Killed Tecumseh " were the Shibboleths of the two parties, and almost every four corners in the west lhad its Tippecanoe club, with log-cabin and hard cider. On April 1 5, 1840, a log cabin was raised on the northeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street, a bottle of Harrison brand hard cider being placed beneath each corner of the building. The cabin measured forty by fifty feet, would hold nearly one thousand people, and cost one thousand dollars. On one side of the door was a grindstone, with a scythe hanging above it; over the door was a muskrat-trap. Stuffed owls, wildcats, and raccoons, a [Io8] POLITICAL CAMPAIGNS AND ELECTIONS. log live bear, and a Bible were among the attractions of the place. The walls were decorated with a copy of the Declaration of Independence and of Washington's Farewell Address, and a map of the United States. Strings of dried apples, pumpkin, and seed corn, and flitches of venison and bacon were suspended from beams and rafters. There were also displayed caricatures of the Van Buren administration, roughly framed with bark. Irior to the day of dedication, by notice in the Advertiser, the ladies were called upon to supply for the occasion " cornbread, and such other log-cabin fare as their kind hearts and ingenuity may dictate." April 21 was fixed upon as the day of dedication, and at 4 P. AI. the cabin was thrown open for the entrance of the Whig ladies with the good things they had prepared. In the evening it was dedicated, the attendants bringing candles to illuminate the room. The main light, however, came from candles attached to the roots of a tree hung from the roof as a chandelier. After the addresses a dinner-horn was sounded, and then, from inviting tables around the sides of the room, pumpkin-pie, pork and beans, hominy, mush and milk, johnny-cake, venison, and parched corn were served to all alike. Toasts, drunk with hard cider, finished the day. On June 11, 1840, an immense Whig meeting was held on General Harrison's old battle-ground at Fort Meigs, the general himself adding by his presence to the enthusiasm of the occasion. Free passage was provided for those who would attend. Delegates came to Detroit from all over the State. They met at the cabin, had a free lunch, and then marched to the wharf. Five steamboats, the General Vance, Erie, Michigan, Huron, and Macomb, were loaded with these political passengers, two thousand in all, and at 9 A. MI. on June Io, after a salute of twenty-six guns, they went on their way. The meeting was a great success. Harrison spoke, a sham battle was fought, and in the evening fireworks and hard cider "fizzed" everywhere, to the gratification of twenty thousand persons. Up to that time, this was the largest political gathering held in the West. It was supplemented, on September 30, by a great State Whig meeting in Detroit, at which, it was estimated, fifteen thousand were present. So great was the multitude that the public houses could not contain them, and all citizens, even those of opposite political faith, were constrained to open their houses to accommodate the throng. Even then the number was too great to be provided with beds: at one private house, twentytwo persons slept on the parlor floor. One hundred and three wagons, containing six hundred persons, came in from Farmington, and seventy-three from Plymouth and Livonia. It rained, but still they came, on boats and cars, on foot and on horseback, till it seemed as if the country would be depopulated. The delegation from Dearborn came in a log cabin drawn by twenty yoke of oxen. The arrangements for feeding these multitudes were fortunately ample. One delegation brought a johnny-cake twelve feet long. Williams & Wilson's warehouse was the provision depot, and there two tables, each one hundred and twenty feet lohg, were spread with over a ton of food. The procession was an immense affair. Its principal feature of attraction was the ship Constitution, full rigged and manned, and drawn by six gray horses. Some delegates carried flags and banners, and others busied themselves by keeping in motion a huge leather ball, some fifteen feet in diameter, singing as they went, "The ball is rolling on." A newspaper cut of a scene similar to this last appeared in almost every Whig paper of that day. ELI.CTI(N (CUT, FaOM ADVERTISER, OCTOBER 22, 1840. In the evening meetings were held at the Capitol, City Hall, Log Cabin, and the Yellow Warehouse. By such means the fight was won. During the campaign barbecues were frequent, at which oxen were roasted whole, and other provisions were furnished to the crowds who came together to hear some noted speaker. On September 28, 1840, a Democratic barbecue was held on the Cass Farm. Colonel Richard M. Johnson, Vice-President of the United States and one of the heroes of the War of I812, was present. Crowds came to hear him, but the enthusiasm on the other side was against them, and many of the rank caid file "only kept their spirits up by pouring spirits d:)xn." Although defeated in that year, a resolution, adopted a few years later at a Democratic meeting in the sixth ward, shows some members of that party still eager for the fray. It read: Resolved, thal we oppose the many-named monster, now designated Whiggery, and fearlessly engage that, though he had as many heads as names, we would chop them off, and trample his nondescript carcass in the Black Swamp. GEORGE ROBB, Secretary. DETROIT, March 22, I843. The presidential campaign of 1844 was hardly less exciting than that of 1840. Each party erected buildings for their meetings. The Whig cabin was nicknamed the Coon Pen; that of the Democrats I IO POLITICAL CAMPAIGNS AND ELECTIONS. was called Hickory Hall. As before, large gatherings took place. The Whigs held a Clay and Frelinghuysen meeting, for Wayne and St. Clair counties, on October 17, 1844. This time the Democrats were victorious. filll " THAT SAME OLD COON." ELECTION CUT, ADVERTISER, OCTOBER 15, 1852. The Republican party, organized at Jackson in I854, was the first to make use of regularly officered political companies. They were uniformed in caps and capes, and being well drilled, presented an attractive appearance. Many thousands of them came together in Detroit on October 2 to attend a These were the days of bonfires and fireballs, and often several cords of wood were burned on the Campus Martius, whole barrels of rosin giving brilliancy to the flames. The active help of mischievous boys could always be counted upon to add fresh fuel to the pile; and woe to' the unlucky merchant who had left boxes or barrels in sight, for they were confiscated at once, and the huge pyramids and the hopes of many candidates went up in smoke together. Both parties eventually availed themselves of drilled torch-bearers, whose manceuvres enlivened the campaign, as they marched to "ranch " or "wigwam." During the campaign of I860, when Lincoln was running for his first presidential term, there was a great Republican meeting, held on September 4, at which thirty-five hundred Wide-Awakes were on parade. In the evening the multitude listened to a speech from Hon. William H. Seward. On the fifteenth of the following month, an immense Democratic throng gathered to hear an address from Hon. Stephen A. Douglass, the " Little Giant" of Illinois, and candidate for the presidency. So great was the desire for harmony, in the early days of the war with the South, that a union political convention, held on October 26, I861, composed of members of both political parties, decided to nominate but one city ticket. During the campaign of 1864 a grand Union and Republican demonstration was held on the first of November. Thirty thousand strangers were present. Orations were delivered by Hon. Salmon P. Chase and others, and an immense procession took place at night. In the election of this year the soldiers in camp and field were allowed to vote, commissioners being appointed by the State to afford them the opportunity of so doing. On October 28, I866, just prior to the State election, General B. F. Butler made a speech at the D. & M. R. R. Depot; and on November I following, Hon. Schuyler Colfax spoke in Young Men's Hall. ELECTIONS. Territorial Elections under Northwest Territory. When the first election wa~ held, Detroit had only a township organization. The occasion was as follows: In I798 a census showed that there were five thousand or more inhabitants in the Territory, and in accordance with the provisions of the ordinance of 1787, Governor St. Clair issued a proclamation, ordering an election to be held on the third Monday of December, I795, to elect delegates to a General Assembly to be held at Cincinnati. Even in this first election there was the cry of fraud, and Judge May went to Cincinnati to consult Governor c,~~~~~~~~~~~~~5~ E.F.CT1I(N CUT, TRKIUNE., NoVEMBER 5, 1856. State Republican meeting, which was held on a vacant lot now occupied by the Central Methodist Episcopal Church. ELECTIONS. III ELECTIONS. III St. Clair in regard to it. As a result of his visit, another election was ordered. It was held on January 14 and 15, I799. The voting was done viva voce. The sheriff, with Peter McNiff, and another judge of the Court of Common Pleas, acted as inspectors. They were very arbitrary in the exercise of their powers, refusing some votes on the ground that the candidate voted for was not eligible, and adjourning from ten o'clock to three o'clock on the first day. During the two days, one hundred and niniety-eight votes were called. Concerning this election, in a letter commenced on the I4th and finished on the I 5th, addressed to James May, then at Cincinnati, Peter Audrain says: " McNiff came four times to the street door, and earnestly recommended to the friends of Wisewell to exert every nerve in their power to get more votes for him. Whereupon old Cissne and Christian Clemens offered one hundred dollars for ten votes to several bystanders. This fact can be proved upon oath." An Act of December 6, I799, provided for an election for representative to the General Assembly, which was to sit the second Tuesday of October, I8oo, and every two years thereafter. The polls were to be opened between io and II A. M., and to remain open till 5 P. M. the first day, to be then adjourned till 10 A. _I. next day, when they were to be kept open until 5. P. M. The same Act provided that free male inhabitants, twenty-one years old, residents of the Territory, former citizens of other States, or persons who had been two years in the Territory, should be voters, provided they possessed fifty acres of land in any county, or any land in their own county which, with improvements, was worth lie hundred dollars. An Act of December 9, i8oo, provided that three election districts should be established in Wayne County, and that elections should be by ballot, the polls to open at 10 A. M. and to close at 5 P. hM. On Saturday, September 5, i8oi, the Court of Quarter Sessions, at Detroit, determined that the bounds of the three election districts should be as follows: First District, from the foot of the Rapids to Rocky River, inclusively, the Presbytery on the River Raisin to be the central point, or voting place. Second District, from Rocky River to Milk River Point, with Detroit as the voting place. Third District, from Milk River Point to Lake Huron. Territorial Elections under Indiana Territory. The only general election participated in by citizens ot Detroit while under the government of Indiana Territory was that of September II, i804, held to determine whether the people wanted a General Assembly. Only a majority of one hundred and thirty-eight, in the whole Territory, were in favor of an Assembly; but in accordance with the law, Governor Harrison issued a proclamation ordering an election in each county, on January 3, I805, to elect delegates to the Assembly. This proclamation did not reach Wayne County in time, and therefore no election was held. Terrz'torial ]Elections under Michizgan Territory. The first territorial election was held on Monday, February 16, 1818, to decide whether a General Assembly should be held, and the second grade of government adopted. A majority of votes were cast against the proposition. By Act of February i6, I819, Congress provided for the election of a delegate to that body, and all free white male citizens, above the age of twentyone years, who had resided in the Territory one year, and paid a county or territorial tax, were made voters. The time for holding this election was frequently changed. It was first held on the first Thursday in September, I819. In I824 the time was changed to the first Monday in April. In 1825 the last Tuesday in May was selected, and the election was to occur every second year. At the election for delegates in 1825 there were three candidates, Austin E1. Wing, John Biddle, and Gabriel Richard. The inspector's return of votes gave Biddle seven hundred and thirty-two, Wing seven hundred and twenty-eight, and Richard seven hundred and twenty-two. That the number of votes for the three candidates was so nearly equal, in an office voted for by all electors in the region now covered by both the States of Wisconsin and Michigan, was a most remarkable showing, and probably no similar instance has ever occurred. Father Richard contested the election, on the ground that his supporters were intinidated and maltreated by sheriffs and constables. The Congressional Committee decided that there could have been little intimidation, when his votes so nearly equaled those of the other candidates. In 1827 the time for the election of delegates was changed to the second Monday of July, the polls to be open between the rising and the setting of the sun. In 1835 the first Monday of November was fixed as the time for holding the election. Members of the Legislative Council were first elected on the last Tuesday of May, 1825. By Act of April 13, 1827, the day of election was changed to the first Monday of November. On April 4, 1835, an election was held for delegates to the constitutional convention. Under the first Constitution, all voting was done by ballot. The first election was held the first Monday in October, 1835, and continued two days. The constitution provided that the electors should be white male persons, twenty-one years of age, I 12 ELECTIONS. who resided ia the State at the time of the adoption of the constitution, or for six months preceding any election, and provided also that they should have resided in the district voted in. It will be noticed that this provision reduced the time of residence for voters from one year to six months, and it also did away with the former requirement that voters should be tax-payers. As a consequence, and for the first time, great numbers of foreign-born persons had the privilege of voting, and many of the citizens were greatly displeased; one of the papers complained that a majority of the votes cast were those of British and German subjects. In arranging the preliminaries for the State Government, delegates to a convention held to consider the question of accepting the boundaries of the State prescribed by Congress were elected on the second Monday of September, 1836. S/tae Elections. Following the custom of elections, as held under the territorial governments, a law of 1836 provided that the polls should be kept open for two days at the elections of State and county officers. Some of the scenes which occurred at the State election of 1837 are portrayed in a painting made by T. H. O. P. Burnham, an artist, and a publisher of that period. Mrs. A. S. Williams, for many years the fortunate possessor of the picture, has kindly permitted it to be engraved for this work. The large building on the right will be recognized as the old City -Hall; the building in the center, with the cupola, represents the old Jail, then occupying the site of the present Iublic Library. The houses on the left, and near the foreground, were on the site of the Detroit Opera House. C. C. Trowbridge was the Whig candidate for governor, and Stevens T. Mason, who was the secretary of the Territory and acting governor, was the I)emocratic nominee. A portion of a Whig procession, having passed down on the further side, is seen advancing towards the front of the City Hall. In the center of the picture, and forming a part of the Whig procession, is the Ship of State, with various mottoes, ELECTION SCENE.-FIRST STATE ELECTION. ELECTIONS. II3 one of which reads, "Free Trade and Sailors' Rights," a banner follows the Ship of State bearing the inscription, "WXhig Nomination for Governor, C. C. Trowbridge." The bill which is being offered to the boy with the basket is on the "B ank of Lapeer;" the other inscriptions can all be read. The pole of the banner carried at the head of the procession on the extreme left, it will be noticed, is surmounted with a loaf of bread, a piece of pork, and a fish. These emblems, and the motto on the banner, have reference to actual occurrences at that period. At the head of a Democratic procession, just approaching on the extreme right, is seen a character of the period,-the redoubtable Stillson on his inevitable horse. Following him, although not shown in the picture, were several yoke of oxen, garlanded and decorated with ribbons and flags. After these came some two hundred newly made citizens from the Emerald Isle; they were employed on city work, and as they all voted the "DIimmychratic thicket," they formed the " balance of power " that carried the-day for Mason. Gathered about in front of Stillson are representations of Major McKinstry, George C. Bates, F. H. Harris, Kingsbury of the Morning Post, and Frank Sawyer, in his wellknown cap, all supposed to be eagerly disputing, and proclaiming the praises of their favorite candidates. The black-coated and silk-hatted figure, near the center of the picture, towards the left, represents the candidate, "Tom Mason," shaking hands, and presenting a ticket at the same time. On the ticket are the words, " For Governor, Stevens T. Mason." Near him, on the right, are two "sovereigns," one with a pick, the other with bottle high in air, from which flows a stream of old Monongahela. In those days the possession of muscle was a prime political necessity; and there are living staid men of worth and solidity, men now deacons, elders, and trustees, who, when in the mood, will tell how they used their boots and their fists on the election days of "auld lang syne." Under the Act of March 21, 1837, the polls were opened between the hours of 9 and II A. M., and continued open until 4 P. M., the inspectors being authorized to close the polls temporarily at any time when all present had voted. On Monday and Tuesday, November 3 and 4, I845, a two days' election was held, for the last time, an Act of May I6, 1846, providing that State elections thereafter should be held on the first Tuesday of November. Under the Constitution of 1850 the following classes of persons were made voters: every white male citizen, every white male inhabitant residing in the State on the fourth day of June, 1835, and every 8 white male inhabitant residing in the State on January I, 1850, also every man who has declared his intention to become a citizen of the United States, six months prior to an election, or who, having resided in the State two years and six months, declares his intention as aforesaid; besides the above every civilized male Indian, not a member of any tribe, was also constituted an elector. Each elector, however, must be over twenty-one years of age, and must have resided in the State three months, and in the ward, where he proposes to vote, for the ten days next preceding an election. The declaration of intention to become a citizen is called "taking out first papers." These are issued usually by the county clerk, but may be issued by any judge or clerk of any court of record having a common-law jurisdiction. These papers qualify the holder to vote and hold local offices. Under "second papers," so-called, the holder may be elected to State, legislative, and United States offices; but these papers cannot be issued, until two years after the " first papers" have been taken out. On June 27, I85I, an Act was passed fixing the time for the State election on the first Tuesday after the first Monday of November, and no change has since been made. State officers are elected every two years, the election being held in those years in which the last figure in the date of the year is an even number. County officers are elected at the same time as State officers, and all of them for two years, except the judge of probate, who is elected for four years. Township officers are elected yearly on the first Monday of April. Two judges of the Supreme Court and two regents of the university are also elected on the first Monday of April, every two years, for terms of eight years each. Colored people were first allowed to exercise the right of suffrage at the State election of November 8, 1870. After the adoption of the Fifteenth Amendment to the Constitution of the United States, some persons claimed that it gave the right of suffrage to women. Upon this supposition, at an election for State officials, on April 3, 1871, Mrs. Nannette Gardner, who had previously registered her name in the ninth ward, was allowed to deposit a vote, but the act was protested against as illegal. The subject of woman suffrage was soon after agitated all over the State, and the Legislature submitted the question of conferring the right to hold office upon women, in the form of a constitutional amendment. At the election which decided the question, committees of ladies were stationed at the various polling places, and mottoes in favor of woman suffrage invited the attention and the ballots of voters. The subject was thoroughly canvassed and dis t 1i4 ELECTIONS. cussed. and in November, 1874, the people, by vote of I35,957 against 40,077, decided against the amendment. Cz(iy Electzons. Under Act of January I8, 1802, incorporating the town of Detroit, the first purely local election was held on May 3 of that year. The Act of September 13, 1806, which gave the city its first city charter, provided that the first election for members of the Upper House of the Common Council should be held on the last Monday of September of the same year; members of the Lower House were to be elected on the first Monday of October; and all persons over twenty-one years old, who had rented a house within a year, and paid their public taxes, were made voters. The city charter of October 24, I815, ordered a special election for October 30 of the same year, and provided that the regular election should be on the first Monday in May. In those earlier days there were but few issues in the corporate elections, and oftentimes there was practically but one candidate in the field. At the city election, on April 4, I825, John R.Williams was chosen mayor by a total of one hundred and two votes against eleven scattering. Three years later John Biddle was elected to the same office, by a total of one hundred and ninetynine votes, five other persons receiving one vote each. By Act of September 4, 1824, a special election was to be held for city officers on September 6, and regular city elections thereafter were to take place on the first Monday of April. Under this law, up to 1833 or later, it was customary for persons to apply to the Common Council to have their names registered as voters. An Act of March 27, I839, ordered an election for city officers on the third Monday in April following, and provided that after I839 the city election should be held on the first Monday in March. At the time of the city election of I853, it was believed that the regular Democratic nominations had been made in the interest of persons opposed to the public-school system. An independent Democratic ticket was therefore nominated, and successfully elected. Two years later occurred the great struggle in which the so-called Know-Nothing party supported what was styled the native American element. The candidate of this party for mayor received 2,026 votes, against 2,798, and they elected their aldermanic candidates in the first, second, fifth, and sixth wards, or one half of the whole number. On February 12 of this year a charter amendment provided that after 1855 the city election should be held on the first Tuesday in February. Two years later, on February 5, 1857, a new law provided that the city election should be held on the first Tuesday after the first Monday of November. In case a vacancy occurs in the office of mayor, councilman, or alderman more than six months prior to the time of an annual election, the Common Council must order a special election. When possible, these special elections are held on the first Monday of April, the time fixed for the election of certain state officials. By special Act, the school inspectors are also required to be elected at that time. Several noticeable coincidences have occurred in connection with city elections. In 1862 the rival candidates for the office of school inspector, in both the third and the fifth ward received the same number of votes; and the same state of facts existed in the first ward as to candidates for overseer of highways. Another curious incident occurred in connection with the regular city elections of November, I868 and 1869. On both occasions Lucien Zink was a candidate for overseer of highways in the tenth ward; and at both elections there was a tie-vote between him and his competitor. By provision of the charter, in such cases the president of the council determined by lot who should hold the office; and each year the drawing was in favor of Mr. Zink. In the same ward, in April, 1873, three hundred and thirty-five votes were cast for each of two rival candidates for the Board of Estimates. Much interest was felt in the election of April 7, 1873, at which a Board of Estimates was elected who were opposed to the expending of money for a public park. The local election of November 2, 1875, also excited much interest, Alexander Lewis being elected mayor on what was called the Law and Order Ticket, supported by those who favored the closing of saloons on the Sabbath. During the winter of 1877 a State law was passed requiring saloons to be closed on all election days, and on November 6, 1877, for the first time in the history of Detroit, the saloons were closed on the day of an election. Under Acts of 1824 and 1827, the mayor fixed the time when polls should be opened. At the election of April 5, 1830, the polls were opened at 9 A. M. and closed at 1o P. M. Five years later, on April 4, they were opened at 8 A. M. and closed at 6 P. M. At the present time they are opened at 8 A. M. and closed at 5 P. M. Qualifications and Registration of Voters. By Act of 1802 all freeholders or householders paying an annual rent of forty dollars were consti ELECTIONS. II5 tuted voters, without reference to sex. Under this provision, at the election of 1804, four ladies voted, Mrs. Provencal and Mrs. Coates in person, and two others by proxy. The city charter of October 24, I8I5, retained the same provision as to qualification of voters, but also provided for the accepting of the votes of such other persons as a majority of the electors voted to admit to the privilege. An Act of May 3, 1821, provided that all free white males, over twenty-one years of age, who had resided in the city one year, and paid a city tax, might vote. By law of March 27, I839, a person must have resided in the ward in which he voted for the ten days prior to the election, the ward in which meals were taken being reckoned the place of residence. By Act of April 13, I84I, the time during which a voter must have resided in a ward was extended to thirty days. The Constitution of I850 restored the time of residence in a ward to ten days, and provided that voters need reside in the city only three months instead of one year. An Act of March 12, I86I, provided that the residence of a voter should be construed to be where his family resided, or where his regular boarding-place was located. In I859 a registration law was enacted which was designed to prevent fraudulent voting. Under this law and subsequent laws of February 5, 1864, April 13, 1871, and the charter of I883, the aldermen of the city, with enough other persons appointed by the Board of Aldermen to make two for each district, constitute the Registration Boards for the several districts, and together they form a City Board of Registration. Sessions of the District Boards, for the purpose of making an entirely new registry of voters, are held in each election district every four years, counting from I880. Sessions begin on the second Wednesday preceding the November election, and continue four days, from I0 A. M. to 8 P. M. In the years when a new and general registration is not made, sessions are held on the second Thursday, Friday, and Saturday next preceding the general State election, from 10 A. M. to 8 P. M., and also on the second Friday and Saturday next preceding the regular charter and spring elections, for the purpose of revising the registry lists. The sessions of the board must be public, and no name can be written in the register without the personal request of the applicant, unless he be known to the board, or to some member thereof, as a qualified voter of that ward and district. All names are required to be plainly written in ink, with the Christian and surname in full; and opposite each name the day and year of the entry, with the number of the dwelling and name of the street, or if there is no street name, then a description of the locality of the dwelling in which the voter lives. The board are required to ask each person unknown to them whether he is entitled to vote, and whether he has previously registered or resided in any other district; and no person may be registered in any district who is not, at the time of registration, a resident of said district, and qualified to vote. At the close of each session of the Board of Registration, the registration lists must be signed by each member of the board, and deposited with the city clerk. At least two weeks before any session of the Board of Registration, these lists are printed and posted up in each district. The City Board of Registration, composed of the District Boards, convenes at 9 A. M. on the Monday preceding every election (except it be a special election for ward officers), and examines the registers of the several districts. No name may at this time be added to the voting list, but if any name is found registered in two or more districts, the examining officer may designate on the registers in which district the person is, and in which he is not entitled to vote. A person who has changed his residence to some other district between the time of the last meeting of the Board of Registration and the day of election, cannot vote; and no person can register on election day without stating on oath that sickness of himself or some near relative, or absence from the city on business, prevented his registering at the proper time. Electhion Distrzics. Prior to I828 the polls were held at the old Council House on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street, at the City Council House on Lamed Street, and sometimes at Woodworth's Hotel. After the erection of the City Hall, and up to 1839, that was used as the polling place. On April 15, I839, elections were held in the several wards for the first time, the places for holding them being designated by the Common Council. The charter amendments of March 12, i86i, March 27, 1867, April 13, I87I, and March 29, 1872, gave the council power to divide wards into two or more election districts. An Act of 1872 provided that no election district should embrace parts of two wards, or contain less than five hundred electors. Under these provisions, in August, 1868, for the first time, several of the larger wards were divided into election districts. Other wards were subsequently divided, and the boundaries of districts changed. After the addition to the city limits made in i885, the Common Council, by ordinance of June 5, I886, laid out the following election districts: FIRST WARD:-First District, all that portion 116 ELECTIONS. north of Brady Street; Second District, all that portion between Brady Street and Adelaide Street; Third District, all that portion between Adelaide Street and Adams Avenue; Fourth District, all that portion south of Adams Avenue and east of Randolph Street; Fifth District, the portion south of Adams Avenue and west of Randolph Street. SECOND WARD:-First District, the portion north of Bagg Street; Second District, the portion between Bagg and High Streets; Third District, the portion between High Street and a line running through Adams Avenue to Grand River Avenue, thence westerly along said avenue to the intersection of First Street; Fourth District, the portion lying between the Third District and Michigan Avenue; Fifth District, the portion lying south of Michigan Avenue. THIRD WARD:-First District, the portion lying south of the center line of Fort Street; Second District, the portion lying north of the center line of Fort Street, to Gratiot Avenue; Third District, the portion lying north of the center line of Gratiot Avenue and south of the center line of Wilkins Street; Fourth District, the portion north of Wilkins Street. FOURTH WARD:-First District, south of the center line of Michigan Avenue; Second District, between the center lines of Michigan and Grand River Avenues; Third District, north of the center line of Pitcher Street; Fourth Iistrict, between the center line of Pitcher Street and Grand River Avenue. FIFTH WARD:-First District, south of the center line of Fort Street; Second District, between the center lines of Fort Street and Gratiot Avenue; Third District, between the center lines of Gratiot Avenue and Watson Street; Fourth District, north of the center line of Watson Street. SIXTH WARD:-First District, south of the center of Abbott Street; Second District, between the center lines of Abbott and Plum Streets; Third District, between the center lines of Plum Street and Grand River Avenue; Fourth District, north of the center line of Grand River Avenue. SEVENTH WARD:-First District, all south of the center line of Fort Street; Second District, between the center lines of Fort and Maple Streets; Third District, between the center lines of Maple and Alfred Streets; Fourth District, north of Alfred Street. EIGHTH WARD: -- First District, south of Baker Street; Second District, between Baker and Locust Streets; Third District, between Locust and Myrtle Streets; Fourth District, north of Myrtle Street. NINTH WARD:-First District, south of Croghan Street; Second District, between Croghan and Jay Streets; Third District, between Jay and Detroit Streets; Fourth District, portion north of Third District. TENTH WARD:-First District, south of Baker Street; Second District, between Baker Street and Michigan Avenue; Third District, between Michigan Avenue and Myrtle Street; Fourth District, north of Myrtle Street. ELEVENTH WARD:-First District, south of Fort Street; Second District, between Fort and Catharine Streets; Third District, between Catharine and German Streets; Fourth District, north of German Street. TWELFTH WARD:-First District, south of Baker Street; Second District, the portion lying between Baker Street and a line running along Butternut to Twenty-fourth Street, thence southerly through Twenty-fourth to the alley north of Michigan Avenue, and thence to west line of Porter Farm. Third Iistrict, all that portion lying north of Second District. THIRTEENTH WARD:-First District, south of the center line of Fort Street; Second District, between Fort and German Streets; Third District, north of German Street. FOURTEENTH WARD:-First District, all south of Dix Road; Second District, all between I)ix Road and Michigan Avenue; Third District, all north of Michigan Avenue. FIFTEENTH WARD:-First District, all south of Lafayette Street and aline uniform therewith; Second District, all north of Lafayette Street to Mack Road; Third District, all north of Mack Road. SIXTEENTH WARD -First District, all south of Iix Road; Second District, all north of Dix Road t:) Michigan Avenue; Third District, all north of Michigan Avenue. E/ec/zons, —how conducted. The Board of Aldermen, from time to time, determines the several places at which the polls shall be held, and the city clerk advertises their location. Five inspectors of election for each district are elected at each city election, and one other is appointed by the Board of Aldermen. The inspectors of each district appoint two clerks, whose duty it is to keep a list of all persons voting at the election. The ballot-boxes, the printed registry lists for each ward or district, and all necessary books and blanks for the election are furnished by the city clerk to the inspectors of election. It is the duty of the inspectors to challenge the vote of any person whom they suspect is not a qualified voter. The inspectors must preserve order at the polls, and they are authorized and required to cause the arrest of any person who disturbs the good order of the polling places. From the time of the incorporation in 1802, the ELECTIONS. I I7 ELECTIONS.. 17 voting has always been by ballot. Each person delivers his ballot, folded, to one of the inspectors, in presence of the board. The ballot must be of paper, written or printed, or partly written and partly printed, containing the names of all the persons for whom the elector intends to vote, and designating the office to which each person is intended to be chosen. After the polls are closed the inspectors must carefully count the number of ballots, and compare the number with the number of electors registered on the poll lists. If the ballots in the box shall be found to exceed the whole number of names on the poll lists, they must be replaced in the box, and one of the inspectors must publicly draw out therefrom and destroy unopened, so many ballots as shall be equal to the excess. The ballots and poll lists agreeing, or being made, to agree, in the manner stated, the board must then proceed to canvass and estimate the votes, and draw up a statement of the result. Such statement shall set forth in words and at length the whole number of votes given for each office, the names of the persons for whom the votes were given, and the number of votes for each person; and one of said statements shall forthwith be delivered to the city clerk. After examining the votes, and within seventytwo hours of the closing of the polls, the inspectors of each district must make and certify a full and true return thereof, which, together with the poll lists and ballots, must be delivered, carefully sealed, to the clerk of the city; at the same time one of their number is chosen to represent his district in the Board of City Canvassers; and the persons so chosen form the Board of Canvassers for the city. They must meet on the Saturday next after election, at three o'clock in the afternoon, at the city clerk's office, or in the common-council chamber, and proceed to open and canvass the said returns, and declare the result of the election. When two or more persons are found to have an equal number of votes for the same office, the election is determined by the drawing of lots, in the presence of the Board of Aldermen. The name of each person, written on a separate slip of paper, is deposited in a box or other receptacle, the president of the Board of Aldermen draws out one of said slips, and the person whose name is drawn is considered elected. The mode of conducting State and county elections is the same, except that the returns are made to the county clerk, and the inspectors, appointed by the inspectors of election in townships and wards to attend the county canvass, constitute the Board of County Canvassers, and meet on the Tuesday next following the election, before one o'clock in the afternoon, at the office of the county clerk, who is secretary of the board. The following table of votes cast in Detroit, ia various years, will give some idea of the growth of citizenship: 1820,-66. 1825,-II15. 1835,-261. 1840,-671. I845,-I,368. 1850,-1,443. I855, — 4,824. 1860,-8,389. 1870,-II,323. I875,-I3,05S. I880, ---21,676. 1887,-25,664. The Michgrah Club. This Republican organization is the only political club in the city having regular meetings at which political questions are discussed. It was organized in January, 1885, in a room in the Buhl Block. Its rooms were first opened at 95 West Fort Street; in i886 it moved opposite to the house known as number 92. The society has about 1,200 members, located in Detroit and throughout the State, who pay annual dues. A lunch is served each day at the rooms for a nominal sum, and members have the opportunity of discussing their lunch and the current social and political news. A reading room is well supplied with the leading papers in the State. The notable events in the history of the club are the banquets given on the evenings of February 22, 1886 and 1887, at the Princess rink. At the first banquet there were speeches by Senator Palmer, Wm. M. Evarts, Gov. Foraker, of Ohio, Gen. J. A. Logan, and others. At the second banquet addresses were delivered by Gov. Luce, Hon. C. A. Boutelle, of Maine, Hon. John S. Wise, of Virginia, and Hon. John P. Dolliver, of Iowa. The following have served as officers of the Club: i885, President, C. H. Buhl; Secretary and Treasurer, H. A. Haigh. 1886, President, J. L. Edson; Secretary, tH. A. Haigh; Treasurer, A. McLellan. 1887, President, C. A. Black; Secretary, F. E'. Farnsworth; Treasurer, F. Woolfenden. CHAPTER XX. WAYNE COUNTY: ITS ESTABLISHMENT AND BOUNDARIES. VIRGINIA, in 1778, erected all of the Northwest American government the county of Wayne, the Territory into a county called Illinois. Subsequently, third organized in the Northwest Territory, was and before the surrender by the British, by procla- established by proclamation on August 15, I796, by mation of Lieutenant-Governor Simcoe, on July 16, Winthrop Sargent, secretary of the Territory, and 1792, all of what is now Michigan, with other terri- acting governor. A fac-simile of the proclamation tory extending northward as far as Hudson's Bay, is here given. The size of the original is fifteen was included in the county of Kent. Under by eighteen inches. / \ I i;/ i I ~\/ / X Ie. c / ^/^ wScm/it'^^'-.. l"~,, AC. 4A \ 7-tt'=/7!z e-IL -=Ul,zj tzzcc^^^y^,,^ ^ FAC-SIMILE OF FIRST PROCLAMATION ESTABLISHING WAYNE COUNTY. lrr8l WAYNE COUNTY: ITS ESTABI.ISIIHMENT AND BOUNDARIES. I19 The action of Sargent gave rise to a sharp correspondence between him and (Governor St. Clair, and in a letter to HIon. James Ross, dated September 6, 1796, Governor St. Clair says: That circumstance has given me satisfaction, though I am displeased at the proceeding generally, for it was not my intention to have moved in the business until I had received the directions of the President, wAhich I had reason to expect; and two governors at one and the same time in the same country, and perhaps counteracting each other, must impress these new subjects unfavorably with respect to the government they have fallen under. Some expedient. however, might have been found to render the impropriety less striking, had I gone to Detroit; but the secretary having lately gone to Alichilimacinac, my meeting him there, in the little time I could possibly stay, was very uncertain. From other letters it appears that Governor St. Clair was at Pittsburgh when the county was organized, and Sargent claimed that his action was justified by the facts. He consulted the citizens as to what name should be given to the county, and they agreed that it should be named after General Anthony Wayne, who was then in the city, and sent him an address, notifying him of the fact. In reply they received the following: MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY. —No.. DEAR SIR,On my arrival at this place, I found that the secretary had thought fit to accompany General Wayne to Detroit, and I have since learned, though not from himself, that he has laid out the country thereabouts into a county, and appointed the officers, among whom is Mr. Audrain, prothonotary. MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY. —NO. 3. To the Cure and Inhabitants of Detroit, and the Ofcers, Civil and Military, of the County of IVayne: (;ENTILEMEN,I have received with much pleasure your polite address of this (late, which not only demands my grateful acknowledgment for the flattering testimonies it contains of your esteem, but affords me an opportunity to remark with what pleasure I have observed the general satisfaction which has appeared to prevail among the citizens of Detroit and its neighborhood upon the establishment of the government of the United States, and the alacrity and laudable desire they have evinced to promote the due execution thereof; a conduct so wise, while it merits the warm regards of their fellow-citizens of the Union, must insure to themselves all the advantages which will flow from and be the natural effect of the administration of good laws, under so happy a government. I will with much pleasure communicate to the President the warm sentiments of zeal and attachment which you have expressed toward the Government of the United States; and I cannot permit MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-NO. 2. 120 WAYNE COUNTY: ITS ESTABLISHMENT AND BOUNDARIES. myself to depart hence without assuring you tl take a peculiar interest in whatever may contr the happiness and prosperity of this county, te has the honor to be attached. I have the honor to be, gentlemen, with i Your most obedient and very humble i HEADQUARTERS, DETROIT, November 14, 179( WAYNE CO After formation c of Ohio, By Law of April: i rL- \ hat I shall always above Fort Lawrance,' thence by a west line to the ribute to promote eastern boundary of Hamilton County (which is a due which my name north line from the lower Shawnese Town, upon the much esteem, Sciota River), thence by a line west-northerly to the servant, southern part of the portage, between the Miamis of ANT'Y WAYNE. the Ohio and the St. Mary's River, thence by a line 6. also west-northerly to the southwestern part of the portage, between the Wabash and the Miamis of Lake Erie, where Fort Wayne now stands, thence UIITV by a line west-northerly to the most southern part U I tI of Lake Michigan, thence along the western shores If state of the same to the northwest part thereof (including 30,1802, the lands lying upon the streams emptying into the said lake), thence by a due north line to the territorial boundary in Lake Superior, and with the said boundary through Lakes Huron, St. Clair, and Erie, to the mouth of the Cuyahoga River, the place of beginning." The creation of the Territory of Indiana, by Act of May 7, I8oo, reduced the limits of the county about one half. Its boundaries were further cur MAP OF COUNTY BOlNSDAV\I. —No. 4. The boundaries of the county, as defined by Sargent, were as follows: " Beginning at the mouth of the Cuyahoga River, upon Lake Erie, and with the said river to the portage between it and the Tuscarawa branch of the Muskingum, thence down the said branch to the forks, at the carrying place MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-NO. 6. tailed by proclamation of July 10, 800o, under which that part of Wayne County lying east of a point about five miles west of the present city of Sandusky was included in a new county, named Trumbull. The Act of April 30, 1802, which created the State of Ohio, attached this region to the Territory of Indiana. It therefore became necessary to define the boundary anew; and on January I4, 1803, William Henry Harrison, governor, and commander-in-chief of 1 Although the original says " Fort Lawrance," it is evidently a mistake arising from the pronunciation, as the fort in question was named Laurens, in 1778, in honor of the president of Congress. MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-NO. 5. WAYNE COUNTY: ITS ESTABLISHMENT AND BOUNDARIES. 121I Indiana Territory, issued the following from Vincennes: I, William Henry Harrison, governor of Indiana Territory, by the authority vested in me by the ordinance for the government of the Territory, do ordain and declare that a county shall be formed in the northeastern part of the lerritory, to be known and designated by the name and style of the county of Wayne. And the boundaries of said county shall be as follows: Beginning at a point where an east and west line, passing through the southern The creation of the Territory of Michigan in 1805 changed the western boundary of the county, slightly reducing its size. The next change in boundary was made by proclamation of Governor Cass on November 21, I815. Under the terms of that document, the county was made to include all of the Territory of Michigan to which Indian title had been extinguished. By the terms of the treaty of Greenville, of August 3, I795, the following territory constituted the region to which the Indian title had been extinguished, and therefore defined the limits under his proclamation: " Beginning at the mouth of the Miami River of the Lakes, and running thence up to the middle thereof, to the mouth of the great Auglaize River; thence running due north, until it intersects a parallel of latitude to be drawn from the outlet of _I MAP or CO'NT'' BOUNDARY.-NO. 7. extremity of Lake Michigan, would intersect a north and south line passing through the most westerly extreme of said lake, thence north along the last mentioned line to the territorial boundary of the United States, thence along the said boundary line to a point where an east and west line, passing through the southerly extremity of Lake Michigan, would intersect the same, thence along the last mentioned line to the place of beginning. MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-No. 9. I Lake Huron, which forms the river St. Clair; thence running northeast, the course that may be found will lead in a direct line to White Rock in Lake Huron; thence due east until it intersects the boundary line between the United States and Upper Canada, in said lake; thence southwardly following the same boundary line down said lake, through the river St. Clair, Lake St. Clair, and the river Detroit into Lake Erie, to a point due east of the aforesaid Miami River; thence west to the place of beginning." Also, "The post of Michilimackinac, and all the land on the island on which that post stands, and the main land adjacent, to which the Indian title has been extinguished by gifts or grants to the French or English governments; and a piece of the main land to the north of the island, to measure six miles on Lake Huron, or the Strait between Lakes Huron and Michigan, and to extend three miles back MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-NO. 8. 122 WAYNE COUNTY: ITS ESTABLISHMENT AND BOUNDARIES. from the water of the Lake or Strait; and also the Island de Bois Blanc." These two tracts included all of the present county of Wayne, and also the now existing counties of Washtenaw, Livingston, Lenawee, Macomb, Monroe, St. Clair, Lapeer, and Oakland, with a large portion of Jackson, Ingham, Shiawassee, Genesee, Tuscola, Sanilac, and Huron counties, together with the Islands of Mackinaw and Bois Blanc, and a small strip of land on the main land north of these islands. on July 3, 805o, and its boundary was defined to "begin at the most western and northern point of the Bay of Saginaw, and shall run thence westwardly to the nearest part of the river Marquette; thence along the southern bank thereof to Lake Michigan; thence due west to the middle thereof; thence north, east, and south with the lines of the Territory of Michigan and the United States to the center of Lake Huron; thence in a straight line to the beginning." It will be noticed that by this proclamation the county consisted of two tracts, entirely separate from each other. On July I4, 1817, the boundary of the county was curtailed on the south by the organization of Monroe County, which took in all of the old county of Wayne south of Town 3, of Ranges i to 9, to the Huron River. I MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-NO. 10. Less than a year after, on October I8, I816, General Cass issued a new proclamation, adding the district of Mackinaw to the county. That district had been created by proclamation of Governor Hull MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-NO. 12. I I — I 01I I WAYNE COUNTY BY PROOLAMATION $eptember 10, 1822Z By proclamation of January I5, 1818, organizing Macomb County, the "base line" of the United States survey in Michigan became the northern boundary of Wayne County. The present limits of the county were established by proclamation of Governor Cass on September o0, 1822. On the same date Washtenaw County was laid out, to include all of the present county of Washtenaw, and also the four southeast towns of what is now Ingham County, the eight most eastern townships in Jackson County, and the southern half of the present Livingston County. Washtenaw County, however, was attached to Wayne County until it should be organized; and for all practical purposes it remained a part of Wayne County up to the definite organization of Washtenaw County on November 20, I826. MAP OF COUNTY BOUNDARY.-NO. II CHAPTER XXI. COUNTY OFFICERS AND THEIR DUTIES. County Commissioners. IN the early days of the county its financial affairs were managed by three county commissioners, appointed by the Court of Quarter Sessions. Under an Act of May 30, 1818, the governor became the appointing power. On April 21, 1825, the office was made elective, and commissioners were to be chosen on the second Tuesday of October. Ready money to meet the obligations of the county not being forthcoming, as early as ISi8 the commissioners began the issue of due-bills, issuing, up to 1827, an average of $2,000 per year. From that time to I833 they issued $i,ooo yearly in bills of the denominations of $1.12, $I.25, $I.37, $I.50, $I.62^, $1.75, $I.87Y, $3.00, $5.00, and $Io.oo. In I830 these due-bills were at twenty-five per cent discount, but the board persevered, and in 1833 issued bills for $3,000, and in I834 for $I,ooo. On October 7, I837, the Board of Supervisors Resolved, that $4,oco, in small bills, be signed by the president and clerk, and delivered to the treasurer for change. Under this resolution, the treasurer and clerk issued two hundred and fifty bills of $10 each, two hundred and fifty of $5.00 each, and two hundred and fifty of $1.oo each. By Act of April 12, 1827, the office of county commissioner was abolished. The Revised Statutes of 1838 revived the office, and it continued until abolished by Act of February Io, I842, which Act transferred the duties of the commissioners to the Board of Supervisors. Under Northwest Territory, the county commissioners were: 800o and I8oi, B. Ituntington, Jacques Campau, Jacob Visger. Under Indiana Territory, I803, Charles Curry, Charles F. Chabert Joncaire, Francis Lasalle; I804, Charles Moran, James Henry. Under Michigan Territory, I818, William Brown, John R. Williams, Abraham Edwards; I8I9, James McCloskey, Robert Abbott; I820, Abraham Edwards, William Brown, James McCloskey; 1821, P. J. Desnoyers; 1822 and 1823, A. Edwards, P. J. Desnoyers, J. P. Sheldon; 1824, Levi Cook, John Whipple, John P. Sheldon; 1825, L. Cook, J. Whipple, P. J. Desnoyers; 1826-1827, James Williams, L. Cook, J. Whipple; I839, R. Gillett, J. Shearer, B. F. Fox; 1840, S. Conant, J. Shearer, B. F. Fox; 1841, Adolphus Brigham, S. Conant, J. Shearer; 1842, Peter Godfroy, S. Conant, A. Brigham. Board of Szufervisors. This body, in connection with the auditors, performs duties originally attended to by the Court of General Quarter Sessions and the county commissioners. By the Act of March 20, 1827, creating the board, they were authorized to examine, settle, and allow all accounts, and estimate the yearly expenses of the county; they were also authorized to repair county buildings, and to offer bounties for the killing of wolves and panthers. Their sessions were to be of not more than eight days' duration, and they were to be paid $i.oo per day each. An Act of March 20, I837, increased their pay to $2.00, and it was subsequently made $3.00 per day. An Act of June 30, 1828, required them to meet the first Tuesday in October. Under Act of June 26, 1832, sessions of the board were held on the first Tuesdays of March and October. By Act of-I842 they were required to meet on the first Monday of July and third Monday of September; but since the revision of the statutes in 1846, they have met only in October. Since the Act of 1844, creating the Board of Auditors, the supervisors have had no control over the county expenditures, and might be called with propriety the Board of County Assessors. For a representative body, they have remarkably few legislative powers. Their chief duty consists in equalizing the valuations of property and apportioning to each city and township its proportion of the taxes to be raised, these apportionments being based on the assessors' books of the city and the township rolls of the several townships. Under Acts of April 13, 1827, and April 17, 1833, which treated the City of Detroit constructively as a township, the city, up to I841, was represented on the board only by its one supervisor, elected for the purpose. After an existence of eleven years, under the General Statutes of 1838, the Board of Supervisors was discontinued, and its duties transferred to three county commissioners. By Act of February IO, 1842, the office of county commissioner was 1231 124 COUNTY OFFICERS AND THEIR DUTIES. abolished, and a Board of Supervisors was again provided for. Their first meeting was held on the first Monday of July, I842. An Act of February I6, 1842, provided that the ward assessors of Detroit should act as supervisors. A subsequent Act of January 30, I850, provided that the city should have but three assessors, instead of one for each ward, or six in all. The city thus lost three members of the board. However, it soon regained its quota, for by Act of April 8, I85I, the alderman of each ward having the shortest term was authorized to act as a supervisor on the board, and on February 5, I857, the Legislature authorized the city assessor and both aldermen from each ward to meet with the board. Up to the date of this last Act, unavailing struggles had been made yearly by the representatives of the city to secure such an equalization of the taxes as they deemed just, but their efforts were almost entirely futile. Since the Act of 1857 the city has had an everincreasing number of members on the board; and had the representatives of the city at any time united in any effort, they might have effected their purpose, as they had votes enough to outnumber the representatives from the rest of the county; but the justice of their cause, or their skill in management, has enabled the supervisors from the townships to preserve nearly the same pro rata of assessment between city and county that has prevailed for many years past. When any change is made in the relative amount of taxes to be paid by city and county, it has usually been done by raising or lowering the valuations on either side, thus raising or lowering the percentage of the total tax that either was to pay. The city, in I886, was paying nearly five sixths of the total of the county taxes. The board meets on the second Monday in October of each year; special sessions may be held to extend the time for payment of taxes, or for any purpose deemed important. The length of their sessions is not limited, but they are allowed by law to draw pay for only fifteen days, which is the usual duration of their sessions. The increase in the number of persons composing the board, and in the number of members from Detroit, is shown by the following table: I827-1830, 9 members, I of them from Detroit. I830-i833, Io " I..., I833-1834, 12 " I ". (. 1834-I835, 13 " I.. I835-1839, I6 " t., I839-1842, No board in existence. 1842-1847, 22 members, 6 of them from Detroit. 1847-I848, 23 " 6 "... I848-i850, 24 " 6.. i 185- I85I, 21 " 8 i... I85I-I857, 26 members, 3 of them from Detroit. 1857-1870, 39 " 21r ". I870-I873, 4I " 21 ( i. ( 1873-1876, 43 " 23.... 1876-1885, 47 " 27 1885-1886, 53 " 33 i886 ---, 54 33 It will be noticed that the number of members from country townships reached its maximum in 1848; the only increase in the board since then, outside of members from Detroit, being from Wyandotte, two being admitted since 1870, and three since 1886. Board of County Auditors. This board divides with the Board of Supervisors the honor of succeeding to the powers of the county commissioners. The office was created by Act of March I, I844. Three auditors were to be elected in November, I845, who were to decide, by lot, their first terms of one, two, and three years each. Auditors subsequently chosen were to be elected for three years, one annually at each general election; and not more than one member of the board was to be elected from the same township, village, or city. The city of Detroit, though it always paid more than two thirds of the county taxes, was often without representation on the board. Greater equality was secured by the Act of May 3t, 1883, which provided that two members of the board must be residents of Detroit. By Act of February 12, 1855, in case of the expiration of a term of office in a year when no general election was to be held, the Board of Supervisors were authorized to fill the vacancy. In importance, the office is second to none in the county. The board have vastly more power in county matters than aldermen have in city affairs. They have almost entire control of the county funds, and although they report to the Board of Supervisors, they are not subject to their directions, neither are they responsible to them, or in fact to any one but the chief executive of the State. It is their business to estimate the amount annually needed for county expenses, to audit all bills, and to make all disbursements on behalf of the county. They appoint three superintendents of the poor and two county physicians. Section Io of Article Io of the Constitution of 1850 provides that they shall have "exclusive power to prescribe and fix the compensation for all services rendered for, and to adjust all claims against" the county, "and the sum so fixed or defined shall be subject to no appeal." The powers of the auditors were further enlarged by Act of May 24, I879, and since January I, I88I, they have had power to "determine the number of clerks to be employed in all county offices and the COUNTY OFFICERS AND THEIR DUTIES. 125 COUNTY.OFFICERS AND THEIR DUTIES. 125 wages to be paid them, to fix the compensation of the coroners and the salaries of all county offices. They also keep a record of all the receipts and expenditures of the County Treasurer, countersigning all tax receipts issued by him. They are authorized to pay the Treasurer from $3,000 to $5,000; and the Judge of Probate, Prosecuting Attorney, County Clerk, and Register of Deeds, from $2,500 to $3,500 each." Under the same Act, "All fees of whatever kind, collected for services performed in these offices, are required to be turned over to the County Treasury." The salary of each auditor, which was formerly $,000o, was increased to $1,200 by Act of April 13, 1873, and a further Act of May 19, 1883, provided that the circuit judges of the county might fix it at any amount, not less than $1,200, nor more than $2,500. The larger sum was fixed as the salary. The following persons have served as auditors: I845, William B. Hunt, Job Smith, A. H. Otis; 1846, William B. Hunt, J. Smith, H. Fralick; I847-I848, Ammon Brown, William B. Hunt, H. Fralick; I849-1852, H. Saunders, A. Brown, William B. Hunt; 1852, S. Poupard, James Safford, A. Brown; 1853, S. Poupard, James Safford, D. L. Quirk; 1854, J. Safford, D. L. Quirk, M. Anderson; 1855-1857, M. Anderson, S. Poupard, G. Carson; 1857-1860, M. Anderson, G. Carson, D. Sackett; i86o, M. Anderson, Geo. Carson, W. H. Craig; I86I, Charles Steward, M. Anderson, W. H. Craig; I862, W. H. Craig, Charles Steward, William Taft; 1863, John Hull, Charles Steward, William Taft; 1864, John Hull, Geo. Carson, William Taft; I864 -1867, John Patton, George Carson, Benj. Sackett; I867, John Patton, Alex. Blue, Benj. Sackett; I868, J. Patton, Alex. Blue, James A. Visger; 1869-I873, A. Blue, Michael Kennedy, J. A. Visger; I873, J. A. Visger, Samuel Zug, John S. Tibbets; 1874, S.Zug, J. S. Tibbets, T. G. Limbocker; 1875, J. S. Tibbets, T. G. Limbocker James Holihan; 1876-I878, T. G. Limbocker, J. Holihan, \illiam Sales; 1878 -1879, William Sales, H. B. Thayer, G. F. Pillard; i88o-1883, \V. Sales. J. Holihan, G. F. Pillard; 1883 -1884, W. Sales, A. Michie, G F. Pillard; I884-I885, W. Sales, A. Michie, J Sheahan; 1885, C. G. Moran, A. Michie, J. Sheahan; 1886-1888, A. Michic, C. G. Moran, W. C. Mahoney 1I888-, A. Michie, W. C. Mahoney, C. P. Collins. Couzty Treasurer. This office dates from August I, 1792, under an Act of the Northwest Territory which provided for the appointment by the governor of a county treasurer, who was required to give $I,5oo bonds, and received five per cent of the moneys coming into his hands as compensation for his services. By Act of I)ecember 17, 1799, his bonds were increased to $3,003. Under the Territory of Indiana, and also of Michigan, the governor continued to appoint the treasurer. By law of November 25, 1817, he was to be paid by a percentage on all moneys which he received and paid out. Under the same law Duncan Reid became the first and only assessor the county has ever had. Under Act of April 21, I825, the commission of the treasurer then in office ceased, and after 1826 county treasurers were elected. The term lasted but a year. By Act of April 13, I827, the term was lengthened to three years. Act of June 26, 1832, made the treasurer the auditor as well, but his action was subject to revision by the Board of Supervisors. An Act of April 13, 1833, provided that the treasurer should retain for his services not over three per cent of the moneys received by him; and any excess over one hundred dollars was to be credited to the county. Under and since the Constitution of 1835, the treasurer has been elected for terms of two years. The profits of the office, in former years, consisted not only in the salary received, but in the interest received on county funds, deposited with, or loaned out, to banks or individuals. Up to I88I the treasurers furnished their own books, and took them away when their term closed. Many important details of past doings are, therefore, not in possession of the public. An Act of May 27, 1879, provided that after January I, i88I, the books of the treasurer should be provided and owned by the county, and that the treasurer should deposit his receipts daily in some bank, to be designated by himself and the 'auditors jointly, and that the funds should be drawn out only on the order of the auditors and the treasurer. Under law of May 24, 1879, and from January x, I88i, the salary of the treasurer has been $5,000. His assistants are paid by the county. The county treasurers have been as follows: I801-I805, Matthew Ernest; J805, Richard Smyth; November 26, 1817, to October 17, 1825, Conrad Ten Eyck; October 17, I825-1833, Peter Desnoyers; I833-1836, D. French; I836, Elliot Gray; 1837-1840, G. Spencer; I840-I843, R.,Gillett; 1843-I845, Peter Desnoyers; 1845-I850, D. J. Campau; I85o, J. B. Schick; 1851-1855, G. M. Rich; 1855-1857, William Harsha; I857-1861, G. M. Rich; I86i-I863, John Bloynk; I863-1867, George Miller; 1867-1869, E. P. Benoit; I869 -1873, Paul Gies; I873-I875, John F. W. Thon;,1875-I879, George H. Stellwagen; 1879-1883, Calvin B. Crosby; I883- 1887, B. Youngblood; I887-,Ralph Phelps, Jr. County Clerk. This office was unknown to Wayne County until created by Act of May 8, i820, which provided 126 COUNTY OFFICERS AND THEIR DUTIES. -' ---- ---. that the clerk of the county courts should act as clerk of the county. On November 5, 1829, additional provision was made for this officer, and he was to be paid by the fees received. Formerly the clerk received $2,500 a year and fees, his deputy clerks being paid by the county. An Act of April 19, 1873, increased his salary to $6,oo0, with fees additional, and he was to pay his own assistants. By law of 1879, and since January I, i88I, all fees received by him are paid to the county treasurer, and his salary, of not more than $3,000, is fixed by the county auditors. From I850 to 1.873 the county clerk, or his deputy, was clerk of the Supreme Court of the State at the terms held in Detroit. At the present time he is clerk of the Board of Supervisors and of the Circuit Court. All of the township officers report to him. All the records of the Circuit Court, the naturalization papers, and the election returns for the county are deposited in his office. All articles of incorporation of all societies, and business corporations of every kind, also partnership agreements, and all marriages, and the yearly record of births and deaths are recorded in his office. The county clerks have been as follows: 1826, Philip Lecuyer; I827 and 1828, Jeremiah V. R. Ten Eyck; 1829-1832, James B. Whipple; 1832-1836, Isaac S. Rowland; i836, G. Mott Williams; 1837, T. E. Tallman; I838-I84r, Charles Peltier; 1841 and 1842, Theodore Williams; 1843-I847, George R. Griswold; I847 and 1848, D. C. Holbrook; 1849 and i850, S. A. Bagg; I85I and I852, Jeremiah Van Rensselaer; I853-1857, E. Hawley, Jr.; I857 -I86I, Enos T. Throop; I86I and I862, David Walker; I863 and 1864, Jared Patchin; I865-i869, J. D. Weir; 1869-1873, Stephen P. Purdy; 1873 -I877, Ray Haddock; I877-1879, J. Sheahan; I879 -1883, R. A. Liggett; I883 —1887, J. J. Enright; 1887-,W. P. Lane. County Superintendenl of Schools. This office was created by Act of March 13, 1867, with the design of promoting the efficiency of country schools. The salary was from $I,000 to $1,500. The office was abolished by Act of March 20, I875, which provided for township superintendents. The following persons served as County Super intendents: 1867-1873, Lester R. Brown; I873 -1876, G. C. Gordon. Drain Commnzssioners. Provision was first made for this office by law of March 15, I86I, when the Board of Supervisors was given power to appoint three Drain Commissioners. By law of March 22, I869, only one was to be chosen, and he was to be elected on the first Monday in April, to serve for one year, and not to be paid over $4.00 a day. A further law of April 13, 1871, provided for the election of a drain commissioner in each township, to locate and construct ditches for drainage purposes; and all ditches were to be made under his direction. The following have served as county commissioners: I86I-I864, T. P. Martin, L. J. Ford, F. M. Wing; I864-I866, T. P. Martin, Alexander Blue, L. J. Ford; I866, Jared Davidson, David Sackett, Harvey Merrell; 1867-I869, H. Merrell, J. Davidson, Peter Ternes; 1869-187I, H. Merrell; 1871-1873, Amos Otis; I873, Seth Smith; I874, T. P. Martin; I875 —I884, Wellington Ellis; 1884-I887, W. Whitacre; I887-, P. C. Bird. County S~urveyor. This officer is the legitimate successor of the office of district surveyor, which was authorized by Acts of September 14, I806, and June 8, I819. The officer was appointed by the governor, and paid by the fees received. By Act of July 31, I830, each county was designated as a surveyor's district, and one surveyor for each was to be appointed by the governor. Under and since the Constitution of 1835, county surveyors are elected with other county officers, serve two years, and they have no salary. The following have served as county surveyors: I830, John Mullett; 183I-I837, John Farmer; 1837-I841, Eli Bradshaw; I84I-I849, E. Hawley, Jr.; 1849-I85I, William H. Brown; I85I-I853, Henry Brevoort, Jr.; 1853-I855, Thomas Campau; 1855-I86o, N. Thelan; I860, David Granger; I86I 1863, William B. Knapp; 1863-I865, William Ives; I865-I869, N. Thelan; I869-1873, A. H. Wilmarth, I873-1875, E. J. Goodell; I875-I877, L. D. Harris; I887-I881, C. H. Ellis; I88I-1885, E. Goodell; 1885-, Milo B. Davis. CHAPTER XXIIo THE TOWNSHIPS OF WAYNE COUNTY.-DERIVATION OF TOWNSHIP NAMES. TOWNSHIP OFFICERS. TOWNSHIPS. BY law of the Northwest Territory, of November 6, 1790, the Court of Quarter Sessions was authorized to divide counties into townships. Accordingly, as early as November I, I798, four townships had been created in Wayne County, namely, Detroit, Mackinaw, Sargent, and Hamtramck. In I802, or earlier, the township of St. Clair was organized. On June 8, 1803, the township of Mackinaw was newly defined. On December 21, I803, the township of Detroit was extended so as to include the farm of John Askin, and on June 4, 1805, it was again extended as far as Huron River, and to include Grosse Isle. On January 5, I818, Governor Cass established the townships of Springwells, Hamtramck, Moguago, Huron, and St. Clair. The rear line of the Private Claims along the river constituted the western boundary of these townships. It was not until the county had been narrowed to its present dimensions that it was all divided into townships. Simultaneously with the creation of the Board of Supervisors, on April 12, 1827, boundaries were established for the townships of Detroit, Springwells, Hamtramck, Monguagon, Brownstown, Plymouth, Ecorce, Huron, and Bucklin. On October 29, I829, Nankin and Pekin townships were created out of the township of Bucklin, which ceased to exist. On March 21, 1833, the township name of Pekin was changed to Redford, and by a law which took effect on April I, 1833, the township of Dearborn was created out of part of the same township. On October 23, I834, by proclamation of Governor Porter, the name of the township of Dearborn was changed to Bucklin, and by Act of March 26, 1836, it was changed back again to Dearborn. On March 31, 1833, the township of Greenfield was formed out of part of the township of Springwells. On March 7, 1834, the township of Canton was formed out of Plymouth. The township of Livonia was created on March 17, 1835; it had been embraced, first in the township of Bucklin, and then in Nankin. The township of Romulus was formed out of Huron, by Act of the same date. By law, taking effect April 6, 1835, Van Buren was formed out of part of Huron. Sumpter was organized on April 6, 1840. On February I6, 1842, a part of Brownstown was attached to Monguagon. On March 19, 1845, the name of Romulus was changed to Wayne, and on January 26, 1848, was changed back again to Romulus. Taylor was created out of Ecorce, on April I, 1847, and Grosse Pointe out of Hamtramck on April I, 1848. On March 3, I849, Grosse Pointe was increased in size by the addition of territory from Hamtramck. On April 2, I850, Greenfield was enlarged by the addition of territory from Springwells, and on March 25, 1873, it was diminished by taking from it certain territory, which was added to Springwells. The Acts of I832 and I836, enlarging the limits of the city, took certain territory from Hamtramck, a portion of which was restored in 1842. In 1857 and in 1875 other territory from Hamtramck was added to Detroit. The township of Springwells contributed a portion of territory to Detroit, by Acts of I849, I857, and 1875; and a small portion was also taken from Greenfield and added to Detroit in 1875. In 1887 the limits of the several townships were as follows: Brownstown was bounded on the north by the town line between Towns 3 and 4 south of R io E; on the south by the Huron River; on the east by a line running south through the centers of Sections 2, II, 14, 23, and 26, and thence east on the south line of Sections 26 and 25 to the Detroit River; and on the west by the town line between Ranges 9 and 0o. Canton included all of Town 2 South Range 8 east. Dearborn was bounded on the north by the town line between Towns I and 2 south of Range IO east; on the south by the town lines between Towns 2 and 3 of Range Io east; on the east by the town line between Ranges Io and I I east, the west boundaries of Private Claims 670 and 3, and a line therefrom extending to the river Rouge. Ecorce was bounded on the north by the river Rouge; on the south by the town line between Towns 3 and 4 south of Ranges Io and I; on the east by the Detroit River; and on the west by the [1271 128 DERIVATION OF TOWNSHIP NAMES. west line of Private Claim 31, and the section line on the west side of Sections 2, II, 14, 23, 26, and 35, of Town 3 South Range io east. Grosse Pozizte was bounded on the north by the county line; on the south and east bly Detroit River and Lake St. Clair; on the west by the section line on west side of Sections 2 and i i in Town I south of Range 12 east, by the north line of Private Claim 394 and Connor's Creek, the section line on east side of Section 22, and the west line of Private Claim 725. Greenfield was bounded on the north by the county line; on the south by a line running east and west through the center of Sections 4, 5, and 6 in Town 2 of Range II east, extending east until it intersects a line drawn parallel with the east line of Private Claim 260, and thence east along the rear line of farms to a point 200 feet west of the boulevard. and thence north and east by the boundary line of the City of Detroit; on the east by the town line between Ranges I and 12, the north line of the Ten- Thousand - Acre Tract, and the Pontiac Road; on the west by the town line between Ranges o and II. Hamtramck was bounded on the north by the county line; on the south by the Detroit River and the south line of the Ten-Thousand-Acre Tract and the quarter line of Section 28; on the east by the west boundary of Grosse Pointe; and on the west by the east boundary of Greenfield and the city of Detroit. Huron included all of Town 4 south of Range 9 east. Lzvonia included all of Town I south of Range 9 east. Monrguagon was bounded on the north by the town line between Towns 3 and 4; on the south by the south line of Sections 25 and 26 in Town 4 south, Range 10 east, and included all of Grosse Isle on the east; on the west it was bounded by a line running north and south through the center of Sections 2, II, 14, 23, and 26. Nankin included all of Town 2 south of Range 9 east. Plymouth included all of Town I south of Range 8 east. Redford included all of Town I south of Range Io east. RoImulus included all of Town 3 south of Range 9 east. Sprzingwells was bounded on the north by the south boundary of Greenfield; on the south by the river Rouge; on the east by the City of Detroit, and on the west by the east boundary of Dearborn. Sum'pter included all of Town 4 south of Range 8 east. Taylor included all of Town 3 south of Range io east, lying west of the west line of Sections 2, 11, 14, 23, 26, and 35. Van Buren included all of Town 3 south of Range 8 east. DERIVATION (F 'TOWNSHIP NAMES. Hamtramck was named in honor of Colonel John F. Hamtramck, first United States commander of Detroit. The name of Springwells has reference to the numerous springs which there abound. The early settlers called this region Belle-fontaine. Brownstown derived its name from Adam Brown, an Englishman, who, when about eight years old, was captured in Virginia in October, I764, by the Wyandotte Indians, among whom he grew up, becoming one of the principal chiefs of the tribe. He lived at, or near, what is now Gibraltar, and had charge of the archives of the tribe. He was living as late as I812 or 1813. Monguagon, or Maguagon, was the name of a Potowatamie chief, who lived on the Detroit as early as 1755. Plymouth township was probably named in honor of the first American settlement at Plymouth Rock. Ecorce takes its name from the river Ecorce, or Bark River, which flows through the township. It was so called by the French and Indians because of the birch and other barks procured along its banks. The name of Huron comes from the old Indian tribe which frequented this region. Bucklin was named after William Bucklin, a justice of the peace, and the first white settler in the township which bore his name. Concerning the names of Nankin, Pekin, and Canton, the following facts appear in the Legislative Journal. A law of April 12, 1827, prohibited the incorporation of any township having the same name as any post-office then existing in the United States. The legislative council, ignorant or forgetful of this law, on October 20, 1829, passed an Act creating the townships of Lima and Richland out of the township of Bucklin. Governor Cass returned the bill the next day, unapproved, for the reason that it conflicted with the law in question. The council then determined to select names that would duplicate no others in America. Thereupon the names of Nankin and Pekin were substituted in the bill, and the townships were duly created. It is a coincidence worth noting that in I829, the year these townships were named, the first American missionary started for China. The name of Pekin was changed to Redford in 1833, but the next year the township of Canton was created, the council being apparently determined to have two Chinese names. Redford, or Rouge-ford, is probably so called because of the fording of the river Rouge, which TOWVNSHIP OFF~ICERKS. I29 TOWNSHIP OFFICERS. 129 flows through this township, by the Indians when on their way from the north to Fort Malden, to receive the annual gifts of the British Government. Dearborn was named in honor of General Henry Dearborn, of the United States Army. The very name of Greenfield suggests its origin, and its green fields are both beautiful and productive. Livonia, as a township name, is doubtless the result of an effort to procure a name not duplicated elsewhere in the United States; it is probably named after one of the western provinces of Russia. Romulus reminds us at once of the founder and king of ancient Rome. Van Buren is named after Martin Van Buren, eighth President of the United States, who was nominated the year the township was created. Sumpter, although incorrectly spelled by the addition of the letter p, commemorates the name of the revolutionary patriot, General Thomas Sumter, one of the independent Southern generals, who, with Marion, did such valiant service. Grosse Pointe is so named because of its size, and its projection into Lake St. Clair. Taylor was named in honor of General Zachary Taylor, twelfth President of the United States, and hero of the Mexican War, which closed.the year the township was organized. TOWNSHIP OFFICERS. Under the Northwest Territory, a law of January 18, 1802, provided for the election in each township, on the first Monday in April, of one or more supervisors, a township clerk, three trustees or managers, two or more overseers of the poor, three fenceviewers, two appraisers of houses, one lister of taxable property, and one or more constables. Under Michigan Territory the same offices existed. By law of March 30, 1827, town elections were held as before, and the following township officers were provided for: a supervisor, town clerk, three or five assessors, a collector, two overseers of the poor, three commissioners of highways, and as many fence-viewers, constables, and pound-masters as the people chose to elect. By Revised Statutes of 1838, the town officers were to consist of a supervisor, clerk, treasurer, three assessors, a collector, three school inspectors, two directors of poor, three com --- OAKLAtD CO -- Li~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~ ~iI r V1F~~~~~~~~~~~wy I'OWNSI P M.AP OF WAV.tNE COUNTY. y) I30 TWSi FIES TOWNSHIP OFFICERS. missioners of highways, and such number of justices as the people desired. By Revised Statutes of 1846, the officers were the same, except that there was to be no treasurer or collector, and but two assessors. The Constitution of i 8 o provided for the election, on the first Monday of April, of a supervisor, a clerk, a commissioner, and an overseer of highways for each district, a treasurer, not more than four constables, and a school inspector,-this last office to be filled by the clerk. A law of April I3, 1871, provided for drain commissioners. The supervisor is at the head of the township government..He makes the assessment roll, and 4s allowed $2.00 a day for his services. The town clerk keeps the town rdcords and a -register of chattel mortgages; he receives $i.5o a day for the time employed in his duties. The commissioner of highways determines the number of road districts, and receives $i.5o a day for time employed. There is an overseer of highways, or path-master, for each road district; he is elected by the people, viva voce, the number of such officers being determined by the number of road districts. They serve without pay. The township treasurer collects the town taxes, and receives one per cent on all amounts collected before January iof each year, and four per cent on amounts collected after that date. The inspector of schools determines the bounds of school districts, and receives $2.00 per day. A township superintendent of schools was provided for by Act of March 20, 1875. He insp~ects the schools, and, with the inspector, may change the bounds of school districts. He receives $2.00 a day for time spent in his duties. Excepting those for Detroit, the only names found of supervisors serving prior to 1827 are as follows: Hamtramck: i 8 i8. Henry Connor and John Meldrum; 1819, WVilliam Little; 1823, P. Van Every. Springwells: i8i8, Warren Howard; 1819, Francis Cicotte; 1821, James May. Monguagon: i8i8, Jason Thurston; 1819, A. C. Truax; 1820, B. Rowley; 1822, Artemnas Hosmer. The names of the supervisors of all townships and cities, except D~etroit, since 1827 are as follows: HAMT~RAMCK:-1827 —1833, C. Moran-, 1833") 1837, P3. Van Every; 1837-1841, Louis Beaufait; 1841, John Kirby; 1842, Louis Beaufait; 1843, Anthony Damito; 1844, WV. B. Hunt: 1845, Georgre Moran; 1846, L. Moran; 1 847, Jed. P. C, Emmons; 1848, A. Damito; 1 849-1i862, John M. Mack; 1 862 -1869, Henry XV. Deare; 1869-187i, Lawrence XV. IDalton; 1871, H. W. Deare; i872-1i875, James H-olihan; 1875, John Keveny; 1876-1883, James A. Visger; I883-ik886, WV. C. Mahoney; 86 Henry Hitchins; 1887, Roger Echlin. SPR1NGWELLS:-r827 —183o, Peter Godfroy; 1830, R. A. Forsyth; I1831) -18S37, William W~oodbridge; i1837-1i840, Peter Godfroy; 1 840, George X.Bedell; 1841, Peter Godfroy; i842-1845, Samuel Trudell, 1845, William Harsha; 1846, Joseph Baron; 1847 -1849, Samuel Medill; 1849-1851, S. Trudell; 8I i85 W- W. Irwin; i85 Bernard Hackett; 1856, S. Trudell; i857-i859, H. Haggerty; 1859, B. MN. Davis; i186o-1i863, H. Haggerty; 1 863-1869, Ernest Ranspach; 1869-i875, H. Haggerty; 1875-i88i, Conrad Clippert; i1881i —1884, L. D. Haiggerty; 1 884, J.fH. Clixby; i885, L. D.Haggerty; i886-,J. H. Clixby. MONGUAGON:-i827 —1829, A. C. Truax; 1829, James Williams; i83o-i832, Ara Sprague; 1832, H. P. Powers;, 1833, Henry Raymond; 1 834, Richard Smyth; 1835-1838, H. P. Powers; 1 838, John A. Rucker; 1839-1842, A. C. Truax; 1 842 -1844, Thomas Lew.is; 1844, W. J. Alvord; 1845, H. Saunders; i846-i849. G. B. Slocum; 1849, H. Gray; i85o, H. Saunders; i85i-i855, J. I. David; i85 Thom~as Lewis; i856, H. Saunders; i857 -i1859, James Campbell; 1 859, Dallas Norvell; 86o1864, William IN-es; 1864-1866, Dallas Norvell; i 866, A. Dudgeon; 1 867, Win. Ives; i 868, C. Ives; 1869-i871, John Clee; I871, James I. David; 1872, Alvin A. Turner; 1873-187 5, James H. Vreeland; 1875-1877, IDaniel Reaume; 1877-i879, William J. Duddleson; 1879, James H. Vreeland; i88o, W. J. Duddleson; i88i, John Clee; i882-1887, Louis Groh; 1887-, J. H. Vreeland, BROWNSTOWN -18:27, Moses Roberts; 1828 — T830, Seth Dunham; 1830, G. Browvn; 1831, D. C. Vreeland; 1832, D. Smith; i833-i835, John Forbes; i835-1837, Thomas Harryman; i837-1840, John Forbes; 1840, John Cook; i841-i844, Thos. Harryman; 1 844, D. C. Vreeland; 1 845, H. P. Van Cleve; 1846, John Forbes; 1847, Joseph Selden; 1848, J. Forbes; 1849, John Cook; i85o, B3. F. Knapp; i851, J. L. Near; 1852-i854, George Carson; 1854 -1857, B. F. Knapp; i857, J. XW. Van Riper; 1858, B. F. Knapp; i859-186i, J. N. Hitchcock; i86ii865, John XV. Van Riper; i865-i868, J. N. Hitchcock; i868, B. F. Knapp; 1869, W. H. Hooper; i870-i875, William Stoflet; 1875, John Wood; 1876-i878, Samuel T. Hendricks; 1878-1886, Wnm. F. Stoflet; i886-, A. R. Reading. PLYMOUTH:-1827-i1830, William Bartow; 1830, R. Root; 1831, James Purdy; 1832-1834, 'Philo Taylor; 1834, Roswell Root; 1835, J, M. Mead; i836, H. Ak. Noyes; 1837, Jonathan Shearer; 1838, James De Mott; 1839, Roswell Root; i840-1842, Henry B. Holbrook; 1842-1845, E. J. Penniman; 1845-1847, H. B3. Holbrook; 1847-1849, J. Shearer; 1849, H. Fralick: i85o, E. J. Penniman; i851, J. B. Covert; 1852, H. Fralick; 1853-1855,j-j S. Tibbets; 1855,G. A.Starkweather; i856, J. STibbets; 1857, H. Bradley; j8;8-i86o, G. A.Starkweather; i86o TOWNSHIP OFFICERS. '3' 1 862, William Taift; 1 862, G. A. Starkweather; 1863-i866, Winfield Scott; i866-1872, Hiram B. Thayer; 1872, Winfield Scott; i873-1875, H. B. Thayer; 1875-1878, W. Scott; 1878, Henry Hurd; 1879, WV. Scott; i88o-i882, S. J. Springer; 1882, H. B. Thayer, 1 883- i8S7, C. I). iPUrfee; 1 887 -W. H. Ambler. ECORCE:-1827-i829, J. Cicotte; I829~-1833, 1). Goodell; 1 833-1i836, John Palmer; i1836-1839, Jonas Goodell; 1839, Charles Steward; i840-i842, Richard Sutliff; 1842-1846, John Biddle; 1846, J. Visger; 1847, J. Goodell; i1848-1i8 56, L. Cicotte; 8 56-1i862, E. Visger; 1862-i867, James A. Visger; i867 -1887, Hyacinthe F. Riopelle; 1887- G. A. Raupp. HURON -1i827 -1829, Prosper Lawrence; 1829, Amos Howe; 1830, A. McNath; 1831, J. Crawford; 1832-1834, E. IBradshaw; 1834-i836, John Crowfoot; 1836, S. H. IDowns; 1837, Artemnas Hosmer; 1838, E. Bradshaw; 1839, Martin H1. Ford; 1840, Erastus Priest'; 1841, John Crowfoot; 1842, T. J. Downs; 1843-1846, John Crowfoot; 1846 -1849, Joseph Evans; i849-1852. L. Severance; i852-1854, W. S. Hosmer; 1854-1868, Joseph Evans; 1 868-1i87 1, Moses R. Nowland; 1 871i, Theo. T.Evans; 1872, A. P. Thayer; 1873-1875, G. W. Smith; 1875, Joseph Waltz; 1876, Henry W~ager; 1877-1879, H. L. Stofiet; 1879, Myron H. Ellis; i 88o, 1-I. L. Stoflet; 1 881i-1i883, M. H. Ellis; 1 883-:,885, Joseph Waltz, 1885-,H. L. Stoflet. BUCKLIN:-x1827-1830, Marcus Swift. NANK1N:-i830-i833, MNarcus Swift; 1833, G. D. Champ; 1834, Adolphus Brigham; 183 5-I838, Ammon Brown; i838, G. I). Chubb; 1839, Marcus Swift; 1840, V.. Wightman; i841, 5. P. Cady; 1842, M. Sxvift; 1843, Ammon Brown; 1844-1846, Volney Wightman; 1846, E. Hawley, Jr.; 1847 i85o, A. Brown; 185o-i855, W. Edmonds; 1855, I). W~alker; 1856, WN. Edmonds; i857-1859 D.Walker; 1859 —i861, W~illiam Edmonds; i86i D. Straight; i862-1864, W. Edmonds; 1864, David Walker; i 865- i868, J. J. Palmer; 1.i868-1i87o, Geo. H, Stellwagen, 1 870-1i872, William Edmonds; i1872, Samuel A. Cady; i873-1875, Geo. H. Stellwagen; 187 5-1i878, John B. WVallace; i1878, Oscar S. Straight; Z,879-188t, Charles H. Cady; i88i, William H. Haywood; 1 882-, C. H. Cady. PEKIN:-183o-i832, C. Ten Eyck; 1832, G. W. Ferrington. REDFORD:-i833)-i84o, G. XV. Ferrington-; 184o1842, Hiram Segur; 1842-i845, G. W. Ferrington; 1845, A. Stockwell; 1846, P. R. Thompson; 1 847 -1849, G. WV. Ferrington; 1849, A. Stockwell; 1850, G. WV. Ferrington; i85i, D. Walker; 1852-1856, D. Sackett; 1856-1862, Alfred Harris; 1862-1864, David Sackett; 1864, Alfred Harris; 1865. J. J. T. Ziegler; t866-i868. J. J. Prindle; t868, William A. Smith; 1869, A. J. Wixom; 1870-1872, Jeremiah Sheahan; 1872-1874, Alfred Harris; 1874-i876, Ansel B. Pierce; 1876, John M. Lee; 1877, A. S. W~oodruff; 1878, Asa H. Wilmarth; 1879-1881, H. I. Btirgess; i88i, David Genev I-1~82-i1885, John M. Lee; 1885., G. C. Lawrence. DEARBORN:-i833-i839, C. Ten Eyck; 1839, Cyrus Howard; 1840, Martin Vrooman; 184I-1844, XV. G. Porter; 1844, Titus Dort; 1845, T. M. Sweeney; 1846, Joshua Howard; 1847-185o, Titus l)ort; 1850, Cyrus 1-oward; i85i1-i855, H. XWightmnan; 185 T. Dort; 1856-1858, H. XWightman; i858, T. IDort; 1859, H. Wightman; 186o-i862, R. Gardner; 1862, T. JDort; i863-1867, William Daly; 1867, T. Dort; 1868-1870, XWilliamn Daly; 1870 -1872, Jared A. Sexton; 1872, Charles N. Brainard; 187-3) -1876, William Daly, 1 876-1878, John Crosby, i1878-1j881i, W. IDaly, i 88 f, Charles N. l3rainard. 1882-i885, XW. Daly; 1885, J. A. Sexton; i886 -S. B3. Lo~ng GREENFIELD:-i833, N. P~. Thayer; 1834, John Burbank; 1835, Jacob Banager; 1836-1838, N. P. Thayer; 1 88,LGoda;13, Isaac XV. Fulton; 1840, Dav-id Smart; 1841, William C. Maples; 1842 -1846, John 131indbury; 1846, John C. Williams; 1847-18`2, A. H. Otis; 1852-1854, J. McFarlane; 1854, A. H. Otis; i85 J. McFarlane; 1856, John Strong; 1857-1864, James McFarlane; 1864-1869, Peter Ternes; i869-1871, George F. Pillard; 1871, Anthony Ternes; i872-1878, George F. Pillard; i8.78, Walter Henderson; 1879, William A. McFarlane; l88o-1882, W~alter Henderson; i882-1884, William A. McFarlane; 1884-1886, W. Henderson; i 886-, W. A. McFarlane. CANT1O(N:-1834-i836,James Safford; 1836-1838, A. Y. Murray; 1838-1845, Philander Bird; 1845, A. Stevens; 1 846, D. D. Cady; i 847- i8 52, J. Safford; 1852-1856, David Cady; 1856-1861, J. Safford; i861-1873, Bradshaw Hodgkinson; 1873-1878, John Huston, 2d; 1878-1884, James A. Safford; 1884 -1887, H. F. Homner; 1887-, 0. R. Pettengill. LiVONIA:-i835 —1839, Adolphus Brigham; 1839 -i841, C. C. Leach; 1841, Joshua Bailey; i842,W. Tuttle; 1843-i845, Luther Dean; 1845-i847, C. C. Leach; 1847-1i850, 5. B. Smith; 1850-1853, Charles Noble; 1853, A. J. Crosby; 1854-1857, C. C. Leach; 1857, C. Noble; 1858, S. Smith; 1859, C. C. Leach; 1860- 1862, J. S. Tibbetts; 1862, 5. B. Smith; 1863 Charles Noble; i864-1867, Alexander Bltie; 1867, R. L. Alexander; 1 868-1i870, S. B. Smith; i1870-1i872, IraJ. IBradner; 1872, William H. Smith; i873-1875, Ransom L. Alexander; i187 5-1i88 i, William T. Rattenbury; 188-1883, John L. Vrooman; 1883, WV. B. Ewing; 1884-1887, Abraham Stringer; 1887 -R 1. L. Alexander. ROMULUS:-i 835-1839, D. J. Pullen; 1i839, Seth Marsh; 1,i840, N. W. Pullen-, 184 1, H. B. Adams; 132 132 ~~~~TOWNSHIP OFFICERS. i842, N. WV. Pullen; 1843, John F. Smith; 1844 -1847, John Carr; 1847, N. WV. Pullen; 1848, A. P. Young; 1849, L. Bigelow; 1850-i853, G. W. Moore; 1853-i857, A. J. Pullen; 1857-i859, J. C. Winkleman; 1859-i868, A. J. Pullen; i 868, Ambrose P. Young; i869-i872, Edward Bingle; 1872, George Frost; 1873, Hugh Bradburn; 1874 -1877, W~m. \Vhitacre; I877-1879, Robert C. Bird; i879-1881, Win. Whitacre; i88i, E. Bingle; 1882 -i887, Peter C. Bird; 1887-, F. D. Whitacre. VAN BUREN:-i835-i-837, Ebenezer C. Eaton; 1837, J. C. Vaughn; i838, E. C. Eaton; 1839, job Smith; i840-i843, J. C. Vaughn; 1843-1845, Eli Bradshaw; 1845-1847, George Jewett; 1847, J. Burt; i848, J. C. Vaughn; 1849, E. C. Eaton; 1850, R. P. Clark; 185i-1855, L. S. Anderson; i855-i865, W~illiam E. Warner; i865, James C. Vaughn; i866-i868, L. R. Brown; i868-i873, C. J. Barlow; i1873-1i877, WV. E. Warner; 1 877, Gilbert Brown; 1878, W. E. Warner; 1879-188 1, J, A. Stevens; i 88xi-i 886. Henry IDavis; i 886-, F. Robbe. SUMPTER:-184o1i842, Ira P. Beach; 184:2, Robert Merrill; I843-i847, M. H. Ford; i847-i849, S. Bennett; 1849, M. H. Ford; i850-1858, T. P. Martin; i858, H. Plumb; 1859-i863, T. P. Martin; 1863, Murray Sherman; 1864-1871, T. P. Martin; 187i-1875, Wellington Ellis; 1875-1878, T. P. Martin; 1878, Joseph C. Merrill; 1879, Elias TL. Ingersoll; i88o, J. Burnalp; i88i-1887, Charles Merrell; 1887-, A. V. Jones. TAYLOR:-i 847-1849, Jared Sexton; 1849-1 85i, Peter Coan; 185 1-1864, Charles Steward; 1864. G. C. Putnam; 1865-1871, James Evans.; i871, John A. Vrooman; 1872, James Evans; 1873 -1878, J.J. Vrooman; i878-i88o, Peter Boltz; i88o, G. P. Coati; 1881-1883, Peter Boltz; i883-1885, F. A. Schumann; i885, R. Graden; i886-,F. A Schtilmann. GROSSE POINTE: 1848, George Moran; 1849, Daniel Corby; i85o, George Martin; i851-i858, R.,M. Kirby; i858, R. H. Connor; 1859, J. Apply; i86o-i863, R. M. Kirby; i863-1871, John C. Pulcher; i871-1875, R. M. Kirby; 1875 -IDavid Trombley. CITv OF WYANDOTTE,: 1870, John Morgan and Isaac Strong; i871, Leander Ferguson and Charles XWilks; 1872, George Marx and Louis Stilzer; 1873, George Marx and H. H. Eby; 1 874, George Marx and James Keusch; 1875, George Marx and Oscar Sanborn; 1 876, Francis Murphy and Joseph Girardin; 1877, George Marx and Patrick Fury; 1878, R. WV. Leighton and J. J. Thon; i879, R. W. Leighton and J. P. Debo; 188- 1882, R. W. Leighton and R. Mason; 1882, Jer. Drennan and S. D. Hinds; 1883, J. Drennan and S. T. Lawrence; i884, Charles SehUffert anid S. J. Lawrence; i885, C. Schuffert and G. Stornmount; i886-, R. W. Leighton, D. Sulflivan and jai-tes Cahill. CHAPTER XXIII. THE EARLY GOVERNMENT OF DETROIT.-INCORPORATION AS A TOWN-RULE OF THE GOVERNOR AND JUDGES.-REVIVAL OF LOCAL GOVERNMENT. THE EARLY GOVERNMENT OF DETROIT. The government and the local affairs of Detroit have always received attention. Kings, queens, and cardinals, archbishops, ladies of high degree, govevrnor-generals, and generals of the religious orders, ill in turn have given heed to matters concerning he "Colony of the Strait." Religious projects, commercial enterprises, grave political schemes and court amours were interwoven with the management of the post. At different times, patriarchal, military, autocratic, and representative methods have here held sway. Details of some of the doings under these different forms of power afford rare items in the history of the past. The growth and progress of local government under American rule is shown in the chronological table of charters and laws.' During the French rdgime, local authority was vested almost exclusively in the commandants. Under the later years of English rule, the Court of General Quarter Sessions exercised many of the prerogatives appertaining to recent municipal governments. INCORPORATION. After a township organization was obtained, the same court that granted it administered the few simple regulations that the small settlement required. In January, I802, a petition of citizens of Detroit was presented to the Legislature of the Northwest Territory, at Chillicothe, asking for the incorporation of the town. To this end a bill was introduced in the Assembly by Solomon Sibley. The Upper House or Council proposed various amendments, but the Assembly would not agree to them. Finally a committee of conference was appointed, and as the result of their deliberations, the bill was passed in its original form on January 18. The Act was to take effect on the first of February. At the first election of the corporation, the freedom of the town was conferred upon Mr. Sibley in recognition of his efforts in behalf of the bill. The Act named the following persons as officers, and they were to serve until an election should be held: Trustees, John Askin, John Dodemead, James Henry, Charles Francis Girardin, and Joseph Campau; Secretary, Peter Audrain; Assessor, Robert Abbott; Collector, Jacob Clemens; Marshal, Elias Wallen. At the first meeting of the trustees, on February 9, I802, Messrs. Girardin and Wallen were absent from home, James Henry was appointed chairman, and John Dodemead, treasurer. James Peltier was made messenger of the trustees. The first election, on May 3, I802, resulted in the retention of all the old trustees except John Askin, George Meldrum being elected in his stead. The secretary, assessor, and marshal were continued in office. William Smith was elected collector; he resigned, and the trustees appointed Conrad Seek. The old chairman and treasurer were reappointed. On May 2, I803, the following officers were elected: Trustees, Robert Abbott, Charles Curry, James May, D. W. Scott, E. Brush; Secretary, Peter Audrain; Assessor, T. McCrae; Collector, John Bentley; Marshal, Richard Smyth. James May was appointed chairman, Robert Abbott treasurer, and Louis Peltier messenger. The election of May 7, I804, resulted in the appointment of the following officers: Trustees, Solomon Sibley, James Abbott, Henry Berthelet, Joseph Wilkinson, Frederick Bates; Secretary, Peter Audrain; Assessor, John Watson; Collector, Peter Desnoyers; Marshal, Thomas McCrae. At a meeting of the trustees on May 11, I804, Solomon Sibley was made chairman, and the former treasurer and messenger were continued. On August 6, 1804, J. Bte. Piquette was appointed collector in place of Mr. Desnoyers, who was absent, and on December 3, 1804, John Connor was appointed marshal in place of T. McCrae, " who has left the country." The last officers elected under the Act were chosen on May 6, 1805, and were as follows: Trustees, James Abbott, Dr. William Brown, Dr. Joseph Wilkinson, Fred Bates, and John Williams; Secretary, P. Audrain; Assessor, J. Watson; Collector, J. Bte. Piquette; Marshal, John Connor. The trustees were sworn in on May i, and on the same I See Appendix B. L[33] 134 RULE OF THE GOVERNOR AND JUDGES. day appointments were made as follows: Joseph Wilkinson, chairman; James Abbott, treasurer; L. Peltier, messenger; and John Connor, clerk of market and police officer. Just one month later the fire of June I wiped out not only the town, but the corporation as well, and introduced the administration of the Governor and Judges. RULE OF THE GOVERNOR AND JUDGES. This title designates a form of government unlike anything afforded by the history of any other place in the United States. An irresponsible and uncontrolled autocracy fastened itself upon the people, and for a long series of years this anomalous government, a strange compound of legality and assumption, held absolute sway, exercising almost unlimited control over the lands and laws, the persons and property, of the town. A condition of affairs existed, at once so exceptional and so singular, that the relation of actual facts seems like a record of feudal times. To obtain anything like a clear conception of those days this article should be read in connection with the chapters on "Legislatures and Laws," "Public Domain and Governor and Judges' Plan," "Supreme Court of the Territory," "Banks and Banking," and " Militia." By a strange conjunction of circumstances, the Governor and Judges of the Territory, who had been appointed January I, just five months previous to the fire, arrived on the day following that event. There was but little left in the town for the old trustees to exercise authority upon, and both trustees and people naturally turned for assistance and counsel to their territorial rulers. The Governor and Judges, having a whole Territory to care for, might very appropriately have availed themselves of the services of the officers of the town in the endeavor to bring order out of chaos, especially as the very Act that created the corporation of I802 had been passed upon and approved by the body that appointed the Governor and Judges, and besides, there were among the trustees and citizens men who were the equals of the new territorial officers in learning and ability, and fully capable of acting in any capacity. Governor Hull and Judge Woodward, however, seeing an opportunity to obtain increased power and patronage, did not fail to improve it. They passed by all the prominent citizens of Detroit, ignored the officials and the corporation of I802, and procured the passage of the Act of April 21, I806, which gave to them alone the power to lay out a new town and dispose of the town lands. From this time they acted in a dual capacity, becoming, in fact, the executive officers of the town, as well as of the Ter ritory. That they intended to do away with the old Act of 1802, and control the administration of local affairs, is evident from the fact that on September 13, I8o6, they passed an Act providing for the incorporation of the city of Detroit, the real aim of which is shown in the letters of John Gentle, published in the Pittsburgh Commonwealth. The Act itself, still in existence in the original manuscript signed by the Governor and Judges, shows that Mr. Gentle's statements are true, and that all the power was really vested in the mayor, and that he was appointed by the governor, who thus retained the ultimate control over the affairs of the city. Mr. Gentle says: This summer the legislative board passed a law incorporating the town of Detroit- into a city. The governor conferred the mayorship on Solomon Sibley, who advertised the citizens to assemble for the purpose of choosing a first and second council, to consist of three members each. Accordingly the following persons were elected: First Council, Stanley Griswold, John Harvey, Peter Desnoyers; Second Council, Isaac Jones, John Gentle, James Dodemead. A few days after the election, Solomon Sibley relinquished his mayorship, and Elijah Brush was appointed by the governor mayor of the city in his stead. Some time in the month of December following, the Governor and Judges were committing some depredations upon the streets of the new town, entirely blocking up one, laying it out in lots, and disposing of them at an enormous price, to the great damage of the adjoining settlers; ant removing another street about fifty feet, on purpose to make the bank form the corer of the two streets, and enlarge the avenue to the governor's mansion, to the great damage of the principalrange of houses in the new town. These flagrant infractions on the rights and privileges of the citizens did not fail to attract the attention of the city council. They assembled to examine, for the first time, the corporation law, and to ascertain the extent of their jurisdiction. But how great was their astonishment when they discovered that the whole of the corporation powers centred in the mayor alone. * * * * * * * * * * * * That the elections of the councils was a mere mockery, and an insult to the understandings of the citizens, will evidently appear by the following extract from the corporation law itself: "And be it further enacted, that every Bill, or Act, having passed by a majority of both chambers, before it becomes a law shall be presented to the mayor, and if not approved by him shall not take effect, or become a law, but shall be returned, with his objections, to the chamber in which it last passed,-there to remain (for here it stopped) in statu quo until the day of judgment, without further reconsideration." But they ought to have added a few more words, to the following effect: Who shall enter the objection at large on their journal, and proceed to reconsider it, and if after such reconsideration, two thirds of that chamber shall agree to pass the Bill, it shall be sent, together with the objections, to the other chamber, by which it shall also be reconsidered, and if approved of by two thirds of them it shall become a law, etc. Then the power of the two chambers would be complete, and in exact similitude with the power vested in every other body corporate in the Christian world. But as the Detroit Corporation Act now stands, of which the foregoing extract is the most important part, I defy the most enlightened age to produce anything so ridiculously absurd. By it the mayor is clothed with an absolute negative in all cases whatsoever, and by it the two councils are clothed with absolute insignificance. They are, if I may be allowed the expression, a body without guts. Instead of having power to open one street, and prevent the removal of another, they had not power to open a hog-pen, or prevent the removal of a hen-roost. REVIVAL OF LOCAL GOVERNMENT. 35 So great was the indignation of the people that officers were elected but once under this corporation, and on February 24, 1809, the law was repealed. The next act in the farce was the repeal, on September 16, 181o, of all laws pertaining to Michigan that had been adopted by the Legislature of the Northwest Territory. This gave the legal finish to the Act of I802, and, as had been the case from the date of the fire,'the Governor and Judges continued to exercise control over the affairs of the town. They had lots to sell and lots to give away; they fired salutes, buried the dead, and supported the paupers. In an old play, Robin Roughhead is represented as saying, on coming into possession of a fortune, "There sha'n't be any widows, for I '11 marry them all, nor any orphans, for I '11 father them all"; and if there had been no objection, the Governor and Judges, seemingly, would have been equally generous. In a word, they acted as almoners-general, paying out moneys from the Detroit Fund without consultation wvith any man or body of men, and rendering no account therefor. This state of affairs continued until after the War of 1812. REVIVAL OF LOCAL GOVERNMENT. Under the governorship of General Cass, an Act of October 24, 1815, restored the control of local affairs to the people. Five trustees were elected on October 30 to serve until the first Monday of May, I816, after which date officers were to be elected yearly. The following persons served as trustees: I815, Solomon Sibley, chairman, James Abbott; I816, George McDougall, chairman, Stephen Mack, A. Edwards, O. W. Miller, Peter Desnoyers, and Oliver Williams, the last named in place of McDougall for about two months; 1817, Abraham Edwards chairman, S. Mack, Charles Lamed, O. W. Miller, Antoine Dequindre; 1818, John R. Williams, chairman, L. Dequindre, Richard Smyth, C. Ten Eyck, Joseph Campau; I819, James McCloskey, chairman, A. Dequindre, Abraham Wendell, James Connor, Thomas Palmer; I820, James Abbott, chairman, J. McCloskey, P. J. Desnoyers, Thomas Rowland, John Hunt; 1821, A. G. Whitney, chairman, A. E. BWing, Levi Cook, S. Conant, Jacob Eilert; I822, A. G. Whitney, chairman. A. E Wing, Calvin Baker, Levi Cook, Charles Willcox; 1823, J. Abbott, chairman, Louis Dequindre, H. J. Hunt, John P. Sheldon, C. Baker. CHAPTER XXIV. THE COMMON COUNCIL OR BOARD OF ALDERMEN.-BOARD OF COUNCILMEN.ORDINANCES. OFFICIAL YEAR.-CITY SEALS. COMMON COUNCIL. THE government under the name of " The Board of Trustees" came to an end, and the Common Council was created by Act of August 5, I824. The first session was held on September 21, 1824. The new officials were evidently determined to have all the "light" possible in order to the proper discharge of their duties, as the proceedings for September 25 show that the marshal was ordered to " purchase for the use of the council and mayor's court four brass candlesticks, two pairs of snuffers, ten pounds of sperm candles, and a box for the safe keeping of the same." The sessions were held at various places as convenience seemed to dictate,- sometimes at the store or office of one of the aldermen; sometimes at Woodworth's Hotel; and now and then at the old Council House. When the city came into possession of the Military Reserve, one of the old buildings, known as Military Hall, located just west of Fort Shelby, was appropriated, and a session held therein on November 15, 1826. On May I, 1827, a meeting was held on the banks of the river Savoyard, between Griswold and Cass Streets, for the purpose of examining the stream with a view to changing its course. On May I8, 1827, a session was held at the market on Woodward Avenue, just south of Jefferson Avenue. From I827 to 1834 sessions were held in Military Hall, which was newly christened as the Council House. On November 19, I834, it was decided to hold sessions in the old Council House, on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street. In 1835 sessions were held in Williams' Block, on the southeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Bates Street. The City Hall was completed the same year, and a small room in the first story was used for the meetings of the council. The old Firemen's Hall, on the northwest corner of Lamed and Bates Streets, was the next place of meeting. The first session was held there on December 24, 1839, in an upper room. In the summer of I852 the council returned to the old City Hall, the upper part of which had been fitted up for its use. This continued to be the place of meeting until July I8, I871, when the old building was formally vacated, and sessions were thereafter held in the council chamber of the new City Hall. In 1825 sessions were held on Monday evening. During the cholera season of 1834 sessions were held twice a day. On April I3, 1835, it was resolved to meet on Wednesday evening. On August 31, 1836, the time was changed to Tuesday. After August 4, 1838, the council for a short time held its sessions at 2 P. M. on Tuesdays. Under Act of April 5, I869, the council, on June 8, began holding sessions on Tuesday and Friday evenings of each week. Act of June 6, i88i, provided that but one session a week should thereafter be held, and after that date sessions were held on Tuesday evening. Special meetings can be held on the call of the president, though no business can be transacted that is not mentioned in the call. Under Act of 1824 five aldermen, together with the mayor aid recorder, constituted the council. An Act of 1827 increased the number of aldermen to seven. Under Act of I839 two aldermen from each ward, with the mayor and recorder, composed the fourteen members of the council. In 1848, by the creation of the seventh ward, two more members were added. The new eighth ward, in I849, gave two additional members, and in 1857 the ninth and tenth wards, four more; but as the Act of I857 provided that the mayor and recorder should no longer sit as members, the council consisted of but twenty members. In 1873 the twelfth ward added two members, and for about two weeks in I874 two members from the then illegally constituted eleventh ward sat with the council. In 1875 by the creation of the eleventh and thirteenth wards, four members were added, increasing the number of members to twenty-six. Originally, a majority of all the members, including the mayor and recorder, constituted a quorum. Under Act of 1839, the presence of the mayor, recorder, and six aldermen was necessary. By Act of 1848 the mayor, recorder, and five aldermen formed a quorum. By Act of I851 the mayor and a majority of the aldermen were sufficient; since 1857 a majority of all the aldermen constitutes a quorum. In case a quorum is lacking, by vote of [136] .1. "I",.. -.111.11- 1.1..1.1 BOADL)S O1 ALDERMEL a majority of the aldermen present, the president may send an officer to bring the delinquents to the meeting. The first rules for the government of the council were adopted on August i6, 1832, and the present rules are substantially the same. Petitions or documents of any proper sort may be presented either by the clerk or an alderman. If objection is made, no question involving the expenditure of money can be passed upon at the meeting when it is introduced; and no member of the council may vote on a question in which he is pecuniarily interested. In case of a tie vote, the question is lost. On the demand of one fourth of the number present, or if called for by the chair, the ayes and noes must be taken. In 1836 there were five standing committees, viz., on Claims and Accounts, Ways and Means, Streets, Health, and Fire Department. In 1842 all the above committees were in existence, and also committees on Hydraulic Works, Markets, Printing, and Licenses. In 1849 a Committee on Taxes was added. In I855 committees were named on Gaslights, Sewers, Public Buildings, and Parks. In i886 there wvere twenty-two standing committees, having charge of such matters as are indicated by their several names, which are as follows: Ways and Means, Judiciary, Claims and Accounts, Streets, Fire Limits, House of Correction, Public Buildings, Sewers, Taxes, Parks, Street Openings, Printing, Markets, Health, Public Lights, Ordinances, Pounds, Licenses. City Hospital, Rules, Joint Business and Liquor Bonds. The charter of 1883 designated this body the Board of Aldermen. It possesses a singular sort of authority in its power to sit as a Land Board, a power conferred by Congress in 1842, when the City succeeded to the land trust of the Governor and Judges. (See article on Land Boards.) Since 1852 the proceedings of the council have been published yearly in book form; and annually from I866, with the exception of one or two years, a manual has been issued containing the rules of the council and names of city officers, with various details concerning the city government. Prior to 1857, the mayor, or in his absence, the recorder, presided over the council. Under the charter of 1857 the council was authorized to elect its own president, and also a president pro temfpore. In 1867 a struggle, lasting from January 8 to March 5, took place over the election of a president. The aldermen voted for were H. C. Knight, J. D. Weir, and Paul Gies. The last named was finally chosen. This contest caused the passage of the Act of February 14, 1867, which provided that when a vacancy existed in the office of president, the clerk should preside until the office was filled. The president appoints all standing committees, N AND COUNCILMEN. 137 the first person chosen on a committee to be chairman. Either of the elected presiding officers may call upon any of the aldermen to act as temporary chairman. Under Act of 1857, in the absence of the mayor, the president of the council discharges his duties. By law of I88I and charter of 1883, the president of the Board of Councilmen, or in his absence, the president of the Board of Aldermen, became acting mayor. The following persons have served as presidents: 1857, H. A. Morrow; I858 and I859, William C. Duncan; I860, Nathaniel P. Jacobs; I86I, Jacob S. Farrand; 1862 and 1863, Francis B. Phelps; 1864 and I865, S. Dow Elwood; I866, William Brodie; 1867 and 1868, Paul Gies; 1869, William S. Bond; 1870, William Foxen; 1871, George W. Balch; 1872 -I875, William H. Langley; 1875, W. G. Thompson; 1876, G. W. Hough; I877, Henry Heames; 1878, T. D. Hawley; I879-I882, Charles Ewers; 1882, E. K. Roberts; 1883, J. E. Vincent, Henry Klei; 884, W. E. Moloney; 1885, A. Kaiser; 1886, Geo. H. Barbour; 1887, J. J. Mulheron. BOARD OF COUNCILMEN. This body, originally called the City Council, was created by Act of April 12, I881. The act provided for the election of twelve persons from the city at large. The first twelve members, chosen in November, I88I, were elected in groups of three for terms of one, two, three, and four years, and three members were to be elected yearly thereafter for terms of four years each. This body was originally supposed to possess the powers formerly exercised by the Board of Estimates, and all proceedings relating to the levying of taxes, the expenditure of money, or the incurring of liabilities of any sort, were required to have its approval. By the revised charter of 1883 the Board of Councilmen had only equal power with the Board of Aldermen in so far as matters of taxation and legislation are concerned, but they alone, on the nomination-of the mayor, confirmed a majority of the leading officers of the city and members of the several boards. Resolutions of any kind originated in either board. Both bodies were required to meet in joint session when the annual report of the mayor was made, and might unite at other times. A majority of the councilmen constituted a quorum. The rules were much the same as those of the Board of Aldermen, and the standing committees nearly the same. Weekly sessions were held on Friday evening. The City Council held its first meeting on January o1, 1882, and its last on September 26, I887. It was abolished by law of June 2, 1887. The following persons served as presidents: i882 to 1884, A. H. Raynor; 1884, H. D. Barnard and 138 ORDINANCES.-OFFICIAL YEAR.-CITY SEALS. Theo. Rentz, 1885, M. H. Chamberlain; 1886, Ralph Phelps, Jr.; 1887, John Pridgeon. Jr. The councilmen were as follows; 1882, A IH. Raynor, A. M. Henry. S. A. Plumer. J. T. Lowry, S G. Caskey, H. R. Newberry, S. C. XVatson. J.Mc Gregor. T. Berry, F. W. Swift, H D. Barnard, S. 13 Grummond. 1883, A. H. Raynor, J. T. Lowry, S. G. Caskey. H. R. Newberry, S. C. Watson, J. McGregor, T. Berry, F. W. Swift, H. D. Barnard, S. B. Grummond, T. Rentz, M. H. Chamberlain. 1884, T. Rentz, S. C. Watson, J. McGregor, T. Berry, F. W. Swift, A. H. Raynor, M. H. Chamberlain, H. E. Champion, M. Stewart, Jr., Ralph Phelps, Jr., A. Goebel, H. D. Barnard. 1885, T. Rentz, W. L. Streeter, E. P. Conahan, A. H. Raynor, T. Berry, M. H. Chamberlain, H. E. Champion, W. T. Dust, Ralph Phelps, Jr., A. Goebel, '. McGrath, Wm. Look. I886, T. Rentz, W. L. Streeter, E. P. Conahan, A. H. Raynor, T. Berry, H. E. Champion, Ralph Phelps, Jr., Wm. Look, J. Pridgeon, Jr., T. Beggs, Thos. McGrath. 1887, W. L. Streeter, E. P. Conahan, T. Berry, H. E. Champion, J. Pridgeon, Jr., T. Beggs. J. L. McCarthy, T. P. Tuite, LE 1. Moran, P. C. McLaughlin, Anthony Petz. ORDI NANCES. The Act of 1802 gave the trustees power to ordain rules for the government of the town, but their ordinances were to be submitted to the voters at the annual meeting, and if disapproved were thereafter to be null and void. A provision for the submission of ordinances to the people was also contained in the Act of 1815. Under this provision, at the annual election in May, 1820, an. ordinance concerning hogs running at large was voted out of existence, and in the following year one in regard to fires, passed five years before, was repealed because "unequal and oppressive." The by-laws and ordinances were first printed in 1825. On February 13, 1826, the marshal was directed to leave "one copy at every house, where the owner or occupant has not already been furnished." In i813 the council rules required every ordinance to be read three times before being finally voted on, and an ordinance could be read but once at the same session, unless by special vote. The first and second readings are usually by title only, and all ordinances are required to be approved by both councilmen and aldermen. In addition to the ordinances printed in pamphlet form in 1825, revisions in book form were issued in 1831, 1836, 1842, 1855, 1863, 1871, 1878 and 1884. OFFICIAL YEAR. Under the Acts of I802 and 1815 the trustees were to qualify within ten days after the first Monday of May. By Act of 1824 aldermen were to qualify within fifteen days after the first Monday of April, and by Act of I839 their term of office began as soon after the first Monday in March as they took the requisite oath. An Act of 1855 provided that the official year should begin on the second Tuesday in February. By Act of 1857 the second Tuesday in January was fixed upon as the time for the first session of the new council. In so far as elected officers are concerned, their terms still begin at that time, but since I879 the terms of officers appointed by the council, except members of the several commissions, begin on the first day of July. CITY SEALS. The first seal of the city was adopted on January 3, 815. Thomas Rowland was then secretary. The records of the Board of Trustees show the following: Until a corporate seal shall be procured, the secretary of the Board of Trustees shall use and apply his private seal, which is hereby adopted and made the seal of the corporation of Detroit. The next seal of the city was also a private one, belonging to John R. Williams, the mayor. It was temporarily adopted on September 23, 1824, and was described as being made of red carnelian set in gold, octagonal in form, and about one inch in diameter. In the center was engraved a shield with three fleurs de lis; underneath the shield was the motto, " La justice mon devoir," and over it the letters J. R. W. The third seal adopted was likewise private property. The official proceedings of the Common Council for May io, 1826, contain this record: Resolved, that a watch-seal belonging to Mayor Hunt be, and the same is hereby adopted as a temporary seal of the city of Detroit, to be used until a permanent seal shall be procured. Said seal consists of a topaz set in gold, on which are engraved the initial letters H. J. H. SEAL OF THE Crry. (Exact size.) CITY SEALS. 139 - The fourth seal belonged t6 Jonathan Kearsley, and the Common Council Proceedings for November 13, 1826, show the adoption of the following: Resolved, that a brass seal, belonging to the Recorder of this city, and bearing the initial letters J. K., be and the same is hereby adopted as the seal of the city until a permanent seal shall be procured. The fifth and present seal was sketched by J. 0. Lewis, for which service he was paid five dollars. The following history of this seal is taken from the Council Records for March 26, I827: The Mayor presented to the Common Council a seal procured by him from Mr. William Wagner, of York, Pennsylvania, in pursuance of a resolution passed on the fifteenth day of January last, whereupon it was Resolved, that the same seal be adopted, and shall hereafter be and remain the permanent seal o0 the city of Detroit; and that the following be recorded as the description of the same, to wit: The pernanent seal of the city of Detroit is composed of molten brass, one inch and nine tenths of an inch in diameter, and six tenths of an inch in thickness, bearing this inscription in a circle around the edge: " City of Detroit, Michigan." Within the circle in the foreground are represented two female figures, the one weeping over a city in flames, and the other pointing to another city in a growing state; both of which are represented in the distance, on opposite sides of the circle. Over the whole, in a circular form, is inscribed the words, "Speramus meliora,' and beneath, in a like circular form, the words, " Resurget cineribus." This significant device commemorates the fire of June I, 1805, at which time Detroit was consumed. Our substantial public buildings, costly stores, and elegant residences indicate the fulfilment of the prophetic inscriptions. It may be truthfully said of Detroit, "It has risen from the ashes " and " We hope for better things." CHAPTER XXV. MAYOR.-CITY CLERK.-CITY ATTORNEY.-CITY COUNSELOR.-CITY HISTORIOGRAPHER: DUTIES OF EACH OFFICIAL AND NAMES OF THE INCUMBENTS. MAYOR. As shown in the history of the rule of the Governor and Judges, two persons, Solomon Sibley and Elijah Brush, were appointed mayors under the Act of I806. Practically, however, the office has existed only since the charter of 1824. Originally the mayor presided at meetings of the council and over the sessions of the mayor's court, which took cognizance of all violations of the city ordinances; he served without pay. The charter of 1857 provided that he should have a yearly salary of $1,200; it also abolished the mayor's court, and provided that the mayor should no longer sit in the council. The mayor nominates the members of the Board of Public Works, and of the Water, Fire, Health, Park, and Poor Commissions, the city counselor, the comptroller, the receiver of taxes, the assessors, and the inspectors of the House of Correction; by virtue of his office, he is also one of the commissioners of the Sinking Fund. All licenses, for ordinary business, or for theaters or exhibitions, are issued only on his order. He also passes upon all proceedings of the council, having the power of vetoing any resolution which he disapproves. He is elected for terms of two years. The following persons have served as mayors: 1824 and 1825, John R. Williams; 1826, Henry J. Hunt; 1827 and 1828, John Biddle; I829, Jonathan Kearsley; 1830, John R. Williams; 1831, Marshall Chapin; 1832, Levi Cook; 1833, Marshall Chapin; 1834, C. C. Trowbridge, Andrew Mack; 1835 and 1836, Levi Cook; 1837, Henry Howard; 1838, Augustus S. Porter, Asher B. Bates; 1839, De Garmo Jones; 1840 and 1841, Zina Pitcher; 1842, Douglas Houghton; 1843, Zina Pitcher; I844 -1847, John R. Williams; 1847, James A. Van Dyke; 1848, Frederick Buhl; 1849, Charles Howard; I850, John Ladue; 1851, Zachariah Chandler; 1852 and 1853, John H. Harmon; 1854, Oliver M. Hyde; 1855, Henry Ledyard; 1856 and 1857, O. M. Hyde; 1858 and 1859, John Patton; I860 and I861, Christian H. Buhl; 1862 and I863, William C. Duncan; 1864 and 1865, K. C. Barker; 1866 and 1867, Merrill I. Mills; 1868-1872, William W. Wheaton, 1872-1876, Hugh Moffat; 1876 and 1877, Alexander Lewis; 1878 and 1879, Geo. C. Langdon; 1880-1884, Wm. G. Thompson; 1884-1886, S. B. Grummond; I886-I888, M. H. Chamberlain; I888-,John Pridgeon, Jr. CITY CLERK. From I815-I824 the clerk of the Board of Trustees was styled the secretary, and the office was filled as follows: I815-1820, Thomas Rowland; I820, George McI)ougall, J. D. Doty; I821-1824, J. V. R. Ten Eyck. The charter of 1824 created the title, and provided for the appointment by the council, of a city clerk. An Act of 1849 made the office elective. The term of office is two years. It is the duty of the clerk to make a full record of the proceedings and. resolutions of the council, and to present it to the mayor for his approval or dissent within forty-eight hours after every meeting, also to attend to the publication of all notices required to be published. I-He is the custodian of the official publications of the city, and administers the oath of office to all incunmbents. At the beginning of each official year it is hisdutyto call the Board of Aldermen to order, and to preside over the meetings and all subsequent sessions until presidents are elected. He has charge of all the ballot-boxes, blanks, and books required at any election, supplying the same to the proper persons; keeps the list of house numbers established by the city engineer; is the depository of all chattel mortgages, and keeps a record of the same. The bonds and reports of all city officers are filed in his office. In 1832 the salary was $I50 a year; in 1836 it had increased to $500; in 1883 the salary was $2,500. The office of deputy clerk has existed since March 6, 1857. The following persons have served as city clerks: I824 -I828, V. Spalding; 1828-I83, JohnJ. Deming; 1831 and 1832, John L. Whiting; I833 and 1834, John Winder; I835, Felix Hinchman; I836-I84I, George Byrd; 1841-1844, C. F. Davis; 1844-1850, R. E. Roberts; 185o and 1851, Jer. Van Rensselaer and A. T. Hall; 1852, D. Munger; 1853, H. S. Roberts; 1854-1858, Richard Starkey; 1858 and 1859, F. W. Hughes; I860, R. C. Smith; I86I, H. A. Lacey; 1862-1866, F. Pramstaller; 1866-1872, H. Starkey; [140] CITY ATTORNEY.- CITY COUNSELOR.-CITY HISTORIOGRAPHER. 141 1872-1878. C. H. Borgman; I878-1882, Louis Iillman; 1882-1886, Alex. A. Saenger; i886-i888, W. T. Dust; I888-, A. G. Kronberg. CITY ATTORNEY. The office of city attorney existed in 1825, but was not created by ordinance until March 8, 1837. Appointments were originally made by the council. Since Act of February 2I, 1849, attorneys have been elected every two years. The attorney drafts all proposed ordinances, gives legal opinions on all subjects referred to him by the council, and is expected to attend its sessions. When directed to do so by the Common Council, he attends to suits instituted against or by the city. The salary in 1883 was $2,500. Since 1876 there has been an assistant city attorney, who is appointed by the council. The city attorneys have been as follows: I825, H. S. Cole; 1826-1829, E. Farnsworth; i829, Cyprian Stevens; I830-I832, E. Farnsworth; 1832 and 1833, A. D. Fraser; 1834, J. M. Howard; I835, A. B. Bates; I836, J. A. VanDyke; 1837, A. W. Buel; 1838 and 1839, J. A. VanDyke; I840-1843, C. O'Flynn; 1843, E. Taylor; I844 and 1845, 1). E. Harbaugh; 1846, W. A. Howard; 1847, D. B. Duffield; 1848 and 1849, W. A. Cook; 1850, William Gray; 1851, A. Mandell; 1852 and 1853, J. B. Witherell; 1854 —1857, J. Knox Gavin; 1857-I860, J. L. Chipman; I860 and I86, William J. Speed; 1862 and 1863, T. I. McEntee; i864-I868, Thomas H. Hartwell; I868 -1872, J.J. Brown; 1872-1876, F. G. Russell; 1876 -I880, W. C. Maybury; 1880-I882, '. G. Russell; I882-I886, J. B. Corliss; 1886-, XY. Sheeran. CITY COUNSTELOR. The office of city counselor was created by Act of March 12, 186. Appointments are made by the council, on nomination of the mayor, for terms of three years. The counselor is required to attend all sessions of the council. His duties are chiefly advisory, the intent of the office being to insure greater legal certainty in city proceedings, and to this end the attorney and counselor are supposed to cooperate. In all suits in which the city is interested, brought in the Circuit Court of Wayne County, the Supreme Court of Michigan, or the United States Court, the counselor appears in behalf of the city. The salary in 1883 was $2,000oo. The following have served as city counselors: 1863-1870, William Gray; 1870-i872, J. P. Whittemore; I872-1878, D. C. Holbrook: 878- 88, F. A. Baker; 188 1 I i'87, H. M. Duffield; 1887-, John \V. McGrath. CITY H -IST()RIOGRAPHER. The origin of the office of historiographer is as follows: On September 6, 1842, a petition for its creation, signed by Z. Pitcher and others, was presented to the council. The petition was referred to the recorder and city attorney, and on January 24, I843, an ordinance establishing the office was adopted. On January 31 Colonel Henry Whiting was appointed historiographer, but being soon after ordered to another post, on June 6 he was succeeded by H. N. Walker. Mr. Walker gathered together several valuable documents, which were subsequently placed in the collection of the State Historical Society; he held the office only a few years, other duties claiming his time. In I855 B. F. H. Witherell was appointed, and served until his death in 1867. The office was then vacant until 1876, when Levi Bishop received the appointment. His death occurred in December, 1881, and on January 3, 1882, Silas Farmer was appointed to fill the vacancy. The office is purely honorary. The duties consist in gathering and preserving books, documents, and historic material pertaining to the city of Detroit. CHAPTER XXVI. ALDERMEN: THEIR DUTIES AND NAMES. THIS office was first named in the Act of August 5, 1824, which provided for five aldermen, to be elected from the city at large. The number was increased to seven by Act of April 12, 1827. No ward aldermen were elected until April 15, 1839, when, at a special election, two were chosen from each of the six wards created that year, one to serve two years and the other one year. The inspectors of election determined by lot which should serve for one year and which for two years. In all wards since created two aldermen have been provided for, and at all yearly elections an alderman for each ward is chosen for a term of two years. Under the charter of 1824 two aldermen were selected, from time to time, to preside with the mayor over the mayor's court. By Act of April 13, I841, one alderman could hold a session of the court. These duties ceased after the recorder's court was established. The charter of 1857 provided that the aldermen then in office should continue to serve until January, I858, and provision was made for the election, in November, 1857, of two aldermen from each ward, one of whom was to serve for one year only. In 188I, when an entirely new division of wards was made, the Common Council was authorized to assign the aldermen who had been elected the previous year to the several new wards. Under Act of June 6, I88I, no person could be elected a member of the Common Council unless he was a freeholder. The charter of 1883 made no such provision. On April 8, 1837, a committee was appointed to inquire into the propriety and expediency of paying for the services of the mayor, recorder, and aldermen. That committee did not report, and the aldermen were apparently content to serve without pay, until May 13, 1857. On that date a series of single resolutions, offered by various aldermen, provided that the chairman of each committee should receive $300 a year, and as each alderman was chairman of a committee, all, on the approval of these resolutions, would have received compensation. Mayor Hyde disapproved of this action, and for ten years longer no salary was attached to the office of alderman. Finally an Act of March 28, 1867, authorized the payment of a sum, not to exceed one dollar and fifty cents for attendance on each regular session. Payment was made from the general fund until 1873, and since then from the contingent fund. By law of 188I the sum of three dollars was paid for each regular session attended. Under Act of June 21, 1887, they are now paid a salary of $600 per year, and the amount is not unreasonable if the duties are honestly performed. No alderman can hold any other city office, or any county or legislative office except that of notary public. Since Act of April 8, I851, all of the aldermen, as representatives of the city, have been members of the Board of Supervisors. The following persons have served as aldermen; where the names of more than two persons to a ward appear in any year, it is because death or resignation brought in a third person for part of the year: Aldermen at Large. 1824, Shubael Conant, Melvin Dorr, Orville Cook, David C. McKinstry, Peter J. Desnoyers; 1825, 0. Cook, D. C. McKinstry, R. A. Forsyth, Thomas Rowland, William Woodbridge; 1826, Antoine Dequindre, Marshall Chapin, D. C. McKinstry, Thomas Palmer, Obed Wait; 1827, P. J. Desnoyers, De Garmo Jones, M. Chapin, Thomas Palmer, Jerry Dean; 1828, H. M. Campbell, J. P. Sheldon, John Mullett, Levi Cook. John Farrar, Charles Jackson, Jerry Dean, Obed Wait, 1829, Thomas Palmer, B. Campau, H. M. Campbell, H. V. Disbrow, Peter Desnoyers, John D. Cray, R. Gillett, M. Chapin, E. Brooks; I830, P. J. Desnoyers, De Garmo Jones, B. B. Kercheval, T. S. Wendell, T. Palmer, Stephen C. Henry, John' Palmer; 1831, 0. Newberry, Elliot Gray, John Palmer, David French, J. Farrar, George A. O'Keefe, Alonzo Merrill; 1832, H. V. Disbrow, T. S. Knapp, A. C. Caniff, Walter L. Newberry, John Hale, John Roberts, Thomas Rowland; 1833, C. C. Trowbridge, John Garrison, T. Palmer, H. Newberry, Henry Howard, Charles Moran, James Williams; 1834, Enoch Jones, Julius Eldred, Stevens T. Mason, Job F. Howland, Henry Howard, T. S. Wendell, C. Moran, T. S. Knapp, T. Williams; 1835, T. Palmer, A. C. Caniff, O. Newberry, N. T. Ludden, D. Cooper, T. Williams, Julius Eldred; 1836, D. Cooper, J. Eldred, J. Farrar, Thomas Palmer, O. Newberry, John Owen, D. Lamson; 1837, John McDonnell, C. Moran, James Hanmer, George B. Martin, John L,42] ALDERMEN: THEIR ] Scott, Harlow Beardslee, Thomas Chase; 1838, P. J. Desnoyers, De Garmo Jones, P. E. De Mill, A. Hartshorn, J. M. Mead, Nathaniel Prouty, H. B. Lathrop. Ward Adermen. 1839, First Ward: G. C. Bates, H. H. LeRoy. Second Ward: C. Hurlbut, John Palmer. Third Ward: A. T. McReynolds, J. J. Garrison. Fourth Ward, P. Desnoyers, C. Moran. Fifth Ward: C. M. Bull, A. H. Stowell, G. Paull. Sixth Ward: James Stewart, W. F. Chittenden. I840, First Ward: A. Ewers, H. H. LeRoy. Second Ward: C. Hurlbut, J. Palmer. Third Ward: F. Cicotte, J. J. Garrison. Fourth Ward: A. Gruenlich, C. Moran. Fifth Ward: D. W. Fiske, G. Paull. Sixth Ward: J. V. Ruehle, W. F. Chittenden. I84I, First Ward: J. Moors, A. Ewers. Second Ward: C. Hurlbut, P. J. Desnoyers. Third Ward: M. Gooding, F. Cicotte. Fourth Ward: C. Moran, M. L. Gage. Fifth Ward: J. H. Bagg, D. W. Fiske. Sixth Ward: W. F. Chittenden, J. V. Ruehle. 1842, First Ward: A. C. Caniff, J. Moors. Second Ward: J. Scott, J. Abbott, W. W. Dalton. Third Ward: A. Ten Eyck, M. Gooding. Fourth Ward: G. M. Rich, C. Moran. Fifth Ward: Tobias Lowe, J. H. Bagg. Sixth Ward: S. W. Higgins, H. R. Andrews. I843, First Ward: O. B. Dibble, A. C. Caniff. Second Ward: B. WVoodworth, N. Tomlinson. Third Ward: J. A. Van Dyke, A. Ten Eyck. Fourth Ward: C. Moran, C. O'Flynn. Fifth Ward: W. E. Stearns, A. S. Williams. Sixth Ward: James Stewart, H. R. Andrews. I844, First Ward: J. Owen, O. B. Dibble. Second Ward: B. Woodworth, N. Tomlinson. Third Ward: E. Chapoton, J. A. Van Dyke. Fourth Ward: P. Desnoyers, C. Moran. Fifth Ward: O. M. Hyde, W. E. Stearns. Sixth Ward: H. R. Andrews, J. Stewart. I845, First Ward: F. Buhl, J. Owen. Second Ward: B. Woodworth, C. R. Desnoyers. Third Ward: B. Wight, E. Chapoton. Fourth Ward: C. Moran, P. Iesnoyers. Fifth Ward: B. B. Moore, 0. M. Hyde. Sixth Ward: W. Barclay, J. Scott. I846, First Ward: F. Buhl, M. Stevens. Second Ward: C. R. Desnoyers, W. Duncan. Third Ward: B. Wight, Theo. Williams. Fourth Ward: C. Moran, N. Greusel, Jr. Fifth Ward: B. B. Moore, C. C. Jackson. Sixth Ward: W. Barclay, L. Baldwin. 1847, First Ward: G. C. Bates, Marcus Stevens. Second Ward: J. H. Harmon, William Duncan. Third Ward: William Burnell, Theo. Williams. Fourth Ward: G. R. Griswold, N. Greusel, Jr. DUTIES AND NAMES. 143 Fifth Ward: O. M. Hyde, C. C. Jackson. Sixth Ward: W. F. Chittenden, L. Baldwin. I848, First Ward: G. W. Howe, G. C. Bates. Second Ward: W. Duncan, M. P. Hutchins. Third Ward: Abram Tuttle, William Burnell. Fourth Ward: B. Wight, S. B. Morse. Fifth Ward: John Norton, O. M. Hyde. Sixth Ward: James Stewart, Lyman Baldwin. Seventh Ward: F. E. Eldred, W. A. Bacon. 1849, First Ward: A. Ives, G. W. Howe. Second Ward: W. R. Noyes, William Duncan. Third Ward: John Patton, Abram Tuttle. Fourth Ward: H. Ledyard, B. Wight. Fifth Ward: J. P. Whiting, John Norton. Sixth Ward: John Hull, J. Stewart. Seventh Ward: F. E. Eldred, R. C. Smith. Eighth Ward: A. T. Hall, A. Marsh. I85o, First Ward: J. L. Carew, A. Ives. Second Waard: C. H. Buhl, W. R. Noyes, Jr. Third Ward: N. Tomlinson, J. Patton. Fourth Ward: J. M. Davis, H. Ledyard. Fifth Ward: A. H. Stowell, J. P. Whiting. Sixth Ward: J. Stewart, John Hull. Seventh Ward: Ezekiel McDonald, R. C. Smith. Eighth Ward: A. Marsh, L. C. Fletcher. 185i, First Ward: C. W. Jackson, A. Ives. Second Ward: J. A. Slaymaker, C. H. Buhl. Third Ward: J. McReynolds, J. Hoek. Fourth Ward: S. G. Wight, J. Cornfield, Geo. Miller. Fifth Ward: E. Shepard, A. H. Stowell. Sixth Ward: S. B. Morse, J. Stewart. Seventh Ward: R. C. Smith, E. McDonald. Eighth Ward: L. C. Fletcher, A. Marsh. 1852, First Ward: C. W. Jackson, J. B. Clark. Second Ward: J. A. Slaymaker, W. F. Chittenden. Third Ward: J. McReynolds, George Foote. Fourth Ward: S. (G. Wight, A. T. Ladue. Fifth Ward: E. Shepard, A. H. Stowell. Sixth Ward: S. B. Morse, D. Riopelle. Seventh Ward: R. C. Smith, E. Doyle. Eighth Ward: L. C. Fletcher, G. B. Avery. 1853, First Ward: John Gibson, James Collins. Second Ward: V. F. Chittenden, W. IH. Craig. Third Vard: G. Foote, John Patton; Fourth Ward: A. Ladue. E. Lyon. Fifth Ward: A. H. Stowell, J. Hull. Sixth Ward: D. Riopelle, W. Barclay. Seventh Ward: E. Doyle, P. Fischer. Eighth Ward: G. B. Avery, S. Martin. 1854, First Ward: James Collins, W. C. Duncan. Second Ward: Wm. H. Craig, E. A. Lansing. Third Ward: John Patton, I. W. Ingersoll. Fourth Ward: Edward Lyon, Isaac Finehart. Fifth Ward: John Hull, H. H. LeRoy. Sixth Ward: William Barclay, W. W. Wilcox. Seventh Ward: E. Doyle, William Fischer. Eighth Ward: Stephen Martin, Francis Mayhew. I855, First Ward: W. C. Duncan, Albert Marsh. Second Ward: E. A. Lansing, W. H. Craig. Third Ward: I. W. Ingersoll, Anthony Dudgeon. Fourth I44 ALDERMEN: THEIR DUTIES AND NAMES. Ward: Isaac Finehart, B. H. Thompson. Fifth Ward: H. H. LeRoy, R. W. King. Sixth Ward: A. Sheley, W. W. Wilcox. Seventh Ward: E. Doyle, R. Reaume. Eighth Ward: F. Mayhew, Stephen Martin. I856-1857, First Ward: W. C. Duncan, A. Marsh. Second Ward, George Niles, W. H. Craig. Third Ward: E. V. Cicotte, Joseph Hoek. Fourth Ward: E. N. Lacroix, B. H. Thompson. Fifth Ward: Wm. Gibbings, R. W. King. Sixth Ward: W. Dyson, A. Sheley. Seventh Ward: E. Doyle, R. Reaume. Eighth Ward: S. Martin, P. Gallagher. I858, First Ward: W. C. Duncan, G. O. Williams. Second Ward: George Niles, W. H. Craig. Third Ward: E. V. Cicotte, Henry Miller. Fourth Ward: E. N. Lacroix, Solomon Wesley. Fifth Ward: Win. Gibbings, A. S. Bagg. Sixth Ward: William Dyson, J. D. Fairbanks. Seventh Ward: E. Doyle, G. Mil-, ler. Eighth Ward: H. Gordon, P. Gallagher. Ninth Ward: W. L. Woodbridge, Henry Wilson. Tenth Ward: H. Zender, Theo. L. Camlpau. I859, First Ward: G. O. Williams, N. P. Jacobs. Second Ward: W. H. Craig, William Hale. Third Ward: Henry Miller, T. Williams. Fourth Ward: A. Dudgeon, A. Barlage. Fifth Ward: A. S. Bagg, Wm. Gibbings. Sixth Ward: J. D. Fairbanks, M. Flanigan. Seventh Ward: George Miller, John Marx. Eighth Ward: Henry Gordon, N. Truckey. Ninth Ward: Wm. L. Woodbridge, J. W. Sutton. Tenth Ward: Henry Zender, H. H. Swinscoe. I86o, First Ward: N. P. Jacobs, George Foote. Second Ward: William Hale, E. LeFavour. Third Ward: T. Williams, J. J. Bagley. Fourth Ward: A. Barlage, F. B. Phelps. Fifth Ward: WVm. Gibbings, J. S. Farrand. Sixth Ward: M. Flanigan, Stephen B. Morse. Seventh Ward: J. Marx, Franklin M. Wing. Eighth Ward: N. Truckey, P. M. Phillips. Ninth Ward: J. W. Sutton, H. T. Backus. Tenth Ward: H. H. Swinscoe, George W. Olewine. I86i, First Ward: G. Foote, Joseph Godfrey. Second Ward: E. Le Favour, M. Howard Webster. Third Ward: J. J. Bagley, T. Williams. Fourth Ward: F. B. Phelps, J. C. D. Williams. Fifth Ward: J. S. Farrand, H. H. LeRoy. Sixth Ward: S. B. Morse, James Shearer. Seventh Ward: F. M. Wing, Joseph Cook. Eighth Ward: P. M. Phillips, William Purcell. Ninth Ward: H. T. Backus, John Ford. Tenth Ward: G. W. Olewine, F. C. St. Aubin. I862, First Ward: Joseph Godfrey, George S. Frost. Second Ward: M. H. Webster, E. Le Favour. Third Ward: Theodore Williams, Joseph Hoek. Fourth Ward: J. C. D. Williams, F. B. Phelps. Fifth Ward: H. H. LeRoy, J. S. Farrand. Sixth Ward: James Shearer, A. Lingeman. Seventh Ward: J. Cook, George Miller. Eighth Ward: William Purcell, Patrick Gallagher. Ninth Ward: J. Ford, Wm. S. Bond. Tenth Ward: F. C. St. Aubin, Paul Gies. I863, First Ward: George S. Frost, K. C. Barker. Second Ward: E. Le Favour, P. McGinnis. Third Ward: J. Hoek, F. X. Cicotte. Fourth Ward: F. B. Phelps, John C. Gorton. Fifth Ward: J. S. Farrand, Joseph Granger. Sixth Ward: A. Lingeman, Benjamin F. Hyde. Seventh Ward: S. Dow Elwood, Jas. McGonegal. Eighth Ward: P. Gallagher, William Purcell. Ninth Ward: Wm. S. Bond, F. E. Eldred. Tenth Ward: Paul Gies, Milton Frost. I864, First Ward: Peter J. Ralph, N. W. Brooks. Second Ward: P. McGinnis, David Thompson. Third Ward: F. X. Cicotte, John T. Meldrum. Fourth Ward: J. C. Gorton, James D. Weir. Fifth Ward: Wm. Cahoon, Henry C. Kni-ht. Sixth Ward: B. F. Hyde, A. Sheley. Seventh Ward: Jas. McGonegal, S. D. Elwood. Eighth Ward: William Purcell, P. Gallagher. Ninth Ward: Clement Lafferty, Wm. S. Bond. Tenth Ward: M. Frost, P. Gies. I865, First Ward: N. W. Brooks, Wm. Brodie. Second Ward: P. McGinnis, A. T. Campau. Third Ward: J. T. Meldrum, Joseph Hoek. Fourth Ward: Jas. D. Weir, M. W. Field. Fifth Ward: H. C. Knight, Robt. McGinnity. Sixth Ward' A. Sheley, George C. Codd. Seventh Ward: S. D. Elwood, Jas. McGonegal. Eighth Ward: P. Gallagher, Wm. Purcell. Ninth Ward: Wm. S. Bond, Peter Henkel. Tenth Ward: Paul Gies, F. C. St. Aubin. i866, First Ward: Win. Brodie, Geo. F. Bagley. Second Ward: A. T. Campau, Alex. W. Copland. Third Ward: Joseph Hoek, Wm. B. Howe. Fourth Ward: M. W. Field, J. D. Weir. Fifth Ward: R. McGinnity, H. C. Knight. Sixth Ward: G. C. Codd, James D. Allison. Seventh Ward: J. McGonegal, Enos Lebot. Eighth Ward: Wm. Purcell, John Considine. Ninth Ward: Peter Henkel, A. H. Schmittdiel. Tenth Ward: F. C. St. Aubin, Paul Gies. I867, First Ward: G. F. Bagley, Wm. Stewart. Second Ward: A. W. Copland, W. H. Langley. Third Ward: W. B. Howe, Christian Mellus. Fourth Ward: J. D. Weir, Frank Kremer. Fifth Ward: Wm. Phelps, Walter H. Coots. Sixth Ward: Jas. D. Allison, G. C. Codd. Seventh Ward: Enos Lebot, Frederick Ruehle. Eighth Ward: John Considine, Wm. Purcell. Ninth Ward: A. H. Schmittdiel, Eugene Laible. Tenth Ward: Paul Gies, G. W. Olewine. I868, First Ward: Wm. Stewart, Francis Adams. Second Ward: W. H. Langley, A. H. Emery. Third Ward: C. Mellus, Wm. B. Howe. Fourth Ward: F. Kremer, Richard Hawley. Fifth Ward. W. H. Coots, Wm. Phelps. Sixth Ward: G. C. ALDERMEN: THEIR DUTIES AND NAMES. '45 Codd, Philip Kling. Seventh Ward: F. Ruehle, Frank Blum. Eighth Ward: W. Purcell, J. Considine. Ninth Ward: W. S. Bond, E. Laible, T. F. Hughes. Tenth Ward: G. W. Olewine, Paul Gies. I869, First Ward: Aaron W. Tyrrell, Francis Adams. Second Ward: W. H. Langley, Augustus H. Emery. Third Ward: C. Mellus, Wm. B. Howe. Fourth Ward: Frank Kremer, Thos. Henderson. Fifth Ward: W. H. Coots, Wm. Phelps. Sixth Ward: G. C. Codd, Philip Kling. Seventh Ward: F. Ruehle, Frank Blum. Eighth Ward: Timothy Mahoney, J. Considine. Ninth Ward: Peter Hill, Wm. S. Bond. Tenth Ward: David Knapp, Julian Williams. 1870, First Ward: Aaron W. Tyrrell, Wm. Foxen. Second Ward: Wm. H. Langley, Geo. W. Balch. Third Ward: C. Mellus, Wm. Wilmot. Fourth Ward: Frank Kremer, Thos. Henderson. Fifth Ward: W. H. Coots, A. S. Bagg. Sixth Ward: G. C. Codd, J. D. Allison. Seventh Ward: F. Ruehle, Elijah Smith. Eighth Ward: Timothy Mahoney, Dennis Dullea. Ninth Ward: Peter Hill, Geo. Sutherland. Tenth Ward: J. Williams, W. H. Baxter. 1871, First Ward: W. Foxen, F. Adams. Second Ward: G. W. Balch, W. H. Langley. Third Ward: Wm. Wilmot, Charles M. Welch. Fourth Ward: T. Henderson, Joseph Kuhn. Fifth Ward: A. S. Bagg, Simeon Folsom. Sixth Ward: J. D. Allison, M. P. Christian. Seventh Ward: E. Smith, Frederick Fulda. Eighth Ward: D. Dullea, T. Mahoney. Ninth Ward: G. Sutherland, P. Hill. Tenth Ward: W. H. Baxter, Arthur O'Keefe. 1872, First Ward: F. Adams, Smith R. Woollev, Second Ward: W. H. Langely, G. F. Hinchman. Third Ward: C. M. Welch, James Flower. Fourth Ward: J. Kuhn, Wm. Lichtenberg. Fifth Ward: S. Folsom, David Preston. Sixth Ward: M. P. Christian, Philo Parsons. Seventh Ward: F. Fulda, F. Ruehle. Eighth Ward: T. Mahoney, D. Dullea. Ninth Ward: P. Hill, James Daly. Tenth Ward: A. O'Keefe, Chas. Stange. 1873, First Ward: S. R. Wooley, Albert Botsford. Second Ward: G. F. Hinchman, W. H. Langley. Third Ward: J. Flower, C. M. Welch. Fourth Ward: W. Lichtenberg, Chas. M. Garrison. Fifth Ward: D. Preston, G. Grelling. Sixth Ward: P. Parsons, M. P. Christian. Seventh Ward: F. Ruehle, M. Broeg. Eighth Ward: D. Dullea, D. Shanahan. Ninth Ward: James Daly, Geo. W. Hough. Tenth Ward: C. Stange, A. O'Keefe. 1874, First Ward: A. Botsford, J. B. Hinchman. Second Ward: W. H. Langley, John Horn. Third Ward: C. M. Welch, Wm. G. Thompson. Fourth Ward: Chas. M. Garrison, J. B. Schmittdiel. Fifth Ward: G. Grelling, W. H. Coots. Sixth Ward: M. P. Christian, Jacob Guthard. Seventh Ward: M. 10 Broeg, W. A. Owen. Eighth Ward: D. Shanahan, John D. Finnegan. Ninth Ward: Geo. W. Hough, J. Daly. Tenth Ward: A. O'Keefe, W. H. Baxter. Eleventh Ward: Jas. Holihan (two weeks), R. S. Dillon (two weeks). Twelfth Ward: Anthony Grosfield, Henry Heames. I875, First Ward: J. B. Hinchman, Geo. Wilkes. Second Ward: John Horn, Jr., John Schmitt. Third Ward: Wm. G. Thompson, J. A. Kurtz. Fourth Ward: J. B. Schmittdiel, Chas. C. Blodgett. Fifth Ward: George Dunlap, Seymour Finney. Sixth Ward: Jacob Guthard, M. P. Christian. Seventh Ward: W. A. Owen, Paul Gies. Eighth Ward: J. D. Finnegan, D. Shanahan. Ninth Ward: James Daly, G. W. Hough. Tenth Ward: W. H. Baxter, John P. Rowland. Twelfth Ward: H. Heames, George Dorr. 1876, First Ward: George Wilkes, Robert A. Liggett. Second Ward: J. Schmitt, Lewis B. Clark, Chas. Ewers. Third Ward: Jos. A. Kurtz, Thos. Jackson. Fourth Ward: C. C. Blodgett, Jas. I. Mitchell. Fifth Ward: S. Finney, G. Dunlap. Sixth Ward: M. P. Christian, J. Guthard. Seventh Ward: P. (ies, W. A. Owen. Eighth Ward: D. Shanahan, J. D. Finnegan. Ninth Ward: G. W. Hough, Michael Haller. Tenth Ward: J. P. Rowland, Geo. W. Herrick. Twelfth Ward: Geo. Dorr, Henry Heames. 1877, First Ward: R. A. Liggett, T. D. Hawley. Second Ward: Chas. Ewers, J. Schmitt, Third Ward: Thos. Jackson, J. A. Kurtz. Fourth Ward: J. I. Mitchell, August Schulte. Fifth Ward: Geo. Dunlap, Seymour Finney. Sixth Ward: J. Guthard, Stephen K. Taft. Seventh Ward: W. A. Owen, J. C. Jacob. Eighth Ward: J. D. Finnegan, John Monaghan. Ninth Ward: M. Haller, J. B. Moore. Tenth Ward: G. W. Herrick, Jas.. D. Weir. Eleventh Ward: N. Senninger, J. Lingeman. Twelfth Ward: H. Heames, G. Dorr. Thirteenth Ward: Bernard Youngblood, S. C. Karrer. I878, First Ward: T. D. Hawley, Geo. A. Foster. Second Ward: John Schmitt, Chas. Ewers. Third Ward: J. A. Kurtz, T. Jackson. Fourth Ward: Abel R. Torrey, J. I. Mitchell. Fifth Ward: S. Finney, F. G. Russell. Sixth Ward: S. K. Taft, Jas. B. Lauder. Seventh Ward: J. C. Jacob, Chas. M. Rousseau. Eighth Ward: J. Monaghan, Daniel Guiney. Ninth Ward: J. B. Moore, M. Haller. Tenth Ward: J. D. Weir, G. W. Herrick. Eleventh Ward: N. Senninger, John B. Ryan. Twelfth Ward: G. Dorr, Henry Gross. Thirteenth Ward: B. Youngblood, H. Klei, S. C. Karrer. 1879, First Ward: George A. Foster, P. J. Ralph. Second Ward: Charles Ewers, Thomas Manning. Third Ward: Thomas Jackson, Wm. Boydell. Fourth Ward: A. H. Raynor, J. I. Mitchell. Fifth Ward: F. G. Russell, S. Finney. Sixth Ward: W. 146 ALDERMEN: THEIR DUTIES AND NAMES. E. Warriner, VV. H. Connor. Seventh Ward: C. M. Rousseau, J. C. Jacob. Eighth Ward: D. Guiney, J. Monaghan. Ninth Ward: M. Haller, T. J. Griffin. Tenth Ward: G. W. Herrick, G. H. Chene. Eleventh Ward: J. B. Ryan, Francis Alter. Twelfth Ward: H. Gross, M. Daly. Thirteenth \ard: Paul Gies, S. C. Karrer. I88o, First Ward: P. J. Ralph, George A. Foster. Second Ward: Thos. Manning, Charles Ewers. Third Ward: Wm. Boydell, M. V. Borgman. Fourth Ward: A. H. Raynor, H. D. Barnard. Fifth Ward: S. Finney, J. E. Vincent. Sixth Ward: W. H. Connor, W. E. Warriner. Seventh Ward: J. C. Jacob, Henry Heck. Eighth Ward: J. Monaghan, D. Guiney. Ninth Ward: T. J. Griffin, M. Haller. Tenth Ward: G. H. Chene, W. E. Todd. Eleventh Ward: F. Alter, Joseph Lingeinan. Twelfth Ward: M. Daly, Geo. Dorr. Thirteenth Ward: Paul Gies, Henry Klei. I88i, First Ward: G. A. Foster, C.W. Coolidge. Second Ward: C. Ewers, T. Manning. Third Ward: M. V. Borgman, Thos. Jackson. Fourth Ward: H. D. Barnard. Fifth Ward: J. E. Vincent, S. Finney. Sixth Ward: W. E. Warriner, E. 1K. Roberts. Seventh Ward: H. Heck, W. A. Owen. Eighth Ward: D. Guiney, P. Shanahan. Ninth Ward: M. Haller, Chas. Appelt. Tenth Ward: W. E. Todd, H. Merdian. Eleventh Ward: J. Lingeman, E. W. Simpson. Twelfth Ward: Geo. Dorr, Alfred E. Hamlin. Thirteenth Ward: Henry Klei, John Kessler. 1882, First Ward: W. E. Warriner, A. Grant. Second Ward: Seymour Finney, J. E. Vincent. Third Ward: E. W. Simpson, J. B. Book. Fourth Ward: C. W. Coolidge, J. W. Fales: Fifth Ward: W. A. Owen, A. Ruoff. Sixth Ward: P. Shanahan, J. Falvey. Seventh Ward: Thomas Manning, Henry Heck. Eighth Ward: E. K. Roberts, W. E. Moloney. Ninth Ward: H. Merdian, Paul Gies. Tenth Ward: Chas. Appelt, George Dorr. Eleventh Ward: Thos. Jackson, Henry Klei. Twelfth Ward: Alfred E. Hamlin, Wm. H. Taylor. Thirteenth Ward: John Kessler, A. Lemmer. 1883. First Ward: WVm. E. Warriner, Thomas Fairbairn. Second Ward: G. A. Chase, Seymour Finney. Third Ward: James B. Book, F. Wettlaufer, Edward Sweeney. Fourth Ward: James W. Fales, C. W. Coolidge. Fifth Ward: Augustus Ruoff, Thomas Beggs. Sixth Ward: Jeremiah Falvey, P. Shanahan. Seventh Ward: Henry Heck, Augustus Kaiser. Eighth Ward: Wm. E. Moloney, John L. Warren. Ninth Ward: Paul Gies, Joseph Nagel. Tenth Ward: George Dorr, A. G. Kronberg, Chas. Appelt. Eleventh Ward: Henry Klei, Henry Merdian. Twelfth Ward: Wm. H. Taylor, Geo. \V. Loomer. Thirteenth Ward: August Lemmer, John Kessler. I884, First Ward: T. Fairbairn, Thos. Jackson. Second: S. Finney, Geo. A. Chase. Third: Ed. Sweeney, L. A. Wilcox. Fourth: P. J. Ralph, J. W. Westcott. Fifth: T. Beggs, F. Alter. Sixth: J. Kelley, J. Falvey. Seventh: A. Kaiser, H. Heck. Eight: J. L. Warren, W. E. Moloney. Ninth: J. Nagel, P. Gies. Tenth: C. Appelt, L. B. Littlefield. Eleventh: H. Merdian, C. J. Wieser. Twelfth: G. W. Loomer, B. O'Reilly. Thirteenth: J. Kessler, August Lemmer. 1885, First Ward: T. Fairbairn, T. Jackson. Second: S. Finney, G. A. Chase. Third: E. Sweeney, L. A. Wilcox. Fourth: G. H. Barbour, J. W. Westcott. Fifth: J. C. Jacob, F. Alter. Sixth: Wm. J. Stapleton, J. Falvey. Seventh: A. Kaiser, H. Heck. Eighth: T. J. Griffin, Wm. E. Moloney. Ninth: J. Nagel, I'. Gies. Tenth: A. G Kronberg, L. B. Littlefield. Eleventh: J. Hartness, Jr., C. J. Wieser. Twelfth: G. W. Loomer, B. O'Reilly. Thirteenth: J. Baumann, August Lemmer. I856, First Ward: T. Fairbairn, J. J. Mulheron. Second: S. Finney, Julius P. Gilmore. Third: E. Sweeney, F. N. Reves. Fourth: G. H. Barbour, E. Smith. Fifth: J. C. Jacob, H. Hessler. Sixth: Wm.J. Stapleton, B. Guiney. Seventh: A. Kaiser, J. P. Martz. Eighth: T. J. Griffin, F. Cronenwett, Sr. Ninth: J. Nagel, C. K. Trombly. Tenth': A. G. Kronberg, L. B. Littlefield. Eleventh: J. Hartness, Jr., H. Heck, Jr. Twelfth: Ceo. W. Loomer, Win. Plass. Thirteenth: J. Baumann, R. M. Frost. Fourteenth: P. E. Hirth, Geo. \V. Wesch. Fifteenth: F. Smith, J. Holihan. Sixteenth: A. Gray, Ferdinand Amos. 1887, First Ward: J. J. Mulheron, T. Fairbairn. Second: J. P. Gilmore, S. Finney. Third: F. N. Reves, Geo. F. Reichenbach. Fourth: E. Smith, L. Burt. Fifth: II Hessler, J. C. Jacob. Sixth: B. Guiney, J. Considine. Seventh: J. P. Martz, F. J. Bleser. Eighth: F. Cronenwett, Fr., J. E. Lally. Ninth: C. K. Trombly, E. L. Reschke. Tenth: F. A. Lemkie, A. G. Kronberg. Eleventh: H. Ieck, Jr., Jas. Hartness, Jr. Twelfth: W. Plass, J. Pfeifer. Thirteenth: R. M. Frost, J. F. Meier. Fourteenth: G. W. Wesch, D. Peterkin. Fifteenth: J. Holihan, F. Smith. Sixteenth: F. Amos, J. Mcintyre. i888, First Ward: T. Fairbairn, Jas B. Lauder. Second: S. Finney, J. P. Gilmore. Third: Geo. F. Reichenbach, F. N. Reves. Fourth: Lou Burt, S. A. Griggs. Fifth: J. C. Jacob, C. P. Karrer. Sixth: J. Considine, B. Guiney. Seventh: F. J. Bleser, J. P. Martz. Eighth: J. E. Lally, DeWitt C. Kellogg. Ninth: E. L. Reschke, C. K. Trombly. Tenth: J. Hayes. Eleventh: J. Hartness, Jr., M. McGuire. Twelfth: J. Pfeifer, J. Tierney. Thirteenth: J. F. Meier, W. O'Regan. Fourteenth: D. Peterkin, Wm. Uthes. Fifteenth: F. Smith, J. Holihan. Sixteenth: J. Mcintyre, F. Amos. CHAPTER XXVII. THE WARI)S: THEIR ESTABLISHMENT AN) BOUNDARIES. FOUR wards were created by ordinance of May 14, 1825, for the sole purpose of forming districts for the fire wardens. A fifth ward was created on September 23, 1835; but none of these divisions were wards in the sense in which the word is now used, neither did they include all of the city. The first real division of the city into wards was by Act of March 27, 1839. The boundaries then defined would now be described as follows: First Ward, all between Shelby Street and east line of Forsyth Farm, and south of Michigan Avenue to the river. Second Ward, all between Randolph and Shelby Streets, and south of Monroe and Michigan Avenues to the river. Third WVard, all bet\een Randolph and St. Antoine Streets, and south of Croghan Street to the river. An ordinance of March 17, I857, added to the Third Ward the territory between St. Antoine, Randolph, Croghan, and Gratiot Streets. By Act of 1839 the Fourth W\ard embraced all south of the Gratiot Road to the river, and between St. Antoine Street and the east line of the Witherell Farm. By Act of February 15, 1842, the Witherell Farm was thrown outside of the city, and Dequindre Street became the east boundary of the Fourth Ward. Six years later Rivard Street became the east boundary, under the Act of January 25, I848, which created the Seventh Ward. The Fifth Ward, by Act of I839, embraced the territory between Woodward Avenue and the west line of the Jones Farm, and north of Michigan Avenue to the city limits; an ordinance of December 12, I875, added to it that part of the addition to the city limits made by Act of May 3, 1875, which lay north of and between an extension of the east and west boundaries of the ward. As established in 1839, the Sixth Ward embraced all east of \oodward Avenue, and was bounded on the south as follows: On Monroe Avenue to Croghan Street, along Croghan to St. Antoine Street, up St. Antoine to Gratiot Road, and along Gratiot Road to the east line of the city. The Act of February 15, 1842, which put the Witherell Farm back into the township of Hamtramck, after it had been for six years a part of the city, made Dequindre Street the east line of the Sixth Ward, thus reducing the ward in size; it was further contracted by ordinance of March 17, I857, which added to the Third Ward the portion bounded by St. Antoine, Randolph, Croghan, and Gratiot Streets. By ordinance of December 17, 1875, which created the Eleventh Ward, the Sixth Ward was shorn of all the territory lying east of St. Antoine Street except that portion of the block bounded by St. Antoine, Hastings, Montcalm, and High Streets, lying west of an alley running north and south through said block; this jog in the boundary was made because at that time one of the aldermen of the Sixth Ward lived in the block indicated, and it was desired to retain him in the ward. An ordinance of April 7, 1880, remedied this break in the ward line by making St. Antoine Street the east boundary of the Sixth, and the west boundary of the Eleventh Ward. Ordinance of December 23, 1875, added to the Sixth Ward all that part of the addition to the city limits of that year that an extension in straight lines of the east and west boundaries of the ward would include. The Seventh Ward, created by Act of January 25, 1848, included all of the city south of Gratiot Avenue to the river, and between Rivard and Dequindre Streets. The Eighth Ward was created by Act of February 20, I849, and included all of the Forsyth, Labrosse, and Baker Farms added to the city by the same Act. An ordinance of December 23, 1875, added to the Eighth Ward such portion of the addition to the city limits as would fall within its east -and wvest boundary lines extended northwards to the city line. The Ninth Ward was created by Act of February I2, 1857, and embraced all the territory west of the east line of the Woodbridge Farm, east of the west line of the Porter Farm, and south of the Detroit & Milwaukee and Grand Trunk Railroad tracks to the river. An ordinance of May 30, 1873, created the Twelfth Ward, and made Seventeen-and-a-half and Eighteenth Streets its west boundary. It was slightly enlarged by the ordinance of December 21, I875, which added to it such of the territory added to the city in that year as an extension in a straight line, northerly to the city limits, of its eastern and western boundaries would include. The Tenth Ward, created at the same time as the Ninth, included all the new territory on the east side of the city, and embraced all east of Dequindre Street, west of Mt. Elliott Avenue, and north of the river. An ordinance of December 17, [1471 148 THE WARDS: THEIR ESTABLISHMENT AND BOUNDARIES... — -... 1875, which divided it, and created the Thirteenth Ward, defined its north boundary as follows: Catherine Street east to Elmwood Avenue, up Elmwood Avenue to German Street, and thence east to Mt. Elliott Avenue. By ordinance of December 23, 1875, all of the territory added to the city that year that an extension of the east and west boundaries of the Tenth Ward in straight lines would include was added to the ward. An Act of April 29, 1873, annexed part of Grosse Pointe and Hamtramck to the city, and defined the annexed territory as the Eleventh Ward, but the Supreme Court pronounced the Act unconstitutional, as it interfered with the political rights of voters. The failure of this Act explains why the Twelfth Ward existed two years before the Eleventh Ward. The Eleventh Ward was definitely created by an ordinance of December 17, 1875, which took effect October i, 1876. It included all east of St. Antoine Street, except the piece of land noted in connection with boundaries of the Sixth Ward, and all west of Dequindre and north of Gratiot Street to the city limits. The ordinance of April 7, I880, corrected the broken wardline, making St. Antoine Street the west boundary. The Twelfth Ward was created by ordinance of May 30, I873. It embraced all west of Seventeenand-a-half and Eighteenth Streets and east of west line of Porter Farm, and extended from the river to the city limits. By ordinance of December 21, I875, such part of the territory added to the city that year as an extension of its east and west boundary lines in straight lines to the new city limits would include was added to the ward. The Thirteenth Ward was created by ordinance of December 17, 1875, taking effect October i, 1876. It included that part of the city lying east of Dequindre Street and west of Mt. Elliott Avenue. It was bounded on the south by Catherine Street to Elmwood Avenue, thence on Elmwood Avenue to German Street, and east on German Street to Mt. Elliott Avenue. The authority to divide and create wards was formerly vested solely in the Legislature, but on April 17, I871, a charter amendment gave this prerogative to the city. The council, however, was loath to exercise this power, and up to 188I there was great inequality in the area and the population of the wards. Several of those lying along the river, in the southern part of the city, were controlled almost entirely by those who had least at stake in the government of the city. These facts led to the radical changes in boundaries made by Act of the Legislature on May 5, i881. Under this Act all the wards were made to extend from the northern limits of the city to the river. In the new arrangement, each ward includes a portion of the residence, manufacturing, and river districts and much greater equality in valuation of the wards, and character of the population is secured. The boundaries established by Act of 1885, when city limits were extended, are as follows: FIRST WARD: Between Woodward Avenue and Beaubien Street. SECOND WARD: All that part of the city bounded on the east by Woodward Avenue and on the west by First Street, from the Detroit River to Grand River Avenue, up Grand River Avenue to Second Street, and along Second Street to the city limits. THIRD WARD: All between Beaubien and Hastings Streets. FOURTH WARD: All between the west boundary line of the Second Ward and Crawford Street, from the city limits to Grand River Avenue, down Grand River Avenue to Fifth Street, and down Fifth Street to the Detroit River. FIFTH WARD: All between Hastings and Russell Streets. SIXTH WARD: All between the west boundary of the Fourth Ward and Trumbull Avenue. SEVENTH WARD: All between Russell and Dequindre Streets. EIGHTH WARID: All between Wabash and Trumbull Avenues. NINTH WARD: All between Dequindre and Chene Streets. TENTH WARD: All between the west line of Loranger and east line of Godfroy Farms. ELEVENTH WARD: All between Chene Street and McDougall Avenue. TWELFTH WARD: All lying between the west lines of the Porter and Loranger Farms. THIRTEENTH WARD: All lying between McI)ougall and Mt. Elliott Avenues. FOURTEENTH WARD: All between the westerly line of Porter Farm and the westerly line of P. C. 47. FIFTEENTH WARD: All between Mt. Elliott Avenue and the city limits and including Belle Isle. SIXTEENTH WARD: All between the west line of P. C. 47 and the city limits. In all cases where the streets are not open to the river or extended to the northern limits of the city, the ward lines are where the lines of the streets would be if opened or extended. CHAPTER XXVIII. FRENCH AND ENGLISH TAXATION.-TERRITORIAL TES.-STAES AE AND COUNTY TAXES.- CITY TAXATION AND FINANCES.-UNITED STATES TAXES. FRENCH AND ENGLISH TAXATION. -UNDER French rule the inhabitants of Detroit paid to the receiver of the domain, as rent to the Crown, an annual tax of from one to two sols per foot front. The English commandants required the occupants of farms adjoining the town to support the troops and to furnish at first one cord of wood, and then two cords, for each acre of frontage on the river. In 1762 the tax on the inhabitants within the fort amounted to one hundred and eighty-four pounds, thirteen shillings, four pence; two years later it was one hundred and fifty-eight pounds, New York currency. In 1768 a tax of one shilling per foot front for lots in the fort, and ten shillings per acre for the farms adjoining, was ordered to be paid; this would have yielded about four thousand pounds, New York currency. The inhabitants protested against this tax as exorbitant, and asked to have the work done by commissioners, whom they agreed to pay. The indications are that their plan was adopted. TERRITORIAL TAXES. Under the Northwest Territory, by law of August I, 1792, the Court of Common Pleas appointed annually a commissioner of land tax, with collectors for each district. Act of I)ecember r9, 1799, transferred the appointment of these officers to the Court of Quarter Sessions, who were required to lay off the districts. All the lands in each district were to be divided by the commissioners into three classes, the first grade to pay eighty-five cents, the second sixty cents, and the third twenty-five cents on each hundred acres. Detroit was in the district or township of Sargent, and the following copy of an old French letter, found among the archives of the county, shows that delinquent tax-payers are not a modern institution: RIVER RAISIN, I3th August, 1799. MONSIEUR F. I. BELLECOUR,I have received orders from you to appear at the fort to-morrow to render my account of Taxes. I have to announce to you that it is impossible for me to quit. My harvest at this moment is being ravaged by blackbirds. The people don't pay, not having any Inoney, and I can't very well compel them. I)o you know what you have to do, it is to send your orders so as to give more force, so as to constrain them to pay. I am your humble servant, HIS JOSEPH X MENARD, MARK Collector for district of Sargent. The fort was then the most prominent object in the place, and "going to the fort" was the customary phrase of people going to the town. M. Bellecour was evidently collector of the land tax. Etienne Dubois, who served in I80o, is the only other person known to have acted in this capacity. The following officers were appointed in March, t8oi: lister of lands for Detroit and Huron districts, A. I)equindre; appraisers of houses for township of Detroit, Joseph Thibeaut and Gabriel Godfroy; collector of territorial tax, Elias Wallen. On June 13, I80o, Francois I'equise was appointed to take the enumeration of persons and property for Detroit township, and on June 7, 1803, T. McCrae and Gabriel Godfroy were appointed assessors and appraisers for Detroit. In December, 1803, they were succeeded by Joseph Thibeaut and Joseph Campau. Under Michigan Territory, a law of September Io, I805, imposed taxes as follows: "On every coach, chariot, phaeton, chair, calash, chaise or other riding carriage, one dollar for every wheel; and on every sleigh, carriole, or other conveyance for riding in winter, two dollars,-one half thereof to become due upon the first day of April in every year, to be collected by the Marshal." The law also declared that "every male inhabitant in the Territory, over the age of sixteen years, should pay annually the sum of one dollar as a capitation tax." The number of tax-payers in the Territory on October I, I805, was five hundred and twenty-five, and an aggregate assessment of $I,I43 seems to have been nearly all paid. The highest sum assessed to any one person was eighteen dollars and fifty cents, and the lowest one dollar. A few of the names and amounts on the old roll are as follows: James May, $ 8.50; Joseph Campau, $ro. 5o; James Abbott, $8; Solomon Sibley, $2; Elijah Brush, $4.50; Barnaby Campau, $3; Archibald Horner, 491 150 STATE AND COUNTY TAXES. $2; Gabriel Richard, $3; Abram Hull, $3, and Peter Desnoyers, $I. Under this law, on June 5, 1807, the District Court for Detroit appointed the following officers: Stanley Griswold, treasurer; John Henry, Charles Moran, and Chabert Joncaire, assessors; Wm. McD. Scott, collector. In addition to the regular taxes, licenses were required from merchants, tavern and saloon keepers. The total territorial receipts from all sources were estimated, in 1808, at $5,000; but no one save the Governor and Judges knew the amount collected, or the use made of the money. Meanwhile Governor Hull and Judge May erected their expensive residences, and their expenditures seemed so lavish that the Grand Jury of the Territory undertook to investigate the accounts of the assessors, collectors, and treasurers; but to their great surprise, they found that neither of these officers could be compelled to render any statement whatever to the people. Indeed, the Governor and Judges told the Grand Jury, "The laws do not authorize you to inquire into these matters," which information the Grand Jury, though surprised and indignant, could not gainsay. In the words of a contemporary, "The Governor and Judges continued to serve as the raters of taxes, the assessors, the collectors, the treasurers and expenders." In a memorial to President Madison, the following complaint was made: The taxes on our people are very heavy, and the public money, when intrusted to the discretion of Mr. Hull, is wantonly wasted. He authorized a number of commissioners to explore a road to the Miami, in the dead of winter, when the country was but one sheet of ice and snow,-and which it would be impossible for the same, or any other persons, to find again in the summer time,-and expended four hundred and eighty-two dollars, raised by taxes on a sparse and poor population, on this useless and injudicious project,-money which might be productive of some good if the dictates of common sense had been complied with, and a proper season of the year selected for the purpose. From I812 to I820 there was no direct territorial tax on lands, but license fees were required from stores, taverns, and ferries. On May 8, I820, provision was made for taxing personal property and lands in each county; and in case the taxes were not paid, and no personal property could be found upon which to levy, the sheriff was authorized to imprison delinquents. Under law of April 21, 1825, provision was first made for the sale of lands for non-payment of taxes, and the first enforcement of this law created great indignation. STATE AND COUNTY TAXES. These taxes originate as follows: Appropriations made by the Legislature are apportioned by the auditor-general, who communicates the proportion of the county to the Board of Supervisors, through the county clerk, and the board apportions them with the regular county tax. The amount of the county tax is determined by the Board of Auditors. Once in.five years the State Board of Equalization examines the apportionments of the State tax made by the auditor-general, and, as far as possible, equalizes the amounts. Under the tax law of March 14, I882, and Act of June 6, 1883, the State and county taxes, for each current year, become a lien on the property on December I, and one per cent on the amount is allowed the township treasurers for collecting the same. After January I four per cent is allowed the township treasurers. Within the city of Detroit the taxes are payable to the county treasurer up to Iecember I6 without any percentage. If not paid by December I6, four per cent is added to the amount of the orginal tax, w hich must be paid by the first of February, unless the time is extended by the Common Council or the Township Board; but not over one month of additional time can be granted. If not paid by the first of March, two per cent additional is added, and then one per cent a month up to June I, and if not then paid, a further sum of twenty per cent per year is charged until paid. On the first of March a list of all lands on which the taxes are unpaid is forwarded by the county treasurer to the auditor-general, and if the taxes remain unpaid one year or more after the first of July, the lands are then sold on the first of May in the next year. The sale is made by the county treasurer, who, within twenty days after the sale, must file with the clerk of the Circuit Court a list of the lands sold, and unless objection is made, within eight days thereafter the sale is confirmed. At any time within one year thereafter the court can set aside the sale, upon such terms as are deemed just; but no sale can be set aside after the purchaser or his assignee has been in possession for five years. A tax receipt, to be valid, must describe the property as fully as it is described on the tax roll; and it is well for persons to observe for themselves that the tax is marked "Paid" on the collector's books. Under law of 1827, and up to I879, the county taxes in Detroit were collected by the ward collectors under direction of the Common Council; since I879 they have been payable to the county treasurer, or to collectors of his appointment. The total territorial and county, and State and county taxes, for several decades, with other interesting facts, are given in following table: CITY TAXATION AND FINANCES. 151. Total Co. Total State Paid by County Populat'n ear. Tax. and Co.Tax. Detroit. Debt. of Co. 1820 $i,688 | $r,303 3,574 r830 $999 5,720 $3,620 5,000 6,781 1840 12,716 34,067 21,351 24,I73 1850 13,944 1 52,54 33,097 42,756 1835 21,512 1 67,466 51,886 75,547 1370 53,0~9 250,658 181,449 119,068 88o 177,804 406,531 299,228 337,050 I 66,444 Formerly many county officers were entitled to the fees received, but under Acts of May 22 and 24, I879, the fees received by all county officers, after that year, were required to be paid to the county treasurer, and credited to the general fund. The credit of the county and its finances were further cared for by an Act of June 7, I88, which provided for funding the debt of the county for ten years, at four and a half per cent interest, and for the raising by tax, each year until paid, of not less than one tenth of the amount of the county debt. CITY TAXATI()N AN) FINANCES. Under the town incorloration, the first tax was voted on April 17, i8o2. The amount was $15o, and it was to be paid by an assessment of twentyfive cents upon each individual of the age of twentyone years and upwards, and by a tax of one fourth of one per cent on "fixed property." In practice, the "fixed property" was then deemed to mean houses, and not lots or lands. Under the rule of the Governor and Judges, no city tax is known to have been levied. Freedom from such taxation was, probably, the one blessing of their rdgimze. The territorial treasurer kept an account known as the Detroit Fund, and the Governor and Judges gave orders on it, which were paid by receipts obtained from sale of lots. In 1815 the citizens again assumed the management of their own affairs, and on September 21, I816, a tax of $I,500 was voted for, and was chiefly used in building a market-house. It was raised by a poll tax of one dollar, and by a tax on real and personal property. On February 13, 1817, the Board of Trustees agreed to levy a tax of forty cents on each one hundred dollars, and the total valuation of the city was fixed at $1,787.37. On May Io, 18I9, the treasurer of the corporation made the following report for the year: RECEIPTS-Rent of Market Stall, $64.06; Fines, $93.19; Tavern Licenses, $79.93; Use of Hay Scales, $17.06. Total, $254.24. EXPENDITURES-On account of Market, $13.19; Fire Hooks and Handles, $64.13; Salary of City Clerk, from September 5, 1817, to May xx, 1819, $115.43; Commission on moneys received and paid by Treasurer, $13.31; Deputy Marshal, $47.43; Sheetiron for Council House, 75c. Total, $254.24. Outstanding Bills against the City, $583.93. Amounts due City, $180.77. Act of April 4, I827, authorized the "citizens' meeting," by a plurality of votes from qualified voters, to levy a poll tax of not exceeding one dollar upon every qualified voter. The same Act empowered the city to fill up the lots on low grounds along the river and in other localities; and if the improvements were not paid for by parties owning the lots, the city was authorized to lease them for seven years to any person who would pay the amounts due. By Act of April 12, power was given to lease lots so assessed for twenty-five years. As might be expected, there was much trouble in enforcing these laws, and special power was given to the city marshal under which he could summon citizens to his aid in order to put persons into possession of the lots they had leased. We now reach the record of events that seem almost incredible, and that mark an era in the history of Detroit. In the year 1827 the city entered upon and began to lay out the magnificent property known as the Military Reserve, which had been granted by Congress the previous year. Roughly described by present street-lines, the tract embraced all the land between Michigan Avenue and Lamed Street, and Griswold and Cass Streets. Like some boyish heir, who has unexpectedly come into possession of a large estate, the city did not know how to properly enjoy and utilize such wealth, and the saying " Easy come, easy go" proved as applicable to corporate as to individual finances. Property which to-day is in the heart of the city, the income from which, year by year, would pay the entire city expenses and meet our bonded debt besides, was frittered away and squandered. Twice in the history of the city a landed domain which would be a large factor in the wealth of a Rothschild has been lost by the mismanagement of those who should have preserved it. First the Ten-Thousand-Acre Tract and hundreds of city lots were disposed of, and then the Military Reserve; and to-day the city has literally nothing left of those magnificent gifts,-gifts such as no other city in the Union ever received from the General Government. No other city on this continent was ever so highly favored, and none could have made a much poorer use of such a donation. If the city had sold, or even given away, every alternate lot, and leased the remainder of the lots, if the aldermanic fathers had done one half as well for the city as the owners of the Cass and Brush Farms did for themselves. the city revenue would now be so great as to preclude any necessity for taxation, and Detroit would be the citizens' paradise, the Utopia of burdened tax-payers. When the city began to improve its possessions, it had not money enough to pay the laborers. The council therefore resolved to pay for the work in their own notes. Accordinigly, on April lo, 1827, two days before the legislative council had granted them authority, the Recorder and Alderman Jones 152 CITY TAXA'TIO)N AND FINANCES. were appointed a committee to attend to the printing of the due-bills. On April 12, the legislative council gave the city power to issue these bills, to an amount not exceeding $5,ooo at any one time; and on May I the first lot of one hundred due-bills, for five dollars each, was issued; and soon after fifty, for ten dollars each. On May 31 it was Resolved, that the sum of five hundred dollars be issued in corporation notes, of a denomination not less than five dollars, at the discretion of the mayor. During the year, bills of the denomination of three dollars, two dollars, and one dollar, and even of fractional amounts, were issued, and a total of $3,349.78 was put in circulation. In 1828 the issues of 1827 were redeemed, and $2,300 additional signed and circulated. It was found, however, that the people did not sustain this "fiat " currency, and on July 28, 1828, a special committee of the council made the following report: The committee instructed to examine into the state of the credit of the paper, heretofore issued by this corporation, etc., have to report: That on inquiry it was found that at eight of the stores of the principal merchants of Detroit, which were in succession visited by a respectable individual, a discount of eighteen cents on a dollar was demanded, when taken for goods. The committee have learned that in several instances a much greater sacrifice has been required of those who offered the paper of the corporation; and in one instance, about forty per cent discount was exacted of a laborer, who had been in the employ of the street commissioner, and who wished to buy a barrel of pork. In fine, it appears to the committee that in place of a desire on the part of many, who, it might be supposed, are mainly interested in the welfare and improvement of the city, to support and assist the exertions of the Common Council, and to maintain the value of the means which are at its disposal, there exists a paltry and disgraceful propensity to speculate on these means, and to increase private wealth, at the sacrifice of the common property. * * * The street commissioner, and others who are called on to employ laborers for the corporation, find themselves under the necessity of paying one or two shillings more for a day's work, in the notes of the corporation, than the same would cost in money, or bills at par. And every article required for the corporation, and paid for in its paper, is charged in a like proportion. * * * * The committee beg leave to suggest First, that no improvement which will require pecuniary means be undertaken until the bills of the corporation shall be within five per cent of their nominal value. Second, that all works which have been undertaken, which require pecuniary means, and which can be relinquished without prejudicing the public health or interest, be discontinued. Third, that all debts now due the corporation be immediately collected; and Fourth, that, if it be necessary to restore the credit of the paper of the corporation, a number of lots be immediately sold for that purpose, or that a loan be obtained of either the Bank of Michigan or the Bank of Monroe, at the legal interest, and payable in the manner money is usually paid when obtained on what is called Accommodation Notes. * * * Respectfully submitted. JOHN P. SHELDON, B. F. H. WITHERELL, JULY 18, X828. Committee. The report produced but little effect, and matters grew worse and worse. The total city receipts in 1828 were $20,836.20, of which $I 1,765.95 was from sales of lots, and $I,689.36 from lease of lots on the embankment. The expenditures were, for debts of the previous year, $1,117.66; for roads and supervisor, $I,697.80; for sewers, $I,278; for embankment, $7,718; and for opening streets, $1,754. Almost as soon as the city began to dispose of the property given to it, the corporation began to be in want. Unpaid debts of previous years were called for. Improvements paid for in depreciated due bills were charged for proportionately, and cost much more than they were really worth. The city continued its issue of due-bills, neglected taxation, and sold its lots for almost any price, often taking in payment its own notes, bought at thirty and forty per cent discount. Most of the funds that were received were expended in improving the very lots sold. A series of so-called improvements was entered upon, many of them of a temporary character, and others solely in the interest of speculators. The Steam Mill Wharf, at the foot of Woodward Avenue, was filled in at a cost of several thousand dollars, for the benefit, as was soon found out, of private owners. The river front or "embankment" was really improved. The result of the needless expenditures and bad financiering is indicated in the following resolution, adopted by the council on June 22, I829: Resolved, that the corporation loan of the Bank of Michigan $50, for the term of ninety days, with the permission to renew for a like term; the same to be appropriated for the uses of the poor. In the following year a committee, appointed by the Common Council, reported that "they had applied at both of the banks of this city, and had been unable to obtain any definite terms from said banks upon which they would loan money to the corporation." When we look at the city of to-day, with its im. mense wealth and unassailable credit, receiving and expending over a million of dollars yearly, it seems strange indeed that its credit was ever so poor and its future so entirely unforeseen. In I830 the city became more moderate in its expenditures, and the total amount paid out was $4,542.75, of which $4,426.63 was received from sale of lots. Whenever money was wanted for any purpose, the city officials did not, as a farmer might do, take a sheep to market, but they sold a lot of land instead, and thus, year by year, the city lived upon and devoured its substance. On November 12, 1830, a committee was "appointed to obtain a loan for the purpose of redeeming the corporation money," and this year the city redeemed $2,610.07, and issued $I,526. In March, I831, the due-bills were subject to a discount of twelve and a half per cent. Still the printers were kept busy, and on April 14, $i,ooo in corporation notes were issued, CITY TAXATION AND FINANCES. I 53. and the same amount in I832. On July io, 1834, the last of the first series was issued. Up to that time $21,208 had been circulated, and on August I there were $6,830 outstanding. On October 22 it was decided to cease the issue of these bills, and to redeem all that were outstanding. It should be remembered that, during the years named, neither tinder the town incorporation of 1802, the rule of the Governor and Judges from 1805 to 18I 5, nor by the regular city government existing from 81 5, were any city taxes levied upon real estate. Is it any wonder that those who owned broad acres in single farms within and adjoining the city grew rich as the years went by, almost without effort or care? However, "nothing is surer than death and taxes," and city taxation of real estate came as the direct result of the deaths in Detroit by Asiatic cholera. The expense incurred by the city during the prevalence of the scourge of 1832 was too great to be paid by the methods previously in vogue. The county refused to pay any portion of the expense, and finally, as a last resort, the citizens voted to tax the real estate. It was found, however, that the city had no power to tax the property of others than the citizens, and as much of the taxable property was owned by non-residents, no tax was then levied. Application was soon made to the Legislature, and an amendment to the city charter was obtained on April 22, 1833, which authorized the council, with the consent of the citizens' meeting, to levy a tax of one fourth of one per cent on real and personal property, and to levy on goods or chattels, or sell real estate for a term of years for non-payment of taxes, on notice of one month to residents, or three months to non-residents. This law helped the city out of the financial slough into which it had fallen. Seven years having elapsed since the city received its donation from the General Government, a committee was appointed to ascertain the condition of the city finances. On March I, I834 an elaborate report was made to the council by C. C. Trowbridge and J. Williams, showing that there had been an almost entire lack of system in the keeping of accounts by the various city officers; and that during the previous seven years, out of $5,ooo borrowed from the banks of the city, only $6o0 had passed through the treasury. The report further set forth that between 1825 and 1834 the average annual receipts from fines and licenses was $I,I00, and the average annual expenses, excluding amounts paid for laying out streets and improving roads, was $I,800, and that the yearly deficit had been paid by the sale of city lots; also that more than two thirds of all the money'which had been received from sales of city lots had been expended on streets, roads, and embankments. Up to March I, 1834, the city had sold and disposed of all the property donated, except three fractional lots, the sales aggregating $54,423; $15,000 of this amount was then due for lots already sold. Largely through the efforts of Mayor Trowbridge,._...,., _,., _,, FAC-SIMILE OF I2% CENT CITY SHINPLASTER OF r838. this $I 5,oo0 was used in erecting the old City Hall. That building has now disappeared, and a few Parks are all that the city has left of the extensive donations it received. The report of the council committee recom I54 CITY TAXATION AND FINANCES. mended, and the city adopted, plans for the more perfect keeping of accounts. On October 22, a committee was appointed to devise a system of taxation on real and personal property; and at a citizens' meeting on October 31, a real estate tax was voted. It was limited to one fourth of one per cent on the valuation. From this time the credit of the city began slowly to improve; and with greater needs, additional powers of taxation have been granted by the Legislature. An Act of April 13, I841, authorized the city, with consent of the citizens' meeting, to raise a tax of one half of one per cent. One of the first symptoms of enlarged credit was the agreement of Oliver Newberry, on October 28, 1835, to purchase $Ioo,ooo in city bonds. His offer was accepted on November 13, and the first bonds issued by the city were thus sold to a citizen. They were dated October I, 1835; one half of the amount was then issued, and the balance just one year later. The simplicity, or duplicity, of those days is illustrated by the fact that the bonds were delivered before they were paid for, and the money paid over from tinae to time, as wanted. The panic of 1837 created a demand for a new issue of city shinplasters, and on August 8, $2,000 were ordered issued in small bills, of the denominations of six and one fourth, twelve and one half, eighteen and three fourths, twenty-five, thirty-seven and a half, fifty, and sixty-two and a half cents. On Saturday, October 21, 1837, Alderman Chase offered the following, which was adopted: Resolved, that the city treasurer, under the direction of the mayor, have printed upon bank-note paper, due-bills to the amount of $3,000, of the forms previously adopted by the board, of the denominations of fifty and seventy-five cents; $1,ooo of said sum to be made payable at the Bank of Michigan; $i,ooo at the Michigan State Bank; and $1,ooo at the Farmers and Mechanics' Bank; and when filled up and signed, that the amount be placed to the credit of the city, the treasurer giving his receipt therefor. On April I, I839, a report of the city clerk showed that there were in circulation, on March 31, I838, $15,615.04 of these bills, and on March 30, I839,,I2,323.45. On May 14, I839, $I0,000 were ordered printed, to redeem mutilated bills. The mutilated bills were redeemed by the city treasurer, who had the care of them, until they could be destroyed by a committee of the council. In those days there were no public safes, and the city officers had none of the modern conveniences for the safe keeping of valuables, consequently the bills were packed in an immense " hair trunk,"- a trunk covered with horsehide, tanned with the hair on. On one occasion, when Saturday night came, the trunk was crammed full of these promises to pay, and the treasurer was obliged to convey it to his own home; and, with double-barrelled gun and brace of pistols loaded and primed, he kept watch and ward over the trunk all through the Sabbath, and on Monday turned the money over to be burned. By Act of February I, I842, the city was prohibited from issuing any more due-bills. Little FAC-SIMILE OF CITY I8/ CENT CITY SHINPLASTER OF 1841. heed, however, was paid to the law, and their issue continued until even the tenants of the city had no faith in their landlord. The following notice appeared in the daily papers: CITY TAXATION We, the undersigned, butchers in the City Hall Mlarket, have become satisfied that, in order to sustain ourselves in our business, we must discontinue to receive corporation shinpiasters for meat, from this date. Trusting the public will sustain us ini the standI which necessity alone has e-xmpellecl us to take. Ii. TA Fr, DANIEL COGFILAN, JOHiN HULL, CHARtLEs BONDAVEt?, JOlIN H~ss. DETROIT, Afiril i8, 1842. AND FINANCES. 1 The notice seems to have borne some fruit. for on November i, i 842, the Committee on Wa ys and M.\eans reported that they had destroyed $6,444.84 in warrants andl due-bills. This good work was continued, and on January 24, 1843, the committee reported the destruction of $4,708.24 additional, and four hundred and eighty sheets of blank due-bills. On the 7th of February following, six hundred more sheets were burned. On March 8 9, 1 844, the council resolved " that henceforth no shinplaster or warrant shall be issued by the corporation.' In 1845 Rawdon, Wright, & Hatch were paid $888.5 t for printing due-bills previously issued. On March 13, i851, $3,472.62 Of this corporation money was still outstanding, and as late as 1871 the sum Of $21.87 was redeemed. Expfenses of City. The expenses of the city for several decades, and the amottnts expended for the most important purposes, are shown in the following table i830 1840 i85o i 86o Fire Iepartrnent $356 $1,639 3,259 $10,771 Schools I 30 8,oo3 40,667 Public Sewers 246 53 16,563 35,725 Interest on Debt 24,395 24,231 19,850 Care of Poor 311 2,046 2,913 iti,625 Care of Parks..... 8 City Printing 63~ 297 685 2,393 City Lights 8,88o City Police 2,475 City Cottrts 68 1,I71 715 140 Care of Streets I, 153 1,998 3,432 i18912 Paving St's and Intersections 445 40 1,232 33,309 Water Works 30,080 12,469 Salaries of Aldermen, City Officers attd Clerk-, 588 1,212 4,149 18,947 Election Expenses 301 364 t,314 Total expenditttres for ord- $4,544 $6x,o6o $127,260 $294,436 nary purp seas 1870 i88ti $78,223 $111,1r98 173,9741 183,172 112,607 46,593 52,318 117,325 17,332 24,029 4,333 1,952 13,633 13,09 20,o119, 62,945 64,706 135,022 8,11I2 27,469 44,257 33,002 65,294 57,974 35,526 73,483 2,780 12,935 $693,014 $902,889 Amounts for i8881 are given because the reports for i 8o included a period of seventeen months. The amounts appropriated in any one year for any certain purpose do not always indicate how much wNas expended for that purpose during the year. Of the appropriation for any year, only the amount collected can be ttsed, bult balances left over, or amotunts collected as back taxes, can be used. A variety of interesting facts concerning the taxation and finances of the city are herewith given: Yer. Valuation of Valuation of Total Valuayer. Real Estate. Personal Prop. tion. 1830 $721,680 1840 4,610,951 1850 2,3726,6:9 -i8o $14,027,133 *1,I86,69o 16,213,823 1870 26,872,333 6,730,994 23,603,327 x188o 64,556.o85 19,07,705 85,363,790 1887 103.824,640 36, 513,240 142,407,880 FAC-SIMILE OF TWENTY-FIVE CENT CITY SHil.PLASITE1S OF 1838. . 156 CITY TAXATION AND FINANCES. Years. Total City Tax. Net City Debt. unding 1830 $3,195 1840 i86,5oo 1850 $29,863 359,538 186o r29,484 304,845 $11,I2, J870 631,872 1 797794 37,252 1880 885,830 1,360,400( 528,628 1887 1,925,720 * 593,015 *776.984 *July, 1887. Ir - -- ii In addition to the regular bonded debt of the city, Detroit is also liable for about five sixths of the bonded debt of the county, and for all the bonded debt created by the Board of Water Commissioners. By the charter of 1883 the bonded debt of the city may not be over two per cent of the assessed valuation of all property. An Act of March 8, I873, which authorized the 'expenditure by the Water Commission of most of the amounts constituting their debt, made it the duty of the council to assess an annual tax of $75,000 for the use of the board, a portion of which was expected to be set apart as a sinking fund; but the council appropriated nothing until 1875, when $25,000 was appropriated, and since then $40,000 has been appropriated yearly. The increase in the wealth of the city is shown by the fact that the valuation of I830 would give each inhabitant $32 I, while that of 1880 would allow each person $728. The rate of taxation per capita in 1850 was $3.26; in I860, $2.83; in I870, $7.94; and in i880, $7.61. City Debt and Sinking Fund. Under Act of March 21, I851, provision was made for creating a sinking fund to meet the indebtedness of the city, and in I852 the first tax, of $5,000, was levied for this purpose. The proceeds of this fund are invested chiefly in city bonds, the city thus acting as its own debtor and creditor. The fund is in charge of the mayor, comptroller, treasurer, and the Committee on Ways and Means of the Board of Aldermen, as commissioners of the fund. The bonds and other securities are deposited by the city treasurer in a "strong box," which, up to July, i882, was kept in the vault of the bank acting as "city depository," and since then in one of the safes of the Wayne County Safe Deposit Company. The box has two locks, the mayor and treasurer each having a key, and when the box is opened, necessity compels the presence of the comptroller also, as he alone has the key to the particular safe containing the box. Under law of I879 the council was required to levy a tax, of not less than $5,000 nor more than $o0,000 yearly, to be credited to the sinking fund. The charter of i883 did away with this provision, as there seemed no further necessity for such a tax. The ordinary additions to the fund come chiefly from interest on investments, from percentage on taxes not paid when due, from interest on deposits of city funds, and from the taxes on liquor dealers. These latter taxes were credited to the contingent fund, and balances left unused were yearly turned over to the sinking fund. After July i, I885, they may be used to pay the current expenses of the city. FAC-SIMILE OF FIFTY-CENT SHINPLASTER OF X837. CITY TAXATION The total amounts received from liquor taxes in Detroit since the State law took effect are as follows: 1875, $74,196; I876, $88,442; I877, $57,471; 1878, $65,175; I879, and to July I, I880, $109,452; I88I, $99,890; 1882, $95,494; 1883, $141,6r7; I884, $138,114; I885, $192,883; i886, $130,50i. The amounts transferred to the sinking fund have been as follows: 1875, $71,999; 1876, $69,695; 1877, $3I,000; I878, $58,ooo; 1879, and to July i, 1880, $90,ooo; I88r, $85,ooo; 1882, $90,ooo; 1883, $130,000; 1884, $135,000; 1885, $io,ooo. The city officers were formerly entitled to the fees they received, but under law of 1879 all fees received by any city officer are required to be paid ov,,r to the city treasurer, and credited to the general fund. Czty Taxes: when and hozw p ayable. The estimates for taxes,?.s submitted by the comptroller are required to be adopted by the common council before April 5 of each year, and must be submitted to the Board of Estimates in time to be confirmed by the board before April 15. While the members of the council are considering the estimates, the Board of Assessors have been completing their valuation of the property to be taxed; and, at least two weeks before April I, they are required to give notice that they will sit until April 5 to hear complaints and make corrections in the valuations. After this has been done, on or before the third Tuesday of April, they send the completed tax roll to the Board of Aldermen, and within a week thereafter the Board of Aldermen begin to hold sessions as a Board of Review to hear complaints, and, if necessary, to correct the rolls. Their sessions continue not over sixteen days, after which about the middle of May the rolls are confirmed. The assessors then compute the amount of taxes payable on each valuation contained on the rolls, and taxes may be paid during the month of July without percentage. Since the law of I879, if the clerks in office are so busy that they cannot receive all the taxes offered, lists of property, with names of owners, may be handed in on or before July 25, and the parties can have until August lo to pay the amounts, if there is no opportunity of paying sooner. On the first of August interest, at the rate of one per cent a month, is added for July, and at the same rate the first of each month until the first of January, unless the tax is paid. If not paid by the first of January, the six per cent that has accrued is added to the original tax, and interest is charged at the rate of ten per cent per annum until the tax is paid. If not paid by the first of February, the receiver of taxes is authorized to advertise the property for sale,.but as it takes some time to prepare them, the lists are usually not printed until about Mayr i, when the; AND FINANCES. 157 property is advertised for sale for four successive weeks. After this the cost of advertising, amounting to about fifty cents, is added, and interest continues to be reckoned at the rate of ten per cent per annum. If the tax is not paid the property is sold about June I, the exact day being discretionary with the receiver of taxes. The sale indicates only that the purchaser is entitled to the use of the property purchased for the number of years agreed upon at time of sale; but if the owner neglects to redeem it, the sale is confirmed by a regular transfer of title by the city. Records of sales are filed in the city treasurer's office. The property can be redeemed at any time within one year after sale by paying the amount due at time of sale and interest at the rate of ten per cent per annum. Soon after the sale a list of all property on which the taxes have not been paid, nor cancelled by sales, is furnished by the receiver to the city treasurer, to be thereafter col, lected through-him. At the annual sale, unless some private person bids the amount of the tax, all lands on which taxes are unpaid are sold to the city, and the amounts received for back taxes in the treasurer's office are credited as receipts from "City Bids." From 1844 to 1863 the unpaid taxes on real estate accumulated to the amount of $50,360. The city treasurers should have collected these amounts, but through ignorance and carelessness they neglected to do so. On February I, 1877, a department for collection was established in connection with the city treasurer's office, and nearly $40,000 collected the first year. Prior to the law of May 31, 1879, the taxes on personal property were placed in the hands of ward collectors, but there was no adequate provision for enforcing their collection. Many refused to pay, and no further effort was made when collectors failed to obtain the amounts. Since the law of 1879 the city is authorized to levy for the collection of personal taxes, and a much larger proportion of the amounts is now collected. The charter of 1883 prorides that other property than real estate may be seized and sold at auction for real estate taxes. Special Taxes. Taxes or assessments for the building of sidewalks and sewers, or for the paving of streets, are kept entirely distinct from the regular city taxes, and are payable within thirty days from the time the rolls are placed in hands of receiver. If not paid within thirty days, the receiver of taxes can, at his discretion, advertise for sale the property on which these taxes are levied. Kinds of Property taxed. The assessors are obliged by law to tax all real estate (lands and buildings being estimated separ i58 CITY TAXATION AND FINANCES................. ately), also all stocks, bonds, and mortgages held by individuals or corporations; all kinds of merchandise and movable property, together with horses, cattle, and carriages. In addition to these taxes, all real estate and personal property is assessed specially, and pro rafa for road taxes, according to the amount estimated to be necessary for each ward. Up to I88i each house or store with a cellar was assessed one dollar, and, if the lot was drained, fifty cents additional, as specific taxes. A doubt as to the legality of the assessment on cellars, arising from a decision in a case somewhat similar, caused the discontinuance of assessments on cellars after I880. All household property over two hundred dollars in value is liable to assessment. All houses of public worship, and their fixtures and furniture, also the land on which they stand, and any parsonage owned and occupied as such, are exempted by law; all cemeteries, all city property, and the property of any person who, in the opinion of the assessor, is unable to pay, are exempt, also other property of various kinds, as the result of special enactments. An Act of February 15, 1859, gave the assessor discretionary power in fixing valuation of property in the outskirts of the city; and up to I872 property was assessed at only about one third of its value. An Act of April I7, 1871, made it obligatory upon the assessors to rate property at its cash value. In order to show the actual valuation of the city in 1880, the following property then exempted should be included: VALUATION. Public school-houses and sites $ 732,955 Police stations and property 66,323 Fire engine houses and property 417,867 Other city property,,uch as City Hall, Public Library, House of Correction, Water Works, Sewers, Parks, etc. 7,065,282 Cemeteries 224,000 Railroad lands and buildings 2,700,000 Street railroads and equipment 684,320 Charitable and benevolent institutions 600,000 United States property 400,000 Church property 2,573,625 School property belonging to churches 295,000 Total $i5,739, 72 Financial Methods and Accounts. When the city was first incorporated the fiscal year was uniform with the official year. In 1859 it was changed so as to begin March I instead of April I. In 1873 it was changed to begin February I. By Act of February 23, I879, it was ordered that the fiscal year begin on the ist of July. All moneys received by the city treasurer were originally placed in the common fund. The first departure from this method was made under Act of February 13, I843, which required that all moneys collected for school purposes should be kept in a special account. Separate accounts were not kept for other funds until required by the charter of 1857. The number of these special accounts is continually increasing, the council, from time to time, designating some new object, the money for which is to be kept separate. In order that the condition of the funds for which special appropriations are made may be readily ascertained, the city treasurer keeps two accounts of each fund. One account is credited with the entire amount appropriated, and charged with the amount expended; the other account is credited with the amount actually received, and charged with the amounts paid out. The titles of the accounts, as kept by the treasurer, are, most of them, clearly indicative of their character. The account named " Redemption Fund " shows what has been received from individuals in redemption of lands sold for non-payment of taxes, and xwhether the moneys so received were paid back to those who bought the property at tax sale, or credited to the city, which is supposed to bid for and buy all the lands thus offered, not sold to an individual. The account called "City Bids" includes the entire amounts due the city for all back taxes, and when any of these back taxes are paid the amount is credited to the year in which the taxes became due. The amounts credited to " City Charges " are made up of the office charges and interest which has accrued on the back taxes. The " Public Sewer Fund " has reference to accounts connected with sewers paid for by general tax, the "General Sewer Fund" to accounts for sewers paid for by local assessments, the " General Road Fund " to amounts received and expended for general repair of streets and sidewalks; the " Road District Fund" has reference solely to amounts raised and paid out for cleaning the streets. All moneys due for city taxes are originally payable to the receiver of taxes. The receipts given are numbered consecutively from the beginning of each fiscal year; and since 187I, in order to be valid, they must have, not only the receiver's signature, but that of the comptroller also. The receiver pays over each day to the city treasurer the funds he has received, and reports the amount to the comptroller, and the city treasurer reports daily to the comptroller the full amount of his receipts and disbursements, with the amounts credited or charged to each account; he is also required to deposit daily all the funds received by him in whatever bank has been designated by the Common Council. The bank so designated is known as the city depository, and pays such rate of interest on monthly balances INTERNAL REVENUE TAXES. I59 in its keeping as may from time to time be agreed upon. In 1882 the rate was four and one eighth per cent on monthly balances of $Ioo,oo0, or over; and the interest received by the city amounted to $26,763. The city depository notifies the comptroller daily of the amount deposited by the city treasurer the preceding day. The treasurer is not allowed to pay out any money without a warrant or order signed by the comptroller, except in the case of moneys belonging to the Police and Educational Funds, which are paid out on orders from officers of these boards. All payments made by the city treasurer, except payments on ordinary pay-rolls of city officers and laborers, are required to be made by check upon the city depository, and the checks must have written or printed upon them the warrant of the comptroller for the payment. Once in each month the Committees on Ways and Means of the aldermen are required to inspect and examine all the affairs and accounts of the treasurer. UNITED STATES INTERNAL REVENUE TAXES. One of the earliest efforts made by the United States to obtain a revenue was by the law of July 6, 1797, which provided for the use of stamped paper, to be furnished by the Government. An old memorandum book of Ieter Audrain shows that much of this paper was used at Detroit, and excellent specimens are preserved. On March 31, 1798, the law was repealed, except as to documents connected with exports and insurance. The first law providing for an internal revenue tax was passed August 2, I813. By it a tax was levied on auction sales, and on sugar refined in the United States; and licenses were required from liquor dealers, banks, and bankers. The collector was paid by a percentage of from three to eight per cent on the amounts received. This law was abolished on December 23, 1817. The necessity of a revenue to pay interest on the war debt gave rise to the law of August 5, i86i, which provided for a tax of three per cent on incomes of over $800, and authorized a direct tax upon the several States of $20,000,000. A law of July I, 1862, required licenses for the manufacture and sale of liquors, and from bankers, pawnbrokers, hotels, eating-houses, brokers of all kinds, theaters, circuses, jugglers, confectioners, livery stables, soapmakers, peddlers, druggists, photographers, manufacturers, lawyers, doctors, and dentists. All manufacturers were required to make monthly returns, and to pay certain percentages. Incomes of over $600 and under $I0,000 were taxed three per cent, and all incomes of over $io,ooo were required to pay five per cent on the excess. This law was in force tp to July 20, I868. Detroit has always been the headquarters of the first collection district of Michigan, and by an amendment to the law taking effect August 7, 1883, the district was enlarged to include the counties of Alcona, Alpena, Arenac, Baraga, Bay, Branch, Calhoun, Cheboygan, Chippewa, Clare, Clinton, Crawford, Delta, Genesee, Gladwin, Gratiot, Hillsdale, Houghton, Huron, Ingham, Ionia, Isabella, Isle Royale, Jackson, Keweenaw, Lenawee, Livingston, Lapeer, Macomb, Mackinaw, Marquette, Menominee, Midland, Monroe, Montmorency, Ogemaw, Ontonagon, Oscoda, Oakland, Otsego, Iresque Isle, Roscommon, St. Clair, Sanilac, Saginaw, Schoolcraft, Shiawasse, Tuscola, Wayne, and Washtenaw. The fiscal tax year begins May I, and the special taxes imposed by the law, when paid, are reckoned according to the number of months left in the year. The special taxes up to July I, 1883, imposed by law and payable yearly, were as follows: rectifiers, $200; retail liquor-dealers, $25; wholesale liquordealers, $ioo; wholesale dealers in malt liquors, $50; retail dealers in malt liquors, $20; wholesale dealers in leaf-tobacco, $25; retail dealers in leaftobacco, $500; and on sales of over $1,ooo, fifty cents for every dollar in excess; dealers in manufactured tobacco, $5; manufacturers of stills, $50; for each still manufactured, $20; for each worm manufactured, $20; manufacturers of tobacco, $1o; manufacturers of cigars, $Io; peddlers of tobacco, first class, with more than two animals, $50; peddlers of tobacco, second class, with two animals, $25; peddlers of tobacco, third class, with one animal, $ 5; peddlers of tobacco, fourth class, on foot or by public conveyance, $io; brewers of less than five hundred barrels, $50; brewers of five hundred barrels or more, $1oo. In addition to the above, up to July i, 1883, every package of one hundred matches required a one-cent stamp, obtainable only at Washington; and all packages of patent medicines, perfumery, and cosmetics required a one-cent stamp for each twenty-five cents charged for the same; a two-cent stamp was required on every check drawn on a bank; and all savings banks and banking institutions of every kind, except national banks, were required to pay a tax of one twenty-fourth of one per cent per month on their capital and average monthly deposits. The national banks paid every six months one twentieth of one per cent on their average circulation, one fourth of one per cent on their average deposits, and also one fourth of one per cent on the amount of their capital, over and above the amount invested in government bonds. By law of March 3, 1883, taking effect July I, the tax on wholesale dealers in leaf-tobacco was fixed at $I2, and on retail dealers at $2.50; and thirty cents on each dollar of the amount of their monthly sales, when the sales are over $500 per year. Dealers in manufactured tobacco pay $2.40. Manufacturers i6o INTERNAL REVENUE TAXES. of tobacco or cigars, $6.oo each. Peddlers of the first class, $30; second class, $1 5; third class, $7.50; and fourth class, $3.60. The tax on snuff, smoking and manufactured tobacco, was fixed at $8.oo per pound. Cigars pay a tax of $3.00 per thousand, and cigarettes, from fifty cents to $3.oo per thousand. The taxes on deposits and capital of all banks were repealed, and also the tax on matches, perfumery, patent medicines, and bank checks. The total collections in the district embracing Detroit, for the fiscal year ending June 30, I883, were $I,251,409, the larger proportion of which was from the city. In 1883, there were twelve persons connected with the office. These officers are appointed by the collector, and their salaries range from $900 to $2,000. The salary of the collector is $4,500, and the total yearly expenses of the office are about $I6,500. The office of assessor was merged with that of collector in 1873. The United States assessors have been: I862 — 1867, Joseph R. Bennett; 1867-1873, Mark Flanigan, The collectors have been: 1862-1865, L. G. Berry; 1865-I869, D E. Harbaugh; I869-I873, H. B. Rowlson; 1873-1875, Mark Flanigan; I876-i883, Luther S. Trowbridge; 1883-I885, James H. Stone; i885-,John B. Moloney. CHAPTER XXIX. CITIZENS' MEETINGS.-BOARD OF ESTIMATES.- AUDITORS, COMPTROLLERS, ACCOUNTANTS.-CITY AND WARD ASSESSORS.-BOARD OF REVIEW.- CITY AND WARD COLLECTORS.-CITY TREASURERS.-RECEIVERS OF TAXES. CITIZENS' MEETINGS. FROM the incorporation of i802 to 1873 it was the custom to submit the amounts proposed to be raised for various purposes to a v/iva voce vote of the citizens, at a yearly meeting called for the purpose. At these meetings great differences of opinion were frequently manifested, and amounts estimated to be needed for various purposes were sometimes stricken out, frequently reduced, and oftentimes ordered by a very close vote. The meetings seldom brought together more than four hundred or six hundred of the larger property owners. The appointment of a Board of Park Commissioners, under an Act of April 15, 1871, and the proposal to include in the yearly estimates the sum of $200,000 in bonds for the purchase of a park, brought a large number of persons to a citizens' meeting held on December 27, I871, in the Circuit Court room in the City Hall. Both those who favored and those who opposed the purchase were excited and determined, and there was so much confusion that a decision could not be reached. A subsequent meeting to further consider the subject was held on May I, I872, at the Griswold Street entrance to the City Hall. An immense number of both citizens and non-residents were present, and again there was so much excitement and confusion that no definite result was reached. After these meetings it became apparent that no expenditure awakening general interest could be properly considered in so large an assemblage as would be likely to gather. This conviction resulted in the passage of the Act of March 28, 1873, which abolished citizens' meetings, and provxided for a BOARD OF ESTIMATES. The coincidence is noticeable that the last citizens' meeting was held in the same month, and within two days of the time, when the first town meeting was held, seventy years before. The first election for members of the Board of Estimates was held on April 7, 1873. Five persons were elected from the city at large on a general ticket, to serve for two years; and two from each ward, one to serve for one year and one for two years. After 1873, and until the board was abol~Il~~ t11~~ ished by Act of April 21, I88I, one member was elected annually from each ward, and five at large every two years. The president of the Common Council, chairman of Committee on Ways and Means, city comptroller, counselor, presidents of the various boards and commissions, as well as the senior inspector of the House of Correction, were ex officio members of the board, with the right to participate in its deliberations, but not to vote. The estimates, after being considered by the council, were submitted to the Board of Estimates, which convened between the first Monday of March and the 15th of April, whenever the council indicated that the estimates were ready. The board had power to reduce, but not to increase, the estimates. By Act of I88r the board was abolished, but by Act of June 2, i887, a Board of Estimates was again provided for. The following persons served on the board in the years named: 1873, First Ward: F. Adams, W. Foxen. Second Ward: B. P. Mumford, H. Walker. Third Ward: W. R. Candler, W. G. Thompson. Fourth Ward: W. N. Carpenter, Joseph Kuhn. Fifth Ward: R. W. King, A. Ives. Sixth Ward: Wm. Duncan, N. Senninger. Seventh Ward: J. M. Millar, E. Eccard. Eighth WTard: D. Guiney, Thos. Griffith. Ninth Ward: D. M. Richardson, M. Haller. Tenth Ward: M. Frost, Chas. Byram. 1873, At Large: T. W. Palmer, W. C. Duncan, H. P. Bridge, E. B. Ward, P. Henkel. 1874, First Ward: Francis Adams, George Wilkes. Second Ward: B. P. Mumford, Hiram Walker. Third Ward: Wm. R. Candler, James Flower. Fourth Ward: W. N. Carpenter, J. P. Hensien. Fifth Ward: R. W. King, J. W. Kermott. Sixth Ward: Wm. Duncan, Thos. Hill. Seventh Ward: J. McMillan, Edward Eccard. Eighth Ward: Daniel Guiney, M. F. Hogan. Ninth Ward: D. M. Richardson, J. Witherspoon. Tenth Ward: Milton Frost, J. Dwyer. Twelfth Ward: Jos. Loranger, John Diedrich. 1874, At Large: J. Greusel, Julius Stoll, Thos. Baxter, Wm. Doeltz, E. B. Ward. 1875, First Ward: S. R, Woolley, Francis Adams. I62 AUDITORS, COMPTROLLERS, ACCOUNTANTS. - Second Ward: Hiram Walker, Chas. I. Walker. Third Ward: Louis Barie, Wm. R. Candler. Fourth Ward: J. P. Hensien, Richard Hawley. Fifth Ward: J. W. Kermott, R. W. King. Sixth Ward: T. Hill, W. Duncan. Seventh Ward: E. Eccard, J. McMillan. Eighth Ward: M. F. Hogan, D. Guiney. Ninth Ward: J. Witherspoon, Jos. Nicholson. Tenth Ward: J. Dwyer, M. Frost. Twelfth Ward: J. Loranger, A. E. Hamlin. 1875, At Large: J. Greusel, J. Stoll, T. Baxter, W. Doeltz, H. C. Hodges. 1876, First Ward: F. Adams, J. D. Hayes. Second Ward: C. I. Walker, Louis Dillman. Third Ward: W. R. Candler, P. Herlihy. Fourth Ward: R. Hawley, W. N. Carpenter. Fifth Ward: R. W. King, J. W. Kermott. Sixth Ward: W. Duncan, T. Hill. Seventh Ward: J. McMillan, E. Eccard. Eighth Ward: D. Guiney, M. F. Hogan. Ninth Ward: J. Nicholson, C. Lafferty. Tenth Ward: M. Frost, Thos. Berry. Twelfth Ward: A. E. Hamlin, J. Diedrich. 1876, At Large: S. C. Watson, J. Greusel, N. Avery, W. Doeltz, W. C. Colburn. 1877, First Ward: J. D. Hayes, C. B. Hebbard. Second Ward: Louis Dillman, T. N. Birmingham. Third Ward: P. Herlihy, W. R. Candler. Fourth Ward: W. N. Carpenter, Morse Stewart. Fifth \ard: J. W. Kermott, R. W. King. Sixth Ward: T. Hill, D. NI. Ferry. Seventh Ward: E. Eccard, M. Martz. Eighth Ward: M. F. Hogan, J. Connor. Ninth Ward: C. Lafferty, (G. C. Langdon. Tenth Ward: Thos. Berry, G. Hen(lrie. Eleventh Ward: Ml. I)ederich, M. Blay. Twelfth Ward: J. Diedrich, MI. Steyskal. Thirteenth Ward: Frank Whitman, John Japes. 1877, At Large: J. Greusel, N. Avery, O. Bourke, W. Doeltz. W. C. Colburn. 1878, First Ward: C. B. Hebbard, R. W. Gillett. Second Ward: Thos. N. Birmingham, Wm. K. Coyl. Third Ward: W. R. Candler, P. Herlihy. Fourth Ward: M. Stewart, Theo. Romeyn. Fifth Ward: R. W. King, A. E. Leavitt. Sixth Ward: D. M. Ferry, H. L. Kanter. Seventh Ward: M. Martz, Adam Schehr. Eighth Ward: J. Connor, M. F. Hogan. Ninth Ward: C. Lafferty, G. C. Langdon. Tenth Ward: G. Hendrie, J. B. Gravier. Eleventh Ward: M. Dederich, W. L. Streeter. Twelfth Ward: M. Steyskal, Thos. Densham. Thirteenth Ward: F. Whitman, J. Japes. 1878, At Large: M. I. Mills, Wm. B. Moran, A. Pulte, J. Atkinson, J. A. Dudgeon. 1879, First Ward: R. W. Gillett, F. Adams. Second Ward: W. K. Coyl, E. L. Schmitt. Third Ward: P. Herlihy, Theo. Chapoton. Fourth Ward: Theo. Romeyn, J. I. Lewis. Fifth Ward: A. E. Leavitt, R. W. King. Sixth Ward: H. L. Kanter, Theo. McGraw. Seventh Ward: Adam Schehr, Z. Dewey. Eighth Ward: M. F. Hogan, Theo. Rentz. Ninth Ward: C. Lafferty, H. Hastings. Tenth Ward: J. B. Gravier, P. S. McCormick. Eleventh Ward. Wm L. Streeter, M. Blay. Twelfth Ward: S. D. Bush, S. A. Plummer. Thirteenth Ward: J. Japes, A. Trost. 1879, At Large: M. I. Mills, W. B. Moran, A. Pulte, J. Atkinson, J. A. Dudgeon. I88o, First Ward: F. Adams, W. A. Butler. Second Ward: E. L. Schmitt, C. D. Erichsen. Third Ward: Theo. Chapoton, Jos. Kurtz. Fourth Ward: J. I. Lewis, Theo. Romeyn. Fifth Ward: R. W. King, J. S. Vernor. Sixth Ward: Theo. McGraw, J. D. Standish. Seventh Ward: Z. Dewey, S. Kirchner. Eighth Ward: Theo. Rentz, D. Donovan. Ninth Ward: H. Hastings, Robert Miller. Tenth Ward: P.. McCormick, S. B. Grummond. Eleventh Ward: M. Blay, W. L. Streeter. Twelfth Ward: S. A. Plummer, J. B. Wood. Thirteenth Ward: A. Trost, A. Haischer. I880, At Large: A. Chapoton, Thos. Berry, John Greusel, O. C. Wood, W. C. Colburn. I888, First Ward: A. Hoffman, J. A. Randall. Second Ward: T. McGraw, H. O. Walker. Third Ward: J. Funke, J. B. Pospeshill. Fourth Ward: E. C. Hinsdale, J. A. Phelps. Fifth Ward: John Chateau, T. Gorenflo. Sixth Ward: M. Powell, P. H. Hickey. Seventh Ward: A. Betzing, M. Bayer. Eighth Ward: A. Schneider, E. A. Doran Ninth Ward: E. Welch, A. Valentine. Tenth Ward: J. Diederich, T. Galvin. Eleventh Ward: G. Sunderland, H. Merdian. Twelfth Ward: A. Grostield, G. \V. Wilson. Thirteenth Ward: M. E. Cousino, M. Lambert. Fourteenth Ward: R. Beaubien, Neil Grant. Fifteenth Ward: C. Damitio, J. R. Russell. Sixteenth Ward: P. Nestor, J. Sarbinowski. j888, At Large: Louis P. Campau, Patrick Dee, John Erhardt, Anthony Petz, John Japes. AUDITORS.-COMPTROLLERS.-ACCOUNTANTS. The office of city auditor was created by Act of March II, 1844. It was the duty of this officer to audit all claims and accounts against the city, and to examine and adjust, as often as once in three months, the accounts of all city officers. The city clerks served also as auditors until I850, when A. T. Hall was appointed solely to this office. By Act of February 12, I855, the name of the office was changed to that of comptroller, and the term of service was reduced from three to two years. In I861 the term of office was again extended to three years. The office is intended as a safeguard in the management of the city finances. The estimated expenditures of the several departments of the city are forwarded to and collected by the comptroller, and after being tabulated, are presented by him to the council. He keeps a record of all bonds issued by CITY AND WA the city, all of which are signed by the mayor and comptroller, and attested by the city clerk. When bonds are redeemed, the comptroller gives a warrant, drawn on the city treasurer. It is his duty to keep a complete list of the property of the city. He is nominated by the mayor and confirmed by the Board of Aldermen, and must give a bond in the sum of $30,000. In I883 the salary was $3,000. From I850 to I854 Amos T. Hall served as auditor. The names of the comptrollers, and the dates of the beginning of their terms, are as follows: Chas. Peltier, July ir, I854; J. M. Edmunds, April, 1859; B. L. Webb, March, I86i; D.C. Whitwood, March, I862; A. H. Redfield, October, I863; B. G. Stimson, January, 1868; Wm. Purcell, June, 1870; E. I. Garfield, March, I871; H. P. Bridge, March, 1877; Luther S. Trowbridge, July, I883; A. Chesebrough, January, I885; W. B. Moran, June, I886. The duties of the city accountant are intimately related to the original duties of the auditor and comptroller. The first appointee was J. J. Norris, who was charged in I877 with the duty of examining the methods of bookkeeping and the condition of the accounts in the several city offices. In 1878 he was succeeded by Richard Tregaskis, in 1884 reappointed, and in 1886 was followed by H. P Sanger. Appointments to the office are made on nomination of the mayor, for terms of two years, or until a successor is selected. CITY AND WARD ASSESSORS. The city charter of October 24, 1815, authorized the election of an assessor, and old records show that on May 5, 1817, he was paid $30.75 for collecting taxes on personal property assessed at $1,787.37. The extensive improvement of land and the greater number of property owners, growing out of the sale of lots on the Military Reserve, led the council to increase the number of assessors; and in I828 three were appointed. An Act of March 27, I839, provided for the election of one assessor in each of the six wards. Act of April 13, 1841, required the assessors to make out the rolls between the first Mondays of March and April, and gave them the same power as the county commissioners, and by Act of February i6, 1842, they were made members of the Board of Supervisors. By Act of February 23, 1846, the city was divided into three assessment districts, of two wards each; and of the six assessors elected in I846, three were to serve one year, and three for two years, the length of term of each to be decided by lot. All assessments of property were to be made between the second Mondays of March and May. Under Act of January 30, 1847, the taxes were required to be assessed and collected before the first Monday in March. Act of February 22, I848, pro RD ASSESSORS. 163 vided that the council should divide the city into three assessment districts; the first district to embrace the first and second wards; the second district, the third, fourth, and seventh wards; and the third district, the fifth and sixth wards. The Act also provided that in 1849 one assessor should be elected for each district, the assessor for the first district to serve one year, for the second district, two years, and for the third district, three years; and after I849 they were to be elected for terms of three years. Act of February 2I, I849, provided for the election of one assessor for the seventh ward, and that the assessment districts of the city should be as already constituted by the council, except that the seventh ward was to be attached to the second district. On January 30, 1850, the Legislature provided for the election of three city assessors, who were to decide by lot what should be their terms of office, one of them to serve for one year, one for two, and the other for three years; and after 185o one assessor was to be elected annually. By Act of February 12, i855, the plan of ward assessors was again introduced, and in 1856 one was elected for each ward, the whole number constituting a Board of Assessors. Assessments were to be made in March of each year. In May, 1855, the rolls were seriously tampered with, the assessment of some persons being reduced, and that of others increased. It was difficult to determine who had committed or connived at the wrongdoing, but on February 5, I857, the wards system was again abolished, and provision was made for an assessor and two assistant assessors, who were to be appointed by the Common Council. Up to July 1, 1883, there was but one chief assessor; his salary was $2,500, and he was appointed for terms of three years. Under ordinance of December 30, I86I, the city, on January I of each year, appointed two assistants to serve for three months, at two dollars and fifty cents per day each. By ordinance of November 24, I865, the time of service was increased to six months; and in March of the same year the pay was increased to four dollars, and afterwards to five dollars per day. The assistants were required to reside one on each side of Woodward Avenue. By the charter of 1883, the office of assistant assessor was abolished, and a board of three assessors was provided for. The one in office was to continue for his regular term, and two others were to be appointed whose terms were to commence in July, 1883, and to continue for two and three years respectively. Beginning with I884, one assessor is to be appointed annually for a term of three years. In 1883 the salary was $2,500 each. The charter of I883 transferred to the assessors part of the powers formerly exercised by the Board of Review. BOARD OF REVIEW. I64 The president of the Board of Assessors is a member of the Board of Supervisors. The assessors prepare not only the lists of taxable property for the city, but also those for the state and county taxes for the county treasurer. The following persons have served as assessors: 18 6, Antoine Dequindre; 1817, H. J. Hunt; 1818, Henry Brown; I819, Robert Garratt; 1820-I823, D. C. McKinstry; I823, B. Woodworth; 1824, Melvil I)orr; 1825-1828, J. Moors; 1828, E. Doty, M. I)orr, J. Moors; I829, John Scott, Justin Rice, F. P. Browning; 1830, S. Conant, J. L. Whiting, P. Desnoyers; 1831, John Roberts, John Garrison, Thomas Palmer; 1832, S. Conant, P. Desnoyers, D. French; I833. D. Cooper, T. S. Knapp, E. P. Hastings; 1834, D. C. McKiristry, 1'. I)esnoyers, N. Sutton; I835, N. Sutton, A. Hartshorn, C. Moran; 1836, W. Russell, John Palmer, N. Sutton; I837, IH. Newberry, S. Poupard, M. Story; 1838, T. S. Wendell, J. Palmer, H. Newberry. 839.-First Ward: T. J. Owen. Second Ward: D. Cooper. Third Ward: A. E. Mather. Fourth Ward: N. Sutton. Fifth Ward: D. W. Fiske. Sixth Ward: W. Barclay. I840, First Ward: T. J. Owen. Second Ward: Levi Cook. Third Ward: Chas. Willcox. Fourth Ward: Cullen Brown. Fifth Ward: C. M. Bull. Sixth Ward: Wm. Barclay. I841, First Ward: T. J. Owen. Second Ward: L. Cook. Third Ward: D. French. Fourth Ward: C. Brown. Fifth Ward: W. R. Noyes. Sixth Ward: H. Beaubien. 1842, First Ward: T. J. Owen. Second Ward: Ellis Doty. Third Ward: F. H. Stevens. Fourth Ward: Peter Desnoyers. Fifth Ward: G. Paull. Sixth Ward: John Greenfield. 1843, First Ward: T. J. Owen. Second Ward: John Farrar. Third Ward: Louis Beaubien. Fourth Ward: John Reno. Fifth Ward: H. H. LeRoy. Sixth \ard: J. Godfroy. 1844, First Ward: T. J. Owen, E. Bingham. Second Ward: J. Farrar. Third Ward: L. Beaubien. Fourth Ward: J. Reno. Fifth Ward: J. H. Hill. Sixth Ward: Henry Beaubien. 1845, First Ward: Thos. Palmer. Second Ward: R. J. Connor. Third Ward: M. Gooding. Fourth Ward: J. Reno. Fifth Ward: J. H. Hill. Sixth Ward: H. Beaubien. 1846, First Ward: M. Palmer. Second Ward: N. 13. Carpenter, Third Ward: G. Spencer. Fourth Ward: J.B. Vallee. Fifth Ward: D. Edsall. Sixth Ward: H. Beaubien. I847, First Ward: M. Palmer. Second Ward: N. B. Carpenter. Third Ward: G. Spencer. Fourth Ward: J. B. Vallee. Fifth Ward: Thos. Hall, A. C. Powell. Sixth Ward: H. Beaubien. Seventh Ward: R. C. Smith. I848, First District: Wm. Stewart, I. Goodrich. Second District: J. B. Vallee, Wm. Stead. Third District: J. S. Jenness, David Weeks. I849, First District: J. Fitzmorris, N. B. Carpenter. Second District: I. Goodrich, James Robinson. Third District: WV. Stead, John Mullett. I850, George Blakeslee, Robert Reaume, W. Stead. I851, First District: R. Reaume. Second District: John McCurdy. Third District: S. T. Dyson. I852 and 1853, First District: J, Hanmer. Second District: R. Reaume. Third District: J. McCurdy. I854 and 1855, First District: J. Hanmer. Second District: J. Reno. Third District: A. H. Stowell. i856, First Ward: S. S. Barrows. Second Ward: N. B. Carpenter. Third Ward: William Moore. Fourth Ward: John M. Davis. Fifth Ward: A. H. Stowell. Sixth Ward: Eben Prentis. Seventh Ward: A. H. Redfield. Eighth Ward: Jonathan Teagan. 1857-1863, W. W. Wilcox. 1863-I866, F. E. Eldred. I866-1869, A. A. Rabineau. I869-I872, Jeremiah Godfrey. 1872-1878, H. H. LeRoy. I878 -i88i, G. W. Gilbert. 1881-July, I883, J. D. Standish. July, 1883, to July, 1885, J. D. Standish, C. W. Coolidge, J. McBride. 1885, J. M. Jones. J. J. Perren, J. McBride. I886, J. McBride, J. J. Perren, J. D. Long. 1887-, J. J. Perren, J. D. Long, C. M. Garrison. BOARD OF REVIEW. Under Act of March 27, 1839, after the assessment rolls were completed, the assessors of the several wards met together, on specified days, to review their work. Under Act of February 12, I855, they met on the first Monday of April, and sat two weeks to hear complaints and correct the rolls. By Act of February 5, 1857, the city assessor, comptroller, treasurer, attorney, and the Committee of Ways and Means for each year, were constituted the Board of Review. Act of March 12, I861, made provision for the appointment by the council, on nomination of the mayor, of three resident property owners to hold office three years, who were to constitute a Board of Review. The pay for their services was determined by the council, and was usually five dollars per day. The board met yearly at the assessor's office, on the first Monday in April, and were required to finish their labors on or before the first of May. It was their duty to equalize, amend, alter, and correct the assessment rolls; but no assessment could be increased, or new assessments added, without notice to the persons whose interests were affected. After a law of 1879, and up to July, 1883, the board consisted of five persons, three of whom were nominated by the mayor and two by the president of the Common Council, and all con CITY AND WARI) COLLECTORS. firmed by the council. The first three nominated by the mayor were to determine by lot who should serve the terms of one, two, and three years, and afterwards one new member was appointed each year for a term of three years. One of the two appointed annually, on nomination of the president of the council, was required to reside east, and the other west, of Woodward Avenue. The charter of 1883 abolished the office, and transferred its duties in part to the Board of Assessors, and to the aldermen and councilmen in joint session. The following persons have served as members of the board: 186I and I862, J. Gibson, J. Godfrey, J. Burns; 1863, J. Gibson, J. Burns, J. Hanmer; 1864 and 1865, J. Gibson, C. Van Husan, E. Orr; i866,J. Gibson, C. Van Husan, J. C. Warner; 1867, J. Gibson, Geo. M. Rich, J. C. Warner; 1868 and 1869, C. Van iusan, G. M. Rich, J. C. Warner; 1870 and 1871, A. A. Rabineau, G. M. Rich, J. C. Warner; 1872 and 1873, A. A. Rabineau, G. M. Rich, James Burns; 1874, A. A. Rabineau, A. Sheley, J. Burns; 1875, 1876, 1877, A. A. Rabineau, A. Sheley, W. A. Butler; 1878, A. A. Rabineau, A. Sheley, W. B. Moran; 1879, A. Sheley, H. M. Iean, L. L. Barbour; I880 and 1881, A. Sheley, H. MI. Dean, L. L. Barbour, M. Haller, W. E. Warriner; 1882, A. Sheley, L. L. Barbour, Walter Ingersoll, J. E. Vincent, A. Grant; 1883, A. Sheley, E. Kanter, W. Ingersoll, George Dorr, John Kessler. CITY AND WARD COLLECTORS. The office of city collector began with the incorporation of the town in I802. It was again provided for in the Act of 1815, and up to 1824 its duties were combined with those of the marshal. In 1817 the officer was paid by a fee of five per cent on amounts collected, which percentage yielded him $89.36. By ordinance of 1836 the salary was $50 a year, in addition to the percentage allowed for collecting county taxes. After 1846, when ward collectors were provided, che city collector no longer received the county taxes. The following official notice, which appeared in a daily paper of September, 1845, must have struck terror to the hearts of delinquent tax-payers: CITY TAXES. Positively the last night. The council has granted a short extension of time for the payment of taxes. Persons interested will do well to call at Fireman's Hall, common council room, and pay up. They will find me there every day during this week, from 9 o'clock A. Mo. to 12^ o'clock P. Mi. On Monday, the fifteenth inst., I shall proceed to summary measures with all delinquents. Let no man, if delinquent, flatter himself that he will be overlooked or passed by, for I will positively make a clean sweep. MORGAN BATES, City Collector. Under the charter of 1855, all special assessments for street paving, sewers, and sidewalks were depos ited for payment in the office of the receiver of taxes. If not paid in thirty days, they were then transferred to the city collector's office, five per cent was added for collection, and one per cent for each month they remained unpaid. Prior to 1866 the license fees, for carrying on various kinds of business, were also payable to the city collector, who was appointed yearly by the council. The office was abolished by law of 1879, and its duties transferred to the receiver of taxes. The following persons served as city collectors: 180o, Chas. Francis Girardin; 1804, Jacob Clemens; 1816, John Meldrum; 1817, Duncan Reid; 1818, H. O. Bronson; 1819 and 1820, J. W. Colburn; 1821, Robert Garratt; 1822 and 1823, Smith Knapp; 1824, Griffith Roberts; 1825, A. C. Caniff; 1826, John Howard; 1827 and 1828, A. C. Caniff; 1829, S. Phelps; 1830 and 1831, A. C. Caniff; 1832, J. Farrar, 1833; A. C. Caniff; I834, J. O. Graves; 1835, J. Moors; 1836, A. C. Caniff; 1837, James Cicotte; 1838, J. Farrar; 1839 and I840, A. C. Caniff; I841, J. D. Baldwin; 1842, B. S. Farnsworth; 1843, F. H. Harris, H. J. Caniff; 1844, C. Wickware; I845 and 1846, Morgan Bates; I847 -1855, no appointments were made; 1855 and 1856, J. W. Kelsey; 1857, E. S. Leadbeater; I858, R. H. Finley; 1859 and 1860, Wm. Cook; 1861, De Witt C. Hart; 1862, John Snyder; 1863 and 1864, Wm. Dyson; 1865, Chas. Meyer; I866 and 1867, John Schneider; I868, E. N. Lacroix; 1869, E. W. Flint; I870, Thos Joyce; 1871 and 1872, John McBride; I873-1876, Wm. Parkinson; 1876, W. II. Christian; 1877, James Ialy; 1878, Jacob Youngblood; 1879, John Archer. The office of ward collector was created by Act of February 23,I846. The duties of the office consisted in collecting the city, school, state, and county taxes. Act of May IO, 1861, authorized the collectors to collect such other taxes as the receiver of taxes and other city officers might place in their hands. The office was abolished by law of 1879, which gave the receiver of taxes and the county treasurer power to appoint their own collectors. The ward collectors were as follows: 1846, First Ward: J. Moors. Second Ward: R. J. Connor. Third Ward: D. Michael. Fourth Ward: A. 0. Madden. Fifth Ward: Moses Bennett. Sixth Ward: E. Benham. 1847, First Ward: Wm. Cook. Second Ward: L. B. Willard. Third Ward: I. Goodrich. Fourth Ward: Geo. Smith. Fifth Ward: E. M. Church. Sixth Ward: R. Hopson. 1848, First Ward: H. D. Carpenter. Second Ward: John Farrar. ~ Third Ward: S. P. Hopkins. Fourth Ward: G. Smith. Fifth Ward: M. Salter. Sixth Ward: J. Braman. Seventh Ward: Robert Reaume. A CITY AND WARD COLLECTORS................ 1849, First Ward: H. D. Carpenter. Second Ward: John Campbell. Third Ward: Paul Gies. Fourth Ward: Joseph Grimes. Fifth Ward: L. W. Beebe. Sixth Ward: J. W. Clark. Seventh Ward; J.Keusch. Eighth Ward: M. McLaughlin. I85o, First Ward: John Collins. Second Ward: John Campbell. Third Ward: A. Stewart. Fourth Ward: Joseph Grimes. Fifth Ward: John Sharp. Sixth Ward: J. W. Clark. Seventh Ward: J. Keusch. Eighth Ward: M. McLaughlin. 1851, First Ward: R. Storkdale. Second Ward: A. Stewart. Third Ward: J. Deville. Fourth Ward: Winm. Paton. Fifth Ward: J. Sharp. Sixth Ward: W. Paton. Seventh Ward: A. Wing. Eighth Ward: Thos. Trehey. I852, First Ward: D. Stewart. Second Ward: Chas. O'Neil. Third Ward: R. H. Lavinder. Fourth Ward: C. Gies. Fifth Ward: M. Doran. Sixth Ward: F. Bruggerman. Seventh Ward: E. Lebot. Eighth Ward: M. Dullea. 1853, First Ward: E. S. Leadbeater. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: D. W. Fiske. Fourth Ward: C. Gies. Fifth Ward: J. Godfrey. Sixth Ward: A. P. and E. F Plantz. Seventh Ward: E. Lebot. Eighth Ward: J. Cullinane. 1854, First Ward: David Stewart. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: W. S. Montgomery. Fourth Ward: Adam Orth. Fifth Ward: Orville S. Allen. Sixth Ward: E. F. Plantz. Seventh Ward: J. Hilsendegen. Eighth Ward: J. Cullinane. 1855, First Ward: D. Stewart. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: Wim. P. Roberts. Fourth Ward: A. Orth. Fifth Ward: John Sharp. Sixth Ward: E. F. Plantz. Seventh Ward: J. Hilsendegen. Eighth Ward: Nicholas Burke. 1856, First Ward: D. Stewart. Second Ward: T. Anderson. Third Ward: D. Lanigan. Fourth Ward: A. Orth. Fifth Ward: Wm. Stead. Sixth Ward: E. F. Plantz. Seventh Ward: J. Hilsendegen. Eighth Ward: J. Moynaghan. I857, First Ward: D. Stewart. Second Ward: T. Anderson. Third Ward: G. Evans, E. T. Sherlock. Fourth Ward: A. Orth. Fifth Ward: Wm. Stead. Sixth Ward: E. F. Plantz. Seventh Ward: J. Hilsendegen. Eighth Ward: J. Moynaghan. Ninth Ward: John Mulry. Tenth Ward: F. St. Aubin. 1858, First Ward: John Collins. Second Ward: J. Calnon. Third Ward: T. J. Sherlock. Fourth Ward: Charles Lotz. Fifth Ward: Thomas J. Barry. Sixth Ward: E. F. Plantz. Seventh Ward: J. Reno. Eighth Ward: Thomas Holley. Ninth Ward: George W. Burchell. Tenth Ward: James Dubois. 1859, First Ward: Albert Marsh. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: F. Gies. Fourth Ward: Charles Lotz. Fifth Ward: T. J. Barry. Sixth Ward: E. F. Plantz. Seventh Ward: J. Reno. Eighth Ward: T. Holley. Ninth Ward: G. W. Burchell. Tenth Ward: James Dubois. I86o, First Ward: David Dickson. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: Leonard Richter. Fourth Ward: Alois Katus. Fifth Ward: T. J. Barry. Sixth Ward: F. Baier. Seventh Ward: John Hornbogen. Eighth XVard: Thomas Holiey. Ninth Ward: Matthias Lentz. Tenth Ward: Henry Plass. I86i, First Ward: J. Collins. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: L. Richter. Fourth Ward: Alois Katus. Fifth Ward: T. J. Barry, Wm. Powell. Sixth Ward: William L. Streeter. Seventh Ward: J. Hornbogen. Eighth Ward: T. Trahey. Ninth Ward: J. C. Curry. Tenth Ward: H. Plass. 1862, First Ward: D. Dickson. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: L. Richter. Fourth Ward: J. J. Diedrich. Fifth Ward: Alonzo Eaton, E. C. Eaton. Sixth Ward: W. L. Streeter. Seventh Ward: Nazaire Marion. Eighth Ward: T. Trehey. Ninth Ward: Thos. Gorman. Tenth Ward: Henry A. Blenman. 1863, First Ward: D. Dickson. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: L. Richter. Fourth Ward: J. J. Diedrich. Fifth Ward: S. J. Martin. Sixth Ward: W. L. Streeter. Seventh Ward: N. Marion. Eighth Ward: T. Trehey. Ninth Ward: Wm. Binder. Tenth Ward: Peter Dunn. I864, First Ward: Hugh O'Beirne. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: Leonard Richter. Fourth Ward: J. Funke. Fifth Ward: Wm. Parkinson. Sixth Ward: Alonzo T. Ray. Seventh Ward: N. Marion. Eighth Ward: Wm. Ryan. Ninth Ward: M. Lenz. Tenth Ward: Philip Rapp. I865, First Ward: H. O'Beirne. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: T. J. Sherlock. Fourth Ward: J. Funke. Fifth Ward: Wm. Parkinson. Sixth Ward: Alonzo T. Ray. Seventh Ward: A. Werthmann. Eighth Ward: Wm. Ryan. Ninth Ward: J. Daly. Tenth Ward: Wm. Wunsch. I866, First Ward: H. O'Beirne. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: T. J. Sherlock. Fourth Ward: J. Funke. Fifth Ward: Wm. Parkinson. Sixth Ward: A. T. Ray. Seventh Ward: J. Blankenheim. Eighth Ward: Patrick Dwyer. Ninth Ward: T. Rattenbury. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. 1867, First Ward: Win. Harsha. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: T. J. Sherlock. Fourth Ward: J. Funke. Fifth Ward: Peter Huyser. Sixth Ward: Ulrich Kreit. Seventh Ward: J. Blankenheim. Eighth Ward: P. Dwyer. Ninth Ward: J. B. Haas. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. CITY TREASURERS.- IRECEIVERS OF TAXES. i67 I868, First Ward: Win. Harsha. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: Augustus Paulus. Fourth Ward: J. Funke. Fifth Ward: I'. Huyser. Sixth Ward: U. Kreit. Seventh Ward: (. L. R. Steckel. Eighth Ward: P. Dwyer. Ninth Ward: J. B. Haas. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. I869, First Ward: Wm. Harsha. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: James McGrath. Fourth Ward: J. Funke. Fifth Ward: W. Kydd. Sixth Ward: Edward Grevels. Seventh Ward: G. L. R. Steckel. Eighth Ward: P. Iwyer. Ninth Ward: Albert Bluma. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. 1870, First Ward: J. Danahey. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: Henry Roediger. Fourth Ward: J. Funke. Fifth Ward: W. Kydd. Sixth Ward: Nicholas Senninger. Seventh Ward: (. L. R. Steckel. Eighth Ward: Thos. O'Neil. Ninth Ward: Adam Eigenbrod. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. 1871, First Ward: 1). Dickson. Second Ward: C. O'Neil. Third Ward: H. Roediger. Fourth Ward: Win. Carroll. Fifth Ward: W. Kydd. Sixth Ward: U. Kreit. Seventh Ward: Daniel Fleper. Eighth Ward: P. Dwyer. Ninth Ward: J. B. Haas. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. 1872, First Ward: John Stewart. Second Ward: John C. Schuetz. Third Ward: H. Roediger. Fourth Ward: W. Carroll. Fifth Ward: Robert D. Huff. Sixth Ward: H. Kuemmel. Seventh Ward: D. Fleper. Eighth Ward: P. 1)Dwyer. Ninth Ward: Conrad Fey. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. 1873, First Ward: James Clark. Second Ward: J. C. Schuetz. Third Ward: H. Roediger. Fourth Ward: N. Sutton. Fifth Ward: P. Huyser. Sixth Ward: H. Kuemmel. Seventh Ward: C. B. Maxson. Eighth Ward: Wm. Ryan. Ninth Ward: C. Fey. Tenth Ward: W. Wunsch. 1874, First Ward: D. Dickson. Second Ward: J. C. Schuetz. Third Ward: H. Roediger. Fourth Ward: N. Kummer. Fifth Ward: J. Parkinson. Sixth Ward: Henry Zeiss. Seventh Ward: Herman Sucker. Eighth Ward: W. Ryan. Ninth Ward: C. Matzen. Tenth Ward: J. Happe. Twelfth Ward: A. Bauer. 1875, First Ward: D. Dickson. Second Ward: L. P. Desnoyers. Third Ward: H. Roediger. Fourth Ward: N. Kummer. Fifth Ward: W. Kydd, Sr. Sixth Ward: Henry Zeiss. Seventh Ward: John Caspary. Eighth Ward: W. Ryan. Ninth Ward: John Taylor. Tenth Ward: J. Happe. Twelfth Ward: A. Bauer. 1876, First Ward: D. Dickson. Second Ward: L. P. Desnoyers. Third Ward: H. Roediger. Fourth Ward: N. Kummer. Fifth Ward: G. W. Owen. Sixth Ward: H. Zeiss. Seventh Ward: G. L. R. Steckel. Eighth Ward: P. Madigan. Ninth Ward: J. Taylor. Tenth Ward: Henry Wunsch. Twelfth Ward: Chas. Steyskal. 1877, First Ward: Philip Roos. Second Ward: L. P. Desnoyers. Third Ward: Martin Fox. Fourth Ward: N. Kummer. Fifth Ward: G. W. Owen. Sixth Ward: W. H. Connor. Seventh Ward: G. L. R. Steckel. Eighth Ward: P. Madigan. Ninth Ward: M. Embach. Tenth Ward: H. Wunsch. Eleventh Ward: Francis Alter. Twelfth Ward: C. W. Appel. Thirteenth Ward: Fred W. Feldman. 1878, First Ward: Philip Roos. Second Ward: L. P. Desnoyers. Third Ward: Martin Fox. Fourth Ward: N. Kummer. Fifth Ward: G. W. Owen. Sixth Ward: W. H. Connor. Seventh Ward: G. L. R. Steckel. Eighth Ward: P. Madigan, W. Ryan. Ninth Ward: M. Embach. Tenth Ward: Peter VanDamme. Eleventh Ward: Joseph Kohn. Twelfth Ward: Joseph Kulnan. Thirteenth Ward: F H. Ellair. I879, First Ward: Robert Knox. Second Ward: L. P. Desnoyers. Third Ward: Geo. McManus. Fourth Ward: Wim. Carroll. Fifth Ward: G. VW. Owen. Sixth Ward: F. Harting. Seventh Ward: J. T. Widman. Eighth WVard: WVm. Ryan. Ninth Ward: F. Cronewith. Tenth Ward: P. Van Damme. Eleventh Ward: A. Worhofsky. Twelfth Ward: Jesse Sterling. Thirteenth Ward: F. H. Ellair. CITY TREASURERS. The office of treasurer dates from 1802, and under the various charters and amendments, appointments were made by the Board of Trustees or Common Council up to I849, since which time the office has been elective. The duties have never been materially changed. The money received from various sources is turned over to and paid out by this officer. His term of office is two years, and he is elected at the regular city election. By ordinance of 1825 he was allowed, in lieu of salary, one per cent of his receipts, and also one per cent on the amount he actually paid out from moneys belonging to the corporation. In I832 the salary was $75 a year; in 1840 it was $300; in 1856 it had grown to $1,o0o; and in 1883 it was $3,000. He gives $200,000 bonds. To aid him in his duties, he has several assistants. The following is a list of the city treasurers: I816, and 1817, 0. W. Miller; I818, Louis Dequindre; 1819, A. Wendell; 1820, T. Rowland; 182I, Joseph Campau; 1822, Levi Cook; 1823, Calvin Baker; 1824, Peter Desnoyers; 1825-1829, H. S. Cole; 1829, J. T. Penny; 1830-1836, R. S. Rice; 1836, D. French; 1837, P. Desnoyers, C. Wickware; I 68 RECEIVERS OF TAXES. 1838, John Farmer; i839, J. C. Williams; 1840 -1842, F. X. Cicotte; i842-1844, D. J.Campau; r844-i845, Theodore Williams; 1846, D. Smart; 1847, John Winder; 1848-i85o, W. A. Howard; i85o-i854, N. B.Carpenter; i854-I86o, John Campbell; i86o-i86i, D. P. Bushnell; i862-1866, A. A. Rabineau; 1866-1871, E. S. Leadheater; July, i871 -1876, E. C. Hinsdale; i876-1884, Win. Parkinson i1884-i 888, J. S. Schm-ittdiel; i 888-, T. P. Tuite. RECEIVERS OF TAXES. The office of receiver was created by Act of March 12, i86i, and all city taxes are primarily payable to this officer. Up to the passage of the charter of 1883, he was appointed every two years by the Common Council, on nomination of 'the mayor. The charter of 1883 lengthened the term to three years. The salary in 1883 was $2,500, the receiver giving $5o,ooo bonds. The following persons have served as receivers: i86i toJuly, i862, B. Franklin Baker; i862-1868, Thos. R. Cummings; 1869-1873, Win. Y. Rumney; i873-1877, W. A. Throop; 1877-1879, Robert E. Roberts; i 879-1881, J. M.Welch; i 88 i- i886, Jacob Guthard; i 886- S. C. Karrer. PART IV. JUDICIAL. 4 ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~~ ~~ ~ ~~ ~ ~~ ~ ~~ ~ ~ ~~~~ ~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~. CHAPTER XXX JUSTICE IN THE OLDEN TIME.-UNITED STATES CIRCUIT COURT.-DISTRICT COURT.- UNITED STATES OFFICERS.-BANKRUPTCY COURT. IN considering the subject of justice, and its legal administration, it should be remembered that one of the objects of the settlement of Detroit was to secure and maintain the supremacy of the French in this western region. For this reason, and because of the dangers from hostile Indians as well as from the English, a military settlement was a necessity. A company of soldiers was therefore sent with the first settlers, and the beginnings of the colony presented an appearance quite unlike that of the Pilgrims of Plymouth Rock, or of the Quakers with William Penn. The treachery of the savages, the various exigencies arising among settlers far removed from the restraints of ordinary society, and the jealousies and ai-ibitions of leading members of the colony, all combined to make military rule not only desirable, but necessary. Cadillac and the other French commandants were therefore invested with almost plenary powers. They could imprison at pleasure, or even run their swords through a person who grossly offended; they were amenable, nevertheless, to the governor-general at Quebec and to the colonial minister in France, and complaints against them were not infrequent. About I720 the inhabitants complained to the council that Tonty was "judge and party in all the differences which arose respecting conmmerce, and if any one attempted to claim his rights, he was illused; that in one case he struck Du Ruisson with a cane, and trampled him under foot, so that he left the room covered with blood," and that when the matter was reported to Vaudreuil, no attention was paid to it. In 1722 there were judges at the three cities of New France, and each inhabitant was compelled to elect some one of these cities as his domicile, so that notices could be served and cases tried. Notwithstanding the occasional complaints of the people, there is every reason to believe that, in the main, the government of the commandants was both mild and judicious. The circumstances of their position were such that they could not afford to alienate many of the settlers. The necessity of constant watchfulness and foresight in dealing with and governing the savages. who clustered about the fort and freely mingled with the people, made it impossible for them to indulge frequently in freaks of temper, or to allow or commit injustice. A coolness and an intrepidity, seldom found in mean or malicious natures, were important attributes of the men who should successfully govern the settlement; and in many respects the government was almost patriarchal in its character. The commandants were called upon to witness all important private transactions, and no wedding or christening was quite satisfactory without their presence. I)uring the earlier years of English rule tile government was still of a military character, and the fatherly offices of the commandants were, if possible, even more frequently exercised. Commandant I)e Peyster both married and baptized those who desired his services, using the forms of the English Church. If offences were coimmitted the comnimandants went through regular forms of law, and tried, and as faithfully executed, those whom they deemed deserving of death. In a letter dated April 20, I763, addressed to General Amherst, Major Gladwin said, "The Panis (a Pawnee Indian slave) who escaped from the guard last winter got off to the Illinois; therefore I thought it best to try the woman, who was sentenced to be hanged for being an accomplice in the murder of the late Mr. Clapham; which I had put in execution in the most public manner. The original manuscript of the letter has the following explanatory memoranda, probably added by the aide-de-camp of General Amherst: This murder was committed last summer, and was attended with several shocking circumstances. Mr. Clapham was a trader coming from the Detroit, with his two Pani.; slaves, a man and a woman, who, by their own confession, murdered him by cutting off his head, and throwing his body into the river. They were delivered up by a party of Indians, whom the Panis charged as being the principal perpetrators of the murder; but this the Indians denied. The general, however, sent a warrant to Major Gladwin for the trial of the murderers; and by this letter it appears that the man has made his escape, but that the woman, being found guilty, has suffered according to her crime. With regard to the jurisdiction of the local commandant, and the division of power between him and the resident governor, Thomas Smith testified before the Commissioners of Claims, on July 14, 182, as follows: 1171] I 72 JUSTICE IN THE OLDEN TIME. 172 JUSTICE IN THE OLDEN TIME.~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~. All military commandants were civil officers ex officia, whether so commissioned or not, and they decided questions of property, and put litigants into the guard-house who disobeyed their decisions; there were civil magistrates, who acted under, and in all matters of importance consulted, the commandant. The commandant was considered the chief magistrate, and acted often witlh.ut consulting any other magistrate. If any debtorattempted to remove from the country, and the creditor made complaint thereof, the commandant refused permission to such debtor to depart until the creditor was satisfied, and the debtor was accordingly detained until the decision of the commandantwas complied with. The will of the commandant, in whom it is presumed confidence was always placed by the British Government, was submitted to, and was certainly the then law of the land, whether it be called civil or military law, or whether that will related to civil or military matters. Alexis Maisonville, on the opposite side of the river, was one instance, where the commandant sent a party and removed him, upon complaint made to such commandant by the Indians that said Maisonville had settled upon certain lands by them claimed, without the permission of such Indians. John Askin made complaint to the then commanding officer that a certain person, whose name witness does not recollect, but who was a Frenchman, had settled upon certain lands at the grand-marais claimed by said Askin, on the Detroit side of the river; and that the commandant sent men, and that the Frenchman was removed was notorious. This witness does not know that Governor Hamilton was commissioned by the King of Great Britain, asgovernor resident at Detroit, but believed that he was so commissioned, but witness knows that his authority was disputed by the then commanding officer, Captain Montpasant as witness thinks, and consequently decisions of civil matters were made by Governor Hamilton, but his authority was never recognized by Captain Montpasant, who considered this as his exclusive prerogative.1 The manuscripts of Sir William Johnson show that in I767 there was much trouble and conflict of authority between the commandant and the commissioner of trade, each of these officers claiming the right to settle disputes between the traders. Under both French and English rule, the notarial office was one of great importance, as it practically combined the duties of court clerk and register of deeds. The notary kept copies of all papers witnessed by or before him, registered marriage contracts, and was connected with every transaction in business and in social life. Among the notaries acting between 1734 and 1760, or later, were Robert Navarre, Simon Sanjuinet, Baptiste Campau, and G. Monforton. About 1760 the name of Philip Dejean begins to be of frequent occurrence in old records of every sort. He was appointed justice of the peace April 24, 1767, and on the 20th of July following, Robert Bayard, major commanding, appointed him second judge of a temporary court of justice, to be held every month to decide all actions of debts, bonds, bills, contracts, and trespasses involving large amounts. It would seem that Dejean's doings did not meet the approval of all the citizens, as a committee of investigation, consisting of ten persons, was appointed by Commandant George Turnbull. On May 21, 1768, they reported themselves as of opinion, 1 See chapter on Revolutionary War. First, that the fees established by the committee appointed by Major Robert Bayard, on the establishment of the Court of Justice at Detroit, are just and reasonable, and ought not to be less. Second, that every prisoner confined in the guard-house, whether for debt or misdemeanor, shall on being set at liberty pay one dollar, and every bateau or canoe arriving here, loaded with merchandise belonging to any person or persons not possessing in property any lot or building within this fort, shall pay two dollars; the moneysaccruing from thence to be applied, as in the time of the French government, to keep in good and sufficient repair the fortifications around this town. Third, no person having appeared before us, to make any complaints against said Philip Dejean, with respect to his public office, we are of opinion that they were ill-founded and without cause. Signed, JAMES STERLING, COLONEL. ANDREWS, T. WI.LLIAMS, WILLIAM EDGAR, JOHN ROBISON, EUSTACHE GAMEIIN, P. ST. COSME, I. CABACIE, T. MotrRzA, A. BARTHE. Dejean's character being thus approved, he was further honored, on June 14 following, by being newly appointed notary, with power to examine by oath and evidence, but could give no final award except by joint request. Matters settled by arbitration were to be approved by the commandant. The records of St. Anne's Church show that Pierre St. Cosme was acting as a justice of the peace on September 15, 1762; and Philip Le Grand is named as a justice on March 18, I764. Under the Quebec Act of 1774, the criminal law of England was introduced as a guide in the administration of justice; but as the same Act abolished all courts of justice in the province, after the first of May, 1775, and as the laws of England were but imperfectly understood, and much discretion was allowed to or assumed by the governor and commandant, many enormities were perpetrated under the semblance of law. When Henry Hamilton was appointed lieutenantgovernor, a judge, assessor, and sheriff, were also to be commissioned, and to be paid one hundred and fifty pounds per year each. The judge was not immediately named, and on February 2, 1777, Governor Carleton wrote to Hamilton saying: As nothing better could be done at the time, you were included as commissioner of the peace for the province at large; and in that capacity you have a right to issue your warrants, for apprehending, and sending down (to Montreal) any persons guilty of criminal offences in the district, at least, such as are of consequence enough to deserve taking that journey; but these orders must be signed by you, and not by Mr. Dejean, whose authority is unknown here. Subsequently a Mr. Owen was appointed as judge at Detroit, but he died, and in a letter dated April 26, 1778, Hamilton says his loss "must be doubly felt, while I am obliged to act as judge, and in several cases executor of justice. There is no executioner or gaoler, nor is a gaol yet built, though greatly needed." In another letter, dated August 17, I778, he says: " Our law proceedings here are as vague, and perhaps irregular as can be, but our situation must excuse and account for it." About this time he sent a man named Gardener (believed JUSTICE IN THE OLDEN TIME. I73 to have murdered his wife), and also witnesses, to Montreal for trial. Turning back two years, we find that soon after he arrived at Detroit, John Coutincinau and Ann WVyley-the first a former servant, and the woman previously a slave of Abbott and Finchley —were accused of stealing about $50 in furs and money from their late employers. They were arrested on June 26, 1776, tried, convicted, and on March 26, 1777, at twelve o'clock, were hanged on the public common. The following letter, contained in Volume VI. of Almon's Remembrancer, published at London, and written by John Dodge, of Detroit, gives interesting details concerning Hamilton's doings in the Coutincinau and other trials: QUEBEC, Sept. 21, i777. SIR: Yesterday his Excellency Sir Guy was pleased to sign my pass, a few hours before he set out for Montreal, notwithstanding any opposition that might have been made by our Detroit new lieutenant-governor, Hamilton, who, you know, is now in town here. From what you have heard of his cruel and tyrannical disposition, you must be well convinced how unhappy we are under his government; you know what severity he used against me unjustly, how he has treated Mr. Bentley, and confessed to him in presence of several witnesses that he knew very well his proceedings against him were illegal, but that he was above the law, and added, " You may sue me if you please, but you'll get nothing. Government is obliged to support me in what I do." A very fine confession for a lieutenant-governor set over a free people! You know how he wanted to hurt Mr. Isaac Williams, and the cool manner in which he treated Mr. Jonas Schindler, silversmith, whom, after being honorably acquitted by a very respectable jury, he ordered to be drummed out of the town. Captain Lord of the Eighteenth Regiment, late commandant of the Illinois, and at that time commanding the garrison at Detroit, silenced the drum when it entered into the citadel, in order to pass out at the west gate with the prisoner, and said Lieutenant-Governor Hamilton might exercise what acts of cruelty and oppression he pleased in the town, but that he would suffer none in the citadel, and would take care to make such proceedings known to some of the first men in England. All these things are cruel, but nothing like hanging men. Lieutenant-Governor Hamilton, to whom a commission as justice of the peace was sent tip only two or three months ago, which is the first that ever was given by proper authority to any one in Detroit, took upon him in the fall of 1775 to nominate and appoint a certain Philip Dejean (who ran away from home some years ago and fled to Detroit to screen himself from his creditors) to act as judge on the trial of Joseph Hecker (formerly a furrier in this town) for having killed his brother-in-law, Monsieur Moran, in a quarrel. Judge Dejean passed sentence of death upon him, which was approved of by Governor Hamilton, and put in execution a few days after, under a guard of soldiers who surrounded the gallows whilst he was hanged. In the spring of 1777 they condemned and hanged also John Coutincinau, a Canadian, for having stolen some money, etc., from his master, and having been concerned with a negro wench in attempting to set fire to his master's house. You'll readily allow that these criminals deserve death, but how dared iieutenant-Governor Hamilton, and an infamous judge of his own making, take upon them to try them and execute them without authority? I mentioned all the above circumstances to Judge Lewis, and to Mr. Monk, the attorney-general. They were very much surprised at such rash and unwarranted proceedings, and said Lieutenant-Governor Hamilton and his Judge Philip Dejean were both liable to be prosecuted for murder. I beg you may make these things known in England, that we may be freed from usurpation, tyranny and oppression. The proceedings of the Council of Virginia, under date of June i8, 1779, give details as to the cases of Mr. Dodge and others. In speaking of Governor Hamilton the record says: They find that his treatment of our citizens and soldiers, taken and carried within the limits of his command, has been cruel and inhuman; that in the case of John Dodge, a citizen of these states, which has been particularly stated to this board, he loaded him with irons, threw him into a dungeon, without bedding, without straw, without fire, in the dead of winter and severe climate of Detroit; that in that state, he wasted him with incessant expectations of death; that when the rigors of his situation had brought him so low that death seemed likely to withdraw him from their power, he was taken out, and somewhat attended to until a little mended, and before he had recovered ability to walk, was again returned to his dungeon, in which a hole was cut, seven inches square only, for the admission of air, and the same load of irons again put on him; that appearing a second time in imminent danger of being lost to them, he was again taken from his dungeon, in which he had lain from January to June, with the intermission of a few weeks only before mentioned. It will be remembered that these records were made after the capture of Governor Hamilton, Philip Dejean, and others at Vincennes, and while they were confined in Virginia. The document continues: It appears that the prisoner Dejean was on all occasions the willing and cordial instrument of Governor Hamilton, acting both as judge and keeper of the jails, and instigating and urging him, by malicious insinuations and untruths, to increase rather than to relax his severities, heightening the cruelty of his orders by his manner of executing them; offering at one time a reward to one man to be hangman for another, threatening his life on refusal; and taking from his prisoners the little property their opportunities enabled them to acquire. AIr. Dodge was eventually sent down and confined in jail at Quebec. He escaped from there on October 9, 1778, and on July 13, 1779, wrote from Pittsburgh to " Philip Boyle, merchant at St. Duski" (Sandusky), as follows: It is with pleasure that I inform you that I have made my escape from Quebec. I have the honor of wearing the Captain's commission, and the managing Indian affairs. You may depend on seeing me there this fall with a good army. Fisher and Graverat are here, and desire to be remembered to their brothers, and bid them to be of good cheer. There has been a battle at Carolina -the English are entirely defeated; seven hundred lay dead on the ground, the rest are prisoners, with all their cannon and baggage. I enclose to you the proceedings of a Council. I am going to Williamsburgh in a few days to prosecute Hamilton, and that rascal Dejean, Lamothe likewise. Hominey, hey? they will all be hanged without redemption, and the Lord have mercy on their souls. My compliments to all the good Whigs of Detroit. Money plenty, fine times for the sons of liberty. I am jtst now drinking your health with a good glass of Madeira. God bless you all, and we will soon relieve yot from those tyrants. Returning to Governor Hamilton, we find that notwithstanding the outrageous character of his proceedings, Governor Haldimand rather justified and excused him, especially in the Coutincinau case; but the grand jury for the district of Montreal did not, and on Monday, September 17, 1778, they indicted Governor Hamilton for allowing Dejean to perpetrate such enormities. They said that in December, 1775, Dejean illegally acted as judge, and caused one Hecker to be apprehended for the I74 UNITED STATES CIRCUIT COURT... murder of one Chas. Moran, sentenced him to death, and carried the sentence into execution; and that on or about March, 1776, he arrested John Coutincinau and Nancy, a negro woman, charged with attempting to burn a dwelling belonging to Abbott & Finchley, and also with having stolen money and peltries; that he sentenced Coutincinau to death, and that on or about July, 1776, he was hanged; that Nancy remained in prison a time, and was pardoned on condition that she serve as executioner, which she did, and that then Dejean hanged her also, and that without law or authority. He also fined for offences. An action was also brought against Dejean, and on December 4, 1778, Governor Hamilton wrote to Haldimand, saying: A letter from Mr. Gary, the deputy sheriff at Montreal, acquaints me that some legal process has been commenced against Mr. Dejean, for acting under my direction in regard to criminal matters. I beg leave to recommend him to your Excellency's protection, as a man who has created enemies by doing his duty. * * * I hope I shall alone be responsible for any malversation of his, as he has only acted by my orders. * * * Should any complaint against myself be lodged judicially, T am perfectly at ease, persuaded your Excellency will allow me to vindicate my conduct, without encountering the chicano of the law. In March, 1778, Thomas Williams, father of General John R. Williams, was acting as justice of the peace. In July, I784, he declined to act longer, and induced Mr. Monforton to attend to the business in his stead. His commission, issued by Sir Frederick Haldimand, Governor-General of Canada, in 1779, is in the possession of his grandson, J. C. ). Williams of this city. An immense wax seal, half an inch thick and four and a half inches in diameter, bearing many devices, is attached to the document. Thomas Smith served as commissioner of peace in 1778. In 1779 the commandant suggested the establishment of a Court of Trustees, with jurisdiction extending to ten pounds. Eighteen of the merchants then entered into a bond that three of them, in rotation, would hold a weekly court, and that they would defend any appeals which might be taken to the courts at Montreal. This court lasted about eighteen months, and then, as legal objections were made to it, the court was abolished. This pleased the careless, but was unsatisfactory to merchants, and on March 28, 1781, they petitioned De Peyster for relief "to enable them to collect of those who were able but unwilling to pay their debts." De Peyster was at a loss to know what to do, and on April 3, 1781, he wrote to General Haldimand, saying, " Formerly summons were issued by the justice and decisions given, but since we have learned that they have no such powers, that mode has ceased." The establishment of regular courts dates from July 24, 1788, when several districts were created by the Canadian council. Detroit was embraced in the District of Hesse, and William Dunmore Powell was the first judge. In 1789 Courts of Common Pleas were provided for, with jurisdiction without appeal, except to the governors and council. The wealthier citizens were made judges, and they banished, whipped, and imprisoned at pleasure. In December, I788, a session of the court was held at Detroit, by Louis Beaufait, senior justice, with James May, Charles Girardin, Patrick McNiff, and Nathaniel Williams as associate justices. There was, however, a great lack of proper courts, and much uncertainty about their action, almost up to the surrender of the post. On April 30, 1792, Major Smith of the Fifth Regiment, then in command at Detroit, said, "It is strange that a man, for petty misdemeanors, shall be confined, and his property sold and confiscated for debt, when another shall commit the crime of murder, rape, and robbing with impunity." On October 15, 1792, the name of the district was changed from Hesse to Western District, and in 1794 a court was provided for, to be held in Detroit. The law was repealed on June 3, 1796, as it seemed no longer expedient to hold sessions in Detroit. Under the English Government, Courts of General (uarter Sessions were also held, the last one on January 29, 1796. UNITED STATES CIRCUIT COURT. The first Circuit United States Court for the State. of Michigan was provided for by Act of July t, 1836, the court to be held the third Monday in June and first Monday in November. By Act of March 3, 1837, the States of Ohio, Illinois, Indiana, and Michigan were made the seventh circuit, and the time of United States Circuit Court sessions fixed for the fourth Monday of June. By Act of March 10, 1'838, the sessions were changed to the third Monday in June and the first Monday of November. By law of March 31, 1839, the fall session was to begin on the second Monday of October. On July 14, 1862, it was provided that an additional session should be held, beginning the second Monday of February in each year. By Act of July 15, I862, a new division of circuits was made, and Michigan, Wisconsin, and Illinois were made the'eighth circuit. On January 28, 1863, the circuits were again re-arranged, Ohio and Michigan being made the seventh circuit. The terms of court, by Act of February 21, I863, were to begin on the first Tuesdays of June, November, and March. By law of July 23, 1866, the present sixth circuit, embracing the States of Ohio, Michigan, Kentucky, and Tennessee, was created. The court is a court of appeal from the Iistrict Court. In general, its power may be thus defined: it may hear, and try originally, all cases coming under United States Law, except admiralty cases. UNITED STATES DISTRICT COURT.-UNITED STATES OFFICERS. 175 v It has also jurisdiction in cases between citizens of different States, and between citizens and aliens, in cases either of law or equity, involving amounts of more than five hundred dollars. The salary of the circuit judge is $6,00o. He is nominated by the President and confirmed by the Senate, the term being for life. The first sessions of the United States courts in the State of Michigan were held in the Williams Building, on the southeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Bates Street. In 1839 sessions were held in the City Hall, the United States paying $500 a year rent to the city. In I840 the courts were moved back to the Williams Building. On June 19, 1843, sessions began to be held in the building purchased by the Government in I842, located on the southwest corner of Griswold Street and Jefferson Avenue. The building was sold, October 4, 1855, to the Michigan Insurance Company Bank, and the court was soon after moved to Young Men's Hall, on the north side of Jefferson Avenue, midway between Bates and Randolph Streets. The sessions were held there until the completion of the Government Building on the northwest corner of Griswold and Lamed Streets, after which the courts were held in the upper story of that building. The circuit judges of the United States, for Michigan, have been as follows: 1836-1862, J. Mclean; 1862-1870, N. H-. Swavne; 1870-1878, H. H. Emmons; 1878-1886, J. Baxter; 1886-, HowellE. Jackson. The clerks of the United States Circuit Court have been as follows: 1837 to June, 1857, John Winder; June, 1857 to April 15, 1870, W. D. Wilkins; April 15, 1870 to June 6, 1882, Addison Mandell; June 6, 1882-, Walter S. Harsha. UNITED STATES DISTRICT COURT. By Act of February 13, 801o, provision was made for the holding of the first United States Court for this region, which was then in the District of Ohio; sessions of the court were to begin in Cincinnati on the loth of June and December, except when the loth fell upon Sunday, when sessions were to begin on the following day. There is no evidence that this law ever took effect, and the necessity for it is not apparent, as the judges of the Northwest, Indiana, and Michigan Territories were all of them direct appointees of the President, and endowed with power to try offences against United States law. In fact, the Supreme Court of the Territory took the place of a United States Circuit Court, and their District Courts were also District Courts of the United States. United States District Courts for the State of Michigan, first provided for by Act of July I, 1836, were to be held on the first Mondays of May and October. The sessions of both Circuit and District United States Courts, for the entire State, were at first held only in Detroit. By Act of February 24, 1863, the State was divided into two judicial districts. The court held at Detroit is now known as the District Court for the Eastern District of Michigan. Sessions are held on the first Tuesdays of March, June, and November; and for admiralty cases on the first Tuesday of each month. The District Court has jurisdiction in all cases of infraction of United States law, and in admiralty cases, or cases arising in connection with trade or travel on the rivers and lakes. The jurors for both Circuit and District United States Courts were formerly selected by the clerk and marshal; by law of June 30, 1879, a commissioner, who in politics must be opposed to the clerk, is appointed by the presiding judge to assist the clerk in the selection of names. On the second Monday of November of each year they select the names of not less than two hundred persons from different counties in the district; these names are placed in a box, and at least twenty days before court term begins, the clerk and marshal draw out, in the presence of the district attorney, twenty-three names as grand jurors, and twentyfour as traverse jurors. The jurors are paid two dollars per day. Judges of the District Court are appointed by the Senate on nomination of the President. The term is for life, and the salary is $3,500 per year. The district judges of the Uiited States at Detroit have been, I836-1870, Ross Wilkins; 1870 -1875, John W. Longyear; 1875-, Henry B. Brown. The clerks of both Circuit and District Courts are appointed with the concurrence of both judges and hold office at their pleasure. The clerks are paid by fees appertaining to the office. For services and clerk hire they are allowed to retain fees to the amount of $3,500 per year. The clerks of the United States District Court have been as follows; 1837 to October, I848, John Winder; October, I848, to June, 1857, W. D. Wilkins; June, 1857, to April 15, 1870, John Winder; April I5, 1870, to, D. J. Davison. Deputy Clerk, John Graves. UNITED STATES OFFICERS. Attorney. This office, directly connected with the administration of justice in the United States Courts, was provided for by Act of September 24, 1789. It is the duty of the attorney to prosecute all offences against the Government, its property or laws; to attend to the collection of all debts due to the Government, or of the forfeited bonds of any 176 UNITED STATES OFFICERS. I7 NTDSAE FIES government officer. The appointment is made by the Senate on nomination of the President. The term of office is indefinite. The salary is $200 and fees not exceeding $6,00o. The office in I880 was worth about $4,000 per annum. The salary of the assistant attorney is $2,000, and for many years J. W. Finney has filled that position. The following persons have been United States attorneys for the years named: I8o8-I8II, H. H. Hickman; I81-1814, E. Brush; I814, Chas. Lamed; I815-I823, Solomon Sibley; 1823-1824, James D. Doty; 1824-1827, Andrew G. Whitney; 1827-I834, Daniel Le'Roy; 1834-I841, Daniel Goodwin; 1842-1845, George C. Bates; 1845-1850, John Norvell; I850-I852, George C. Bates; 1852, S. Barstow; I853-I857, George E. Hand; I857-I86I, Joseph Miller, Jr.; I86I, W. L. Stoughton; I862 -I869, Alfred Russell; I869-I877, Aaron B. Maynard; 1877-1885, S. M. Cutcheon; 1885-, C. P. Black. United States Marshal. This office was first created September 24, I789. It is the duty of the marshal to make arrests of all who offend against the United States or its laws, such as smugglers, counterfeiters, etc. In fact, the marshal is the high constable of the government of this district, and attends the sessions of the United States Courts to see that its rules and orders are obeyed. He is appointed by the President and Senate for terms of four years. The salary is $200 and all of the fees if the amount does not exceed $6,000. There are between twenty and thirty deputies, all appointed by the marshal, six of whom are located in Detroit. Their salaries are dependent on the fees received. The marshals for the Territory and State have been as follows: 1805, July 17 to August 6, Elisha Avery; I805, August 6 to November, 1806, James May; i806, November 6 to, Wm. McD. Scott; 1811 and 1812, John Anderson; 1812, F. Baby; (English rule.) 1814, J. H. Audrain; I815-I812, Thos. Rowland; 183I- 837, Peter Desnoyers; 1837-1841, Conrad Ten Eyck; 184I-I845, Joshua Howard; I845-I847, Levi S. Humphrey; I847 -1849, Austin E. Wing; 1849-1853, C. H. Knox; 1853-I857, George W. Rice; 1857-I858, R. W. Davis; 1858-1859, M. I. Thomas; I859-I861, John S. Bagg; I86i-I866, C. Dickey; i866, J. G. Parkhurst; I867 —1869, N. S. Andrews; 1869-1877, J. R. Bennett; I877-1886, Salmon S. Mathews; I886-, Galusha Pennell. Commissioners for United States Courts. This office was provided for as early as 1789, but no commissioners were appointed for Michigan prior to the admission of the State to the Union. The duties of the commissioners consist in hearing and taking such testimony as may be referred to them, for use in either the Circuit or the District Court, and when so taken, by order of the court, the testimony has all the force that it would have if given before the court itself. This is done to save the time of the judges. The parties to any case requiring testimony to be taken may elect the commissioner before whom they will have the testimony taken. The commissioners are appointed by the United States Circuit judge. The term is for life, and they are paid by the fees received. The following persons, residing in Detroit, were appointed commissioners on the dates named: February 17, I838,1 John Winder; November I, 1841, Alexander Davidson; December 8, 1841, Walter W. Dalton; March 2, 1842, John Norvell; March 20, I843, A. T. McReynolds; July 13, 1843, A. Ten Eyck; September 4, I843, E. P. Hastings; September 4, I843, E. Smith Lee; September 4, 1843, C. C. Jackson; September 4, i843,1 Addison Mandell; June 17, 1845, H. Chipman; June I6, I846, John B. Watson; June 29, 1847, Geo. G. Bull, James V. Campbell; June 28, I848, Levi B. Taft; June 25, I849, Henry R. Mizner; July 3, I850, S. G.Watson, Wm. D. Wilkins; January 2, I85I, George Jerome; June 20, I851, D. A. A. Ensworth; June 8, I852, S. D. Miller; November 30, I852, Geo. W. Morell; June 27, I853,1 Wm.Jennison; November 3, 1853, Jeremiah Van Rensselaer; October i6, 1861, Thos. S. Blackmar; August 4, 1862,1 John W. A. S. Cullen,l Ervin Palmer,' Theo. P. Hall; September I, 1862, Geo. P. Russell; May 5, I863,1 J. Elisha Winder; April 22, I870,1 1). J. Davison; March 27, 1873,' John Graves; June 28, 1877,1 Charles Flowers; February 25, i88i,1 H. Whittaker; March 21, 1882,1 E. C. Hinsdale: January i8, 1878,' J. M. Weiss; April i, i886,' Walter S. Harsha. Masters in Chancery. This office also dates from I789, and the first appointees for Michigan were made when the State was admitted to the Union. Masters in chancery occupy the same relation to the United States Courts that similar officials do to State courts. They are appointed by the circuit and district judges, and are paid by fees which they receive. The-names of appointees, and date of appointment of each, are as follows: February 27, I839,1 G. E. Hand; December 12, I839, C. C. Jackson: December 7, 1840, J. L. Talbot, C. Collins, Alexander Davidson; June 21, 1841, W. W. Dalton; October 15, 1841, George G. Bull; October 22, 1842, J. Van Rensselaer, James B. Watson; October 9, 1843, E. Smith Lee, A. T. McRey1 Still in office. BANKRUPTCY COURT. I77 nolds, John Norvell; October 12, I843,1 Addison Mandell; June 17, I845, G. T. Sheldon; June I6, 1846, John B. Watson; June 29, I847, James V. Campbell; June I9, 1851, Levi Bishop; June 20, I85I, D. A. A. Ensworth; June 27, 1853,' Wnm. Jennison; June I8, 1857, Daniel Goodwin, Jr.; June 29, I859,1 John W. A. S. Cullen; July 21, I86o,' Darius J. Davison; June I6, I862, Thos S. Blackmar; June 17, I862,1 Geo. A. Wilcox; July I, I862,1 John J. Speed; June 7, i88o,l Henry M. Campbell. BANKRUPTCY COURT. This court was first provided for by Act of April 4, 18oo, which Act was repealed on Iecember 19, 1803. A second Bankruptcy Act was passed on August 19, 1841, to take effect February I following. On March 3, I842, it was repealed. Under Still in office. 12 both of these laws the United States district judge acted as register. The third Bankruptcy Act, which created the office of register in bankruptcy, was passed March 2, 1867, and amended July 27, i868. Under these last Acts H. K. Clarke was appointed register, June 9, I867, by the United States district judge, and held the office during the entire existence of the law. The compensation consisted entirely in the fees connected with the office, and out of these the register paid for the service of one regular clerk, and the occasional services of a stenographer and copyist. The duties consisted in hearing testimony and taking depositions as to ability of bankrupts to pay their debts, and on a satisfactory showing, to give them a legal discharge therefrom. The office and its duties were abolished by law of 1878. Imprisonment for debt existed as late as 1822, and on May 27 of that year a law was passed providing for the release of debtors upon the surrender of their property. CHAPTER XXXI. SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY ANI) THE STATE. THE ordinance of 1787, creating the Northwest Territory, provided for the appointment of a court, to consist of three judges, any two of whom were to form a court and have a common-law jurisdiction. Each judge was required to possess a freehold estate in the Territory of five hundred acres of land while in the exercise of his office. Their commissions were to continue during good behavior. The Governor and Judges, or a majority of them, were to adopt, and publish in the Territory, such laws of the original States, criminal and civil, as might be necessary and best suited to the circumstances of the people. These laws were to remain in force, unless disapproved by Congress, until the organization of the General Assembly. Sessions of the court were held four times a year in counties that seemed to require it most; the sessions were to begin on the first Monday in February, May, October, and December. The first session was held August 30, 1788. When Michigan came under American control, and became in fact a part of the Northwest Territory, a session of the Supreme Court was held each year in Detroit. A law of the Northwest Territory of January 23, 1802, appropriated eightyfive dollars to Arthur St. Clair, the governor, for organizing courts at Detroit. The court was attended by lawyers, some of whom came all the way from Cincinnati, among them Judge Burnet and Arthur St. Clair, Jr. The larger portion of the litigants, witnesses, and jurors were unable to speak or understand English, and in many cases all the proceedings were conducted in French, which was interpreted sentence by sentence. This made the proceedings very tiresome. During a session on June 4, I800, the birthday of Htis Majesty King George III. was being celebrated at Sandwich, and the judges and bar of the court, and officers of the garrison, with many of the principal citizens of Detroit, were invited to attend and participate in the festivities. The invitation was accepted, and about one hundred Americans went over. A spacious building, which had been erected for a warehouse, was so arranged that between four and five hundred persons could be seated at the table, which was richly and elaborately furnished, and abundantly supplied with everything that appetite or taste could suggest. Sessions of the court were held at the house of Mr. Dodemead, then located on the south side of Jefferson Avenue, near Shelby Street. The salary of the judges was $800 per year, and was paid by the United States. They were appointed by the President with the approval of the Senate. The followingwere appointed on the dates named: October I6, 1787, S. H. Parsons, J. Armstrong, J. M. Varnum; February 19, 1788, John Cleves Symmes in place of Armstrong, declined; August 20, 1789, Wm. Barton in place of Varnum, whose term expired; September I2, 1789, George Turner in place of Barton, declined; March 31, 1791, Rufus Putnam in place of Parsons, deceased; February I2, I798, R. J. Meigs in place of Turner, resigned; December 22, I796, Joseph Gilman in place of Putnam, made surveyor-general. The Christian name of Judge Meigs was Return Jonathan; the origin of this singular name was as follows: During their courtship his father and mother had a quarrel, and his father, who was then at the home of his sweetheart, left the house; she soon repented, and running to the door called out, "Return, Jonathan, return!" The obedient and fully pacified lover did return. They were happily married, and in memory of the incident their first child was named Return Jonathan Meigs. Supreme Court zuder Indiana Territory. Under the rule of Indiana Territory the Supreme Court was composed of Judges Wm. Clark, Henry Vanderburg, and John Griffin. On October'24, I804, a session of the Circuit Court, presided over by Judge Vanderburg, was held in Detroit. Supreme Court of AIichzgan Territory. Under law of Congress of January 11, I805, the Supreme Court for the Territory was organized on July 29. By Act of July 24, I805, regular sessions were to begin on the third Monday in September, the judge holding the commission of earliest date to be chief judge, and the other judges to have precedence according to the date of their commissions, unless they were of same date, when the age of the persons was to determine the question. The court had jurisdiction in all cases concerning the title to lands, and in all other cases where the sum in dispute L1781 SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE. I79 exceeded $200, also appellate jurisdiction in all cases. It also had exclusive jurisdiction in all capital criminal cases, and in proceedings for divorce. A further Act of February I8, I809, gave original and exclusive jurisdiction in all cases involving over $500, and in all capital criminal cases where the United States was a party, with appellate jurisdiction in cases from the several district courts. By Act of October 31, 1815, jurisdiction was given in cases where the amount involved exceeded $I,ooo. The three judges with the governor also constituted the Legislature of the Territory, and possessed within themselves almost entire control of affairs. They were commissioners for laying out the town of Detroit and disposing of the lots; and, by the apathy or consent of the citizens, they exercised authority in municipal matters as well, governing both town and Territory, and administering punishment at their pleasure. The old court records show that for a crime of some kind they ordered an Indian to be "burnt in the left hand," and the following bill for executing the order was presented and paid: Territory of Michigan to James May, May i, i806, for branding Wabouse, an Indian, agreeable to order of court, sixteen shillings. When notices of publication were ordered, they were sent to a Pittsburgh paper, that being the nearest place with which our citizens had intercourse where a paper was published. On its first session, in I805, the Supreme Court met at the old Cass House, then occupied by Judge May. In I8o6, it met at the house of John Dodemead. On September 20, I809, a session was held at the house of Gabriel Godfroy, Jr.; on the same day John Harvey appeared in court, and made an offer of a room in his house, without cost, for the accommodation of the court. In I814 the houses of Louis Moran and John Kinzie were made use of; sessions were also held at the chambers of the presiding judge. An article in The Gazette of October 25, 1825, says that the court sat "sometimes at midday and sometimes at midnight; sometimes in the council house and sometimes at the clerk' s office; sometimes at a tavern and sometimes on a woodpile." Realize this, imagine it, if you can. Yet there is no doubt of the facts as stated; they were matters of public notoriety. A memorial of the citizens, of January 3, 1823, presented to Congress, and printed in The Detroit Gazette, says: In September, 182o, the court frequently held its sessions from 2 P. Mh. till 12. i, and 3 o'clock in the morning of the next day; and cases were disposed of in the absence of both clients and counsel. During these night sittings, suppers of meat and bottles of whiskey were brought into court, and a noisy and merry banquet was partaken at the bar by some, while others were addressing the court in solemn argument, and others presenting to the judges on the bench, meat, bread, and whiskey, and inviting tlhcin to partake. At the opening of the session of the Supreme Court, on September 13, I820, only Judges Woodward and Witherell were present, Judge Griffin being absent from the Territory. Business went on as usual, until October 9, when Judge Woodward absented himself. Judge Witherell then adjourned the court till the first Monday of December. A day or two after Judge Griffin arrived, and on October 13 a special session of the court was opened at Whipple's Tavern by Judges Woodward and Griffin, even the sheriff being unaware of it until he accidentally happened in. The court then adjourned till October I6, at the council house, where Judges Woodward and Griffin met, and rescinded the order of adjournment made by Judge Witherell, and on the refusal of those present to do business at such a session of the court, it was adjourned till October 21, and on that day a rule was entered on the records that a regular session should be held annually on the second Thursday of August; the court then adjourned until that day, entirely disregarding the day in December, to which the court had been adjourned by Judge Witherell. On December 4 he opened the court alone, and, although both of the other judges were in the Territory, Judge Witherell was compelled, by reason of their absence, to adjourn the court sin;e die. On March 30, 1821, Judges Woodward and Griffin came together, rescinded their adjourning order of October 2r, and then adjourned again; and so the farce went on. The memorial of 1823 states that during a session of four months the court held its sittings at night, instead of in the daytime, and at private offices, without giving knowledge of its whereabouts to the people. At these night sittings rules of the court were adopted, and proceedings had which violated common law. On one occasion a law was made at a night sitting altering an Act of Congress. "A single judge has been known to open and immediately adjourn the court, \ithout the attendance of either clerk, sheriff, constable, or crier; and without the records, or even pen, ink, or paper; and that; when causes were before the court for argument, leaving the suitors and officers of the court and the other judges to find out, if they can, when and where it will please the court to open itself again. When a statute happened to be really adopted from the laws of one of the States, the judges, who constituted three out of the four persons who adopted the law, declared from the bench that they would not be bound by the constructions and decisions of the State from which the law was taken." Their own decisions, in similar cases, were so discordant that they furnished no guide from which to conjecture what their decisions might be on the same points in the future; and it was even declared by i8o SUP'REME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE.. _ _........ them that their own decisions should not be obligatory as precedents. Many cases were decided as whim or convenience dictated; favoritism was often grossly manifest; and court rules were made for the benefit of particular and special cases,-notoriously so in the case of Sibley is. Taylor, in 18I9 and 1820. After neglecting their duties as judges, they would meet as legislators, and pass a law to remedy the defects of their carelessness or indifference. Prisoners, on giving a note for the amount of their fines, were released from custody. Of necessity, great irregularities resulted from their actions, and the highest territorial judicial tribunal was brought into contempt. During all these years there was no remedy in law against the decisions of the judges. The people had no right of appeal to the Supreme Court of the United States, and Congress did not interfere, and seemingly was determined not to remedy the evil. From 18 8 to 1836 the Territory now known as the State of Wisconsin was a part of Michigan, and the territorial court of Detroit had jurisdiction over that region as well. Criminals were conveyed here for trial; and the plenary power which the judges exercised was a great convenience in trying cases, if not in administering justice. In some reminiscences (riven by Judge B. F. H. Witherell, in Gibbs's fourth volume of Michigan Reports, he says: If any law was found to work badly, the governor, or one of the judges, notified the others, the Iegislature assembled, and the law was repealed or amended. On one occasion, I recollect, two Indians were arrested on a charge of murder near Green Bay, and brought for trial to l)etroit.1 W hen the Supreme Court assembled, it was found that the law relating to grand jurors was defective. The court adjourned, the Legislature assembled, the law was amended, and the prisoners were tried, convicted and executed. A reference to Volume 1. of Territorial Laws, pages 234 and 235, shows that the law referred to, "An Act establishing Forms of Oaths," was passed September 17, i82i, XWm. Woodbridge, secretary of the Territory, being then acting governor, and A. B. Woodward and John Griffin judges. The Detroit Gazette of November I, 1822, says that the law in question was passed in the evening, the grand jury having been called in the morning of the same day. A record of the proceedings of the court, contained in the same paper, shows that there was much discussion among the judges as to the form of oath to be administered to the grand jury, and they finally settled the matter by passing the law referred to. The statute in question is thus shown to be a genuine and unmistakable ex post I They arrived in Detroit on the Superior, on Friday, August 3, 182T facto law, applied even in a trial where two human lives were involved. It is doubtful if the annals of any other region in the United States afford such a record. The case on trial was that of Ketaukah and Kewaubis, who were executed December 27, 182I, the former for the murder of Dr. Wm. S. Madison, the latter for the murder of Charles Ulrich. Concerning the trial of these Indians, C. C. Trowbridge told the following incident: J. D. Doty had been assigned as counsel for one of them, and B. F. H. Witherell for the other. In company with Colonel Louis Beaufait, as interpreter, they went to see their Indian clients, and learn the facts in the case. Witherell soon finished the interview with his client, and they all repaired to the cell of the Indian who murdered Madison. Mr. Doty asked him how it happened that he shot the surgeon. The honest savage replied, "I saw him going along, and I thought I would like to shoot him, and I did." "But," said Doty, "was there not some accident? Were you not shooting at something else?" After some time the prisoner seemed to comprehend the drift of the inquiry, and replied, " Oh, yes, I was shooting at a little bird." The young advocate then took courage. "Ah," said he, " this is clearly a case of no malice aforethought. Now, tell me, how far was this little bird from Madison's head?" The savage held up one finger, and with the digit of the other hand measured the distance of an inch, saying, " So far." Of course, Mr. I)oty saw clearly that, on such a showing, he could not help the Indian's case, The defence was therefore only nominal, and the sentence of execution speedy. During their confinement in the old jail, on the site of the present Public Library, the prisoners contrived a sort of drum by drawing a piece of leather over the vessel containing their drink. Aided by this instrument, the night previous to their execution they danced their death-dance, renewing it again in the morning. From the jail they were taken to the Protestant Church, where an appropriate discourse was delivered by Mr. J. S. Hudson. They were then taken to the gallows. The First Regiment of the territorial militia were under arms on the occasion, and a guard of United States troops attended the execution. The spectators were very numerous. These were the first persons hanged in Michigan after its cession to the United States. The cost of their execution is indicated in an appropriation bill of January 2, 1822, which gave $176.55 to E. Wing for services in Supreme Court, " and for executing a certain Indian," and "$33.88 to Thomas Rowland for erecting a gallows for the execution of a certain Indian." Some writers have stated that one of these Indians committed suicide the night before he was to be hanged, and that but one wias really SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE. I81. executed. The Gazette of December 28, I821, says that both were hanged. The statement that one committed suicide probably originated from the fact that, five years after the execution of the two Indians referred to, two other Indians, Kiskauko and his son, the Big Beaver, were in jail, awaiting trial for the murder of an Indian in Detroit. While in jail, Kiskauko was visited by some of his tribe, one of whom gave him poison, and on May 17, 1826, he was found dead in his cell. On October 6 following his son escaped. Kiskauko had always been troublesome, and even his own tribe hardly regretted his death. The following story, told by Mr. Schoolcraft, may account for this: In the winter of I823-I824 a Chippewa Indian, living at Saginaw, was killed by another of the same tribe, and, agreeably to custom, the relatives of the deceased met those of the slayer, for the purpose of compounding the affair, either by presents or by putting the slayer to death. At the council it was finally determined to accept a certain amount in presents as indemnity. Both parties were now on the point of smoking the pipe of peace,'when to the astonishment of all, Kiskauko, the Saginaw chief, stepped up, and with a single blow of his tomahawk struck the murderer dead. On being asked why he thus interfered with the operation of their old law, he coolly said, " The law is now altered." Verily, he had imbibed the same spirit that ruled the Territory in those days. The last instance of capital punishment in Michigan was on September 24, 1830, when a man named Simmons was executed for the murder of his wife. This execution, also, took place near the old jail, and was managed by Ben Woodworth. It was the first and only time, under American rule, that a white man was hanged in the territory included in Michigan. The occasion attracted a large crowd, seats were erected for spectators, and music furnished by the military band. Entertainments were scarce in those days, and both people and officials made the most of any and every " occasion." [Capital punishment was abolished in Michigan by Revised Statutes of I846.] Much of the unwise and ill-considered doings of the judges was directly chargeable to the freaks of Judge Woodward. The early history of the courts could hardly be understood without something more than a passing allusion to that eccentric genius. There was but one such man in all the United States, and for nearly twenty years he was a central figure at Detroit. He was a bachelor, a Virginian, from the District of Columbia, and his old manuscripts and letters prove that he was really learned and accomplished. In conversation he is known to have been entertaining and agreeable. In the full sense of the word he was a "character," that only a Dickens could properly portray. With some good qualities, there were peculiarities of manner so marked, and slovenliness so extreme, as to almost defy description. Whatever was odd and unreasonable, he was sure to do. If there was a thunderstorm, his chair was placed outside the door, and he would calmly sit and take his shower-bath. His room, which was both office and sleeping apartment, was destitute of a bookcase, and many valuable papers lay in a heap in one corner, and clothing for the wash in another. Sweeping was never done, lest his boolls should be deranged, and they were where he left them, some on the floor, some on chairs, and some on the table. A gentleman who was a passenger with the judge on the Walk-in-the-water in the spring of I82I, on a trip from Detroit to Green Bay, relates this anecdote: " The steamer was lying at her little wooden pier at the foot of Bates Street, and a goodly number of citizens were on board, to take leave of their friends who were passengers. Among those present was Judge Woodward. Just as the steamer was about to cast off her lines, a young gentleman, who had been hurriedly dispatched to the judge's quarters, appeared on board, with a clean shirt folded in a red bandanna handkerchief, which he gave to the judge, who announced that he also was a passenger. As the steamer entered the harbor of Mackinaw, where she remained a day, be went below, and soon reappeared arrayed in clean linen. \When the boat left for Green Bay, the clean garment was removed, and a soiled one took its place. On arriving at Green Bay, a change was again made. The narrator did not return to Detroit in the steamer, but the captain afterwards told him that the judge pursued the same careful course on the return, contriving, with the one clean shirt, to make himself, as he thought, presentable when in port." The judge was very tall, with sallow complexion, and usually appeared in court in a loose, long overcoat, or a swallow-tailed blue coat with brass buttons, a red cravat, and buff vest, which was always open, and from which protruded an immense mass of ruffles. These last, together with the broad ruffles at his wrists, were invariably so soiled that it might almost be doubted whether they had ever been white. His pantaloons hung in folds to his feet, meeting a pair of boots which were always well greased. His hair received his special attention, and on court days, particularly, gave evidence of the best efforts of the one tonsorial artist of the town. On one occasion, not being able to find a barber capable of cutting his hair in the improved fashion, he sought advice from a member of the bar, who referred him to Austin E. Wing, whose aid he sought, bringing with him a pair of shears. His request was complied with, and his hair trimmed so close that he was compelled to wear a cap for weeks afterward. He was never known to be wholly under the influence of liquor, but even while sitting on the bench he customarily kept a glass of brandy beside SUPREME COURTS OF' THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE. him; and night after night, for months together, he would sit in Mack & Conant's store, and alternately smoke his pipe and sip raw whiskey until his regular half-pint was taken. He was extremely fond of the society of ladies, and on one occasion, calling at General Macomb's just after tea, he was invited to the table. He at first declined, but eventually took the offered seat, and drank sixteen cups of tea before he rose. Upon another occasion he invited several of the first ladies of the town to a little party at his hotel. As chief justice of the Territory, his invitation was of course accepted, and when the refreshments were served, each lady was provided with a plate holding one almond, one raisin, one small piece of candy and one of cake. During a part of his stay in Detroit he kept bachelor's hall, with a man for cook and housekeeper. It was thought at one time that he intended to marry, as he paid some attention, in his odd way, to a lady in the city. He had a fine coach and horses, which, when it vas his pleasure to drive with her, he sent to the lady's door, ordering his coachman to await his coming there. This was intended as a notice to the lady to be in readiness to receive him. After a while the lady concluded to take no more drives with him. The last time his coach stood its hour at her door she declined to go, and he returned home on foot, giving orders to put up the horses. This was the judge's only attempt at courtship while he remained in the Territory. With all his eccentricity, he would often manifest the most painstaking research, and endeavor to please his friends and gratify the public; but what he would do, or leave undone, could never be foretold. He was frequently in trouble with the people. Once, while upon the bench, he said that the French spent more time at church than was consistent with prosperity. This speech naturally induced great excitement, and he was compelled to apologize. Most of his writings are extremely verbose and full of literary egotism; yet when it was his pleasure so to do, no one could write with greater modesty and directness. Allusions to his personal habits and private life would perhaps be unjustifiable if his public doings had been without reproach; but it was of these last that the people specially complained. His conduct was protested against in petitions to the President and Congress. On May 4, I812, the Speaker of the House of Representatives at Washington laid before the House a presentment of the grand jury at Detroit, with other papers pertaining thereto, complaining of the non-execution of a law of the United States, applicable to the Territory, and of the enactment of laws injurious to the interests of the Territory, and of misconduct on the part of A. B. Woodward. Soon after this the post of Ietroit was surrendered, and during the period of British occupation in I812 and 1813, Judge Woodward, by appointment from Colonel Proctor, acted as chief justice, and held court under British rule. This gave further cause for dissatisfaction, and on November 24, 1812, in the House of Representatives, Mr. Poindexter offered the following: Resolvedl, that a committee be appointed to inquire into the expediency of repealing the Act entitled " An Act to divide the Indiana Territory into Two Separate Governments," passed the iith of January, 1805, and of providing more effectually for the government of Michigan Territory; and that the committee have leave to report thereon by bill or otherwise. Mr. Poindexter said "that the object he had in view, in moving this resolution, was to get rid of the salaries of the officers of that Territory. Since the surrender of I)etroit, their functions had ceased, yet they continued to receive their salaries, while one of them is a British prisoner, and another has accepted a commission under British authority. He wished to reorganize the government, and enable the proper authority to appoint other officers, and such as would, perhaps, administer the government of the Territory better than heretofore." No action was had on the resolution; possibly because it soon became evident that Judge Woodward endeavored to serve the inhabitants while acting as a British official. He protested vigorously, to Proctor, against some of his unjust doings, and is deserving of credit for his courage. These efforts, undoubtedly, secured his retention as judge after the close of the war. His conduct on the bench, however, did not improve, and for nearly a decade longer the people were outraged by his follies. In the fall of I822 many articles were published in the Gazette, detailing the farcical proceedings of the courts, conducted under his management as chief justice; and the articles undoubtedly represented the sentiments of a large majority of the people. In a communication signed "Z. Z.," published in the Gazette October 25, I822, the following language was used: "To attempt anything like a brief outline of their innumerable outrages upon justice and common sense would require a volume; and indeed, if it were even possible, policy would forbid it; as the very extent and enormity of the abuses detailed would throw an air of discredit on the narration, in the minds of those at a distance, to whom alone we can look for redress." A series of letters, contained in the Gazette of November, I822, and addressed to Judge Woodward, gives further indication of the spirit and speech of those times, and sets forth his characteristics in a manner that would now be deemed sensational. The writer quotes from the court records of June 28, I808, the following: SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE. I83 VWhereas. John Whipple, late of the district of Detroit, etc., late a captain in the army of the United States, Yeoman, on Saturday, the 25th day of June, i808, in the afternoon, at the District of Detroit, aforesaid, did stop the undersigned, one of the judges in and over the Territory of Michigan, and say to him, the said judge, that he, the said John Whipple, was present when an action depending in the Supreme Court of said Territory, between James Peltier and James and Francis Lasalle was continued, and that he, the said John Whipple, was of opinion that the said action ought to have been then tried; that he, the said judge, was prejudiced against his, the said John Whipple's relations, and was partial to the said Messieurs Lasalles; that the said Messieurs Lasalles were the worst rascals in the country, and that he, the said judge, was a rascal, with other violent language, and gestures; these are, therefore, to command you to take the said John Whipple, etc. The article then says: This warrant was made returnable before yourself. On this warrant, Whipple was brought before you, and after hearing the case, you gave the following opinion: " On the present occasion I am of the opinion that John Whipple be bound to his good behavior until the ensuing term of the Supreme Court of this Territory, and to appear at the said court, and not depart therefrom without the leave of the said court; and for that purpose to recognize himself in the sum of twenty-four dollars, with two sureties in the sum of twelve dollars each." This outrage upon decency and principle needs no comment. If you wish to discuss this subject, I am prepared to show darker features of the case. I have read your defence of thc procedure, and it is as singular and ridiculous as your conduct. * * * * * * * * * * * * On the tenth of June, 18r1, during the vacation of the Supreme Court, Whitnore Knaggs committed an assault and battery upon your person. The next day you issued a warrant tinder your hand and seal, charging him with this offence, upon which Knaggs was brought before you for examination. On the suggestion of MSr. Brush and others that your Honor did not look well sitting as an accuser, Judge Robert Abbott and Richard Smyth, two justices of the peace, were invited to become your colleagues; they did so, and you, in conjunction with them, after citing many authorities to justify yourself, on the fifth of July ordered that Knaggs should enter into recognizance in the sum of $3,ooo, with two sureties in $1,5oo each, to appear the next term of the Supreme Court, and in the mean time, keep the peace. These facts appear by the record, in your own handwriting, on file in the clerk's office of the Stipreme Court. For this conduct you were presented by the Grand Jury for the Territory. MICHIGAN. October 24, 1822. A second letter, addressed to Woodward, and dated Friday, November 8, 1822, says: In my first letter to you, I brought two cases from the records of your court, in one of which you acted as an accuser, a prosecutor or party, as a witness, and as a judge, and in the other, you appeared also as the complainant, and as judge. I have made the charge and proved it. The writer then quotes again from the record, saying: Pages 24 and 25 of the record contain the following: " At a session of the Supreme Court of the Territory of Michigan, etc., on the twenty-fourth day of September, 1806, etc., were present Judge Woodward and Judge Bates. " In the case of the United States against Captain Adam Muir, Ensign John Stow Lundi, and Lieutenant Henry B. Brevoort, it is considered by the court that Adam Muir pay a fine of ten Pounds Sterling, equal to forty-four dollars and forty cents, and be imprisoned for seventeen days, and that he is now in the custody of the marshal, until this fine is paid, the time of imprisononment is expired, and the costs of the prosecution are paid. And that John Stow Lundi pay a fine two thousand Pounds Sterling, equal to $8,888, and be imprisoned six months, and that he is now in the custody of the marshal until this fine is paid, the time of his imprisonment is expired, and the costs of the prosecution are paid. And that Henry B. Brevoort pay a fine of $250, and be im - prisoned seventy-five days, and that he is now in the custody of the marshal until this fine is paid, the time of imprisonment is expired, and the costs of the prosecution are paid. " In the case of the United States against Jean Marie Oule, it is considered by the court that the said Jean Marie Oule receives upon his bare back fifteen stripes, and pay a fine of twenty-five cents. " In the case of the United States against Iieutenant Porter Hanks, it is considered by the court that Porter Hanks pay a fine of fifty dollars and the costs of the prosecution." (lieutenant Hanks had pleaded guilty to the indictment.) Court records September 26, page 26: Judges present this day, Woodward, Bates, and Griffin. " In the case of the United States against Captain Adatm MIuir, Ensign John Stow I.undi, and Lieutenant Henry B'. Brevoort, on motion of the council for the defendants for amending the sentence pronounced against them on Wednesday, the twenty-fourth day of the present month, it is considered by the court that so much of the said sentence as respects Adam Muir be atnended by erasing the fine and imprisonment, and that the said Adam lMuir do pay a fine of two and one-half cents, with the costs of the prosecution. And that so much of the said sentence as respects John Stow ltundi be amended by erasing the fine and imprisonment, and that the said John Stow Lundi do pay a fine of seven and one half cents, with the costs of the prosecution. And that so much of the said sentence as respects Henry B. Brevoort be amended by erasing the fine and imprisonment, and that. the said Henry B. Brevoort do pay a fine of five cents, with the costs of the prosecution." Page 27: " In the case of the United States against Porter Hanks, on motion of council it was considered by the court that the said sentence be amended by erasing the fine, and that the said P. Hanks do pay a fine of one cent and costs of the prosecution." September 27th: " In the case of the United States against Jean M1arie Oule, on notion, etc., it is considered by the court that the said sentence be amended by erasing the said fine and whipping, and the said Jean MI. Oule do pay a fine of eight dollars to Pierre Chene, with the cost of the prosecution, and stand conmitted, etc. The record of the proceedings of the court on this day were not closed and signed until the twenty-third day of April, i8ro. (Signed) MICHIGAN. The origin and progress of these remarkable trials is humorously told in a series of letters written by John Gentle to the Pittsburgh Commonwealth, and confirmed in almost all particulars by a letter addressed to Stanley Griswold, acting governor, signed by James Abbott and Wm. McD. Scott, justices of the peace, published in the Philadelphia Aurora of November Io, I806. Mr. Gentle says: Soon after the departure of Governor Hull and Judge Woodward for Washington City (in November, 80o5) a disagreeable affair happened between the military officers and the citizens. The officers of Fort Detroit, and the officers of Fort Malden, on the British side, some years ago, entered into mutual agreement to aid and assist one another in the prevention and detection of deserters. The British officers, on their part, have taken and delivered up several deserters to the American garrison, the officers of which have often attempted to return the compliment, but the people considered such proceedings a violation of the civil laws of the United States, and contrary to the Constitution, and have always succeeded in rescuing the poor devils out of their hands. On Saturday evening a British soldier by the name of Morrison deserted from Fort Malden, and came over to Detroit for protection. Two British officers came over next day, in the forenoon, in search of him, and remained incognifo in the fort all the afternoon, in company with the officers of the fort. After dusk, in the i84 - SUPREME COURT'S OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE............ _ _............ evening, a troop of waiters, under the command of Captain Tuttie, was sent from the fort to reconnoiter the town for this Morrison. The captain, being a vigilant officer, soon discovered the enemy, and returned to the fort with intelligence of his position, leaving an advance guard to prevent the enemy's retreat. The British officer, led by the American heroes, sallied out of the fort, double charged with good Monongahela. Lieutenant Brevoort commanded the right wing, Ensign Lundi the left, and Captain Muir the center division. Lieutenant Hanks, Adjutant Hull, and Captain Tuttle retreated under the guns of Mrs. Betty McBryd's battery, while a furious attack was made on the enemy's outworks. The besieged was under the command of Lieutenant Seek, an inexperienced officer, who, having no other weapon of defense than his bodkin and Sheffield needles, did not hold out long against the impetuosity of such experienced veterans. A breach was soon effected, where the invincible heroes of both nations entered, sword in hand. Lundi presented a loaded pistol to Seek's head, while Muir and Brevoort seized and dragged the vanquished Morrison into the street. " Murder! Fire! Indians! " was loudly vociferated from the throats of all the men, women and children that were in the house at the time; the same sounds wre reverberated by the people of the neighborhood; a general terror prevailed, and no wonder. The same day, in the'forenoon, news was circulated in town that seven hundred Indians were lying in ambush, fifteen miles back in the woods, ready to massacre all in this town and settlements. The people rushed from their houses, armed with swords, guns, and shovels, others, carrying buckets and barrels of water, shouted " Where are the Indians? Where is the fire? " Meantime the report of a pistol was heard, and in a few minutes, another; which sounded in the terrified people's ears like great guns, and directed them to the scene of action. John Harvey, a baker, and next neighbor to Seek, was at his own door when the affray began. Seeing three or four men dragging one by the shoulders, and without knowing the cause of the custody, he ran, laid hold of Morrison's limbs, and detained him by main strength, in defiance of their threats to run him through and to blow out his brains. The old story was half realized of " Pull baker, pull devil." " Fire and be d-d, you ruffians! " was all the baker said till poor Morrison's clothes were all torn to atoms. Meanwhile Seek had been around the neighborhood spreading the alarm, and returned amongst the first, and laid hold of Lundi. A struggle ensued, but Lundi, finding Seek had the command of his pistol arm, and perceiving an opening, fired it off towards the ground; and not with an intention to kill Seek, as was erroneously stated in former publications. Captain hMuir, seeing the people assembling, presented his pistol to Morrison's naked breast, swearing that since he could not take him alive, he would leave him dead. Morrison, perceiving his intention, struck the pistol to one side, and instead of killing Morrison, the ball went through the calf of his own leg. The citizens by this time assembled in great numbers, and relieved Harvey from a very dangerous situation; surrounded the officers, and carried them in civic triumph to Smyth's Tavern, to get the wound dressed. Lieutenant Hanks and Adjutant Hull, seeing the people more moderate than usual in such cases, now ventured from their lurking places, and finding the flower of their army thus wounded and maimed, began brandishing their broadswords and swore many bloody oaths that if the citizens would not immediately disperse they would turn the guns of the fort upon them and blow them to hell. They were all taken into custody, and came under recognizance to stand trial at the next September term. * * * The twentieth day of September, 1806, the trials of Muir, Lundi, and Brevoort came on. A respectable jury was impaneled, and sworn in one by one; the witnesses were brought forward, and underwent scrutinous examinations. The case appeared so clear that the attorneys waived their pleadings, the jury retired, and returned with their verdict, Guilty. The judgment of the court was delayed some days, when one of the attorneys prayed the court to pass judgment on the officers. The judges retired into a private room a few minutes, then returned and took their seats. All was silence; the scene was awful. Judge Woodward opened the judgments by a lengthy preamble, setting forth the delicacy of his situation, and his diffidence in the performance of the duties he was called upon by his country to do, the enormity of their crimes; as such irregularity of conduct might involve countries, now at peace, in all the horrors of destructive war. He then said, " It is the opinion of the court that Captain Muir's crime is much more heinous than Ensign Lundi's, he having actually discharged the pistol with intention to kill Morrison (although at the same time it passed through the calf of his own leg). Therefore the judgment of the court is, that Captain Adam Muir be fined in ten Pounds Sterling, and seventeen days imprisonment, and to remain in custody of the marshal until the same shall be paid. It is also the judgment of the court that Ensign John Stow Lundi be fined in two thousand Pounds Sterling, that is to say, $8,888, and six months imprisonment, and remain in custody of the marshal until the same shall be paid. It is the judgment of the court that Lieutenant Henry B. Brevoort be fined in one hundred Pounds, lawful money of New York, and seventy-five days imprisonment, and to remain in custody of the marshal until the same shall be paid." Ensign Lundi hung down his head, and looked as any other man would do when condemned to perpetual imprisonment. The audience stared with wild amaze at each other, rose from their seats, and retired. Those who were formerly the most violent against the officers were now the most violent in their execrations against the inequality and injustice of these cruel judgments. The court, finding they had missed their aim in this unjustifiable fetch for popularity, now set their wits at work to remedy their error. Meantime Judge Griffin arrived, and took his seat on the bench. A few days afterwards, the judgments were opened anew, when, wonderful to relate, the court then, and not till then, considered that the officers were tried by the common law of England, and judgments rendered accordingly, when, at the same time, the laws of Indiana Territory were still in force in Michigan Territory, which limited fines for assault and battery to not exceeding one hundred dollars. The former judgments underwent a thorough investigation, and the decisions of the court, agreeable to the laws of Indiana Territory, were: That the terms of imprisonment of the three officers, Muir, Lundi, and Brevoort, be reduced by striking them out, and their fines reduced to sixteen cents. Lieutenant Hanks was also tried at the same court, for an assault on the body of Dr. Joseph Wilkinson. He pleaded guilty and was fined in fifty dollars. The judgment in his case was also cancelled, and the fine reduced to one cent. It is impossible to describe the feeling of the insulted citizens of Detroit on this occasion. Our peaceful dwellings, violated by a banditti of insolent foreigners; our wives and children terrified into fits; ourselves assailed and threatened with fire and sword; and a few cents is presented to us, to redress these barbarous insults, presenting the lowest dregs of humiliation to a people formerly cheerful, generous, and brave, although now debased to the meanest extreme by the juggling pranks and legerdemain tricks of these unprincipled judges that fill our judgment seats. A third letter to Woodward, contained in the Gazette of Friday, November 15, 1822, addressed him as follows: You have been plainly and distinctly charged with turpitude and inconsistency, with meanness and injustice, with indelicacy and falsehood, with selfishness and contempt for public opinion. If you ask for the specifications, I refer you to my two previous communications on this subject. And what have you answered to these grave charges,- charges which not only involve your official conduct but also your private character? Nothing. In legal phrase you stand mute; which, according to the common sense of mankind, admits the truth of the charges, for the non-denial of an allegation, fairly and distinctly made, amounts to an admission of its verity. * * * You may write resolutions, and stimulate your tools to offer them at public meetings; but you will never be able to perpetuate that state of intellectual and political degradation which hitherto you have contributed to maintain. This Territory is about to emerge from her long night of political darkness; to rouse the sleeping energies, and to exhibit to you a practical lesson which shall convince you that, having committed SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE. 185 innumerable outrages in your official character, far exceeding the indulgence which, from our former tameness and submission, you had a right to expect, you have now no longer the smallest claim upon our forbearance, and have become a fit subject for the knife of political dissection. You must, therefore, expect to see your character portrayed in bold relief. But how shall we enumerate the black catalogue of outrages and enormities which your official life of twenty years has been so fruitful in furnishing? The attempt would be as hopeless as the cleansing of the Augean stable. * * * The portals of your narrow, selfish soul are as firmly barred against every generous or noble sentiment as the dark cave of Cerberus. You may be likened to the man who, on board a ship in a storm, being called upon to assist, replied that he was,nly a passenger. It may be emphatically said of you, that you consider yourself only a passenger. You stand unconnected by any tie of nature, friendship, or gratitude, holding one of the highest and most lucrative offices in the Territory, besides an independent estate. You are literally without a friend. So disgusting is your character, in every point of view, that it is really a matter of curious speculation how, or by what strange fatality, such a man should have been palmed upon this Territory. I assure you, sir, that in pursuing your character I have a magnanimous feeling, which would prompt me to desist from so painful an investigation were I not conscious that the best interests of this community are concerned, and that the time has arrived when honest men should speak out. Z. Z. In the Gazette for December 27, another writer, with the signature of "Sidney," took up the cudgel against Judge Woodward. He says: The most prominent feature, and one that strongly distinguishes his -onor from the rest of the world, and which, indeed, seems to be blended with all his other features, is originality, —a Imode of thinking, reasoning, and acting altogether peculiar to himself; * * characterized only by a perfect contempt for those laws of reason and common sense which govern most men, and which delights itself in driving tandem the steeds of whim and fancy over the sober children of truth and reason. * * * Another peculiarity of this judicial Quixote, and which appears truly surprising in any one having the least pretention to a legal education, is a direct and open hostility to law, considered as a science. Not only has he totally neglected all legal studies himself, and constantly manifested the most perfect indifference to the highest authority, when laid before him by counsel; he has also uniformly held in derision all legal and moral qualifications in those who have been admitted by him to the practice of law. No matter whether the applicant for admission to the bar possessed any more legal science or respect for morals than his Honor, if he only had good teeth, and a head conformable to the best specimens of craniology, he was sure of success, since his Honor has declared that, by looking to the former, he could sufficiently ascertain the legal science, and by feeling of the latter, he could tell the moral character of the applicant. And that these are his sober opinions, if he has any of this class, is fully evident from his uniform conduct in respect to the examination and admission of attorneys and counselors at law. One instance deserves to be mentioned. It happened, one evening at a convivial party, that a young military officer had the good fortune to solve some trifling riddle or conundrum which had been proposed, as original, by tih judge. To reward such an effort of genius, his Honor immediately conferred upon this gentleman the degree of counselor at law. * * * Being once threatened with an impeachment for some gross malfeasance in office, he answered, with great composure, " Uncle Sam knows too well how much it costs to try a judge to listen to a territorial impeachment." * * * He has often been known, while sitting in court, to direct the clerk to enter him absent, although, to mere mortal eyes, he appeared to be really present inpropria persona; and every person present would be willing to swear with both hands (were it not for the record, which cannot be falsified except by his Honor) that the presiding judge was still on the bench. This questionable figure has generally been observed, however, to lose much of its sparkling brilliancy when the spirit was absent; yet it sometimes speaks on critical emergencies. During the operation of one of these enchantments, and while a learned and independent advocate was reflecting in pretty severe terms upon the proceedings of the court, one of the associate judges turned involuntarily toward the seat of the presiding judge, and asked whether such a contempt was to be endured; the strange oracle replied, or appeared to reply, " I consider myself absent." On one occasion, while a suit was being tried, feeling sleepy, he ordered the clerk to enter in the journal that he was absent; and, shoving his chair back against the wall, he closed his eyes as if gone to the land of Nod. Meantime, the arguments of counsel were going on; and as one of the attorneys said something that thwarted his views, he suddenly moved forward to correct him. The attorney tartly suggested, " I thought your Honor was absent; the journal of the court says so." This nonplused the judge, who ordered the record of his absence to be erased. It was not merely the public who became dissatisfied: the judges grew disgusted with each other, and, even while sitting as a court, quarrels were frequent between Judges Woodward and Witherell. Judge Witherell generally sat with his back towards Judge Woodward, and often, after Woodward had delivered an opinion, Judge WVitherell would say, I don't see any sense in that view of the case; there is no argument in it; " and doubtless Judge \itherell was often correct. Many of the citizens tried, especially'from the year I820, to have Judge Woodward removed, deeming him mainly responsible for the irregularities of the court. The articles in the Gazette were endorsed editorially, on November 22, 1822; and on November 29, in speaking of the memorial to be presented to Congress, the Gazette said: Another prayer of this petition is, that the law under which our present Supreme Court is constituted may be repealed, and that a law may be passed pruoviding for the appointment of judges, and limiting the term of their service to four years. The object of praying for the repeal of this law is, if possible, to effect an immediate riddance of our present judges (we mean the majority of them), and, if that be impracticable, to leave another door open for them to go out at the end of four years. At length, on January 30, I823, deliverance came. Judge J. I). Doty was appointed to hold courts in the counties of Mackinaw, Brown, and Crawford; and on March 3, 1823, Congress limited the term of the other judges then in office to four years from February i, I824. The same year Judges Woodward and Griffin resigned. Judge Woodward went to Tallahassee, where he died July 12, i827. Solomon Sibley and John Hunt were appointed to the vacant judgeships; and on February 5, I825, Congress provided that at least two judges must be present at the opening of a session of the court. An Act of April 13, 1827, provided that sessions should begin on the first Monday of December and May. The same year John Hunt died, and in 1828 James Witherell resigned, to become secretary of the Territory. In June I828, the court met for the first time in the new court-house or capitol. Early in 1832 the terms of Judges Woodbridge, Sibley, Chipman, and Doty expired; and on February 3 a I86 SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY ANI THE STATE. complimentary dinner was given them at the Mansion House. Four years later, by Act of March 26, 1836, the Supreme Court of the Territory was abolished, and its business transferred to the State Court, provided for by the same Act. The names and terms of the several territorial judges were as follows: I8o5-I808, A. B. Woodward, Frederick Bates, John Griffin; I808-I823, A. B. Woodward, John Griffin, James Witherell; I823 -1827, James Witherell, Solomon Sibley, John Hunt, James D. Doty; 1827-1832, Henry Chipman, Solomon Sibley, Wm. Woodbridge, J. D. Doty; 1832 -1837, S. Sibley, George Morell, Ross Wilkins, Iavid Irvin. In its earliest days the old records show that the court was opened in semi-military style, as follows: "Attention the whole! Silence on penalty! Oyez! give ear you who wish your cause heard." As a matter of course, the inevitable Peter Audrain, who had been clerk of everything from time immemorial, was the clerk of this court. He continued to hold the office until September, I819. Many evidences of his work remain, but the records, especially in the latter part of his term, were so carelessly kept or wholly neglected, that all the leading attorneys, such as Messrs. Hunt, Lanman, Sibley, McDougall, Lamed, and others, protested against his continuance in office; and in September, I819, George McIougall was appointed clerk pro tern.; the same month he was relieved, and James Duane Doty was appointed. He held the office but one year, and in October, I820, Melvin Dorr was appointed, Charles C. Trowbridge acting as his deputy. This brings us to another of the characteristic acts of Judge Woodward. It should be borne in mind that Judge Woodward seldom consulted Judge Witherell upon any question, as the latter was so practical and straightforward that he could never agree with him. Judge Griffin, on the contrary, was easily persuaded by Woodward, and therefore the appointments and decisions of the court were really made by Woodward. In 1822 Mr. Dorr decided to resign the office of clerk in favor of his deputy, Mr. Trowbridge. Upon communicating his intentions to the bar, all the members of that body united in a recommendation of the deputy, which recommendation, with the resignation, was presented to the court. In the evening the judge called at the office where the deputy was making up the records, and complimented the young official upon the handsome testimonial he had received from the members of the bar, intimating that, as a matter of course, the appointment would be given him. " By the way," said the judge, as he was leaving, " I have a young friend, Lucius Lyon, just arrived from Vermont, who is in want of employment; I wish you would make him your deputy." Mr. Trowbridge replied that he should prefer to perform all the labor himself, and save the expense of a deputy. The next morning, in a cheerful voice, he read the records of the preceding d:!y, which, being signed, as approved by Judge Woodward, were handed back with this order: " Mr. Clerk, enter, as the order of the court, that the resignation of Melvin Dorr is accepted, and that John Woodward, of Harrisburgh, Pennsylvania, is appointed clerk, and that Jonathan Kearsley, of Detroit, is appointed clerk pro tern., until the arrival of the said John Woodward." If the roof of the old Indian council-house had fallen, it could not have been a greater surprise to Judge Witherell, to the bar, and to the disappointed deputy. John Woodward proved to be the father of the judge, an old man on the verge of the grave. He died at Erie, Pennsylvania, on his way to Detroit. Mr. Kearsley entered upon the duties of deputy clerk, and continued in office until 1827, when John Winder was appointed, and served during the rest of the existence of the territorial court. Supreme Court of State of Michigan. The Supreme Court of the State succeeded the corresponding territorial court, by Act of March 26, 1836. The jurisdiction was originally, and is now, chiefly appellate, most of the cases coming before it being cases taken up from the Circuit Courts. The first three judges were appointed by the governor and Senate. The term of office was seven years. In addition to their duties as judges of the Supreme Court, each judge presided over one of the Circuit Courts of the State, and the judge first appointed was the presiding judge; Act of July I6, 1836, named them as chief justices and associate justices. By the Revised Statutes of I838, one additional associate judge was provided for, and by law of April 3, 1848, provision was made for a fourth associate justice. The Constitution of 185O provided for eight circuits, the judges of which were to sit as judges of the Supreme Court. By law of 185, none of them were to sit as supreme judges until 1852. By law of February I6, 1857, the constitution of the court was greatly changed, and a new Supreme Court provided, to consist of one chief justice, to be elected as such, and three associate justices. They were to be elected on the first Monday of April, I857, and every second year thereafter. The judges elected at the first election were to be divided into four classes, to serve for two, four, six, and eight years each, and judges elected subsequently were to serve for eight years. The salary was $2,500. By the terms of the same Act, the judges of the Supreme Court ceased to sit as circuit judges. Under Act of January 16, I873, the salary was increased to $4,o00o, and in 1887 to $5,000. By Act of February 5, I887, an additional associate justice was pro SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE. I87 vi led for, to be elected on the first Monday of April, 1887, to serve for eight years, and one judge was to be elected every two years thereafter for a term of ten year.. Act of March 26, 1836, ordered that sessions of the court be held regularly in Wayne, Washtenaw, and Kalamazoo counties, the session in Wayne County to begin on the first Monday in September each year. By Revised Statutes of i838, the session in Detroit was to begin on the first Tuesday of January and June. By law of April 20, 1839, sessions in Detroit were to begin on the first Tuesday of January and August. By law of March 25, I840, sessions of the Supreme Court were to "begin at Detroit on the first Tuesday in January, at Ann Arbor on the fourth Tuesday in January, at Kalamazoo on the first Tuesday in September, and at Pontiac on the third Tuesday in January." An Act of April 4, 1851, provided for five terms, to begin on first Monday of January, May, July, and third Monday of October, the January Term to be held at Detroit, May Term at Kalamazoo, July Term at-Adrian, and October Term at Pontiac. The fifth term was to be held at Lansing, at a time to be determined by the court, and the fourth Tuesday of January was fixed upon. A law of February I6, 1857, provided for four sessions yearly, to begin on the first Monday of January, May, July, and October, the January and July Terms to be held at Lansing, and May and October Terms at Detroit. By Act of February 14, 1859, sessions were to begin on the Tuesday after the first Monday in April, and the April and October Terms were to be held at Detroit. By Act of April 22, 1873, all sessions of the Supreme Court were thereafter to be held at Lansing; and the same Act provided for four terms each year, to commence on the Tuesday after the first Monday of January, April, June, and October. The State Supreme Court held its sessions in the old Williams Block, on the southeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Bates Street, until the spring of I844, when it began to hold its sessions in the old seminary building, which the State had bought on August 19, I837. Sessions continued to be held there until 1855, when, the building having been sold to the city. the court removed to the old Wayne County Building, on the southeast corner of Congress and Griswold Streets, remaining there until May 3, 1858, when it moved to the Odd Fellows' Hall, on Woodward Avenue. From there the court was moved to the Seitz Building, on the south side of Congress near Griswold Street, in the room afterwards used by the Superior Court. It remained there until removed to Lansing. By Constitution of I835, the clerk was appointed by the court, John Winder serving from 1836 to I843, John Norvell in 1843, and A. Ten Eyck from 1843 to 1847. William Hale served in 1847, and Elisha Taylor in 1848 and 1849. By Constitution of 1850, the county clerk of the county in which the court was held was made the clerk of the court. Under this provision from 1850 to 1857 the county clerks of Wayne, Kalamazoo, Lenawee, Oakland, and Ingham counties were the clerks of the court; from 1857 to 1873, the county clerks of Wayne and Ingham counties; from 1873 to 1882, the county clerk of Ingham, or his deputy, acted as the clerk. Under amendment to the constitution adopted in i881, the clerk is appointed by the judges, and on January I, 1882, C. C. Hopkins, by appointment, entered upon the duties of the position. The following is a list of the judges of the Supreme Court of the State of Michigan: 1836-I839: Chief Justice Wm. A. Fletcher, of Second Circuit; Associates: Geo. Morell, of First Circuit; E. Ransom, of Third Circuit. 1839-1843: Chief Justice Wm. A. Fletcher, of Second Circuit; Associates: Geo. Morell, of First Circuit; E. Ransom, of Third Circuit; C. W. Whipple, of Fourth Circuit. 1843; Chief Justice E. Ransom, of Third Circuit; Associates: Geo. Morell, of First Circuit; A. Felch, of Second Circuit; C. W. Whipple, of Fourth Circuit. I844-1846: Chief Justice E. Ransom, of Third Circuit; Associates: D. Goodwin, of First Circuit; A. Felch, of Second Circuit; C. W. Whipple, of Fourth Circuit. 1846: Chief Justice E. Ransom, of Third Circuit; Associates: I). Goodwin, of First Circuit; W. Wing, of Second Circuit; C. W. Whipple, of Fourth Circuit. 1847: Chief Justice E. Ransom, of Third Circuit; Associates: W. Wing, of First Circuit; George Miles, of Second Circuit; C. W. Whipple, of Fourth Circuit. 1848: Chief Justice C. W. Whipple, of Third Circuit; Associates: W\r. Wing, of First Circuit; Geo. Miles, of Second Circuit; S. M. Green, of Fourth Circuit. 1849-1851: Chief Justice C. W. Whipple, of Third Circuit; Associates: W. Wing, of First Circuit; George Miles, of Second Circuit; S. M. Green, of Fourth Circuit; E. Mundy, of Fifth Circuit. i851; Chief Justice C. W. Whipple, of Third Circuit; Associates. W. Wing, of First Circuit; A. Pratt, of Second Circuit; S. M. Green, of Fourth Circuit. I852-1854: Chief Justice W. Wing, of First Circuit; Associates: C. W. Whipple, ot Second Circuit; S. T. Douglass, of Third Circuit I). Johnson, of Fourth Circuit; A. Pratt, of Fifth Circuit; J. T. Copeland, of Sixth Circuit; S. M. i88 SUPREME COURTS OF THE TERRITORY AND THE STATE. Green, of Seventh Circuit; Geo. Martin, of Eighth Circuit. 1854-1856: Chief Justice S. M. Green, of Seventh Circuit; Associates: W. Wing, of First Circuit; C. W. Whipple, of Second Circuit; S. T. Douglass, of Third Circuit; I. Johnson, of Fourth Circuit; A. Pratt, of Fifth Circuit; J. T. Copeland, of Sixth Circuit; Geo. Martin, of Eighth Circuit. 1856: Chief Justice A. Pratt, of Fifth Circuit; Associates: W. Wing, of First Circuit; N. Bacon, of Second Circuit; S. T. Douglass, of Third Circuit; D. Johnson, of FourthCircuit; J. T. Copeland, of Sixth Circuit; S. M. Green, of Seventh Circuit; Geo. Martin, of Eighth Circuit. 1857: Chief Justice George Martin, of Eighth Circuit; Associates: B. F. Graves, of Fifth Circuit; E. H. C. Wilson, of First Circuit; N. Bacon, of Second Circuit; *B. F. H. Witherell, of Third Circuit; *E. Lawrence, of Fourth Circtit; J. T. Copeland, of Sixth Circuit; *Josiah Turner, of Seventh Circuit. I858-r868: Chief Justice George Martin; Associates: Randolph Manning, I. P. Christiancy, J. V. Campbell. 1868-I870: Chief Justice T. M. Cooley, Associates: I. P. Christiancy, J. V.Campbell, B. F. Graves. I870-I872: Chief Justice J. V. Campbell; Associates: I. P Christiancy, B. F. Graves, T. M. Cooley. *Part of the year. 1872-1874: Chief Justice I. P. Christiancy; Associates: B. F. Graves, T. M. Cooley, J. V. Campbell. 1874-I876: Chief Justice B. F. Graves; Associates: T. M. Cooley, J. V. Campbell, I. P. Christiancy. I876-1878: Chief Justice T. M. Cooley; Associates: Isaac Marston, J. V. Campbell, B. F. Graves. 1878-1880: Chief Justice J. V. Campbell; Associates: Isaac Marston, B. F. Graves, T. M. Cooley. i880-i882: Chief Justice Isaac Marston; Associates: B. F. Graves, T. M. Cooley, J. V. Campbell. 1882-1884: Chief Justice B. F. Graves; Associates: J. V. Campbell, T. M. Cooley, T. R. Sherwood. 1885: Chief Justice T. M. Cooley, to October I from October I, Allen B. Morse; Associates: J. V. Campbell, T. R. Sherwood, J. W. Champlin. I886-I88: Chief Justice J. V. Campbell; Associates: T. R. Sherwood, J. W. Champlin, A. B. Morse. I888-: Chief Justice T. R. Sherwood; Associates: J. XV. Champlin, A. B. Morse, J. V. Campbell, C. D. Long. The reporters of the Supreme Court have been as follows: 1843-1847, S. T. Douglass; I847-I85I, Randolph Manning; I851-I858, G. C. Gibbs; 1858 -1864, T. M. Cooley; I864, E. W. Meddaugh; i865 -1870, W.Jennison; i870-I872, H. K. Clarke; 1872 1878, Hoyt Post; 1878-I887, H. A. Chaney; 1887-, William D. Fuller. C H APTE R XXXII. DISTRICT COURT.-ORPHANS' COURT.- PROBATE COURT.-COURT OF QUARTER SESSIONS.- COURT OF COMMON PLEAS.-COURT OF CHANCERY.-COUN rY COURTS.-CIRCUIT COURTS.-DIS TRICT CRIMINAL COURT. DISTRICT COURT. DISTRICT Courts of the Territory of Michigan were established by law of July 25, 1805. The court for the district of Huron and Detroit was held at Detroit, beginning on the first Monday of May and third Monday in August in each year, and was presided over by one of the territorial judges. It had original jurisdiction in cases involving over twenty dollars, except as to cases exclusively vested in other courts. By provisions of proclamation of July 3, I805, the boundaries of the District of Detroit were as follows: " Beginning at the river Detroit on the boundary of the United States of America, five miles north of the position of the center of the citadel in the ancient town of Ietroit; and shall run thence a due west line to the boundary of the Indian title, as established by the treaties of Fort McIntosh, of Fort Harmer, and Fort Greenville, thence with the same, ten miles, thence a due east line to the boundary of the United States." The court appointed listers, appraisers, collectors, and treasurers for the district, and it was their duty to assess and collect the territorial and county taxes. The Court Journal for August 19, I805, begins as follows: On the nineteenth day of August, 1805, at eleven o'clock in the forenoon, in the grand square of the new city of Detroit, tinder a green bower, provided by the marshal of the Territory of Michigan for that purpose, a session for the District Court of Huron and L)etroit was held, at which was present Frederick Bates, senior associate judge of the Territory of Michigan. James May, marshal of the Territory of Michigan, opened the court in the following words: " Attention! The District Court for 1Huron and Detroit I)istrict is now sitting. Silence commanded on pain of imprisoninent." The green bower was ordered paid for on October 7, 1805, the Governor and Judges, as a legislature, voting " eight dollars in payment to Michael Monette and Valne, in laboring in the erection of a bower for the holding of a court." By proclamation of March 21, I806, the District of Detroit was newly defined, as including a strip of country six miles wide on the west bank of the river. The people were not satisfied with the constitu tion of this court, and petitioned for a court such as they had had under the rule of the Northwest Territory, whose judges were in part taken from among business men who had not studied or practiced law. The petition was favorably received, and on April 2, I807, a law was passed which provided that the governor should appoint one chief judge and two associates, with power to assess and collect money to defray court charges, with jurisdiction as to contracts, and differences between citizens and Indians. Under this law, (;eorge McDougall was appointed chief justice, with James Abbott and Jacob Visger as associate justices. Peter Audrain was clerk. In April, I809, Robert Abbott was appointed in place of James Abbott, and at the same time, or soon after, Jacob Visger became chief justice, and John Whipple one of the associate justices. This court met in the Council House in I807, and existed until Sunday, September 16, 181o, when the jurisdiction of the justices was enlarged, and part of the powers of the l)istrict Court transferred to the justices and the rest to the Supreme Court. ORPHANS' COURT. This court was established by a law of Northwest Territory, on October I, I795. It was held by the justices composing the Court of General Quarter Sessions of the Peace. Its jurisdiction was similar to the present jurisdiction of a Probate Court, but more extensive, exercising a supervisory care over trustees and executors. The court was abolished in 181 I, when the office of register of probate was created. PROBATE COURT, OR COURT OF PROOFS. Courts of Probate, or of Proof as they have also been called, were first established for the Northwest Territory on August 30, I788; they have existed in Detroit from the time of the first American occupation; and there is on file in the Probate Office a statement of the first probate case ever passed upon in Wayne County. The estate at issue was that of Amos Weston, of which John Askin was appointed administrator in 1797. This was the only case for a whole year. The judges were 80] I90o COURT OF GENERAL QUARTER SESSIONS. --- —-- appointed by the governor until Michigan became a State, after which the office was made elective. The term is four years. Under Michigan Territory a law of January 31, 1809, authorized the judge of probate to appoint a clerk or register. By Act of January 19, 181i, the court was reorganized, and the register was made the register of deeds. Further provisions concerning this court were made by Act of July 27, i8i8. On March 27, 1820, the duty of registering deeds for Detroit was transferred to the city register, an office then first provided for. By Act of January 29, 1835, the office of register of probate was abolished, and the duties of the office were transferred to the county register of deeds, provided for in the same Act. By Act of March 12, I86I, the office of register was revived. This officer is appointed by the judge, and his duties pertain to the keeping of the records of the office. Up to the passing of the law of February 15, 1859, the judge was paid by the fees of the office. Since then he has been paid a salary, which up to I880 was $2,750. By law of 1879 the salary, after January I, i88I, was to be fixed by the Board of Auditors at not less than $2,500 nor more than $3,000. Law of April 29, I88I, fixed the salary at $3,500. The probate judges have been as follows: Peter Audrain appointed 1796; George McDougall, appointed I809; Charles Lamed, appointed November 26, i8i8; W. W. Petit, appointed November I6, 1825; H. S. Cole, appointed May 3, I826; J. W. Torrey, appointed December 26, 1829; Thos. Rowland, appointed July 20, I833; B. F. H. Witherell, appointed March 7, I834; Geo. E. Hand, appointed October 20, I835. The following were elected under State law: I837-I840, George A. O'Keefe; 840 - 8 14, A. S. Williams; 844-I852, C. O'Flynn; I852-1856, Joseph H. Bagg; I856-I860, Elijah Hawley, Jr.; I86o-I864, W. PI. Yerkes; 1864-1868, H. WV. Deare; I868-I872, James D. Weir; 1872 -1876, A. H. Wilkinson; I876-, E. 0. Durfee. The registers of probate have been: 1811-1812, or later, H. H. Hickman; I814-1816, George McI)ougall; November 12, i 8 6, to September 12, 1821, Charles Lamed; September 12, 1821, to August 27, I827, J. V. R. Ten Eyck; August 28, 1827, to 1835, Felix I-inchman; 186i -865, John H. Kaple; I865 -1872, H. R. Nowland; 1872, S. D. Craig; 1872 -1876, E. O. I)urfee; 1876-I880, T. B. Jewell; I88o-, H. A. Flint. COURT OF GENERAL QUARTER SESSIONS. This court was created on August 23, 1788, and the first session in the Northwest Territory was on September 9 following. The law provided for sessions four times a year in each county, and gave the court jurisdiction in cases of crimes and misdemeanors where the penalties did not extend to forfeiture of life or goods, or imprisonment for over a year. The court also laid out townships, and appointed the overseers of the poor, the coroners, constables, and town clerks. It was composed of justices appointed by the governor. There was a session in Detroit as early as August 4, 1798, presided over by Louis Beaufait, James May, and Joseph Voyez. At the term of June 2, I80i, the following justices were present: Jean M. Beaubien, Geo. McDougall, Jacob Visgar, Francis Navarre, and James Henry. On March 2, I802, the following persons sat as judges: Jean Marie Beaubien, James Henry, Jacob Visgar, and Chabert Joncaire. Under the government of Indiana Territory, in May, 1803, James May, Francis Navarre, Jean M. Beaubien, James Henry, Jacob Visgar, Chabert Joncaire, Antoine Dequindre, John Dodemead, and Wm. McDowell Scott were appointed justices of the Court of General Quarter Sessions for Wayne County. On July 15, 1804, David Duncan and John Anderson were appointed. At a session of the court on Tuesday, December 4, 1804, Justices May, Navarre, Beaubien, Henry, Dequindre, Visgar, Dodemead, Joncaire, and Scott were present. On November 25, I817, under Michigan Territory, the Court of General Quarter Sessions was reorganized to consist of the judges of the County Court and the justices of the peace. Sessions were to begin on the first Monday in March, June, September, and December; and three judges constituted a quorum. The chief business of the court at this time consisted in managing the finances of the county. George McDougall was appointed clerk of the court November 26, 1817, and in December of the same year a session was held at John McDonnell's house. On May 30, 1818, the court was abolished, and its business transferred to the county commissioners. The records of the Court of General Quarter Sessions for June 6, 1805, show that Loudon, a black man, was sentenced to "receive thirty-nine lashes on his bare back, at five o'clock this afternoon." An Act of the Governor and Judges, passed July 27, I818, provided. that any justice of the peace might order the whipping of "lewd, idle, or disorderly persons, stubborn servants, common drunkards, and those who neglect their families, with ten stripes, or the hiring of them out for three months at the best wages that can be secured, for the benefit of the poor fund." The first sale under this Act took place at auction about the middle of September, 18i8, when twenty-eight shillings were paid for the services of one bad citizen. In the summer of 1821 the services of a drunken white COURT OF COMMON PLEAS -COURT OF CHANCERY. I9I vagabond were bought by a black man for ten days, for the sum of one dollar. The whipping was performed at the old market on Woodward Avenue below Jefferson. The law was repealed March 4, I831. COURT OF COMMON PLEAS. A court thus designated existed under English rule; and a law of the Northwest Territory of August 23, 1788, provided for the holding of courts of this kind, to consist of not less than three or more than five persons, to be appointed by the governor. Two sessions a year were to be held in each county, with power to hear and determine all cases of a civil nature. A further law of November 6, 1790, provided for four sessions a year. Under these laws the first American Court of Common Pleas for the Northwest Territory was opened at Marietta, September 2, 1788; but no business was brought before it. When this region came under American rule, several of the judges under English rule were continued in office. In I796 the court was constituted as follows: Louis Beaufait, senior justice; James May, Charles Francis Girardin, Patrick McNiff, and Nathan Williams, associate justices. About the same time Jonathan Schiefflin became one of the associate justices. One of the decisions rendered in September, 1797, directed that the "defendant should give to the plaintiff sLxteen days' work without other pay than victuals." As late as I799 Louis Beaufait was chief justice, and McNiff, May, and Girardin associate justices. At a term of the court on June 8, 801o, there were present Justices May, McNiff, and Visger; and at the March Term of 1802, May, Visger; Joncaire, and Henry presided. Peter Audrain was clerk. At the September and Iecember sessions of 1802 the following names appear: Justices Henry, Joncaire, Visger, and McDougall. The sessions of the court were generally held in the Dodemead house. The Territorial Records of Indiana show the appointment in May, 1803, of the following judges for Wayne County: James May, James Henry, Jacob Visger, Chabert Joncaire, John l)odemead, and Wm. McIowell Scott. The same records show that the following judges and justices were appointed on October 24, I804: James May, James Henry, Chabert Joncaire, Jacob Visger, John Iodemead, Wm. McDowell Scott, Francis Navarre, Jean Marie Beaubien, Antoine Dequindre, and John Anderson. The court ceased to exist in 1805, when Michigan became a separate Territory. COURT OF CHANCERY. The law establishing this court took effect July 4, 1836; its object was to secure rights and afford remedies for which no general law provided. Three Chancery Courts were created; the counties of Wayne, Monroe, Oakland, Genesee, Saginaw, Lapeer, Macomb, St. Clair, Mackinaw, and Chippewa comprised the first circuit. Sessions were to begin on the first Tuesday of February and third Tuesday of July, and were held in the old seminary building, on the site of the present City Hall. By the Revised Statutes of I846, which took effect on March I, 1847, the court was abolished, and its business transferred to the several Circuit Courts, the circuit judges sitting, at stated times, as a Court of Chancery. Elon Farnsworth was the first judge or chancellor of the court. He held the office until 1842, and was succeeded by Randolph Manning, who continued in office till the court was abolished. The clerks or registers of the court were: John Winder, I836 -1843; Anthony Ten Eyck, I843-I846; Wm. Hale, 1846-1847. In 1838 provision was made for a reporter of chancery courts; E. B. Harrington was appointed, and served until August, 1844, when he was succeeded by Henry N. Walker. The office of master in chancery was created by Act of June 30, I818. The appointments were made by the governor, and the duties of the office were much the same as those of a circuit court commissioner in chancery cases. These officers had power to make sales of property and to take testimony in cases referred to them. The office was abolished by the Constitution of 1850. The following is a list of masters for Wayne County, with the earliest date on which they were appointed, some of them being appointed for many successive terms: June 22, 1818, W. V.\ Petit; September 15, 1824, Robert Abbott; July 2, 1828, Chas. W. Whipple; March 7, 1834, Geo. E. Hand; March I8, 1837, James Churchman; June 22, 1837, Henry N. Walker; December 30, 1837, Anthony Ten Eyck; February 27, 1839, John B. Bispham; March 26, I839, E. J. Roberts; April 20, I839, Humes S. Porter; December 12, I839, Calvin C.Jackson; March 2I, 1840, Samuel Barstow, John S. Abbott, Samuel Pitts, Ebenezer B. Harrington; March 31, 1840, Fisher A. Harding; February 12, I84I, John L. Talbot; March 4, I84I, James B. \Watson, Henry T. Backus; March 9, I841, Walter W. Dalton; March 27, I841, Lansing B. Mizner, Jeremiah Van Rensselaer; February I4, I842, Elisha Taylor; February 9, 1843, Andrew Harvie, E. Smith Lee, Chas. Collins; February 21, 1843, George G. Bull; March 7, 1843, Andrew T. McReynolds; March 9, 1843, S. Yorke At Lee, David W. Fisk; April 21, 1843, Gideon B. Stevens; January 26, I844, Wm. T. Young; February I, 1844, George V. N. Lothrop; February 12, I844, 192 COUNTY COURTS.-CIRCUIT COURTS. Ebenezer H. Rogers; February 24, I844, Garwood T. Sheldon, George Robb; March 6, 1844, James V. Campbell, Michael E. Ames, Rodney D. Hill; February 28, I845, John Watson, Fred. H. Harris; March 7, 1845, Thos. P. Watson; August I, I845, Albert Crane; February 7, I846, Henry A. Schoolcraft; March 3, 1846, Levi Bishop; April 13, 1846, Edwin A. Wales; -lay 12, I846, Samuel G. Watson, David A. A. Ensworth; February 21, 1849, Wm. Gray; April 2, I850, Sears Stevens. COUNTY COURTS. An Act of October 24, 1815, provided for the holding of a County Court at Detroit until the Territory should contain another county. By the Act one chief justice and two associates were to be appointed, and sessions of the court were to begin on the first Monday of January and third Monday of June. The court was to have exclusive cognizance of all offences not capital. A further Act of April 13, 1827, provided that sessions should begin on the third Monday in January and June. All sessions were held in the Council House. By Act of April 15, 1833, the court was abolished, and the business transferred to the Circuit Courts. By Revised Statutes of I846, these courts were revived, with jurisdiction in all civil and criminal actions when the amount in controversy was not over $5oo. The judges were elected for terms of four years each, and were to be paid by the fees received. The court was abolished by the Constitution of I85o. The following is a complete list of the judges of the County Court. Prior to I846 the date of the first appointment only of each judge is given, some of them being reappointed at subsequent dates: James Abbott, chief justice, appointed October 9, 1815. Henry J. Hunt, associate justice, October 9, I815. John R. Williams, associate justice, October 9, 18i 5. John McDonnell, associate justice, January 17, 1817. John L. Leib, chief justice, June 17, 1822. Wim. A. Fletcher, chief justice, March 25, 1823. B. F. H. Witherell, associate justice, May 23, 1823. Philip Lecuyer, associate justice, December 23, 1823. B. F. H. Witherell, chief justice, June 5, 1824. Melvin Dorr, associate justice, August 4, 1824. Wm. A. Fletcher, chief justice, December 31, 1824. Henry Chipman, chief justice, December 19, 1825. Asa M. Robinson, chief justice, December 28, 1826. Shubael Conant, associate justice, April 14, 1827. Daniel Le Roy. chief justice, January I8, 1828. Melvin Dorr, chief justice, June 26, 1828. Peter Desnoyers, associate justice, June 26, 1828. Henry M. Campbell, associate justice, January 18, 1828. John McDonnell, chief justice, January I3, 1830. Wm. Bartow, associate justice, January 14, I830. Orville Cook, associate justice, July 28, 1830. Chas. Moran, associate justice, March 4, 1831. James Williams, associate justice, March 4, I831. I846 to 1850: county judge, E. Smith Lee; second judge, Cyrus Howard. In I850 B. F. H. Witherell was elected county judge and Cyrus Howard, second judge; but the new constitution, which was adopted at the same election, discontinued the County Courts, and therefore these judges did not enter upon office. Thos. Rowland was appointed clerk of the County Court on October 9, 1815. Under law of May 8, 1820, the offices of county clerk and clerk of the County Court were filled by the same person. CIRCUIT COURTS. The Act creating the Circuit Court of Wayne County was passed December 9, I800. It provided for a court to be held in \Wayne County, to begin the third Tuesday in MIay of each year. The chief duty of this court was to hear appeals from the Court of Common Pleas. The judge was to be appointed by the governor. No record can be found of the appointment of judges, or the holding of a session of a court created by the Act. By Act of April 13, 1827, provision was made, for the first time by Michigan Territory, for courts styled Circuit Courts. These were to be presided over by one of the judges of the Supreme Court of the Territory, and were given jurisdiction in civil cases when the amount involved exceeded $1,ooo. Under the Act the County of Wayne was made a circuit, and sessions of the court were to begin on the first Monday of January of each year. By Act of March 26, I836, State Circuit Courts were provided for, with jurisdiction practically the same as before. The State was divided into three circuits, and one of the Supreme Court judges was to preside in each circuit. The first circuit included the counties of Wayne, Macomb, St. Clair, Lapeer, Mackinaw, and Chippewa. By Revised Statutes of I838 the same counties, except Lapeer, were embraced in the first circuit. By law of March 25, I840, the State was divided into four circuits, and Wayne County alone constituted the first circuit. On April 30, 1848, the judges were authorized to divide the State into five circuits, and on April 8, 1851, the State was divided into eight circuits, WVayne County alone being made the third circuit. On February 12, 1853, the counties of Cheboygan and IEmmet were added to the third circuit. By law of January 29, 1858, the counties of Wayne and Cheboygan became the third circuit, and on February Io, 1859, Emmet County was again added. On March 27, I867, Cheboygan and Emmet Counties were detached, and Wayne County left as the third circuit; since whhich time no change CIRCUIT COURTS. 193 has been made in the territory embraced in this circuit. By law of March 26, 1836, in addition to the regularly appointed circuit judge, who acted as chief justice, two judges were tu be elected for each circuit, to serve as associate judges. They were to be elected at the general election for terms of four years, and toreceive three dollars per day, and mileage at the rate of three dollars for each twenty miles traveled in going to or from sessions of the court, By Revised Statutes of I846 these two judges were discontinued. By Constitution of I850 one circuit judge was to be elected on the first Monday of April, 1851, and every sixth year thereafter. In anticipation of an amendment to the constitution, which would allow of its being done, an Act of June Io, I88r, provided for three judges of the Circuit Court for the third circuit, who were to apportion the business among themselves. After the passage of this law and of the amendment, the Circuit Court-Room, in the City Hall, was divided into two rooms, and one of the jury-rooms appropriated. for a third court-room, and on January 2, 1882, the three new courts began. Under the law \'m. Jennison and John J. Speed were appointed by the governor to sit with Judge Chambers as circuit judges. The Act of 8Si provided that the State should pay $I,500 to each as part of the salary, and that the county might increase the amount to $4,o0o Accordingly the Board of Auditors, in October, i881, resolved that for the year 1882 the sum of $1, 50 should be paid in addition to the State salary, and in 1882 they fixed the additional salary for I883 at $2,000. Under Act of March, 9, 1887, there are now four judges, and the salary is $4,000 per year. Since Act of March 26, 1869, an official reporter has been connected with the court; he is appointed by the governor, and paid an annual salary of $2,000. By law of March 26, 1836, the sessions of the Circuit Court, including Wayne County, were to begin on the first Monday of April and October. On July 26 of the same year the time was changed to the third Tuesday of May and November. B3y Revised Statutes of 1838 the court sessions were to begin on the fourth Tuesday of April, August, and I)ecember. On February S, 1839, the August Term was abolished, and a law of April 19 of the same year, provided that sessions should begin on the fourth Tuesday of April and first Tuesday after second Monday of November By Act of March 25, 18 lo, sessions were to be held in Wayne County beginning on the first Tuesday of May, and also on the second Tuesday after the first Monday in November. By Revised Statutes of 1846, the circuit 13 judges were to fix the time of terms for 1846, and for every two years thereafter; since then the terms have ranged all through the calendar. In 1883 terms began on the first Monday of January, March, May, and November, and third Monday of September. Formerly the Circuit Court jurors were selected by the township supervisors and town clerk and by the assessor and aldermen of Detroit, from among tax-payers, not less than one person for every one hundred persons being selected, nor more than four hundred in all, one half as petit, and one half as grand jurors Under law of May 6, 1887, lists of jurors are selected by a board of eleven jury commissioners, appointed by the governor, eight of whom must reside in Detroit, and three outside of the city and within the county. The commissioners receive no compensation except mileage, at the rate of ten cents per mile forgoing to and returning frcm meetings of the board. It is the duty of the commissioners to divide the city territory among the city members, and the country territory among the other members, and to apportion according to the population of ea:ch district the number of names that each commissioner is to select. The names for jurors are selected from among the electors of each district, and must be persons of good character, approved integrity and sound judgment, capable of speaking the English language, and not infirm. The names are filed with the secretary of the commission, and after approval by the board as a whole, are filed in the office by the county clerk' A list of three hundred persons is returned to serve as petit jurors. and of one hundred and fifty persons to serve as grand jurors. The county clerk copies all the names on slips of paper, and puts them in a box. In drawing a jury, he takes out not less than twenty-four names, and as many more as the court may direct. Jurors are paid $2.50 per day and mileage at the rate of ten cents per mile, Under territorial rule, sessions of the court were held at the old Council House and in the Capitol. The State Court met in the City Hall, from 1836 to I844, and for one year in the Williams Building on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Bates Street. The county then erected the building on the. southeast corner of Griswold and Congress Streets; the county offices were located in the first story, and a court-room was provided above. The building had a frontage of thirty-two feet on Griswold Street, and eighty feet on Congress. It was completed on Monday, June 9, 1845, and delivered over by the contractors to the county auditors, and at ten o'clock of that day the District Court for the County commenced its sessions therein. Previous to the opening of the court, at a meeting of the 194 DISTRICT CRIMINAL COURT. members of the Bar, A. W. Buel, prosecuting attorney, offered the following resolution, which was unanimously adopted: Resolved, that the thanks of the Bar of Detroit be tendered to Messrs. Wm. B, Hunt and John Farrar, the committee appointed to superintend the construction of the new Court House of this county, and also to Messrs. Henry E. Perry and Charles Jackson, contractors and builders, for its tasteful and commodious arrangement, neatness, and simplicity of style, and its permanent and substantial character as a public and fireproof building. The building was used for the sessions of the District, County, and Circuit Courts, until the completion of the new City Hall. The march of improvement left the building in the rear, and it was sold to private parties, who tore it down. On May 31, 1871, the Bar of the city held their last and Douglass; 1857-1867, B. F. H. Witherell; 1867 and 1868, C. I. Walker; 1869, H. B. Brown; 1870- 876, Jared Patchin; 1876 to November i, 1879, C. J Reilly; November 1, 1879 to 1882, F. H. Chambers; 1882 to 1887, F. H. Chambers, J. J. Speed, Wm. Jennison; 1887, J. J. Speed, Wm. Jennison, F. H. Chambers. Wm. Look; 1888-, George Gartner, C. J. Reilly, G. S. Hosmer, H. N. Brevoort. The associate judges of the Circuit Court were: 1837-1841, Cyrus Howard, Charles Moran; 1841, R. T. Elliott, Eli Bradshaw; 1842-1845, Eli BradShaw, Ebenezer Farnsworth; 1845-1847, J. H. Bagg, J. Gunning. By Act of I836 the judges of Circuit Courts appointed the clerks of the Circuit Courts, but by the Constitution of I850 the county clerk became clerk of the court. The following persons served as clerks of the First Circuit prior to I850: 1836, John Winder; 1837-I841, Charles Peltier; I84I-1843, Theodore Williams; 1843-1845, Geo. R. Griswold; 1845 and 1846, A. Ten Eyck; 1847 and 1848, D. C. Holbrook; I849 and 1850, Silas A. Bagg. DISTRICT CRIMINAL COURT. This court, established by law of February 27, I840, for Wayne County only, was created solely to try criminal cases. The judge was appointed by the governor, and the associate judges of Circuit Courts were to sit as associates. Four terms were held yearly, beginning on the first Tuesday of March, June, September, and December. It was abolished by Act of March 9, I843, and a new law passed, providing District Criminal Courts for the State; Wayne, Oakland, Washtenaw, and Jackson Counties forming a district. B. F. H. Witherell was judge of this district during the existence of these courts, which were abolished by Act of April 3, 1848, the exclusive jurisdiction of criminal cases being then given to the county courts. FORMER COUNTY BUILDING, SOUTH EAST CORNER GRISWOLD AND CONGRESS STREETS. commemorative meeting within its walls, and a supper was served. The work of tearing down the building was commenced on June 14, 1871. The judges of the Circuit Court have been as follows: 1837-1844, George Morell; 1844-I847, D. Goodwin; 1847-1851, W. Wing; 1851-1857, S. T. CHAPTER XXXIII. MAYOR'S COURT.-RECORDER'S COURT.-P-'OLICE COURT.-SUPERIOR COURT.COMMISSIONERS.-JUSTICES.-NOTARIES.- LAWYERS.-DETROIT BAR LIBRARY. MAYOR'S COURT. The city charter of August 5, 1824, provided that the mayor, recorder, and aldermen, or any three of them, might hold a court to try offences against city laws and ordinances, and gave them the power of justices of the peace. 'he court was to be held on the second Monday of each month, and to continue three days. In later years sessions were held at such times as the council agreed upon, and two of the aldermen were designated, from time to time, to sit with the mayor. Many times the sessions were little more than a farce. The court woiuld fine or imprison, and the parties sentenced would petition the Common Council, and be released, or have their fines remitted. On June 24, I820, John Van Alter, confined in jail for riotous conduct, was released on giving his note for five dollars and thirty-seven cents, amount of costs and charges "payable to supervisor " in labor for use of the corporation. An amendment to the charter of the city, on June 29, 1832, gave the council power to compel convicts to work on the streets, with ball and chain attached. In August, 1836, several prisoners escaped while thus laboring, and on August 9r, 1837, the practice was ordered discontinued. Two years later, on June 8, 1839, the street commissioner was authorized to employ persons in jail, under sentence, to work on streets, and they were to be credited the usual prices for labor, their earnings to be applied to the payment of their fines and costs. As late as I843 prisoners were so employed. In 1857 the court was superseded by the Recorder's Court. RECORDER'S COURT. The office of recorder was created by the charter of 1824. The incumbent was to perform the duties of the mayor, in case of his absence, sickness, or death. By law of 1846 the mayor was to preside over the Mayor's Court only when the recorder was unable to do so, and from that date the office of recorder was chiefly judicial. Up to 1849 the appointments were made by the council, but after that date the office was elective. The following persons served as recorders: 1824 and I825, A. G. Whitney; 1826, J. Kearsley; 1827, E. P. Hastings; 1828, B. F. H. Witherell; I829, Joseph Torrey; 1830, A. S. Porter; 1831, H. S. Cole; 1832 and 1833, E. A. Brush; i834, A. S. Porter; 1835, H. Chipman; 1836, A. D. Fraser; 1837, Ross Wilkins; 1838, E. A. Brush; 1839, A. D. Fraser; 1840 and I842, B. F. H. Witherell; 1843, E. S. Lee; 1844, A. S. Williams; 1845-1848, E. A. Brush; 1848, J. F. Joy; I849, M. J. Bacon; 1850, 1. E. Harbaugh; I85I and 1852, J. H. Bagg; 1853, G. V.. N. Lothrop; 1854, W. A. Cook; I855 -1858, H. A. Morrow. By the almost entirely new charter of February 5, I857, the Recorder's Court took the place of the Mayor's Court, with jurisdiction in all cases of offences ai-ainst the provisions of the city charter and ordinances, and in all cases of criminal offences against State Lvw committed in Detroit, over which the police justice had not jurisdiction; also jurisdiction in all matters pertaining to the opening of streets and alleys, with some other special powers. The law creating this court took effect on January 13, I858, but the first session of the court was not held until February I following. Sessions of this court have always been held in the City Hall. By Act of March 12, 186I, the judge was to be elected every six years. Act of April 4, 1873, provided for the employment of a stenographer, and a subsequent Act of March 26, 1875, defined fully his powers, duties, and salary. Originally elected at the annual city election, under Act of February I8, 1875, the election of judge of the Recorder's Court takes place on the first Monday of April. The salary of the recorder is $4,000, part of which is paid by the State, as many offences against State law come before this court. The clerk and deputy clerk of the court are appointed by the judge for terms of six years. Lists of three hundred jurors for this court are yearly selected by jury commissioners, in the same way as for the Circuit Court; slips with the names are then placed in a jury-box, and the clerk, in presence of the judge and sheriff, under a standing order from the judge, draws out fifty names of petit jurors for each of the twelve I96 POLICE COURT.-SUPERIOR COURT. terms; out of these, on account of numerous exemptions, only a sufficient number of jurors is obtained. The lists of jurors for street-opening cases are selected by the assessors, clerk of the court, and sheriff from among the freeholders; three hundred names being selected, the jurors are drawn in the same way as for other cases. Jurors' fees in this court are $2 per day. The judges of Recorder's Court have been: From January 13, 1858, to August 18, I862, Henry A. Morrow; August 18, 1862, to January I6, 1864, B. F. H. Witherell, acting judge; January 16, 1864, to May 16, 1864, Benjamin F. Hyde; May 16, I864, to November 19, I866, B. F. H. Witherell, acting judge; November I9, 1866, to, George S. Swift. The clerks have been as follows: 1858-1860, Henry Starkey; 1860-I864, F. W. Hughes; 1864 -1874, J. t'. Meldrum; 1874-1877, A. I. McLeod; 1877-, George H. Lesher. Deputy clerks: 1873-1877, George H. Lesher; 1877-, Charles R. Bagg. POLICE COURT. This court was established by Act of April 2, I850, and is held daily. In case of any violation of State law committed in Detroit in which a justice of the peace would have jurisdiction, the police justice has power to conduct the examination, and discharge, or bind over to the Recorder's Court; he has also jurisdiction in such cases of violation of city ordinances as the Common Council shall, by ordinance, confer upon him; in some cases it is made his duty, on conviction, to sentence guilty parties to the House of Correction. He is elected at the regular charter election in November, for terms of four years. Jurors are obtained from lists supplied by board of jury commissioners, six persons composing a jury. By Act of February '7, 1857, the police justice had power to appoint a clerk, but by Act of March 20, 1863, this power was lodged with the Common Council. Since I86i the council has yearly appointed one of the regular justices of the peace as assistant police justice, to act in case of the sickness or absence of the elected justice. No one of the other courts has been moved about as much as this one. Originally holding its sessions at the office of the police justice, at number 96 Jefferson Avenue, in 1852 it was moved to the Mechanics' Hall on Griswold Street. On March I5, 186I, a fire partially burned this building, and on March I8 sessions of the court began to be held in the Congregational Church on Jefferson Avenue. The county auditors growing negligent in paying for this building, Justice Bagg received notice to quit, and not being able at once to find suitable quarters, on August 6 and 7, i861, he held sessions of the court under the poplar trees, on the site of the present City Hall, and near Michigan Avenue. The court was next held in the council-chamber of the City Hall, remaining there until the court-room, on northwest corner of Clinton and Paton Streets, was built. This building was first occupied in January, 1863. It being necessary to enlarge, the court-room, the court held sessions at Lafayette Hall, on Gratiot Avenue, near St. Antoine Street, from December Io, 1878, until February 22, 1879, when it took possession of the enlarged court-room, in the old location on Clinton Street. After the establishment of the Metropolitan Police in 1865, it was deemed desirable to provide for the summary trial of persons arrested for vagrancy, drunkenness, or disorderly conduct, as violators of city ordinances. Accordingly, on April I, I866, the Common Council established the Central Station Court, which was held at 7 A. M. by the police justice daily, up to the passage of ordinance of April 3, 1878, after which Lime it opened at 8 A. M. The city charter of 1883 made no provision for the continuation of this court, and on October 23, 1883, the Supreme Court decided that its continuance was illegal, and its sessions ceased. An Act of June 9, 1885, provided that after July 4. I886. there should be two police justices. those first elected to be chosen for two and four years each, and all subsequently elected for four years each. The same Act did away with the office of assistant police justice. The following persons served as police justices for the years named: I85o-I853, P. C. Higgins; I853-I862, B. Rush Bagg; 1862-1866, Minot T. Lane; I866-I870, Tulius Stall; 1870-1873, Albert G. Boynton; I873-1878, D. E. Harbaugh; 1878 -I886, J. Miner; 18S6-, J. Miner, E. Haug. The assistant police justices have been as follows: 186I, H. H. Swinscoe; 1862-1863, E. Fecht; 1866-I869, Joseph Kuhn; I869, S. B. McCracken; 1870, Peter Guenther; 1871-1872, F. Krecke; 1873, F. J. Barbier; 1874, Albert Scheu; I875-1876, F. J. Barbier; I877 —1878, Peter Guenther; 1879-1880, Felix A. Lempkie; i881, C. H. Borgman, I882 -1884, D. B. Willemin. The following have served as clerks of the Police Court: 1857-1861, P. McLogan; I862, P. B. Austin; 1863-1866, H. A. Schmittdiel; 1866-I867, Peter Guenther; I868, Henry Ulrich; 1869, E. E. Kane; 1870, J. H. Daly; 1871-1877, Frank A. Noah; 1877, L. I). Sale; 1878, James Daly; 1879-I882, Edwin Jerome, Jr.; 1882-, P. J. Sheahan. SUPERIOR COURT. This court was established by Acts of March 28, 1873, and February 4, I875, and the first formal COMMISSIONERS.-JUSTICES OF THE PEACE. 197 session \was held on June i, 1873. The chief features in the jurisdiction of this court were as follows: Civil actions of a transitory nature, where the debt damages exceeded $loo, might be brought before it; and suits concerning titles to, possession of, or damages to any real estate in tne city, and all actions for foreclosure of mortgages in the city, might be tried in this court; and in several particulars it had the same jurisdiction as the Circuit Court. Its first sessions were held in what is known as the Seitz Block, but in December, I877, it was moved to the Mechanics' Block, on the corner of Lafayette Avenue and Griswold Street, the city taking a lease of five years at $I,ooo a year. The first session was held there January 22, I877. On March i, 1883, the court began to use temporarily the council chamber in the City Hall, where it remained until March 14, when it began to occupy its new quarters in the Central Market Building. The salary of the judge was $4,000 per year. The county paid $1,500 towards his salary, and the city paid all the other expenses except the jury fees, which, after I879, were paid by the county Under Act of February 17, 1887, the court was abolished, and its records transferred to the Circuit Court. The last session of the court wa3 held on March 2, I887. The term for which the judge was elected was six years. The term of the first judge, Lyman Cochrane, began May I, 1873, and terminated with his death in February, I879. Judge Swift, of the Recorder's Court, filled the vacancy until the election in April, when J. Logan Chipman was chosen. By the Act of I873 the county clerk was made the clerk of the court. By amended Act of 1875 the clerk and deputy clerk were to be appointed by the judge for terms of two years, dating from January, 1876. Walter S. Harsha was the first clerk, serving till November 12, 1878, when George F. Robison was appointed; on June I, 1879, he was succeeded byJ. B. Moioney, and he on August I, I885, by W. E. I3aubee, COMMISSIONERS. Commissioners of Bail were provided for by law of November 13, 1820, and the records show that the following appointments were made: I821, January I6, Charles C. Trowbridge; I826, February s5, John Winder. The powers of this office were eventually transferred to the circuit court commissioners, and justices of the peace. The office of circuit court commissioner was created March 9, I843, and the powers belonging to it make the incumbents judges, and their office a courtroom. A commissioner has power to determine the rights of either landlord or tenant, when the title to the property is not involved; and such cases make a large share of the business brought before him. He may take bail in suits instituted to recover penalties or damages for any wrong or injury, the amount of which is not fully known, and may determine the amount of bail to be given, and the sufficiency of the surety. By Act of April 3, 1869, the power of issuing writs of habeas corpus was taken from these officers. Under Act of 1843 one commissioner was appointed for the county, by the governor and Senate. By law of April 2, 1850, two for each county, to serve for four years each, might be appointed. By Act of April 8, 185 I, the governor was authorized to appoint an additional commissioner for Wayne County, to serve till January i, I853. By Act of February I4, 1853, the governor was again authorized to appoint an additional commissioner, who was to serve until January, 1855, when two, which the same Act provided should be elected in November, 1854, were to enter upon their duties. The commissioners are paid entirely by fees; they serve for two years, and are elected at the same time as other county officers. They have been as follows: I843-I846, E. Smith Lee; 1846 -I850, Elisha Taylor; I85o and 185I, George Robb, W. T. Young; 1852, George Robb, D. A. A. Ensworth, A. Mandell; I853 and 1854, D. A. A. Ensworth, A. Mandell, W. T. Young; I855 and 1856, 1). A. A. Ensworth, R. H. Brown; 1857 and 1858, T. S. Blackmar, R. H. Brown; 1859 and I860, T. S. Blackmar, G. H. Prentis; 1861 and I862, F. B. Porter, Ervin Palmer; I863 and I864, T. S. Blackmar, G. H. Prentis; I865-I866, G. H. Prentis, T. K. Gillett; 1867, T. K. Gillett, W. S. Atwood; I868, B. T. Prentis, T. K. Gillett; 1869-i873, B. T. Prentis, E. Minnock; I873 and I874, G. H. Penniman, Henry Plass, Jr.; I875 and 1876, J. A. Randall, J. I-. Pound; 1877 and 1878, J. A. Randall, D. B. Hibbard; 1879 and 1880, J. A. Randall, H. F. Chiplan 88 - 88-88;, Charles Flowers. W J. Craig; i885-, J. M. Weiss, J. D. Canfield. JUSTICE OF THE PEACE. No office is older than this. It existed under English law, and was established in Northwest Territory August 23, 1788. On August 19, 1796, about a month after the first occupation of Detroit by the United States, Winthrop Sargent, acting governor of the Northwest Territory, commissioned several justices for Wayne County. Under the Territory of Michigan, by Act of September i6, I8io, the jurisdiction of justices was enlarged, and at the present time, with the exception of some causes specially reserved from their jurisdiction, they have original jurisdiction in all civil actions where the debt or damage does not exceed $Ioo, and also the same jurisdiction that the Superior and Circuit Courts have in civil actions, 198 NOTI ARIES. growing out of definite or implied contracts, where the debt or damage does not exceed $300. Under territorial rule justices were' appointed by the governor. By the Constitution of 1835 each township was authorized to elect four justices, to serve for four years, and by Act of March 14, 1836, Detroit, as a township, was directed to elect six instead of four justices. The city charter, as amended on March 27, 1839, directed that justices of the peace should be elected at the same time as city officers. The Revised Statutes of I846 provided that Detroit should have four justices of the peace, and on February 5, 1857, the new charter provided for the election of six justices, to serve for three years each. A law of April 25, 1883, provided for three justices of the peace for the city instead of six. A law of March 17, 1885, provided for four justices, to be elected at regular charter elections, and to be paid a salary of $;,8oo each by the county. They had been paid solely by fees. The law also provided that the county auditor should supply rooms and necessary furniture, books, etc. The clerk is nominated by the justices and approved by the county auditors. He hasa salary of $i,ooo. All fees received are required to be paid to the county treasurer. Jurors for Justices' Courts may be selected from property holders by the constable. Eighteen names being obtained, each party may strike out six names, and the remaining six form the jury. Jurors are paid fifty cents per day. The following list of the earlier justices in Wayne County and Detroit will preserve the name and memory of many citizens. The date of appointment given is the earliest date found; many of the persons were reappointed, or elected to the same office, from time to time. After I880 the names of Detroit justices are given year by year: 1796, Robert Navarre, James May, James Abbott, Louis Beaufait, Joseph Noyer, Francis Navarre, Nathan Williams; 1799, P. McNiff; I805, Peter Audrain, J. Iodemead, Stanley Griswold, Antoine Dequindre, Richard Smyth, Robert Abbott, James Henry, Wmi. McD. Scott, Matthew Ernest; 18II, Lewis Bond; 1814, George McDougall; I816, Thos. Rowland, David B. McComb; 1817, John L. Leib; I818, John McDonnell; 1820, James D. Doty, John Sturgis, John J. Deming; 1821, Jacob Visger; 1822, Wm. W. Petit, John A. Rucker; I823, V. Spaldinge Benj. Woodruff; 1824, Wm. Bucklin, John Burbank, B. F. H. Witherell; 1825, O. W. Whitmore, Elisha W. Ramsey, Orville Cook, Amariah Ransom, Selak Neale; 1826, H. S. Cole; I827, Jonathan Kearsley, Joseph Baron, Joseph Hickcox, Prosper Lawrence; I828, J. D. Davis, B. F. Fox, Wm. Bartow, Seth Dunham, Philo Taylor, David Smith, Marcus Swift, Ells Doty, Daniel Goodell, Wm. Little, Joel Thomas; 1829, Martin Clark; 1830, D. R. Rose, A. McNath, Matthew Wood, Nathaniel Case, Jed Hunt, Alva Swift, J. F. Chubb, Rolman Stoddard, Henry Sprague, Artemas Hosmer, A. C. Truax; 1831, Ara Sprague, Matthew Wood, Benajah Holbrook. Roswell Root, H. D. Holbrook, Wm. Yerkes, Eli Bradshaw; 1832. Levi Williams, C. S. Hooker, D. L. Cody, G. W. Ferrington, R. D. Smith, John Kirby; i833, Samuel Torbert, Henry Chipman, Asher 13. Bates, John W. Strong, Juba Barrows, Peter Van Every; 1834, Jason Tyler, T. E. Schooler, Levi Farnsworth, Philandei Bird, Thos. Harper, Hiram Wilmarth, James Safford, Ezra Derby, Paul Rice, Cyrus Howard, Russell Ransom, Ammon Brown; 1835, A. A. Bird, Marshall J. Bacon, I. S, Saunders, Chas. J. Irving, Lambert Beaubien, Thos. Lewis, John Simpson, Titus Dort, J. F. Pullen, Hiram Whitman, Warren Tuttle, David Cable, H. A. Noyes, Amos Stevens. Amna Bradford, John Fairbanks, Nathaniel Case, John Clark, Thos. Downs, Claude Campau, Martin Greenman, E. J. Roberts, D. W. Smead; 1837, D. E. Harbaugh, B. F. H. Witherell, L. Goodell, C. Moran, H. V. Disbrow; I840, S. Conant, Ezra Williams; 1841, Peter Desnoyers; 1842, G. A. O'Keefe; I843, Thos. Williams, J. B. Watson; I844, Hugh O'Beirne, Wm. T. Young, F. H. Harris; 146, George Clancy; I847, Chas. Peltier; 1848, Wm. Cook; I849, Thos. Christian; I850, Wm. Walker; I852, B. Rush Bagg, J. J. Cicotte; 1853, G. Spencer; I855, Elisha Chase, Henry Chase; I856, M. T. Lane, S. P. Purdy, G. B. Ensworth; I857, Stephen Martin; I859, Eugene Fecht; I860, Joseph Kuhn, Julius Stoll; I86I, H. H. Swinscoe; 1863, John Fuller, T. McCarthy; I866, S. B. McCracken, P. B. Austin; I869, Alois Wuerth, Peter Guenther; 1870, A. Ladue, A. Stutte; 1871, Florens Krecke, F. J. Barbier; 1872, Herman Kuhn, J. 0. Melick, H. Z. Potter; 1873, Albert Scheu; I874, S. J. Martin; I876, D. B. Brown, F. A. Lemkie, A. G. Comstock; 1878, Alexander Toll, John Weber; I880, S. D. Craig, John Patton, D. Sheehan, C. H. Borgman; I88i, John Weber, S. D. Craig, John Patton, D. Sheehan, C. H. Borgman, D. B. Willemin;.882, F. A. Lemkie, S. D. Craig, John Patton, I). Sheehan, C. II. Borgman, D. B. Willemin; 1883 and 1884, Walter Ross, F. A Lemkie, John Patton, D. Sheehan, C. H. Borgman, D. B. Willemin; 1885 and i886, F. A. Lemkie, W. Ross, John Patton, H. A. Robinson; 1887-, J. C. Gibson, \V. Ross, J. Patton, H. A. Robinson. NOTARIES. Under the Northwest Territory notaries were appointed by the governor. In January, I799, F. D. Bellecour was appointed by Winthrop Sargent. LAWYERS.-DETROIT BAR LIBRARY. I99 Notaries are now appointed by the governor and Senate. Their number is not limited; their commissions hold good for four years, and they are paid solely by fees received. Their power consists in taking depositions of parties who wish, under oath, to confirm any statement they may make, taking acknowledgments of deeds, mortgages, sealed instruments of any kind, and issuing notices of protest for non-payment of notes. LAWYERS. The members of the legal profession are chiefly congregated on Griswold Street. Whole blocks in this vicinity are fitted up with offices and suites of rooms especially for their accommodation, provided with every convenience in the way of elevators, vaults, and steam-heating apparatus. Among the buildings devoted chiefly to lawyers' offices are the Moffat, Miller, Buhl, Seitz, Burns, Lewis, Butler, Telegraph, and Mechanics' Blocks, and the Newberry and McMillan and Campau Buildings. By law of Northwest Territory the power to grant the privilege of practicing law was vested in the governor. By law of Michigan Territory, of February 23, I809, attorneys were to be licensed only by the judges of the Supreme Court. A law of October I, 1820, provided that any two judges of the Supreme Court might admit to practice. On August 31, 1821, a legislative Act was passed admitting S. B. Beach to practice as an attorney. At the present time, under State law, persons of good moral character, resident in the State, and twenty-one years of age, are admitted to practice in the several courts, upon passing a satisfactory examination before the court, or, as is usually the case, before a committee appointed for this purpose by the court. A large number of the lawyers are united in an organization called " The Association of the Bar of the City of Detroit," established under an Act of the Legislature, on May io, 1881. The following original officers were still serving in 1883: President, Theodore Romeyn; Secretary, H. M. Cheever; Treasurer, Robert P. Toms. Not a few pungent anecdotes could be told concerning members of the Detroit Bar. Of the many brilliant and witty retorts that have relieved the tedium of court cases, the following will serve as a specimen: A case was on trial in the Circuit Court, and each side was present with a formidable array of attorneys and counsel. The late A. D. Fraser was to make the closing argument for the defence. He commenced by saying that he had listened with care to all the evidence, had examined all the points of law, and digested the facts in the case; and having done so, he felt fully acquainted with its merits,-so fully, indeed, that he was willing to represent it, and in fact he stood as the right bower of the defence. Turning to the then young attorney on the opposing side (James V. Campbell) he said, "Perhaps my young Sunday School friend does not know what the right bower is?" " Oh yes," said the present judge of the Supreme Court, " we know what it is; it's the biggest knave in the pack." DETROIT BAR LIBRARY. The nucleus of a Bar Library must have been formed as early as May 19, 1838, as a vote of the Common Council, on that date, gave a room in the City Hall, as a consultation and library room, to the " Bar of the City of Detroit." The next effort was made on December 15, I851; a meeting of lawyers was then held, and on motion of G. V. N. Lothrop a committee of five was appointed to consider the subject of establishing a law library. The committee apparently never reported, atl finally, on July 6, 1853, a paper, evidently drawn up by Judge C. O'Flynn, was circulated among the lawyers, asking for subscriptions of one hundred dollars each towards a 'fund for the purchase of books, and authorizing Judge O'Flynn to draw up Articles of Association for a Bar Library. Geo E. Hand, C. O'Flynn, G. V. N. Lothrop, C. I. \Valker, T. W. Lockwood, Levi Bishop, and Wm. Gray united in calling a meeting, and the Association was organized on July 21, 1853. A constitution was adopted, the provisions of which fixed the capital stock at $I 5,ooo, to be represented by one hundred and fifty shares, at one hundred dollars per share. The following were the first officers: President, Geo. E. Hand; Treasurer, T. W. Lockwood; Secretary, J. V. Campbell; Librarian, Sears Stevens. A room in the rotunda was rented, and the library duly established. The number of books at commencement was estimated at about six hundred volumes, valued at $3,000. At a meeting of the stockholders on July 13, I867, it appeared that the cash valuation of the library was $8,437.67, subject to a debt of $2,000, due to A. S. Bagg for books. At this meeting the stock was equalized among the stockholders, according to the amount each had paid in; and soon afterwards twenty-two shares of stock were issued, for the purpose of paying debts and furnishing more books. In July, I868, the library was removed to the Buhl Block, on the southwest corner of Griswold and Congress Streets. On October 5, I868, Judge Hand resigned the presidency, which he had held since 1853, and Chas. I. Walker was elected in his place. On February I4, 1874, Mr. Walker resigned, and H. K. Clarke was elected. In 1876 Ashley Pond became president. In I87I the library was removed to the Seitz 200 DETROIT BAR LIBRARY. Building, fronting on Congress Street; in I 880 to the Newberry and McMillan Building, and in I885 back to the Seitz Building. On January 2, 1874, the shelves contained 3,I63 volumes, valued at $14,ooo. It was then decided that at least $2,500 was necessary to perfect the sets, and forty new shares of stock were ordered to be issued. The yearly dues, payable quarterly, in January, April, July, and October, are as follows: ten dollars for attorneys of less than two years' standing; twenty dollars for attorneys of over two, and not exceeding four years' standing; thirty-five dollars for attorneys of over four, and not exceeding eight years' standing; all others sixty dollars; for law firms of two members, sixty per cent for the second member; for law firms of three members, one hundred per cent for the two additional per sons,-the rate to be added to be determined by the standing of the oldest member of the firm. A dividend of not more than six per cent is allowed stockholders. The capital stock and shares remain as fixed at the time of organization, and about one hundred and twenty shares are paid for. The yearly expenses of management are about $I,ioo. The annual meeting is held on the last Monday in January of each year, at Io A. M. The library is open from eight in the morning to half-past twelve, and from two to half-past five in the afternoon, each week day, Miss Helen Norton has been librarian since January, 1876. Law libraries, for the special benefit of themselves and their tenants, were established in I880 by the owners of the Buhl and Mechanics' Blocks. CHAPTER XXXIV. MORALS.-CITY MARSHALS. POLICE.-SHERIFF S.-P ROSECUTING ATTORNEYS.CONSTABLES. MORALS. LIKE any other settlement of a semi-military character, the morals of Detroit, almost from the first, needed some mending. On June I4, I704, Count Pontchartrain, in a letter to Cadillac, said, I recommend that you have a care that the service of God be conducted with decency, and that debauchery and blasphemy be banished from the post, and everything be conducted in order." From the general tenor of Cadillac's letters there can be no doubt that he endeavored to carry out the spirit of these suggestions; but there were men continually hovering about, and occasionally, for a length of time, inhabiting the post, whose presence made impossible the prevention of disorder. The coureurs de bo/as were, in the majority of cases, guilty of every excess; profane, licentious, and drunken, they made a business of corrupting the savages, and it was wellnigh impossible to control their actions. The various wars in which the settlement bore a part aggravated all existing moral disorder. The War of 1812 was especially detrimental and disturbing. Many, in both armies, were reckless and dissipated to a degree that would not now be tolerated. In 1817 the Rev. Mr. Monteith said, "Trhe profaneness of the soldiers exceeds anything I ever imagined. There is no Sabbath in this country." Rev. Dr. Alfred Brunson, who was here in I822, confirmed the general statement of Mr. Monteith, he said: When I first caine to the place, Sunday markets were as common as week-day ones. The French brought in their meats, fowls, vegetables, etc., on Sunday as regularly as on week-days. After selling out they would go to church, attend mass, and, perhaps, confess, and pay for absolution out of their market money, and then go home apparently in good spirits. Nor did the American and foreign population generally pay any more respect to the day, for they patronized the thing to the fullest extent. On this practice I proclaimed a war of extermination. At first it made a stir. But a young Presbyterian preacher, who was there, joined me in the denunciation of the practice, and, in a short time, the city council decreed that Sunday markets should cease, and in place thereof a market should be opened on Saturday night. This raised a great fuss among the French, who, from time immemorial, had thus broken the Sabbath, and, after market, gone to mass, then to the horse-races in the afternoon, and fiddled and danced and played cards at night; but they made a virtue of necessity, and soon yielded to authority and gave up the Sunday market, but adhered to the other practices. A proceeding that savored of the old Blue Laws occurred on Sunday, June 12, 1825, and caused much local excitement. On the morning of that day, Adna Merritt, the marshal of the city, found eight or ten soldiers fishing on the public wharf. He ordered them to put up their lines, or go elsewhere. They refused. He then went away, soon after returning with a posse of citizens, some of whom he had summoned from church for the purpose of helping in the arrest. On their arrival at the wharf the soldiers put up their lines, but demurred at being arrested; they finally concluded, however, to offer no resistance, and were marched off and confined in jail. The whole of Monday and Tuesday were taken up with their trial, and Wednesday they were discharged. As the town grew, some forms f evil were supplanted by others, but the standard of morality has certainly improved with the passing of the years. Crime has been compelled to hide from public gaze, and habits that once were tolerated and condoned would now debar from good society. The increased independence of the press acts as a preventive to open and gross immorality, compelling purity, or at least privacy, society being the gainer in either case. The city government has usually acted upon the clearly expressed wishes of the citizens. A most remarkable illustration of this was the actual demolition, by order of the Common Council, of a house of evil resort, occupied by T. Slaughter and Peg Welch. It had become so intolerable a nuisance, and its inmates, withal, were so hedged about with technical rights, that it seemed useless to attempt its suppression by legal measures. On November 9, 1841, Alderman Bagg offered the following resolution: Resolved, that the marshal is hereby empowered and directed to proceed on Wednesday, the seventeenth inst., with sufficient force and apparatus, to the corner of Randolph Street aud Michigan Avenue, and pull down and so demolish all the buildings hitherto owned and occupied by Slaughter, Peg Welch & Co. as will forever incapacitate them from being used as the abode of human beings, to the end that not only retributive justice shall be visited on those who have been guilty of such practices, but as a precedent to others who may come after them, and a warning tc those that already exist in the city of their impending fate. L201] - 202 CITY MIARSHALS.-P'OLICE., 202 ~ ~ ~. CIT MASAL. POLC On Noverhber i6 the resolution was called up, and adopted by vote of seven to four, and before nine o'clock the next morning the city marshal and a posse of helpers had torn down and demolished the obnoxious domicile. Suit was brought against them for so doing, and on November 23 the city attorney and A. D. Fraser were authorized to defend them. In June, 1857, the citizens of the tenth ward (then newly added to the city) were also greatly annoyed by the presence of similar establishments. After trying various methods, fire was applied, and numerous houses were deliberately burned, in order to drive away the characters that congregated therein. CITY MARSHAL. The office of city marshal was provided for in October, I802. The duties of the marshal were to enforce the ordinances of the town, and he acted also as chief constable; by Act of April 15, 18 6, he was specially designated as a police officer. By ordinance of March 6, 1832, the marshal's salary was fixed at $I50, which was increased in I836 to $600. On the creation of the present police system, in 1865, the office was abolished. The following persons served as city marshals: I802, Elias Wallen; I805, John Connor; 1817, John Meldrum. Duncan Reid; I818, H. O. Bronson; I819, Melvin Dorr; I820, J. W. Colburn; I82I, Robert Garratt, S. Sherwood; 1822-I823, Smith Knapp; 1824, Griffith Roberts, Adna Merritt; I825. Adna Merritt; 1826, S. Sherwood; 1827, Jed Hunt; 1828, S. Sherwood; I829, Adna Merritt; I830, E. S. Swan; I831, E. S. Swan, Alex. Campbell; 1832, Alexander Campbell; I833, J. Scott; I834, I. Noble; 1835, H. L. Woolsey; 1836, David Thompson; 1837, A. McArthur; 1838, J. J. Garrison; 1839, Albert Marsh; 1840, E. C. Bancroft; 1841, E. C. Bancroft, A. H. Stowell; 1842, A. H. Stowell, M. L. Gage; 1843, M. L. Gage, D. Thompson; 1844-I846, D. Thompson; I846-I848, J. P. Whiting; 1848, Geo. Miller, Ebenezer Benham; I849, Ebenezer Benham, James Beaubien; I850-I852, John Warren; I852, J. W. Daly; 1853, W. H. Barse; 1854-1856, Eli Laderoot; I856-1858, P. McGinnis; i858-I86o, Chas. Miller; I860-1863, John B. Stadler; I863-1865, Daniel Mahoney. POLICE. Sentinels and military patrols were familiar sights in Detroit in the early days of its settlement. When the regular patrol of troops ceased, the inhabitants felt the need of some other protection; and therefore, on August 31, 1804, an ordinance was passed by the trustees " for the better police, and in order to insure additional security for the town, from the dangers to be apprehended from Indians, as well as other persons, and from fire etc." The following were some of the provisions of the ordinance. A patrol was to be formed, "who in regular rotation shall be employed as a nightly watch; said watch shall be composed of five persons, and shall take up, question, and confine in the watch-house all individuals and riotous persons found in the streets, or elsewhere within the limits of said town after the commencement of this watch; and all persons after eleven o'clock, who can give no satisfactory account of themselves." And " on observing light in any house after eleven o'clock, to inquire the occasion of it, lest it should be burningwithout the knowledge of the family." John Dodemead was charged with the execution of this ordinance, and the court-house was set apart as the watch-house. The police were to assemble at 9 P. M. at the court-house, and not to depart, except to patrol, "till daylight in the morning." It will be seen that this was practically a night watch, that no day duties were prescribed or provided for. The next step in the police government was the appointment, on May II, 1805, of John Connor as police officer. He was also clerk of the market. and the evident purpose of the appointment was to preserve order at the market, rather than in the town; this is confirmed by the fact that, as early as I8oI, township constables were appointed, whose duties comprised those of a police officer. The organization of a night-watch seems to have been a favorite project, and was frequently attempted, but the old records indicate that these endeavors, even when successful, were short-lived. On December 19, I821, the Board of Trustees resolved "that it is the sense of the meeting that a watch should be established to protect the city at night " and " to attend to the general police of the same," especially in relation to fire. We next find the following, in the council proceedings for March 2, 1825: In consequence of a supposed attempt to fire the city during the previous night, at a meeting of the Common Council and Freemen, a subscription paper was drawn up, and signed by a sufficient number of those present, for a volunteer watch, to be kept up until other and permanent measures for the safety of the city can be taken. Soon after, on March 15, an ordinance was passed regulating this city patrol, and making it their duty to cry "Fire!" in case of a conflagration, and tell on what street it was. On account of the riot in June, 1833, at the time the- colored man Blackburn and his wife were arrested as slaves, a public meeting was held, and it was resolved "that it is expedient to establish a city watch, to consist of sixteen persons, efficiently armed, with one officer in command." This nightwatch was organized, and kept up for nearly three POLICE. 203 months. In July one hundred and five dollars, and in September one hundred and twenty-nine dollars and sixty-six cents, were paid for their services. About this time the city commenced to grow more rapidly, and among the population were many children who so annoyed the citizens by petty thieving that a meeting was held on December 24, 1834, and a Society for the Suppression of Felony organized. On January 2, 1835, the propriety of establishing a night-watch was again taken into consideration by the council; on the 15th of the same month an ordinance was passed relating thereto; on the 29th two captains and ten watchmen were appointed; on the I4th of the month following the city marshal reported that two of the captains and four of the men were drunk and disorderly, and on the 28th the ordinance was repealed. The excitement connected with the Patriot War made a night-watch again necessary, and on June 13, 1838, one was organized, and Colonel E. Brooks appointed captain, with power to appoint his helpers. They served but a few weeks. Towards the close of the year the same excitement caused the re-establishment of a watch, and on December 4 a force of forty men were appointed, not less than ten of them to be on duty each night. On the next day the excitement had so increased that in order to preserve the peace one hundred and fifty prominent citizens were appointed as an additional patrol. On May 9, 1839, two persons from each ward were appointed by the council as a night-watch, one to serve every other night, and to be paid two dollars for such service. On September 29, I84I, a volunteer watch was organized, but they soon wearied of their self-imposed task. In the fall of 1843 house-breaking and thieving prevailed to such an extent that a temporary nightwatch was again established. In August, 1845, the same reasons again induced the organization of a volunteer watch. A meeting of this city watch was held on September 23 at Firemen's Hall, the mayor acting as chairman, and F. F. Merceron as secretary. Alfred Brush was chosen captain-general of the watch, and the mayor offered the following: Resolved, that the city watch since its organization, although composed principally of citizens owning little or no property, have done their duty as watchmen; and, as not a single fire or burglary has occurred, as the streets have been cleared of rioters and rowdies, and the city kept perfectly quiet, the watch are therefore entitled to the warmest thanks of every well-meaning citizen. The following item, from the Advertiser of October 2, I845, gives an idea of the need of such a watch and of the difficulties it encountered. and indicates some features of its management: CITY WATCH.-Efforts are being made to enlarge the number and efficiency of our volunteer city watch. We suggest to our citizens that supplies of fuel and refreshments will be very acceptable to the watchmen during the approaching long, cold nights. Will they not see to it? On October 6, 1845, the following appeared: Suppose the store of one of our wealthy merchants, who refuses to assist in sustaining a watch, and who replies to all applications that they can protect their own property, should be entered by thieves or burglars, and the watch should seize them in the act, would not the owner begin at last to see the necessity of such protection? If they can be protected by others, and at others' expense, they are quite content, and see no need of a watch! It is desirable to see some relaxation of this illiberality, to see our respectable merchants and business men, lawyers, doctors, and ministers come forward and take upon themselves, personally, the functions of watchmen, and contribute in providing rooms, refreshments, and fuel for their accommodation. A new company (No. 7) is to be organized in a few days, and it is to be hoped its ranks will be cheerfully and promptly filled. During the same month this notice was published by order of the City Watch: Resolved, that the thanks of this company be tendered to IMr;. F. Buhl and Mrs. J. L. King for sumptuous refreshments furnished this company on the nights of the 3d and I8th inst. Resolved, in consideration of the fact that most of those connected with the City Watch at its organization, owning property in the city,-they, of all others, most interested in its welfare,have, since the weather became cold and disagreeable, almost without exception, withdrawn from the watch; therefore Resolved, that we, as members of Company B of the volunteer watch, owning little or no property in the city, do hereby agr e upon the adjournment of this meeting to disband as a company, and withdraw as individuals from the City Watch, for reasons set forth in the foregoing resolution. In November, 1845, the following item appeared: We learn an effort is being made to revive the volunteer nightwatch, but the active co-operation of those most interested in the security of the city will be indispensable. The want of this led to the abandonment of the former watch. Since then burglaries, night robberies, and thefts have again become frequent. This appeal was successful, and the new watch lasted till October, 1846, when the council thanked them, and dispensed with their services. Three years later, on September 2, 1849, the great number of disorderly persons present in the city again caused the organization of a volunteer watch. The captains for the evenings of each day were as follows: Sunday, John B. Long; Monday, G. Mott Williams; Tuesday, Marshall J. Bacon; Wednesday, Colonel A. S. Williams; Thursday, Kin S. Dygert; Friday, Alderman Duncan; Saturday, Geo. W. Pattison. Like its numerous predecessors, this watch soon disbanded, and in the spring of 1851 a paid night-watch, under the control of the city, was temporarily provided. The question of creating a permanent and salaried city watch was fully discussed in 1854, and on July 3, at a citizens' meeting, a committee of aldermen reported the following as the probable yearly cost: Twenty-four watchmen, at ten shillings per day, $ro,95o; one captain, $I,ooo; two assistant captains, at twelve shillings per day, $I,o95; contingencies, $1,955. Total, $I 5,ooo. The estimated expense alarmed the tax-payers, and the meeting voted it inexpedient to organize the watch. The next effort, inaugurated on January 24, 204 POLICE. 1859, by R. H. Wright, was purely of a private and personal character, and resulted in the formation of the Merchants' Police, a force consisting of five men, who patrolled certain business blocks and acted as night-watchmen; their services were paid for by regular subscriptions from the merchants whose premises were protected. This force was continued about six months. An attempt was next made to organize a Police Commission, under a charter amendment of March 12, 1861, which provided that the mayor and two other persons, to be selected by the council, should constitute a Board of Police Commissioners. The chief of police was to be appointed by the council on nomination by the board, and the council were to appoint temporary policemen, for forty-eight hours when necessary; the aldermen were also invested with the powers of policemen. These provisions, which were only partially carried into effect, were substantially re-enacted on February 4, 1864, when the powers and duties of the board were defined at length. Neither of these amendments seemed to meet the necessities of the case or the wishes of the citizens. They served a good purpose as preliminary efforts, but practically had only the value of suggestions. The demoralization naturally growing out of the protracted war with the South, and the fact that some of the constables, elected from time to time by popular suffrage, needed themselves to be watched, caused the want of a regular and responsible police force to be increasingly realized. Under the Act of March 12, I861, C. H. Buhl and Alexander Chapoton had been associated with the mayor as police commissioners. They resigned, and on August 5, I862, William Barclay and C. W. Jackson were appointed. Mr. Barclay soon resigned, and E. V. Cicotte was appointed in his place. Early in 1863 Mr. Cicotte was succeeded by E. A. Brush, and the board, in I864, consisted of C. W. Jackson, E. A. Brush, and the mayor. During these years the question of a more thorough police system was repeatedly brought before the council. On February io, I863, two reports were submitted, one in favor of, and one opposed to, the organization of a salaried force. One of the reports stated that " within the last three months almost every crime in the catalogue of crimes has been committed in Detroit." The following estimate of the expense of maintaining a police force was submitted: Chief of police, $i,ooo; assistant police, $800; turnkey, $600; twenty-two policemen, at $1.50 per day, $I2,445; lock-up, office expenses, etc., $2,ooo. Total. $I6,445. By this time the " Ides of March " were at hand, and the riot of March 6, 1863, with its brutal attacks upon the colored people, the killing of sev eral, and the burning of their houses, helped many citizens to the decision that a system such as'we now have was a necessity; and on March 17 the Board of Police Commissioners, by resolution of Alderman Purcell, were requested to report a plan of organization for a paid police force as soon as possible. Nothing was done, however, until August 5, when an anticipated draft, and the almost constant fear of a rebel raid from Canada, caused the council to establish a temporary police of twenty-five men, who were continued only about a week. The almost daily evidence of the city's needs kept up interest in the police question; and in April, I864, the council requested the comptroller to report an estimate for a police force, to consist of a chief, one clerk, two captains, and forty men; and also the cost of an appropriate station-house. Finally, and largely through the efforts of Alderman J. J. Bagley, on February 28, I865, the Legislature passed an Act establishing the Metropolitan Police Commission, to consist of four persons. The commission is noticeable as being the only branch of city government over which the city has no direct control, the commissioners being appointed by the governor, with the approval of the Senate, for terms of four years. In theory they are State officers, and in practice, city officials. They are accountable to the governor, and to the State through him, for all their official acts. The generally faithful execution of the laws, and the keeping of the force out of local politics, have repeatedly demonstrated the advantage and wisdom of the system. The first meeting of the commission under the Act was held on March 9, I865. The force was duly organized on May 15 following. The Act, at first, met with great opposition from the city marshal, constables, and deputy sheriffs, whose services were practically dispensed with; mere politicians opposed it because its enforcement would leave fewer places to be disposed of as the reward of political services; and conservative old citizens opposed it because it involved increased taxation. When the commission first organized, they necessarily sought the advice and co-operation of the council; but the council seemed indisposed to countenance, in any way, the action of the board, and their communications were invariably tabled. On May 30, 1865, by vote of twelve to four, the council passed resolutions disapproving of the Act, but recommending that its provisions be obeyed until its constitutionality could be passed upon; that was called in question on the ground that the city was compelled to pay for the support of officers over whom it had no direct control. On October I6, I865, the Supreme Court decided that the Act was constitutional; and as the years have passed, the 'best citizens of all parties have conceded its TriT Tr-' Ir"t usefulness, and take increasing pride in the organization and its management. Since the passage of the original Act, three additional Acts pertaining to the board have been passed. An Act of March 9, 1867, defined in greater detail the powers of the board, gave increased power in some particulars, and authorized the detail of policemen to perform the duties of the sealer of weights and measures, and to collect license fees for the city; it also gave the board power to suppress gambling, to sell unclaimed property after keeping it six months, and to provide food and lodging, if necessary, for persons arrested. A further Act of April 15, 1871, remedied some technical defects of the previous law, and legalized such portion of the acts of the Board of Police Commissioners as had been illegally performed. The commissioners receive no compensation. Regular meetings are held on the last secular day of each month, at three o'clock in the afternoon. Their duties are: to preserve the public peace; to prevent crime; to arrest offenders; to protect the rights of persons and property; to guard the public health; to preserve order; to remove nuisances existing in public streets, yards, and outhouses; to report to the proper authorities all leaks and defects in water-pipes and sewers; to provide a sufficient force at every public fire, in order that the firemen may be protected in the performance of their duties, and the property preserved to its owners; and to protect strangers and travelers at steamboat and ship landings and railroad stations; they may also serve warrants in any part of the State, and are required generally to enforce and carry out all ordinances of the city and laws of the State. The following is a list of the commissioners: J. S. Farrand, from February 28, I865, to February I, 1873; L. M. Mason, from February 28, I865, to July 12, I869; J. J. Bagley, from February 28, 1865, to August 24, 1872; Alexander Lewis, from February 28, 1865, to February I, 1875; C. M. Garrison, from February I, 1875, to December 9, 1876; J. E. Pittman, from February i, 1873, to May i, 1885; S. D. Miller, from July 12, 1869; M. S. Smith, from August 24, 1872; H. MI. Dean, from December 9, 876; W. C. Colburn, from May r, I885. Upon the organization of the commission, in i865, Frank G. Russell was appointed secretary. He resigned on April 24, i866, and on May I6 James S. Booth was appointed. His failing health necessitated his resignation on October I3, I873, and five days later Lincoln R. Meserve was appointed his successor. Theodore A. Drake was the first superintendent of police. He resigned September 30, 1865, leaving Captain M. V. Borgman as acting superintendent; and on August, y, 1866, he was appointed superintendent. On December 2, 1873, he _L__i. 205 resigned, and Stephen K. Stanton was appointed, with Captain Andrew J. Rogers as deputy. On March 25, 1876, Rogers was appointed superintendent. He resigned January 31, 1882. and on April 24 was succeeded by E. F. Conely, who resigned and was succeeded on May i, 1885, by James E. Pittman. The office of deputy superintendent was provided for by law of I887, and on June 29, I887. M. V. Borgman was appointed to the position. On March i, 1867, the office of surgeon was created. Dr. D. O. Farrand was the first appointee. His successor, Dr. J. B. Book, was appointed in June, I883. The office of attorney of the board was created April I, 1867. J. Logan Chipman filled the position to May I, 1879, when he was succeeded by W. A. Moore. The names of the captains and the dates of their appointment are as follows: P. N. Girardin, October 25, I865, died December 31, 1882; C. C. Starkweather, December 31, 1873; W. H. Myler, June 30. 1875; Joseph Burger, September 30, 1882; Jesse Mack, June I, 1883. The officers of the police force rank in the following order: superintendent, captains, sergeants, roundsmen, patrolmen, doormen. A regular system of promotion is adhered to; vacancies occurring in the office of captains must be filled from the sergeants, and vacancies in sergeancies from the regular force. The original law provided that the superintendent should receive no more than $2,000 yearly; the captains not over $1,200; the sergeants not more than $I,ooo; and the regular patrolmen not to exceed $900 per year. A law of March 14, 1882, gave the commissioners power to determine the salaries, and from February I, 1882, the salary of the superintendent has been $4,000. The salaries of other members of the force are as follows: captains, $I,200; sergeants, $900; patrolmen, $750. Out of these salaries the men pay for their uniforms, which cost from seventy-five to one hundred dollars each. Each member of the police force must be able to read and write the English language; must be a citizen of the State of Michigan, and a resident of the city for the two years next preceding his appointment. He must not be over forty years of age, nor under twenty-one; and must possess good health and a sound body, be of steady habits and of good moral character, and must never have been convicted of crime. Each member of the force is required to devote his whole time and attention to the business of the department, and he is expressly prohibited from being employed in any other business. He must be civil and orderly; must at all times refrain from violence, coarse, profane, and insolent language, 206 POLICE. and, while on duty, is not allowed to drink any kind of liquor, nor smoke, nor (except in the immediate performance of duty) enter any place in which intoxicating drinks of any kind are sold or furnished. Policemen are also prohibited from receiving or sharing, for their own benefit, in any fee, gift, or emolument for police service, other than the regular salary, except by unanimous consent of the commissioners; they are not allowed to belong to any fire or military company, or to go on target or pleasure excursions, except by order of the superintendent; they are also-required, while on duty, to avoid all religious or political discussions, and all interference, or use of their influence as officers, in elections; they are not allowed to solicit, nor can they be obliged to contribute anything for political purposes; they are required to keep careful supervision of all disorderly houses, or houses of evil repute, within their beats, to observe by whom they are frequented, and to report their observations to the commanding officer. Patrolmen are forbidden to walk together, or to talk with each other, or with any person, while on duty, unless it is to communicate briefly information appertaining to their business. Sergeants and patrolmen, when on duty, are required to display their badges, so that the entire surface of the same may be easily and distinctly seen. The following official suggestions to policemen indicate interesting and important details of their duties: As a peace-officer, his first duty should be to set a good example by being good-humored and polite while on duty. As a sentinel, he should always be wary and vigilant, for although there seems to be no immediate necessity for watchfulness, there is no knowing when an emergency will suddenly arise in a great city. Restraint by authority is never popular neither to children nor men. Authority is, therefore, to be exercised with coolness, and by always keeping the temper. Men offend in trivial matters as much from carelessness and negligence as from design. Cautionary words are sometimes more valuable than arrests. Diplomacy is oftentimes as great a weapon to the policeman, in his intercourse with his fellow-citizens, and in dealing with abuses, as it is to the general or statesman. Among all the trite sayings of the world, there is none more useful for the policeman to remember than this, " An ounce of prevention is worth a pound of cure." The public man who quells any trouble in its inception is as much worthy of remembrance as one who redresses an evil of already increasing magnitude. Every good citizen will say " Amen " to these suggestions, and the more closely they are attended to, the greater will be the respect paid to the force, and the more agreeable to fearful and restless citizens will be the thud of the policeman's club. The criminal classes respect the badge and the club, but good citizens honor the guardian of their homes, and gladly recognize his worth. Complaints are sometimes made that members of the force are needlessly officious or severe; but when the total number of the force, and the variety of annoying business attended to, is considered, it becomes evident that the commissioners have been remarkably fortunate in their selection of men. The force is in two general divisions, one for day, the other for night duty. The day force is on duty for eleven hours, the night force for eight hours. About two thirds of the force are usually on night duty, and the men are changed from night to day duty in alternate months as far as practicable. By a complete system of card registries, the superintendent can tell at any hour of the day or night in just what locality each member of the force is stationed. In I868 a sergeant and ten policemen were detailed for the purpose, and a complete census of the city taken in ten days. On October 9, I871, at a special meeting of the council, called on account of the prevailing dry.weather and the consequent great danger from fire, the police commissioners were requested to temporarily appoint three hundred extra policemen, the council appropriating $5,000 to pay for their services. A large number of extra police were accordingly sworn in, and about half of the appropriation used. In i886 thirty-nine special patrolmen, appointed without expense to the city, were on duty at the post-office, depots, theaters, large manufacturing establishments, etc. They report at headquarters between the 1st and the 7th of each month. Some portion of the regular force is always employed in special duties. The sanitary squad, consisting of eight men, under control of a sergeant, attends to the enforcement of all laws and ordinances relating to the public health, and also collects the State liquor tax. Under Act of April 17, 1871, scavengers were authorized to be appointed by the Police Department. By charter amendment of I879 an inspector of slaughter-houses and meats is appointed by the commissioners; and since June i, 188I, a patrolman has been detailed to catch and destroy unlicensed dogs. Since I867 a policeman has acted as inspector of the weights and measures used in the city. One policeman is detailed to look specially after juvenile offenders, and acts in conjunction with the county agent of the State Board of Charities and Corrections. The county agent examines all children under sixteen charged with crime, and decides what disposition of them will probably best serve their interests and those of the community. his decision being made the basis of the court decisions in all such complaints. From 1875 to 18:7 Bradford Smith served as county agent, and during his term he passed upon the cases of over one thousand children. Of these, many were sent to the Reform School, and others to the State School at Coldwater; the larger number have remained in Detroit, under surveillance, and are obliged to report POLICE. 207 from time to time. The amount of good resulting from his efforts is almost incalculable. There can be no question that his philanthropic work has prevented hundreds of boys from becoming hardened criminals. He was succeeded in i887 by John Hosmer. Since February, 1872, the harbor-master, appointed by the Common Council, has been a policeman. Originally persons wishing the services of policemen for special occasions could obtain them on application to the superintendent, for a stipulated sum; this system no longer prevails. In 1873 provision was made for two mounted policemen, to do duty in the outskirts of the city; two were also mounted in 1874; and in 1875 the number was increased to five; but as their service did not prove worth its cost, it was gradually dispensed with, and the last horse was sold in. November, 1876. From the organization of the force to 1873, the licenses charged by the city for various kinds of business were collected by a policeman; since that year they have been payable at the office of the secretary of the commission. The fiscal year of the commission formerly began on April i; since I873 it has commenced on the ISt of February. The following table gives interesting details as to growth of the force, the work performed, and the expense of its maintenance: GRATIOT AVENUE POIICE STATION. gives substantial foundation for the belief that there is less of crime in Detroit than in any other city of the same size in the Union. As many persons are arrested several times in the course of a year, the number of individuals arrested is only about half of the total arrests reported. In the table the column of yearly expenses includes only the ordinary expenses of the force, not the cost of the land and buildings for police stations. Their cost is shown in the following statement:, * 1 I I I I I I I I 1865 1866 1867,868 i869 t870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 i886 1) n $38,663 58,15o 53,181 65,303 68,643 69,193 79,367 76,45(0 80, 503 111,3()5 119,753 126,598 126,0o6 123,279 123.454 127 239 I36.945 152,192 242,911 -;.* 3,056 4,096 3,865 3,619 3,335 3,577 3,929 3.839 4,861 4.935 4,i00 3,879 4,657 4,33' 3,92, 4,284 4,610 5,'48 8,187 2. bit o44 1,2445 1,701 2,359 2,369 2,648 2-734 2,716 2,418 4,2 9 7,553 8,737 8,022 8,139 8,744 11,09) 8,810o 5,945 2,840 2,208 0 ~on 4,112) $5,182 4,568 5.220 5,359 4,112 5,096 4,534 4,419 6,224 7,I6T 7,027 8,955 9,728 9,094 9,599 8,176 15,212 73,055 11 529 I I 3 1! 3 i ii I LOCATION (O S.TI.\TI)N. Gratiot Avenue, N. E. cor. of Russell Street Trumbull Avenue, S. E. cor. of Michigan Avenue. Central, Woodbridge Street, near Woodward Avenue *Ehlmwood Ave., east side, between Fort and Lafayette Streets. *Twentieth Street, east side, between Michigan Ave. and M. C. R. R. *Freinont Street, north side, near Woodward Avenue *Grand River Ave., N. E. cor. of Twelfth Street *Woodbridge St., north side, near Twenty-fourth St Fremont St, between Chene St. and Jos. Campau Ave Cost of Cost of First Lot. Building. occupied. $5,50oo $10,670 Aug. 14, 1873 3,375 8549 Aug. 14, 1873 17,400 Jan. i, I874 3,180 2,436 July 27, x877 I,000 3,099 Dec. 24, 1877 i,6oo 2,300 Sept. I5, 1879 1,351 2,723 Aug. 2, i88o 1,501 3,00o Aug. io, i88I 1,800 9,000 Jan. 2, 1888 -~~ As every person arrested is lodged on an average three nights, the number of different individuals actually provided with lodgings would be about one third as many as are given in above table. A comparison of the number of arrests with the population in the years 1870 and I880 shows that the percentage of arrests has decreased from five to less than four per cent in the last decade. This fact and the general good order prevailing in the city I *Sub-station. Sub-stations are uniform in their style of building During the first two years of the existence of the board the Central Station and public offices were in the Hawley Block, on the northwest corner of Woodbridge and Bates Streets. The lock-up was in the old City Hall. On January i, I867, the Woodbridge Street or Central Station was occupied for the.:rst time. It was built for, and at first rented by 208 P01 the commission. In 1872 it was purchased by the board. The following year it was enlarged, refitted, a morgue provided, and it was occupied in January, 1874. In 1886 it was again rebuilt at a cost of about $12,000. LICE. to any locality. Each signal box is provided with a telephone, by means of which particular needs can be explained. On the reception of a call, a patrol wagon is instantly sent where needed. Keys to the signal boxes are desposited with responsible citizens in the vicinity of each box. All rewards, fees, proceeds of gifts, and emoluments on account of extraordinary services, and all moneys accruing from the sale of unclaimed goods, are paid into the City Treasury, and constitute a fund called The Police Life and Health Insurance Fund. Stolen property found by the police, or property taken from persons arrested, is kept for six months, when, if uncalled for, it is advertised three times in some public place, and then sold for the benefit of the above fund. r ----:..... 'RU'MBU;LL AVENUE POLICE SFATION. On the completion of the new City Hall, in I871, offices were set apart for the police. From October, I872, to 1874, a portion of the basement was also occupied as a lock-up. During 1873 the stations and office were for the first time telegraphically connected. In 1883 the city gave the commissioners East Park, bounded by Farmer, Randolph, and Bates Streets, and during 1883 and' 1884 a building for police headquarters was erected thereon at a co,:t of $55,000. During 1885 the telegraph and patrol wagon service was put in operation. It consists of fortyone signal boxes, with connecting wires erected at convenient points throughout the city, and by mean: of a system of alarms the police can be summoned 1-1 - - GRAND RIVER AVENUE SUB-STATION. During I886 four hundred and seventy-five different lots of property, valued at $8,570, were received by the clerk of the board. The president of the board and the comptroller of the city are the trustees of the Life and Health Fund. and out of it, as occasion requires, the commissioners make appropriations for policemen who are sick or disabled from duty, or who have earned rewards. The assets to the credit of the fund, February 5, I887, were $7,465. In connection with the force there is also a relief society, which was organized June 2, 1868, the object being to provide pecuniary aid for policemen, or their families, in case of sickness and death. Nearly all the members of the force are members of this organization, and pay an initiation fee of one dollar, and monthly dues of fifty cents each. The officers are elected every six months, on the first of January and July. Members incapacitated for service for more than three days are allowed one dollar per day, for a time not to exceed thirty days, unless by two-thirds vote of the society. In case of death, the nearest kin are paid one hundred dollars. If a wife dies, the sum of fifty dollars is paid to the husband. A police wagon for the conveyance of prisoners was procured and first used on March 20, I871. In the fall of 1877 a new wagon was purchased. CENTRAL POLICE STATION, SHERIFFS.-PROSECUTING ATTORNEYS. 209 POLICE HEAD. UATERS. = POLICE HEADQUARTERS. SHERIFFS. The office of sheriff antedates every other in the county. The first sheriff for I)etroit was appointed by the Governor and Council of Canada in 1788. The duties have been much the same under both English and American rule: the sheriff acts as the chief constable of the county in making arrests for crimes against State laws, and in carrying out the decrees and judgments of the courts; he is also responsible for the safe keeping of all prisoners lodged in the county jail. Under territorial rule, sheriffs were appointed by the governor; but from the time Michigan became a State, they have been elected at the same time as other county officers, for terms of two years. Since the establishment of the metropolitan police the sheriff has made no arrests in criminal cases in the city, and cannot make an arrest outside of the county, except in civil cases, or for contempt of court. His chief duties consist in attendance on the Circuit and Superior Courts, the care of the room, the preserving of order, and the carrying out of the decrees of the courts, occupying the same relation to these courts that the United States Marshal does to the United States Courts. It is his duty to see that the liquor tax law is enforced in the country townships, and the tax paid to the county treasurer within the time prescribed by law. He has no salary, being paid by fees collected for issuing and serving various legal papers, and by the profits on the boarding of the prisoners, the city paying for those confined in jail for violation of city ordinances, and the county for all others. The price per day is fixed from time to time by the county auditors. The sheriff has the privilege of appointing as many deputy sheriffs as he may deem expedient; 14 but neither he nor his deputies can serve papers issued in civil cases from a justice's court; only constables have that right. He gives bonds of $Io,ooo. The office is estimated to be worth from $8,000 to $Io,ooo per year. The sheriffs under British rule were: 1788, Gregor McGregor; 1795, Richard Pollard. Under American rule the following sheriffs have served: I796 to August 20, 1798, Herman Eberts; 1798 and 1799, Iewis Bond; 800o, B. Huntington, George McDougall; I80o, Elias Wallen; 1803. Thomas McCrae; I80o4, Richard Smyth; 1815, J II. Audrain; I816-I825, Austin E. Wing; 1825, Abraham Edwards, Win. Meldrumn; 1826-1829, T. C. Sheldon; 1829, Thos. S. Knapp; 1830, Benjamin Woodworth; 183I-I839, John M. Wilson; I839-1841, Lemuel Goodell; I841-1845, Daniel Thompson; I845-1847, H. R. Andrews; I847 -185I, E. V. Cicotte; 1851-1853, Lyman Baldwin: 1853 and 1854, Horace Gray; 1855 and I856, Joshua Howard; 1857-1860, E. V. Cicotte; I86o, Peter Fralick; I861-I863, Mark Flanigan; I863 -I865, Peter Fralick; 1865-1867, F. X. Cicotte; 1867 -I869, E. V. Cicotte; 1869-1870, John Patton; 1871 -875, Geo. C. Codd; 1875-1877, J. A. Sexton; I877 -I88i, Walter HF. Coots; I88i-I885, Conrad Clippert; 1885-I887, Geo. H. Stellwagen; 1887-, L. B. Iittletield. PROSECUTING ATTORNEYS. This office of prosecuting attorney was first provided for by Act of Iecember 31, 1818, and appointments were made by the governor. By Act of April 21, 1825, the office was discontinued, and district attorneys, to be appointed by the governor and council, were provided for. The Territory was divided into four districts, with one attorney for each, Vayne and W\ashtenaw forming the second district. An Act of April 22, I833, provided for a district attorney for each county. The Constitution of 1835 revived the office of prosecuting attorney, and up to 1850 incumbents were appointed by the governor for terms of two years. Since 1850 the office has been elective. Under Act of I818 it was the duty of the prosecuting attorney to prosecute and defend all suits for and against the county. By Act of 1833 district attorneys performed the same duty in any suits in which the United States, the Territory, county, or any township was interested, At the present time the prosecuting attorney conducts all cases, in which the State or the county is a party; and on request of any justice he conducts criminal cases against the persons named. He reports yearly to the attorney-general of the State the number of cases he has prosecuted, and the result of each. The term of office is two years. An Act of I879 provided that the auditors should fix his salary after January i, I881, at from $2,500 210 CONSTABLES. to $3,000. By law of March 9, I877, he was authorized to employ an assistant, whose salary is also fixed by the Board of County Auditors. From 1819 to 1825 Charles Lamed was prosecuting attorney. The district attorneys were: 1825 — I828, Charles Lamed; 1828, Warner Wing; 1829, B. F. H. Witherell; I830, W. Wing; 183, B. F. H. Witherell; 1832, W. Wing; 1833, Jas. Q. Adams; 1834, B. F. H. Witherell. The prosecuting attorneys under State law have been: I835-1839, B. F. H. Witherell; I84O-1843, J. A. Van Dyke; 1843-I846, A. W. Buel; 1846 -1849, Wm. Hale; 1849-I853, D. Stuart; I853-I855, A. T. McReynolds; 1855-1857, J. P. C. Emmons; 1857-1860, J Knox Gavin; I860-I86i. D. E. Harbaugh; 1862-1866, J. Knox Gavin; 1866, J. Patchin; 1867-1868, G. Hebden: I869-I873, P. J. D. Van Dyke; 1873-1874, F. H. Chambers; 187 5-1876, J. G. Hawley; I877-188I, H. N. Brevoort; 188 to August 22, M. Firnane; 1881-I885, J. Caplis; 885-, G. F. Robison. CONSTABLES. The office of constable in the Northwest Territory was first provided for by Act of December 2, 1799. In Detroit, the city charter of August 5, 1824, authorized the election of constables, and by Act of April 4, 1827, provision was made for the election of three. Act of March 21, 1837, gave the voters of the city power to elect five constables vzva voce, in case the three regularly elected constables neglected or refused to serve. Act of March 29, 1838, authorized the election of six constables, one for each ward, and they are still so elected. Prior to the creation of the metropolitan police, the constables acted as police officers, and made arrests. Now their chief duties consist in the serving of writs and executions, issued by justices of the peace. They are paid by the fees. The following constables were appointed by the Court of Quarter Sessions: March 6, 1798, Michael Monette; June, I80o, Win. Smith, John Harvey, David McLean, Baptiste Peltier, Isadore Delille, Jacques Desplats; December, 1802, Wm. Kelly, Jabez Stern, D. McLean, P. Navarre, James Cissne; June 7, I803, John Watson, Louis Bourginnon, Richard Jones, John Dicks, John Connor, T. Jordan, P. Desnoyers; September i6, 1803, J. B. Campau; December, 1804, Conrad Seek, George Smart, J. Bte Nantay, John Robinson, Joseph Clark, Joseph Weaver, Joseph Barnard. The constables appointed by the governor were: June Io, I816, Austin E. Wing; June 26, 1817, Duncan Reid; January I8, 1818, Wm. Meldrum, Francis Cicotte, Etienne Dubois; July 20, I818, Asa Partridge, Warren Howard. The constables elected have been as follows: 1826, Jed Hunt, John Howard, Thos. Knowlton; 1827, Thos. Lee, T. Knowlton, Eleazer Ray; 1828, J. M. Wilson, E. S. Swan, T. Knowlton, Morris Jackson; 1829, N. Champ, E. S. Swan, T. Knowlton; 1830, Adna Merritt, J. M. Wilson, Thos. Knowlton; 1831, L. Goodell, David Thompson, O. Aldrich; 1832, A. Campbell, L. Goodell, A. McArthur; 1833, L. Goodell, D. Thompson, J. 0. Graves; I834, D. Thompson, Squire Trumbull, B. F. Towne, A. C. Caniff; 1835, R. R. Howell, J. 0. Graves, P. 0. Whitman, D. Thompson; I836, R. R. Howell, R. J. Connor, D. Thompson, Jacob McKinney; 1837, J. C. Warner, P. Falvey, John Reno. 1838, First Ward: David B. Wilcox. Second Ward: John Daly. Third Ward: Edward Warner, Jr. Fourth Ward: Anson E. Lyon. Fifth Ward: Edward P. Clark. Sixth Ward: George Miller. 1839, First Ward: D. B. Wilcox. Second Ward: George Miller. Third Ward: W. W. Johnson. Fourth Ward: John Reno. Fifth Ward: Robert.Nichol. Sixth Ward: John Daly. 1840, First Ward: P. 0. Whitman. Second Ward: A. H. Bartley. Third Ward: W. W. Johnson. Fourth Ward: J. Reno. Fifth Ward: R. Nichol. Sixth Ward: H. Fross. I841, First Ward: P. 0. Whitman. Second Ward: H. T. Russell. Third Ward: W. W. Johnson. Fourth Ward: O. Bellair, J. J. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: Wm. Champ. Sixth Ward: B. H. Thompson. 1842, First Ward: W. J. Redmond. Second Ward: A. N. Hickox. Third Ward: W. W. Howland. Fourth Ward: J. J. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: Wm. Champ. Sixth Ward: C. Ockford. 1843-1846, First Ward: P. 0. Whitman. Second Ward: J. McMichael. Third Ward: W. W. Howland. Fourth Ward: J. J. Cicotte, Fifth Ward: J. P. Whiting. Sixth Ward: C. Ockford. 1846, First Ward: P. 0. Whitman. Second Ward: J. McMichael. Third Ward: D. M. Freeman. Fourth Ward: J. J. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: G. 1I. Rorers. Sixth Ward: B. McDonald. I847, First Ward: P. 0. Whitman. Second Ward: J. McMichael. Third Ward: D. M Freeman. Fourth Ward: T. J. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: W. Newton. Sixth Ward: B. McDonald, Seneca Caswell. I848, First Ward: P. 0. Whitman, Chas. Cannaro. Second Ward: J. McMichael. Third Ward: N. Lafleur. D. M. Freeman. Fourth Ward: D. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: Wm. Newton. Sixth Ward: Seneca Caswell, C. G. Solyer. 1849, First Ward: S. Green. Second Ward: J. McMichael. Third Ward: W. A. Boyt. Fourth Ward: D. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: M. Salter. Sixth Ward: C. G. Solyer. Seventh Ward: J. Duchene. Eighth Ward: James H. Darcy. CONSTABLES. 21 I CONSTABLES. 211 I85o, First Ward: C. W. Tuttle. Second Ward: J. McMichael. Third Ward: Wm. A. Boyt. Fourth Ward: D. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: M. Salter. Sixth Ward: D. D. Hustis. Seventh Ward: Peter Raymond. Eighth Ward: J. H. Darcy. I85I, First Ward: C. W. Tuttle. Second Ward: Isaac Warren. Third Ward: Wm. A. Boyt. Fourth Ward: D. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: John Demass. Seventh Ward: Peter Raymond. Eighth Ward: J. H. Darcy. 1852, First Ward: C. W. Tuttle. Second Ward: Levi Dings, A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: John B. Stadler. Fourth Ward: James Duchene, D. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: John Demass. Seventh Ward: Peter Raymond. Eighth Ward: J. H. Darcy, C. Doherty. 1853, First Ward: T. McCarthy. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: J. Warren. Fourth Ward: D. Cicotte, Fifth Ward: R. L. Tyler. Sixth Ward: W. W. Howland. Seventh Ward: J. Reilly. Eighth Ward: P. M. Davitt, M. Fitzsimmons. 1854, First Ward: T. McCarthy. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: J. Warren, John B. Stadler. Fourth Ward: D. Cicotte. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: James Love. Seventh Ward: J. Reilly. Eighth Ward: Charles Doherty. I855, First Ward: L. W. I)ings. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: John B. Stadler. Fourth Ward: C. Stadler. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: Justin Higgins. Seventh Ward: J. Reilly. Eighth Ward: C. Doherty. i856, First Ward: F. Eglington. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: John B. Stadler. Fourth Ward: C. Stadler. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: John Reilly. Eighth Ward: J. Aylward. I857, First Ward: F. Eglington. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: John B. Stadler. Fourth Ward: C. Stadler. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: John Reilly. Eighth Ward: John Aylward. Ninth Ward: C. Doherty. Tenth Ward: Chas. Weyle. i858, First Ward: F. Eglington. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: John B. Stadler. Fourth Ward: C. Stadler. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: James Love. Seventh Ward: W. Smith, C. Hatie. Eighth Ward: D. Mahoney. Ninth Ward: J. Bostwick. Tenth Ward: C. Weyle. 1859, First Ward: F. Eglington. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: John B. Stadler. Fourth Ward: C. Stadler. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: C. Hatie. Eighth Ward: D. Mahoney. Ninth Ward: J. Bostwick. Tenth Ward: C. Weyle. 186o, First W.ard: T. McCarthy. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: Geo. L. Scanlon. Fourth Ward: William Timm. Fifth Ward: E. Wyncoop. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: C. Hatie. Eighth Ward: Timothy Mahoney. Ninth Ward: Paul May. Tenth Ward: Herman Denstadt. i86i, First Ward: J. Gore. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague. Third Ward: G. L. Scanlon. Fourth Ward: C. Stadler. Fifth Ward: E. Wyncoop. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: D. K. Sullivan. Eighth Ward: T. Mahoney. Ninth Ward: J. Zimmerman. Tenth Ward: H. Denstadt. I862, First Ward: J. Gore. Second Ward: A. W. Sprague, C. T. Allen. Third Ward: D. M. Freeman. Fourth Ward: John Gnau. Fifth Ward: Lyman B. Smith. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: D. K. Sullivan. Eighth Ward: Timothy Mahoney. Ninth Ward: J. Zimmerman. Tenth Ward: F. Freiburger. 1863, First Ward: J. Gore. Second Ward: Jno. F. Starkweather. Third Ward: D. M. Freeman Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: L. B. Smith. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: D. K. Sullivan. Eighth Ward: T. Mahoney. Ninth Ward: J. Zimmerman. Tenth Ward: J. Ochs. 1864, First Ward: John May. Second Ward: Wm. T. Purdy. Third Ward: D. M. Freeman. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: L B. Smith. Sixth Ward: C. Gebhard. Seventh Ward: D. K. Sullivan. Eighth Ward: T. Mahoney. Ninth Ward: George Titlow. Tenth Ward: J. Ochs. I865, First Ward: James H. Hepburn. Second Ward: J. Gore. Third Ward: J. B. Stadler. Fourth \ard: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: L. B. Smith. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eight Ward: T. Mahoney. Ninth Ward: G. Titlow. Tenth Ward: J. Ochs. i866, First Ward: J. H. Hepburn. Second Ward: J. Gore, James Iuck. Third Ward: John Van Stan. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: Wm. Haley. Ninth Ward: G. Titlow. Tenth Ward: F. Freiburger. I867, First Ward: J. H. Hepburn. Second Ward: J. Duck. Third Ward: Chas. T. Allen. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: Anson E. Lyon. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: Michael Ryan. Ninth Ward: G. Titlow. Tenth Ward: F. Freiburger. i868, First Ward: Edward Nolan. Second Ward: T. McCarthy. Third Ward: C. T. Allen. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: B. Sparling. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: M. Ryan, J. O'Connell. Ninth 212 CONSTABLES. - Ward: G. Titlow. Tenth Ward: F. Freiburger. I869, First Ward: James McKenzie. Second Ward: J. Duck. Third Ward: Peter McDowell. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: Chas. Anderson. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: John O'Connell. Ninth Ward: C. Doherty. Tenth Ward: David L. Bishop. 1870, First Ward: Ed. Nolan. Second Ward: J. Duck. Third Ward: John L. Solders. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: F. Giddey. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: J. O'Connell. Ninth Ward: C. Doherty. Tenth Ward: D. L. Bishop. I87I, First Ward: E. Nolan. Second Ward: T. McCarthy. Third Ward: J. B. Runge. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: F. Giddey. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward; N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: J. O'Connell. Ninth Ward: G. Titlow. Tenth Ward: M. C. Allor. 1872, First Ward: James McKenzie. Second Ward: Thos. McCarty. Third Ward: Peter Kallenbach. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: F. Giddey. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: J. O'Connell. Ninth Ward: August Eggers. Tenth Ward: M. C. Allor. 1873, First Ward: J. McKenzie. Second Ward: Wm. H. Close. Third Ward: Thos. Fleming. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: F. Giddey. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: Alexander Smith. Eighth Ward: Bernard Sweeny. Ninth Ward: August Eggers. Tenth Ward: Honore Defer. 1874, First Ward: J. McKenzie. Second Ward: Wm. H. Close. Third Ward: Thos. Fleming. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: F. Giddey. Sixth Ward: J. Love. Seventh Ward: A. Smith. Eighth Ward: James Hunt. Ninth Ward: C. Doherty. Tenth Ward: H. Dcfer. Twelfth Ward: Geo. B. Brown. I875, First Ward: J. McKenzie. Second Ward: Wm. H. Close. Third Ward: J. E. Murray. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: W. W. Witherspoon. Sixth Ward: T. Funke. Seventh Ward: Jacob Jaeger. Eighth Ward: James Hunt. Ninth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Tenth Ward: M. C. Allor. Twelfth Ward: Geo. A. Page. 1876, First Ward: H. Herzog. Second Ward: Thomas Hubert. Third Ward: John A. Wilkie. Fourth Ward: John Gnau. Fifth Ward: W. W. Witherspoon. Sixth Ward: T. Funke. Seventh Ward: Jacob Jaeger. Eighth Ward: J. Hunt. Ninth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Tenth Ward: Thos. Dooley. Twelfth Ward: A. Eggers. I877, First Ward: H. Herzog. Second Ward: T. Hubert. Third Ward: J. A. Wilkie. Fourth Ward: J. Gnau. Fifth Ward: W. W. Witherspoon. Sixth Ward: George Goldsmith. Seventh Ward: Jacob Jaeger. Eighth Ward: Martin J. Dunn. Ninth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Tenth Ward: Desire B. Willemin. Eleventh Ward: Frank Guyotte. Twelfth Ward: Orrin H. Butterfield. Thirteenth Ward: Wm. Guyotte. 1878, First Ward: H. Herzog. Second Ward: T. Hubert, J. Duck. Third Ward: J. A. Wilkie. Fourth Ward: John Gnau. Fifth Ward: W. W. Witherspoon. Sixth Ward: G. Goldsmith. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: Martin J. Dunn. Ninth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Tenth Ward: Byron D. Holton. Eleventh Ward: F. Guyotte. Twelfth Ward: 0. H. Butterfield. Thirteenth Ward: W. Guyotte. 1879, First Ward: H. Herzog. Second Ward: E. B. Fisher. Third Ward: J. A. Wilkie. Fourth Ward: John Gnau. Fifth Ward: W. W. Witherspoon. Sixth Ward: G. Goldsmith. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: Martin J. Dunn. Ninth Ward: V. J. Giddey. Tenth Ward: M. C. Allor. Eleventh Ward: F. Guyotte. Twelfth Ward: J. M. Davis. Thirteenth Ward: Wm. Guyotte. I88o, First Ward: H. Herzog, Second Ward: Wm. Close. Third Ward: J. A. Wilkie. Fourth Ward: John Gnau. Fifth Ward: W. W. Witherspoon. Sixth Ward: L. Rosenthal. Seventh Ward: F. Ubelhoer. Eighth Ward: M. J. Dunn. Ninth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Tenth Ward: J. W. Genick Eleventh Ward: A. W. Bradford. Twelfth Ward: 0. H. Butterfield. Thirteenth Ward: E. T. Mass. I88I, First Ward: W. A. Stuart. Second Ward: W. Close. Third Ward: J. A. Wilkie. Fourth Ward: John Gnau. Fifth Ward: W. W. Witherspoon. Sixth Ward: L. Rosenthal. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: Martin J. Dunn. Ninth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Tenth Ward: J. W. Genick. Eleventh Ward: A. W. Bradford. Twelfth Ward: 0. H. Butterfield. Thirteenth Ward: E. T. Mass. I882, First Ward: S. Rosenthal. Second Ward: W. A. Stuart. Third Ward: J. J. McHugh. Fourth Ward: D. E. Moloney. Fifth Ward: John Gnau. Sixth Ward: Martin J. Dunn. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Ninth Ward: J. Schnelzer. Tenth Ward: O. H. Butterfield. Eleventh Ward: E. T. Mass. Twelfth Ward: Jas. Tierney. Thirteenth Ward: A. W. Bradford. I883, First Ward: S. Rosenthal. Second Ward: W. A. Stuart. Third Ward: W. T. Weitz. Fourth Ward: D. E. Moloney. Fifth Ward: John Gnau. Sixth Ward: M. J. Dunn. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: W. J. Giddey. Ninth Ward: J. Schnelzer. Tenth Ward: O. H. Butterfield. CONSTABLES. 213 1).... Eleventh Ward: E. T. Mass. Twelfth Ward: F. H. Addison. Thirteenth Ward: Adolph Bloom. 1884, First Ward: S. Rosenthal. Second Ward: W. A. Stuart. Third Ward: W. T. Weitz. Fourth Ward: Henry Herzog. Fifth Ward: John Gnau. Sixth Ward: M. J. Dunn. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: J. J. Griffin. Ninth Ward: J. F. Bowers. Tenth Ward: 0. H. Butterfield. Eleventh Ward: E. T. Mass. Twelfth Ward: F. H. Addison. Thirteenth Ward: Wm. Guyotte. I885, First Ward: John B. Wilcoxson. Second Ward, Wm. A. Stuart. Third Ward: William T. Weitz. Fourth Ward: H. Herzog. Fifth Ward: John Gnau. Sixth Ward: John P. Shanahan. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: J. Pramstaller. Ninth Ward: J. F. Bowers. Tenth Ward: 0. H. Butterfield. Eleventh Ward: E. T. Mass. Twelfth Ward: Frank Lark. Thirteenth Ward: Joseph Doherty. 1886, First Ward: John B. Wilcoxson. Second Ward: Wm. A. Stuart. Tlhird Ward: William T. Weitz. Fourth Ward: H. Herzog. Fifth Ward: John Gnau. Sixth Ward: John Shuell. Seventh Ward: N. Tisler. Eighth Ward: lWm. J. Giddey. Ninth Ward: J. F. Bowers. Tenth Ward: Frank Reichlin. Eleventh Ward: E. T. Mass. Twelfth Ward: Frank H. Addison. Thirteenth Ward: J. Doherty. Fourteenth Ward: Charles A. Goldner. Fifteenth Ward: Thos. Eagan. Sixteenth Ward: Charles H. Hill. I887, First Ward: John B. Wilcoxson. Second Ward: Wm. A. Stuart. Third Ward: William T. Weitz. Fourth Ward: B. Sparling. Fifth Ward: John Gnau. Sixth Ward: J. Shanahan. Seventh Ward: Wm. Guyotte. Eighth Ward: J. Toohey. Ninth Ward: J. F. Bowers. Tenth Ward: Dennis Downey. Eleventh Ward: E. T. Mass. Twelfth Ward: F. H. Addison. Thirteenth Ward: J. H. Boeckenhauer. Fourteenth Ward: C. A. Goldner. Fifteenth Ward: Thos. Eagan. Sixteenth Ward: Frank Lark. CHAPTER XXXV. THE JAILS AND THE HOUSE OF CORRECTION. No less than nine buildings, in eight different localities, have been built and used for jails. In June, I80o, the jail was on the extreme east side of the town, and nearly in line with the stockade. It was probably the building designated as the guard-house on T. Smith's plan of 1796. The records of the Court of General Quarter Sessions show that on June 6, 18oi, the sheriff was ordered " to whitewash the inside of the jail immediately, and have it as clean as possible, and that afterwards the jail keeper was to wash and clean the jail every Saturday and to have panes of glass put where wanted." The records for June 5, I802, contain the following: The Court took into consideration the situation of the public jail, and have oome to the determination of purchasing, of Mr. Charles Francis Girardin, the house and lot in which he now lives, upon the following conditions, to wit: that the sum of five hundred pounds cash shall be paid to said Girardin and a deed of sale of the present jail, it being estimated at two hundred pounds, making in all seven hundred pounds. Payment of cash to be made as follows, to wit: three hundred pounds within two or three months, and two hundred pounds in a year from this date. Said Girardin is to deliver up half of the premises within twenty days, which are intended to contain the prisoners; and the remainder of the premises, when the old jail is repaired that Mr. Girardin may inhabit it, which will not be later than the 3ist of July next. On June 29, 1802, James May was appointed to contract for material, and put the new jail in a state of "safety against escape, as much as possible;" and on Saturday, September I8, 1802, the accounts of " Jean Louis Boynier, for putting up pickets in the jail-yard, twenty-six pounds, and of Pierre Chene, for thirty-three pounds, fifteen shillings, sixpence, and of Charles Moran, for one hundred and thirty-three pounds, seven shillings," were ordered paid. After the fire of I805 an old blockhouse, located on the present line of Jefferson Avenue, and between Cass and Wayne Streets, was fitted up as a jail by James May, territorial marshal. The last record that can be found indicating the exercise of any authority after the fire by the old trustees of the town is dated October 6, I805, and is as follows: It was agreed by the Board of Trustees that the blockhouse should be used as a jail until end of year i806, and then it is to become the property of the marshal, for $250, $175 having already been paid. If the public use the blockhouse for a jail during 1807, all is to be considered paid, and if the public use it longer, they are to pay $75 per year rent. On May 5, I807, William McD. Scott, marshal, wrote to the District Court that he could no longer be responsible for prisoners confined in this jail, as it was " insufficient." In I808 a new marshal was appointed, and the records of the Governor and Judges contain the following: October 28, i808, on the representation of the marshal of the Territory that he has no jail wherein to keep his prisoners, the following resolution was unanimously passed: Resolved, that the marshal of the Territory be authorized to hire from James May, Esq., a building which he owns in the city of Detroit for a jail, for the term of three years, in conjunction with the District Court for the District of Huron and Detroit, and to pay for the same $75 per year. Further information concerning this lease, given in the records of the Governor and Judges, is as follos: May 27, i811, on the representation of James May, Resolved, that the secretary of the Legislative Board be directed to furnish the treasurer of the Territory with a copy of the resolution empowering the marshal of the Territory to hire a building of James May for a public jail, passed the 28th October, i808, and that the said treasurer do audit the said May's account, as assumed by the Territory, for that part of the jail which was hired for the District of Huron and Detroit from the i6th of September, I8Io, to the fifth day of July, 1811. The records for Monday, February 17, 1812, contain the following: James May, Esq., having made proposals to sell the house now made use of as a jail, and the building adjoining thereto, for the purpose of a temporary court-house and jail, the Governor and Judges have agreed to give him fourteen hundred acres of land, out of the donation of ten thousand acres of land, on his crediting the sum of $0oo on account of jail hire. On February 26, I812, on motion of Judge Witherell, it was, Resolved, that the Governor and Judges, on or before July i, 1812, execute to James May a deed of one thousand three hundred and seventy-two acres, of the ten thousand acres of land appropriated by Congress for the purpose of building a jail and courthouse in Detroit. The resolution was adopted, and James May signed an agreement in accordance with the resolution. Notwithstanding these agreements and resolutions, the bargain does not seem to have been consummated, for in Judge May's bill against the United [2141 THE JAILS. 2 I5.~~~~~~H JAL. I I States for damages during the War of I812, he charged, under date of October 2, 1813, for "one year's rent of two buildings in the city ( f Detroit. leased to the Governor and Judges of the Territory, for court-house and jail, taken possession of by General Brock after the capitulation, and applied to his Majesty's use for gaol, and barracks for militia." The rent and damages were estimated at $400. This jail was an old stone building, located on what is now the northwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Cass Street. It afterwards became the property of Judge Woodward, and then of General J. E. Schwartz, and eventually was widely known as the Mansion House Hotel. In I8I 5, the jail, an old wooden building, was on the north side of Jefferson Avenue, the second or third house east of Shelby Street, and on November 4 the Governor and Judges appropriated $238.20 to John W. Tyler for furnishing and setting around it two hundred and fifty-four pickets. This building was used until about 1817. The jail was next established in an old twro-story blockhouse, located on Jefferson Avenue near the corner of Randolph Street. This building ceased to be used as i. jail after the spring of I819, and the house itself was torn down in the fall of I826. Proposals for the construction of the jail on the public square bounded by Farmer, Farrar, and Gratiot Streets were invited on July 25, 1817, and on December 24 of the same year James May was "appointed superintendent of the jail about to be erected," and was to be paid $500 for his services. The jail was built by Mack & Conant, and the final settlement was made with Amos Lawrence of Bo:;ton, to whom the contract was assigned. The jail was completed in the spring of I819, at a cost of $4,70o. It was forty-four by eighty-eight feet, surrounded by a picket fence, which cost $62. On June 24, 1824, the remarkable circumstance is noted that there was not a single person in the whole Territory in prison for crime or debt. When we remember that Michigan then included all' of her present domain, and also the region now known as the State of Wisconsin, it is evident either that the laws or the officials were very lax, or that the inhabitants were a remarkably law-abiding people. Ten years later, on June 17, I834, the same state of affairs existed; there was not a person in the jail, but evidently it was not long unoccupied, for on December 30 the jail was broken open, and all the prisoners escaped. The building was occasionally repaired, but it became increasingly insecure. On March 28, I845, H. R. Andrews, the sheriff, was authorized to purchase materials and repair the jail; and on the following day the county auditors contracted with S. Vanderhoof to repair the build ing and the fence for $549. While the repairs were going on, the sheriff was authorized by the Legislature to keep the prisoners in other counties. The repairs failed to make the building either trustworthy OLD BLOCKHOUSE, JEIFFERSON AVENUE. or beautiful in appearance, and a suit was instituted against the county, by citizens residing in the vicinity, to compel its removal. In the spring of 1847 the Supreme Court decided that the county had no title to the public square whereon the jail was located, and that the building was a public nuisance. A contract was then made on February io, 1848, with Thomas Palmer, to tear it down, and on June 8, 1848, the work of removal began. OLD JAIL, ON THE SITE NOW OCCUPIED BY PUBLIC LIBRARY. As soon as the court had decided that the old jail must be removed, steps were taken towards erecting a new one, and on April 20, 1847, the county auditors resolved to purchase suitable grounds, and erect a jail thereon. On May 14, 1847, they agreed to purchase Lot 155, on northeast corner of Beaubien and Clinton Streets, on Beaubien Farm, for $600, and Lot 156 for $400. Lots 157 and I58 were sub 2 6 T11HE J\AILS,\ND ITHE HOU()SE OF CORRECTION. sequently purchased at an additional cost of $3,550. On May 26, 1847, the proposal of William Burnell to erect a jail and sheriff's residence for $io,650 was accepted. On October 14, I847, arrangements were nearly completed, and on Stay 3, 1848, a final settlement was made for erecting the same. On July 7 Mr. Burnell contracted to build a stone wa"ll about the jail for $i,oio. The dwelling, erected in 1847, still remains, but the jail in the rear, becoming unsafe, was torn down. In the fall of 186I the House of Correction, and an old engine-house on the west corner of Bates and Larned Streets (the latter of which was fitted up for the purpose), were designated as temporary jails by the county auditors. In 1856 the question of building a new jail was agitated, and on April I, I857, the matter was submitted to the voters of the county, and a majority of four hundred and forty-five decided against the proposition. The question was again voted on in the fall of 1859, and also in I860, when there was a majority of seventy-eight against the erection of a jail; but on November 14, I86o, the Board of Supervisors decided the vote carried, and appointed a committee to co-operate with the Board of Auditors in erecting a jail, to SHERIFF S RESIDENCE, JAI cost $30,000. Work was soon begun, and the jail was completed in 1862, opened for inspection December 26, and first used January I, I863. The building contains six wards, each ward having fourteen cells, seven feet long and five wide. The walls of the prison are of solid block stone, many of the stones weighing from two to four tons. The total number of prisoners received for the year ending September 30, 1883, was one thousand eight hundred and fifty-five, there being an average of forty-two persons constantly in durance. The sheriff is allowed sixty cents per day for boarding the prisoners. The total amount paid for their board in 1883 was $7,809. The city pays for the board of all persons arrested for violation of city ordinances, and the county pays the rest of the expenses. There are four employes at the jail, three of whom are paid by the sheriff, the county paying for one deputy sheriff. The jailer or turnkey receives seventy-six cents for each prisoner received and dis charged; he is appointed by the sheriff, and is held responsible for the safe keeping of tne prisoners. No systematic and continuous effort for the moral and religious benefit of the inmates was made until I866, since which time the Young Men's Christian Association have. held religious services in the wards every Sabbath, and reading matter is supplied weekly. These services are always appreciated, and upon one occasion gave rise to the following bonmot: Little hymn-books were being passed to the persons behind the bars, preparatory to a service of song; taking one of the books, a great, burly desperado, with a twinkle in his eye, exclaimed, " 1 can't sing much, but I will say over the words, and you can get the air outside." THE 1)ETROIT HOUSE OF CORRECTION. The origin of this institution dates from the year 1856, when several editorials appeared in the daily papers, advocating the building of a workhouse for the confinement of AAAf t certain criminals then sent to the county jail. T, The suggestion met with favor, and on @n s o April 24, I857, Mayor 0. 1M. Hyde sent a communication to the Common Council, recommending the building of a workhouse, almshouse, Broc a ws and city hospital; _ submitting, at the same time, extracts, ANI) POLCmv COIRoT RooMr. ANT) Poif CO r Roo d from the reports of the Monroe County Penitentiary, at Rochester, New York, then superintended by Z. R. Brockway. A letter subsequently received from Mr. Brockway suggested that the criminal laws of the State be examined, to determine what classes of criminals could be sentenced to such an institution, and also that an estimate be made of the probable number that would be confined therein. Soon after this, by resolution of the council, Mr. Brockway was invited to visit Detroit for consultation. Meantime various locations were examined, and on August I2 the comptroller submitted to the council twenty-four proposals for sites, and the matter of location was referred to a committee. On November I I, on motion of Alderman Marsh, the council, Resolved, that the comptroller be requested to prepare an estimate for a site for an almshouse and workhouse, together with the necessary cost of suitable buildings therefor, and, further, that the mayor be directed, when the same is prepared, to call a public meeting of the citizens to take the same into consideration. L, 'THE HOUSE OF CORRECTION. 21 The public meeting was held at the City Hall on December 3, I857, but no conclusive action was reached, though the meeting seemed opposed to the project. On December 9 the comptroller was again directed to advertise for proposals for a site, but none were received. In January, I859, the governor, in his message to the Legislature, recommended the building of a House of Correction, and urged the council to give attention to the matter. Mayor Patton seconded the recommendation, and on January 15 the council appointed a committee to secure a legislative appropriation. This plan did not meet with favor, and on receiving the report of its committee, the council requested the mayor to call a citizens' meeting to further consider the subject. The meeting was held on January 30, and the following resolution passed: Resolved, that this meeting authorize the Common Council to borrow money and issue bonds for a sumn not exceeding $5o,c0o, for the purpose of erecting a workhouse. On March 6, i86o, Sheldon Smith, architect, presented plans and drawing for the proposed buildings, which were accepted, and on April 9 following proposals for construction were adver'tised for. On the 24thli the contract was awarded to Richard Gibbings, for $66,230. A Building Committee, consisting of i 4-' C. H. Buhl, J. J. Bagley, E. Le Favour, F. B. Phelps, and J. M. Edinunds, was then appointed, and on March 15, I86I, the Legislature passed an Act establishing the Detroit House of Correction. On June 25 the mayor nominated Z. R. Brockway as superintendent, and he was unanimously confirmed, and on July 6 the Committee on Public Buildings reported that the buildings were completed and accepted. The buildings are located on a part of the old City Cemetery, and are bounded by Division, \Wilkins, Russell, and Riopelle Streets, the site embracing three blocks. The original buildings, with the additions, have cost about $i 5o,ooo. The inventory of December, 1886, gave the value of the stock, material, and bills receivable, as $219,748, the land and buildings are estimated to be worth $200,000. From its inception up to 1887 the House of Correction has received from the city, for all purposes, a total of $189,841.36. So successful has been the management that in January, 1879,.he superinten dent reported to the council that there was a surplus of funds, amounting to $25,ooo, which could be returned to the city; and this amount, together with an old claim against the county for board, subsequently collected, made up the handsome sum of $63,8o0 returned to the city during the fiscal year of I880. In I88I $35,000 was returned, and in 1883 $40,000, and up to May, 1887, a total of $199,810 had been returned to the city. The institution has ample means to liquidate every obligation, and in addition has maintained over twenty thousand city prisoners, without pay from the city, and has accumulated property to the value of $200.000 over and above the total amount received from the city. Its management has been several times impugned, but on investigation it has always been found to be almost without fault. For many years prior to I885, United States prisoners and criminals from the Territories had been sentenced to this place as a prison; and during 1883 DETR(OIT' HotUSE OF( CORRECTION. one hundred and fifty-four such persons were confined here. In 1885 a State law was passed which forbade the receiving of prisoners from any other State or Territory, or from any other U. S. court than those sitting in Michigan. Under State law of March I6, 186, prisoners are received from various counties in Mlichigan, other than Wayne, and the number so received in I886 was four hundred and fifty-two. The average number of prisoners in I886 was five hundred and eighty-five, of whom one se\vnth were females. The city pays no board for the prisoners it sends, but counties pay according to contracts made with them, the amount averaging about one dollar and twenty-five cents per week. The cost to the city, in I882, of the food of the prisoners, was fifteen and one tenth cents each per day. The prisoners work ten hours a day, and are chiefly employed in the manufacture of furniture. 2I8 THE HOUSE OF CORRECTION. In 1883 they manufactured 310,790 chairs, 5,715 beds, and 1,353 cradles. Until I879 the women were largely occupied in the manufacture of coarse clothing; since then they have been mainly employed in chair-making. Competent teachers selected from the officers, aided by other persons, conduct an evening school five evenings in a week, and all prisoners sentenced for three - months or over are required to attend. Not more than six are allowed in a class. Candles are provided, that they may pursue their studies in the cells. During Mr. Brockway's administration, lectures, readings, or musical entertainments were given in the chapel, on Saturday afternoons at five o'clock, by ladies and gentlemen who from time to time were invited. Similar exercises are still continued at such intervals as are deemed best; and on every Sabbath, at 9 A. M., service is conducted in the chapel by clergymen and laymen. Visitors are received from 9 A. M. to 12 M., and from 2 to 5 P.M. Under Mr. Brockway's superintendence, a House of Shelter, costing $12,000, - was erected opposite the main building, on grounds belonging to the city, with the hope of establishing a permanent reformatory for unfortunate women. It was opened October 22, 1868, HOUSE OF CORRECTION-! closed two years later, and again opened May I, I871, and continued to be used until May, 1874. The effort was supervised in the most careful and thoroughly Christian manner, and undoubtedly accomplished some good, but the uncertainty of its results, together with the additional expense involved, finally led to its abandonment. The building is now occupied by the superintendent. Very much of the credit for the good management of the institution is due to its organizer and first superintendent, Z. R. Brockway; later superintendents have proved most admirable successors, and have fully maintained the deservedly high character of the institution. Up to Act of i88I, the superintendent was appointed by the council, on nomination of the mayor, for terms of three years, with a salary of $3,000 per year. He is now appointed by the inspectors. He is furnished with a house and servants, and all expenses for the board of himself and family are paid by the institution. The pay is liberal, but in no other department in the city government, probably, is the same amount of expenditure productive of as much benefit. In every way, the House of Correction is a model. The superintendents have been as follows: Z. R. Brockway, June, I86I, to January, 1873; Anthony Lederle, January, 1873, to November, 1873; M. V. Borgman, November, 1873, to April, I879; Joseph Nicholson, from April, 1879. Under the original Act of Incorporation, the mayor, and three inspectors appointed by the council on his nomination; constituted a Board of Inspectors, and served wvithout compensation. Under Act of June 2, I881, the board consists of four inspectors the first four chosen for terms of from one to four years each; since i88I one has been chosen yearly. The following is a ii ji g l j tlist of the inspectors John J. Bagley,.... 187 to erur, 1 82 J.. o May, I86i, to May, i 862; H. P. Bridge, May, I86I, to May, 1862; Anthony Dudgeon, May, i86r, to May, I864; L. M. UPERINTENDENT' S HOUSE. Mason, May, 1862, to May, 1872; G. B. Russel, May, I862, to May, I864; G. V. N. Lothrop, July, 1863, to May, 1872; Morse Stewart, Sl[ry, 8i85, to November, I866; N. W. Brooks, NMay, I867, to February, 1872; Jefferson Wiley, June, I872, to February, 1875; J. E. Pittman, June, I872, to February, I873; E Kanter, June, 1872, to February, 1877; A. S. Bagg, June, 1873, to February, I876; Francis Palms, June, I875, to September, i 87.8; William Foxen, May, I877, to July, 1 88; W. C. Colburn, June, 1875, to July, I885; Don M. Dickinson, September, I87, to July, I885; J. V. Moran, July, i88i, to July, I886; F. W. Lichtenberg, from July, I88o; W. J. Chittenden, from July, 1885; Stephen Baldwin, from July, 1885; A. Ives, Jr., from July, 1886. s3 PART V. MILITARY. I A L w) Iu C..HAPTER XXXVI. FORTS AND DEFENSES.-PENSIONS AND PENSION AGENTS. MILITARY OFFICERS IN COMMAND AT DETROIT. FORTS AND DEFENSES. IN importance as a military post, Detroit is hardly second to any place in the United States. All of its early history is connected with scenes of strife; and in every American war its soldiers have borne a part. Its first settlers came with a military colony, British soldiers received it from the French, and when the city was yielded to the Americans, a company of soldiers were the first to enter. Under the Northwest Territory, its governor was General St. Clair; under Indiana Territory, General Harrison was the only governor; and the first two governors of Michigan Territory were Generals Hull and Cass. Fort Detrozt. The desirability of locating a fort at or near Detroit was perceived at an early date. In no other way could the French secure the control of the river and the fur trade of the Northwest; and only by its possession could they prevent the English from gaining access to, and trafficking with, the western tribes. A fort was also necessary as a substantial evidence of the French occupancy of the soil, and to protect the various tribes of friendly Indians from the Iroquois, who constantly warred against them. It was intended to concentrate the French soldiers, traders, and friendly Indians at one place, and thus establish a permanent post. In pursuance of this general policy a rude fort had been erected at Mackinaw in, or prior to, 1671; and in June, I686, M. du Luth, then in command at Fort Mackinaw, received orders from M. de Nonville, the Governor of New France, to establish a fort on the Detroit of Lake Erie. In accordance with these orders, Fort St. Joseph, also called Fort du Luth, was built near what is now Fort Gratiot. The fort was abandoned within two years after its erection, and the passage between Lakes Erie and Huron was left undefended until 1701. The ambition of the French, changes in government, and various exigencies caused the erection of no less than four different forts under six different names in or near the present city of Detroit. The first was named Fort Pontchartrain in honor of the French Colonial Minister of Marine. The stockade was hardly deserving of so formidable a title, being intended to overawe rather than to defend. It was located on the first rise of ground from the river, and, using the present names of streets, was between Jefferson Avenue and Woodbridge Street, occupying the western half of the block between Griswold and Shelby Streets, probably including also Shelby Street, and a part of the ground now occupied by the Michigan Exchange. This space was inclosed by wooden pickets, or sharp pointed logs, driven into the ground as closely as possible, forming a very substantial fence, ten feet high. At the four corners were bastions, but these were of irregular shape, and the angles of two of them were so small that they were of little value. Further particulars as to this fort are contained in a letter of the Chevalier de Calliere, Governor of New France, dated October 4, I70I, which tells of the arrival of Lieutenant Chacornacle from Detroit with five men, and letters from Cadillac, one of which letters showed that he had built a fort with four bastions of good oak pickets fifteen feet long, sunk three feet in the ground. * * * That he placed this fort three leagues from Lake Erie, and two from Lake St. Clair, in the narrowest part of the river, to the west southwest. He commenced by making a storehouse to put his effects under cover; that he had worked at the necessary lodgings, which were not yet very far advanced, which obliged him to keep almost all his people at work trying to finish them before winter. A street, averaging twelve feet in width, surrounded the buildings just inside the line of pickets. If the pickets needed renewing at any time, the inhabitants whose premises reached to the line were required to supply them, and when the houses were sold the pickets were sold with them. In 1703 the fort was set on fire by the Indians and partially destroyed. In 1716 and 1717 it was in very poor condition, and in 1718 Tonty rebuilt the fort, making it one of the strongest in the country. In 1748 it was repaired with oak pickets fifteen feet long, with a diameter of at least six inches at the small end. One picket was allowed for each foot of ground. In 1749 a number of immigrants arrived from France; and soon after the stockade for the first time was enlarged. In 1751 additional troops came, and from this 2211 222 FORTS AND DEFEENSES. 222 FORTS AND DEFENSES. time the post was known as Fort Detroit. In 1754, 1755, and 1758 the stockade was extended and ad'ditional ground enclosed. On November 29, I760, it was surrendered to the English, and soon after was enlarged to include about eighty houses. The pickets at this time were round, and about twentyfive feet high. There were bastions at each corner; and over the two gates on the east and west sides blockhouses were built for observation and defense. Each of the large wooden gates had a wicket gate to allow single persons to pass through. The main gates were opened at sunrise and closed at sunset; the wickets were open till nine o'clock. If Indians entered, all their arms were taken from them at the gate, and returned when they left. The ground then enclosed, designated by present street lines, included all between Griswold Street and a point fifty feet west of Shelby Street, and all south of the alley between Jefferson Avenue and Lamed Street to Woodbridge Street. At the time of the Pontiac Conspiracy the fort was garrisoned by one hundred and twenty-two men of the Eightieth Regiment, with eight officers, under command of Major Gladwin, and was provided with one three-pounder and three mortars. An armed schooner, the Beaver, protected the water front. In I766 there was a garrison of two hundred men. An old letter from the inhabitants to the commandant, formerly in possession of A. D. Fraser, indicates how repairs were then provided for; it reads as follows: DETROIT, Aug. 7th, 1766. To yohn Canmpbell, Esq., Lieut. Col. and Commandant at Detroit and its dependencies: SIR,We have taken your order of the 3rd. instant respecting the furnishing of materials by us for repairing this fort, into consideration; and find it absolutely impossible to comply with it. The requisition made of us per individuals would amount at least to four thousand pounds, New York Currency,-a sum by far too great for the whole settlement, and all the trading people from different places now residing here, to pay. * * * We find, Sir, that till the year 1750 the fort was about half the extent it is now. The inhabitants till then were obliged to furnish one picket for each foot of ground they possessed in front within the fort, and to pay annually two sols per foot to the Crown, by way of quit rent. It was with difficulty that the circumstance of this place could accomplish the payment of their dues to the French King, of which he proved his sensibility by easing the inhabitants of the heavy burthen of furnishing pickets; for from that time the Fort was enlarged upon an entirely new plan, at the sole expense of the Crown. The annual tax of two sol per foot, in front, was continued till the surrender of this country to the English, since which the service has required such taxes of us that they have been almost insupportable. Permit us, Sir, to mention them, and you will see that we stand in greater need of assistance than to be obliged to pay any new demands. Captain Campbell, the first English commandant at Detroit, on his arrival here levied a tax on the proprietors in the Fort, for lodging the troops, which amounted to a very considerable sum; besides, each of the farmers were obliged to pay a cord of wood per acre in front. The second year the proprietors paid again for quartering the troops, and the farmers furnished double the quantity of wood they did the year before. The third year Colonel Gladwin continued the same taxes. The following year, being 1762,1 the tax within the Fort alone amounted to one hundred and eighty-four pounds, thirteen Shillings and four Pence. In the year 1764 the taxes came to one hundred and fifty-eight Pounds, New York Currency. In the year 1765 you was pleased to signify by Messrs. Babee and Shappooton that the taxes for the future should be the same as in the French Government, which, as we have said before, was two sol per foot for the lots within the Fort. The farmers were subject to a quit rent of two Shillings and eight pence New York Currency, and one-fourth bushel wheat per acre in front, which was accordingly paid to Mr. Shappooton, who was appointed to receive the same. After this, we could not help being surprised at the tax for the current year, viz one Shilling per foot in front for lots within the Fort, and ten Shillings per acre for the farmers in the country. The heaviness of this tax is most severely felt, as you may judge by the delay and difficulty the people had in paying it. This letter clearly shows that then, as now, taxes were deemed a burden. A few years prior to 1778 the stockade was again enlarged, and provided with four gates on each side, with blockhouses over them on the east, west, and north sides, each blockhouse having four six-pounders. There were, also, two batteries of six guns each, facing the river. The citadel, on what is now the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Wayne Street, was surrounded with a row of pickets, and contained barracks for three or four hundred men, a brick storehouse, a hospital, and a guard-house. The stockade, in 1778, included that part of the city lying between Griswold and Cass Streets, Larned Street, and the river. On the river side of the fort the bank was quite steep, and between it and the water's edge was a space of level ground forty feet wide. Fort Lernoult or Shelby..The history of this fort is thus detailed by Captain A, Bird of the Eighth Regiment, in a letter to Brigadier General Powell, dated August 13, 1782: Late in the fall of 1778 we were alarmed by the approach of the enemy under one Brodhead, who with two or three thousand men had actually advanced as far as Tuscarowas, about ninety miles from the lake at Lower Sandusky, and were employed in building a large picketed Fort. Major Lernoult, at a conversation with the officers at Detroit on the above alarm, concluded Detroit incapable of making a defense that might reflect honor on the defendants, it being of great extent, only picketed, and in a manner under a hill. By his orders on the same evening, I traced a redoubt on the hill. The plan was left to me. * * * We began, I think, early in November, and worked without intermission until February, at which time the Indians declaring an intention of attacking Colonel Brodhead's post of four hundred then at Tuscarowas I joined them. In the meantime Lieutenant Duvernet returned from Post Vincent and was appointed engineer; the work was then too far advanced for him to alter the form of it. It was made by surrounding an interior space with trees piled up four feet high, with their sharpened butts projecting outwards. On top of the trees, and 1 This date is evidently a mistake, as, according to this statement, 1762 would be the fourth year of English possession, when, in fact, the fort was surrendered in 1760. FORTS AND DEFENSES. 223 projecting over them seven or eight feet, at an angle of forty-five degrees, was a tier of sharpened stakes, the whole surmounted with an earth embankment eleven feet high. The thickness of the top of the parapet was twelve feet; the banquette for infantry was raised six feet from the foundation or level of the fort; the width of the ramparts at their base was twenty-six feet. The embankment was surrounded by a ditch five or six feet deep, and twelve feet wide at the surface, having in it a row of cedar pickets eleven or twelve feet high, fastened together with a rib. The entrance was towards the town, through a passageway underneath the trees, with a drawbridge over the ditch. Between the citadel and the fort there was a subterranean passage, the powder-magazine being on the route. On each side of the entrance was an iron twenty-four-pounder; each side of the fort was defended with two twenty-fourpounders, and at each bastion four cannons were placed. The fort was entirely outside of the stockade, and a long distance from the settled portion of the town, on what was known as the second terrace. Designated by streets as they now exist, it lay between Fort and Lafayette Streets, including both streets and the two blocks between Griswold and Wayne Streets. Shortly after it was built, the old stockade was extended to the fort, intersecting the two southern bastions, and enclosing the military gardens indicated in the map of I796. On March I6, I779, Colonel George Rogers Clark, having just captured Lieutenant-Governor Hamilton and his forces at Vincennes, writing to Major Lernoult at Detroit, enclosing letters from prisoners to their friends, says, " I learn by your letters to Governor Hamilton that you were very busy making new works. I am glad to hear it, as it saves the Americans some expense in building." Unfortunately, Colonel Clark's plans miscarried, and the work went on, but not for the benefit of the Americans. On May I6, I780, Colonel De Peyster, who had succeeded Major Lernoult, in a letter to Colonel Bolton at Niagara, said: The new Fort will give constant employment for this Garrison for some time to come, the ditches filling faster than we can sod, owing to severe weather, and springs breaking out in all parts, which brings down the earth in great clods. On the conclusion of the treaty of peace, work on the fort ceased, and on August 5, I784, LieutenantGovernor Hay wrote from Detroit to General Haldimand as follows: As all public works are ordered to cease here, it is my duty to inform your Excellency that the front and rear of this town are open, the pickets having been taken down by order of LieutenantColonel De Peyster, and the continuation of the lots to the river given to the proprietors, saving a cart road to the water's edge, by which means a discontented Indian may, any night, set fire to the town. The ground given by Colonel De Peyster, as above mentioned. was formerly the wood yard, but now the barrack master is obliged to pile his wood at so great a distance on each side of the town that no sentry from the garrison can take charge of it. Captain Bird, acting engineer, has reported to me that part of Fort Lernoult has been much damaged this spring and summer by heavy rains, and if not repaired will soon not be defensible; but I shall not allow a sixpence upon either without your Excellency's orders. In October, I779, the following troops were stationed here: One hundred and eighty of the King's Regiment, one hundred and thirty-eight of the Forty-seventh Regiment, fifty Rangers, and thirteen of the Royal Artillery,-a total of three hundred and eighty-one. On August 23, 1782, there was a total of twenty-six cannon and mortars fit for service, with thirteen soldiers of the Royal Artillery, two hundred and forty-six of the King's or Eighth Regiment, seventy-one of the Forty-seventh Regiment, and one hundred and twenty Rangers, —a total of four hundred and fifty besides the officers. On September 24, I782, Lieutenant-Colonel Henry Hope arrived at Detroit from Mackinaw on a tour of inspection. He remained until the evening of the 26th. General Powell had been here but a short time before. In 1793 the fort was garrisoned with one company of artillery and one of grenadiers; there were also two new brigs, the Chippewa and the Ottawa, with eight guns each, the brig Dunmore with six guns, and the sloop Felicity with two swivels. After the evacuation by the English, on July II, 1796, Colonel Hamtramck, with a garrison of three hundred soldiers, was stationed here. At this time there was great difficulty in supplying the troops with provisions, and Samuel Henley, acting quartermaster at Greenville, sent the following letters to General Wilkins, quartermaster-general at Detroit: GREENVILLE, August 4, 1796. Mr. Jones leaves here this day, from the cursed arrangements at fort Hamilton, with my heart full of sorrow he leaves me without corn. * * * If I can assist Mr. Jones with corn on his way to you, by Heaven, it shall be done without a moment's delay. GREENVILLE, August 13, 1796. I wrote to you the Commissary-General gave thirty dollars for the transportation of one barrel of flour. I am told he gives this price from Fort Washington to Fort Wayne. * * * I am well convinced that our public wagon-makers are a poor set of drunken men. These difficulties soon passed away, and the following letter shows that social enjoyments were not forgotten: GREENVILLE, December 9, I796. I hope ere long to have the honor to see you in Detroit there to enjoy the pleasure of your agreeable company, each of us in good health. I should be very much gratified with the amusements of Detroit this winter, but must dispense with that pleasure, as I 224 FORTS AND DEFENSES. hope to have the opportunity next winter of seeing my friends in Boston. I wish all the ladys in the world happy. SA II.. HENLEY. PETER AUDRAIN, ESQ., Dei). ). IM. Genl., Detroit. In June, I80o, two regiments were here. In I803 the stockade was in very bad condition, and on April 28, I 804, a town meeting was held to vote on the question of its repair. The vote stood twelve in favor of, and tlirteen against repairing. In 1806 it was decided to repair the pickets, and in October Pierre Chesne was paid " fifty-eight pounds, sixteen shillings, for finishing the stockade." In 1807 an entirely new stockade was erected by Governor Hull. It included all the grounds between the Cass and Brush Farms and extended to the fort. There were gates and blockhouses on each side at Jefferson Avenue. For the purpose of building this stockade it was ordered on August 9, 1807, that fifty officers and men be detailed from the First Regiment, and fifty - from the Legionary _ Corps to be "march-, Ii ii ed to the works at i eight A. M." On O,,' August 17 following, James May, the Iill 1 li l adjutant-general, directed that the First iil Regiment should " prepare and set up three hundred yards of pickets, and the Legionary Corps, OLD ARSENAL, CORNER JEI one hundred and fifty yards." These pickets were fourteen feet high, with loop-holes to shoot through. The fort was surrendered by General Hull on August i6, I812. Among the brass field-pieces delivered up were two taken by General Stark at Bennington, one captured from General Burgoyne at Saratoga, and several obtained from Cornwallis at Yorktown. The fort was evacuated by the British on September 28, I813; when they left, some of the troops set fire to the barracks, but the inhabitants speedily quenched the flames. I General McArthur first occupied the fort on September 29. Up to this time it had retained the name of Leroult, but now it was christened Fort Shelby in honor of the brave governor of Kentucky. While the English were in possession, all of the pickets on the west and some on the east were cut off close to the ground, and in the winter of 1813 - I814 the soldiers of Harrison's army dug out the ends and used them for fuel. The walls of the fort, at this time, were closely lined with log huts, occupied by the army. Just prior to April 25, 1814, four lines of pickets were erected in place of those destroyed in 1813. The fort was also newly mounted with cannon, and fourteen hundred troops were then stationed here. On August 9, I8I5, Major William H. Puthuff, of the Second United States Rifle Regiment, who had been in command at Detroit, retired from the army, and was presented by the citizens with a complimentary address. In September, I8I5, nearly thirteen hundred soldiers were stationed here, and quartered in what was called the cantonment, built just west of the fort in that year. It consisted of four rows of onestory log buildings arranged in quadrangular form. The west row stood directly on the east line of the Cass r,.<:^z....Farm. At this time the gates of the town were guarded by sentinels, and no one could enter or leave without a pass. On Saturday, September 6, 1815, Major General Brown and suite, who had been at Detroit on a tour of inspection, ileft for Buffalo on tined atehin nothe brig Niagara. The arsenal on FERSON AVE. AND WAYNE Si. o the northwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Wayne Street was built under the direction of Colonel R. L. Biaker, in I8i6, and was torn down late in the summer of I867. The yard in the rear, with its stores of cannon-balls, was in charge of Captain Perkins, who kept it in the best of order. The garrison, during a part of i816, consisted of fifteen hundred regular troops; in the following year it varied from one hundred and fifty to four hundred. On April 19, 1818, the flag-staff was blown down during a storm, and two days after the Gazette contained this notice: 'IThe flag-staff on which, in August, 1812, General Hull displayed his signal of disgraceful submission, fell during the storm last Wednesday evening. No flag had waved on it since 1812, but it stood a monument of the cowardly surrender of Detroit. It was possibly this very staff that the council, in I827, proposed to convert into ladders for the use of the firemen. In the spring of 1873, while a cellar I I! FORTS AND DEFENSES. 225 for the residence of John Owen on Fort Street West was being excavated, the stump of the staff was found; a plate suitably inscribed was placed upon it, and on April 26, 1877, it was presented to the Public Library. On July 25, I818, Colonel John E. Wool arrived, and remained two (lays. In I820 a full regiment was stationed here. On Wednesday, May 3, of this year, Captain J. Farley, of the United States Artillery, and Lieutenant Otis Fisher, of the Fifth Regiment, went to Sandwich, and fought a duel, Fisher being instantly killed. On June 4, I82I, General Alexander Maconb, who had been in command here for many years, being about to leave, was presented by the citizens with several engravings, and also with a silver tankard made by Mr. Rouquette. In this year Fort Shelby was in a dilapidated con dollars were paid for filling in the old ditch around the fort, and in May, six thousand pickets, forming part of the fort and stockade, were sold at from two dollars to three dollars per hundred. Fort IWaync. This fortification, named after General Anthony Wayne, is located in the township of Springwells, three and one half miles from the City Hall, at the only bend in the river, and also at its narrowest point. It commands the city and the river channel. Its site was the camping-ground of the troops rendezvousing for the Black Hawk War, also of the forces engaged in the Patriot War of 1838. The first appropriation of $50,000 for its construction was made on August 4, 1841; in I842 the Government purchased twenty-three acres, and in 1844 an additional forty-three acres was procured. OFFICERS' QUARTERS AT FORT WAYNE. dition, and without a single mounted piece of artillery; the pickets and abattis also were badly decayed. On Tuesday, October 19, I824, General Gaines arrived from a tour of inspection of the northern posts. He left the next day. On July 12, 1825, General Solomon Van Rensselaer visited the city, and was given a public dinner at Woodworth's Hotel, Colonel J. E. Wool being also present. On May 27, 1826, the two companies of infantry which had been stationed here departed for (Green Bay, leaving the city, probably for the first time, without any troops. During this year, the fort and its grounds were given to the city by Congress, and most of the old barracks were sold and moved away. In the spring of I827 the stockade was removed and the fort demolished. Six hundred and twenty-five 15 The fort was begun in I843, and completed about 185, at a cost of nearly $r 50,000. General Meigs had entire charge of the construction. It was originally a square-bastioned fort, with sand embankments, and red cedar scarp with embrasures of oak. The cedar was brought from Kelley's Island, some three hundred workmen being sent thither for the purpose. Both the cedar and the oak were kyanized, and it was thought they would be very durable. In 1864, under the superintendence of General I. J. Cram, the cedar scarp was removed, and replaced with brickwork, seven and one half feet thick and twenty-two feet high, with a brick facing of about eighteen inches, back of which is six feet of concrete. The top of the scarp wall extends about six feet above the former woodwork, and there is an empty 226 PENSIONS AND PENSION AGENTS.-OFFICERS IN COMMAND AT DETROIT. 1.. - - - space between it and the embankment. In case the top of the wall should be shot away, this space would serve as a receptacle for the falling brick and mortar, which would be very nearly as serviceable as a sand embankment in resisting the destructive effect of solid shot. The entire cost of these improvements was nearly $250,000. Fort Croghan or Fort Nonsense. Early in the century the Indians near the city were continually killing cattle, driving off horses, and committing depredations of various kinds. To intimidate them, and to protect the stock which grazed on the commons, this fort was erected. The following official order had reference to the work of erection: HEADQUARTERS DETROIT, 6 June, 18o6. It is hereby ordered, that the three following companies of the First Regiment, by and under the command of their respective captains, shall furnish the following quota of men each, to assist in erecting the public works on the Common above the fort, viz.: Captain Campau six men, Captain Tuttle six men, and Captain *Anderson eight men each day, to attend precisely at seven o'clock in the morning at said work, to be there under the direction and control of the commandant, already appointed in General orders to superintend the erection of said works, and subject to the command of the officer of the day. The officers of the three companies aforesaid will be liable to be called upon, from time to time, to serve as officers of the day. (Signed) S'rANLEY GYISWoLI, A4 cing Governor tand CommandZer-in-Chief. The fort was located near what is now the northeast corner of Park and High Streets, and was eventually called Fort Croghan, also Fort Nonsense. It was circular in form, about forty feet in diameter, and consisted of an earth embankment about ten feet high, and two feet wide on top, surrounded by a ditch. It was mounted with a few pieces of artillery. The soldiers used to practice firing into it from Fort Shelby so as to be able to drive out the Indians in case they attempted to occupy it. In later times it was a favorite place of resort for the boys, who would choose sides and battle for its possession, and they, probably, gave it its best-known name. Detroit Barracks. As early as September, 1830, the Government obtained possession, partly by purchase and partly by lease of a large portion of the Mullett Farm, fronting on Gratiot Street, near the present Russell Street; barracks were erected thereon, and the Government continued to occupy the ground for nearly twenty-five years. During most of this time, a large number of soldiers were quartered there. As an event in which military officers of Detroit felt much interest, it may be noted that the cornerstone of the Arsenal at Dearborn was laid on July 30, 1833, under the supervision and management of Colonel Joshua Howard. The ceremonies commenced at 12 M., with prayer by Rev. Mr. Searle, of Detroit, followed by an address by Major Henry Whiting, and a dinner. On August I I, I845, an order arrived for the three companies of the Fifth Regiment, then in Detroit, to rendezvous at Jefferson Barracks, Mo., preparatory to going to Texas; and on the i6th, a complimentary dinner was given to the officers at the Exchange. PENSIONS AND PENSION AGENTS. The United States, as early as 1789, assumed the payment of pensions, agreed to be paid by the States. An Act of April 24, 1816, provided for the appointment, by the Secretary of War, of additional commissioners of pensions. This office was established in Detroit in 1824, and through its agency the Government pays pensions to wounded officers, soldiers, and sailors who were engaged in the War of 1812, the Mexican War, and the war with the South. The amounts paid vary from one dollar to fifty dollars per month, and are paid at the end of each quarter, dating from September 4 in each year. There are about 10,500 pensioners on the rolls of the Detroit Pension Agency, of whom about 600 live in the city. The disbursements of the Detroit office for pensions, for the year ending June 30, 1883, reached a total of $2,750,702, paid out to 13,o80 persons. The salary of the pension agent is $4,000 a year, and fifteen cents on each payment to pensioners after $4,00o has been paid. Out of the amount he receives, the agent pays the salaries of several employees, and all expenses except office rent, lights, and fuel. The following persons have served as pension agents: I824-I831, Thomas Rowland; I83I-i837, Ellis Doty; I837-I854, E. P. Hastings; 1854-1857, Elisha Taylor; 1857-1859, Guy Foote; 1859-1862, Henry C. Kibbee; 1862-1863, Alexander G. Noyes; 1863-I867, Thomas J. Noyes; 1867-I869, Henry Barns; 1869-1873, Arnold Kaichen; I873 -Samuel Post. MILITARY OFFICERS IN COMMAND AT DETROIT. No list of either the French, English, or American commanders at Detroit has ever before been published. The following lists, compiled from various official and private manuscripts, are believed to be nearly complete. French Commandants. 1701 to fall of I704, M. Antoine de la Mothe Cadillac. 1704, fall of, to 1706, Sieur Alphonse de Tonty. MILITARY OFFICERS IN COMMAND AT DETROIT. 227 1706, January 29, to August, Sieur de Bourgmont. 1706, August, to summer of I71 I, M. Antoine de la Mothe Cadillac. 1711 to June, 1712, M. Joseph Guyon du Buisson. 1712, June, to 1714, Fran(ois Daupin, Sieur de la Forest. 1714, November 12, to 1717, Lieutenant Jacques Chas. Sabrevois. 1717, M. Louis de la Poste, Sieur de Louvigny. 1717, July 3, to 1720, M. Henri Tonty, younger brother of Alphonse. 1720, M. Charles Joseph, Sieur de Noyelle. 1720 to November io, 1727 (when he died), Sieur Alphonse de Tonty. 1727, December 19, to, M. le Chevalier de Lepernouche. 1728, M. Jean Baptiste Deschaillons de St. Ours. 1728, M. Charles Joseph, Sieur de Noyelle. 1728 to June o0, 1734, M. de Boishebert. 1734, June IO, to, Hugues Jacques Pean, Sieur de Livandiere. 1734-1738, Lieutenant Jacques Charles Sabrevois 1738-1741, M. Charles Joseph, Sieur de Noyelle. 1741, July 28, to 1742, Pierre Poyen de Noyan. 1742-1743, Pierre de Celeron, Sieur de Blainville. 1743-1747, M. Joseph Lemoyne, Chevalier de Longueuil. 1749-, Lieutenant Jacques Charles Sabrevois. 175I, February 15, to March 19, 1754, Pierre de Celeron, Sieur de Blainville. 1754 to May 25, I758, M. Jacques d'Anon, Sieur de Muy. Iied at Detroit. I758-I760, Captain Franqois Marie Picote de [Bellestre. Lngish'z Co lmmainzaz O(Sficers. 1760, Major Robert Rogers. 1760 to 1763, Major Donald Campbell. 1763 to August 31, 1764, Major Henry (;ladwin. 1764, Colonel John Bradstreet. 1765, Colonel John Campbell. 1766, August 26, Major Robert Bayard. 1767-1769, Captain George Turnbull. 1770, June 2, to September, Major T. Bruce. 1770, September, to January 8, 1772, James Stephenson. 1772, Major Etherington. i772-1774, Major Henry Bassett. 1774, Major R. B. Iernoult. 1775, Captain Montpasant. 1776, Major Arent Schuyler De P:-yster. 1776, Captain Lord. 1778, December, to October, 1779, Major Richard [3eringer Lernoult. 1779, October, to June I, 1784, Major Arent Schuyler De Peyster. 1784, June i, to. Major William Ancram. 1785, June, Captain Bennet. 1786, June; Major R. Matthews. 1787, Major \Viseman. 1789. September 2, Major Patrick Murray. 1790, November 14, Major D. WV. Smith. 1791, Colonel England. 1791, Major John Smith, of Fifth Regiment. 1792, Major Claus. 1792, October 24. Colonel Richard England. 1793, March, to 1796, Colonel Richard Englarnd of Twenty-fourth Regiment. 1793, Captain William Doyle. The records of the War Department at Washington having been partially destroyed in the War of 1812, no.record of the officers in command prior to i815 can be there obtained, but from various old records the following officers are found to have been at Detroit on and between the dates named: Am rlicanzo Commatndzt ilg, Officers. 1796, July 11, Captain Moses Porter. 1796, July 12, Colonel John F. Hamtramck. 1796, Major-General Anthony Wayne. 1797, Major-General James Wilkinson. 1797, to December 17, 1799, Colonel D. Strong. 1799, l)ecember 17, to February, r8oo, Major Hlenry Burbeck. 80oo, Colonel Porter. 1800-1802, Major Thomas Hunt. 1802 to April II, 1803. Colonel J. F1. Ilamtrainck. 1803, Major Henry Burbeck. I803, 5Major John Whistler. I803, Colonel Thomas Hunt. I805, August, to April, 1807, Captain S. T. Dyson. I809-181 I, Captain Jacob Kingsbury. 1812, May, Major John Whistler. 1812, July, Colonel Brush. 1812, July, to August i6, 1812, Gen. Wm. Hull. 1813, September 29, General Duncan McArthur. 1813, Major-General William Henry Harrison. 1813, October, Colonel Lewis Cass. 1813, November, Captain Abraham Edwards. 1814, February. Colonel Anthony Butler. 1814, March. Colonel George Croghan. 1814, July, Colonel Anthony Butler. 1815, January i to February 4, Colonel Charles Gratiot. 'The following anecdote concerning Colonel England is given in John A. McClung's " Sketches of Western Adventure ": " This gentleman was remarkable for his immense height and enormous quantity of flesh. After his return from America, the waggish Prince of Wales, who was himself no pigmy, became desirous of seeing him. Colonel England was one day pointed out to him, by Sheridan, as he was in the act of dismounting from his horse. The prince regarded him with marked attention for several minutes, and then, turning to Sheridan, said, with a laugh, ' Colonel England, hey? You should have said Great Britain, by...., 228 MILITARY OFFICERS IN COMMAND AT DETROIT. I8 5, February 4 to August io, Colonel Anthony Butler. 1815, Major W. H. Puthuff. 18 5, September, Brigadier-General Miller. The official list of commanding officers since 8I 5, compiled by the direction of the Secretary of War for this work, is as follows. Commandzing' Officers at F,'ort Shelby. 1815, August, to November, 1817, Captain John Biddle, First Battalion Corps Artillery. 1817, November, to January, I818, Second Lieutenant Chas. Mellon, First Battalion Corps Artillery. 1818, January, to June, I818, First Lieutenant Neucas Mackey, First Battalion Corps Artillery. I818, June, to July, 1819, Captain John Farley, First Battalion Corps Artillery. i819, July, to August, I82I, Captain Thos. Stockton, Fourth Battalion Corps Artillery. 1821, August, to June, 1822, Colonel James House, Second Artillery. 1822, June, to October, 1822, Captain J. Mountfort, Second Artillery. 1822, October, to December, 1822, Captain R. A. Zant Zinger, Second Artillery. 1823, Major Baker. Conmmanding Officers at Detroit Barracks. 1838, March, to April, 1838, Major John Garland, First Infantry. 1838, April, to August, 1838, Captain L. J. Jamison, Fifth Infantry. 1838, August, to May, 1839, Major M. M. Payne, Second Artillery. I839, May, to June, 1839, First Lieutenant C. B. Daniels, Second Artillery. 1839, June, to August, 1839, Captain R. A. Zant Zinger, Second Artillery. I839, August, to September, 1839, First Lieutenant C. B. Daniels, Second Artillery. I839, September, to October, I839, Major M. M. Payne, Second Artillery. 1839, October, to May, 1840, Major F. S. Belton, Fourth Artillery. I840, May, to June, 1841, Lieutenant-Colonel A. C. W. Fanning, Fourth Artillery. I84I, June, to July, 1841, Lieutenant-Colonel J. B. Crane, Fourth Artillery. 1841, July, to June, 1842, Brigadier-General H. Brady. I842, June, to April, 1843, Colonel George M. Brooke, Fifth Infantry. 1843, April, to July, 1843, Lieutenant-Colonel J. S. McIntosh, Fifth Infantry. 1843, July, to August, 1843, Captain E. K. Smith, Fifth Infantry. 1843, August, to July, I844, Colonel Geo. M. Brooke, Fifth Infantry. 1844, July, to September, 1844, Captain E. K. Smith, Fifth Infantry. 1844, September, to November, I 844, Colonel Geo. M. Brooke, Fifth Infantry. 1844, November, to April, 1845, Colonel J. S. McIntosh, Fifth Infantry. 1845, April, to May, 1845, Colonel Geo. M. Brooke, Fifth Infantry. 1845, May, to July, I845, Captain E. K. Smith, Fifth Infantry. 1845, July, to August, 1845, Colonel Geo. M. Brooke, Fifth Infantry. 1845, August, to October, 1845, Captain H. Day, Second Infantry. 1845, October, to July, I846, Lieutenant-Colonel Bennet Riley, Second Infantry. I846, July, to November, 1848, unoccupied. 1848, November, to June 5, 1851, Colonel William Whistler, Fourth Infantry. 1851, June 5th to iIth, LIEUTENANT U. S. GRANT, Fourth Infantry. 1851, June, to March, I860, unoccupied. During the war it was occupied by various detachments of volunteers. I866, March 19, to April 9, 1866, Captain D. L. Montgomery, Seventeenth Infantry. 1866, April 9, to May I, I866, Captain R. P. McKibbin, Fourth Infantry. I866, May I, to June, 1866, First Lieutenant S. W. Black, Seventeenth Infantry. Commanding Officers at Fort Wayne. (First occupied December 15, i86i.) i86, IDecember, to September, 1862, Captain Alfred Gibbs, Third Cavalry. I862, September, to December, 1862, Captain C. H. McNally, Third Cavalry. I862, December, to March, 1863, Captain C. C. Churchill, U. S. A. 1863, March, to June, 1863, unoccupied. 1863, June, to March, 1864, Captain Lewis Wilson, Nineteenth Infantry. 1864, March, to April, 1865, Major Pinkney Lugenbeel, Nineteenth Infantry. i865, April, to October, I865, Lieutenant-Colonel De L. Floyd-Jones, Nineteenth Infantry. I865, October, to April, 1867, Colonel Silas Casey, Fourth Infantry. I867, April, to May, 1867, Major M. I). Hardin, Forty-third Infantry. 1867, May, to May, 1868, Lieutenant-Colonel J. B. Kiddoo, Forty-third Infantry. MILITARY OFFICERS IN COMMAND AT DETROIT. 229 i868, May, to April, 1869, Colonel John C. Robinson, Forty-third Infantry. 1869, April, to January, 1871, Colonel R. C. Buchanan, First Infantry. I87I, January, to July, 1874, Lieutenant-Colonel Pinkney Lugenbeel, First Infantry. I874, July, to October, 1876, Colonel D. S. Stanley, Twenty-second Infantry. 1876, October, to May, 1877, Captain J. B. Irvint, Twenty-second Infantry. 1877, May, to August, 1877, Lieutenant-Colonel E. S. Otis, Twenty-second Infantry. 1877, August, to October, 1877, Lieutenant iP. M. Thome, Twenty-second Infantry. 1877, October, to November, 1877, Captain J. 13. Irvine, Twenty-second Infantry. 1877, November, to May, 1877, Lieutenant-Colonel E. S. Otis, Twenty-second Infantry. 1877, May, to June 8, 18S4, Colonel H. B. Clitz, Tenth Infantry. 1884, June8, to,Colonel II. M. Black, Twenty-third Infantry. Deszgnation of Command embracing the City of Detroit, Mich/zzan, from MWay 19, 1813, fwith location of Hcadquarrtcrs and name (f CommandZinzg Officers. May 19, 1813, Military I)strict No. 8, Detroit, Michigan. May I7, i815, Military Department No. 5, Detroit, Michigan. May 17, 1821, Eastern Department, Governor's Island, New York Harbor. November I, 1827, Eastern Department, New York City. May I, 1837, Eastern Department, Elizabethtown, New York. May 19, 1837, Military Department No. 7, Detroit, Michigan. July I2, 1842, Department No. 4, Detroit, Mich. August 3I, 1848, Military Department No. 2. September II, 1848, Military Department No. 2, Albany, New York. October 4, 1848, Military Department No. 2, Troy, New York. January 5, I849, Military Department No. 2, I)etroit. May 17, I85I, Eastern Division, Troy, New York. October 31, 1853, Department of the East, Baltimore, Maryland. March 23, 1857, Department of the East, Troy, New York. October 26, 186I, to November 9, I86I, in no I)epartment. November 9, 1861, Department of the Ohio. November 15, I86i, Department of the Ohio, Louisville, Kentucky. March I I, 1862, Mountain Department, Wheeling, Virginia. June 26, 1862, to August 19, 1862, in no Department, August 19, 1862, Department of the Ohio, Cincinnati, Ohio. November I6, 1862, to January 12, 1864, in no Department. January 12, 1864, Northern Department, Columbus, Ohio. January 27, I865, Department of the Ohio, Detroit, Michigan. August 6, I866, Department of the Lakes, Detroit, Michigan. October 31, 1873, Division of the Atlantic, New York Ciiy. November 8, 1878, Department of the East, New York City. June 26, 1878, Department of the East, Governor's Island, New York Harbor. Commanded by May 19, 1813, Major-General W. H. Harrison. May 17, I815, Brigadier-General Alex. Macomb. May I7, 1821, Brevet Major-General W. Scott. December 8, 1823, Brevet Major-General Edmund P. Gaines. December 8, 1825, Brevet Major-General Winfield Scott. November i, 1827, Brevet Major-General E. P. Gaines. July I6, 1828, Brevet Brigadier-General Hugh Brady, Col. Second Infantry. March 21, 1829, Brevet Major-General Edmund P. Gaines. November 23, I829, Brevet Major-General Winfield Scott. May 19, 1837, Brevet Brigadier-General Hugh Brady, Col. Second Infantry. August i, 1844, Brevet Brigadier-General George M. Brooke, Col. Fifth Infantry. September 20, 1844, Brevet Brigadier-General H. Brady, Col. Second Infantry. Julyt 4, 1846, Brevet Colonel Bennet Riley, Lieut. Col. Second Infantry. August, I846, Brevet Brigadier-General Hugh Brady, Co!. Second Infantry. September 11, 1848, Brevet Major-General John E. Wool. January 5, 1849, Brevet Brigadier-General Hugh Brady, Col. Second Infantry. April 15, 1851, Colonel William Whistler, Fourth Infantry. May 17, I35I, Brevet Major-General J. E. Wool. 230 MILITARY OFFICERS IN COIMMAND AT DETROIT. January 13, I854, Brevet Brigadier-General James Bankhead, Colonel Second Infantry. November 13, 1856, Brevet Brigadier-General John B. Walbach, Colonel Fourth Artillery. March 23, I857, Brevet Major-General John E. Wool. November 15, I86r, Brigadier-General Don Carlos Buell. March ii, I862, Brigadier-General William S. Rosecrans. March 29, 1862, Major-General John C. Fremont. August 19, 1862, Major-General Horatio G. Wright. March 25, 1863, Major-General Ambrose E. Burnside. January I2, 1864, Major-General S. P. Heintzelman. October I, 1864, Major-General Joseph Hooker. January 27, I865, Major-General Edward 0. C. Ord. December 26, 1865, Brevet Major-General Orlando B. Willcox. January 15, i866, Major-General Edward 0. C. Ord. August 23, i866, Brevet Major-General Joseph Hooker. June I, 1867, Brevet Major-General J. C. Robin son, Col. Forty-third Infantry. February I, 1868, Brevet Major-General John Pope. May 6, I870, Brevet Major-General Philip St. G. Cooke. October 31, I873, Major-General W. S. Hancock. February io, 88.6, Major-General P. H. Sheridan. April r 3, I886, Major-General J. M. Schofield. CHAPTER XXXVII. EARLY INDIAN ATTACKS.-THE FRENCH AND ENGLISH OR SEVEN YEARS'WAR. EARLY INDIAN ATTACKS. THE Indians whom Cadillac and the other French commandants gathered about Fort Pontchartrain were, generally, friendly, but these Indian allies had enemies, who frequently sought occasion to injure them by making war on the French. Their first attack was made in 1703, when the fort was set on fire by an Indian and partially destroyed. A portion of the defenses, the church, the House of the Recollects, Cadillac's house and that of his lieutenant, were burned. The friendly Indians aided in rebuilding the houses, and presented the commandant with one hundred bushels of corn to " cure " in part the loss he had sustained by the fire. In June, 1706, while Cadillac was absent, a dog belonging to Bourgmont, the acting commandant, bit an Ottawa Indian in the leg. The Indian was greatly enraged, and beat the dog. Bourgmont then fell upon the Indian, and punished him so severely that he died soon after. Of course this roused the anger of the Ottawas, who were besides jealous of the Miamis, because they seemed to be the especial favorites of the French. On June 6 they fell upon a party of six Miamis, and wreaked their vengeance by killing five of the number; other Miamis who were in the vicinity then rushed for protection to the fort, and Bourgmont fired on the Ottawas, killing several. Meantime the Ottawas had seized the priest, Nicholas Constantine del Halle, as he was walking in his garden outside of the fort. One of the chiefs released him, but just as he was about entering the fort he was killed by a musket-shot from an Ottawa. Bourgmont then closed the gate of the fort, in which there were but fifteen soldiers, and fired on the Ottawas, killing thirty of them. This occasioned much bad feeling, but the French maintained their ground, though the fort was besieged for nearly a month. In the spring of 1707 the Ottawas went to Montreal to explain and make peace, returning to Detroit on August 6, I707, with M. de St. 'ierre, who brought instructions to Cadillac in regard to the matter. A portion of the Miamis had by this time become disaffected, and the same year Cadillac marched against them, and caused them to sue for peace. In 1712, at the instigation of the English, the Outagamies, or Foxes, aided by the Kickapoos and Mascoutins, attacked the fort, which was then held by Du Buisson with a force of only twenty men. Being warned in time, he secured his grain and supplies from the warehouse outside, and brought them within the stockade. He then burned the warehouse, the church, and several other buildings, which might have endangered the fort if set on fire by the Indians. On May 13, the Ottawas, Hurons, Potowatamies, Menominees, Illinois, and Osages arrived to aid him. By this time the Foxes had erected a fort almost within musket range of Fort Pontchartrain. Here they were besieged by the allied Indians, who raised rough scaffolds twenty-five feet high, from which they fired on the Foxes, who finally sued for peace. The allied Indians would make no terms except unconditional surrender, and the Foxes retired to their fort, and discharged therefrom burning arrows at the French fort, setting several houses on fire. The French covered their houses with wet bear and deer skins, and the fires were put out with swabs fastened on long poles. The Foxes held out so long that the allied Indians at one time were about to give up the contest, but large presents from Du Buisson caused them to renew the siege, which was continued with vigor till a heavy rainstorm dispersed them. The Foxes then escaped, and made their way up to Grosse Pointe, where they entrenched themselves. With aid of cannon from the fort they were defeated, and nearly one thousand massacred by the allied Indians, who made slaves of the squaws and the children. In 1717 a party of Foxes again threatened the fort, but they were soon put to flight. These defeats seemed to have been salutary lessons, for there is no record of any further attack upon the fort until 1746, when it was set upon by northern Indians, and defended by Pontiac and his tribe. THE FRENCH AND ENGLISH WAR. The French and English or Seven Years' War was caused by the determined effort of both the French and the English to secure their western possessions and to add to their extent. To this end intrigue, massacre, and military manoeuvres continually succeeded each other. Year by year the jeal [2.311 232 THE' FRENCH AND ENGLISH WAR. ousy between French and English occupants of America became increasingly manifest, and excursions to attack English settlements were a feature of the times. As early as I745, and especially in 1747, such items as these are of frequent mention in old French records: " Twenty-four Ottawas and Pottowatamies have been fitted out for the war excursion." "Nine parties have been equipped for a war excursion. Sieur Blondeau, a volunteer, commands them." The English, however, were not asleep, and they were as unscrupulous as their antagonists in making use of the savages. Governor Clinton, in a letter to Colonel Johnson, dated New York, April 25, 1747, says, " In the bill I am going to pass the council did not think it proper to put rewards for scalping, or taking poor women or children prisoners, in it; but the assembly has assured me the money shall be paid when it so happens, if the Indians insist upon it." On May 30 Colonel Johnson wrote the governor, " I am quite pestered every day with parties returning with prisoners and scalps, and without a penny to pay them with. It comes very hard upon me, and is displeasing to them I can assure you, for they expect their pay, and demand it of me as soon as they return." The fact is undoubted and indisputable that at Detroit and other posts under both French and English rule, the Indians received goods in payment for human scalps as regularly as for coon and muskrat skins. In 1747 the English, through the Iroquois, distributed belts to the Hurons, and in fact to all of the Indians in this neighborhood, and all, except the Illinois, were agreed in a plot to massacre the French at Detroit on one of the holidays of Pentecost. The Indians were to sleep in the fort, as they had often done, and each was to kill the inmates of the house where he lodged. A squaw, going into a garret in search of corn, overheard the conspirators planning beneath her. She informed a Jesuit lay brother, who told M. de Longueuil, the commandant. He at once called together the principal chiefs, showed them that their plot was exposed, and they abandoned it with excuses and protestations. On August 31, 1747, a settler named Martineau strayed too far from the fort, and was killed and scalped by four Indians. On September 22 following, the fort was reinforced by the arrival of one hundred and fifty soldiers from Montreal, and the settlers felt much more secure. That there was continued danger, however, is evident from this general order, dated Detroit, June 2, 1748: Should any Huron or rebel be so daring as to enter the fort without a pass, through sheer bravado, 'twould be proper to arrest him and put him to death on the spot. I)uring the year several Indians from Bois Blanc Island waylaid a party of Frenchmen on Grosse Isle and seriously maltreated them. M. de Longueuil, who was still in command at the fort, sent a force of thirty men in search of the hostile party. Three of the Huron chiefs, who had begun to fear for their own safety, volunteered their aid, and with ten of de Longueuil's men they set out, overtook the first party of thirty, and captured the five hostile Indians, only one of whom was a Huron. The leader, an Onondaga, was put to death by the inhabitants as soon as the party reached Detroit, and the rest were put in irons; one of these, a Seneca Indian, was found dead in the guard-house on the 29th of December, I747; the three others were released in February, 1748, on promise of good behavior. In considering the history of the West at this time, it should be remembered that the Territory watered by the Ohio was claimed by both English and French. The latter had established a small post on French Creek, south of Lake Erie. To offset this movement, a company, known as the Ohio Company, was organized, and five hundred thousand acres in the disputed territory granted it, on condition that one hundred families should be settled thereon within seven years, and a fort erected for their protection. These proceedings caused the French much uneasiness, and in 1749 Pierre de Celeron, Sieur de Blainville, under instructions from Count de la Gallissoniere, Governor of New France, left Montreal with three hundred soldiers to take formal possession of the valley of the Ohio. He was furnished with leaden plates inscribed with a statement of the claims of the French, and a formal declaration that they thus took possession of the land. These plates were deposited at various points through the country. After having performed these duties, a part of the expedition returned by water, arriving at Detroit October 6, and the rest went back overland. As an appropriate supplement to his expedition, Count Gallissoniere made special efforts to encourage immigration to the western posts, and particular privileges were accorded to all immigrants. Those who came to Detroit in 1749, 175, and 1754, had various supplies granted to them. In order to obtain information as to the plans of the French, or to protest against them, Governor Dinwiddie, on behalf of Virginia, which claimed the territory, sent Colonel George Washington to interview the French commandant at the post on French Creek. Washington set out on November 14, I753, and on his return trip narrowly escaped being massacred by the Indians. After his return, in order to protect her interests, Virginia determined to erect a fort. In pursuance of this plan, in February, 1754, that province began the erection of a fort near what THE FRENCH AND ENGLISH WARS. 233 is now Pittsburgh; but in April following the Virginia troops were driven from their position by the French, who made the place almost impregnable by building Fort Duquesne. Its position at the confluence of the Alleghany and Monongahela, which unite to form the Ohio, rendered it a point of great commercial and strategic importance; and the English at once made a desperate effort to obtain it. General Braddock, at the head of a large army, was sent against it, but on July 9, I757, he was defeated. In 1754 or 1755 WM. Bigot, Intendant of Canada, sent Hugues Jacques Pean, with four hundred militia, and a quantity of provisions and goods for the Indians, to Detroit, and there is strong ground for the belief that a portion of these troops were sent to join the army that defeated Braddock. Tradition says that several English horses were brought here after his defeat. During this period immense quantities of military supplies were forwarded from France, and the officers vied with each other in their efforts to swindle the Government by fraudulent contracts and exorbitant charges. Enormous fortunes were thus accumulated. After the defeat of General Braddock several Indian tribes, who had formerly been friendly to the English, were won over to the French, and on January IO, 1757, a delegation from the Flathead Indians arrived at Detroit to hold a conference with M. de Muy in regard to uniting against the English. A dispatch sent from Fort Duquesne, about this time, given in the Pennsylvania Archives, says: M. de Vaudreuil adopted all possible measures to enable M. Dumas to make a good defence. He has sent him an abundant supply of all sorts of ammunitions, by a detachment of three hundred Canadians, who, with the garrison and the Detroit militia, that will be near enough to go to his assistance, will compose a force of twelve to fifteen hundred men, exclusive of the Indians, who are quite numerous. On July 12, I757, M. Vaudreuil wrote to M. de Moras from Montreal: I have already written several letters to the commandants of Detroit and Illinois, to put themselves at that moment in a condition to transmit at the opening of navigation, for the victualling of the posts on the beautiful river, the largest quantity of provisions of all descriptions that they could spare, by restricting the settlers to their mere subsistence. In the fall of this year, on November 12, 1757, a party of three hundred Canadians and Indians, going by way of Niagara, fell upon the German settlers or Palatines on the Mohawk Flats, killed forty, took one hundred and fifty captives, and carried off an immense quantity of goods and livestock. From what sources this party was gathered is unknown, but there are several reasons for believing that at least a portion of the force went from Detroit. By this time the English had determined to make a second attempt to capture Fort Duquesne, and on October 15, 1758, an attack was made by Major Grant. He was repulsed, but on the 28th of the following month General Forbes captured the fort, though only after it had been fired and abandoned by the French, who retreated to Detroit. A new fort, called Fort Pitt, was at once erected by the English. It was probably their success at Fort Duquesne that inspired the attempt to capture Detroit. Brief mention of this attempt is made in one of the publications of the Quebec Literary and Historical Society. The record says: Sieur de Bellestre, having heard that the enemy were marching, put himself at the head of the Hurons and other Indians to give an attack to the advance guard, which he defeated. The Hurons gave signs enough of their bravery and made about twenty prisoners, but the Ottawas disgraced themselves in scalping all those the French had killed. The English next turned their attention to the capture of Niagara, and preparations were therefore made by the French at Detroit to send provisions thither by way of the Beautiful River, as the Ohio was then called. This plan, approved at first, was afterwards set aside because the provisions, as one of the French officers sarcastically said, "were required for the private and invincible trade of some person in that very post itself." The same officer, who had probably been stationed at Niagara, says, " In the spring of I759 one hundred and fifty militia, almost all belonging to Fort Iuquesne, and who had wintered at Detroit, were also detained under pretext of the necessity of making a ditch around the stockade fort, which tumbled down immediately." On March 30, I759, Governor Vaudreuil wrote from Montreal to AM. Berryer: As I am aware of the designs of the English against Niagara, I write M. de Ligneris that, supposing that place to be really besieged, AM. Pouchot will retain tinder his orders three hundred Canadians whom I had designed for the Beautiful River, and that, according as he will find it necessary, he will call to his assistance all the forces from Detroit and other posts, whom I have ordered to rendezvous at Presqu' Isle. Colonel Bellestre was at Detroit in May, only waiting for orders from Pouchot to go to his relief at Niagara. On July 24 a body of twelve hundred men, from here and elsewhere, attempted to reinforce that post, but were all captured or dispersed, and the next day the post was surrendered. The capitulation of Niagara cut off communication with the French posts at \Venango, Presque Isle, and Le Boeuf, which were blown up, their garrisons retiring to Detroit. The great number of troops thus concentrated here occasioned a scarcity of provisions. " Meat without bread or corn" was distributed to the troops, and there was much distress. These difficulties were finally overcome, and early in June, I760, more French troops were sent hither, and with them were sent all the provisions, artillery, 234a THE FRENCH AND ENGLISH WARS. ammunition, and merchandise that could be stored away in the bateaux. From this time Detroit became the great depot and stronghold of the West. Meanwhile, on January 27, the English forces had landed near Quebec, and on September 8,I760, Canada was surrendered to the English. On the next day Governor Vaudreuil wrote a letter to be delivered to the commandant at Detroit, in which he stated that the conditions of capitulation were particularly advantageous to Detroit; that all persons, even the soldiers, were to retain their property, real and personal, including their peltries. The soldiers were to be allowed to delegate to some resident the care of their property, or to sell to either French or English; or they might take with them all portable property. They were to lay down their arms, and agree not to serve again during the war. On September 13 Major Robert Rogers, with two hundred rangers in fifteen boats, was sent from Montreal to take possession of Detroit and other western posts. He journeyed by way of the St. Lawrence and the Lakes. On his arrival at Presque Isle, he was joined by Captain Croghan and the Royal Americans under Captain Campbell. One division, under Captain Brewer, with a drove of forty oxen, took the land route. The division under Rogers, which went by water, had a very disagreeable journey, the waves breaking over the boats and making their progress both difficult and dangerous. On November 7, in a cold, drizzling rain, they landed near Grand River, where they were met by Pontiac, who demanded how they dared enter his country without permission. Rogers replied that he came to drive out the French, who prevented peace between them. Pontiac warned him that he should " stand in his path " till the next morning. A formal council was held at that time, the pipe of peace was smoked, and then Pontiac accompanied Rogers on his journey. When still some distance from the mouth of the Detroit, Rogers sent a letter notifying Bellestre, the commandant at Detroit, of his approach. On his arrival at a small stream near the head of Lake Erie, several Huron chiefs informed him that four hundred Indians were collected at the mouth of the Detroit, at the instigation of Bellestre, to oppose his passage. The Indians, however, returned to Detroit without troubling him, and soon after Rogers received a letter from Bellestre asking for a copy of the capitulation and the letter of Vaudreuil containing instructions regarding it. The documents were forwarded by Captain Campbell, and Rogers pushed on towards the fort. When within half a mile, he received a message from Bellestre surrendering the fort. Lieutenants Leslie and McCormick, with thirty-six Royal Americans, were sent to take possession, and on November 29, I760, Detroit passed into the hands of the English. The French garrison, at the time of the surrender, consisted of three officers and thirty-five privates; there were also seventeen English prisoners in the fort. The French soldiers were sent to Philadelphia and from there returned to France. On December 2, I760, Captain Campbell wrote to Colonel H. Boquet: The inhabitants seem very happy at the change of government, but they are in great want of everything. * * * The fort is much better than we expected. It is one of the best stockades I have seen, but the Commandant's house and what belongs to the King is in bad repair. On December 9 Major Rogers left for Mackinaw, but on account of the ice in the St. Clair River, he returned on the 2ISt. On December 23, he departed for Pittsburgh, leaving Detroit in command of Captain Campbell. Some of the Indians were pleased to see Detroit in possession of the English, but others, among them the Senecas and the Wyandotts, in June, 1761, conspired to murder the garrison, but the attempt was unsuccessful. Realizing that it was desirable to hold a council with the western tribes, Sir William Johnson, who was superintendent of the northern Indian tribes, arranged to go to Detroit, leaving Fort Johnson (now Johnstown, New York) on July 5, 176I, accompanied by his son, John Johnson, his nephew, Lieutenant Guy Johnson, Captain Andrew Montour, and a few Mohawks and Oneidas. At Niagara, on July 25, they were joined by Major Gladwin, with Gage's Light Infantry. Gladwin left Niagara on the I2th, and on August I9 Johnson followed with the Royal Americans, commanded -by Ensigns Slosser and Holmes, and a company from New York commanded by Lieutenant Ogden. On September 2 they arrived at the entrance to the Detroit River, and encamped opposite Bois Blanc Island. September 3 they reached Detroit, and were welcomed by a discharge from the cannon at the fort. Sir William was lodged in the house which had been occupied by Bellestre, the best there was in the place. On Saturday the officers of the fort, among them Colonel du Quesne, dined with him. By this time the Indians began to assemble, and he commenced to distribute the presents he had brought. On Wednesday, the 9th, he ordered seats out doors for a council, as there was "no house half large enough." The cannon fired at ten o'clock as a signal for the Indians to assemble, and they did not break up until five o'clock in the afternoon. On the I th another council was held, and attended by over five hundred Indians. On the I3th, the final council was called, and on the I4th Sir William invited ali the principal inhabitants to dine with him. Three days later he left Detroit. CHAPTER XXXVIII. THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. THE transfer of the western posts from the French to the English did not please the Indians. The French had given the Indians very substantial tokens of their friendly feeling, and the Indians had learned to respect them and their power. An experience of three years taught them that the English gave but few presents, and these at irregular intervals, and that the English fur-traders paid too little for their furs and charged too much for goods. Because of these grievances, Pontiac, the Ottawa chief, formed the design of relieving the entire West of the presence of the English. In the latter part o0 1762 he commenced to enlist various tribes in his project; and on April 27, 1763, at a council of Ottawas, Potowatamies, and Hurons, held at Ecorce, his conspiracy was planned. He secured the cooperation of several tribes, and some of the French inhabitants promised their aid. In pursuance of his plans, about three o'clock in the afternoon of May I, Pontiac came to pay a visit to the fort. As he was in the habit of coming to the fort occasionally, no suspicions would have been aroused if he had come alone; but on this occasion he brought with him the unusual number of forty warriors, and was consequently refused admittance. Finally he was admitted with about a dozen of his followers, who strolled through the narrow streets, while the rest of the warriors amused the soldiers by dancing the pipe-dance outside the gate. Having completed his inspection of the fort and its defences, Pontiac retired. On the next day he summoned the Indians to a council, to be held May 5, at the Potowatamie village, to arrange details for the attack. From this council all the women were excluded, and sentinels were placed about the village to prevent any betrayal of their plans. Three days after, while visiting the Ottawa village, the wife of M. St. Aubin noticed several of the Indians filing off their guns. On her return to the fort she mentioned this fact to the blacksmith, who confirmed her fears by telling her that several Indians had recently been trying to borrow saws and files for purposes they did not seem willing to explain. The attention of Gladwin was at once called to these facts, but he did not seem to think them indications of evil. In the afternoon of the next day, however, an Ottawa Indian, named Mohigan, came to the fort, sought an interview with the commander, and exposed the plot. The Pontiac Manuscript, an ancient French document written at this time, and found many years after in the garret of an old French house, between the plate and the roof, makes no mention of any other informant, but other annals say that an Ojibway girl, of great beauty, known by the name of Catherine, for whom Gladwin had formed an attachment, told him that Pontiac and sixty of his chiefs were coming to the fort for the pretended purpose of holding a council; their guns, which had been cut short, were to be concealed under their blankets; and, on Pontiac's offering a peace-belt of wampum in a reversed position, the warriors were to fall on the garrison. Early in the morning on the day after the plot had been revealed, fifteen Ottawa vwarriors came to the fort, and were noticeably anxious to ascertain the location of the English trading stores. Having been warned in time, Gladwin watched their movements, and at nine o clock the garrison was ordered under arms. An hour later, when Pontiac with his followers reached the fort, he saw at a glance the probable ruin of his scheme. On either side of the gateway ranks of red-coats stood, their bayonets glistening in the sun, while the polished brass of the cannon told of discipline and preparation. Even the fur traders and their employees, standing in groups at the street corners, were armed to the teeth, and the measured tap of the drum resounded on the morning air. Pontiac, however, could not give up his scheme. Entering by the north gate, about where the First National Bank is located, he, with his warriors, moved along the street, silent and stolid, but with war-whoops close at their lips and hatred raging in their hearts. It was no part of Gladwin's policy to exhibit fear, and all the savages who came were freely admitted. Before twelve o'clock sixty warriors had gathered at the council-house. This was near the river, south of the present Jefferson avenue and between Griswold and Shelby Streets. On reaching the door they found Gladwin with his officers ready to receive them, and the observant sons of the forest did not fail to notice that each wore a sword at his side and 12351 236 THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. pistols in his belt. Pontiac and his warriors eyed each other with uneasy glances, and at last the chieftain said, " Why do I see so many of my father's young men standing i:a the streets with their guns?" Gladwin, through his interpreter La Butte, replied that he had ordered the soldiers under arms for the sake of exercise and discipline. The conference then opened, Pontiac, holding in his hand the wampum belt which was to give the fatal signal, he commenced by professing strong attachment to the English, and declared that he had come to smoke the pipe of peace and brighten the chain of friendship. In the course of his speech he raised the wampum, as if about to give the signal of attack; at that instant G!ldwin moved his hand, and immediately the clash of arms and the din of drums were heard at the door. Pontiac stood like one bewildered, till Gladwin, rising, drew aside his blanket, exposed the hidden gun, and sternly rebuked him for his treachery. He then assured the Indians that friendship would be extended towards them as long as they deserved it, but threatened swift vengeance for the first aggressive act. The council then broke up, and with mingled feelings of surprise and rage, the Indians retired. Pontiac, it is said, suspected the Ojibway girl of revealing the plot, and sent four Indians to her wigwam. They seized her, took her before Gladwin, and asked if it was not through her he had learned of the conspiracy. Of course, they obtained no satisfaction. They were, however, treated to bread and beer, and dismissed. Tradition says that they then took the girl to Pontiac, who, with his own hands, gave her a severe beating. She lived many years after, but became intemperate, and while intoxicated fell into a kettle of boiling maple-syrup, and was fatally burned. On the same day that the council was held, Lieutenant Robinson, Sir Robert Iavers,' and two soldiers, while taking soundings at the head of St. Clair River, were captured by the Indians, and one account says that the body of Davers was boiled and eaten. A letter from Captain Donald Campbell to Sir William Johnson, dated Detroit, June 9, 1762, thus alludes to this unfortunate officer: " Sir Robert Davers passed the winter with us; it was a great addition to our small society. Sir Robert is a very accomplished young gentleman and an excellent companion." On Sunday, May 8, at five o'clock in the afternoon, Pontiac, with several of the principal chiefs, came to the fort, bringing a pipe of peace, as though to fully convince the garrison of his friendship and sincerity. The next day, at seven o'clock in the 1 The name of this officer is sometimes given as Davis and sometimes as Danvers. Davers, however, is probably correct. morning, six of the Indian warriors came, but seeing the garrison under arms they soon went off. The same day, about ten o'clock, fifty-six canoes, with seven and eight men in each, crossed the river from their camp on the Canada side, coming toward the fort. The gates were shut at once, and the interpreter sent to tell them that not more than fifty or sixty chiefs would be admitted at a time. Pontiac told the interpreter to return and say that unless all his people were given free access to the fort, none of them would enter it; and that the English might stay in their fort, but the Indians would keep the country. Going to the house of an old Englishwoman named Turnbull, who with her two sons lived on the common and cultivated seven or eight acres, they proceeded to put their threat into execution. The shrieks of the inmates and the yells of the Indians soon warned those within the fort that the first blood had been shed at Detroit. The Indians next proceeded to Hog Island, where they killed twenty-four cattle belonging to the garrison. They also massacred James Fisher, his wife, two children, and two soldiers who were on the island. Some accounts say that two of Fisher's children were carried off as captives, and that four soldiers were killed, also a man named Goslin and Fisher's servant. In the afternoon Pontiac moved his entire camp to this side of the river. The number of Indians under his direction at this time is variously estimated at from six hundred to two thousand. Very early in the morning of the Ioth the savages began to fire on the fort and on the vessels Beaver and Gladwin which lay in front of the town. They gathered in large numbers behind several buildings outside of the fort, but within easy range, from whence they shot into the stockade. The garrison had but one cannon fit for use; this was loaded with red-hot spikes, and fired at the houses behind which the Indians had gathered; the buildings were soon wrapped in flames, and the disconcerted savages fled amid the jeers and cheers of the soldiers. Gladwin thought the whole affair but a sudden freak of temper, which would soon subside; and being in great want of provisions, he resolVed to open negotiations in order to obtain supplies. The interpreter, with Messrs. Chapoton and Jacques Godfroy, was dispatched to the camp of Pontiac to demand the reason of his conduct, and to declare the commandant's readiness to redress any real grievance. La Butte and his companions soon came back to the fort, saying that peace might readily be had by making the Indians a few presents. At Iontiac's suggestion, Major Campbell, Lieutenant McDougall, and others went to his camp for the purpose of holding a council with him. M. Gouin warned them that treachery was meditated, but they concluded to go, and paid dearly for their temerity, for THE CONSPIRACY OF' PONTIAC. 237 THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. 237 Pontiac at once seized them and detained them as prisoners in the house of M. Meloche. Some of the French who sympathized with Pontiac advised the garrison to escape on board the vessels, saying that the Indians would surely capture the fort. At one time it looked as though their words would prove true, for the Indians again surrounded the stockade, and kept up an incessant firing from morning till night; during the same day the soldiers shot red-hot bolts at two barns which afforded shelter to the Indians, and the buildings were consumed, and at night a party sallied out and burned other houses which had protected the Indians. As a further measure of safety, the baggage of the garrison was carried aboard the vessels, with the understanding that, at a given signal, they were to sail for Niagara. The next day, May I3, Mr. Hopkins, captain of a new company, with forty volunteers, went out and set fire to other houses near the fort, and all except two were burned. As soon as this company returned, Lieutenant Hayes with thirty men went out and set fire to two barns behind the fort. On the following day twelve of the most respectable French inhabitants went to Pontiac and besought him to stop the war. The same day a sergeant, with twenty men, set fire to two more barns. On May 15 an officer with forty men went out and destroyed a house belonging to M. La Butte; they also cut down orchards and leveled fences until the ground about the fort was clear and open. Meanwhile the siege went on. Pontiac endeavored to prevent supplies from reaching the fort, by warning the inhabitants, under penalty of death, not to carry provisions there. Had his orders been obeyed, the garrison would have been compelled to abandon the post; but the friendly services of some of the inhabitants on both sides of the river supplied their wants. M. Baby, a prominent habitant proved himself a friend in need, providing the garrison with cattle, hogs, and other supplies, which he brought at night from his farm to the fort. There was, however, pressing need of larger supplies and reinforcements, and on May 21 the schooner Gladwin was dispatched to Niagara to hasten their coming. Meanwhile, in order to provide weapons for defence, the iron and steel from the warehouse were taken to the blacksmith, and on May 23 two men began to work this material into clubs, lances, and hooks, and though the weapons were rude, there is no doubt that, had they been needed, they would have done good service in the hands of the traders and their employees. As the siege progressed provisions became every day more scarce, and on May 24 Lieutenant Hay and Judge Le Grand searched all the French houses for superfluous articles of food. Receipts were given for what was taken, and all that could be collected was deposited in the public storehouse. Supplies could be brought in only from the river-side, and the soldiers who went thither for any purpose were constantly fired upon by the Indians. On May 28 the Indians erected a barricade of timber on the wvest side of the town near St. Martin's House, in after years known as the Cass House on Cass Farm; the soldiers discovered it, sallied out, and it was soon destroyed. On May 30 the longlooked-for and long-delayed boats, with the English flag flying, were seen coming up the river, and the guns of the fort and the cheers of the garrison bade them welcome. Their joy was of short duration, for it was soon discovered that the boats vwere in possession of the savages. They had been captured by the Indians while the detachment was about to encamp at Point Pelee, only two bateaux out of ten escaping. One of the two saved contained seven barrels of pork and a barrel of flour. On the next day Pontiac's forces were increased by the arrival of two hundred Indians from Saginaw. On June 2 Gladwin received, through an English coutreur de bois, a letter sent by Major Campbell, who was still in the hands of the Indians. The letter had been captured with the barges the last of May, and was enclosed with one from an officer at Niagara to a friend at Miami. It said peace had been concluded by the treaty of St. Germain-en-Laye. This was, indeed, good news, and though there were savages outside, there was joy inside the fort; in the evening an instrumental concert was given, and the sentinels paced their rounds with firmer tread. Early on the morning of June I6, for the first time since the siege, the Angelus was rung, and the measured strokes of the sweet-toned bell, repeated three times o'er, morning, noon, and night, soothed and quieted the inhabitants of the beleaguered town. During these days the Indians had surrounded and captured Mackinaw, and on June I8 Father du Jaunay, a Jesuit priest, brought letters from the captured officers telling of the disaster. He left the fort on June 20, and reached Mackinaw June 30. In the fort provisions became increasingly scarce, and on June 22 Commissary Hay and the judge made their fourth round collecting provisions from the inhabitants. On June 26 several soldiers reported that two Indians had been seen the previous night entering a house. Captain Hopkins with twenty-four men went out and surrounded the house, but instead of Indians they found two sows and their pigs. They took them to the fort,-the prize being a better one than they had expected to seize. A whole month of anxiety, unrest, and scarcity had now been experienced; but relief was near at hand. On June 30, about four in the afternoon, a schooner arrived with twenty-two men of the Thir 238 THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. 238 THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. tieth Regiment, Lieutenant Cuyler and twenty-eight men of Captain Hopkins' Rangers, together with one hundred and fifty barrels of provisions and a quantity of ammunition. The vessels had a narrow escape as they passed Presque Isle,-now Erie, Pennsylvania,-that place having been captured by Indians who went from Detroit about June io. On the same day that the vessel arrived, Jacques St. Martin with his family sought refuge in the fort. On July I "three oxen, three cows, and two calves came lowing and bleating to the gateway," the Indians from whose camp they had escaped chasing them as near the fort as they dared. Although the Indians were not welcome, the bovines were, as fresh meat was a rarity. The next day Lieutenant McDougall, who had been a captive since May IO, escaped, and with three other white men returned to the fort. On the same day Pontiac held a council with the French inhabitants on both sides of the river, and tried to compel them to assist him, but they refused, asserting that they were bound by the terms of the capitulation. Some of the younger men, however, offered their aid, in spite of the opposition of the older haabitans, but Pontiac was prevailed upon to refuse their services. On July 3 M. Baby, with his family and goods, sought refuge in the fort, and on the same day the commandant called the people together, and read the Articles of Peace concluded between the French and the English. The next day the French were organized into a company of militia; they selected Mr. Sterling for their commander, and were provided with arms and ammunition. The same day a party, led by Lieutenant Hay, started for M. Baby's house to get some powder and lead which had been left there. Meeting the nephew of an Ojibway chief, one of the men killed him, tore off his scalp, and shook it towards the enemy; whereupon his uncle ran to Mr. Mleloche's house, where Major Campbell was confined, seized him, bound him to a fence, and killed him with arrows, afterwards cutting off his head, and tearing out and eating his heart. This incident awakened renewed fear of a long siege, and on July 8 many of the principal inhabitants brought their goods within the fort for safe keeping; one of them, Mr. Maisonville, brought over five boatloads, containing ten thousand pounds of furs and lead. Major Gladwin had a poor opinion of some of the inhabitants. In a letter to General Amherst he says, " I dare say that before long we shall see that half of the colonists deserve the gibbet and that the other half be dispersed. However, there are a few honest men among them,-M. Navarre and the two Babys,-and my interpreters St. Martin and La Butte." Being disappointed in their efforts to starve out the garrison, the Indians sought to burn the vessels anchored in the river, through which supplies were obtained. They fitted up a raft with fagots of birch-bark and tar, and on July Io pushed it into the middle of the stream, and set it on fire, but the vessels sheered off, and no damage was done. They then shot burning arrows into the stockade, which lodged on the houses and set them on fire. The fires were extinguished, but so great and so continuous was their danger that for many weeks the garrison slept in their clothes with their arms by their side. From time to time during the progress of the siege the two vessels under Gladwin's command sailed down the river, discharging shot into the Indian villages. Finally the Wyandotts and Potowatamies, wearied with hostilities, sought for peace; and on their returning the captives in their possession, peace was made with them. Soon after, on July 29, twenty-two barges arrived with two hundred and eighty men from the Fifty-fifth and Eightieth Regiments, including twenty independent Rangers commanded by Major Robert Rogers of New Hampshire; the vessels also brought several cannon and a large amount of provisions,-the whole in charge of Captain Dalyell. The barracks were too small to accommodate so large a force, and the soldiers were quartered among the inhabitants. Captain Dalyell, who had been a companion of Israel Putnam in many daring exploits, besought of Gladwin the privilege of attacking the Indians in their camp. Gladwin opposed the plan, but finally gave a reluctant consent, and on July 31, at two o'clock in the morning, with two hundred and fifty men in three detachments, Dalyell marched up the river road, supported by two large bateaux armed with a swivel. Through treachery Pontiac had been informed of Captain Dalyell's plan, and with his warriors was lying in ambush at Parent's Creek, near a narrow wooden bridge which then spanned the creek, a little south of the present Jefferson Avenue. As Dalyell's force neared the bridge, the Indians commenced to fire. The soldiers charged across the bridge, but their foes were concealed from view. The Indians had every advantage, and the force, led by Captain Grant, retreated. While trying to save a wounded soldier, Dalyell himself was shot dead. Meantime, Captain Rogers took possession of the house of Mr. Campau, near the river, between what is now Dubois and Chene Streets on Private Claim No. 9I, or the James Campau Farm. Communication was soon established with the fort, reinforcements obtained, and about six hours after their departure the detachment returned, with a loss of twenty-one men, of whom three were taken captive and eighteen killed; thirty-eight were wounded. THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTITAC. 239 _~ ~H CO.IRC OF POTAC.3 Tradition says that an old whitewood tree, standing on the south side of Jefferson Avenue, just beyond Adair Street, was a silent witness of the terrible slaughter of that early morning, and the tree for many years was called " The Pontiac Tree." It was cut down on June 2, i886. The body of Captain Dalyell, shockingly mutilated, was brought to the fort by young Mr. Campau, about three o'clock in the afternoon of August 1. It was buried in the King's Garden, and as late as 1824 a gravestone erected to his memory was standing in the grounds. Other officers slain at the time were also buried there. When Woodbridge Street was opened, some of the _bodies were taken up and placed in a Pro- - testant churchyard on Woodward Avenue. What afterwards became of them is unknown. & Six days after the battle of Bloody Bridge a schooner arrived with ',.: eighty barrels of provi- -j sions, a large quantity. of naval stores, and some merchandise. While on the way the crew were attacked by some Indians and nearly overpowered, but finally escaped. On August 13 the schooner Gladwin and sloop Beaver were sent to procure troops and sup- THE PON' plies. While on their way back, on August 28, the sloop was wrecked at Catfish Creek, on Lake Erie. Her guns were lost and all her cargo except one hundred and eighty-five barrels, which were saved by the Gladwin. On August 29 two keys were found in the street at Detroit, one of which fitted the small gate of the fort. Treachery was feared, but these fears were not realized. The fall found the fort still besieged, though the Indians were greatly scattered, as they had neither provisions nor shelter. On September 3 they burned a windmill about three hundred yards from the fort. Two davs later the Gladwin arrived with forty-seven barrels of flour and one hundred and sixty barrels of pork. She had left Niagara the last of August, with a captain, a crew of eleven men, and six Mohawk Indians. On September 3, in the morning, she entered the river, where she was attacked by about three hundred and fifty Indians. The crew defended themselves bravely, defeated the Indians, and reached Detroit in safety. The following letter from Captain Gladwin is of special interest, as it evidently refers to this particular attack. The English distrust of the French, so prevalent in that day, is manifested by no uncertain words. The captain says: DETROIT, October 7, 1763. DEAR SIR,W - hat with business, vexation, and disappointment, I -:_____ nhave scarce had time to think of any friend, much less to bordt ---s:lgren -st-.. I write to them, therefore I ~I 4~ - - ' hope you will excuse my silence. I came hither much against my will, foreseeing what would happen; I am brought into a scrape, and left in it; things are expected Yof me that can't be performed; I could wish I had quitted the service seven years ago, and that somebody else commanded here. I shall say nothing in regard to our affairs, as you wsill hear enough of it below; but I enclose you some papers concerning the scoundrel inhabitants of Detroit, and the destruction of the outposts,which, perhaps, may amuse you for half an hotur. Daniel delivered me your letter to Captain Dalyell, which I took the liberty to open, knowing it concerned the service; I find the Indians (Mohawks) to be very faithful and ready to do anything they are desired; the Frencli attempted to blacken them by insinuating that they beAc ITREE. trayed the vessel, but I since find that two scoundrel Frenchmen, that went on board to sell greens, set the Indians upon the attempt. I hope I shall have the pleasure of seeing you soon, either here or below, but I would choose the latter. I am with the greatest esteem, Dear Sir, Your imost humble servant, HENRY (;LAI)\\IN. On October 3 a schooner arrived with one hundred and eighty-five barrels of provisions, and early in the month Major Wilkins, with six hundred troops, left Niagara to relieve Detroit, but was attacked by the Indians and forced to return. The force again started, but a storm on Lake Erie caused the loss of sixteen out of forty-six bateaux, three officers, and seventy men, together with fifty-two barrels of provisions and other stores, and again the troops vwere forced to return to Niagara. News of the last disaster was contained in a letter from TI. 240 THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. Major Wilkins to Gladwin, brought, concealed in his powder-horn, the middle of November, by a friendly Wyandotte Indian. The Indians had evidently learned that Major Wilkins with a strong force was on his way to Detroit, and on October 12 a chief of the Mississauguas came to the fort, ostensibly to sue for peace. A truce was then agreed upon, and Gladwin made use of it to gather provisions for the winter, of which the garrison was in great need. During the seven weeks previous to October 19 the soldiers had received but five pounds of flour and one half gallon of wheat each per week. On October 29 M. Dequindre brought to Pontiac a letter from M. Neyon, the French commandant at Fort Chartres on the Mississippi, dated September 27, saying that he would give him no help; and on the next day he brought a letter to the fort giving the same information. Soon after most of the Indians left the vicinity, and as the winter was coming on, and supplies for the garrison were uncertain, Major Gladwin decided to reduce his force to two hundred and twelve men, as that was as many as he could take care of. The rest were sent to Niagara, where they arrived on the 27th of November. The winter passed away without excitement of any kind. On the evening of March I an attempt was made, probably by some traitor, to fire the magazine, but the brand fortunately went out without accomplishing its purpose. On June 4 His Majesty's birthday was celebrated by the discharge of three volleys from the troops and three discharges from the cannon. His health was drunk on parade by all the officers, and several Frenchmen who were invited guests, and at night the town was illuminated. On June 28 the schooner Victory arrived from Niagara in company with a new schooner, the Boston. As the fort and settlement were still in danger, General Gage, the commander-in-chief, resolved to chastise the Indians by carrying the war into their own country. Two expeditions were therefore fitted out,-one, under Colonel Boquet, to proceed by way of Fort Pitt against the Indians between the Ohio and the Lakes; and the other, under Colonel Bradstreet, to proceed against the Northern Indians by way of Lakes Erie and Ontario to Detroit. Bradstreet's forces assembled at Albany; they consisted of three hundred Canadians and nine hundred colonial troops, two hundred and nineteen of the number from Connecticut, and commanded by the noted Israel Putnam. They reached Niagara the last of June. His force was there joined by three hundred Iroquois, under Sir John Johnson and Henry Montour, and by nearly one hundred Ojibways and Mississauguas, under the command of Alexander Henry. These last soon became disaffected and left. The army reached Detroit on August 26, I764. bringing provisions and clothing, and the garrison, which had been confined to the ramparts for fifteen months, was now relieved. Their joy was so great that for the time being military discipline was almost lost sight of. Chests and bales were eagerly opened, new suits donned, and the dangers of the past were forgotten in the delights of security and plenty. Bradstreet's force was the largest body of troops that had ever been seen at Detroit; and when the scores of bateaux and barges thronged the river, and the troops landed with all the pomp of military display,-colors flying, bugles blowing, and drums beating,-the Indians were at once so overwhelmingly convinced of the power of the English that they made no further resistance to their domination; and were no longer to be counted as the allies of the French. On August 30, by order of the commandant, all the inhabitants over fifteen years of age appeared to renew their oath of allegiance. The next day Gladwin was relieved of his command, and went east the day following. On September 7 a council was held, and a treaty of peace concluded with several of the tribes. The next day Captain Howard and Alexander Henry, with three hundred Canadians, left for Mackinaw. Bradstreet inquired about and punished such of the Canadians as had aided the Indians. Some of them, however, did not await the result of his inquiries, but fled before his arrival. Among those whom Bradstreet proposed to punish-even by hanging-was Jacques Godfroy; but on his promising to act as guide for Captain Morris, in an expedition to the Illinois Indians, he was released. He accompanied Captain Morris on his trip, saved his life several times, and returned with him to Detroit on September 17, the mission having accomplished nothing. Three days before their return, General Bradstreet set out for Sandusky, leaving behind seven companies of soldiers as a reinforcement for the garrison. He remained at Sandusky until October I8, when he embarked his forces for Niagara. When near Rocky River, on Lake Erie, a storm arose, which destroyed twenty-five of the bateaux and most of the baggage and ammunition. The soldiers were consequently obliged to go by land; they struggled through the wilderness, suffering great hardships, and some of them did not reach Niagara until the last of December, 1764. In February, 1765, Captain George Croghan, accompanied by Lieutenant Frazer and a small guard, was sent west by Sir William Johnson to distribute presents to the Indians, and thus prepare the way for the coming of English troops. Near the mouth of the Wabash Croghan and his party were made prisoners by the Kickapoos, and taken to Vincennes, and from there to Ouatanon, where THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. 241 Croghan found friends, and their captivity ended. While on his way to visit Fort Chartres, by invitation of the commandant, Croghan met Pontiac, and concluded a treaty of peace. He then gave up the visit to Chartres, and with Pontiac started for Detroit, where they arrived August 17, 1765, and on September 26 Croghan left for Niagara. His treaty with Pontiac ended the war; Detroit alone of all the western posts had held out against the Indians until peace was thus declared. In the spring of I769 the Indians again became troublesome, and there was much alarm at Detroit; as another war seemed imminent, the traders did not venture west, and the inhabitants began to fortify. Conciliatory measures were, however, adopted; the Indians proved more docile, and from this time, under British rule, there was in Ietroit but little fear of trouble with the Indians. i)N'I.\AC'S CON.,I'II<.CV REVEALED,.S REPRESENT ED IN rTH PAIN'TI'N; lV. M. S'A.NIr.Vy. I6 CHAPTER XXXIX. THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR-BRITISiH AND INDIAN S ANS N FIRST AMERICAN OCCUPATION OF DE)TROIT.-FRENCH AND SPANISH INTRIGUES. THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. TWHEN the war of independence began in the East, its effects were immediately felt in Detroit. Martial law was established in this region and in all the British provinces, by proclamation of Guy Carlton, on June 9, 1775, and deliberate and remorseless plans were made for Indian forays from this post. The Government feared that the rebel settlers in the West would seek to aid their brother colonists of the East and the South; and they especially dreaded an attack upon Detroit by the brave pioneers on the Ohio and in Western Virginia. The English knew well the importance of this place, as the gateway of the West, and they lost no time in availing themselves of the help of their Indian allies in their efforts to retain their western possessions. In order the more effectually to interest the savages and secure their co-operation, the office of lieutenantgovernor and superintendent was created for the three posts of Detroit, Michilimackinac, and Vincennes. This office did not exist in the West except at the three posts named, and it was unknown prior to and ceased with the close of the war of the revolution. Captain Henry Hamilton, of the Fifteenth Regiment, was appointed for Detroit, Patrick Sinclair for Michilimackinac, and Edward Abbott for Vincennes. It has been said that Hamilton was appointed under the Quebec Act by Governor Carlton, and that various military officers, including the commandant at Mackinaw, were under him, and that he had charge of the entire Northwest; but none of these statements are correct. The Quebec Act contained no provisions that could have any bearing on this office. All three of the appointments were made by the Earl of Dartmouth, the colonial secretary, and the appointees were to act under instructions from the commander-in-chief of the Province of Quebec. Governor Sinclair claimed the perquisites of his post from May i, 1775, and it is probable that all three appointments were made on that date. Governor Hamilton left Montreal for Detroit in September, and arrived here on November 9, I775. The position of lieutenant-governor was deemed a desirable one, for Mr. Hay, who succeeded Hamil ton, claimed to have paid a large amount for his commission. The sequel proved that it was not worth as much as had been supposed. Considerable rents were received from lands and lots claimed by the Crown, and it was also a common custom for the Indians to send presents of game to the governor on their return from the chase; he received also some portion of their harvests. Both Governor Hamilton and Colonel De Peyster, who succeeded him as acting lieutenant-governor, received and made use of these perquisites, but, much to their chagrin, they were called upon to account for them to the Government. Colonel De Peyster, in a letter dated November 21, 1782, strongly objected to this claim, on the ground that he had saved the Government at least ten thousand pounds, and that if he was required to refund the rents received at Detroit, it would be greatly to his damage, as he had " lived up to them in support of the dignity of a British commandant." The Government, however, persevered in the demand. The powers of these quasi governors could be exercised only over the inhabitants of their posts and the Indians who were in the habit of resorting thither, and were extremely vague. As LieutenantGovernor Cramahe expressed it, the wording of their commissions must have "escaped some person young in office." While the general intent seems to have been understood, some of their claims were continually and successfully disputed by the local commandants, between whom and the lieutenantgovernors at Detroit and Mackinaw quarrels were very frequent. General Haldimand, in one of his letters to Governor Hamilton, confessed that the powers connected with the offices of commandant and governor were "unhappily blended," but both commandants and lieutenant-governors were enjoined, for the good of the service, to do their utmost to promote harmony. Governor Hamilton, in a letter written August I2, 1778, complained that he had become almost a " cypher " through this conflict of authority; and General Haldimand, on August 20, 1779, wrote to Governor Sinclair, " I have ever viewed the situation of lieutenant-governor of the posts as awkward, and productive of misunderstanding." [2421 THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. 243 The office does not seem to have required great ability, and none is known to have been manifested by either of the appointees. The lieutenant-governor was not sent to administer justice, and any powers of that kind were an afterthought, and conferred merely for the sake of convenience. That the office was not a local necessity is shown by the fact that Lieutenant-Governor Abbott left his post early in 1778, arriving with his family at Detroit on March 7 of that year; he stated that he could not be of any service at Vincennes, as there were no goods in the place for the Indians. Governor Hamilton left his post to go on a foray; Colonel De Peyster, who succeeded him, filled the positions both of lieutenantgovernor and commandant; and Governor Sinclair, although appointed to Mackinaw in 1775, did not go there until 1779, after Colonel De Peyster had left. Indeed, it seemed a matter of much indifference whether or not there was a lieutenant-governor resident at Detroit. Governor Hamilton's real successor, Jehu Hay,' was restrained from coming here for more than a year. He arrived at Quebec the last of June, 1782, but Colonel De Peyster, then in command at Detroit, anticipating his appointment, had written to General Haldimand asking that he might be allowed, in case Hlay was appointed, to leave the place " either before or immediately on his arrival," as he did not wish to have anything to do with Mr. Hay. De Peyster's abilities were so manifest and so valuable at Detroit that General Haldimand was not willing to displace or displease him. Consequently, after (;overnor Hay had reached Montreal he was not allow\ed to go any farther. He wxas very indignant that he should be prevented from going to Detroit to "enjoy his office and emoluments," but General Haldimand would not yield to his angry demands, and on several occasions sharply reproved him, and conmpelled him to retract some of his utterances. At last on October 30, 1783, Colonel l)e Peyster was summoned to Niagara, and three days later Lieutenant-Governor Hay was ordered to Ietroit. He started on his journey, reaching Carlton Island on November 24; here he was taken seriously ill, and wrote to General Haldimand that he should go no farther until spring. On December 6, however, though still very ill, he left Carlton Island, and went back to Montreal. De Peyster learned of his detention, and on Iecember 8, 1783, wrote from Detroit that "the lateness of the season and the severity of the weather prevented his departure, but he would go as early as the season would 1 The Christian name of Governor Hay heretofore has invariably been printed John. The mistake evidently arose from the similarity of the words when carelessly written. His own letters, filed with the Johnson Manuscripts at Albany, and scores of letters in the Haldimand Collection at Ottawa, show clearly that his name was Jehu. permit." In the spring Governor Hay recovered, and on July 12, I784, arrived at Detroit. Colonel De Peyster remained until some time in June, and possibly later. By order of Governor Haldimand the militia at Detroit were disbanded soon after Governor Hay's arrival. This officer, when finally allowed to assume the governorship, found the powers of the office much restricted; for Haldimand, before giving him leave to go to Detroit, had directed the distribution of the goods for the Indians to be made tinder the direction of Sir WVilliam Johnson. This order was resented by Governor Hay, but his protests were of no avail. He continued to serve, but claimed that he was so restricted in his powers that he could not do for the Indians \hat was really best. The disappointments which he met undoubtedly hastened his decease. He died at Ietroit in August, 1785. Governor Hamilton, who in the meantime had returned to Canada, endeavored to secure the appointment of Alexander McKee to the vacant office, but Governor Henry Hope disapproving, no one was appointed. The chief duties of the lieutenant-governor evidently consisted in distributing goods to the Indians, in order to induce them to make war on the " rebels," in fitting out the warriors and encouraging them to keep on the " war path." Nowhere was this work so diligently carried on as at Detroit. Of all the posts west of Montreal and New York, at the time of the Revolution, this was the most important. It was not only a leading army center, but also the chief naval depot of the WNest. After August 10, I776, no vessels were permitted on the Lakes except such as were enrolled at Detroit, and armed and manned by the Crown. It is almost impossible to realize the extent of English operations in this region during the progress of the war, and it is certain that no one locality in the EIast was the field of so many and such varied manifestations of the strife as were exhibited here. The prominent feature in every scene during that period was scores or hundreds of painted savages, with uplifted tomahawks, scalping knives in their belts, and fusils, lead, and flints at hand. All the materials for war were supplied by their "white father," and all were to be used against the American rebels. Everything that could be done to attach the Indians to the service of the King was done in unstinted manner. They were coaxed with rum, feasted with oxen roasted whole, alarmed by threats of the destruction of their hunting-ground, and supplied with everything that an Indian could desire. Now one tribe, and now another, were invited to Detroit for a council, and council followed council in rapid succession, the Indians gathering by thousands at these meetings. As Captain Bird expressed it in one of his letters, 244. THE RE VOL UT10NARY WAR. 244 THE REVOLU~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~iONARY WAR.~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~ "the Indians are always cooking or counciling." Emissaries were sent from Detroit to the most distant tribes, to induce them " to take up the hatchet;" Indian agents and interpreters came and went; boats loaded to their utmost capacity with army stores, Indian goods, and trinkets, arrived in numbers. An extensive shipyard was kept busy building new vessels and repairing the old. Captains, lieutenants, and minor officers thronged the narrow and busy streets; war-partieswere equipped, "set out" and " returned;" prisoners arrived, were sent below or distributed; scalps were received, counted, and recorded; alarms were raised, disaffection was punished; and all the events of the East were told over, and many of them duplicated, in revolutionary days at Detroit. The English officers found it not always fair weather. There were many secret and some open sympathizers with the "rebels." Citizens known to be in sympathy with the Americans were subjected to many annoyances. Garret Graverat, a leading merchant, was compelled to give bail in four hundred pounds not to correspond with the Americans or give them aid for the space of a year and a day. James Sterling and John Edgar, well-known tradesmen, were sent away because they favored the rebellion. The last-named was compelled to leave all his goods, and go to Kaskaskia. Congress, in after years, gave him two thousand acres of land to help make up his losses. Other citizens also were forced to leave. Some were compelled to work on the fortifications; and those who tried to escape were p)ut in irons by the order of Governor Hamilton. In one of his letters to General Haldimand, written on January I5, 1778, the governor complained that his plans were frequently made known, and said it was not to be wondered at, "when it is considered how many people in the settlement have connections with the Americans, especially as an Indian, for a gallon of rum, will convey any letter or intelligence." In another letter, dated August I7, he said, "The few American newspapers which I send, being of a later date than any from Europe, you may conceive, have furnished surmises to the disaffected here not likely to produce agreeable effects. I shall watch and seize the first, however, who shall dare make a parade of his disloyalty." In the spring of 1779, after the capture of Governor Hamilton, there was much more trouble with the "rebel sympathizers." Captain Lernoult was authorized by Captain Brehm, aide-de-camp to General Haldimand, to apprehend some of these and "send them to Niagara, and to take hostages from others; " also to "hold court-martials on the approach of an enemy" and "punish offences with death." About this time James Cassity, a farmer at Grosse Pointe, made himself obnoxious to the king's officers, and the following depositions against him are con, tained in the Haldimand correspondence. William Miller deposed on July 21, 1779, against Cassity, "that he and William Bostick drank success to the Congress and the American Arms, and said that Colonel Clark would soon be in possession of I)etroit, that he was tanning a quantity of leather that he would not sell until Colonel Clark arrived at Detroit." John Loughton, naval store-keeper, deposed that Cassity said " that Detroit would be in the hands of Colonel Clark in six months, and declared himself a rebel." John Cornwall said Cassity declared "that there were many in Detroit who wore cockades in their hats who thought themselve~ very good people, but that, when Colonel Clark came, they would be no better than himself," and that " Colonel Butler, with his scalping crew, would soon meet with their deserts." Upon this testimony, Cassity was sent away. The inhabitants of Detroit were thus compelled to leave their homes, and a number of loyalists and renegades came' to settle in the city, among them those noted semi-savages, Matthew Elliott and James, Simon, and George Girty. At one time Governor Hamilton estimated that about five thousand persons in Detroit would soon be dependent upon the Government for support. He was in favor of encouraging settlers to come, however, and even proposed, on his anticipated foray, to bring back the colonists and settle them at I)etroit, but General Haldimand did not favor this idea. On August 6, I778, he wrote to Hamilton: " I am of opinion that the driving these settlers back upon their brethren whom they would distress by an additional consumption of goods and provisions among them would prove a better measure for His Majesty's interest than inviting them to your post." He then suggested that those who did come be made to take arms and "exert themselves heartily." Because of their natural antipathy to the English, and of the attitude of the mother country, the French generally favored the Americans, aiding them materially in some instances, by conveying information; others were bribed or threatened into putting on the British uniform. Their influence over the Indians was such that their presence was a necessity. Colonel De I'eyster says, in one of his letters to General Haldimand, " Give me leave to assure your Excellency that nothing can be effected from the Indians without troops to head them." A report of Governor Hamilton, made on August 30, 1778, shows that there were then at Detroit four hundred and eighty-two volunteer militia. Those who went with the Indians were paid from four i shillings to sixteen shillings per day, and on the paylist the names of the ancestors of many of the THE REVOLUTIONARY WARt. 245 French families of the present day are easily recognized. An old ledger, kept by a I)etroit firm, has one account \itll the significant heading, " Ien of Absent Companies,"-the account evidently being for goods furnished the families of persons absent on some foray \with the Rangers, as they were called. The employlnent Df the Indians by the English Government during the Revolutionary \ar leaves an ineffaceable stigma on the names of the men who were then in power. The palliating facts are that the spirit of the age was diffcrent from that of the present, and that the public mind, during the French and Eng-lish \Var, had been gradually accustomed to the thought of Indian allies. The wholesale employment, however, of the savages in wars against white settlers was unknown prior to the Revolution. It is claimed that the American forces also employed them to fight against the English; but any such employment was in connection with regular ar'my moveiments, and even then exceptional. The English, on the contrary, employed all the tribes that could possibly be induced to make war on the colonists, and nation after nation was systematically and persistently solicited, urg'ed, and hired to join them, and often allow-ed and encouraged to make war in their own fashion. 'The official correspondence found in the H1aldimand papers and other- (1ocumelts contains scores and hundreds of letters to lr)eO these statemenllts. A letter from Governor Carleton to LieutenantGovernor Hamilton, dated October 6. 1776, contains this postscript: You nmust keep the savages in readiness to join me in the spring, or march elsewhere as they may be onost wanted. Lord George Germain who succeeded the E1arl of Dartmouth on No\emb)er 4, 1775, in a letter dated Whitehall, March 26, 1777, and addressed to (;overnor Cramnahe, says: It is His Majesty's resolution that the most vigorous efforts should be mnade, and every mneans employed that Providence has put into His Majesty's hands for crushing. the rebellion and restoring the constitution. It is the King's commandl that you should direct Lieutenant Governor Hamilton to assellble as manal of the Indians of his district as he conveniently can, and placing l)roper persons at their head to wnhotn he is to make suitable allowlances, to conduct their parties and restrain them from committing violence on the well-affected and inoffensive inhabitants, c(mpylo themn in making a diversion and exciting an alarim on the frontiers of Virginia and Pennsvlvania. At this remote date we can afford to smile at the kingly assumption that Providence had put the Indians into the hands of the English, to be used in killing and scalping the unfortunate settlers of the West. Governor Hamilton acknowledged the receipt of Lord Germain's orders, and claimed that every possible method had been employed to induce the Indians to be kind to their prisoners and to bring them in alive, and refrain " from their usual barbarities." How incredible this conception of the savage character! How strange this ignorance of the necessary relation of cause and effect! Scalping-knives and scalps, savages and murder The same sentiments that Lord George Germain addressed to Governor Cramahe Nwere afterwards uttered in Parliament. BIut no criticism on such words and the action they sustained can equal that pronounced by the celebrated Lord Chatham. In the Parliament which opened November, I777, he said, I'Lut, my lords, who is the man that, in addition to these disgraces and mischiefs of our arnmy, has dared to authorize and associate to our arms the tomlahalwk and scalping-knive of the savage, to call into civilized alliance the wild and inhuman savage of tlhe woods; to delegate to the merciless Indian the defence of disputd(l rights, and to wage the horrors of his barbarous war against,ilr brethren? My lords, these enorinities call aloutd for redress and punishment. Unless thoroughly done away it will be a stain ion the national character. It is a violation of the constitutio,. I believet it is against law. In reply to Chatham, Lord Suffolk said, " '[here were no metans which (od anti nature might have I)lacetl at the disposal of the governing powers to w\hich they w\ould not be justified in having recfourse." Said Chatham in reply, 'My lords, I ani astonished, shocked, to hear such sentiments confessed; to hear thiiI annontlnced ill tl is I Otluse (r iln th is c()unItrv! - principles equally llnc(llstitutional, inlhuman, and unchristian; AIy lords, I did not intend to have enr )Ichtid aguiin ll11)11 your attention, but I cannot rtl)ress my indig4natill. I feel myself impelled by every duty. \We are calledt upon, *ls mIembters if this House, as men, as Christian menl, to protest against such notions, standing near the thruone, p)olhltin: the ear,f Mlajesty. " IThat GodCt and nature have put into outr iands i" kno" w noit what idea that lord nmay e-ntertain of (;G,d and nature, but I know that such abominuable prinlciples are c(latlly ablhorrent tio religiion and humanity. \What! to attribute the sanctinl of (;cd and nature to the mnassacres of the Indian scalping-knife? 'lo the cannibal-sayage, torturing, Illtrdering, roasting, and eating-literally, my lords, eating-the mangled cvictims of his barbarous battles? Such horriblet ntions shock every precept of religion, divinie or natural, atnd every generous feeling of humanity. They shock every sentilment of honor. They shock me as a lover of hon(orable war, and a detester of murderous barbarity. These abmltinable principles, and this Inore abominable avowal of them, demand a most decisive indignation. I call upoln that Right Reverend Biench, those holy ministers of the gospel, and pious pastors of our church! I conjure them to join in the holy swork, anid vrindicate the religion of their God! I iappeal to the wcisdomi and lawt of this learned Biench to defenud and support the justice of their coiunitry! I call upon the bishops to interpose the unsullied sanctity of their lawn, upon the learned judges to interpose the purity of their ertline, to save uis from this pollution! I call upon the honor of your lordships to reverence the dignity of your ancestors, and to maintain your own! I call upon the spirit andl hutmanity of my country to vindicate the national character! I inmvoke the genlilus of the constitition! From the tapestry that adorns these walls, the immortal ancestor of this noble lord frowns with indignation at the disgrace of h;s country. In vain he led your victorious fleet agaist the boasted Armada of Spain; in vain he defended and established the honor, the liberties, the religion, the Protestant religion, of this country against the arbitrary cruelties of Popery and the Inquisition, if 246 THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. _ these more than popish cruelties and inquisitorial practices are let loose among us. To turn forth into our settlements, among our ancient connections, friends, and relations, the merciless cannibal, thirsting for the blood of man, woman, and child, —against your Protestant brethren, to lay waste their country, to desolate their dwellings, and extirpate their race and name with those horrible hell-hounds of savage war,- hell-hounds, I say, of savage war! " Notwithstanding this energetic and manly protest, the same methods were continued, and, as before, the savages were encouraged and paid to continue their dreadful work. On January 15, I778, Governor Hamilton wrote to General Carlton, "The parties sent from hence have been generally successful, though the Indians have lost men enough to sharpen their resentment; they have brought in twenty-three prisoners alive, twenty of which they presented to me, and a hundred and twenty-nine scalps." In another letter, written on September 17, 1778, he stated that "since last May the Indians in this district have taken thirty-four prisoners, seventeen of which they delivered up, and eighty-one scalps." In order to do Governor Hamilton full justice, extracts from letters written by him in April, 1778, are here given; but in view of the statements already quoted, dated both before and after these letters, some of his words seem like mockery. He says, " Many of the war-parties bring in prisoners, and have shown a humanity hitherto unpracticed among them. They never fail of a gratuity on every proof of obedience they show in sparing the lives of such as are incapable of defending themselves." In another letter he says, "All parties going to war are exhorted to act with humanity as the means of securing a secure peace when His Majesty shall be pleased to order the hatchet to be buried." At the councils it was a common thing for the Indians to present scalps to the governor. One of these presentations is thus reported by De Peyster: " Presenting sixteen scalps, one of the Delaware chiefs said, ' Listen to your children, the Delawares, who are now come in to see you at a time they have nothing to apprehend from the enemy, and present you some dried meat, as we could not have the face to appear before our father empty.'" Among the goods regularly kept by merchants for the Indian trade scalping-knives were prominent. The writer has seen the original entry of the sale on June 6, I783, by Macomb & Brother to William Park & Company of " sixteen gross red-handled scalping-knives at Ioos-,8o0;" and on July 22 following, there is a charge of twenty-four dozen more to the same parties. "Scalping-knives for sale here" was possibly one of the signs on what is now Jefferson Avenue, in those "times that tried men's souls." Before the Indians started out on their expeditions their tomahawks were dedicated to their mur derous work by being publicly passed through the hands of the local governor or commandant in the council house, this ceremony signifying in the symbolic language of the Indian, " We take hold of the same tomahawk," At a council on July 3, 1778, Governor Hamilton personally presented an axe to, the chief, saying he " presented him an axe for his use to set against those people who want to possess themselves of your land. It's the King's command that I put this axe into your hands to act against his Majesty's enemies. I pray the Master of Life to give you success, as also your warriors, wherever you go with your father's axe." In a letter to General Haldimand, dated I I A. M., October 3, I778, he says, "Last night the savages were assembled, when I sung the war-song, and was followed by Captain Lernoult and several officers." It was possibly this very occasion that is thus described by (overnor Cass in his appendix to "Ontwa:" In the year 1776, during the administration of Lieutenant-Governor Hamilton at' Detroit, a large number of Indian warriors were assembled in order that they might be induced to co-operate with the British in the war which had then commenced. They were drawn up in two lines, extending from the river to the woods; their kettles and fires were between the lines. An ox was killed, and his head cut off; a large tomahawk was then struck into the head, and thus loaded it was presented to the governor. He was requested to sing his war-song along the whole line of the Indians. The ox-head represented the head of an American; and as the British were the principals in the war, it was necessary for them to take up the tomahawk first. The lieutenant-governor was embarrassed by the novelty of the situation and by his own ignorance of the language and songs of the Indians. He was extricated in a manner equally happy and ludicrous by his interpreter. The latter instructed his superior to sing the following words in French: "Quand je vais a la guerre-ruh J'emporterai ma grand cuillere-ruh." l The monosyllable at the end of each line is only intended to mark the elevation of the voice and the prolongation of the last syllable. These words correspond with the necessary tune, and were sung with all the gravity and dignity suited to the occasion. As the Lieutenant-Governor passed the immense assemblage, he sung his song and fixed his eyes upon the Indians, who made the air resound with the cries of " Yeh! Yeh! Yeh! " They concluded, of course, that the great warrior was threatening with deadful vengeance the " Big Knives," the rebellious children of the British father. The second officer in command, Major Hayes, was relieved by a similar expedient. The ingenious interpreter composed the following song, which possessed the same advantage of an accompaniment to the music: " J'ai le talon au bout du pied," etc. 2 Thus even the dreadful preliminaries to the massacre of the Americans were mingled with exhibitions of wit and humor. 1When I go to the war I will bring my great spoon. 2 My heel is at the end of my foot. THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. 247 The English soon found that the Indians were costly allies. They could not be trusted to keep constantly on the war-path unless they were encouraged with gifts, and spurred with the fear that their hunting-grounds would be destroyed and they left to the mercy of the " Big Knives." They soon learned how much depended on their action, and from asking a gift or accepting a favor, they demanded everything as their right. The expenses of the Indian Department grew so large that letter after letter came from General Haldimand complaining of the " enormous " and " amazing " expense of the goods for the Indians. The drafts of governor and commandants for supplies followed each other in rapid succession; and during the war several millions of dollars worth of goods for the Indians were distributed at Detroit. In addition to the ordinary Indian goods, provisions also were supplied. From December 25, I777, to August 3I, 1778, there were received at Detroit 372,460 barrels of flour, 42,176 pounds of fresh beef, I6,473 pounds of salt beef, 203,932 pounds of salt pork, 19,756 pounds of butter, also great quantities of mutton, peas, corn, rice, oatmeal, salt, and rum. In the summer of I778 fifty-eight and a half tons of gunpowder were sent here from Niagara. Of course a large proportion of these articles were used by the regular troops, but no small amount was for the-Indians. The following document gives an idea of many similar ones that were sent from Detroit at this time: Es/timate of Aferchanldise 7vanted for Indian Presents at Detroit from 21st of Agrust, 1782, to 20Zh of A iriust, 1783. 230 pieces Blue strouds. 20 "( Red 10o " Crimson" 10 " Scarlet " 20 " Scarlet cloth 8s 6d Sterling. 4000 Pr 2 I' Pt Blankets. 300 " 3 500 "2 " 2 500 " I/ " " I000 fine 22 Pt " 1ooo pieces 4-4 linen sorted. 00 "( striped calimanco. I00 " " cotton. 2000 lbs vermillion in i lb Bags. 50 pieces coarse muslin. 20 Pieces Russia Sheeting. 1oo I)oz Blk silk handkerch'fs. 20 " Colored " 30 " cotton " 250 Pieces ribbon assorted. 200 Gross Bed lace. 200 Gross Gartering. 30 Pieces embossed serge. 500 felt Hats ' laced. I00 castor " " 50 3eaver 500 Pieces White Melton. 50 " Blue " 20 " Coating, blue and brown. 20 " Brown Melton. 30 i" Ratteen, Blue and Brown. oo00 Common Saddles. 400 Bridles. 500 Powder Horns. 20 LDoz Tobacco Boxes. 30 " Snuff 80 ('ross Pipes. 300 large feathers, red, blue, green. 300 Blk ostrich feathers. 200 Pairs shoes. 250 Pairs Buckles. I00 Pieces Hambro lines. o0 Doz Mackerel lines. I O " Spurs. 50 Gro Morris Bells. 50 " Brass Thimbles. 6 Pieces Red serge. Io Pieces White serge. 6 " Blue io Gross Jews harps. 500 Fusils. 200 Rifles Guns small bore. 50 Pair Pistols. 5 Doz Couteaux de Chasse. 50000 Gun Flints. 60 Gro Scalping Knives. io " Clasp " 20 " Scissors. 20 " Looking Glasses. IO " Razors. 300 Ibs Thread assorted. 20 pieces spotted swan-skin. 12000 lbs (;unpowder. 36000 " Ball and shot. I Gro Gun locks. 500 Tomahawks. 500 Half axes. 300 Hoes. 30 (ross fire steel. oooo0000 Needles. 400 Pieces calico. I5000 lbs Tobacco. 600 lbs Beads assorted. 40 Gross Awl Blades. 40 " Gun Worms. 30 ~" Box combs. 6 " Ivory " 20 Nests Brass Kettles. 20 " Copper " 248 THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. 20 Nests Tin Kettles. Silver fWorks.60 " Hair Trunks. 13000 large Brooches. 300 Ibs Pewter Basins. 7000 Small d 1oo Beaver Traps. 300 Large Gorgets. 20 Gross Bath finger rings. 300 " Moons. 5000 lbs. iron. 550 Ear Wheels. iooo " steel. 550 Arm 13ands. 500 lbs. Soap. 1500 Prs large Ear bobs. 6 Barrels white wine. 1500 " small.. ( 5 " Shrub. Some medals chiefly large 400,000 Black Wampum. A large assortment Smith oo00,000 White Wampum. and Armorers files. A. S. DE PEYSTER, Mlajor King's Regt. I)etroit and its )Deenden:i, -. Other requisitions call for " scarlet and green laced coats," "calico and linen, ruffled and plain shirts," and-though it appears incredible-'" eighty pounds of Rose Pink.' This was perhaps for the squaws. These last. by the waxy, took care to obtain a fair share of whatever was given to the Indians. De Peyster, in one of his letters concerning the warparties, says, " The squaws never fail to tear off everything from their b)acks before they enter the fort, when they must )e equipjped anew." Indeed, the same party had sometimes to be elquipped two or three times, for the Americans, or " rebels," as they are almost invariably styled in the Haldimand letters, frequently circulated reports among the Indians through some secret friend of the cause, that led to the return of war-parties, and then the warriors had to be again fitted out and encouraged with presents and ammunition. So frequently did this occur that on August Io, 1780, General Haldimand wrote to Ie Peyster, " It evidently appears that the Indians in general wish to protract the war and are most happy when most frequently fitted out." Concerning the extent of the gifts to the Indians, and the enlisting of them in the war against the Americans, Zeisberger, in his diary, gives pertinent testimony. Under date of October 31, 1781, while on the road from Muskingum to Detroit, he wrote: \'e met to-day, as indeed every day, as far as Detroit, a Imultitude of Indians of various nations, who were all bringing from Detroit horse-loads of wares and gifts and in such number that one would think they must have emptied all Detroit. On June 14, 1784, while at Detroit, he wrote: There came, about half-past one a hundred Chippewas from Michilimackinac, who were summoned here to go to the war. They were welcomed by the discharge of three cannon from the Fort. Plans for inciting the Indians were laid as early as July, 1775. At that time Dr John Connolly entered into an agreement with Lord Iunmore, the royal Governor of Virginia, to endeavor to enlist certain of the western militia with the Indians to operate against the Americans. He was to be supplied at Detroit with cannonI and ammunition; was to visit different Indian nations, rendezvous his forces at Fort Pitt, and then go through Virginia to Alexandria, where he was to meet Lord Dunmore on April 20, I776. The scheme was frustrated by the capture of Connolley. In order to counteract these plans, Congress, in 1775, appointed commissioners to treat with the Indians at Fort Pitt and endeavor to secure their neutrality. These commissioners, Judge James Wilson. of Pennsylvania, General Lewis Morris, of New York, and Dr. Walker, of Virginia, engaged Arthur St. Clair (subsequently first Governor of the Northwest Territory) as their secretary. He formed the project of a volunteer expedition to Detroit, provided the Indians would remain neutral, for the purpose of surprising and capturing the city; and he actually succeeded in enlisting four or five hundred young men in the enterprise. They were to equip themselves, and provide everything necessary except amlmunition. The commissioners approved the project, and recommended it to Congress, but it was finally given up, as it was hoped that (eneral Arnold would capture (uebec, and that the surrender of Detroit would follow. Arnold's expedition failed, and no expedition was led against Detroit; instead, in May, I776, Captain Foster, with forty men from the Eighth Regiment, one hundred volunteers, and a large number of Indians, went from Detroit and captured an important post at the Cedars, about fifty miles southwest of Montreal. An allusion to this battle is contained in verses written by Colonel De Peyster at Mackinaw, entitled THE I') RI I SERGE(ANT. '1'I t'F:, 'IThe laint y Rcggr 's. Come, stand well to your order, Make not tlh least false motion, Eyes to thc right, 'Thum1,, mnuzzle height, Iads, you have the true notion. Here and there, Everywhere 'lhat the King's boys may be found, l'ight and die! Pe the cry Ere in battle to give ground. Come briskly to the shoulder, And mind wvhen you make ready, No, quid must slide Fromi side to side, To make your heads unsteady. Here and there, Everywhere That the King's boys may be found. Fight and die! Be the cry Ere in battle to give ground. TH'LI REV\OLUT IONARY WAR. 249 NWe beat them at the Cedars, With those we call our light men Who, that same day, Heard \ akeys say They never saw such tight men. Here and there, Everywhere I'hat the King's boys may be found, Fight and die! Be the cry Fre in battle to give ground. On March 15, 1777, an attack was made on Harrodsburgh. This was repulsed, and about a month later an attack, equally unsuccessful, was made on B1oonsboro. The Indians next invested Logan's Station, remaining before it for several weeks. They finally retired, after killing the soldiers of a small detachment that was on its way to the relief of the beseiged. On the body of one them the following proclamation was found: DETROIT, 24th June, 1777. By virtue of the power and authority to me given by his Excellency, Sir Guy Carlton, Knight of the lBath, Governor of the Province of Quebec, General and Commander-in-chief, etc., etc., etc., I assure all such as are inclined to withdraw themselves from the tyranny and oppression of the rebel committees, and take refuge in this settlement, or any of the posts commanded by His Majesty's officers, that they shall be humanely treated, shall be lodged and victualed; and such as are officers in arms and shall use them in defence of His Majesty against rebels and traitors till the extinction of this rebellion, shall receive pay adequate to their former stations in the rebel service; and all common men who shall serve during that period shall receive His Majesty's bounty of two hundred acres of land. Given under my hand and seal, HENRY HAMIILTON, L ieutenant-Governor and Suzerintendent. On July 27, 1777, Hamilton reported to Secretary Germain that he had already sent out fifteen parties, consisting of two hundred and eighty-nine braves with thirty white officers and rangers. At the attack on Fort Henry, now WTheeling, Virginia, in September, 1782, Hamilton's proclamation was read by George Girty, who promised the garrison the protection of the Crown if they would lay down their arms and swear allegiance. His force, consisting of several hundred Indians, came from Detroit. The fort was garrisoned by only twelve men and boys, but they refused to surrender. and the Indians, after a brief attack, withdrew a short distance. As the stock of powder in the fort was low, it was resolved to attempt to get a supply from the house of Mr. Zane, sixty yards away. Several of the men desired to go, but Elizabeth Zane, who was in the fort, insisted on going herself; and although the bullets whistled about her, she went and returned unharmed, and soon after the Indians retired. On February 7, 1778, the noted pioneer of Kentucky, Daniel Boone, was captured by the Indians. He was brought to I)etroit, arriving on March lo. (overnor Hamilton was anxious to have him as a hostage, and offered the Indians one htndred pounds for their prisoner, but they refused. On April lo they carried him to Ohio, and soon afterwards he escaped. The next attack was made on the ill-fated village of Wyoming, and the English and the Indians composing the attacking party were largely from Detroit. The party consisted of about three hundred white men and five hundred plumied and painted Indians, led by Colonel John Butler. They appeared before the place on July 3, 1778, and demanded its surrender. The inhabitants deemed it best to comply, but paid dearly for being faint-hearted. The entire settlement was destroyed, and the people massacred or carried into captivity. In his Life of Brant Mr. Stone says that while he was writing his work, he received a letter from Samuel C. Frey, son of Philip R. Frey, an ensign in the Eighth Regiment, in which was the statement that the Indians at Wyoming were led by Captain Bird, also of the Eighth Regiment. The letter continues: Bird had been engaged in a love affair at Detroit, but being very ugly, as well as having a hare-lip, was unsuccessful. The affair getting wind, his fellow-officers nmade themselves merry at his expense; and in order to steep his grief in forgetfulness he obtained permission to lead an expedition somewhere against the American frontier. Joining the n dians placetd under him and a detachment of his regiment to Butler's Rangers they concerted the descent oln Wyoming. Ensign Frey stated that he was illnatured during the whole march, and acted with foolhardiness at the battle. On August I, I778, Boonsboro was again attacked by a party of French and Indians from Detroit. This time they were led by Colonel Du Quesne, possibly the very man after whom old Fort Duquesne was named. This same year, early in November, the noted Kentuckian, Simon Kenton, was captured, brought to Detroit, and ransomed by one of the British officers. McDonald's " Western Sketches" gives this history of Kenton's life in Detroit, and his subsequent escape: 'he next day after Kenton had passed into the possession of the British at Detroit, the colmmanding officer sent for him, and hald a lolng confe-rence on the sulbject of tile strength and number of the inhabitants il the infant settlements of Kentucky. He next inquired of the prisoner what he knew of the strength and design of the Inovements of General MIcintosh, who, it was understood, was on the way, or preparing to invade the Indian country. To all of which interrogatories Kenton gave stuch answer as a patriot imight be expected to give. iHe told the truth where the truth would not injure his country, and evaded direct answers where the information might afford advantage to the enemy. After the British commander had interrogated him as long as he thought proper, he dismissed him, and gave an order on Captain McGregor, the commissary of clothing, for two suits of clothing, which were furnished forthwith. He was lnow permitted the liberty of the city of Detroit, but was 250 THE REIVOLUTIONARY WAlR. charged not to leave the town; if he did, the Indians, in all probability, would kill him. HIere he did some work, and drew half rations from the liritish, and lived pretty much at his ease. Early in the spring of 1779, the Indians brought to Detroit several prisoners whom they had taken from Kentucky. Amongst them were some of Kenton's old associates. These prisoners had also the liberty of the town, and Kenton and they strolled about at pleasure. Among these prisoners were Captain Nathan Bullit and Jesse Coffer. With these two men Kenton began to meditate an escape. They could make no movement to procure arms, ammunition, or provision, without exciting suspicion; and should they be once suspected they would be immediately confined. Kenton was a fine-looking man, with a dignified and manly deportment, and a soft, pleasing voice, and was everywhere he went a favorite with the ladies. A Mrs. Harvey, the wife of an Indian trader, had treated him with particular respect ever since he caine to Detroit, and he concluded if he could engage this lady as a confidant, by her assistance and countenance, ways and means would be prepared to aid them in their meditated flight. Kenton approached Mrs. Harvey on the delicate and interesting subject, with as much trepidation and coyness as ever a maiden was approached in a love affair. He watched an opportunity to have a private interview with Mrs. Harvey; an opportunity soon offered, and he, without disguise or hesitation, in full confidence, informed her of his intention, and requested her aid and secrecy. After a few chit chats, she entered into the views of Kenton with as much earnestness and enthusiasm as if she had been his sister. She began to collect and conceal such articles as might be necessary on the journey; powder, lead, moccasins, and dried beef were procured in sinall quantities, and concealed in a hollow tree some distance out of town. Guns were still wanting, and it would not do for a lady to trade in them. Mr. Harvey had an excellent fowling-piece, if nothing better should offer, that she said should be at their service. They had now everything that they expected to take with them in their flight ready, except guns. At length the third day of June, 1779, came, and a large concourse of Indians were in the town engaged in a drunken frolic; they had stacked their guns near Mrs. Harvey's house. As soon as it was dark, Mrs. Harvey went quietly to where the Indians guns were stacked, and selected the three best-looking rifles, carried them into her garden, and concealed them in a patch of peas. She next went privately to Kenton's lodging and conveyed to him the intelligence where she had hid the Indians guns. She told him she would place a ladder at the back of the garden (it was picketed) and that he could come in and get the guns. No time was to be lost; Kenton conveyed the good news he had from Mrs. Harvey to his companions, who received the tidings in ecstacies of joy; they felt as if they were already at home. It was a dark night; Kenton, lBullit, and Coffer gathered up their little all and pushed to Mrs. Harvey's garden. There they found the ladder; Kenton mounted over, drew the ladder over after him, went to the pea patch, found Mrs. Harvey sitting by the guns; she handed him the rifles, gave him a friendly shake of the hand, and bid him a safe journey to his friends and countrymen. The experiences of another prisoner, named John Leeth, a clerk and interpreter detained at Detroit by Governor Hamilton, are thus narrated. He says: One day, while detained in the fort, I observed some soldiers drawing the cannon out of the fort, and placing them on the bank of the river; and whilst I was ruminating in my mind what could be the meaning of this singular mancruver, a young silversmith, with whom I was intimately acquainted, came and asked me to walk with him and see them fire the cannon. I walked with him to the place where they had carried them. When we arrived there, we found Governor Hamilton and several other British officers who were standing and sitting around. Immediately after our arrival at the place, the Indians prodtuced a large quantity of scalps; the cannon fired, the Indians raised a shout, and the soldiers waved their hats, with huizzas and tremendous shrieks which lasted some time. This ceremony being endled, the Indians brought forward a parcel of American prisoners as a trophy of their victories, among whoni were eighteen womenl and children,-poor creatures! -- dreadfully mangled and emaciated; with their clothes tattered and torn to pieces in such a manner as not to hide their nakedness; their legs bare and streaming with blood, the effects of being torn with thorns, briers, and brush. To see these poor creatures dragged like sheep to the slaughter, along the British lines, caused my heart to shrink with throbbings, and my hair to rise with rage; and if I ever committed murder in my heart, it was then, for if I had had an opportunity, and been supported with strength, I should certainly have killed the governor, who seeined to take great delight in the exhibition. My business hurried me from the horrible scene, and I know not what became of those poor wretches who were the miserable victims of savage power. Every nman in the fort, capable of bearing ariis, was trained twice a week while I reinained there. Up to this period the movements at Detroit had been conducted under orders from Major-General Carlton; but for some reason his administration failed to please the home government, and on September 26, I777, he wrote to Hamilton, "The conduct of the war has been taken entirely out of my hands, and the management of it upon your frontiers has been assigned to you, as you have seen by a letter from Lord George,-a copy which I sent you." This news was doubtless pleasing to Hamilton, and there can be no doubt that, soon after this, he commenced to plan an incursion which he should lead in person. Meantime, on June 26, I778, General Haldimand succeeded General Carlton, and Hamilton, apparently, began to fear that his powers would be restricted. In great haste he completed his preparations for an attack on the American posts. He began to talk of what he proposed to do, and was confident and even boastful. His preparations were finally completed, and he waited only for the arrival of Captain Bird and fifty of the King's Regiment from Niagara. They came on October 7, 1778, and on the same day Hamilton and his party set out for Vincennes. He was accompanied by Philip Dejean, his secretary, John McBeath, a surgeon, thirty-two of the Eighth Regiment under Lieutenant Shourd, eighty-eight Detroit volunteers, forty-two volunteers commanded by La Mothe, and one hundred and twenty-four Indians. They had gone but a little distance when the fusee of Lieutenant Shourd accidentally went off and broke his leg; the surgeon returned with him to Detroit, but subsequently overtook and accompanied Hamilton's party. Governor Hamilton arrived before Vincennes on December I7, when, although he was unaware of it, the fort was occupied only by Captain Helm and THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. 251 a Mr. Henry. On seeing Hamilton's forces approach, IIelm placed a cannon in the gateway, and with lighted fuse stood ready to discharge it. When Hamilton came within hearing Helm called out, " Halt! " Hamilton demanded the surrender of the garrison. Helm replied that until he knew the terms no man should enter. Hamilton said, " You shall have the honors of war." Helm then surrendered, and with his garrison of one man marched out in single file. In a letter to General Haldimand, Governor Hamilton claimed that the force at Vincennes which surrendered to him was as follows: One Major, four Captains, two Lieutenants, two ensigns, one Indian agent, one adjutant, one commissary, one interpreter, four sergeants, and two hundred and sixteen rank and file; of the last, one hundred and sixty were volunteers." His statement does not agree with any other, and seems improbable unless in his "rank and file" he includes all the inhabitants of the town. It is evident also that his letter did not make a very favorable impression upon a certain official or clerk at Quebec, for a series of sarcastic endorsements upon it show that the writer did not hold in high esteem his military capacity or judgment. Hamilton had intended to proceed to Kaskaskia. but he weakened his forces by sending out parties to fall upon and destroy the settlers. He wrote to the commandant at Natchez, "Next year there will be the greatest number of savages on the frontier that has ever been known." We now turn to consider the efforts of the American forces to obtain possession of Detroit and the West. In 1778 Virginia raised a body of troops to defend her western settlements. Colonel George Rogers Clark was placed in command, and proceeding to Kaskaskia he captured it on July 4. On December 12, 1778, Patrick Henry, then Governor of Virginia, gave instructions to Colonel John Todd, county lieutenant or commandant of the County of Illinois as follows: You are to give particular attention to Colonel Clark and his corps, to whom the State has great obligations. You are to cooperate with him in any military undertaking when necessary, and to give the military every aid which the circumstances of the people will admit of. The inhabitants of Illinois must not expect settled peace and safety while their and our enemies have footing at Ietroit, and can interrupt or stop the trade of the Mississippi. If the English have not the strength or courage to come to war against us themselves, their practice has been, and will be, to hire the savages to commit murders and depredations. Illinois must expect to pay in these a large price for her freedom, unless the English can be expelled from Detroit. The means for effecting this will not, perhaps, be found in your or Colonel Clark's power. * * * But the French inhabiting the neighborhood of that place, it is presumed, may be brought to see it done with indifference, or perhaps join in the enterprise with pleasure. While Clark was still at Kaskaskia, Colonel Fran cis Vigo, of St. Louis, a Spanish subject in synmpathy with the American cause, went to him and tendered his services. Clark gladly availed himself of the offer, and Colonel Vigo, with a single servant, proceeded to Vincennes, to learn the strength of that post and the possibilities of its capture. As was anticipated, he was captured, and brought before Governor Hamilton. Being a Spanish subject, he could not be held as a spy in the absence of proof. He was, however, forbidden to leave the fort; but finally, on giving a written pledge not to attempt anything injurious to British interests while on his return to St. Louis, he was allowed to depart. Colonel Vigo kept his pledge by going to St. Louis without telling on the way anything he had learned of the force of Hamilton at Vincennes. Hie, however, waited at St. Louis only long enough to change his dress, and then hurried back to Kaskaskia, arriving there the 29th of January. He at once made known the number and condition of Hamilton's forces, and Colonel Clark resolved to attempt the recapture of Vincennes. The following z'erbatfr/iz letter from Clark to Governor Henry, dated February 3, 1779, gives details of his plans, and reflects great credit on his spirit, if not on his spelling. SilR,As it is now near twelve months since I have had the least Intelligence from you I almost despare of any releif sent to me. I have for many months past had Reports of An Army Marching against I)e Troit, but no certainty. A Iate Menuvr of the Famous Hair Buyer General Henry Hamilton, Esq., Lieutenant Governor of De Troit, hath allarmed us much. On the i6th of December last, he with a Body of Six Hundred men, Composed of Regulars, French Volunteers and Indians, Took possession of St. Vincent (Vincennes) on the Wabash, and what few men that composed the Garrison, not being able to make the least Defence. * * Being sensible that without a Reinforcement, which at present I have hardly the right to Expect, that I shall be obliged to give up the Country to Mr. Hamilton without a turn of Fortune in my favor, I am Resolved to take advantage of his present situation and Risque the whole in a single Battle. I shall set out in a few Days, with all the Force I can Raise of my own Troups and a few militia that I can Depend on, Amounting in the whole to only one Hundred and Seventy * * men * * of which goes on Board of a small Gaily * * out some time ago, mounting two four pounders and four large Swivels, one nine pounder on board. This boat is to make her way good, if possible, and take her Station Tenn Leagues below St. Vincent untill furthur orders, if I am Defeated She is to join Col. Rogers on the Mississippi. She has great stores of amunition on Board. Comd. by Lieut. Jno. Rogers, I shall march across by Iand myself with the Rest of my Boys. * * * You must bc sensible of the Feeling that I have for those Brave officers and Soldiers that are Determined to share my Fate let it be what it will. I know the case is Desperate, but Sir, we must Either quit the Country or attack Mr. Hamilton. No time is to be lost was I shoar of a Reinforcement I should not attempt it. Who knows what Fortune will do for us. Great things have been effected by a few men well conducted. * * * In pursuance of his determination, he sent fortysix men by water with stores; and taking one hundred and thirty men,he set out for Vincennes. No 252 THE REVOIUTIONARY WAR. easy task was before him. The route lay over low lands, recently flooded, and the soldiers marched through water which was often from two to four feet deep. Part of the force, as has been said, went by boat, but all of them really went by water. Daily rains made the journey more and more disagreeable, yet nothing could dampen the ardor of the troops. The drummer of the party was a jovial little Irishman, with a rich voice and a memory wellstored with comic songs, all of them full of the "Begone-dull-care " spirit that animates the natives of Erin's Isle. When the men were wading through mud and water, Colonel Clark would seat the drummer on his drum, on which he floated and sang, keeping up the spirits of the men with his lively melodies. At last, nearly starved, exhausted and cold, yet brave and hopeful, they reached Vincennes. On his arrival, Clark in a letter addressed to the inhab On March 7 Clark sent Captain Williams, Lieutenant Rogers, and twenty-five soldiers with (Governor Hamilton, Philip Dejean, Major Hay, Captain La Mothe, Lieutenant Schiefflin, and twenty others, to Virginia as prisoners of war. The Volunteers who came with Hamilton were drawn up in line, told of the real nature of the war, and exhorted, as they were to be paroled instead of imprisoned, to go home and use their influence for the American cause. They returned to Detroit, and obeyed the request so effectually that, as Colonel Clark says, in one of his letters: They made great havoc to the British interest, publicly saying that they had taken an oath not to fight against Americans, but they had not sworn not to fight for them, etc., and matters were carried to such a height that the commanding officer thought it prudent to take no notice of anything that was said or done. Mrs. McComb, who kept a noted boarding-house, I understand, had the assurance to show him the stores she had provided for the Americans. itants, said: I request such of you as are true citizens, an the liberty I bring you, to remain still in your h if any there be, that are friends to the King, w to the fort and join the hair-buyer General. On February 24 he addressed the fi to Governor Hamilton: SIR,In order to save yourself from the impending threatens you, I order you to immediately surren your garrison, stores, etc. For if I am obliged t depend on such treatment as is justly due to a In of destroying stores of any kind, or any papers in your possession, or hurting one house in towi if you do, there shall be no mercy shown you. Several interviews were held, in wh sought other terms than unconditior but Clark would give none, and Hami pelled to yield. On March 5, at ten morning, the British forces marched cennes. Many histories of the United States E this really great victory of Colonel Clar tical value and importance it far exc of victories in the East which are freq upon at length not warranted by the to the country at large. Clark's vi national value, for it largely relieved fear and saved the region of the Lake Before Clark's arrival, Hamilton ha Dejean to Detroit for supplies, and or he and Mr. Adheimer set out with loaded with goods, worth $50,00o. ( formed of their approach and sent intercept the boats, which, with theil captured on the 26th as they were < the Wabash. Colonel Clark repeats this information, and gives Id willing to enjoy further details, in a letter to the Governor of Virlouses; and those, ginia, dated Kaskaskia, April 29, I779. He says: ill instantly repair By your instructions to me I find you put no confidence in General McIntosh's taking Detroit, as you encourage me to attempt ollowing letter it if possible. It has been twice in my power. Had I been able to raise only five hundred men when I first arrived in the country, or when I was at St. Vincennes could I have secured my prisoners, and only had three hundred good men, I should have attempted g storm that now it; and since learn there could have been no doubt of success, as Ider yourself, with by some gentlemen, lately from that post, we art informed that tormu nay the town and country kept three days in feasting and diversions, orderer. Besvare on hearing of my success against Mr. Hamilton, and were so or letters that are certain of my embracing the fair opportunity of possessing myself t, for by Heaven of that post that the merchants and others provided many necessaries for us on our arrival; the garrison, consisting of only eighty G. R. CLARKE. men, not daring to stop their diversions. They are now completing a new fort,1 and I fear too strong for any force 1 shall be uich Hamilton able to raise in this country. lal surrender; Further details of the capture of Vincennes, and lton was corn- the subsequent confinement of Lieutenant-Governor o clock in the Hamilton and other officers, are contained in the out o V - following series of letters and documents. Governor Patrick Henry, in a letter to the Speaker of the entirely ignore House of Delegates, written May I8, 1779, says: k. In its praceeded a score SIR, — I have enclosed a letter for the perusal of the Assembly, from uently dilated Colonel Clark at the Illinois. This letter, among other things, ir importance informs me of an expedition which he has planned and deterictory was of mined to execute, in order to recover Fort St. Vincent, which had te W t f been formerly taken from the British troops, and garrison by I the West of those under the Colonel's command. This enterprise has sucS. ceeded to our utmost wishes, for the garrison, commanded by,d sent Philip Henry Hamilton, Lieutenant-Governor of Detroit, and consisting i February, of British Regulars and a number of Volunteers, were made prisoners of war. Colonel Clark has sent the Governor, with several officers and privates, tinder a proper guard, who have by this ]lark was in- time arrived at New London in the county of Bedford. sixty men to Proper measures will be adopted by the Executive for their r stores, were confinement and security. Unfortunately, the letters from Colonel coming down 1 The fort Clark speaks of was Fort Lernoult, which was begun in the fall of T77,. THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. 253 - Clark, containing, no doubt, particular accounts of this affair, sas 'in the possession of an express who was murdered by a party of Indians on his wray through Kentucky to this place. 'Fhe letters, as I ato informned, were destroyed. As the facts which f has-c mentioned are sufficiently authenticated, I thought it material that they should be coiniunicated to the Assembly. Soofl afterwards letters were received from Colonel (lark, and the State papers of Virginia contain this record: IN COUNCIL, JUNE i8, 1779. The Board proceeded to the consideration of the letters of Colonel Clark, and other papers relating to Henry Hamilton, Esq., swho has acted some years past as LieUtenant-Governor of the settletnent at and about 1)etroit, and commandant of the British garrison there, under Sir Guy Carlton as Governor in Chief, Philip IDejean, justice of the Peace for Detroit, and William La Mothe, Captain of Volunteers, prisoners of war, taken in tise county of Illinois. They find that Governor Hamiltons has exectutedl the task of inciting the Indians to perpetrate tlseir accustot-ned cruelties on the citizens of the United States, ssithottt distinsctiol (If sex, age, or comtdition, witlt an eagerness and avidity which evince tisat the general nature of his charge harmonized witit his particular disposition. Thscy should has-c been satisfied, front mte (otiter testilnimny adduced, that these enormities swere cotttiittcel by savages actintg tintder Itis commtission; but tite sunsher of prociatitations, which, at different thites, were left its hottses, the inhabitants of sehich were killed or carried away by tise Indians, one (If wvhich proclarnatioits is its possessios (If the board, under the band and seal (If Goverisor Hatnilton, puts this fact beyond at doubt. At the tine of his captivity, it appears, hie Itad sent considerable bodies of Intdians against tlse frontier settleilseits of these states, antI tad actttaliy mappo~inted a great counicil (If Indians to mneet situ at Tennessee, to coiscert the operations of tisis present catnpaign. * * * It appears tihat Gov-ernolr Hattilton gave standing rewards for scalps, Iltt offeretd none for Isrisolners, wshich ind tcetd tise I ndiansI, ([fter inaking titeir captives carry tiseir baggage into tise iteigitborih ((d (If till fort, there to put thetn to death and carry in their o-aiiss to I 51t GiovernoIr, who swelcomed their return atsd suiccess by a discltargc of cannon. That whets a prisoner, brotglst alive, and destined to death by thse Insdians, tlse fire already kindled, and himself bound to the stake, seas dextrOLtSly withdrawn, and secreted from tlhern by the islllanity 1sf a fellowv-prisoner, a large reward was offered for the cliscovery elf the victim, which lsavitsg tempted a servant to betray (ils rlliscealltent, tlse present prisoner Dejean, being sent with a party If soldiers, surrotinded the hotise, took and threw into jail Lite unhalppy victim aisd his deliverer, where the fosrmer soon ex(ired uniser the perpetual assurance of lDejean that hie Isas again to lbe restored into tise haisds of the savages, musd the latter,svhen enlarged, was bitterly reprimanded by Governor Haisilton. * * * It appears that tlse prisoner L~a M~othe was a captaits of thse volIinteer scalping parties of Intdiaiss and whites swho svent, from tihsse to time, tinder general orders to spare neithtr nets, womnen, nor children. * * * Called on by that jttstice see owes to those wsho art- fightiisg the isattles- (If our country, to deal out at leisgth miseries tol their enemies, measure for meastire, aised to distress the feelimsgs of mankind by exhibiting to them sltectacles of severe retaliation, where lee had long and vainly eisdeavored to introdtice ais enmulation in kindness happily the possession, by the fortunes of sear, of some (If those s-cry iisdividtials, who~, has-log distinguished] themselves personally in this line of cruel coliduct, are fit subjects to begin on ssith the swork of retaliation, this board has resolsed that the (;ovemnor, the said Henry Hamilton, Philip Dejean, and William La Mlothe, prisoners of war, be ptit into irons, confined in the dungeon of the public jail, debarred the use of pen, ink and Paper, and excluded all converse except with their keeper. And (he Governor orders accordingly. Arch. Blair, C. C. The putting of these officers in irons gave rise to a voluminous correspondence. Some one of the officers at IDetroit wrote to Governor Jeff erson of Virginia, protesting against the imprisonment of Governor Hamilton; and his reply, given in the Calendar of Virginia State Papers, with some partly illegible words supplied in brackets, is as follows: WILLIAsMSBURGH, July 22, 1779. SIR,Yotir letter on the subject of Lietiteisaist-Governor Hamilton's confmnineisen came safely to haitd. I shsall weitls great cheerfulness explains to you thse reason ois which tise advice of Counscil wsas fouisded, sittce, after the satisfaction (If doing whasmt is rigist, the greatest is that of having svhat we do approsed by tisose swhose opinioiss deserve esteem. We tlsink ottrselses jltstified is Goverisor Hamilton's strict confinemnent on the general principle of isational retaliation. To state to yohi tlse particular facts of Blritish crtielty to American prisosiers swotld be toS give a melancholy history from the capture of Coloisel Ethtan Allen at the beginising of tlse sear to the present day: at sistory of swlicls I wvill avoid, as equally disagreeable to yoti asdl tol mte. I ssith pleasusre do you the jeistice tol say that I beliese tisose facts tos be s-cry touch unknown to you, as Caisada Isas been tise otsly scene of your sers-ice in Amnerica, aisd its that quarter swe save reasoli to believe that Sir Guy Carltois aisd time otiser officers comstsanisdng tisere have treated otir prisolners [slisce else instaisce (If Coloisel Allems] swith contsiderable lenity. [As to] sshat Isas been done its Esglatsd, and selat in Ness York amsd Plsilacelephia, you are psrobably tlnisformed, as it swomld hardly be made tise stibject of epistolsary correspondence. I weill omsly observe tos yott, sir, thsat the conisfnemnent and treatinent (If yostr [prisoners] oIfficers, soldiers, aisd sealmen, has-e been so5 vigorouts aisd crmiel as tisart a very great psropodrtio~n olf the sslole (If tisose captured in tse course (If this sear and carried to Philadelephia swhile in psossession of tise British army, aisd to New York, have perislsed iilsiseralbly fI-ons tisat caulsc o1111, aiscl that ilsis fact is as weell establishsed withit Il as anyv Iistlorical fact swhicls Isas happened us the colirse elf thse ssar. A gentleman osf thsis Comtmonowsetalth in ptiblic office, and of knoswn aisd establisised cisaracter-, swill wsas takems (11 sea, carried to New York aisd ex cistlgedi, Ias givein its lately Ittrtictilar inifortnmation of tise treatmenst (If o(lr prisoners there. * * * WVhen, therefore, swe mare desired to ads-ert to the possible conssequcisces of treatimsg prisoisers seith rigour, I need oisly ask, Wseis did tlsese rigours beg~in? Not seith us-, assturedly. I thiisk von, sir, wshlo hsave had as gootd opportetnities as aisy Britishs officer of learning in sshat nsanner swe treat those swhora the fortune of ws-mr has put into otir hands,, can clear ems from tlse charge oif rigomirs, mis far as yoemr kisossledge or information Isas extemsdeel. I can assert that Gosernor H-amniltoms's, is the first instance swhich has occurred its isy ossn cotmitry, and if there has been another in any of the United States, it is tinknoswn to me. These instances mtmst have Iseen m-xtremiely rare, if they have ever existed at all, as they cotild not have been altogether unheard of by me. When a uniform exercise of kindness to prisoners on ouir part has been retirised bsy ais unsiformn severity on the part of otir enemies, yoti must exceise me for saying it is high time, by other lessons, to teach respect to the dictates of humanity; in suich a case retaliation becomes ams act of benevolence. Btmt suppose, sir, swe were willing still longer to decline the druidgery of general retaliation; yet Governor Hamilton's conduct Isas been such as to call for exemplary puinishment on him personalnly. In saying this I have not -so mucmeh in vlew his particular cruelties to ocir citizens prisoners swith him (swhich, tlsough they have been great, swere of necessity confined to a small scale), as the general nature of the service he undertook at Detroit, and the extensive exercise of cruelties which that involved. Those who act together in war are, answerable to each other. No distinctioms can be. made betsween the principal and ally by those against 254 THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. -- 4 - - that the second Article declares theln prisoners of xvar, and whom the war is waged. He who employs another to do a deed makes the deed his own. If he calls in the hand of the assassin or murderer, himself becomes the assassin or murderer. The known rule of warfare with the Indian savages is an indiscriminate ibtchery of men, women and children. These savages, under this welt-known character, are employed by the British nation as allies in the war against the Americans. Governor Hamilton undertakes to be the conductor of the war. In the execution of that undertaking he associates small parties of whites under his immediate command with large parties of the Savages, and sends them to act, sometimes jointly, sometimes separately, not against Our forts or armies in the field, but the farming settlements on our frontiers. Governor Hamilton, then, is himself the butcher of men, women and children. I will not say to what length the fair rules of war would extend the right of punishment against him, but I am sure that confinement, under its strictest circumstances, as a retaliation for Indian devastation and massacre must be deemed Lenity. I apprehend you had not sufficiently adverted to the expression in the advice to the council, when you supposed the proclamation there alluded to to be the one addressed to the inhabitants of the Illinois. * * * [The] Proclamation then alluded to contained nothing more than an invitation to our officers and soldiers to join the British arms against those whom he pleased to call Rebels and Traitors. In order to introduce these among our people they were put into the hands of the Indians, and in every house where they murdered or carried away the family they left one of these proclamations. Some of them were found sticking in the breasts of persons murdered, one under the hand and seal of Governor Hamilton. * * * But if you will be so good as to recur to the address of the Illinois, which you refer to, you will find that tho' it does not, in express terms, threaten vengeance, blood, and massacre, yet it proves that the Governor had made for us the most ample provision of all these calamities. He then gives in detail the horrid Catalogue of savage nations, extending from south to north, whom he had leagued with himself to wage combined war on our frontiers; and it is well known that that war would of course be made up of blood, and general massacre of men, women, and children. Other papers of Governor Hamilton's have come to our hands, containing instructions to officers going out with scalping parties of Indians and whites, and proving that that kind of war was waged under his express orders. Further proof in abundance might be added, but I suppose the fact too notorious to need themn. Your letter seems to admit an inference that, whatever may have been the general conduct of our enemies towards their prisoners, or whatever the personal conduct of Governor Hamilton, yet, as a prisoner by capitulation, you consider him as privileged from strict confinement. I do not pretend to an intimate knowledge of this subject. My idea is that the term " prisoner of war" is a generic one, the specification of which is first, prisoners at discretion; and second, prisoners in convention or capitulation. Thus in the debate in the House of Commons of the 27th of November last on the address, the minister, speaking of General Burgoyne (and in his presence), says he is a "prisoner," and General Burgoyne calls himself a "prisoner under the terms of the convention of Saratoga," intimating that, tho' a prisoner, he was a prisoner of particular species, entitled to certain terms. The treatment of the first class ought to be such as is approved by the usage of polished nations: gentle and humane, unless a contrary conduct in an enemy or individual render a strict treatment necessary. The prisoners of the second class have nothing to exempt them from a like treatment with those of the first, except so far as they shall have been able to make better terms by articles of capitulation. * * * However, we may waive reasoning on this head, because no article in the Capitulation of Governor Hamilton is violated by his confinement. Perhaps, not having seen the Capitulation, you were led to think it were a thing of course that, being able to obtain terms of surrender, they would first provide for their own treatment. I enclose you a copy of the Capitulation, by which you will see that the second Article declares them prisoners of war, and nothing is said as to the treatment they were to be entitled to. When Governor Hamilton signs indeed, he adds a flourish, containing the motives inducing him to capitulate, one of which was confidence in a generous enemy. lie should have reflected that generosity on a large scale would take sides against him. However, these were only his private motives, and did not enter into the contract with Colonel Clark. Being prisoners of war, then, with only such privileges as their Capitulation has provided, and that having provided nothing on the subject of their treatment, they are liable to be treated as other prisoners. We have not extended our orders, as we might justifiably have done, to the whole of this Corps. Governor Hamilton and Captain La Mothe alone, as leading offenders, are in confinement. The other officers and men are treated as if they had been taken in justifiable war: the officers being at large on their parole, and the men also having their liberty to a certain extent. Dejean was not included in the Capitulation, being taken eight days after, on the Wabache, one hundred and fifty miles from St. Vincennes. I hope, Sir, that being made more fully acquainted with the facts on which the advice of council was grounded, and exercising your own good sense in cool and candid deliberation on these facts, and the consequences deducted from them, according to the usage and sentiments of civilized nations, you will see the transaction in a very different light from that in which it appears at the time oif writing your Letter, and ascribe the advice of the council, not to want of attention to the sacred nature of public Conventions, of which I hope we shall never, in any circumstances, lose sight, but to a desire of stopping the effusion of the unoffending blood of women and children, and the unjustifiable severities exercised on ourl captive officers and soldiers in general, by proper severity on our part. I have the honor to be, with much personal respect, Sir, Your most obed't & most h'ble Servant, TIIOIOMAS JEFFERSON. The imprisonment of these officers was brought to the attention of General Washington, and on August 6 he wrote to Jefferson, advising that the irons be removed. His request was at once acceded to, and on September 29, 1779, the Virginia Council ordered that Governor Hamilton, Captain La Mothe, and Philip I)ejean be sent to Hanover Court House, to remain at large on parole. The prisoners objected to a parole which would prevent them from saying anything to the prejudice of the United States, and so they were remanded to confneement in jail until they could " determine with themselves to be inoffensive in word as well as deed." They were apparently again put into irons. Efforts in their behalf were continued, and the records of the Virginia Council for October, 1779, contain a memorandum of a letter from Governor Jefferson to Colonel Matthews, who had been a prisoner in Hamilton's power; Matthews pleaded for leniency towards Hamilton, and brought a second letter from Washington, disapproving of his being in irons. These were again taken off, and Jefferson wrote to Colonel Matthews as follows: Governor Hamilton and his companions were imprisoned and ironed, first in retaliation for cruel treatment of our captive citizens by the enemy in general. 2nd. For the barbarous species of warfare which himself and his Savage allies carried on in our west THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. 255 err. frontier. 3rd. For particular acts of barbarity, of which he himself was personally guilty, to seine of our citizens in his power. Any one of these charges was sufficient to justify the measure we took. Of the truth of the first yourself are witness. Your situation, indeed, seems to have been better since you were sent to New York; but reflect on what you suffered before that, and knew others of your countrymen to suffer, and what you know is now suffered by that iimore unhappy part of them who are still coniined on board of the prison ships of the enemy. Proofs of the second charge, we have under Hamilton's own hand; and of the third, as sacred assurances as human testimony is capable of giving. Humane conduct on our part was found to produce no effect'; the contrary, therefore, was to be tried. In a letter to Washington, dated November 28, 1779, Jefferson says: Lamothe and Dejean have given their parole, and are at Hanover Court House; Hamilton, Hay, and four others are still obstinate. They, therefore, are still in close confinement, though their irons have never been on since your second letter on the subject. On June 15, 1780, Governor Hamilton and the other prisoners were in confinement at Charlottesville, Va., and Colonel James Wood, then in command of that place, wrote to Governor Jefferson SIR,I am Honored with your Letter of the gth instant, with the several Inclosures, and shall think myself Happy if I am able to carry your Ideas into Execution. I have issued Peremptory ()rders for all the officers, without distinction, to repair within live days to the Barracks, and shalt certainly enforce them with strictness. * * * I am well assured that had the Assembly extended their resolutions no farther than to have restricted the Officers to the Limits of the County, and called in all their Supernumerary Servants, it would have answered a much Better Purpo!;e. I hope I shall be excused for giving my opinion thus freely, as your Excellency may be assured it proceedls from my zeal for the Service. * * * I shall be extremely glad to be informed by the return of the Dragoon whether the officers are to be closely confined to the Barracks; whether some of them who have built Huts, within the distance of four miles, are to be removed; and whether I am to demand other paroles of them, and what the Terms of the new ones are to be. P. S. General Hamilton requests to know whether the General (fficers, their Aid-de-camps, Brigade Majors, and Servants, are meant to be included. He says they will willingly give any Parole that may be thought necessary. For some unexplained reason General Washington continued to interest himself in these prisoners, and on September 26, 178o, Jefferson wrote to him, from Richmond, as follows: I was honored, yesterday, with your favor of the 5th instant, on the subject of prisoners, and particularly of Lieutenant Governor I llnilton. You are not unapprised of the influence of this officer with the Indians, his activity and embittered zeal against us. \,t1 also, perhaps, know how precarious is our tenure of the Illinois County, and critical is the situation of the new counties on the Ohio. These circumstances determined us to retain Governor HTamilton and Major Hay within our power, when we delivered up the other prisoners. ()n a late representation from the people of Kentucky, by a person sent here from that country, and expressions of what they had reason to apprehend from these two prisoners, in the event of their liberation, we assured them they would not be parted with, though we were giving utp our other prisoners. It is probable that Washington replied, opposing the determination of Jefferson, for on October IO Governor Hamilton was released on the following parole: I, Henry Hamnilton, Lieutenant Governor and Superintendent of l)etroit, do hereby acknowledge myself a prisoner of War to the Colmmoniwealth of Virginia, and having permlission from his Excellency Thomas Jefferson, Governor of said Commonwealth, to go to New York, (1o p1ldge mly faith and most sacredly promise upon my parole of Honor, that I twill not do, say, write, or cause to be done, said, or written, directly or indirectly, in any respect whatever, anything to the prejudice of the United States of America, or any of them, until I shall be enlarged from my captivity by Exchange or otherwise, with the consent of the said Governor of Virginia or his successors, and that I will return, when required by the said Governor or his successors, to such place within the said Comnonwealth as he shall point oxit, and deliver myself tip again to him or the person acting for or under him. In testimony whereof I have hereunto set my hand and seal at Chesterfield, this toth day of October, 1780. HENRY HIAMILTON. On the same day Major Jehu Hay, of the Detroit militia, was paroled to go to New York. Of the other prisoners taken by Colonel Clark, Schiefflin escaped in April, I780, and returned to Detroit, and on June I following, while in confinement, Maisonville committed suicide. On March 4, 1781, Hamilton, Lamothe, and McBeath were exchanged. With regard to the character of Governor Hamilton and the warfare that he encouraged, Mr. Tucker, in his Life of Jefferson, on page 129, questions the justice of the stigma which has been publicly affixed to the character of this British officer. Mr. Tucker says that in early youth he was acquainted with him; and that ' he was an educated and well-bred gentleman, possessed of a soldierly frankness, great liberality, etc." He also says, "Colonel Clark makes no mention of his ill treatment of prisoners." Concerning this defense, it is a sufficient answer to refer to Clark's letters to the inhabitants of Vincennes and to Governor Hamilton, both of which are amply verified. For the rest, the letter of Jefferson to the Governor of Detroit will safely stand against the statement of Jefferson's historian, who does not seem to have been aware of its existence. The best defense that can be made for Hamilton is that he acted under orders from his superiors; but he seems to have been a willing instrument, and to have gone beyond any instructions in his endeavor to punish the Americans. In 1784, when General Haldimand went back to England, Mr. Hamilton, as the oldest member of the Legislative Council, was left in charge of the duties of Governor of Canada, for about a year, when Henry Hope succeeded him as the' regular appointee. Returning again to the history of the efforts to capture Detroit, we find that while Hamilton was 256 THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. meditating on his evil deeds in a Virginia prison, efforts were still being made to organize an expedition against Detroit; and the letters of Colonel Daniel Brodhead, in command of Continental troops at Pittsburgh, are full of interesting particulars. He succeeded General Mcintosh at that place, and in a letter dated April I6, 1779, addressed to MajorGeneral Armstrong, gives these facts as to McIntosh's proposed expedition against Detroit: The Board of War informed me before I left Carlysle that the views of Congress were that it was too late to prosecute their main object. But General McIntosh was more ambitious. He swore that nothing less than Detroit was his object, and he would have it in the winter season. In vain was the nakedness of the men, the scanty supplies, worn-out, starved horses, leaness of the cattle, and total want of forage, difficulty, under such circumstances, of supporting posts at so great a distance in the enemy's country, and other considerations, urged. General McIntosh determined to make a trial, and it was owing to his determination that the military absurdity called Fort McIntosh was built by the hands of hundreds that were eager to wield sword and gun. The following letter from Colonel Brodhead to Major-General Green, dated Pittsburgh, May 26, 1779, gives particulars regarding the fort: Last campaign we had great plenty of resources for all the troops which were necessary to make an excursion into the enemy's country, which was then the ultimate view of the Board of War, and to have saved much provisions for the cainpaign. The Regular Troops and new Levies were equal to such an undertaking; but General McIntosh's views were much more extensive. He was determined to take Detroit; and with this view, began to build a fort at much labor and expense, at Beaver Creek: and consequently kept, at least, one thousand militia in the field who might have been better employed putting in their fall crops and taking in their corn, which was chiefly lost for want of their attendance. The Fort Mcintosh alluded to in the above letters was on the north side of the Ohio, about thirty miles from. Pittsburgh. General McIntosh left it on November 5, 1778, with the intention of proceeding to Detroit, but after going about seventy miles he was compelled to give up the attempt for lack of provisions. On September 24, 1779, Colonel Brodhead wrote to Colonel George Morgan: I have applied some time past for leave to make an expedition against Detroit, but fear it will again be put off until the season is too far advanced, for, although the operations ought not to terminate before the commencement of winter, yet they ought to be begun early in the fall, and I must inform you that by a late letter I rec'd from Mr. Archibald Steele, it appears that a sufficient quantity of provisions is not yet purchased that he knows of, for such an undertaking; and why do you conceive that five hundred men are now equal to the task of carrying that place, which is rendered much stronger by men and works than it was two years ago when u,8oo men were thought necessary? I conceive it to be next to an impossibility to carry on a secret expedition against that place, whilst the English have goods to engage the Indians in their interest, and we have nothing but words. On November o0, 1779, he wrote to General Washington as follows: An expedition against Detroit in the winter season will doubtless put us in possession of the Enemy's shipping, and, of course. give us the command of Lake Erie. Winter expeditions are generally attended with great loss of Horses and Cattle, except where large magazines of forage are laid in and can be transported. But the British Garrison and shipping will be a full compensation for every loss of that kind and indeed every difficulty we can meet in obtaining it, as it will likewise secure the future tranquility of this frontier. I will endeavor to have everything in perfect readiness and procure the best intelligence that circumstances will admit. I believe a considerable number of Indians will join me, but I have little expectation of supplies except from the French settlements in the vicinity of that post, and as the British yearly cause the inhabitants to thrash out their grain and sell to them for the purpose of filling their magazines, little dependence can be placed on receiving supplies from them; and the Indians on the River St. Lawrence subsist chiefly upon animal food. * * * My best intelligence at present is that the enemy have erected a very strong work, near to the Old Font, and on the only commanding eminence behind the Soldiers' Gardens. That the Garrison consists of three hundred Regulars (some say more) and about the same number of militia; some of the latter Descripticn it is said will join our Troops on their arrival in that neighborhood. The Wyandots, Tawas, Chippewas, and Pottawatomits live in the vicinity of Detroit; and many of them are, witho:t doubt, under British influence. Twelve days later he wrote to Washington again: The Delaware Chiefs inform me that the English at Detroit have refused to supply the Wyandots with clothing, because they had entered into a treaty of friendship with us. They likewise say that the new Fort at that place is finished, and that the walls are so high that the tops of the Barracks can scarcely be seen from the outside; but they don't know whether there are any Bomb proofs as they are not permitted to go into the Fort. They think the number of soldiers does not exceed three hundred, and some part of that number still remain in the old Fort. On November 26, 1779, Colonel Brodhead wrote to Zeisberger, the Moravian missionary on the Muskingum, as follows: I am very anxious to know the strength of the Garrison at i)ctroit, and likewise the strength of the works, but particularly whether there are any Bomb proofs, and of what construction, whether they are arched with brick or stone, or of wood; and whether the Bomb proofs are only for the safety of the Enemy's provision and military stores, or whether there are any for the security of the men. What number of cannon are mounted, and of what size, and how the inhabitants stand affected with respect to our cause. If you can employ a proper person (to confide in and bring me intelligence of those circumstances, you will render your country essential service; and you may rely on my paying the spy eighty Bucks, or one hundred, if eighty is insufficient. I intend to send one in like manner to Niagara, to gain similar intelligence. (n February 21, I780, Colonel Brodhead again wrote to Washington: By one of our prisoners who lately rmade his escalp fromi l1'c Wyandots, and who has frequently been at I )etroit, I ant inforni. -d that the new fort erected there has Bomb proofs of wood; that the walls are very high, fifteen feet thick, and made of fascin,;and clay; that the Barracks are sunk some distance into the ground, and that their roof cannot be seen from without; tha. it stands on a fine commanding piece of ground with a gentle descent each TiHE' RE'VOLUTIONARY WVAR. 25 7 way likewise, that it is surroundedl hy a ilitchI twor ty friet wide(-. The G;arrison consists Of 450 Regulars; and the Flneniy have iloo) mnen at Niagara, besides a great number of Indliants If this intelligence is true, unless some diversion is Ociasiioneid by iroolts" marching uip the Stusquehannah River, it is not timiprohable that the enemy may pay tis a visit down the M leghiany RIverr ist spring; andI 1 have nmeither itien nor canneroi stitfi' a it for ti is Fort, unless a reinforcemient rhan be spared ftrit tli-i nitat artny. I shall, however, make the best disposition tha t circutustances wrill admit, amit if possible gain further inttelligence from tile IDelaNvares, who continue their declarataions ii f frienidslhip fur us. I beg, your Excellency will indulge miii wth twintty I oat lBuildlers andI some armooirers earlev i ill th isprunti. If 1 irecive I I() ordcilr to the contrary, and can be siipillietl with craft, I aiti cdeterminicd toi drive the Shawiiese over the Lakes, whlich I cair (lo before provits smons can lie fturnisherl for a Capital Expeditiomn. On the same day hie wrtote tto Governor Reed of Pennsylvania, giving very nearly the samte inform.-i tionl. '1'he following letter fronm Governor Jefferson to General Washington unfolds ntanv lpartiCtllars relatingl to the meni and the meas~tt~res tif the time: It is possible you may have Itearil that iii the ctitr'se if last stiniter an expedition was ittediltati lbv tie(- Citlotiel Clark against Detroit; that he had proceeded sit far as to reitdezvotts a considerable body of Indians, I believe forir or five thousand, at St. Vincents; but, being disappointed in the numiber of whites lie expected, and not choosing to rely principally ott the Indianis, lie was~ obliged to decline it. We have a tolerable prospect of reinforcing him this spring, to the nitinler which hie thinks stifficient for the enterprise. We have infornied butt of this, and left him to decide betwveen this object and that if giving vigorous chastisetiteit to those tribes of Indians whose eternal hostility have proved tltet incapable of living on friendly terms with us. It is our opinciii his inclinatioi ivill lead him to determine tin the former. The reastin oif my ltying before youtr Excellency this matter is, that it has bretn intimiatetl to tue that Colonel lBrodhead is tineditating a similar expedition. I wished, therefoire, to make You acqutainted with what we had in contetoplation. The energetic gentius of Clark is not altogether Unmkntownt to yotm. You also know (what I am a stranger to) the abilities of B~rodhead, and the itartiettlar force with which you will be able to arm him for such ati expedition. We wish. the most hopeful means should be used for remoovinig so uneasy a thorn from our side. As you atlonte are utcquainted with all the circutustances necessary for wsell informted decision, I am to ask the favor of your Excellency, if you siotiuld think Brodhead's undertaking is most likely to produce success, that you will be so kind as to intimate to us, to divert Clark to the other object, which is also important to this state. It will, of cocirse, have weight with you in forming yoitr determination, that oitr prospect of strengthening Clark's hands sufficiently is not absolu.tely certain. It may be necessary, perhaps, to inform yott that these officers cannot act together, wvlich excludes the hopes of insuring success by a joint expedition. I have the hionor to be, with the most sincere esteem, Your Excellency's Most obedient and most humble servant, THOMsAS JEFFERSON. On April 24, 1780, Brodhead wrote to Washington: As no reinforcement can be had from yottr Excellency, the intended expedition against Detroit must be laid aside until a favorable turn of affairs takes place, unless you would recommend a jutnction of Clark's troops with mine. 17 On M\l'y 30 Itt', writhe 'r'ite accoutits I Ihais received re-lative to the Btritishm ( arrisont at D etroit differ uidi ly, some marking it, tot consist of only' two httntdred uteri stniti three Ittundreel, aid tithers upwards of four li1utdreul IThis ha s determituied tue to swd Captpaini Brady' with live \\elitti nuii atid tvot I elawvar' hIndiatis tii Sainulusky. to emideavor ti, ttakeit. Btritishi prisonter, which I litite lie will effect. I have, liketei~si tiffetred ittliet 1 telawiwure Nrarritirs fifty hartd tdollars' woirtl if gitotus, fit tine Br itishi soildier, amid they' have lirotnised to bring titit ininiiteclatc Iv Should ant iiteilligetit tote be brottght inl, I iniii11 touffer titit suite indulilgettre tilitit his givitig tic the imost lierfeet iin elligetice ill hiis power. On1 S ePtetitlter_ 14, 1780. IiN\le -lwit(te tou 'W shington: IThe Frrtench inliabitatits at IDetroit tire 111IuCh in ouir interest, and Nrish itotst heartily' to see out Amnericamn ft ree ppiroiaching. I ra'lly' believe tha.t. twelve ltitindredl will tppsintedl mien wotuld ittrr1v that place wviuhlttit great iliffictiIt y atmid I wvish for- nothitnitg titiure, \vheti ctrciiitstutnees trill adtim it, th ait the hotnotr if tiaking the 'ittemtpt. B eftoit I n idht'el or Clark hadl an m ippi it'tnitv to imake the trial, onte Coloneil l-a Balm, w\.ho came to Alten-iea( \With ILafayette, a~ttcltlptet the c'aiptture of I )ctri it. 'The stttrv (of his failttre is thtts told, in a letter \\vritten 1w Colonel IDe lievster tot (;Vetereal 1laldintand, dated Nov-ember t 1,t780 A body of Catiadiansi1 cottitanded by Colottel La Blalmi, were tlefeated itt thle 5thl itist. by' the Mliamii Indians tear that: village.2 TIli Colottel intl betwreeni thirty- and forty tif his torn verre killed, atdMoos. Rty-, Nvhti styles himself aitl-de-canup, takemt prisoiner. 'lhey relatte that they' left the Cahokias onl the 3rtl of October, with 41 mien; that a large body' were toi fiilloxr tliemt to the Ouimi, frotm whlemnce Colomiel La IBalmt proceeded to the Mliatnis with one huttdredl atid three tmeti and soiie TInldlaos, wAithltiit iraiting fuir the jitmctiom tif tile troops expected, leavimig otrders fir theirm to folloiw, as wvell its tliise lie esliected friiin Potst Vinicent. H is tdesign sias to mitteitpt at ouiii-ilt'-otati iipo0 1Detroilt, blitt finding his troops, swhichm sere to comtsist tif 400 Canmadians timd some Intdians, did not arrive, after waiting twvelve days they plundered the pimice, antI swere on their tray back whten the Ititliatis assetubled amid attackeul them. In a letter dated three days later, IDe Peyster says La Balm's force "1entered the village, took the horses, destroyed the horned cattle, and plundered a store I allowed to be kept there for the convenience of the Indians." La Balm's watch set wvith diamonds, his doublebarrelled gttn, spturs, regimentals, and some valuable papers were brottght to IDe Peyster by an Indian. A letter from General Haldimand to Colonel De Peyster, dated Jantuary 6, 1 7 81, says," I have received your letter of i 5th of November reporting the defeat of MNons. La Balm and transmitting his commission, etc." Soon after the defeat of La Balm, the proposed expedition of Colonel Clark was again under consideration, and on Decemher I3, 1780, Governor Jefferson wrote to W~ashington as follows: IThe French were usually so styled. 2 Nowy Fort Wayne, hod. 258 THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. SIR,I had the honor of writing to your Excellency on the subject of an expedition, contemplated by this state, against the British post at Detroit, and of receiving your answer of October the Ioth. Since the date of my letter the face of things has so far changed as to leave it no longer optional to attempt or decline the expedition, but compels us to decide in the affirmative, and to begin our preparations immediately. The regular force Colonel Clark already has, with a proper draft from the militia beyond the Alleghany, and that of three or four of our most northern counties, will be adequate to the reduction of Fort Detroit, in the opinion of Colonel Clark; and he assigns the most probable reasons for that opinion. We have, therefore, determined to undertake it, and commit it to his direction. * * * Independent of the favorable effects, which a successful enterprise against Detroit must producle to the United States in general, by keeping in quiet the frontier of the northern ones, and leaving our western militia to aid those of the south, we think the like friendly office performed by us to the states, whenever desired, and almost to the absolute exhaustion of our own magazines, give well founded hopes that we nay be accommodated on this occasion. Men and means for the expedition were, however, scarce; the hunters of Kentucky were fearful their own homes would be attacked in their absence, and the expedition was delayed. That the jealousy between Clark and Brodhead still continued is evident from the following letter, contained in the Calendar of Virginia State Papers: JANt-AXK I8, 1781. George Rogers Clark to the Governor of Irirginia. DR. SIR,I have examined your proposed Instructions. I dont Recollect of any thing rnmre that is necessary, Except the moIde of paying the Expenses of the Garrison of I)e 'Troit in case of success, as supporting our Credit among strangers may be attended with great and good consequences, and my former Experienccs Induce me to wish it to be the case where I have the Honor to Command. I would also observe to your Excellency, that I could wish to set out on this Expedition free from any Reluctance, which I doubt I cannot do without a satisfactory Explanation of the treatment of the Virginia Delegates in Congress to me in objecting to an appointment designed for me, which your Excellency cannot be a stranger to. I could wish not to be thought to solicit promotion; and that my Duty to myself did not oblige me to transmit these sentiments to you. The treatment I have Generally met with from this state hath prejudiced me as far as consistant in her Interest, and wish not to be distrusted in the Execution of her Orders by any Continental Col' that may be in the Countries that I have Business in, which I doubt will be the case, although the orders of the Commander in chief is very positive. Preparations for his expedition went on rapidly; large sums of money were expended, and immense quantities of supplies provided at the rendezvous near Pittsburgh. Up to January 23, 1781, R. Madison, the quartermaster and commissary, had expended ~500,000, and on that date applied to Governor Jefferson for ~300,0oo additional to " fulfill his contracts." On March 27, 1781. Colonel Brodhead wrote from Fort Pitt to Washington, as follows DEAR GENERAL,I am honored with your favor of the 28th ultimo, and am thankful for the contents. I have acknowledged the receipt of your letter of the 29th of December, and shall give every encourage ment to General Clark's intended enterprise. I wish he may be in readiness before the waters fail, and the Kentucky settlements are destroyed by the Enemy. liut I amn informed that little or nothing has as yet been done at his boat yards, and that the militia he expected from this side of the mountains, are availing themselves of the unsettled Jutrisdiction. Both Virginia and Pennsylvania at this time claimed the services of the militia in the region of the Alleghanics, the boundaries of both States being unsettled, and many of the settlers made this an excuse for not taking up arms. On May 26 Clark wrote to Washington as follows: SIm, — Reduced to the necessity of taking every step to carry my point the ensuing campaign, I hope your Excellency will excuse me in taking the liberty of troubling you with this request. The invasion of Virginia put it out of the power of the Governor to furnish mre with the number of men proposed for the enterprise of the west; but he informed me he had obtained leave of the Baron Steuben, and agreeably to your letters for Colonel John Gibson and regiment, together with Heth's company, to join my forces; — an addition, he supposed, of more worth than the militia we were disappointed of. On consulting Colonel Brodhead, he could not conceive that he was at liberty to suffer them to go, as your instructions were pointed respecting the troops and stores to be furnished by him. From your Excellency's letters to Colonel Brodhead I conceive him to be at liberty to furnish what men he pleased. I am convinced he did not think the same as I do, or otherwise he would have had no objection, as he appeared to wish to give the enterprise every aid in his power. The hope of obtaining agrant of those troops has induced me to address your Excellency myself, as it is too late to consult (;overnor Jefferson farther on the subject, wishing to set out,n the expedition early in June, as our stores of provisions are nearly complete. If our force should be equal to the task proposed, I cannot conceive that this post, with a very small garrison even of militia, will be in any danger, as it is attached to a populous country, and during our time in the enemy's, Mclntosh and Wheeling will be useless, or might also be garrisoned by small parties of militia. Those I know to be your Excellency's ideas. If you should approve of the troops in this department joining our forces, though they are few, the acquisition may be attended with great and good consequences, as two hundred only might turn the scale in our favor. 'he advantage that nmust derive to the states from our proving successful, is of such importance that I think it deserved a greater preparation to insure it. But I have not yet lost sig'it of Detroit. Nothing seems to threaten us but the want of men. But even should we be able to cut our way through the Indians and find they have received no reinforcement at Detroit, we may probably have the assurance to attack it, though our force may be much less than proposed, which was two thousand; as defeating the Indians with inconsiderable loss on ouir side woulld almost insure success. Should this be the case a valuable peace with them will then probably ensue. But on the contrary should we fall through in our present plans and no expedition take place, it is to be feared that the consequences will be fatal to the whole frontier, as every exertion will be made hy the British party to harass them as much as possible, and disable them from giving any succours to our eastern or southern forces. The Indian war is now more general than ever. Any attempt to appease them, except by the sword, will be fruitless. Captain Randolph waits on your Excellency for an answer to this letter, which I flatter myself you will honor me with immediately. Colonel Gibson, who commands in the absence of Colonel Brodhead, will keep the troops ready to move at an hour's warning; conducting myself as though this request was granted, impatiently waiting for the happy order, I remain yours, etc., G. R. CL.ARK. THE REVOLUTIONARY \VAR. 259 It does not appear that his request fcr reinforcements was complied with, but he finally left Pittsburgh, moved down the Ohio. and near Louisville, Kentucky, his last expedition came to an inglorious end. The reasons for its failure are indicated in the following letter to Washington from General William Irvine: I'o TI' Pi-ri, 2 Dec., I781. SiI,* * * I presume your Excellency has been informed by the Governor of Virginia, or (G;iceral Clark, of the failure of his expedition. But lest that should not be the case, I will relate all the particulars that have conie to my knowledg"e. Captain Craig, with the detachment of artillery under him, returned here the 26th inst. lie got up wvith much difficulty, and great fatigue to the men- being forty days on the way, —occasio(ned by the lowness of the river. lie was obliged to throw away his gun carriages, but brought his pieces and best stores safe. He left General Clark at the Rapids, and says the General was not able to prosecute his inttended pllan of operation for want of men, being able to collect, on the whole, only about seven hundred and fifty; and the Buffalo meat was all Rot-,:n; and adds, the General is apprehensive of a visit from Detroit, anid is not without fears the settlement will be obliged to break up, unless reinforcements soon arrive from Virginia. The Indians have been so numerous in that country that all the inhabitants have bcn obliged to keep close in Forts, and the General could not venture out to fight them. A Colonel Archibald Lochrey, Lieutenant of Westmoreland county, in Pennsylvania, with about one hundred men in all, composed of volunteers and a coclpalny raised by Pennsylvania for the defense of said county, followed General Clark, who, 'tis said, ordered Lochrey to join himl at the mouth of the MTiami, up which river it had been pcrevioisly agreed on to proceed. But General Clark, ha ving changed his plan, left a small party at Miami, with directions to Lochrey to proceed on to the falls after him with the nmain body. Sundry accounts agree that this party and all Lochrey's, to a man, were waylaid by the Indians and regulars (for it is asserted they itad artillery) and all killed or taken. No man escaped, either to join General Clark or return home. When Captain (raig left the General, he could not be persuadedd but tlhat I oclirey with his party had returned homte.l 'These misfortunes threw the people of this country into the greatest consternation, and almost despair, particularly Westmoreland county, Lochrey's party being all the best ment of that frontier. At present they talk of flying early inl tli spring to tie eastern side of the lmountaint, anld tare daily flocking to me to ilnquire what support thei'y tmay expect. I think there is bit too muich reason to fear that General Clark and Colonel (;ibsoln's expc(lition falling trlllough, will greatly encourage the savages to fall on the country with double fury, or perhaps, tile British from I)etroit to visit this post, which instead of being in a tolerable state of defense, is, in fact, nothing but a heap of ruins. * * * T believe, if I)etroit was demolished, it would be a good step towards giving some, at least temporary, ease to this country. It would take, at least, a whole summer to rebuild and establish themselves; for though we should succeed in reducing l)etroit, I do not think there is the smallest probability of our being able to hold it, it is too remote from supplies. 1 have been endeavoring to form some estimates; and from such Information as I can collect, I really think that the reduction of Detroit would not cost much nore, nor take many imore men, thaii; it will take to civer and protect the country by acting on the defensive. If I am n ell informned, it would take seven or eight hundred regular troops, and about a thousand militia; which could pretty easily be obtained for that purpose, as it appears to be a favorite scheme IThe force that attacked C(olonl I.ochrey consisted of aboiut six hundred regulars and Indlianls from I)etroit, commanded by Joseph Brant and George;irty. over all this country'. IThe principal difficulty) would be to get provisions and stores transported. A\s to taking a heavy train of artillery, I fear it wotuld not only lbe impossible, but an incumbrance; (we should take) 'Two field pieces, some howitz, and, perhaps, ta Inortar. I (do not think, especially under present circuImstances, that it would be p(,ssible to, carry on expeditions in such a mlanner as to promise success by a regular siege. I wouldl therefore propose to inake every appearance of sitting down, before the place, as if to reduce it by regular approaches; as soon as I found tle Eiicnmy fully Impressed with this idea, attempt it at once by assault. * * * In order to obtain aid for General Clark, Governor Jefferson applied to Washington, and received the following reply: NFE WINDSOR, 28th December, 1781. I have ever been of the opinion that the reduction of the post of l)etroit would be the only certain means of giving peace and security to tlie whole western frontier, and I have constantly kept my eye tpon that object; but such has been the reduced state of our Continental force, and suchl the low el)l) of our funds, especially of late, that I have never had it in my power to make the attempt. On the following day, however, he gave an order on Colonel Brodhead for artillery, tools, stores, and men to further the project, but apparently the order was neglected, for Clark's forces were left to care for themselves; and on February 7, I782, General Irvine wrote to Washington from Philadelphia as follows: The Indians have all left us except ten men, and by the best accounts, are preparing to make a stroke in the spring, either against (;eneral Clark cat the Rapids or on Fort Pitt; which, my informant could not with certainty say, but was positive one or the other was intendedl. I lami app)relhensiv, from tlie steps taken!b the Commandant at I )etroit, that sometilngc serious is intended. First, thirteen naticmis of Indians have bcin treated with in tlle beginning of No\vetcber; anid at tile conclucsicon they \were dirccted to keep themsel\es compltact iand ready to.;;sscmlll)ie oni short notice. Secondly, the Moravianis are caTrried into captivity, and strictly watched and thlreatened \\ith severe pu:iishnentt if they should attempt to give us informatlionl of tihir movemencts. Thirdly, part of the five nations are asselmlled at Saindusky. 'o carry on the expedition against )'etroit would take two thousand men to gi\e a tolerable certainlty of success, the tilme w-told be three months, and the best season to march from Fort Pitt the first of A uguist, when thle waters are low, imorasses and soft rich mealdows dried tup; by land totally, preferable to any part by water, the eneimy having entil e commiand of tlhe lake with armied vessels; the navigation of rivers uncertain; besides the number of boats and swaste of time would make it more expensive tltian land carriage. Pack lhorses to carry provisions would be bctter and more certain than wagons One thousand horses w\\-uld carry flour for two thousand men for three months. Beef nimust be driven on foot. Twenty-five wagons would carry militar, stores sufficient for the train, which should consist of two twelve pounders, two sixes, one three pounder, one eight inch howitzer and one royal. At least one half should be regular troops, * * * and three months are sufficient to complete the expedition; then the only difference in the expense will be the transportation of provision and stores; as acting on the defensive, seven months will be the least, and the same quantity of provision will be consumned, and ammunition wasted. If we act offensively, it will draw the whole attention of the enllley to tl(ir own defense, lb which our settlemients will have peace; and suctIl of the militia as do not go on tile expedition will have time to raise crops. On the contrary, ccntinual alarms will keep thenil froml these necessary duties. The garrison at I)etroit is three hundredl reguc lar troops, the militia (Canadians) froim seven ihundred to one tlhousland; the nIumbellr o)f 26o THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. Indians that could assemble in ten days' notice to a certain point, about one thousand. Query. Should we be able to take Detroit, shall we hold it? If not, what advantage will the bare reduction of the place be, if immediately evacuated? Answer. The reduction of Detroit, in the fall of the year, will prevent an intercourse with the western Indians for a whole year, as it would be late in the succeeding summer before the British could re-establish, during which time we might either open a trade with such savages as would ask for peace, or by frequently penetrating into and establishing posts in their country, oblige them to retire to such a distance as would put it out of their power to harass the back inhabitants. It would be attended with great expense and vast risk to support a garrison at Detroit, as long as the British possess the lower part of Canada, and have the command. All this planning and corresponding was barren of results, and meantime Clark's forces gradually dwindled away. In November, 1782, he went on an expedition against the Indians in Ohio, destroying their fields and villages, and, in fact, was kept so busy fighting the Indians that the Detroit expedition could not be entered upon. In the fall of 1783 he sent a quantity of provisions by water to Vincennes, and with his force proceeded there by land. General Clark, about this time, became intemperate, and probably owing to this cause three hundred of his force left in a body; the rest then became discouraged and returned to Kentucky, and the expedition was abandoned. All these expeditions, however, and the fact that Governor Hamilton was absent and a prisoner, did not prevent army activities at Detroit. Early in 1779 troops were requested from Niagara, and on April I5 Colonel Bolton sent fifty of the Eighth Regiment and fifty Rangers to aid in protecting Detroit. They arrived on May 7, and their coming very greatly changed the aspect of affairs. Some citizens were wonderfully elated, and others correspondingly depressed. The barometer of patriotism was as sensitive here as in any eastern settlement, and was watched as carefully. After Governor Hamilton had left on his expedition, Colonel De Peyster was in daily anticipation of orders to leave Mackinaw for Detroit, and was greatly annoyed that he, a lieutenant-colonel, should be continued at Mackinaw, a comparatively unimportant post, while Detroit was under command of a captain. However, the order, dated August 29, 1779, finally arrived, and he waited only for the coming of Lieutenant - Governor Patrick Sinclair, who was to have charge of the post. Governor Sinclair arrived at Mackinaw October 4, and in a few days thereafter Colonel De Peyster left for Detroit. This neighborhood, at the time, was literally black with hordes of savage tribes, and in a letter to Colonel Bolton, written July 6,1780, Colonel De Peyster closes with these words: I am so hurried with war parties coming in from all quarters that I do not know which way to turn myself." These parties brought in persons of either sex, and of all ages; and the details of the forced marches of the sick and infirm, the massacring of troublesome infants, and the presentation of the scalps of the slain, are matters of regular and almost continuous record. On May I6, 1780, Colonel De Peyster wrote to Colonel Bolton: The prisoners daily brought in here are part of the thousand families who are flying from the oppression of Congress, in order to add to the number already settled at Kentuck, the finest country for new settlers in America; but it happens, unfortunately for them, to be the Indians best hunting ground, which they \vill never give up, and, in fact, it is our interest not to let the Virginians, Marylanders, and Pcnnsylvanians get possession there, lest, in a short time, they become formildable to this post. A letter written ten (lays later, to Lieutenant(overnor Sinclair, says: Every thing is quiet here except the constant noise of the wardrunm. All the Seiginies are arrived at the instance of the Shawneese and Delawares. More Inlians from all quarters than ever known before, and not a drop of rum! Early in this year, Captain Henry Bird's expedition against Kentucky was fitted out, and on April 12, after an expenditure of nearly $300,000, the force left I)etroit. It was made up of both white men and Indians, numbered nearly six hundred persons, and, for the first time on such an expedition, cannon were taken. The American spies informed the people of its organization, and fear and dread pervaded the entire West, while the colonists in the East awaited anxiously the record of its doings. On June 22 the force appeared before Ruddle's Station, which surrendered, on condition that the inhabitants be considered prisoners of the British instead of the Indians. Captain Bird, however, was unable to restrain the savages, and men, women, and children were indiscriminately and remorselessly massacred. The Indians now became refractory, and after the capture of Martin's Station and one other small fort, the force was compelled to return without having accomplished all that had been intended. A letter from Colonel De Peyster to Colonel Bolton, dated Detroit, August 4, 1780, says: I have the pleasure to acquaint you that Captain Bird arrived here this morning with about one hundred and fifty prisoners, mostly Germans who speak English,- the remainder coming in, for in spite of all his endeavors to prevent it the Indians broke into the forts and seized many. The whole will amount to about three hundred and fifty. * * * Thirteen have entered into the Rangers and many more will enter, as the prisoners are greatly fatigued with travelling so far, some sick and some wounded. P. S. Please excuse the hurry of this letter,- the Indians engross my time. We have more here than enough. Were it not absolutely necessary to keep in with them, they would tire my patience. The British now became greatly troubled by the attitude of the Delaware Indians. This tribe had THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR. 261 decided to remain neutral and also sought to restrain other tribes from entering into the contest. The English suspected that the Moravian missionaries, who had a mission among them, were responsible for this action, and therefore looked upon them with disfavor. The Moravians were advised by the Americans to return to Pennsylvania, but they persisted in remaining at what they deemed the post of duty. Finally the Americans sought the Delawares as allies in the war; they not only refused, but the body of the tribe soon after cast in their lot with the English. In order to confirm them in this purpose, Colonel De Peyster determined to remove the missionaries from among them; and in September, 1781, he compelled them to forsake their settlement on the Muskingum. With sad hearts they left their homes and fields, their cattle, their books, and all their household treasures, and, escorted by Indians commanded by English officers, they were marched to Sandusky, where they arrived on the Ith of October, and from there, on October 25, they set out for Detroit. On their arrival here they were at first lodged in the barracks, but in May, 1782, Zeisberger wrote that they had just noved out of the barracks into our lodgings near Yankee Hall, close by our house, which has its name from the fact that only prisoners who were brought in by the Indians live there. An extended account of their arrival and treatment while here is given elsewhere. That they were really favorable to the American cause is evident from a letter of Colonel Brodhead to General Washington, dated December I3, 1779, which states that he relied almost wholly on the Moravians for information from Detroit. Under the labors of the missionaries many of the Indians had become Christians, and were entirely guiltless of wrong to either British or Americans; but in those days Indian massacres were so frequent that there was but little sympathy for the red race. Many Americans, exasperated by the outrages of hostile tribes, held all alike guilty, and a body of militia from Washington County, Pennsylvania, commanded by Colonel David Williamson, was raised to proceed against the Delawares. Many of the Christian Indians had meantime returned to their settlements on the Muskingum; and on the arrival of Williamson, on March 8, 1782, these really inoffensive people, who had assembled in two houses, were attacked, and sixty-two grown people and thirty-four children were deliberately massacre d by the Americans. One of the blackest crimes of the Revolution was thus perpetrated by colonial militia. This questionable success of \Williamson and the hostility of the Delawares led to the organization of a new expedition, commanded by Colonel William Crawford, who proceeded against them on June 4, 1782. When near what is now Upper Sandusky, he \was met by a party of about two hundred Indians and one hundred of Butler's Rangers from Detroit, under command of Captain William Caldwell. A battle ensued, in which Crawford's forces were victorious; but the next day the British were reinforced with a detachment of Rangers and more Indians, and the Americans retreated. Colonel Crawford became separated from his command, was captured by the Indians, and burne(l to death on June II, 1782. The English were not parties to the burning of Crawford. On August 17, 1782, General Haldimand wrote Colonel De Peyster "regretting the cruelty committed by some of the Indians upon Colonel Crawford, and desiring Ie Peyster to assure them of his utter abhorrence of such procedure." It is due to Colonel I)e Peyster to state that he often manifested his disapproval of the cruelties of the Indians, and felt that he had a difficult part to perform. In a letter, written April I2, I781, to the I)elaware Indians, and contained in his "Miscellanies," he says: Send Ime that little babbling Frenchman named Monsieur Linctot, he who poisons your ears, one of those who says he can amuse you with words only,- send him to me, or be th,; means of my getting him, and I will then put confidence in you. * * * If you have not an opportunity to bring me the little Frenchman, you may bring me some Virginia prisoners. I am pl(Iased when I see what you call live meat, because I can speak to it and get information. Scalps serve to show that you have seen the enemy, but they are of no use to Ine. I cannot speak with them. * * * In another letter, of September 29, I781, addressed to General Haldimand, and given in " Butterfield's \Vashington-Irvine Letters " he says: I have a very difficult card to play at this post and its dependences. * * * It is evident that the back settlers will continue to nmake war upon tile Shawanese, Delawares, and Wyandots, even after a truce shall be agreed to between Great Britain and her revolted colonies in which case, whilst we continue to support the Indians with troops (which they are calling loud for) or only \vi i arms, ammuininion, and necessaries, we shall incur the odium e, cencouragin inc inursions into tlhe Imck settlements; for it ic: evident that they will occasionally enter the settlements and bring off prisoners and scalps. Colonel I)e Peyster's words were prophetic, for competent authorities estimate that from 1783 to 1790 not less than three thousand persons were scalped or made captives by bands from l)etroit. In an article in the North American Review, General Cass says: When the foraying party returned, they were formally introduced to the commanding officer. 'he scalps were thrown down before him in the Council house, and the principal warrior addressed hiin in terms like these: " Father, we have done as you directed us; we have struck your enemies.'" They were then paid and dismissed, and the scalps were deposited in the cellar of the Council House.' We have been told by more than one respectable eye-witness that when the charnel-house was cleansed, it was a spectacle upon which the inhabitants gazed with horror. 1 The Moravian Zeisberger was an eye-witness of such scenes. See page 37 of his diary. 262 THE REVOILUTIONARY WAR. General Cass continues: We are indebted for the following relation to a respectable gentleman of I)etroit, James May, Esq., and as it elucidates important traits in the Indian character, and discloses facts not generally known, we shall give it in his own words: " During the American revolutionary war, when the Indian war-parties approached Detroit, they always gave the war and death whoops, so that the inhabitants, who were acquainted with their customs, knew the number of scalps they had brought and of prisoners they had taken, some time before they had made their appearance. Soon after I arrived in Detroit, the great war party which had captured Ruddle's Station in Kentucky, returned from that expedition. Hearing the usual signals of success, I walked out of town and soon met the party. The squaws and young Indians had ranged themselves on the side of the road, with sticks and clubs, and were whipping the prisoners with great severity. Among these were two young girls, thirteen or fourteen years old, who escaped from the party and ran for protection to me and to a naval officer who was with me. \ith Inuch trouble and some danger, and after knocking down two of the Indians, we succeeded in rescuing the girls, and fled with them to the Council House. Here they were safe, because this was the goal, where the right of the Indians to beat them ceased. Next morning I received a Imessage by an orlderly-sergeant, to wait upon Colonel )e Pe yster, the commanding officer. I found the naval officer, who was with me the preceding day, already there. "lThe Colonel stated that a serious complaint had been preferred against us by McKee, the Indian agent, for interfering with the Indians, and rescuing two of their prisoners. He said the Indians had a right to their own mode of warfare, and that no one should interrupt them; and after continuing this reproof for some time, he told me, if I ever took such a liberty again, he would send me to Montreal or Quebec. "'The naval officer was still more severely reprimanded, and threatened to, have his uniform stripped from his back and to be dismissed from His Majesty's service, if such an incident again occurred. And although I stated to Colonel I)e Peyster that we saved the lives of the girls at the peril of our own, he abated nothing of his threats or harshness." In gratifying contrast to the story just narrated is the following account of the treatment of 0. M. Spencer, a boy of twelve years and an only son, captured near Cincinnati, on July 7, 1792, and finally taken to Detroit, where he arrived on March 3, I793, and was delivered to Colonel England. I-e was treated with great kindness and was committed to the care of Lieutenant Andre. Many years after he wrote an account of his cal)ture in which he said: Mr. Andre immediately took me by the hand and led me to his quarters in the samie barracks, only a few doors distant, and requesting me to sit down, retired friom the apartment. In a few minutes a servant entered,and set before me some tea and bread and butter, on which having supped, I arose and was retiring froin the table, wlen two women, who mere curiosity, as I supposed, had kept standing at one end of the room looking at me intently while I was eating, now advanced, and each unceremoniously taking mne by the hand, and leading me out of the apartment, conducted me to a chamber. Here, stripping off all but my shirt, carefully throwing my clothes out at a back window, beyond the palisades of the town, and seating me in a large washtub half filled with water, they tore off my shirt, which had fast adhered to the bandage round my shoulder, before I had time to tell them I was wounded, and so suddenly, inflicting for a moment acute pain, as to extort from mne a loud scream. Their surprise at this soon ceased when I told them that ani Indian had stabbed me in the shoulder; and when they saw the blood from the open wound running down mi)y back, one of them, alarted, ran to inform Mr. Andre, the other, with a rag immtediately staunching the blood delilerately lroceeded to s(our my person with soap and water, and b)y the time the surgeon arrived had effected a ctomplelte alluition. (n probing tile wound, which he fouind to be about three inches deep, the surgeon pronounced it to be not dangerous. Fortunately, he said, the knife, in entering, had struck the lower posterior point of the right shoulder blade, and taken a direction downward; but had it entered an inch lower or nearer the spine, it would probably have caused death. 1 'ron the want of clothes, it was late next morning before I could get iup, butt receiving at length a temporary supply of a roundabout and pantaloons from the wardrobe of Ensign O'Brien (brother of Mrs. England) and a pair of stockings and slippers from one of the swomen, I made my appearance in the breakfast room, and was introduced to Mrs. Andre, wife of the Lieutenant. She very kindly took my hand, and congratulated me on mv deliverance from the Indians, though she could not help smiling at mly siguluar appearance, dressed as I was in clothes v which, although they fitted the smallest officer in the garrison, hung like- bags o(i me. * * *She was kind and amiable, as she was handsome and accomplished; and although quite young, apparently not nmore than twenty, supplied to nie the place of a mother. Her husband, a brother of the unfortunate Major Andre, and one of the handsomest men I ever saw, very affable in his tanners, aind frank in his disposition, treated nme with great kindness; and after seeing that I was comfortably and indeed genteely dressed, introduced me to the families of \lr. Erskine andi Comrnmodhore Grant (iwshere I found boys and girls of nearly mly own\ age, who cheerfully associated with nme), and took pleasure in showing me the town, the shipping, the fort, and whatever else he thought would afford me gratification. After a stay of about four weeks, near the end of March young Spencer was sent on the sloop Felicity to Niagara. Some of the prisoners were allowed to roam at large, and get their living as best they could. and one of the old account-books of Thomas Smith, a leading merchant in D)etroit, shows that several of them obtained goods of various kinds on credit. Peace was finally declared between England and America, and in theory, if not in fact,' the hatchet was buried." The history of the negotiations for the surrender of I)etroit affords a notable illustration of diplomatic delay. BRITISH AND INDIAN WARS AND FIRST AMERICAN OC(CUPATION OF I)ETROIT. Under the treaties of November 30, 1782, and September 3, I783, made between England and the United States, it was understood, at least by the American (overnment, that the country north of the St. Lawrence and the Lakes became part of the United States, and( that Detroit was therefore to be given up by the English. In anticipation of its surrender, and in order to promote friendly feeling with the Indians and secure a cessation of hostilities on their part, the Secretary of War, in May, 1783, sent Ephraim Douglass to hold councils with the Indians. His report, contained in the Pennsylvania Archives,is as follows: BRITISH ANI) INDIAN WARS. 263 PRINCETON, i8th Aug., 11783. SIR,In obedience to the instructions You honored roe with on the 5th Of Mlay last, I have used every endeavor in roy power to execuite in the fullest manner your orders. * * * On the 7th Of Jane I left Fort Pitt, and travelling about two hundred miles by the old trading plath, arrived on the i[6th at tile D~elaware and Huron settlements on the Sandusky river. * * * Captain Pipe, who is the principal man of the nation, received me with every demonstration of joy, * * * brit told me, as his nation was not thre principal one, nor had voluntarily engaged in the war, it would be proper for roe first to comirunicate roy business Ito the Hurons and Sliawnese, andl afterward to the IDelawares. Thlat hie had announced roy arrival to the H-urons and expected suclr of them as were at borne would very shortly be over to see rrrd wielcomne rue. Thris soon happened as lire hurl expected, butr i otte orf their chiefs were present I declined speaking publlicly to thine, knowing that I cortld receive no atitirentic arnswer, rand iiriwillirrg to exp)end unnecessarily thle warnlrumi I had prepared t(ry tltis occasiorn. I inforrred them for thteir satisfaction of tIre leave wvithr England, and told tlremn that tlre Urriteri States were rlisposed to Ire irs friendslrip with Irrdians alsro, - desired themn to seird frrr their rlead mets, partictriarly for thre Half King (Chief cit tlre Wyandtttts, at Brotwnstown), who was gorne to Detrorit. * * * They all readily agreed to tIns proposal and returned to their homes apparerrtly very well satisfied but the Hrrrons nevertheless failed sending to Detroit, partly thro' the trant (If arrthority ins the old mnen present, and partly tlrrrrgh the,asstrrance of the wife of tlre Half Kinrg, who was confident her husband would be home irs two days, and thereforre a jorrrney which would reqrrire six or severs was altogether urstrecessary. * * * On thre evening of thre ri~th a runsner arrived from thre Miami wvitls intelligensce that Mr. E'lliott Irad received dispatclses from Detrorit, annourscirsg tlse arrival of Sir John Johlnson at that place;-that itt consequence tlse chiefs and wrarriors were desired to repair tlrither irs a few days, where the council would be Iseld weith thsemn. They trere also directed to take with them the War or Tonmahawk Belts, whincs tad beers delivered to theur by the Kirrg to strike the Arnericarss weith. * * * Burt when they were just ready to rnourrt their lotrses, they were stopped by the arrival of ten men wrlo preceuled a body of sixty (trier southern Indiarsa, corning upon business from the nations ntr~tht arrd east of the Olrio and M ississippi rivers. * * * Pipe ipressed use to accomparsy hirt to IDetroit, assuring me that it wrould he useless to twait thre corrirsng of tlse Indians froir the. \Nlianii, thaot tlrey wrorld spend threir time irs iseless conrrrrclirrg tirere till tire Treaty uof Detrroit would corrse ton, arsd that if I even (corild asserrslle them I Crrrld obtain nothing frorrr the interviewe. Thlat if tIre Half King was present he wrould trot rrrdertake to give nre an arrswer, writhiout consrrlting the clsiefs of tlse Huron tribe at Djetroit, and thart tisese would determine rrotlrirg withsouet first askirsg thre advice of tlreir Fatlrer the Corrrarsdanst. Finrdrig that I had little to Irope by contirsuing at Sandusky and likely Itt effect as little by visitirrg the Mliami if moy horses had evern teen able to Irave perf orrrsed tlre journey, I determirsec to prosceed to IDetroit by the nearest rourte. *** I left Sanrdusky ott tire 3oth. accorrpansied by thre Pipe ansd two other lIrdians itt additittn trr my formser corrpaniorss aird travelled tonwards to Detrotit till tire afteriston of tlse first Orf Jrily, wlren we were net by o\lr. Flliott arid thsree other persons frorr thsat place, whloir tlse Cttirtsarrdant had dispatched for tlse prurpose of cornductirsg us tlsitlrer. ** I continured iry jourrsey weitr roy rnewv conrparrirn till the;tl h entr I arrived at 1)etrorit, wvhere I wras received wvithr nistrel Prrriterress anrd treated witlr great civility by thre Commrsnardarst, tor whornrm I delivered yourr letters, shroswed ysorr irratructirriss rrd itressed fotr Ito opportursity of commrutnicatinsg threim to tire I rdiarrs as srrrtr as 'night be. I-Ie professed thre strongest desire orf bringirsg altout a reconciliatiors between the Ursited States arrd thre several lIrdian natiotns, declared that he would willirrgly prourote it all in Iris Power; but that until he was authorized by lris superiors irr consnrand, lse corild not consent that anythring should be said to the Indians relative to the boundary of thre Urrited States; for tlrouglr he knew frorr thre Kirrg's proclamation that the war with America wras at an end, lire hsad rso official information to justify his suipposing the States extended tot this place, and tlrerefore could not corrsent to the Indians being told sto; espsecially as he had uniformly declared to thsem that he did rrot knrows these posts were to be evactiatedl by the English. He Isad ist objection, he said, tor my communicatirrg thre friendly offers of thre Urrited Strrtes, and worrld cheerftLilly make knowvn to them tlre srrbstarsce of yotrr letter tio him. In the rooming of tlse 5tlr I received tis inrtirrationr from Colonel De Peyster, throurgl Captain MlcKee, thsat it was Iris wish I reould go on to Niagara as soon as I had recovered frttm the fatigire of my journey. In conseqirence of this I waited on Isim in the afternoonr arnrd pressed with gri.atrer w-rrrrtls than yesterdrry tise necessity of rry speaking to tlc lIrdiarts, and receivirrg, rrr aruswer frorr them. I piressed him to suffer rme to proceed otr usy brrsiness witlrourt lris irrterference, and offered him rry word that I would say rsotlsing to them respecting the limiits of thre States, but confine irtyself to the offer of Peace or clroice of War, and the Invitation to Treaty. He worrld isot retract his resotlutiotn witlsott fuirthser orders frort tlre Corrrrarrder irs clrief, arsd I was obliged to submrit hrowever unwillirrgly:- but rrust do hirr the justice to acknowledge that he made every offer of civility curl service, except thrat whrich lire coissidered irrcornsistent wihr his dittry. Ors thre 6th I attended thre council whiclr Coltonel De Peyster Iseld with the Indians to which lire had yesterday invited rrse. After delivering Iris birsinessof calling trern togetlrer, he published to themn yorrr letter and pressed them tot coritirsue in the strictest amnity with thre Srrbjects orf thre United Stares,-representing toi them the folly of ctontirsoirrg hostilities, and assured therr that he could by no means give them any further assistance agairrst the people of America. At this meeting were tlse chiefs of elevers Indiomn natioins, cornprehcndirng all the Tribes as far south as tire WVabasir; they were Chippewas, Ottawas, Wyandots or Humuns, Shawnese, Delawares, Kickapoos, Oweocbtarsoos, Mliarnis, Potawatamies, and Pienkishas, witls a part of the Senecas; most of whom gave evident marks of thseir satisfactioin at seeing a subject of the United Stortes in that Cttuntry,. Thsy carried their civilities so far that roy lodging was all day stirrottoded with crowds of tlsem when at borne, and the streets lirred wvitis them to attend roy goring abrtrad; tirat they mrighrt have ars oppordursity of seeinsg ansd salutinsg mrc, %wiicir tiscy did rrot fail to do in their best manner with every demonstration of joy. Orr the rrorning of the 7th I took my leave of Colonel Dr Peyster after hravirsg received rrore civilities from rirn tiran the liurits of this report wrill stiffer roe to enumerate; but not till I had the horsor of writing to yoou by my guride whoom I directed to rettrrn to Fort Pitt so soon as the Pipe shoruld be ready tot returns to Sandulsky, ors whom I depended for his safe condruct tirither trod to provide one to accomparry hint to Fort Pitt. I arrived at Niagara ors tlse irtls, was irrtroduced to General Macleans, whro was prepared for toy cominrg, delivered irin Colirticl De Pryster's letter, arsd was received writh ev%,ery mark of attenrtiors, but lire declined errtering uponr any business this day. * * * On tire evening of tlse t3th I received a note from the Generrnl requmestimrg a copy of my Instructions, &c., to send to the Corninandler in cisief to facilitate business. I sent him word that lire shsotuld be obeyed, arrd early ins tire torrnirrg began tro exeCLrte rosy promise, but before I irad finished copyirsg thrers I received at verbal mressage tinat lire wished to see rue at Isis quarters. I finisired tire copies anrd traited ois situ with them. Hle inrformned nrc tiat ise Isad sent for ire to shrow nie the copy of a letter he tras writing to Colonel De Peyster. It contained instrrmctions to that gentlemats ino consequence of roy representatioiss rof tire mturders corimit - ted by seestern Irrdiarss ir tire corirse of tire last spring and since; by his accournit threy haul been poositively forrbid to be gunilty of any sucs ountrage. I-be o~ressed Colornel iDe Peyster very earnestly tro examinre minutely irnto thIs affair, to forbid tire Irrdians in tire orost positive riamrrer to be guoilty of such furturre muiscoonduct, to Order them to deliver up inrrrrediately srmch prisoners as they had cap — trrred through the sprirrg into tire hands of Irirself or his officers, and furtlrer to tell them tlrat if tlrey did not desist fromn these pra!ctices the British troops would join tire Americans to punish tircrrr 264 BRITISH ANI) While Iouglass was on his way to I)etroit, Colonel )e Peyster, on June 18, I783, wrote to Captain Matthews, Secretary of General Haldimand: We are all in expectation of news. Everything that is bad is spread through the Indclian country, but as I have nothing more than the King's proclamt ti, n fr(oll authority, I evade answering impertinent questions. Heavens! if goods (lo not arrive scool, what will become of me? I have lost several stone wt. of flesh within these twenty days. I hope Sir John is to make us a visit. In order to learn what the real intentions of the English were, the services of Mr. D)ouglass were continued, and on February 2, I784, he wrote from Union Town to lresiclent )ickenson of 'ennsvlvania: Early in the fall Sir John Johnson assembled the different western tribes at Sandusky, and having prepared them with presents distributed with lavish profusion, addressed them in a speech to this purport: That the King, his and their coimmon father, had made peace with the Americans, and had given them the country they possessed on this continent; but that the report of his having given them any part of the Indian lands was false, and fabricated by the Americans for the purpose of provoking the Indians against their father, — that they should, therefore, shut their ears against it. So far the contrary was proved that the great river Ohio was to be the line between the Indians in this quarter and the Americans; over which the latter ought not to pass and return in safety. That, however, as the var between l'ritain and America wsas now at an end, and as the Indians had engaged in it from their attachment to the crown and not from any quarrel of their own, he would, as was usual at the end of a war, take the tomahawk out of their hand; though he would not remove it out of sight or far from them, but lay it down carefully by their side that they might have it convenient to use in defense of their rights and property, if they were invaded or molested by the Americans. Meanwhile President Washington also took steps to obtain possession of the posts. On Jul) 12, 1783, he sent Baron Steuben to Canada for the necessary orders to secure the delivery of Detroit by the local commander; he was then to proceed to this place, and was authorized, if he found it advisable, to organize the French of Michigan into a body of militia, and place the fort in their hands. (n his arrival at Chambly on August 3, 1783, he wrote to General Haldimand that he was on his way to Quebec and expected to arrive in three or four (lays. When the Baron presented himself near Quebec, General Haldimand received him politely, but refused him the necessary passports and papers, and delivered him a letter to Washington, dated August t1, in which it was stated that the treaty was only provisional, and that no orders had been received to deliver up the posts along the Lakes. The next effort to induce Haldimand to yield up the posts was made, under the approval of Congress, at the suggestion of General Knox, by I.ieutenantColonel William Hull (afterwards our unfortunate first Governor). He started on May 24, 1784, arrived at Qtuebec July 12, and made known his errand, and Htaldimand for the second time refused INI)IAN WARS. to issue an order for the evacuation of the posts. Negotiations and demands for the yielding upl of the territory went on, and in I786 John Adams, then United States minister to England, informed Congress that he had made a demand for the western posts and had been refused, on the ground that many of the States had violated the treaty in regard to the payment of debts. All this time the British were endeavoring to strengthen themselves in the favor of the Indians and to retain their western possessions. On March 22, 1787, Sir John Johnson wrote to Joseph Brant: It is for your sake chiefly that we hold them. If you becom indifferent about them they may, pcerhal)s, be given ll), * *::: whereas, by su)pporting them you encourage us to hold them,;!'nd encourage the new settlements, *:* every day increased by numbers coming in who find they cannot live in the States. At this same time I)r. John Connolly, the Virginia Tory, who had fully allied himself to the British cause, entered upon the vigorous prosecution of his scheme of inducing the Kentucky settlers to take sides with the English, on the ground that they would \wrest Louisiana from Spain, and secure the free navigation of the Mississippi. He was in Detroit during a great part of the year 1787, and possibly duiring I788. In June, 1787, Detroit was reinforced by a full regiment and two companies, and the garrison then numbered more than two regiments under command of Major R. Matthews. In pursuance of the plan to hold the post, Lord Dorchester, in the summer of 1788, visited Ietroit, and by his directions the town was newly picketed, and other defensive works erected. In the fall of 1789 Connolly was again in Detroit, went to Louisville, and returned in Nov-ember. These goings to and fro were made known to the Americans by their spies; and on July 20, 1790, General Knox, Secretary of W\ar, wrote to Governor St. Clair that it was reported that " Benedict Arnold was at Detroit about the first of June and that he had reviewed the militia." In addition to the many rumors concerning this region, Washington, on August 25, 1790, communicated to the cabinet his apprehensions that Lord Dorchester, in anticipation of a war with Spain, contemplated sending an expedition from Detroit to attack ILouisiana, then owned by Spain. There was good reason for these apprehensions, for there was no relaxation in the efforts of the English to retain possession of the West. The Montreal merchants, who had been very successful in their western trade, had increasing fears that this region would be lost. The fur trade and the furnishing of supplies had made them immensely wealthy; their wealth brought influence, and( on )ecember 9, 1791, they addressed a memorial to Colonel Simcoe advising that on no account the western posts be surrendered. They claimed that, BRITISH AND INIIAN \VARS. 265 through an oversiThL, the English commissioners -who negotiated the treaties of 1782 and 1783 had made lavish concessions, for which they received nothing in exchange. The memorial enlarged upon the great importance of the fur trade, and suggested various boundaries that would be satisfactory to them; but all of their suggestions left the \Vest in possession of the English, and the memorial insisted that it must be held for the protection of the Canadian border. Tills memorial was followed by another, which alleged that the Americans had not complied with the treaty, and that, therefore, it was not binding, and they recommended the Government to " dispute the ground to the utmost unless the treaty was complied with," adding, "All that the Americans conquered from us they are entitled to, and no more." These and similar arguments were releated over and over in the memnorials, and they undoubtedly had much to do with the long delay of the Government in complying with the terms of the treaties. British influence was also still paramount with the Indians, and the English officers lost no opportunity of assuring them of their protection and sympathy. Encouraged in this way, they grew increasingly hostile, and so many western settlers were killed that it was determined to chastise the Indians. A force was accordingly gathered and placed in command of General Harmer. Some strange infatuation or excess of official courtesy led the Secretary of War to direct that the British commandant at Detroit be notified that the expedition was directed only against the Indians. Accordingly,on September 19, I790, Governor St. Clair so notified him, sending the letter by R. J. Meigs. The letter was undoubtedly one cause of the defeat of General Harmer, as the British were acting in full concert with the Indians and aided them in every way. General Harmer was defeated near the villages of the Miamis on October 19 and 22, 1790. After his defeat long poles strung with the scalps of American soldiers were daily paraded through the streets of Detroit, accompanied by the demoniac scalp-yells of the warriors who had taken them. The next expedition, with fourteen hundred troops, was commanded by Governor St. Clair; and on November 4, 1791, he was defeated near the headwaters of the \Vabash. Finally the Governnlent determined to treat with the Indians and endeavor to prevent their incursions; and on Mlarch I, 1793, the President appointed Benjamin Lincoln, Beverly Randolph, and Timothy Pickering to meet the hostile tribes at Sandusky and endeavor to make peace with them. No arrangement, however, could be made, as the Indians, under the advice of the English, would not agree to any other boundary than the Ohio, and the conference closed on the i6th of August. Considerable impression, however, had been made on the savages, and several of the tribes began to lose faith in the English, who this year, tlerefore, made renewed efforts to gain their goodwill with gifts, anc to convince them that the English would not yield to the demands of the Americans. Lieutenant-Governor Sinmcoe, of Canada, was especially active in these endeavors, and it was largely to reassure the Indians that the British fort on the Miami was erected. Governor Simcoe was in Detroit on February I8, 1793, and in April, 1794. On the last of these visits, by order of Lord Dorchester, he selected the site for the British fort on the left banks of the Miami, and it was erected, and garrisoned with three companies from Detroit, under command of Captain Cald\vell. The Government at Washington finally became convinced that a force competent to defeat both British and Indians must be put in motion, and Major-General Wayne took the field against them. His name and fame and the army he commanded caused both English and Indians to feel that a decisive battle would be fought. They were greatly alarmed, and Colonel England sent nearly all his force from Ietroit, almost dismantling this fort, in order to strengthen that on the 5Miami. Other preparations made by the British and Indians, with details of some of the skirmishing, are contained in a series of letters addressed by Alexander McKee to Colonel England, at I)etroit. They were published in the National Intelligencer of Washington on July 26, I814. The first is as follows: RAPIDS, July 5, I794. SIR,I send this by a party of Saganas who returned yesterday from Fort Recovery w\here the whole body of Indians except the I)elawares, who had gone another route, imlpruldelntly attacked the fort on Monday, tile 3oth of last montht, and lost i6 or 17 men, besides a good many wounded. Ever!thinlgl had been settled prior to tlhtir leaving the fallen timber,1 and it hiad been agreed upo( to confine themselves to taking con-voys and attacking at a distance from the forts, if they should have the address to entice the enemy out; but the imtpetuosity of the Mackin Indians antd their eagerness to begin with the nearest, prevailed with the others to alter their system, tle consequences of Nwhich, from tlie present appearance of tlhings, nmay most materially injure the interests of these people, both the Mlackina and ILake Indians seeming resolved on going home again, having completed the belts they carried, with scalps and prisoners, and having no provisions there at the Glaze to subsist upon, so that His Majesty's posts will derive no security from the late great influx of Indians into this part of the country, should they persist in their resolution of returning so soon. The inmmtediate object of the attack was 300 pack horses going from this fort to Fort Greenvilie, in which the Indians completely succeeded, taking and killing all of them. Iut the commanding officer, Cat)tai:a (Gibson, scentlinglt otut a tro)op of cavalry, and bringing his infantry out in the front of his post, the Indians attacked 1 Supposed to be the place where Wayne's battle was fought. 266 BRITISH AND INIIAN WARS... them, and killed about 50, among whom is Captair two other oficers. On the near approach of the II fort, the remains of his garrison retired into it, an loopholes killed and wounded as already mention Elliott writes that they are immediately to hold a < Glaze, in order to try if they can prevail upon the La remain; but without provisions, ammunition, &c., 1 that place, I conceive it will be extremely difficult 1 together. With great respect, I have the honor to be your very humble servant, The following is the second letter: RAPIDS, Augu SIR,I was honored last night with your letter of the i extremely glad to find you are making such exertio the Indians with provisions. Captain Elliott arrived yesterday; what he has greatly relieve us, having been obliged yesterday to corn and flour which the traders had here. A scouting party from the Americans carried off woman yesterday morning between this place and Ro and afterwards attacked a small party of T)elawq camp; but they were repulsed with the loss of a man either hid or threw into the river. They killed woman. Scouts are sent up to view the situation of the a now muster I,ocx Indians. All the Lake Indians downwards should not lose one moment in joining tl as every accession of strength is an addition to their I have the honor to be, with very great respect, si obedient and very humble servant, At this time every exertion was being aid the Indians, and on August 18, 1794, Simcoe wrote to Lord Dorchester that "go to Detroit with all the force he could Hie was too late, however, for on August 3 Wayne defeated the combined forces own fort. In a letter to the Secretary of War he s It is with infinite pleasure that I announce to you success of the Federal army under my command, action with the combined force of the hostile Indian, siderable number of the volunteers and militia of Det So long as the savages are furnished with all th warlike stores by foreign emissaries and traders at have no reason to suppose that they will be much maintain a long peace with the Americans. The certainly to take immediate possession of posts that v them more than eight years since. Until this is done of the western states cannot rest in security, although armies may be sent against the Indians * * * these garrisons afford them an asylum and succor on Major William Campbell, who had Captain Caldwell in command at the B at Miami, protested against the near aI American troops, and four letters passe( him and General Wayne. Wayne declare English had no right to occupy a fort called upon Campbell to withdraw, but he and although General \Vayne had receive 1 Gibson and ndia^is to tle d from their ed. Captain council at the ke Indians to being sent to to keep them obedient and A. McKEE..st 13, I794. Xith, and was ns to supply brought will take all the authority to demlolish this fort, he deemed it too perilous an undertaking, and left Campbell unmolested. Tenl days after the battle Colonel M'Kee sent this letter to Colonel IEngland CAMP NEAR FORT MII\XMI, August 30, I794. SmIa,I have been employed several days in endeavoring to fix the Indians (who have been driven froln their villages and cornfields) between the fort and the bay. Swan creek is generally agreed upon, and wvill be a very convenient place for the delivery of provisions &c. The last accounts fronm General Wayne's army were brought me last night by an Indian who says the arny would not be able to reach the Glaze before yesterday evening, it is supposed on account of the sick and wountded, many of wihom they bury every day. I propose being in ton\\ in a day or two, when I hope for the pleasure of paying you imy respects. On the very day he wrote, there were estimated a man and a chede o ut, to be I,3oo Indians at Detroit, who had fled there ares, in their for protection. The English and Indians were so i, whom they severely punished by General Wayne that an extra a Delaware surgeon and another hospital wNere needed at Detroit, and on October 31 Governor Simcoe approved of ariny, and we frotn Sagana their having been provided. eiir brethren, During the battle Antoine Lasselle, a Frenchman, spirits. painted, dressed, and disguised as an Indian, was r, your most taken prisoner. He was tried by the court-martial, A. McKEE. and sentenced to be hanged, but was pardoned through the interposition of Colonel Hamtramck. r made to The English now began to feel that Detroit was Governor really in danger, and fearing both a revolt of the he would inhabitants and an attack from without, in Septemi muster." ber, 1794, Fort Lernoult was newly fortified, and o, (eneral Governor Simcoe ordered a block-house and six near their boats to be built at Chatham. At a conference with the Indians,held on October IO, 1794, he said, aid: "Children, I am still of the opinion that the Ohio is your right and title. I have given orders to the the brilliant n a nal Commandant at Fort Miami to fire on the Ameriin a general s and a con- cans when they make their appearance again." roit. * * * The Indians, however, had become distrustful of the e necessary ability of the English to protect them, and there Detroit, we lisposed to was no further occasion for such a severe punishlatter ought ment as they received at the hands of General vere ceded to Wayne. the frontiers Ihe question of the boundary line and other diffih formidable so long as culties between the United States and Great Britain so long as all occasions. now became so serious that early in 1794 John Jay was sent as special minister to London to negotiate succeeded a new treaty. On June 23 he wrote that he had Iritish fort information that the posts " will not be surrendered." )proach of Finally, however, on November 19, 1794, the treaty d between known as Jay's Treaty was made, and in I795, it was d that the ratified by the President. It provided for fixing the there, and eastern boundary of the United States; for the paye declined, ment of claims arising from illegal captures during ad positive the Revolutionary War; and, also, that Detroit and FIRST AMERICAN OCCUPATION OF DETROIT. 267 other western posts held by the British should be surrendered on or before the ISt of June, 1796. Preparations for taking possession went forward, and on May 25, I796, President Washington sent the following communication to Congress: GENTLEMEN OF TiHE SENATE: AND OF TlHE HOUSE OF RyEPRESE NTATI ES,The measures now in operation for taking possession of the posts of Detroit and MTichilimackinac render it proper that provision should be made for extending to these places, and Lany others alike circumstanced, the civil authority of the Northwestern Territory. To do this will require an expense, to defray which the ordinary salaries of the Governor and Secretary of that Territory appear to be incompetent. The forming of a new county or new counties and the appointment of the various officers which the just exercise of government must require, will oblige the (Governor and Secretary to visit those places, and to spend considerable time in making the arrangements necessary for introducing and establishing the government of the United States. Congress will consider what provision wvill in this case be proper. The communication was referred to a committee consisting of Messrs. Sitgraves, Greenup,and Reed. ()n June I Mr. Sitgraves reported that he had not been able to get the information necessary to make a report, and the committee was discharged. Although the Jay Treaty provided that the western posts should be evactuated on or before the Ist of June, the order to evaccuate was not given until June 2. A letter, on file in the State )epartment at Washington, from James lMcFHenry, Secretary of War, to Genera! Washington, dated June 27, 1796, states that he enclosed a copy of the order for the evacuation of Detroit, which order was dated June 2, I796. The order for evacuation was signed by George Beckwith, Adjutant-General, and dated from Quebec. It provided that Detroit and other posts were to be vacated, but a captain and fifty of the Queen's Rangers, who had been sent to Detroit and Fort Miami as late as April 24, were "to remain as a guard for the protection of the works and public buildings till the troops of the United States are at hand to occupy the same, when they will embark." In this connection the subjoined letter from the original manuscript letter-book of Samuel Henley, now in possession of the Public Library of Detroit, is of interest: GREENVILLE, June 7, 1796. David Iiarrigan, E'sq., Dceartment Quartermatsfer General at Fort W ashington; DEAIs SIR,Yesterday evening Captain (Bartholomew) Sliaumberg arrived in this cantonment from Detroit, where lie las been politely received by the lIritihli conmmanding officer of the garrison, Colonel England. This gentleman has sent CGeneral Wilkinson a plan of the Fort, town, &c. All the British troops are prepared to leave Detroit on the first order from the high powers. SAMUEL HENLE., A. Q. M. We now approach an exceedingly interesting question, and one that concerns the entire Northwest. Ietroit wxas tihe farthest west of all the British posts. The date on w\hich it was evacuated, therefore, fixes the date of the actual possession by the United States of a territory larger than the original thirteen States. For many years it has been thought impossible to determine when this interesting event took place. In determining residence and occupancy of the claimants in the settlement of the land claims at Detroit, the United States Government and the Commissioners of Claims fixed upon July I as the official date of American possession; but there was no evidence that July I was the real date of the first occupancy of the territory by American troops. It was simply an arbitrary date; it was necessary to agree upon sonme point of time, and in the absence of definite information, the approximate date of July I was fixed upon. The question was discussed at some length by the late A. I). Fraser in a communication to the Detroit Iree Press, - ecdg1The height of the preserat ofmonument, including the crowning [ }[, - |: ---- = w- figure, is sixty feet. Lack of funds pre',~:, l:- ':'-::- f vented the finishing of the four figures for the third section at the time the monument was unveiled. Finally, on November 17, 1879, they were contracted for, and on July 9, I88I, were set in position LORS' MI, M N1 ENT. and unveiled. Theodore Romeyn delivered an address, and there was a parade of the military. The total cost of the monument was a little in excess of $70,000. The cost of the bronzes was as follows: the crowning statue, $8,ooo; the four army and navy statues in the second section, $20,000; the four allegorical figures, $io,ooo; the four medallions, $4,000; the four eagles, $2,400. By an Act approved January 31, 1883, the State appropriated $350 for repairs to the railing and foundation, and provided for the further expenditure of not exceeding $roo per year, for the care and preservation of the monument, Al CHAPTER XLV. MILITIA AND MILITARY COMPANIES. THE militia organizations existing under French and English rule are named in connection with the several wars of those periods. Under the earliest laws of the Northwest Territory all male citizens, between the ages of sixteen and fifty years, were enrolled in companies, and required to parade for two hours every Saturday in the year. Whenever persons so enrolled assembled for public worship, they were required to go fully armed and equipped, or be subject to a fine. No provision was made for a uniform of any kind, and there was little need of any. If a settler was able to kill a squirrel or an Indian at long range, the question as to whether he wore a blue coat, or any coat at all, was of but little moment. Under Act of December 13, 1799, all persons over eighteen and under forty-five were to be enrolled, and to provide their own guns, ammunition, and accoutrements. The companies from Wayne County were to form a brigade. The Act made no provision for uniforming the commissioned officers or the members of the ordinary infantry companies; and the cavalry and the light infantry companies only were required to wear uniforms. Enlistments in these companies were entirely voluntary. Under Indiana Territory the same regulations prevailed. On May II, 1803, there was a parade at Detroit of the First Regiment of Wayne County. When the State of Ohio was organized, her first militia law, in I803, provided that the militia should determine for themselves the color and fashion of their regimentals. In 18o5, when Michigan Territory was organized, General Hull, on becoming governor, evidently determined to awaken astonishment by introducing a sort of West Point dress and discipline. The usual dress of the poor French settlers and backwoodsmen would no longer do for exhibition on general muster or "training days," and on August 30, 1805, a militia law was passed which provided that all male residents over fourteen and under fifty be enrolled, and that the " commander-in-chief may direct the color and fashion of the uniforms Qf the officers, non-commissioned officers, and privates of the militia, and the occasions on which they shall appear in uniform." The number of the militia at this time is indicated in a return made by Lieutenant-Colonel Philip Chabert de Joncaire on July 9, 1805, which showed six hundred and twenty-three soldiers in ten companies. The names of the general officers were as follows: commanderin-chief, Governor William Hull; aide-de-camps. Francois Chabert de Joncaire, George McI)ougall, and Solomon Sibley; quartermaster-general, Matthew Ernest; adjutant-general, James May. The officers of the First Regiment were: colonel, A. B. Woodward; lieutenant-colonel, Antoine Beaubien; major, Gabriel Godfroy; adjutants, Christopher Tuttle and Jean Baptiste Cicotte; quartermaster, Charles Stewart; chaplain, Rev. Gabriel Richard; surgeon, William MIcCoskry; captains, Jacob Visger, David Duncan, George Cotterell, Louis Campau, Christopher Tuttle, Louis St. Bernard, Joseph Cerre, dit St. Jean, Henry MacVey, Joseph Campau, Jean Cissne, and James Anderson; lieutenants, John Ruland, Charles M. Campau, Samuel Abbott, John Meldrum, Whitmore Knaggs, Jean Marie Beaubien, Christian Clemens, James Campau, Thomas Tremble, FranSois Chovin, Conrad Seek, and Benjamin Chittenden; ensigns, Allen C. Wilmot, George Cotterell, Jr., James Connor, John Dix, Francois Rivard, Frangois Tremble, John Ruland, John Burnett, Jacob Aeiller, James F. Griswold, and Peter E. Visger. The officers of the Second Regiment were: colonel. John Anderson; lieutenant-colonel, Francois Navarre; major, Israel Ruland; adjutant, Giles Barnes; quartermaster, Alexander Ewings; surgeon, Ethan Baldwin; surgeon's mate, Bernard Parker; captains, Joseph Jobin, Jean Baptiste Beaugrand, Francois Lasselle, Hubert La Croix, Jean Baptiste Jeraume, Joseph Menard, William Griffith, and Prosper Thibeau; lieutenants, Hyacinth La Joy, Francois De Forgue, Jean Baptiste La Salle, Jacques Martin, Jean Baptiste Couteur, Jacques W. Navarre, Thomas Knaggs, and Andrew Jourdon; ensigns, Joseph Cavalier, James Knaggs, Alexis Loranjey, Joseph Bordeaux, Isidore Navarre, Joseph Huntington, and Dominique Drouillard. The following were officers of the Legionary Corps: lieutenant-colonel, Elijah Brush; major, James Abbott; adjutant, A. F. Hull; quartermaster, Charles Curry; surgeon, John Brown; 13131 314 MILITIA AND MILITARY COMPANIES. captains (of cavalry), James La Salle, (of artillery), John Williams, (of light infantry), George Hoffman, (of riflemen), William McDowell Scott; lieutenants (of cavalry), Richard Smyth, (of artillery), James Dodemeade, (of light infantry), Benjamin Chittenden, (of riflemen), Barnabas Campau; cornet of cavalry, Gabriel Godfroy, Jr; second lieutenant of artillery, Henry F. Hunt;' ensigns (of light infantry), George Meldrum, (of riflemen), Pierre Navarre. The militia of the District of Mackinaw were organized into two companies, and those on the river St. Clair into four. Following the passage of the Militia Law, on September 27, I805, General Hull issued the following proclamation: UNIFORMlS.-In conformity to a law of the Territory of Michigan, the Commander-in-chief directs the following uniforms for the officers and soldiers of the militia of the said Territory: MAJOR GENERAI.S.-A dark blue coat faced with buff, buff cape, yellow buttons and linings, two gold epaulets, with two silver stars on each, buff vest and breeches, black cocked hat, black cockade, white and red plumes. BRIGADIER GENiE,;\LS. —The same as Major Generals, with this difference, one silver star on each epaulet, and white and green plumes. ADJUTANT GENERALS.-The same as a Major General, with this difference, no star on the epaulets, and a white plume tipped with red. QUARTERMASTER GENERAL.-The same as a Major General, with this difference, no stars on the epaulets, and a white plume tipped with green. AIDS-DE-CAMP OF THE COMIMANDER-IN-CHIEF.-'Ihe same as a Major General, with this difference, no stars on the epaulets, and black and white plumes. AIDS-DE-CAMP OF MAJOR-GENERALS.-The same as a Major General, with this difference, no stars on the epaulets, and a black plume. BRIGADE MAJOR. —The same as a Brigadier General, with this difference, no stars on the epaulets, and a green plume. ALL GENERAL OFFICERS.-A blue coat edged with gold cord. FIELD OFFICERS, CAPTArINS AND SUBALTERNS of the ist Regiment. A dark blue coat, long, faced with red, red cape, white buttons, white lining, white underclothes, silver epaulets. THE COLONEL, LIEUTENANT-COLONEL, AND MAJOR, two epaulets. CAPTAINS, al epaulet on the right shoulder, a silver strap on the left. LIEUTENANTS, an epaulet on the left shoulder, a silver strap on the right. ENSIGNS, an epaulet on the left shoulder without any strap. The whole, black plumes tipped with red. 'he field officers, small swords. The Captains and Subalterns, hangers with white belts. The whole, long boots. The field officers, spurs. The whole, red sashes. The field officers, bearskin holsters, pistols, and blue cloaks edged with silver cord. THE REGIMENTAL QUARTERNIASTER.-The uniform and rank of a Lieutenant. THE REGIMENTAI. ADJUTANT, the same. THE SURGEON ANI) SURGEON'S MATE, long blue coats edged with white, cocked hats, white feathers, white underclothes, long boots, dirks with white handles. CHAPLAINS.-Black coats, black underclothes, black gowns, cocked hats, rose cockades. THE PRIVATES OF INFANTREY.-Long blue coats or capots, white plain buttons, white underclothes in summer; white vest and blue pantaloons in winter; half boots or gaiters, round black hats, black feathers tipped with red, cartridge belt and bayonet belt, black. The length of the coat or capot will be precisely to the knee. It will be made so as to sit easy on the body, but so tight as to have a neat and soldier-like appearance. The Colonel of the Regiment will point out the particular form, and furnish a sample, so that the whole will be made similar to each other. OFFICERS OF THE 2D REGIMENT. - Field officers, long blue coats, faced with white, white buttons, white lining, two silver epaulets, cocked hats, white plumes. The Field officers will point out the uniform of the other officers of the Regiment. The uniform of the soldiers of the 2d Reginent, the same as the ist Regiment, with this difference, their coats or capots will be edged with white, and they will wear a white feather. FIELD OFFICERS OF THE LEGIONARY CORPS.-Blue coats faced with buff, buff cape, yellow buttons, gold epaulets, buff lining, buff vests and breeches, cocked hats with rose cockades, white feather tipped with red, long boots, silver spurs, and in the summer season they will wear white vests and breeches. CAVALRY.-Red coats, turned up with black velvet, black capes, white vests, buckskin breeches, long boots, leather caps covered with bearskin, blue sash, white feather. ARTILLERY.-Blue coats, skirts turned up with red, red capes, cocked hats, red feather; for the warm season, white vest and pantaloons, black gaiters; for the cold season, blue pantaloons edged with red cord. LIGHT INFANTRY.-Short blue coats faced with buff, buff capes, round hat turned up on one side, black cockade, white feather;in the warm season, white vest and pantaloons, with black gaiters; in the cold season, blue pantaloons edged with yellow cord. RIFLEMEN.-Short green coats, turned up with buff, buff capes, round hats, black cockades, green feather; in the warm season, white vest and pantaloons, black gaiters; in the cold season, green pantaloons, edged with buff cord. The Commander-in-chief recommends to the officers and soldiers to procure their uniforms as soon as possible; and directs that each officer and soldier appear in full uniform, when on military duty of any kind, after the first day of June next. In his communications to the Pittsburgh Commonwealth, John Gentle, of Detroit, shows that General Hull was thrifty as well as asthetic in his requirements. As to the uniforms Gentle says: The 6th day of June, 1806, the people of Detroit were gratified with the pleasing intelligence that Governor Hull had arrived at Fort Malden, where he was received with a royal salute, and every royal distinction due to his high merits as a distinguished officer of the United States. The next day he came up by land and crossed the river to Detroit, where he was also received by a salute from the Fort. * * * He brought with him a number of carpenters and bricklayers and a barge of dry goods, consisting of cloths, chiefly blue, cassimeres, and a quantity of swords, epaulets, tinsel ware, &c. So soon as his shop was put in order for business, he issued his general orders, colnnmanding all the militia in the territory to provide themselves with complete suits of uniform clothing, viz.: blue coats, white small clothes for summer, and blue for winter, black hats and feathers, short boots or gaiters. The chief of the officers complied with his orders, but the soldiers, more from poverty than from contumacy, did not comply. Blue cloth could not be got at that time, in any of the stores where the people were accustomed to traffic, and they could not command money to purchase their uniforms at the Governor's shop. The same orders were again repeated, and all captains of companies were commanded to enforce obedience to the orders, by fine and imprisonment. By means of this bare-faced imposition, he emptied a considerable store of money out of the pockets of the people in a direct line into his own. A printed petition to President Madison contains the following statement about this same transaction: "' As a Militia Commandant he would first prescribe a particular dress or epaulette, or cord, or facing, and then sell the cloth or lace to comply. with it." These statements seem severe, but they are abundantly verified by various documents in possession of the State Historical Society. That uniforms, and MILITIA AND MILITARY COMPANIES...................... 3T5 especially'uniforms of such costly character, should have been required in this wild western region is of itself evidence either of jobbery, or of martinetism run mad. In the light of all the facts, General Hull's action seems to have been a compound of both. The absurdity of his regulations, and the way in which his efforts were regarded by the rough scouts, woodsmen, and trappers, is thus detailed in the Philadelphia Aurora for September I5, 1812: Governor Hull, in 1807, took it into his head to take the militia from their natural kind of warfare, and dress and drill them in the Kevenhuller style, with stiff cocked hats and buckram uniforms. They learned nothing, and their only military usefulness was completely destroyed. He also brought with him from the seaboard, in i806, two small brass field pieces, and proposed to establish a troop of Cavalry mounted and properly equipped, with a number of pistols and sabers, but very probably he was not per-:itted to accomplish a purpose so prudent and important in an Indian country. The way in which his orders were received by the settlers is indicated by statements contained on page 322 of the Military and Civil Life of General Hull: Colonel Anderson of the second Regiment of Militia writes many letters from the river Raisin complaining of his officers because they will not get their uniforms. The poor Colonel at last wishes to resign his commission, for " the French gentlemen, headed by the Lieutenant Colonel, will not get their uniforms, and the troops, the more I exercise them the less they learn." * * * Out of twenty French gentlemen, officers, only five have any uniform. Driven desperate, the Colonel, on June 26, i8o6, writes that he has arrested his officers, and they write to the governor demanding a court-martial, " as they wish to know their fate" The following copy of an official document shows the foolish persistence of Governor Hull in this matter of the uniforming of the militia: HEAI) QUARTERS AT DETROIT, July 23, i806. GENERAL ORDERS.-The present being the season of harvest, the Commander-in-chief excuses the militia from parading for the purpose of exercise, next Saturday. It will now be more than a month before they will be called for any duty, unless some extraordinary exigence should occur. This time must be employed in putting their arms and accoutrements in best possible order, and in procuring the uniform according to law. The Commander-in-chief now informs the officers that, hereafter, no indulgence will be granted, but the Law, both as to arms and uniform, will be rigidly executed. At the next parade he will personally inspect the several companies. The militia of the Territory have been particularly distinguished by the General Government. The Cavalry been furnished with pistols and cutlasses. The Artillery with field-pieces and complete apparatus. The Infantry with arms and accoutrenents. These favors have not been granted to any other citizens of the United States. Iet us show by our, spirit and conduct that we are worthy of these favors. By order of the Commander-in-chief. JAMES MAY, A djutant-General. Jury protested against them. -During this year war rumors were very numerous; their effect at Detroit is thus described by Mr. Gentle: Towards the spring of 1806, all the Colonels, Majors, Captains, etc., both military and militia, convened at Smyth's Hotel to consider the warlike rumors. Mr. Walker of (;ros Roche, and many others, were called forward to give evidence. The best part of a day was spent taking down the report of the evidence and collecting all the information that was possible on the subject. And when. the whole was summed up, to their great surprise, it amounted to nothing at all. A general silence prevailed for a few minutes. Colonel B. then observed that he never suffered these reports to give him one moment's uneasiness, having considered them, all along, the effusions of disordered brains. A whisper went immediately round, that it was easily seen that he was connected on the British side. No confidence ought to be placed in men of his description. Colonel iMcD. rose in great agitation, and declared that although reports scented favorable, still he looked upon them as partial. If we were not in immediate danger from the Indians, he was conscious, in his own mind, we were from the English. He, therefore, moved that all true patriots should wear eagles in their hats to distinguish them from British subjects. The motion was seconded, put to the vote, and carried. And froin that day true patriots, from the Colonel down to the kitchen boy, wore eagles on their hats. * * * Soon after, Captain Dyson, commanding officer of Fort Detroit, received a letter by express, from Captain Whipple of Fort Wayne, advising that he had undoubted information that the Indians were making rapid preparations to attack Chicago, Michilimackinac, Detroit, and Fort Wayne, on one and the same day. Captain Connor, from the river Huron, also reported that the day of the eclipse was the day fixed by the Indians to make the attack on the above named settlements. A Council of the principal officers assembled, and after mature deliberation on the state of public affairs, it was resolved that the country was in danger; also " Resolved, that three stockades be erected, one at river Huron, one at I)etroit, and one at Erie." Also " Resolved, that they be completed the day previous to the day of the eclipse." General orders followed commanding general musters at nine o'clock on tle nemrning of the eclipse. At twelve o'clock, on the morning of the eclipse, the twelve companies of the district assembled on the Common, armed and accoutred, and ready for action, agreeable to orders. They narched and countermarched, advanced and retreated, into the stockade, and there remained in a state of perfect safety, while their fathers, wives, and children staid at homne to protect themselves. With glasses they very distinctly discovered myriads of Indians in warlike array upon the surface of the two planets Venus and Mars, while they were in conjunction, which is the last they have ever seen or heard of them to this day. In addition to other complaints against Governor Hull, a petition to President Madison stated: In Upper Canada, African slavery has always existed, and the labor of their slaves is a principal reliance of many families on both sides, for subsistence. Mr. Hutll has countenanced the runaways from that Province by embodying them into a military company, and supplying them with arms from the public stores. He has signed a written instrument, appointing a black man to the command of the company. This transaction is extremely dishonorable to the government on this side the river; violates the feelings of the opposite side; essentially injures their interests; and eventually injures our own people, by exciting the others to retaliate in the same way. *... r.I1 __ _ 1_ 1 __ 4 _!" I, Few, if any, ot the people had confidence in the The injustice of the regulations as to uniforms military leadership of General Hull. Their opinion was so apparent that on August 20, 1806, the Grand was thus expressed in the petition: 316 MILITIA AND MILITARY COMPANIES. From the circumstances pf our being on a frontier in a double sense, it is peculiarly necessary to have an officer of judgment and of military science. This gentleman has a kind of reputation of that sort, from his having served as a Major in the army, and from having been a General in the militia; but we have enough to satisfy us here, that it is unmerited. We judge from what we see with our own eyes. The petition and remonstrances of the people were alike disregarded, and the militia parades followed each other at regular intervals and were alike the joy and dread of the inhabitants. The children enjoyed them because of the drum and fife and gingerbread of training-day; and those who prepared the soup for the soldiers, which was served in iron kettles, enjoyed them because of the emoluments of the occasion; others enjoyed the rough merriment always caused by certain reckless and unruly spirits. Mrs. William Y. Hamlin has preserved this story of one of the most awkward captains of an awkward squad of that period. His name was Jean Cecire. He was full of conceit and exaggerated self-importance, and when dressed in the uniform prescribed by General Hull was, in his own eyes, hardly second to the great Napoleon. Jean went frequently to see the regular troops drill. Their wondrous discipline and military exactness sorely puzzled him, but he thought it must be owing to the fact that the words of command were given in English, and that there was some hidden magic in the language. Calling the roll was also serious business to him, as his own and his sergeant's knowledge of English was almost as limited as their use of the pen, but his ingenuity conquered the latter difficulty. The names of the members of his company having been printed in order, a pin was used to punch a hole after the names of the absentees. His tongue, however, so easy to control in French, could not be drilled to speak other than the most broken English. Assembled on parade, Captain Jean ordered the Sergeant to call the roll. He proceeded to obey, the Captain standing by in full glory. Sergeant.-"Attention, Companie Francais Canadians! Answer your name when I call it, if you please. Tock, Tock, Livernois." No answer; at last a voice says, "Not here, gone catch his 'ambrener (fast-pacer) in the bush." Captain to Sergeant.-" Put peen hole in dat man! Go 'head." Sergeant.-" Laurant Bondy?" " Here, Sah." "Claude Campau? " "Here, Monsieur." "Antoine Salliotte?" Some one answers, " Little baby came last night at his house, must stay at home." Cat/ain to Sergeant.-" Put one preek on dat man's name." Sergeant.-" L'enfant Riopelle?" "Here, Sah." "Piton Laforest?" "Here, Sah." "Simon Meloche?" "Not here, gone to spear muskrat for argent blanc (silver money). Captain to Sergeant.-" Take pen and scratch dat man." After the roll was called and the absentees pricked, the Captain proceeded to drill his company. Captain. —" Marchee, mes comrades, deux et deux, like oxen, and when you come to dat stump, stop." They all made for the place, and got there in a heap, looking, with their various colored dresses, like a rainbow on a spree. Disgusted at their awkwardness, the Captain gave them a few minutes' relaxation. Instead of resting au militaire, they rushed off, one to smoke his beloved pipe, another to polish his carbine, whilst others amused themselves by sitting on the grass, and telling about the races. The Captain called them to try again. This time he said, " Marchee as far as dat soulier de bauf (old shoe) in the road, den turn! Right gauche, left about! Shoulder mus-keete! Avance done, back! Drill fineesh!" The disagreeable features of these drills and other military doings are thus described by Mr. Gentle: The farmers were commanded to quit their harvest-fields and repair to the city, armed and accoutred with pick-axes and shovels, all day, to dig trenches and to plant pickets round Brush's farm, adjoining the city, without fee or reward, and to stand guard over their lords and masters during the silent night, zwith hungry bellies; whilst their families in the country are exposed (if the danger was real) to the scalping knife, and their grain to the rot. Some of the militia grew restive and insubordinate under regulations that they deemed oppressive. In one case of abusive language and threatening action, a court martial, on December 27, I807, ordered "ten stripes on the bare back." Others were literally dragged from their dwellings and compelled to do military duty. These disturbances gave rise to a conflict between (Governor 1Hull and Stanley (Griswold, the secretary of the Territory. Governor Hull, on January I6, I808, complained to the secretary of State that Mr. Griswold was the chief cause of the troubles between himself and the militia, and enclosed a copy of a proclamation which he had issued calling on the people to discourage all mutinous conduct and to aid in detecting and apprehending all persons who might disturb the public peace. No names were mentioned in the proclamation, but Hull says in his letter that it was made necessary by the actions of Mr. Griswold. It, therefore, seems curious indeed to read at the bottom of the proclamation, ("By the Governor. Stanley Griswold. Secy. of Mich. Territory." The next act in this particular farce was the arrest of Mr. Griswold, and his appearance at court before Justices May, McDougall, and Smyth, the last week in January, I808, "charged with having enticed one or two of the militia to quit the service and go home, telling them that they could not be hurt for so doing." The testimony was long and confused, but in no point of view did it tarnish the character of the accused. On the contrary, it was plainly evident to every spectator, and even to Justice Smyth, that all the testimony went to show that the accused uniformly advised those members of the militia who asked his advice to serve their time with composure. Still, astonishing as it may appear, Judges May and McDougall declared it their opinion that Griswold was guilty of heinous crimes, and MILITIA AND MILITARY COMPANIES. 31 7 accordingly recognized him in the sum of one thousand dollars. At the moment this strange judgment was given, Justice Smyth rose, and protested " before God, before the Court, and all the bystanders, that Judges May and McIougall had given a partial judgment." Notwithstanding this protest, the order of the other two judges remained in force. Within two months after the trial, the term of Mr. Griswold ceased; and he was relieved, and Reuben Attwater appointed in his stead., For the next ten years no records concerning the militia have been found, except such as directly connect them with various wars. All such facts are given in connection with the wars. In 1818 a company known as the Detroit Town Company was in existence, commanded by S. T. Davenport, and on September 15 of this year there was a militia parade, and another on October 4, 81 9. In 1821 a military court of inquiry was in session, to inquire why delinquents had not been on duty. The court was held September 29, and the record shows that Joseph Dupra was called, and explained that he was "taking care of his mother who was sick." Louis Groesbeck "did not know that the first Monday in September was training day." Jean Bte Garrat "was lame in one of his legs." Another had " hired on board of a scow, and was not present that day, as the scow was at Hog Island taking in a load of bark." And thus with one accord they all made excuse. On December 27, 1821, on the occasion of the execution of two Indians for murder, the First Regiment of militia was called out and also the volunteer artillery company commanded by Captain Ben Woodworth. On May 23, I822, John Roberts, Jr., notified persons liable to militia duty to appear at Military Square on June 3, armed and equipped as the law directs. On April 6, I831, a company, called the City Guards, was organized, with Edward Brooks as captain. It was in existence only a year. The Brady Guards, so named in honor of General IHugh Brady, were organized on April 13, I836, with A. S. Williams as captain. In 1837 he was succeeded by I. S. Rowland, and in this year, on Washington's Birthday, the company was presented with an elegant standard by Governor Mason. The presentation took place in front of the old American Hotel. In I839 Mr. Rowland was succeeded by E. R. Kearsley, and in 1840, 1841, and 1842, Mr. Rowland was again serving. On February 2, 1843, the company disbanded, and on February io following was reorganized, with A. S. Williams as captain. On February 22 of this year Anson Bur-!ingame delivered an address before the Scott and Brady Guards on the life and character of Washing ton. In 1845 C. A. Trowbridge was captain. In 1846 and 1847 Mr. Williams was again serving. On April Io, I85I, General Brady died, and on April 8 the company disbanded. Just before General Brady died, Rev. Dr. Duffield visited him to inquire into his spiritual condition and preparation for death. General Brady listened to him respectfully, and then, in words worthy of a true soldier, he said, "Sir, that is all right; my knapsack has been packed, and I am ready to march at the tap of the drum." Twenty-five years after his death, on April 13, 1876, twenty-six of the surviving members of the company celebrated the fortieth anniversary of its organization, by a supper at the Russell House. The Scott Guards were organized October I6, I841, and reorganized September 2, I842. J. V. Ruehle served as captain from 1841 to 1846, and was succeeded by, N. Greusel, Jr. In I852 Paul Gies was captain. From 1853 to i861 F. Ruehle served in that capacity, followed in 1862 by F. Kremer. In 1862 and I863 there were two companies,-the Artillery, commanded at first by P. Guenther and then by J. Katus; and the Infantry, commanded by F. Kremer. In I864 the last-named was the only captain, and he served until the company disbanded in December, I869. In April, 1879, a company by the same name was organized through the effort of Max Hochgraef, who was made captain. In I88o he was succeeded by August Goebel, who served until 1882, and was followed by F. Herzog. The. Lafayette Guards were organized July 4, I842, with F. X. Cicotte as captain. In I845 and 1846 L. D. Clairoux was captain, and soon after the company disbanded. The Cass Guards were organized on February 27, 1843, with Eugene T. Smith as captain. A preliminary meeting had been held on February 20 at Republican Hall. The company disbanded in about a year. On October 4 of this year, for the first time, all the State uniformed militia went into camp for two months on the Cass Farm. On October 9 there was a grand review on the ground where Fort Street now crosses the farm. The Montgomery Guards were organized this same year, with A. T. McReynolds as captain. He was succeded in 1846 by W. O'Callaghan, after which time there is no record of the company. In July, 1849, a Boy Company, known as the Detroit Lancers, was in existence. The Grayson Light Guards were organized July 29, 185o, and disbanded in I855. Colonel John B. Grayson was captain until I853, and was succeeded by A. K. Howard. On October Io, 1854, a State Military Convention was held in the city, at the armory of these Guards. 318 MILITIA AND MILITARY COMPANIES. The Detroit City Guards were organized September 21, I849. N. Greusel, Jr., was the first captain, and was succeeded in March, I850, by John Winterhalter, who served until I854. The Yager Guards were organized in June, 1853, with A. Lingeman as captain. He served until 1865, when the company practically disbanded. The National Dragoons, Captain J. 1P. W\hiting, were in existence from 1853 to I86o. The Shields Guards organized in I853. J. C. White, the first captain, was succeeded in I855 by I'. I)owling. In 1857 Ed Molloy was captain, in 1859, John McDermott, and in I86I E. Molloy again. In I862 the company disbanded. The Detroit Light Guards were fully organized November I9, 1855, the members enlisting for five years. On October 31, 1859, the members were divided into two companies, A and B, and on January 9 they reorganized as one company. On July 5, i86o, they entertained the famous Ellsworth Zouaves, who came to Detroit from Chicago. The Zouaves gave an exhibition drill on Grand River Street near Third, which was witnessed by an immense throng of spectators. On April 17, I86i,the Light Guards organized for war, and on May I the company volunteered as three months troops, with C. M. Ium as captain. They were mustered into the United States service as Company A of the First Regiment of Michigan Infantry. Those of the company who did not volunteer for the war, reorganized as the Detroit Light Guard Reserve Corps. On August 7, 186I, the ttli.: months men returned, and were mustered out at Fort Wayne. TI'hc entire company was soon after organized by the original name. The captains in various years have been as follows: 1855- i860, A. S. Williams; I860-1861, H. L. Chipman; I861, J. E. Pittman; I862, Jerome Croul; 1863-1866, E. R. Matthews; 1866-i868, C. M. Lum; 1868, F. W. Swift; 1869-1872, G. L. Maltz; 1872-1875, D. F. Fox; 1875, R. A. Liggitt; 1876-1878, L. C. Twombly; 1878, Max Hochgraef; 1879-1884, A. P. T. Beniteau; 1884, S. A. Murphy; 1885-I887, W. G. Latimer; 1887-, S. R. Dixon. The Detroit Light Infantry were organized November 16, 1855, and reorganized in 1858, I86o, and 1877. William Hull was captain in 1859, and W. J. Nesbit in i861. Since the reorganization ot 1877, the following have served as captains: I877 -1880, L. C. Twombly; I88o —1882, Charles Du pont; 1882, E. F. Conely and Harry Milward; I883,.C. Dupont. The Detroit Grays, a juvenile company, existed in 1857, with F. Speed as captain. The Michigan Hussars were organized July 15, I859, with A. Paldi as captain. He served until 186i, when the company disbanded. In i86o companies of boys, known as Detroit Zouaves and United States Zouave Cadets, were in existence. In I86I and 1862 a company of Brother Jonathan Zouaves were commanded by F. A. Ashley. The Holt and the Lyon Guards were organized in the fall of I86I, commanded respectively by W. S. Biddle and G. S. Wormer. Both companies disbanded in 1862. The Jackson Guards, M. McGraw captain, organized and disbanded in 1861. The Emmet Rifles, organized the same year, had an existence equally brief. The Sherman Zouaves made their first appearance on February 22, 1869, with Charles H. Brown as captain. No record has been found of them after 1870. The Detroit National Guards were organized November 7, I869. The captains have been as follows: I870-1872, P. W. Nolan; 1872, John Atkinson; I873-I879, J. O'Keefe; 1879-, P. J. Sheahan. The Wolverine Rifles were organized October 12, 1870, with J. V. Ruehle as captain; the company existed about a year and a half. The Sarsfield Guards were organized April 7, 1874, with J. E. Lally as captain. He was serving in 1875, and the company disbanded in that year. The Pelouze Cadets, a company of boys drilled by Major L. H. Pelouze, U. S. A., were in existence from 1870 to 1875, or later, The Detroit Scottish Guards organized in September, 1875, with Alexander Witherspoon as captain. He served until 1878, when the company disbanded. The Detroit Excelsior Guards, P. N. Burkhard, captain, organized and disbanded in 1877. The Montgomery Rifles were organized in May, 1877, with J. C. Donnelly as captain. In 1880 he was succeeded by Charles Lynch, who served until 1882, and was followed by M. Whelan, who served till 1885. In 1885 Charles Lynch was Captain, and in I886 and 1887 James W. Fisher. The Detroit City Grays, organized March 15, i881, have had the following captains: 1881, John G. Cooper; 1882, F. P. Bagley, J. W. Strong; 1883 -I885, F. P. Bagley; 1885-, M. G. Borgman. PART VI. SOCIAL. I~~~ ~~ ~~~ ~~ ~~~~~ ~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~ CHAPTER XLVI. ORIGINAL INHABITANTS OF DETROIT.-INDIAN AGENTS.-EARLY VISITORS. (ORIGINA1, INHABITANTS. THE origin of the first occupants of this region is shrouded in mystery. Several writers have adopted the theory that they were descendants of the lost tribes of Israel, and they fortify their position with a variety of interesting facts. The founder of our fair domain was a believer in this theory, and the archives of France contain a lengthy memorial written by Cadillac in which he distinctly asserts his belief that the -Indians are descendants of the Hebrew race, strengthening his argument with statements of many remarkable coincidences and customs confirmatory of the idea. The researches of Schoolcraft, Prescott, Pickering, and others, indicate that the first comers were from Asia, that they were driven by winds and waves over to the Pacific coast, or made their way by the Aleutian Islands or Behring's Strait to Alaska, and from thence southward to Mexico and South America, afterwards spreading northward and eastward over the American continent. Elaborate and plausible arguments have been made to prove the converse theory,-that the Chinese are descended from the Aztec race. In support of this supposition it is urged that the trade winds from the Peruvian coast pass directly to China, and that even frail vessels could easily be wafted thither. Unique and ancient bronze implements are found alike in both countries; the picture-writings of the two countries are in many cases similar, and in others are exactly the same; and the Feast of Souls, as celebrated in Ceiftral America, is remarkably like certain of the Chinese ceremonies. The order of the ancient occupancy of the country seems to have been, first the Olmecs, then the Toltecs, then the Aztecs, or Aztecas. Various reasons give rise to the theory that the Aztec race were the first occupants of this particular region. Humboldt was of the opinion that the country of the Aztecas was in this latitude. The meaning of their tribal name is "People of the Lakes;" and there is no place in the United States in which small lakes are so numerous as in Michigan, while the State is nearly surrounded by lakes, which are almost seas in extent. The name Michigan is derived from two Chippewa words,-Mitchaw, great, and Sagiegan, 21 r3 lake.-Great Lake. The so-called Indian mounds in various Western States, in their size. form, and contents, add force to the Aztecan theory. In the township of Springwells, just below I)etroit, were four of these mounls; one of them still remains inside the grounds of Fort Wayne; the second was on property now occupied by the Copper Smelting Works, and the third lay between the other two. They were circular in form, fronm thirty to seventy feet in diameter, and varying from three to ten feet in height. Two parallel embankments, about four feet high, led to them from the east. One of these mounds was opened in I837, and the one inside the fort, by permission of the War Department, on May 22, I876. Both were found to contain numerous skeletons, arrow-heads, and vases or pots of earthenware. The one last opened contained also an iron vessel capable of holding two or three gallons, and several pounds of what appeared to be a sort of paint. The Great Mound of the River Rouge, about half a mile below Fort WXayne, was at first, probably, fully three hundred feet long and two hundred feet wide. In I876 it was twenty feet high. It has never been fully explored, but a partial investigation by Henry Gillman resulted in the discovery of stone axes, arrow-heads, fragments of pottery, and human bones much decayed. An old Indian told a member of the Cicotte family that these mounds were erected as forts, at the time the tribes were fighting each other. Indian tradition also ascribes these mounds to the Tuetle Indians, who preceded the W\yandotts. The name Tuetle is believed to be a corruption of Tuteloes, a tribe once supposed to have emigrated from Virginia only as far north as the Susquehanna; but it now seems probable that some came as far as the Detroit.i Of the more modern Indian tribes who roamed over this region, the Algonquin race was the earliest. They counted among their numbers in the northwest the tribes of the Ottawas, Menominees, Sacs, Foxes, and Chippewas. There were also in this 1 See Henry Gillman's paper on Mound Builders and Platycnemism in Michigan, in Smithsonian Report for 1873. 322 ORIGINAL INHABITANTS. - - I vicinity the tribes of the Miamis, Potowatamies, Winnebagoes, and the Ouendats, or Wyandotts. The latter who came to this vicinity about 168o, excelled the other tribes in energy and progressiveness. From time to time the Iroquois also appeared. This nation was composed originally of the Onondagas, Cayugas, Senecas, Oneidas, and Mohawks. In 1714 the Tuscaroras of North Carolina united with them, and they were afterward known as the Six Nations. They claimed all of Michigan, and between them and the Algonquins warfare was frequent. Indeed, the Iroquois were the enemies of all the Indians at or near I)etroit, and in 1649 they drove the Algonquins from this region. They were unfriendly to the French, and during the French antd English war did good service for the English. They were the cannibals of America, and French residents of Detroit, in 1756, stated that the Iroquois actually ate the flesh of persons slain in battle. It was the settled policy of the French commandants to induce as many friendly Indians as possible to settle near their forts. We find Cadillac, in 1703, urging the Ottawas to move to Detroit. The French records of the same year show that several Miamis were already settled there, and that on June 28 thirty Hurons arrived from Mackinaw and erected wigwams near the fort. The Potowatamies had their village west of the fort, near the mouth of what was afterwards called Knagg's Creek. The Ottawa settlement was where Windsor now is, and the Hurons were gathered on the Canada side, opposite the Cass Farm. In 1705 about two hundred Indians had been persuaded by Cadillac to settle in the vicinity. In furtherance of his plans a great council of chiefs was held, continuing from August 6 to August 10, I707. The following translation from a French Colonial Memoir, written in I707, and preserved at Paris, gives a vivid picture of Indian life at this period: The village of the Pottowatamies adjoins the fort; they lodge partly under Apaquois, which are made of mat-grass. The women do all this work. The men belonging to that nation are well clothed, like our domiciliated Indians at Montreal; their entire occupation is hunting and dress; they make use of a great deal of vermilion, and in winter wear buffalo robes richly painted, and in summer either blue or red cloth. They play a good deal at la crosse in summer, twenty or more on each side. Their bat is a sort of little racket, and the ball with which they play is made of very heavy wood, somewhat larger than the balls used at tennis; when playing they are entirely naked, except a breech cloth, and moccasins on their feet. Their body is completely painted with all sorts of colors. Some, with white clay, trace white lace on their bodies, as if on all the seams of a coat, and at a distance it would be apt to be taken for silver lace. They play very deep (gros jeu) and often. The bets sometimes amount to more than eight hundred livres. They set up two poles and commence the game from the center; one party propels the ball from one side and the other from the opposite, and which ever reaches the goal, wins. This is fine recreation and worth seeing. They often play village against village, the Poux against the Outaoues or the Hurons, and lay heavy stakes. Sometimes Frenchmen join in the game with them. The women cultivate Indian corn, beans, peas, squashes, and melons, which come up very fine. The women and girls dance at night; adorn themselves considerably, grease their hair, put on a white shift, paint their cheeks witih vermilion, and wear whatever wampum they possess, and are very tidy in their way. They dance to the sound of the drum and sisiquoi, which is a sort of a gourd containing some grains of shot. Four or five young girls sing, and beat time with the druml and sisiquoi, and the women keep time and do not lose a step; it is very entertaining, and lasts almost the entire night. The old men often dance the M\edelinne (Medicine Dance); they resemble a set of demons, and all this takes place during the night. The young men often dance in a circle (/ touer) and strike posts; it is then they recount their achievements, and dance, at the same time, the war dance (des dccouVc7rtes), and whenever they act thus they are highly ornamented. It is altogether very curious. They often perform these things for tobacco. When they go hunting, which is every fall, they cnrry their Apaqlois with them to hut under at night. Everybody follows, men, women, and children, and winter in the forest and return in the spring. The Hurons are also near, perhaps the eighth of a league fronm the French fort. This is the most industrious nation that can be seen. They scarcely ever dance, and are always at work; raise a very large amount of Indian corn, peas, beans; some grow wheat. They construct their huts entirely of bark, very strong and solid; very lofty and very long, and arched like arbors. Their fort is strongly encircled with pickets and bastions, well redoubted, and has strong gates. They are the most faithful nation to the French, and the most expert hunters that we have. Their cabins are divided into sleeping compartments, which contain their misirague, and are very clean. They are the bravest of all the nations and possess considerable talent. They are well clad; some of them wear close overcoats (juste ae corps de cahot). The men are always hunting, summer and winter, and the women work. When they go hunting in the fall, a goodly number of them renain to guard their fort. The old women, and throughout the winter those swomnen who remain, collect wood in very large quantity. The soil is very fertile; Indian corn grows there to the height of ten to twelve feet. Their fields are very clean, and very extensive; not the smallest weed is to be seen in them. The Outaoues are on the opposite of the river, over against the French fort; they, likewise, have a picket fort. Their cabins reisenble somewhat those of the Hurons. They do not make use of Apaquois except when out hunting: their cabins in this fort are all of bark, but not so clean nor so well made as those of the Hurons. They are as well dressed and very laborious, both in their agriculture and hunting. Their dances, juggleries, and games of ball (la crosse) and of the bowl, are the same as those of the Poux. Their game of the bowl consists of eight small pebbles (noyauxr), which are red or black on one side, and yellow or white on the other; these are tossed up in a bowl, and when he who holds the vessel tosses them and finds seven of the whole eight of the same color he gains, and continues playing as long as he receives the same thing. When the result is different, the adverse party takes the bowl and plays next, and they risk heavy stakes on all these games. They have likewise the game of the straws, and all the nations gamble in like manner. In 1736 there were five hundred Indian warriors at Detroit, —two hundred each from the Huron and Ottawa tribes and one hundred from the Potowatamies. Bougainville, who was here in 1757, says: T'le Indians who usually come to trade at Detroit are the Hurons of the same tribe of those of Lorette, near Quebec, a perfidious and deceitful nation in whom we must never put confidence. There are also the Ottawas, the Sauteux, and the Potowatamies; these last named are of all the Indians the most faithful and the most attached to our interests. They have never murdered any Frenchmen, and have often warned us of the plots of other tribes, ORIGINAL INHABITANTS. 323 Cadillac says that the (ttawas wore, as an ornament, a little stone suspended from their nose, and that "Ottawa," the name of the tribe, signified "the nation with a hole in their nose." The French gave nicknames to most of the tribes in this region. The Wyandotts they designated as Hurons, because of their fierce aspect, comparing them to a wild boar; the Chippewas, as Sauteurs, from their residence near the Sault St. MIarie; the Menominees were called Folles Avoines, from " wild rice," one of their principal articles of food. 'he name I'otowatamie was abbreviated into lPomx. This nation \\as very uncleanly. All of the tribes kinown to the Americans, north of the Ohio and east of the Mississippi, had their council-fire at the village of the \Vyandotts, near the mouth of the I)ctroit River. The \Vyandotts alone had the power to convene the tribes, and when a council was to be held, application was made to them, and it \\as held at their village. This fact gave the locality a peculiar illll)ortance and made it familiar to all the Indians. At various times nearly all the noted Indian leaders visited this post. Pontiac, Tecumseh, and his brother The IProphet, were frequent visitors. John Logan, the Cayuga chief, whose speech to Lord I)unmore, Governor of Virginia, is familiar to every schoolboy, was here in 1771, and after the treaty of Chillicothe, lie resided for many years in this vicinity. IHe became a drunkard. and was killed, between I)etroit and Miami, by an Indian. 'he French trusted the Indians almost without fear. No seals or locks were placed on the storehouses, and the Indians came and went as they pleased. Under English and American rule the Indians were welcomed inside the stockade during the day, but at night all were turned out except those who were entertained by private persons. The Indians were always persistent beggars, and no Arab of the present day demands backsheesh more clamorously than (lid the red men of their French and English " brothers.' Their requests were generally acceded to, and the presents given them in some measure made up for the exorbitant prices charged them for articles offered in exchange for furs. Their likes and dislikes turned, like a pair of scales, according as they had free range or were restricted in their visitations to the houses. On September 18, 770, Captain Stephenson, of the Eighteenth Regiment, then in command, wrote to Sir William Johnson: My children here are quiet at present. They have all been to pay me a visit and suck my breast, to which they made so close an application that I told them I was afraid they would throw me in a consumption. They are very happy at having free access to my house, which my predecessor's delicacy would not admit. lish Government sought the favor of the Indians by annual gifts; and year by year up to 1836 thousands from various tribes gathered at Detroit, Sandwich, or Malden to receive the presents of their Great Father, the King. The American Government was compelled to follow this precedent. On November 24, I807, (Governor Hull wrote to the Secretary of \Var that within the two or three days previous seven or eight hundred Indians had called at Detroit, on the way to their villages, and that he had been compelled to feed thein. In the autumnl of 1812, W\liile the city was in possession of the lritish, the Indians conmmitted many otuitrages. A party of thcnl went in a body to rot) Colollcl Lambert Beaublien's orchard, but the Colonel attacked them with his fists, and made so couragcous a defense that he drove them from his premises. After the city again passed under American control, Colonel Cass was obliged to feed great numbers of the Indians. In one communication to the War I)epartment he states that for several years he fed an average of four hundred Indians per day. Between I814 and 1817, he disbursed $200,000 for the benefit of the Indians. To divide and distribute among them the goods and bounty of the Government was a task vexatious in the extreme, and almost unbearable, for it was impossible to satisfy the stupid and stolid savages. All the year round they came and went, and the agent's family was " driven from one extrenmity of the house to the other by them." In addition to the annuities the'" government blacksmith" repaired, free of charge, their guns and traps. There was always some excuse for their coming; and citizens were not surprised at any time to see a swarthy face at the window-pane; oftentimes the click of the latch was the only \arning of the entrance of one of the nation's wards. Some of them were gayly dressed with blankets of scarlet broadcloth, and strings of silver half-noons graduated in size from one to several inches in length, hung from neck to ankles, both in front and down the back. Their moccasins and leggins were gay with beads and the stained quills of the porcupine. The heads of the war chiefs were frequently gayer still with the vermilion and bear's grease which had been rubbed thereon. The squaws were not left behind. There was always some burden for them to carry, and the procession ceased on one day only to begin the next. Indians and more Indians, and still they came! Indians lazy and Indians drunk, Indians sick and Indians hungry, all crying "Give! give!" After receiving their payments, hundreds of them would lie about the city stupidly drunk; in August, 1825, they so disturbed the peace of the city, that the Council, through the mayor, sought aid from the governor to quiet and control them. A few of these Indians came to buy goods, and Even after this region was surrendered, the Eng 324 INDIAN AGENTS.-EARLY VISITORS. _ _ _~~~~~~~~ - -- - - were really trustworthy. An old account book of that period contains charges made against Indians called " Saw Goose's Wife," " Big Wind's Daughter," " The Rat," " The White Devil," " The Old Cow," "The Cow's Sister," "The Old Eagle and Son," " The Red Bird," and "The Turtle." INDIAN AGENTS. The disbursing of Indian annuities under British rule was intrusted to an officer styled an Indian agent, and an account book of the Macombs shows that I)uperon Baby was paid ten shillings sterling per day, for services as Indian agent, from October 10, 1778, to December 24, 1780. Under an Act of Virginia, on August I, 1780, John Dodge was appointed Indian agent for this region. By Act of Congress April I8, 1796, Indian agents were provided for, trading houses established, and $t5o,ooo was invested by the United States to carry them on. They were abolished May 6, I822. Under the Act of 1805, which organized the Territory of Michigan, the governor was constituted the Superintendent of Indian Affairs, and continued to act in that capacity until Act of June 30, 1834, which provided that after the Territory of Wisconsin was organized, the governor should cease to act as Indian agent. Since I836, persons have been appointed to act solely as Indian agents. The Indian title to land in this region was gradually extinguished; the Iroquois conveyed their title in 1784, and the Wyandotts, Chippewas, Ottawas, and other tribes, by treaties dated January i, 1785, August 3, I795, and November 17, I807. In I815 the whole number of Indians in Michigan was about 40,000; in 1825 there were nearly 30,000; in I880 there were 10,141, and 66,632 acres of land were reserved for their use. The following persons have served as Indian agents, the office being located in Detroit up to 1871: I836-I843, H. R. Schoolcraft; 1843-1845, Robert Stuart; 1845-I851, W. A. Richmond; 1851, C. P. Babcock; 1852 and 1853, William Sprague; 1853-1858, H. C. Gilbert; 1858-I862, A. M. Fitch; I862-1865, D. C. Leach; I865-I869, R. M. Smith; 1869-I871, James W. Long; I871, R. M. Smith; 1871-1876, George I. Betts; 876- 88, G. W. Lee; i83i-I886, E. P. Allen; i886-, M. W. Stevens. EARLY VISITORS. It is almost literally true that wherever a stream of water flowed the Jesuits and French commandants followed its course. From the Lakes to New Orleans and eastward to the Gulf of St. Lawrence, travelers, single and in groups, and eventually troops of soldiers, went, apparently with as little care as one now has in the journey of a hundred miles in a palace coach, through a settled country. It is impossible for us to realize the daring and bravery exhibited in those long and tedious trips. Champlain is said to have visited this locality as early as 1610; that he came here in 161 or 1612 is positively asserted in French colonial records. Two of the most important references to this subject are to be found in the ninth volume of the New York Colonial Documents. A translation from a French Memoir, given on page 303, says: " That from 1604 to I620 he (Champlain) has been more than five hundred leagues into the interior of New France; that he defeated the Iroquois and took possession of their river, and ascended that of Saguena towards the north. The relation of Sieur L. Escorbot, printed in 1612, confirms the same thing. At page 450 he says that they had received intelligence from upwards of five hundred leagues beyond the first Sault of the river St. Lawrence, including the great lake it flows from; and that they, likewise, had knowledge of the Saguena country towards the northwest, and of the Iroquois country to the southwest." In the same volume, on page 378, M. de Denonville, Governor of New France, in a memoir on the French possessions in America, says of Champlain: "In the years 161i and i612 he ascended the Grand river as far as Lake Huron, called the fresh sea. * * * He passed by places he has himself described in his book, which are no other than Detroit and Lake Erie." Notwithstanding these positive assertions, there seems to be no definite evidence that Champlain visited the Detroit. In the very complete translation of his works by the Prince Society, is the assertion that the location of the strait was described to him by the Indians as early as I603; but there is nothing in his works so far as published, to verify the statements made in the New York Documents; and although we do it with great reluctance, we must, at least for the present, concede that there is no satisfactory proof that Detroit was honored by a visit from the great French navigator. Although he may not have visited the site of Detroit, there can be but little doubt that some of the coureurs de bois reached here many years before there is any mention of the names of visitors. These adventurous traders and woodsmen went in every direction in their endeavors to procure furs, and they undoubtedly came to the site of I)etroit. One of the earliest Jesuit visitors to the region of the Lakes was Father Marquette. He traversed the Upper Peninsula of Michigan, in I668, but there is no evidence that he was ever at Detroit. He died at what is now known as Ludington, on Lake Michigan, May 19, 1675. EARILY VISITORS. 325 and in the spring of 1676 his remains were taken to Point St. Ignace, near Mackinaw. The first white traveler through the Detroit was possibly the Sieur Joliet; he is believed to have passed here in 1670. In this same year the Sulpitian priests Galinee and Dollier, with three canoes and seven men, passed through the Detroit and Lake St. Clair. They left La Chine July 6, 1669, and arrived at Detroit in the spring of I670. In his journal (alinee says that six leagues from Lake Erie, or not far from the site of Detroit, he found a stone idol, which the Indians regarded as influencing the navigation of Lake Erie, and to which they made sacrifices of skins and food, whenever they were about to embark on the lake. He says, " They broke one of their hatchets in breaking the idol in pieces, and then threw it into the river," adding, "G(od rewarded us for the pious deed, for we killed, during the same day, a deer and a bear." The next visitor, so far as known, was Joliet. In a letter dated November 14, 1674, Frontenac says that Sieur Joliet returned to Quebec three months previous, and that " a person can go from Lake Ontario and Fort Frontenac in a bark to the Gulf of Mexico, there being only one carrying place half a league where Lake Ontario communicates with Lake Erie. * * * He has been within ten days journey of the Gulf of Mexico, and he left copies of his journals with the Fathers at Sault St. Marie." These statements make it evident that Joliet passed through the Detroit. Unfortunately, on his return trip, near Montreal, his journals were lost. In the fall of I678, the Chevalier de la Salle sent fifteen men up the lakes to trade with the Indians; and on July 22, 1679, M. Tonty with five men went from Niagara to join them. La Salle, with Father Louis Hennepin, one other Franciscan monk, and thirty artisans, in Le Griffon, overtook those who had gone before, at or near the site of Detroit, on August o1, I679. Taking the others on board, Le Griffon proceeded on her way, reached Washington Island safely, and on September I8 started for Niagara, but was lost in the northern part of Lake Michigan. After it became evident that Le Griffon was lost, La Salle, with others of the party, crossed from St. Joseph to Detroit by land, arriving about the middle of April, I680. They then crossed the Detroit River, on a raft and proceeded to Niagara. In the spring of 1687 the Marquis de Denonville, Governor of Canada, determined on an expedition against the Seneca Indians of New York, who were enemies of the Canadian colonies. In preparing for the expedition, M. de Tonty, who commanded Fort St. Louis in the Illinois country, was ordered to go to Niagara by way of Lake Huron and lake Erie, and to unite with the force of Duluth at the Detroit. Tonty sent his subordinate, I)e la Forest, with thirty men, by way of the lakes, while he came over land direct to Detroit. His memoir, as given in the first volume of Louisiana Collections, page 69, thus narrates the occurrence: "After two hundred leagues of journey by land we came, on the i9th of May, to Fort Detroit. We made some canoes of elm, and I sent one of them to Fort St. Joseph (near what is now Port Huron), on the high ground above Detroit, thirty leagues from where we were to give the Sieur (Greyselon) Dulud (Du Luth), the commander of this fort, information of our arrival." They took formal possession of the strait as far down as the river St. Denis, this last stream being probably the one now known as the Rouge. Soon after, on June 7, the Sieurs La Forest, Durantaye, and Du Luth joined him at Detroit. The Sieur de la Durantaye had with him thirty Englishmen, whom he had captured on Lake Huron while on his way down from Mackinaw. They had been sent by Colonel Dongan, Governor of New York, to take possession of Mackinaw and the adjoining region, and to open up trade with the Indians. The entire party, consisting of one hundred and fifty Frenchmen, four hundred Indians, and the thirty Englishmen, soon left Detroit and proceeded to Niagara, where they arrived June 27, 1687, having captured, on Lake Erie, a second party, consisting of Major Mc(regor, sixteen white men and thirteen allied Indians, who were also on their way to Mackinaw. La Hontan, in his travels, makes no mention of a village or post at this place, but says that on September 6, 1687, he passed through the river. The arrival of Cadillac is elsewhere described; after him the first visitor of note was Father Peter Francis Xavier Charlevoix. who arrived June 6, 172I, and remained twelve days. CHAPTER XLVII. BIOGRAPH'Y OF CADILLAC.-THEI FOUNDING AND GROWTH OF DETROIT.MANNERS AND CUSTOMS.-MARRIAGE LAWS. MASONIC AND ODD FELLOW SOCIETIES. ANTOINE LATUMET DE LA MOTHE CADILLAC, the founder of Detroit, was born March 5, 1658, at St. Nicolas de la Grave, in the Department of Tarn and Garonne, France. The old parish records show that he was baptized when five days old by Rev. Father John Boscus, under the name of Antoine Laumet, and that he was the son of "Jean Iaumet, Advocate in the Court, and of Jean Pechagut, married." Previous to the birth of Cadillac, his father lived at Caumont, going from thence to St. Nicolas to serve in the capacity of advocate and judge. That he was a man of wealth is evident from various records of transfers of lands, both at Caumont and St. Nicolas. Some of the lands which Cadillac inherited from his father were known by the name of Laumet, and were in possession of his descendants as late as r748. The name Iaunlet is still attached to a portion of the lands, aEnd they are so designated on detailed maps of the province. The house belonging to the manor is one of the most comfortable dwellings in the vicinity, but unfortunately for historic purposes, it has been so thoroughly reconstructed that no trace remains of its appearance at the time our hero was born. The father and the relatives of Cadillac figure largely in the records of the communal deliberations of Caumont; they were evidently persons of good standing, not members of the nobility, but belonging to the higher class of citizens, who, at that time, found easy access to judicial and military employments. With regard to the various names assumed by Cadillac and applied to him by others, though there are some things as yet unexplained, there can be no doubt as to the identity of the person to whom they are applied. His signature, made at Castelsar- < rasin in 1729, at the time of the marriage of his daughter, harmonizes closely with his signature, written a quarter of a century before, in the records of St. Anne's Church in Detroit. The name Lamothe, appended to the registry of marriage at Quebec in 1687, is unlike his later signatures, but changes in form of letters are not at all unusual. The chief trouble with the record of Quebec is that the statement it contains in regard to his father and mother does not harmonize with the facts obtained from France. This, however, may be accounted for by the probability that the record was carelessly taken down, or hurriedly written. Possibly the intimation which we find in one old manuscript, that Cadillac left France on account of personal difficulties, is true, and if so, this may have been the reason for his change of name. The body of the marriage record gives the name of Cadillac as " Antoine de la IMothe." The name he signed was Lamothe Launay. The record, however, states that he married Marie Th6erse Guyon, and this name accords with all the information obtained elsewhere concerning the name of his wife. It was not at all uncommon, at that clay, or even in later times, for the same person to be designated by two or more names, entirely different from each other. Laumet was undoubtedly his family name; it was used both by him and his wife, as was also the name La Mothe; and sometimes both names were used in the same document. When Cadillac's granddaughter was married to Bartholomew Gregoire, at Castelsarrasin, she was styled Marie Th6erse de Laumet de Cadillac. In 1741 and 1742 the French records of transfers of land titles give the name of Cadillac's wife as Madame Therese de Guyon, wife of Antoine Laumet de la Mothe Cadillac. SIGNATURE OF LAMOTHE CADILLAC. The foregoing evidences of identity are conclusive, but if it were desirable, similar proofs could be almost indefinitely multiplied. [3261 BIOGRAPHY OF CADILLAC. 327 Of the early life of Cadillac we have no direct information. That he received a more than ordinary education, for that period, is abundantly evidenced by the style of his numerous letters and memoirs, by the difficult feats of navigation that he performed,' and by the various positions of responsibility which he was called to occupy. He had evidently received a religious training, was in sympathy with the Franciscan order, and his writings teem with illustrations from and allusions to Bible narratives. lie was a close observer, and his papers give evidence of exact knowledge. Almost without exception, his plans, as detailed in his letters, evince a statesmanship born of love for France and loyalty to the king. He thought out his work, and planned like a general. He aimed to provide for all contingencies, and in their business details, many of his letters exhibit rare commercial foresight. Those who criticized his actions found himl kcen and cautious in his retorts and resolute in maintaining his ground. HIe would neither yield his right of judgment nor his prerogatives as commandant. To quote his own words, he was " like a traveler, and did not propose to stop because all the curs barked at him." Wherever he was stationed, he studied the place and the people, and in every case made detailed reports concerning both, analyzing the character and needs of each and suggesting plans for the future. Some of his descriptions of scenery are full of poetic feeling. He was opposed in many of his plans, not only by the trading companies, but by the Jesuits as well. The latter order, for many years, was the dominant political force in the New World, as well as the strongest religious povwer. That the order hindered Cadillac's project is clearly shown in the correspondence of the period, which is still preserved in France and Canada. \While yielding the Jesuit fathers all deference in religious matters, Cadillac would not yield to their dictation in matters pertaining to the civil state. He not only knew his rights, but was able to maintain them, even against large odds, and did so with spirit and determiination. He llha rare penetration, could discern motives and plans, and as nothing escaped his observation, the members of that order found "a foeman worthy of their steel." As a scholar, Cadillac was nearly equal to the best of them; and whether wielding pen or sword, he grasped it with no uncertain hand. His history is certainly a remarkable one. During twenty years or more, he was a prominent figure in many sections of the continent. In gathering material for his history, I have been literally compelled to trace his footsteps in France and then in Canada. He was at Nova Scotia, on the coast of Maine, at Mackinaw, at Detroit, at Mobile, and on the Illinois, and then the Old World claimed his thought and time, and near the place of his birth his grave was made. The most dilligent search in France, Canada, and the United States has failed to discover any portrait of Cadillac. There is in existence but one description of his personal appearance, and that is entirely fictitious, and without historic foundation for a single feature. Indeed, the author of it says, "I never intended it should be received as resting on any other foundation" than that of imagination. Any representation, therefore, of the founder of our city is only of value as it helps to honor the nane of Cadillac. A picture of the old church where his bones repose has been obtained, and is deemed an appropriate frontispiece for the history of the city which lie founded. The date of his arrival in the New World is unknown. It is said that he had previously served in the army, and he seems to have held the rank of lieutenant when he came. In 1688 he was styled, in official documents, a Knight of the Royal and Military Order of St. Louis. Our history of him in America begins with his marriage at Quebec, on June 25, 1687, to Marie Therese Guyon, a native of that city, daughter of I)enis Guyon and Elizabeth Boucher. In I689 Governor Menneville designated him as a resident of Acadia, and said he had a habitation there; Quebec at that time was within the limits of what was styled Acadia. That his marriage was a happy one is evident. In September, 1701, when Madame Cadillac was about setting out from Quebec to join her husband at Detroit, several ladies said to her, " It might do if you were going to a pleasant country where you could have good company, but it is impossible to conceive how you can be willing to go to a desert country where there is nothing to do but to die of ennui." She replied, "A woman who loves her husband as she should has no stronger attraction than his company, wherever he may be; everything else should be indifferent to her." Madame Cadillac was accompanied on the trip by the wife of Lieutenant Tonty. They came by way of Niagara. So toilsome was the journey that it is no wonder that Father Germain, on August 25, I701, wrote to Cadillac, "Everybody here admires the nobleness of the two ladies, who have had the courage to undertake such a painful voyage to join their husbands." Ladies of the present day, imagine it if you can,a journey of one thousand miles in an open canoe, with Indians and rough canoe-men, in many respects worse than Indians, as companions. It was at a time, too, when winds and rains might be looked for, and we may be sure that their resting places en 328 BIOGRIAPHYY OF CADILLAC. 328 BIOGRAPHY OF CADILLAC.~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~ route were far from being equal to the poorest hotels of to-day. Surely there was occasion to admire their courage, endurance, and devotion. Cadillac's wife left their two daughters with the Ursulines to be educated. Her little boy, Jacques, born March I6, I695, came with her. Their oldest son, Antoine de la Mothe Cadillac, fils, born April 26, I692, an ensign in 1707, was already here. He came with his father. A son named Pierre Denis was born June 13, I699, and died July 4, 1700. A daughter, Marie Anne, born June 7, died on June 9, 1701. The records of St. Anne's Church show that in 1706 there was a daughter here named Magdaline, old enough to act as godmother. The same records also show the names of five other children, as follows: Marie Therese, baptized February 2, I704; Jean Antoine, baptized January I9, 1707; he died April 9, 1709; Marie Agathe, baptized on December 29, i707; Francois, baptized on March 28, 1709; and Ren6 Louis, baptized on March i8, 1710, he died October 7, 1714. The names of two sons, Joseph and Francois, are contained in the records of Castelsarrasin, and an old deed, elsewhere referred to, shows that they were both living in I738. We have therefore the names of eleven children; adding the two daughters left with the Ursulines, we find that Cadillac had at least thirteen children. The oldest son was alive in I730, but died before his father's property was divided in 1731. The daughter, Marie There'se, was married at Castelsarrasin, February I6, I729, to Noble Francis de Pouzargues. She died on February I, I753, and was buried the next day in the same church where her father had been laid. She left two sons; one, named Joseph, was born October 14, 1730; the name and date of birth of the other have not been found. Joseph Lamothe Cadillac, who afterwards became an advocate in Parliament, was married on June 5, 1732, to Mademoiselle Marguerite de Gregoire, and had two children, I\arie Therese, born April 29, 1733, and Marguerite Anne, born July 19, 1735. Francois, the last named of the sons of Cadillac, was married on September o0, 1744, at Castelsarrasin to Demoiselle Angelique Furgole, widow of Pierre Salvignac. They had no children. All of Cadillac's children, except Marie Th6erse, Joseph, and Francois, were dead in 1731, when his estate was divided. His wife, after his death, continued to live at Castelsarrasin, and died in the parish of St. Sauveur, in Castelsarrasin, in 1746. Joseph Lamothe Cadillac was living as late as 1748, and Francois in 174I, but both were dead in 1798. Marie Therese, daughter of Joseph and granddaughter of Antoine de la Mothe Cadillac, married her cousin, Bartholomey de Gregoire, son of Noble Bartholomey de (redgoire, in May, 1761, at Castelsarrasin. ''hey lived there until they came to America, to prosecute, in person, their claims to the lands granted to Cadillac on the coast of Maine. The history of this grant is as follows: In i688, Cadillac petitioned the Marquis de Denonville, Governor of Canada and Acadia, for the grant of a "place called Douaquec, near Mageis " (Machias), to consist of " two leagues on the sea shore, with two leagues in depth, within the land, the Douaquec River to divide the said two leagues in depth, one league to be taken on the west side and one league on the other side of said river," with the island of Mount Desert and other islands, which are on the fore part of the said two front leagues, " to hold in fief and lordship with high mean and low jurisdiction, he being desirous to promote an establishment there." The petition, and a concession made by the governor on July 23, I688, were presented to Louis XIV. at Versailles for confirmation, and on May 24, 1689, he confirmed the grant of the lands to Cadillac. The grant was recorded at Quebec on April 20, 1691. The lands lay in what was then Acadia, all that part of Maine east of the Penobscot River being then included in the territory made famous by the story of Evangeline. They afterwards formed part of the Territory of I'enobscot, or District of Maine, in the Commonwealth of Massachusetts, the State of Maine not having been created until 1820. At the time the Gregoires made their claim, the lands were in the County of Lincoln, and the River Douaquec was then called Taunton. The Gregoires claimed two leagues on the sea shore with two leagues in depth. one league in depth to be on the main land, and the other league to include Mount Desert and the neighboring islands, named A, Beans, Prebbles, Bragdons, Burnt, and Black, the six small islands known as the Porcupines, together with Island B, and the islands known as Jordens, Red, Slave or Stave, Nicholas or Iron Bound, Turtle, and Heron or Seamwells islands. The entire grant included I84,272 acres. While the Gr6goires were still in France, on June 15, 1785, the French consul made an application to Massachusetts on their behalf. His communication was referred to the Committee on Unappropriated Lands, and their report was referred to the Committee on Sale of Eastern Lands. They, however, made no report until the matter was again brought to their attention after the arrival in Boston of Monsieur and Madame Gregoire. In anticipation of going to America to prosecute this claim, Madame Gregoire made her will at Castelsarrasin on February I3, 1784, and she and her husband, on their way to America, were in Paris on August 26, 1786. They arrived in Boston a few days prior BIOGRAPHY OF CADILLAC. 329 to November 6, 1786, coming from France vz/ New York. On the date last named their second petition was presented. It set forth the facts above named, and also stated that, from the date of the grant, De la Mothe Cadillac was styled " Lord of Douaquec ' and Mount Iesert." The records of St. Anne's Church, in Detroit, abundantly bear out their assertion. He so styles himself in many places in those old records. The petition set forth that Cadillac granted leases to lands on Mount Desert, the originals of which were in their possession, and also that he took possession of the lands, and continued to occupy and claim jurisdiction over them until his death in I730, and that after the treaty of Utrecht, about 1712, the actual possession of the lands could not be proven, as the English usurped possession of the territory, but that as the owner could not be barred of his rights until sixty years' time had elapsed, the petitioners believed their claim to be good. They stated that the marriages, minority, and death of various heirs prevented them from prosecuting their claims earlier, especially as they had no hope of getting justice from Etngland. They brought a letter from La Fayette, recommending them and their claim to consideration, and the petition stated that Thomas Jefferson thought favorably of their claim. The governor brought their petition before the General Court of the Senate and House of Representatives in a special message, dated November 7, 1786, and on the same day a joint committee was appointed to consider the claim. The committee reported that the lands were in part occupied, and the Legislature, in order to ascertain the equities of the case, sought an opinion from the Supreme Court, but the court declined to give an opinion on a case not actually before it. The subject was then referred to the attorney-general, and the Gregoires remained in Boston awaiting a decision. This was so long delayed that in May, 1787, the French consul again called the attention of the Legislature to the subject, and on June 6, 1787, it was referred to a Joint Committee of the Legislature. On June 29 the Senate reported favorably on the claims of the Gregoires, and on July 5, 1787, the House of Representatives concurred in the decision. All of the lands they claimed, then possessed by the commonwealth, either by original title, confiscation, or forfeiture, were to be given up to the Gr6goires, provided they would, within one year, make terms with such of the then possessors of any of the lands as the Committee on Sale of Eastern Lands should deem entitled to consideration. The Legislature also, by special Act, provided for their naturalization; and on October 29, 1787, they and their three I Spelled also Donagoet and Donaquec. children, Pierre, Nicholas, and Marie, were naturalized. The conceding of the claim of the Gregoires was really a graceful act, but the good feeling then entertained towards the French nation, on account of services rendered in the Revolutionary War, undoubtedly had much to do with the favor with which the claim was received. The lands were actually within the limits claimed by Massachusetts at the time Louis XIV. made the concession. Cadillac's selection of the locality did credit to his judgment. Mount I)esert Island is the largest on the coast. It has an area of 6,ooo acres, is fifteen miles long and from eight to twelve broad. On it there are thirteen mountains, with large and beautiful lakes far up their sides, and the entire island is remarkable for picturesque and beautiful scenery. It now forms part of Hancock County, Maine, and to this day the land titles of the eastern half of the island are all traced from the Gr6goires as the first owners. After obtaining the grant, the (;rgoires made their home on Mount I)esert Island for several years. On August 4, 1792, they sold their interest to Henry Jackson, and removed to Boston, where they were in August, I798. They afterwards returned to Mount Desert. Mrs. Clara Barnes Martin, in her account of the island, says that they died about I81o, and that their graves are shown just outside of the present cemetery, near Itull's Cove, on the east side of the island. \Vhen the cemetery was enclosed, their graves were left outside by mistake. In 1874 a white wooden cross was erected to mark their site. In 1882 there was living at Lille, in France, a Madame Gregoire, nie de Fremiot, probably the only remaining descendant of the Gregoires. In the time of Cadillac, the French colonies were under the control of the Naval Department, consequently Cadillac and other soldiers engaged in the service of the colonies belonged, not to the army, but to the navy, and were rated as marines. Cadillac may be said to have been both sailor and soldier, and seems to have been equally at home on water and on land. IHis courage is undoubted; he went fearlessly among the savages, and was always ready to brave the dangers of a new post. Immediately after his marriage he went to Port Royal in Acadia, remaining there between one and two years, and in 1689 going to France, probably to secure the grant of Mount Desert. At this time he seems to have been a captain of infantry, but without much means. When he went to France, he left his wife in Acadia, whither he returned in seven months. Soon after we find him in command of a vessel. A letter from Count Frontenac to the colonial minister, dated October 20, 1691, states that La 330 BIOGRAPHY OF CADILLAC. Mothe's vessel had been captured by a Boston "corsair." In February, I692, Count Frontenac, the governor-general, proposed to send him to France to give intelligence as to the condition of the Province. Pontchartrain, in reply, asks that he be sent " by the first ship," so that he might give minute information to aid in the proposed attack on New York and New England, as he is considered to be the "best instructed on plans, soundings, and all observations." In fulfilment of this request, Cadillac returned to France. While there, or soon after his return to Canada, he made other suggestions, which are indicated in a letter from the king to Count Frontenac, written in March, 1693. In this letter the king approved of CadiIIac's plan of having vessels of light draft to defend the rivers and lakes of Canada from the English, and authorized Frontenac to give the command to Cadillac. It is doubtful if this was done, for on October 24, I693, Frontenac wrote to the French colonial minister that an officer named Mome, having been guilty of insolent and unbecoming behavior, he had given the company lately under his command to La Mothe Cadillac. In I694 he was at Quebec, and on September I6 Count Frontenac appointed him commandant of Michilimackinac and of all the country beyond. Frontenac says, " We have thought that we could not make a better choice than to appoint Lieutenant de Lamothe Cadillac, Captain of the troops of the detachment of the Marine, whose valor. wisdom, experience, and good conduct have been manifested on several occasions." On his way to his new command, Cadillac left Quebec September 24, and arrived in November or December at Mackinaw, where he succeeded M. de Lovigny. He remained there until 1699, when he asked to be relieved, and returned to Quebec. His chief motive in asking to be relieved was to further the project he had formed of establishing a post at Detroit. In order that there may be no break in the history of this post, we temporarily pass over Cadillac's establishment here, and trace his subsequent career. The date of his leaving Detroit is not definitely known. He was certainly here as late as May 7, 1710, for on that day he certified to the records of St. Anne's Church. He had been appointed the day before to the governorship of Louisiana, but knowledge of the fact could not have reached him for several months, and he was probably at Detroit until the summer of 1711, when there are some indications that he went to France. It is certain that his oldest son and daughter were here until August 19, 17 I, for on that day they registered at St. Anne's as godfather and godmother at a baptism. On September 14, 1712, Antoine Crozat was granted the exclusive commerce of the Province of Louisiana for fifteen years, together with all the lands that he should establish himself upon, and the proceeds of any mines. Cadillac was now newly commissioned by Crozat, and is said to have been promised a portion of the profits from the province. If Cadillac was in France at this time he probably returned to Acadia before going to Louisiana, for the vessel that carried him there had on board twenty-five Breton girls, who, the record particularly mentions, "came of their own free will." He arrived at Dauphin Island, near Mobile, on May I7, 1713, in the frigate Baron de la Fosse, of forty guns, commanded by M. de la Jonquiere. His wife, sons, and daughters came with him, together with several servants. The vessel also brought a large quantity of munitions of war and provisions for the settlement. During the year Cadillac caused a number of houses to be built, and the settlement prospered. The colony had originally been located further north, but a short time prior to the arrival of Cadillac it was established on the present site of Mobile. Cadillac sought to obtain supplies for the colony from Mexico, and sent out expeditions in various directions to examine the resources of the country, and discover the mines which almost every one believed to be in existence. He visited the Illinois Country, explored the lead mines near what is now Dubuque, and returned to Mobile in October, 1715. The following month he sailed for France, possibly to report his discoveries. He returned in I716. On March 9, 1717, three French frigates arrived at Mobile, bringing M. de 1' Epinay, who was commissioned to succeed Cadillac. The Dudlow, one of the vessels, returned to France in June with Cadillac and I)uclos, the king's commissary, as passengers. Disputes between Cadillac and his associate officers were undoubtedly the occasion of his recall. It is evident that his principal accusers were not trusted by the Government, for M. i)uclos, one of the chief defamers of his administration, was recalled by the same order which relieved Cadillac. La Harpe says that the arrival of Cadillac would certainly have produced a good effect in Louisiana but for the jealousy existing between him and Bienville. It was manifestly Cadillac's clear judgment and strong will that aroused the dislike of his associates. The old records contain abundant evidence of their jealousy and of parties formed against him. M. de Bienville was especially his enemy. He asserts that Cadillac wanted him to marry his daughter, but it is quite as probable that he was a rejected suitor. In view of the judgment and ability displayed elsewhere by Cadillac, some portions of his THE FOUNDING AND GROWTH OF DETROIT. 33I dispatches from Louisiana seem weak and illadvised. That he was dissatisfied with the country, with the position he was placed in, and the shabby support he received from the mother country, is clearly apparent. It has been claimed that in Louisiana he showed himself weak in character, childish in spirit, and utterly without capacity for the position he occupied; but careful examination will show any candid mind that such representations are founded on a partial and imperfect knowledge of the man. It should be remembered that in Cadillac's time, New France, as well as the mother country, was governed by cabal and intrigue. Officials, priests, and traders vied with each other in crafty schemes for personal and churchly aggrandizement. Hundreds of witnesses, in the shape of old letters, can be produced, showing that these different parties were divided by jealousy and distrust, and the evidence is now abundant and conclusive that Louisiana historians have hitherto failed to study Cadillac's doings and statements in the light of his previous life and of the society and circumstances that surrounded him. We have seen that he sailed for France in I717. After having wandered all over America, he returned to his birthplace to "fight his battles o'er." In August, I721, his wife was at St. Nicolas dc la (rave, and there are records of the sale of property at Caumont by them in that year. Cadillac himself was then in Paris, having gone thither to obtain the governorship of Castelsarrasin. Just a year later, in August, I722, a decree authorizing his appointment was issued, but the details were not settled until December I, when he was duly commissioned governor and mayor. For this office he paid I6,500oo livres, I,500 being for a tax or bonus of two sous per livre on the principal sum of I5,ooo. He was also to pay 300 livres yearly to the king, but this amount he was authorized to collect of the city. On April I6, 1723, he transmitted his commission from Paris to the council of the city for registration, and on September 9, 1723, it was read to the council at Castelsarrasin and recorded. His appointment was made under an edict of Louis XIV., of the same year in which was repealed an edict of 1717, giving municipalities the choice of their own officers. How long he held the office is uncertain. In 1724 the king took away the municipal offices he had granted, and Cadillac possibly was superseded. He, however, continued to reside at Castelsarrasin, and his remains were interred in the old church of the Carmelites at that place. The church was confiscated in 1791, at the time of the French Revolution; becoming national property, it was turned into a prison and greatly changed, therefore the exact location of his tomb cannot be found. HIe died at midnight on October 15, I730, and was buried on the following day. THE FOUNDING AND GROWTH OF DETROIT. There are circumstances that indicate the possible existence of a trading post at Detroit, fifteen years prior to the coming of Cadillac; but if any such post existed, it was composed of only a few coureurs de bois. In Volume IV. of the New York documentary collections are reports of several councils between the English and Indians, which clearly indicate that no lermanent post existed at Detroit prior to his coming. While stationed at Mackinaw, Cadillac became convinced that the Indians must be gathered in one locality before the Government could gain control over them. The soil and situation at Mackinaw were not favorable for a settlement, and Cadillac thought that the English could be more easily prevented from trading with the western Indians if a French post were established at Detroit. Fearing that a written communication would not sufficiently convince the French Government of the wisdom of his plans, the Governor of Canada determined to allow hi:n to present them in person, and accordingly he sailed for France. H-is plans met with favor, and after an interview with Count Pontchartrain, Iand a personal examination of his project by Louis XIV., he received the authority he desired. For the building of the fort,5oo00 livres was allowed hiin; he was. appointed commandant, and the king agreed to grant an allowance for the subsistence of himself and wife, two children, and two servants. It was no easy task that Cadillac had undertaken. Even before he came, he knew that his enterprise would be opposed by the Jesuits at Mackinaw and the traders at Montreal. He knew also that the English and the Iroquois would destroy the post if possible. Ile had, however, fully counted the cost, and had achieved allnost perfection in his plans. Thle friendly Indians were to be gathered about the settlement, so that thef oureurs dce bois could find neither furs nor favorites elsewhere, and in case of attack the Indians and French could help each other. Cadillac was strenuous in urging that the Indians be taught the French language, that they might understand for themselves the proposals of the king, and not be dependent on priests or interpreters, both of whom would, on occasion, accommodate their interpretation to selfish purposes. Cadillac also favored the intermarriage of the French and Indians. This was contrary to custom in many of the settlements, but was permitted at I)etroit, and there can be no doubt that these unions greatly served the colony. 332 THE F()UNDING AND GROWTH OF DETROIT..............................._ The French colonial documents show that on October i6, I700, M. de Callieres wrote to Count Pontchartrain as follows: I shall send Sieur de la Mothe and Sieur de Tonty in the spring to construct a fort at Detroit. My design is that they shall go by the Outaoues (Ottawa) River in order to take possession of that p)o;t from the Lake Huron side, by that means avoiding the Niagara passage, so as not to give umbrage to the Iroquois. Returning to America, Cadillac arrived at Quebec on March 8, 170I. The same day he left for Montreal, where he arrived March 12, and for some weeks busied himself in arranging for the trip. All was finally in readiness, and on June 5 he left Montreal, having with him M. de Tonty as captain, and Messrs. Dugue and Chacornacle as lieutenants, with fifty soldiers in blue coats with white facings, also fifty emigrants and two priests. The Chevalier de Beauchene, in a volume published in Paris ill 1733, says that he and a company of Algonquin Indians started with Cadillac as an escort, and that, on account of a quarrel, he returned. He gives a detailed account of the affair, but there are various indications that the narrative is one of the fictitious works that were not infrequent at that dav. Cadillac's party came by way of the Ottawa River and Lake Huron, arriving on July 24, 1701. The convoy consisted of twenty-five canoes, which, besides the soldiers and emigrants, brought supplies of various kinds essential to the building and establishment of a new post. Arriving at Detroit on a hot summer day, the canoes were drawn up on shore, and all of the new comers were soon sheltered in the leafy groves that here and there extended almost to the river's edge. The site of the stockade was selected, and ere long the sound of axes resounded through the woods. Holes were dug for the palisades, and the stockade was soon completed. The locations of chapel, magazine, store, and dwellings were next determined, and before August had passed away, the settlement was fully established. A few weeks later the soil was broken, and the first wheat sown on the Detroit River was carefully bestowed. On December 6 Cadillac marked out a place for the Huron village, and in lFebruary and May of the following year he called the Indians together for a council. These councils, then and after, were the occasions of much local interest, for the Indians were always arrayed in their savage finery; and as they expected gifts they also brought them; as the "talk" progressed, presents were given and received with almost every point made by either side. When the settlement was a year old, lacking three days, Cadillac for the first time left it, going to Quebec to conclude an agreement with the trading company which had obtained control of the post. He returned on November 6. These days. were dark ones. There was so much opposition to the establishment that but little trading was done, and between the king and the company, the soldiers were so poorly paid that, in 1703, nine of them deserted. They were glad to return, however, on a promise of pardon, which Cadillac was quite willing to grant, for soldiers as well as settlers were few in number. He was constantly seeking to enlarge his force, and finally, in a letter of June 14, 1704, Pontchartrain announced that Vaudreuil had been ordered to give him as many soldiers as he asked Cadillac only being required to pay for their transportation. Pontchartrain also said that all that was just and reasonable Cadillac should have to help him establish the colony, that he had fully explained the matter to Vaudreuil, and that Cadillac would have no further trouble. The letter concludes with these words: "I am leaving you absolute master of this post. Use your effort to succeed at Detroit, and you will not lack for concessions, nor even for a post more considerable than that which you have." Notwithstanding the explicit directions to Vaudreuil, the intrigues of traders and others caused him to delay giving the assistance he was required to afford, and in the meantime the trading company brought such charges against Cadillac that in the autumn of 1704 he was compelled to go to Quebec to answer them. In June, 1706, after long delay, he was completely vindicated, and the king again gave him full control of Detroit, and in August of that year Cadillac returned. After his return the colony began to flourish. He induced many families to settle along the strait, and his oldest son, in a memoir, dated I730, and addressed to Count Maurepas, claimed that he transported one hundred and fifty inhabitants to Detroit, together with cattle, horses, and other animals, at his own expense, and that he expended for various improvements fully 150,000 livres. The boldness of the early settlers was not exceeded in any other colony on American soil. The settlers of Jamesto\wn and Plymouth Rock were located near the coast, and in an emergency could more easily escape than the first settlers of I)etroit, these last established their firesides nearly a thousand miles from the sea, and were literally surrounded by thousands of savages, many of them known to be hostile, and cannibals as well. The colonists were mostly persons of limited means, many of them artisans, whose services were essential in such a colony. Some were gentlemen by birth, who, having failed to inherit a fortune at home, or having THE FOUNDING AND GROWTH OF DETROIT. 333 L lost their inheritance, brought to this western world their empty titles and well-filled scabbards to make homes and fortunes of their own. Among those who were specially prominent at an early day, Robert Navarre may be mentioned. In his veins coursed the proudest blood of France. The ancient records of Meaux show that Jean Navarre, who married Ierette Barat in 1572, was the son of Antoine, Duke de Vendome, and halfbrother of Henry IV., King of France and Navarre, the predecessor of the great line of kings forming the Bourbon dynasty. The Robert Navarre, who arrived at Detroit in 1728, was a lineal descendant of this family. On February Io, 1704, he married Marie Blarrois, daughter of Francois Lothmnan de Barrois, whose father came to Canada as "Agent (;,lerale of the Compagnie des Indes" in I665. From this marriage sprang a large family, of whom the most noted was the eldest son, Robert. He was born in 1739, and married Louise de Marsac, a granddaughter of Jacob de Marsac de Lommesprou, an officer who came with the troops when Cadillac founded Detroit. The children of the Navarres intermarried with many of the prominent families, notably the Macombs, (;odfroys, Anthons, Brevoorts, and Campaus. The line in France counts among its descendants representatives of the proudest families of the old nobility, among whom we may mention the name of the Count Leon Clement de Blavette, of Versailles, from whose heraldic tree the descent of Navarre was obtained. The signatures in the early records of St. Anne's Church indicate that most of the officers and early settlers were persons of good education for the time. Very appropriately, the first child born in the colony was a daughter of the founder, Marie Therese Cadillac. In a letter, dated August 31, 1703, Cadillac says, "No one has yet died at this post." 'he first death, so far as known, was that of Father Del Halle, who was killed by an Indian in June, 1706. The first person who died thereafter was Jean Lasalle, who died January 24, 1707. The first marriage, where both parties were French, occurred on MIay 5, 1710, when Jean Baptiste Turpin was married to Margaret Fafard. The next marriage took place on June 12, I710, between Martin Cirier and Mary Ann Bone. The records of St. Anne's show that many of the soldiers brought their wives with them, and nearly all the hAabifazs had large families; in one case, one mother is credited with thirty children. " In 1707 there were fourteen births, in 1708, thirteen. At this time they had already begun to build houses outside the fort, and we find in the suburbs a flour mill, and further on, a house and a barn. There were also two hundred and three arpents of cleared ground, ten head of cattle, and one horse." Up to November 14, I708, only thirty-nine inhabitants had houses inside of the fort; and the whole number of French settlers was sixty-three, of whom thirty-four were traders. In I709 the king withdrew the soldiers, and left Cadillac to manage the settlement without military aid. The same year twenty-nine discharged soldiers settled at the post, among them men named Marsac, Durocher, La Ferte, and St. Aubin. The total population was then about two hundred. After Cadillac left, and up to 1719, it was deemed uncertain whether the post would be sustained. Many families therefore left, and the settlement at this time was no largcre than when first established. During this period, the births averaged only twto per year. In 1719, under the impetus given by John Law and his Mississippi schemes, emigrants again began to join the colony, and in 1722 the population once more reached about two hundred, and there were from six to eight births per year. The Chapoton, Godfroy, Goyan, and Laderoute families were among those who came in I722 or soon after. Year after year discharged soldiers and emigrants from further east continued to arrive. In 1730 the births averaged ten or twelve yearly, and the population continued to increase. There was, however, great mortality among the children for nearly fifty years. In order to promote emigration, on May 24, 1749, Galissonniere, the governor-general, published in all the parishes of Canada- the following proclamation: Every man who will go to settle in Detroit shall receive gratuitously, one spade, one axe, one ploughshare, one large and one small wagon. We will make an advance of other tools to be paid for in two years only. He will be given a Cow, of which he shall return the increase, also a Sow. Seed will be advanced the first year, to be returned at the third harvest. The women and children twill be supported one year. Those will be deprived of the liberality of the King, who shall give themselves up to trade in place of agriculture. This proclamation accomplished its purpose, and the same year forty-six persons came to I)etroit, most of them from Normandy, on the lower Seine, with nine or ten families from Montreal. The next year fifty-seven arrived, and an official census of the same year showed a population of four hundred and eighty-three, which, with the floating population, made fully five hundred and fifty persons; among them were thirty-three women over fifteen years of age, and ninety-five under fifteen; there was also a garrison of one hundred men. The births at this time numbered about twenty-five per year. The prosperity of the colonists is also shown by the fact that they possessed one hundred and sixty horses, six hundred and eighty-two cattle, and over two thousand domesticated fowls. 334 THE FOUNDING AND GROWTH OF DETROIT. In 1751 a large body of immigrants came. The expenses of their journey were paid by the Government, and land was granted to twenty-three of them. IMost of those who came in 1751 and 1752 were yo(ung men, and Cdelron, the French commandant, wrote to the king that wives for the newcomers was their greatest want. In 1752 a bad( harvest and the dangers of the war with the English caused immigration for a time to cease. Other discouragements also beset the colony. On April 21, 1752, M. de Longueuil wrote: "Famine is not the sole scourge we experience; the small-pox commits ravages; it begins to reach Detroit. Over eighty Indians died of the disease at the adjacent villages, including Chief Kinousaki, who was much attached to the French." The natural growth of the settlement caused the enlargement of the fort in 1754, and by this time the colony had so prospered that there was an average of thirty births, and from seven to eight marriages yearly; and notwithstanding the war, the settlement so fully held its own tlat in 1760 the births had attained to about forty per year. In 1755, uhen the English banished the Acadians from Nova Scotia, many of the fugitives found a refuge in Detroit, and thus, although many about this time went from Detroit to Vincennes, the colony grew and prospered. In 1764, when Laclede founded St. Louis, many went thither from I)etroit, reducing the population of the town and vicinity from two thousand five hundred, to eight hundred, including Indians. A census of 1765 showed that there were three hundred and fifty families at Detroit and in the immediate neighborhood. The following copies of official documents contained in the Haldimand correspondence, on file in the British Museum at London, and copied for the Department of Archives of Canada, give a variety of interesting details as to the population and resources of Detroit on various dates. The first reads as follows: 3 x o 0 U South side of Fort 222 2o3 Northl side of F(ort 21I 3o6 'Ihe Fort i 20 83 On ftog Island 20o 17 'otal 473 6o(i I4-7 ( (n w i X v 117 21 241 424 22 62 32 I2I 412 628 c 228 T 127 93 2 284 401, 174 617 5 '68 7 512 4( 2, 02 28 7.sI 4~ i2,6o2f'28 39' 60 4 3( I, o6 ai C= 63 93 157 I I N. B. ----The Troops and Naval Departmenlt, with their Cattle, &c., are not included in the above. The men servants are generally more numerous, several being now hunting and at the Indian villages. Although all tlhe farms are calculated at forty acres in depth, eight of them run eighty and one sixty. P. DEJEAN. A census of the settlement, taken by order of Governor Hamilton, on April 26, 1778, showed the following totals: Men, five hundred sixty-four. W\omen, two hundred seventyfour. Young men and boys, five hundred thirty. Young women and girls, four hundred thirty-eight. M\ale servants, one hundred seventy-two. Female servants, thirty-nine. Slaves, one hundred twenty-seven. Total, two thousand one hundred forty-four. Oxen, four hundred seventy-eigh t. Cows, eight hundred eightyfive. Heifers and Steers, six hundred fifty. Sheep, four hundred seventy. Hogs, one thousand three hundred and twelve. A survey of the settlement of Detroit, taken March 31, 1779, was as follows: Two hundred thirty-nine in (;arrison and Navy. Five hundred Prisoners and Extras. (?) Two hundred seventy-two Male inhabitants. 265 Women, including 34 connected with the army. 253 young men. 10o Young women. 484 Boys. 402 Girls. 60 Male slaves. 78 Female slaves. 413 Oxen. 779 Cows. 619 Steers. 1076 Hogs. 664 Horses. 313 Sheep. On November I, I780, the settlement of Detroit had 394 heads of families. 374 married and young women. 324 young and married men. ioo absent in Indian country. 455 boys from 10 to 15 years. 385 girls from 10to to 15. 79 Male slaves. 96 Female slaves. 772 Horses. 474 Oxen. 793 Co s. 36i Steers. 279 Sheep. I,o16 Hogs; and there were 12,083 acres of Land under cultivation. A GENERAI. RETURN OF ALl. THE INHABITANTS OF DETROIT, THEIR POSSESSIONS, CATTLE, HORSES, S} RVANTS, AND SLAVES. TAKEN BY PHILIP DEJE.\N, JUSTICE OF THE PEACE FOR THE SAID PLACE, THE 22D )DA OF SEPTEMBER, 1773: F E^;.,- ~ c:~ Is- I,, I c a~ i- g 0 c 0 0 i = ~ - b The state of the settlement of Detroit, taken the 20th of July, 1782, was as follows: 321 heads of families. 254 married women. 72 widows and married women. 336 young and married Men. 526 Boys. 503 Girls. 78 Male slaves. Io1 Female slaves. I,112 Horses. 413 Oxen. 452 Heifers. 447 Sheep. 1,370 Hogs. 4,075 ullshels of Wheat sown last fall. 521 acres in Indian Corn. 1,849 acres in Oats. 13,770 acres under cultivation. 3,000 bushels Potatoes supposed to be in the ground. I,ooo barrels of Cider supposed will be made. In 1791 and 1792 the colony received an accession from Gallipolis. Some of the unfortunate emigrants who had been deluded thither by false representations, came to Detroit when that bubble 6 3 26 22 14 14 Total 298 225 1 84 THE FOUND)ING ANI) G;ROWTH OF DETROIT. 335 hurst, and found both honies and friends. The large grants of land, wvith rations for a specified time from the fort, offered by the E"nglish, induced the settlement of a numlber of Scotch and English families of the highest respectability, yet French continued the p)redon-linant language, andc soon after 1796, when the towx.n passedi under Amiericanl conltrol, a Utimber (Jf French inimiierants arrived. After the Surrender the Eng-lish began to build F'ort Malden, and the next year many persons went from JDetroit and founded Animherstburg. T he first census taken by the Territory of M ichigan, onl October 1, i805, show\,ed 525 hea~Ids Of families at D~etroit, and 667 m~ales over sixteen yeaCrs of ae Ab~out this time emnigration from the Eastern States Iegan, but the Bostonians,'' as they were called, were not at first miale welcomne by either French or Elnglish. The first American settlers weI-re Solomion Sibley, John Whipple, D~r. William Brown, \V. illiami RLISSell, Christian Clemens, Jamies Chittenden, Benjamin Chittenden, Dr. McCoskry, J ames Henry, Ellijah BrushI, I lenry B3. Brevoort, Col. Henry J. Hunt, Augustus Langdon, andl Major Whistler. From i1817 to 1 830 the growvth of the city was slow but constant. The Gazette dlid its part to set forth the advantages of the Territory, and a local poet, in one of the ntimbers for August, 1 824, thus sings its charmis: MICHIGAN. Know ye the land to the emigrant dear, Where the wild floowr is blooming one- half of the year; Where the dark-evt d rho fs of t le ntivle rare Still inert in the (cotuniil itit patnt in the chase Where artoics hav e tallied, by daiy tinl by night, To strike or relpel, to stirrentltr or fight Know ye the lanti of the billowe and breeze, Trlat is ptiised, like an isle, mrid fresh seater seas, Whose fiirests are attple, whose prairies are fine, 'Whose sioil is proiducvtiv e wxhose climate beiiign Retmiite friiii extrcintOs ne ither tiirrid nor cold, 'T is the land if tlte sickle, the pie atid the fold 'T is a region nii eve err forgets or mistakes, 'T is the laned fur improvement, the land of the lakes. Ouir streaims are the clearest that iiatiire stiipplir~s, Antd I tale's beauties are itarkeed in our sties, And the isle-spotted ]lakes iliac encircle iiir plains Are the largest and purest this platiet cotitains. Of the means that fostered immigration, none were more potent than the miaps aiid gazetteers isstted by John Farmier; the first appearIled inl 1825, and many thottsands of cop~ies of his miaps (especially in 1830) were sold in the Eiastern States,' and as they furnished all the informiation obtainable, and in the most accttrate manner possible, they were greatly influential in prom-oting emigration. Fifteen thousand emigrants arrived inl 1830, and in 1831, 1834, antI 1836 partictllarly, the steamboats wvere crowded with passengers for Michigan and the West. The Free Press of May i9, 183f, said: To say nothing of those whIo have arrisetl by land, and throughi Lake Erie biy sail sessel, the fiollowiting steatobomats airrived here witbiti thle last si-etk. Thle Enterprise, with 250) passenigers thle W in. leon1, 150 the Ohio, 350 thle t (lriY Cla1y, 480 the Stiperiiir,,550; the 'Shetlduti Thompson, 2i()i ritld thle Niagara, 200: amoimiting to inore than z-,ooo, and tiemirly all in the primec ot life tnistly heads of fatiilies who save come for thle purpose of puirchasing land atitl settlitig in Ii cli gant. Stich xvas tlte tide of immnnigration (luring the entire season of navigation that both steam and sail vessels were crowded to their tltmost cap)acity. On October 7, 1 834, four steamiboats brought nearly 900 passengers. In January, 1836, three steamboats-two first class and one second class-arrived each daty, wvith an average Of 260 passengers each way. Onl May 23, 1836, 700 passengers arrived, anI (during the month there were ninety steamboat arrix-als, each boat loaded with passengers. The roads to the initerior were literally thronged with wagons. A careful estimate made in June by a citizen showved that one wagon left the city- ex-ery fiV-e m1intttes during the twelve hours of daylight. In 1837 thle imi-migration wvas ftilly as large; there was an average of three steamiboats a day, wvith fromn 200 to 300 passeng-ers each, and onl one occasion in the month of.May,, 2,400 passengers landed in a single day. The larger lpart oif these imimigrants wvere fromn New Nork, and the rest mostly from New Eng-lanid. It is probable that, in proportion to its popttlationi, IDetroit, andl ini fact the entire State of 'Michigani, haks a, larger percentage of New York and Newv E-nglanid pseople than any other western city or State. At one timle it seemed as though all N'ew En~glanid was coming. The emigration fever pervaded almost every hamilet of Newx England, and this song was very popular, and is known to heave been largely influtential in promoting emiigration: MICHlIGAN IA. Come all ye Yankee farmers who weisha to change your lot, Who 'ye spttnk enough to travel beyotud ytiur imative spot, Atid leave behind the village ehiere Pa and Ma do stay, Come follow me, atith settle its Mlichigania,Yea, yea, yea, in Micitigania. I 'ye lirarn of your Penobscot, way dosvn in pa rts of Maine, 'Where timber grows in plenty, bitt darts the bit of grain Atid I have heard oif Quodtdy and yotir Piscataqua, lint thley camut hold a cantdle to Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, to Michigania. Ilhici there's oin Variiiiimmit, welli, what d'ye think of that? To be amine, tie gals icr- huamiIsonitti, aitl time cattle very fat Ptit whii ammiimmg the mmmiii ia iits, 'tmid chuotidls arid snows, would sit.1; Vhmen he caim buy a pirairie in Aliichilganta?Yea, yea, yea, in Iliirhigania. 336 THE FOUNDING AND GROWTH OF DETROIT. -- Then there 's your Massachusetts, once good enough, be sure, But now she 's always laying a tax upon manure, She costs you pecks of trouble, which the de'il a peck can pay, While all is free and easy in Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, in Michigania. ''here is the land of lBlue laws, where deacons cut your hair, For fear your locks and tenets will not exactly square, Where (beer that works ont Sunday a penalty must pay, While all is Scripture measure in Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, in Michigania. Then there 's the State of New York, where some are very rich; Themselves and a few others have dug a mighty ditch, To render it more easy for us to find the way, And sail upon the waters to Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, to Michigania. Then there 's your bold Ohio, I 'ye often heard them tell, Above the other places, she surely wears the bell; But when you come to view her, I will be bound you'll say She falls quite far below our Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, our Michigania. Then there is Indiana, and Illinois too, Besides the grand Missouri which rises to our view, All these are fine indeed, and stand in nice array, But they must all knock under to Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, to Michigania. Upon the Clinton River, just through the country back, You '11 find, in shire of Oakland, the town of Pontiac, Which, springing up a sudden, scared wolves and bears away, That used to roam about there, in Michigania, Yea, yea, yea, in Michigania. And if you follow downwards, why, Rochester is there, And further still, It. Clemens looks out upon St. Clair, Besides some other places within Macombia, That promise population to Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, to Michigania. If you had rather go to a place called Washtenaw, You '11 find the Huron lands the best you ever saw; The ships sail to Ann Arbor right through La Plaisance Bay, And touch at Ypsilanti in Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, in Michigania. Or if you keep a going a great deal further on, I guess you'll reach St. Joe, where everybody's gone; There everything, like Jack's bean, grows monstrous fast,they say, And beats the rest all hollow in Michigania, Yea, yea, yea, in Michigania. Then come, ye Yankee farmers, who 've mettle hearts like me, And elbow-grease in plenty, to bow the forest tree, Come, take a quarter section, and I '11 be bound you '11 say, This country takes the rag off, this Michigania,Yea, yea, yea, this Michigania. No considerable number of Irish were here prior to I833, but at that time numbers of them came. The Germans began coming in the spring of 1832, and the Poles in 1870. The numbers of the various nationalities in the city, according to the census of 1870, were as follows: France, 760; Germany, 12,647; England, 3,282; Ireland, 6,970; Scotland, 1,637; Holland, 31o; Hungary, 310; Norway, 523; Poland, 325. Out of a total of 79,577, 44,196 were born in America. The census of I880 gives the number of citizens born in various states and coun tries as follows: France, 721; Germany, 17,292; England, 4,200; Ireland, 6,775; Scotland, 1,783; Holland, 275; Hungary, 64; Norway, 27; Poland, 1,771; Africa, 2; Australia, 15; Austria, 128; Bohemia, 557; British America, 10,754; China, I; Cuba, 3; Gibraltar, 2; Greece, I; India, 9; Italy, 127; Malta, 3; Mexico, 6; Russia, 77; Sandwich Isles, 3; South America, 17; Spain, 8; Sweden, 55; Switzerland, 421; Wales, 71; at sea, 24. Every State and Territory in the Union, except Montana, has contributed to our population. New York heads the list with 7,722, Ohio sent 1,965, Pennsylvania 998, Massachusetts 922, and Illinois 568. Out of a total of 116,340 there were born in America 70,695, and of these 2,300 were colored. A curious illustration of the lack of knowledge concerning this region is afforded in the address of Mr. Lymbruner, agent of the Province of Canada, read in 1793 before the House of Commons. The address, which had been prepared in Canada, was endorsed by Chief Justice Powell, and contained this passage: Although there is a small settlement at Detroit, which is, and must be considered of great importance as a post to trade with the Indians, yet it must appear to this Honorable House that from its situation it can never become of any great importance as a settlement. The falls of the Niagara are an insurmountable obstacle to the transportation of such rude materials as the produce of the land. As the farmers about Detroit, therefore, will have only their own settlement for the consumption of their produce, such a confined market must greatly impede the progress of settlement and cultivation for ages to come. The following figures do not verify the prediction: Census of Detroit. Years. 1796 i8io i8I2 1812 1817 1819 1820 1828 Population. Years. 5o0 I 1830 770 1 834 800 1840 900 1845 i,i1o I 850 1,442 I854 1,517 i86o Population. Years. 2,222 1864 4, 968 i868 9,192 1870 13,065 1874 21,019 188o 40,127 1884 45,619 Population. 53,170 68,827 79,577 lOI,225 116,342 I34,834 The census of 1884 does not do justice to the growth of the city, because many of the people doing business in Detroit, and in suburbs that are practically a part of the city, are counted in Springwells or Hamtramck instead of Detroit. If the census had included all who really form part of the population, the number would have reached fully 150,000. The per cent. of increase of population by decades is as follows: I830-I840, 400 per cent; I840-1850, 102 per cent; 1850-1860, IOI per cent; I860-1870, 74 per cent; I870-I880, 46 per cent. An average increase of only fifty per cent. will give the following population in the years named: I890, 85,00ooo; 1900, 275,000. MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. 3o7 The number of families in I860 was 8,973; in I870, I4,717; and in i880, 20,493. The statistics, very carefully taken by the Water Commissioners in June, 1887, showed a total of 35,959 families. As compared with the population, the average in each decade was about five persons to a family. As compared with the school census in the same, decades, there was an average of less than two children between five and twenty years of age to each family. The percentage of children to the total population in various decades was as follows: 1840, 22 per cent; I850, 33 per cent; i860, 31 per cent; 870, 33 per cent; 880, 34 per cent. The number of births in Detroit in 1880 was 4,565, and in I881, 3,611. MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. Many of the earlier colonists mingled freely with the Indians, and adopted so many of their habits that they became more like Indians than white men, for, as Cadillac says in one of his letters, "With wolves one learns to howl." The coureurs de bozs in their habits resembled the wildest and worst of the men in the lumber-camps of to-day. and the rioting and squandering of the lumbermen, on their return from the woods, is paralleled by the doings of these wild and reckless men of the olden time. Almost every individual was designated, beside his own name, by a sobriquet indicative of 'some characteristic or incident in his life, and frequently these names entirely usurped the original ones. In the list of claims for farms, and in other old records, we find that Joseph Andre was called Clark; Chesne, Sequin; La Butte, Laderoute; Godet, Marantette; Casse, St. Aubin; Velair or Villier was called St. Louis and now Lewis; Hubert was called La Croix; Prieur, La Fleur; Trotier, Beaubien; Iescompte, Labadie; Vernier, Ladouceur; Billou, L'Esperance; Cerait, Coquillard; Vissier was called La Ferte, now spelled Lafferty. In some cases the French name has been Anglicised, Charboneau becoming Cole; Laframboise, Berry; Gobiel, Gubby; Le Blanc, White; Le Noir, Black; La Pierre, Stone; and Meunier, Miller. Several of our most prominent families have thus entirely lost their original names. The almost universal dress of the male population in the olden time is portrayed in one of Judge Campbell's unpublished fireside poems, as follows: Each sported as he walked the floor, Such garments as the others wore; Though some-a careful eye might noteHad extra cambric round the throat, Not as a sanitary stay To ease their creaking vertebra2, But as a figurative sign Of an unbending moral spine. 22 But wrapped to meet the wintry air. 'T would make a modish tailor stare To see what garments, quaint and warm, Kept off the rigors of the storm. Upon the head,-the noblest part,Well fashioned by the hatter's art, Clung close and warm an ample cap Of seal or otter's downy nap. And when the wind more fiercely beat And dimmed the air with driving sleet, Raised from the shoulders of the coat The traveler donned his huge capote, Within whose folds he could defy The scowling of a polar sky. That coat-no dainty cloth of France Bedizened with extravagance — Was shaped of blanket, black or blue, Though not unknown the scarlet hue. Bound were the cuffs and pocket flap With fur sufficient for a cap, And on the collar too enoucgh To make his wife a stylish muff,While moccasins of Caribou Covered his feet instead of shoe. But in the shoepac's clumsy bags, Stuffed at the toes with blanket rags, The dweller in the rural shade His stout extremities arrayed. Gartered about his knees were seen Leggings of baize of lively green,His blanket wrapper 't was polite To mention by the name of white, For though through darkening hues it went, 'T was only time or accident. His mighty buck or woolen mittens Would hold at least a brace of kittens; And when he sought to cut a dash He girt him with a crimson sash, And crowned his long and curly locks With spoil of woodchuck, coon, or fox, While o'er his shoulders broad the tail Streamed like a comet on the gale. Some older and sedater folks Were draped in flowing camlet cloaks, With soft lined collars stiff and high, Concealing all beneath the eye, Whose bushy brows would overlap And seem to fringe the hairy cap. After the English came, wealthier citizens and officials wore black silk breeches and hose, with shoe and knee buckles, which, with a stiff stock and beaver hat, were signs of gentility. For the women, swanskins were in great demand. They were used to trim bonnets and capes. Bright colors were much in favor; and the French damsels understood the art of tying a handkerchief or a ribbon in the most attractive manner. Simultaneously with the coming of the English, larger and more attractive stocks of goods gave opportunity for display, and at an evening party, honored by the presence of the wives and daughters of the officers and leading families, there was no lack of silk and satin gowns, hosiery, and ribbons. Silk and "gold-spangled shoes" were worn, and Fashion had her devotees, as in our day. Colonel 338 MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. I)e Peyster paid his respects to one of her worshippers in the following lines To A BEAUTIFUL YOUNG LADY, WHO HAI) ON ONE OF THOSE ABOMINABLE STRAW CAPS OR BONNETS IN THE FORM OF ABEEHIVE. While you persist that cap to wear, Miss, let a friend contrive So that the bees, when swarming near, Sha' n't take it for a hive. For, lest you some precaution take, I '11 be in constant dread That, through a mouth so sweet, they 'd make A lodgment in your head, Where such loud buzzing they would keep, And so distract your brain, That you 'd not get one wink of sleep Till they buzzed out again. Wherefore, to disappoint the bees, What I 'd advise is this: Close your sweet lips, when, if you please, I '11 seal them with a kiss. Books and papers were practically unknown for very many years. News from the outside world came in the form of letters, and these were few and far between. Personal and family plans and adventures were the usual subjects of conversation, and these, with numerous alarms from the Indians and the changes made by succeeding commandants, filled up the measure of the passing years. The tables were well supplied. Beavers' tails, wild ducks, turkeys, partridges, quails, bear-steaks, venison, whitefish, hulled corn, succotash, and baked French pears were common articles of diet; later on, many of the best families cured their own pork and beef, and hams and shoulders were smoked at the smoke-house of some enterprising grocer. A family of bovines and eight chickens were sent from Montreal in the fall of 701; they soon multiplied, and the lowing of cows and the cackling of hens helped to make the wilderness seem a home. There was never more stock raised than was needed for home consumption, and after the War of I812, for nearly twenty years, a large share of the provisions was brought from Ohio and New York. The Gazette for July 25, 1817, announced that "during the preceding two weeks, more than 1,700 head of cattle were brought from Ohio." Even now little livestock is raised in the vicinity, but in 1883 about 8o0 cattle, 1,600 sheep and calves, and 1,200 hogs were weekly slaughtered in Detroit. The consumption of flour is nearly 4,000 barrels per week; and a single firm supplies 3,000 gallons of milk daily to customers. Prior to I830 maple sugar was the only sugar in common use; it was not made in cakes, but was finely grained by stirring. The Indians cooked their fish in the boiling sap, and fish-bones and scales would sometimes stare at you from the bottom of the coffee-cup. It was used also as sweetening for tea, and the daily drink of many of the early American settlers was "wintergreen tea sweetened with maple sugar." The mention of this delicious drink will bring up many visions of the past to some of the older inhabitants. A graphic picture of olden days is given by Governor Cass in a letter dated May 31, 1816, addressed to the Secretary of War. He says: The Indian trade originally furnished the only employment of the people of this country, and their only resource against want. As traders, engages, and voyageurs, they spent one half of the year in labor, want, and exposure, and the other in indolence and amusements. Associated with the Indians, they contracted their manners and gained their confidence. As a necessary consequence, their farms were neglected, and the agricultural products of the country formed a small portion of the subsistence of the inhabitants. When the failure of game reduced the profits of this trade, and rendered it more difficult for the persons engaged in it to procure employment, the people were driven to other pursuits, and the fatal mistake of educating a whole community for a single and temporary business is now deeply felt and acknowledged. Driven at length to seek resource in tilling the productions of the country, the state of the farms shows the extreme defect of agricultural knowledge. The spinning-wheel and the loom are unknown in the country. Long since the Territory was ceded to the United States, and to a certain extent, to the present day, the farmers were in the practice of drawing their manure upon the ice of the river during the winter, that it might be carried into the lake in the spring. The wool of the sheep was thrown away, and even now, I presume, a pound of wool is not manufactured in the Territory by any person of Canadian descent, and four fifths of its inhabitants are of this class of population. Within twelve years the making of soap for family purposes was a curiosity which attracted the attention of the people, and although the wonder has ceased with the novelty, yet few have attempted to profit by the experiment. That there were gentlemen in 1837 cannot be doubted, for Mr. McCabe, in his directory of that year, names fourteen persons whose occupation was that of "gentlemen." Truth compels us to add, however, that according to his record there was but one "gentlewoman " in all the city, or at least only one who was so specified. At the present time the habits and manners of the people partake largely of the characteristics of both the French and English races. The result of this commingling is manifested in the entire social and business life of the city. Detroit is certainly conservative; but coupled with caution there is a spirit of enterprise that, building upon sure foundations, is yearly pushing the city into the front rank of American cities. There can be no question that it is a remarkably desirable place for those who wish, while making money, to enjoy life as well. Various European nationalities are represented in the population, but no one of them in sufficient numbers to control public sentiment; and, as this is true also of the population of the entire State, both Detroit and Michigan stand for the New England of the West. Our citizens will compare in personal appearance MANNERS AND CUSTOMS. 339 --- with the best representatives of the American people. All qualified observers agree that in no eastern or western city are fine-looking women as numerous as in Detroit; fresh and fair complexions are the rule; and among manufacturers of ladies' shoes it is well known that more fine and small-sized shoes are sold here than in any other city of equal population. The isolated condition of the first habzftans, and their consequent dependence upon each other, naturally made them friendly and social; and partly for protection, and partly for companionship, the farms of the early settlers were of narrow frontage on the river, and the houses only a quarter of a mile apart. A number of the first comers were of ancient and gentle lineage, and they brought the graces of an older civilization, "the small, sweet courtesies of life," to the settlement on the Strait. When the English came, the numerous officers of a large garrison, and the Scotch and English merchants that soon followed, contributed to form a society that could hardly have been more attractive. After it was surrendered to the United States, the recognized importance of the post caused it, for many years, to be under the command of noted officers; several wealthy and educated eastern families also made it their home at this period; and after the War of 1812, a number of leading families came from Marietta, Ohio, the then educational centre of the West. The society of this western city thus secured an element quite exceptional in polish and culture, that has affected its characteristics to the present time. Probably no city in the West has possessed, or maintains, more of the old-school friendliness and cordial hospitality than is here manifested. In I83I a correspondent of an eastern paper made this report: The society of Detroit is kind, hospitable, and excellent. A strong sense of equality and independence prevails in it. A citizen whose conduct is respectable and decorous is respected by all and associates with all. Very little etiquette is practised here. Genuine friendliness and cordiality are the agreeable substitutes. Afternoon visits even to strangers are as orthodox, and even as frequent, as morning visits. Recently domiciled here, we can speak feelingly upon this subject. A frank, cordial, and general civility, at once peculiarly gratifying, and indicative of the character of the Michiganians, has been extended to us. One of the most agreeable and best established traits of hospitality at Detroit is that decent strangers are always invited to the weddings which take place in the city. The spirit indicated in this letter now as then actuates the inhabitants of Detroit, and worth is a passport to the best society. One of the most noticeable social events that has occurred in Detroit, and in view of all the facts, perhaps one of the most notable occurring in the country, was the complimentary banquet tendered to C. C; Trowbridge by the citizens of Detroit, on December 29, 1882, on the occasion of his eightythird birthday. That which caused the occasion to be exceptional and unique was the fact that, living in Detroit continuously for sixty-three years, and occupying during that time various positions of trust and responsibility, he had so endeared and recommended himself to two distinct generations, including men of differing political creeds and religious faiths and of various nationalities, that they eagerly embraced the opportunity of doing him honor. The tribute was offered him solely on the ground of his personal worth as the first gentleman of the city, embodying a rare combination of courtesy, scholarship, and business ability. At the banquet compliments were literally rained upon him, and the highest compliment of all was the universal feeling that he could not be injured by the words and tokens of appreciation so heartily bestowed. It was a remarkable fact that he had witnessed the growth of Detroit from the little French town of I, 110 inhabitants to the metropolis with a population of 13o,ooo. The reception and banquet took place at the Russell House. The toasts were: "Our Guest," "The Banks and Bankers of the Northwest Territory," " The French and English Rule in Michigan," " The Wars and Military Heroes of Michigan," "Vigorous Age the Product of Virtuous Youth," "The Highways and Byways of Michigan." Hon. G. V. N. Lothrop presided at the banquet, and responded to the first toast. In making his acknowledgments, Mr. Trowbridge read an interesting account of old-time citizens with various reminiscences. The other speakers were Hon. T. P. Handy, of Cleveland, Hon. James V. Campbell, of Detroit, President James B. Angell, of the University, Rev. Dr. T. C. Pitkin, of Detroit, Colonel C. G. Hammond, of Chicago, Hon. R. G. Horr, and Hon. Thomas W. Palmer. Letters of regret were received from General U. S. Grant, General M. C. Meigs, Hon. Hugh McCulloch, General H. H. Sibley, Colonel John N. Macomb, James Watson Webb, and others. The occasion will be long remembered by all who enjoyed it as one that awakened aspirations after all that is truest and noblest in character. No sermon or address could have been more effective. The testimonial was timely, for a few months later, on Tuesday, April 3, 1883, as the result of what seemed at first only a slight cold, Mr. Trowbridge passed away. The custom of New Year's calls has been common since the beginning of the century. In I879 it became the practice to print in the daily papers the names and addresses of those intending to receive calls. Many persons of various nationalities have or I 34o MANNERS AND CUSTOMS.-MARRIAGE LAWS..... ganized societies for the promotion of social feeling. Among those of a purely social character is the Burns Club, organized February 26, I867, and the New England Society, organized November 6, 1873. This last has no stated times of meeting. The Phoenix Social Club, composed principally of Jewish members, was organized September 15, 1872, and incorporated in November, 1875; it occupies the second and third stories of the block on the southwest corner of Woodward Avenue and Duffield Street. The rooms were dedicated November 24, 1875, and in their own Hall the Club have lectures and readings, dramatic and musical entertainments. A society called the Detroit Club was organized in May, 1875, and had its quarters in an elegant building on West Fort Street, but its members became inactive, and its effects were sold at auction on October 8, 1878. A second club by the same name was organized and incorporated October 4, 1882, and fitted up a building at 72 Lafayette Avenue, which was formally opened November 18. The Club subsequently purchased the residence on the northwest corner of Fort and Wayne Streets. The officers of the Club have been as follows: 1882, president, Hugh McMillan; secretary, S. T. Douglas; treasurer, John V. Moran. In I883, I884 and r885, the officers were the same, except that James V. Campbell, Jr., was treasurer. In 1886 and 1887 the officers were: President, Don M. Dickinson; secretary, S. T. Douglas, Jr.; treasurer, E. I.. Lewis. The Grosse Pointe Club was organized June 24, I885, and has a beautiful location, of about seven acres, on the coast of Lake Ste. Claire, the grounds costing $I6,ooo and their elegant club house 835,ooo. This Club, when its list is full, will number three hundred members. 1 he initiation fee is one hundred and fifty dollars, with an annual assessmnent for the maintenance of the Club. The club house is Ioo x 140 feet in size, with a wing on the west side. The following persons served as officers: Presidents, 1885 and 1886,W.G. Thompson; 1887-, R. A. Alger; secretary, 1885-, Cameron Currie; treasurers, I885 and 1886, W. A. Butler, Jr.; I887-, C. B. Hull. MARRIAGE LAWS. Long before the French came, dusky lovers strayed through the primeval forests, exchanged whispered vows, and made presents of wild roses. water lilies, and fleurs de Us. Indian husbands, however, were less attractive than Indian lovers, and the French when they came carried off the fairest of the forest. To their credit be it said that they treated their Indian wives with so much more attention than they usually received that the squaws soon saw the difference, and Cadillac reported that the Indian women " preferred a Frenchman of any sort to a savage." He encouraged these alliances as a means of protection to the settlement, and halfbreeds soon formed the larger per cent of the population. There are several families still in Detroit with some ancestral Indian blood in their veins. In order to provide wives for the soldiers, the commandants, from time to time, applied to the officials in France to send out "widows and marriageable young ladies "; and at various times companies of maidens, with outfits provided by the king, came to cheer and bless the settlement in the wilderness. No one was allowed to marry without permission. Even Tonty himself, in 1717, was obliged to solicit a marriage permit that he might marry an attractive widow. Of the soldiers, no one was allowed to marry who could not show probable ability to support a family. The presence of the commandant was essential to wedding festivities, and there was much formality attendant upon all the preliminaries. The notary, with his quill and ink-horn, was a man of eminent importance on these occasions, and the contract of marriage which he drew up specified with exact care the dowry of the bride and named at length all who were present at the wedding. Marriages under the English law were solemnized either by the minister or a justice of the peace. The French maidens were not averse to having English suitors, and were so eagerly sought that they often stepped from childhood into married life. Tradition says that when Ir. G. C. Anthon.:-arried Miss Jadot she had a doll in her arms. \Vlere both parties were French less than thirty years often covered the united ages of both bride and groom. Under the laws of the Northwest Territory, males of seventeen years and females of fourteen might be married, but the consent of parents or guardians was required if the man was under twenty-one and the woman less than eighteen years of age. The bans were required to be published for at least fifteen days before the marriage ceremony, either from the pulpit on Sundays or by notice posted in some public place by a justice; or a license had to be obtained. By territorial law of August 2, I805, a justice was given authority to marry persons where one of the parties lived in the justice's district; both parties, however, were required to be over twenty-one years of age, or written consent for the one under age obtained from the father or guardian. By law of October 31, 1820, fifteen days' notice of an intended marriage was required to be posted in some public place, or a public declaration to be made by some minister on two different occasions, MARRIAGE LAWS.-MASONIC AND ODD FELLOWS SOCIETIES. 341 the first publication to be made at least ten dayg before the marriage; or a license obtained of the clerk of the county court. Under the same law males of eighteen and females of fourteen years of age might be married, but males under twenty-one and females under eighteen were required to have the consent of their father or guardian. 'he Revised Statutes of I838 required that at least one of the parties should be examined on oath as to the legality of the proposed marriage, and under the same law males of seventeen and females of fourteen years of age might marry regardless of the consent of parents or guardians. The Revised Statutes of I846 fixed the age at which males might marry at eighteen years, and females at sixteen years; and no change has since been made as to marriageable age. In the Catholic churches, by church law, the names of persons proposing to marry, and of the parents of each, are required to be announced three times from the pulpit, unless a special dispensation is obtained. In the Hebrew congregations, the groom is required to obtain from the president of the congregation a permit, and must satisfy him that he can be lawfully married, and give his own and his bride's nanme; and on presentation of the permit, the rabbi is authorized to perform the ceremony. Under present state law, any justice of the peace and any pastor of a church may solemnize a marritage, but a law of \ay 31, 1887, requires that a marriage license be obtained from the county clerk, the applicant being required to give for record in the office, and also for insertion in the license, the age of the parties, their color, full names, the bride's maiden name in case she is a widow, their place of residence and birth, their ages and other details. The license is delivered to whoever performs the ceremony, and they must return it to the county clerk, with the certificate which is attached to it filled out, giving the date of the marriage, names of the witnesses, and their own signature. The person performing the marriage ceremony is required, within twenty days thereafter, to deposit in the county clerk's office a record of the date and place of the marriage, the Christian and surnames of groom and bride, and the maiden name of the bride if a widow, also the color, age, place of birth, and residence of the parties at time of the marriage, and the names and residences of the two witnesses, together with his own name and official title or position. MASONIC AND ODD FELLOWS SOCIETIES. Within four years after the post of Detroit was surrendered to the English, a lodge of Masons was organized. The warrant for its organization was issued on April 27, 1764, by George Harrison, Grand Master of the Province of New York. The warrant provided for a " Lodge of MIasons, No. i, to be held at Detroit under whatever name the said Master and his officers shall please to distinguish it." Lieutenant John Christie, of the Sixtieth Regiment, was named as Master, Samson Fleming, Senior Warden, and Josias Harper, Junior Warden. The lodge was named Zion Lodge. It surrendered its warrant, and received a new one from the Grand Lodge of New York on December 3, I806, and was registered as No. 62. This Lodge was in existence, bearing the same number, in 1817. A second Lodge was instituted in 1773, registered as No. 356, and two years later Union Lodge No. 394 was created. A fourth Lodge was organized by the Grand Secretary, James Davidson, under authority of Thos. Ainslie, of Quebec, Deputy Grand Master. The warrant was dated September 7, 1794, and authorized James Donaldson as Master Mason, Edward Byrn as Senior Warden, and Findley Campbell as Junior Warden, to hold a Lodge "in the City of Detroit, in Upper Canada" on the first Monday of every calendar month. The Lodge thus authorized was duly established on December 19 at the house of James Donaldson, and was known as Zion Lodge No. io. It was in existence as late-as December 28, I80I. A notice of one of the meetings of this lodge, copied from the original document, is as follows: DETROIT, 23d Aug., I799. BROTHER MAY,You are requested to meet the Master Wardens and the rest of the Brethren at the house of James Donaldson, on the 3ist day of Aug., immediately at 6 o'clock in the evening, being a Lodge of Emergency, and this you are to accept as a special summons from Zion Lodge No. io of the Registry of Lower Canada. Fail not on your 0. B. By order of the Body BEN. RAND, Sec. of Zion Lodge. Under authority of the Grand Lodge of New York, the fourth warrant organizing a lodge bearing the name of Zion was issued on June 13, I844, and constituted John E. Schwartz, Master; R. A. Forsyth, Senior Warden; and David Thompson, Junior Warden, of Zion Lodge No. 99. A fifth warrant, dated June 5, I844, issued by the Grand Lodge of Michigan, authorized the name of Zion Lodge No. i, and constituted David Thompson, Master; Ezra Williams, Senior Warden; and R. A. Forsyth, Junior Warden. The annual meeting was at the regular communication preceding the full moon in December of each year. On December 21, 1821, Detroit Lodge No. 337 was instituted, and a few days after, on December 342 MASONIC AND ODD FELLOWS SOCIETIES. -- 26, the officers were publicly installed in the Protestant Church on the corner of Woodward Avenue and Lamed Street, under the direction of Charles Jackson, Jeremiah Moors, and Levi Cook as a Committee of Arrangements. It appears from old records that Detroit Lodge No. 337 obtained a new charter as Detroit Lodge No. I, from Michigan Grand Lodge on October 5, 1842, and again from some source on May 28, 1844, and from New York, as Detroit Lodge No. ioo, on June 14, I844, and lastly, as Detroit Lodge No. 2, from the Michigan Grand Lodge, on June 5, I845. The following Detroit Lodges were chartered on the dates named: Union Lodge of Strict Observance No. 3, on January i8, I852; Ashlar Lodge No. 9I, January I6, I857; Oriental Lodge No. 240, January Io, I868; Schiller Lodge No. 263, April 13, 1869; Kilwinning Lodge No. 297, January iI, 1872. Monroe Chapter No. I was organized at Detroit on February 3, I818, under a dispensation granted by DeWitt Clinton, of New York. They worked under this until February 7, I82I, when the General Grand Chapter granted them a charter. They were incorporated by Act of March 14, 185I. Peninsular Chapter No. I6 was organized February II, 1857. The first Grand Lodge of Michigan was formed on June 24, I826, by delegates from Zion Lodge No. 3 and Detroit Lodge No. 337 of Detroit, and Menominee Lodge No. 374 of Green Bay, and Monroe Lodge No. 375. Four special communications were held, and one annual one on June 6, 1827, after which the Grand Lodge did not meet until June 2, I841. At a meeting of the Grand Lodge on May 22, I844, it was recommended that old lodges obtain new charters from New York; and as a new Grand Lodge was to be organized in accordance with the recommendations of this body, the old Grand Lodge was discontinued, and the present Grand Lodge organized on September I7, I844. Detroit Commandery No. I was organized January 8, 185; Monroe Council No. i, May 19, I856; Ancient and Accepted Scottish Rite Carson Lodge of Perfection, May 21, I86; Carson Council Princes of Jerusalem, May 21, i86I; Mount Olivet Chapter Rose Croix, May 21, I862; Michigan Sovereign Consistory S. P. R. S., 32 degrees, May 21, 1862; Detroit Lodge of Perfection, June I8, I869; Palestine Lodge No. 357, December 20, I88o; the Grand Imperial Council of the Red Cross of Constantine was organized April Io, 1874. Masonic meetings were originally held at private houses. About 1826 a second story was added to the old council house, on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street, and the new story was used for masonic meetings. After the burning of the building in 1848, meetings were held in the upper story of a brick building afterwards known as the Garrison House, on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Cass Street. The Masonic Hall on Jefferson Avenue, between Griswold and Shelby Streets, was begun in I85T, the corner-stone being laid on September 2. The building was completed in I852, but the Hall was not formally dedicated until June 24, 1857. In I876 many of the lodges found quarters in the new building of the Wayne County Savings Bank; and in the summer of I88I, the lease of the property on Jefferson Avenue having expired, all of the lodges left the old hall. OLD MASONIC HAIL. One of the most notable events in connection with Masonry was the Knight Templar procession of June 9, 1870. Many commanderies from various parts of the United States were present, and over one thousand Knights participated. IBy a noticeable coincidence, exactly nine years later the visit and parade of the Palestine Commandery of New York took place, and this also was a notable occasion. MASONIC AND ODD FELLOWS SOCIETIES. 343 The Michigan Masons Mutual Benefit Association was organized June 12, 1874, and incorporated January 7, 1878. It is solely for the benefit of Master Masons not over fifty-five years of age. The order of Odd Fellows was introduced into Detroit by the institution of Michigan Lodge No. i, on December 4, 1843, under a charter granted by the Grand Lodge of the United States. Joshua I,. Smith and Iartford Joy were the first two elected officers. The lodge was incorporated November IO, I845, and prospered to such an extent that on April I3, I844, the second lodge in the State was organized as Wayne Lodge No. 2, with A. R. Terry, John Robinson, Jr., and Charles S. Adams as its first three elective officers. Other lodges were instituted in the following order: Olive Branch Lodge No. 38, September 20, I849; Washington Lodge No. 54, February 22, I85I, incorporated January 6, 1873; Detroit Lodge No. 128, February 29, 1867; Ingersoll Encampment gress and Lamed Streets. It was built in 1846, and dedicated on February 24, 1847. An oration was delivered on the occasion by George C. Bates, in the Baptist Church, corner of Fort and Griswold Streets. The building had a frontage of fifty-two feet on Woodward Avenue and was eighty feet deep. It was owned by a stock company, composed exclusively of Odd Fellows, In 1855 most of the stock of the association and the management had passed into the hands of one or two( persons. Two of the lodges and the encampment then leased the two upper floors in Hull's Block, and fitted up a hall which was known as New Odd Fellows' Hall. This hall was dedicated on the I3th of September, i855, by Grand Master William M. Fenton, and was occupied by all the lodges until the hall on _L.~F= ODD FELLOWS' Hi.\L., \W()OOD\ARD AVFNUE.I. 1857. ODD FELLOWS' HALL, HEAl) OF MONROE AVENUE. No. 29, March 19, I868; First French Lodge of the West No. 147, October 15, 1870; Germania Encampment No. 45, November 21, 1870; Sides Lodge No. 155, February 22, 1871; Columbus Lodge No. 215, September 29, 1873; Riverside Lodge No. 303, September I2, 1877; Amity Lodge; January I, I88o. The Detroit Patriarchs were organized in September, I875. The organization is composed of Odd Fellows who have taken the Royal Purple degree. On September 20, 1876, at the Grand Reunion in Philadelphia, they were complimented as the best drilled company present. The first Odd Fellows' Hall in the city was on the west side of Woodward Avenue, between Con Monroe Avenue was built. A small room in the original hall was occupied from 1870 to 1876 by Detroit Lodge. The building was torn down in 1877, to make room for a new block. In I874, Washington Lodge No. 54 purchased a lot on Randolph Street facing Monroe Avenue, and built Odd Fellows' Temple thereon. The corner-stone was laid on August 20, 1874, by the officers of the Grand Lodge, at which time an address was delivered by John N. Ingersoll, R. W. Grand Warden. The hall was completed in February, 1875, and occupied by Washington Lodge No. 54, Michigan Lodge No. i, Detroit Lodge No. I28, and Sides Lodge No. I55. It was dedicated on February 22, 1876. CHAPTER XLVIII. SLAVERY AND THE COLORED RACE. SLAVERY began almost with the settlement. The Indians who gathered near the fort brought with them captives taken in battle, and some of these were transferred to the French. In I760 there were both Indian and African slaves in Detroit. Most of the Indian slaves were from the Pawnee tribe, and a few from the Osage, Choctaw, and other western tribes, who had been captured in war and sold to French and English residents. The Indians made excellent servants and commanded good prices. At the time of the capitulation it was stipulated that the French inhabitants should keep their negroes, but they were to restore those belonging to the English. The following copies of letters from an old manuscript letter-book of Phyn & Ellice, in possession of the Buffalo Historical Society, give an idea of the spirit of these olden times, and detail the methods of sale and the prices paid for slaves for this market: SCHENECTADY, 7 July, 1760. Mr. H. Levy,Before this reaches you we hope every former order will be completed. Above we send you a small memorandum which we beg you'll execute immediately on receipt. * * * We shall be pleased to hear how beaver is selling. * * * If you have wampum, pipes and moons, you may send 'em by first opportunity, and we '11 make a trial of them at Detroit this winter. * * * Yours, &c. P. & E. P. S.-Do not fail to purchase the blacks by first opportunity, as the person for whom they are, has contracted to deliver them at Detroit early in the fall. SCHENECTADY, 23d Aug., 1760. Mr. dames Stirling, Detroit. SIR,Your favor, 29th June, attending your order, we had the pleasure to receive, and immediately thereon J. P. made a jaunt to New York, with a view to be particular and expeditious in making up the goods. We now inclose you Invoice per L-, the loading of six boats is under the direction of James McDonald, who is engaged to proceed with them to Detroit. * * * We have tried all in our power to procure the wenches and negro lads, but it 's impossible to get any near your terms. Nko green negroes are now brought into this Province. We can purchase negroes from eighty pounds to ninety pounds, and wenches from sixty pounds to seventy pounds. If such will be acceptable, advise and you shall have them in the spring, and perhaps under, if we can meet with Yankees in the winter. With great esteem, yours, SCHENECTADY, I3 August, 1770. 1Mr. Levy: SIR,We have received two negro boys; the oldest will do for Mr. Stirling, at Detroit, and is entered in our Order book. But we are entirely at a loss what to do with that fat-gutted boy, having orders for none such for any of our correspondents, and we don't by any means want him for ourselves. * * * Pray, are not bills of sale necessary with these African gentlemen? We are, &c., P. & E. SCHENECTADY, 22 March, 177I. IMr. Carpenter Wharton: SIR,Upon your arrival at Philadelphia, please advise us by letter addressed to the care of Mr. Samuel Franklin, Jun., if you can purchase for us two negro lads from fifteen to twenty years, for about fifty pounds, New York currency, each. They must be stout and sound, but we are indifferent about their qualifications, as they are for a Frenchman at Detroit. * * * Yours, P. & E. To Mr. rohn Porteous, Detroit: DEAR SIR,We have contracted with a New England gentleman for some green negroes to be delivered here the first of August, and then your wench will be forwarded, together with a negro boy, in case she may some time hereafter choose a husband. We apprehend he will be useful to you, or advantageous about the sloop, or you can dispose of him as you find best. The price is fifty pounds each. Yours, &c.,, P. & E. The official returns made to the governor-general in 1773 showed that there were then ninety-six slaves at the settlement along the Detroit; five years later there were one hundred and twentyseven. After another interval of five years the number was reported at one hundred and seventyfive, and in 1782 there were seventy-eight male and one hundred and one female slaves. Among other old records at Detroit there is a document given by John Askin, grandfather of the late E. A. Brush, dated September 9, 1766, and saying, " I set at liberty and give full freedom unto my Pawnee slave Monnette, which I had from Mons. Barrussa at Michilimackinac." On October I9, 1794, the same Mr. Askin bought of James May a negro man Pompey, for forty-five pounds, and on January 3, 1795, he sold him to James Donaldson for fifty pounds. [3441 a SLAVERY AND THE COLORED RACE. 345 The American State Papers (Volulne I., page I46) contain an interesting account of an effort to have slavery legalized in this region. The facts were as follows: On November 22, 1802, Governor Harrison issued a proclamation notifying the people of an election to be held in the several counties on December 11. Delegates were then to be elected to a convention called for December 20, at Vincennes; the main object of the convention to be the consideration of the question of securing the repeal or suspension of Article VI. of the ordinance of 1787, which prohibited the holding of slaves in the Territory. No representation was solicited from Wayne County, probably because it was so well understood that Michigan would soon be a separate Territory that it was deemed unnecessary to consult its citizens on a question of this character. Governor Harrison presided over the convention, and it was decided to petition Congress t;. suspend the said article for ten years. It is an interesting fact that the celebrated John Randolph of Roanoke, the chairman of the Congressional Committee to whom the petition of the delegates was referred, made a report declaring that "the labor of slaves is not necessary to promote the growth and settlement of colonies in that region. * * * The committee deem it highly dangerous and inexpedient to impair a provision wisely calculated to promote the happiness and prosperity of the northwestern country and to give strength and security to that extensive frontier." After hearing the report, Congress refused to suspend the articles, and the Territory was preserved to freedom. In tracing the question through the years, we find, in a letter, dated April 2, I803, that William Elliott, of Sandwich, requested James Henry, of Detroit, to keep Mr. Ormsby's man in jail a few weeks until he could sell or dispose of him. At the time of the fire in I805 there were six colored men and nine colored women in the town. That their numbers increased is evident, for in 1807 Governor Hull organized a company of negro militia. Many of the older citizens had one or more slaves. Joseph Campau owned ten at one time. One of them, nicknamed Crow, used to ascend the steeple of St. Anne's Church and perform numerous gymnastic tricks for the amusement of those who gathered beneath. The importation of slaves was discontinued after September 17, I792, the Canadian Parliament, by law of that date, directing that no slaves should thereafter be introduced, and that all born thereafter should be free at the age of twenty-five. The ordinance of 1787 had previously provided that slavery should not exist in the Northwest Territory. At that time, however, this region was not under control of the American Government, and there was no barrier to the holding of slaves at Detroit. After its surrender in I796, slave owners at Detroit continued to hold their slaves under the Jay treaty of November 19, I794, which provided that the inhabitants of the Territory surrendered to the United States should be protected in their property. The question as to whether slaves could be legally holden was adjudicated in I807. A case came before the Supreme Court of the Territory in which Richard Patterson, of Sandwich, sought to apprehend as slaves Joseph Quinn and Jane, then residing in Michigan. The case was tried, and on September 26, I807, Judge Woodward delivered an elaborate opinion against the claimant, on the ground that slavery was not admissible in Michigan "except as to persons in actual possession of British settlers within this Territory on the I Ith day of July, 1796." Those who had possessed slaves under British rule continued to hold them, and the official census for I8Io shows that, at that time, seventeen slaves were held in Detroit. On March ii, I818, the assessor of taxes for'Wayne County gave notice that the Court of General Quarter Sessions of the peace for said county had made negro and mulatto slaves ratable for taxes for the current year. The census for I830 showed that there were thirty-two slaves in Michigan, but by 1836 all the slaves were either dead or manumitted. Advertisements for runaway slaves appeared in the Gazette as late as I827. The feeling of a portion of the citizens in regard to the colored race found expression in the Act of April 13, S827, which provided that after May I the names of all colored persons should be registered in the county clerk's office; and no blacks were to be permitted to reside in the Territory unless they could produce a certificate that they were actually free. The certificate was to be placed on record, and twelve and one half cents paid therefor. The colored people were also required, within twenty days, to file bonds, with one or more freehold sureties, in the penal sum of $500, for their good behavior; and the bondsmen were expected to pay for their support in case they were unable to support themselves. If this law was not complied with, the blacks were to be sent out of the Territory. The same law provided penalties for kidnapping. No attempt was made to enforce the law until after the riot of 1833, and then the colored people fled to Canada. The history of that riot is as follows: On June 14, 1833, Thornton Blackburn and his wife, who had resided here nearly two years, were claimed and arrested as fugitive slaves from Kentucky. They were taken before a justice of the peace, who directed an officer to take charge of them and deliver them to the claimant. During their examination before the justice, a crowd of colored people 346 SLAVERY AND THE COLORED RACE. collected in great excitement, and threatened to resist the execution of the law. The alleged slaves were, however, conveyed to the jail, and the crowd dispersed. The next day, which was Sunday, the agent of the owner sought to have the slaves delivered up, but the sheriff, fearing a disturbance, declined. Iuring the day a number of colored persons were permitted to have access to the prisoners, and one woman was allowed to remain in the cell with the female slave till after dark. The latter exchanged clothing with her visitor, and thus made her escape. Meantime the colored people, armed with clubs, assembled in large numbers on the common near the jail, and showed a determination to attempt a rescue; but after the departure of the steamboat in the evening they dispersed, as it was evident that the slaves would not be removed. On Monday they again assembled in increased numbers, gathering in groups in the neighborhood of the jail, armed with clubs, stones, and pistols. There was also a large number of them on the wharf where the steamboat lay. A little before four o'clock in the afternoon, the sheriff went to the jail, and a carriage was driven up to convey Blackburn to the boat; but he was hardly seated before the negroes attacked the carriage; the sheriff then attempted to convey him back to the jail, but as he' was going in the negroes made a rush, rescued the slave, put him in a cart, and he escaped to Windsor. He was then arrested by the Canadian authorities and lodged in Sandwich jail. They were requested by the State authorities to deliver him up, but refused to do so, and he was soon set at liberty. During the melee Sheriff Wilson was dangerously wounded. The excitement in the city was intense, and several colored persons were arrested. There were no sufficient means of preserving order, and Governor Cass, then Secretary of War, who happened to be in the city on a visit, ordered a company of troops from Fort Gratiot to proceed to Detroit to "aid the civil authority in support of the laws." As affording further and more permanent protection, the citizens, at a public meeting, on July IO, decided to establish a city watch, "to consist of sixteen persons, to continue until the trial or discharge of the colored persons who are now under arrest for riotous conduct." Public sentiment became increasingly opposed to slavery, and on April 26, I837, the Detroit AntiSlavery Society was organized. The constitution contained the following articles: Article 1.-This association shall be called The Detroit AntiSlavery Society, and shall be auxiliary to the Michigan State Anti-Slavery Society. A rticle 2.-The object of this society shall be the entire abolition of slavery in the United States of America, and the elevation of our colored brethren to their proper rank as men. While it admits that each State alone has, by the constitution of the United States, the exclusive right to legislate with regard to slavery within its own limits, its aim shall be to convince all our fellow citizens, by argunments addressed to their understanding and consciences, that slave-holding is a crime in the sight of God, and that the duty, safety, and best interests of all concerned require its immediate abandonment. A rticle 3.-Any person not a slave-holder, or engaged in the traffic of slaves, may become a member of this society by signing its constitution. * * s A rficle 7.-The annual meeting of this society shall be held on the anniversary of the emancipation of the British West Indies. The officers of the association for 1837 were: Shubael Conant, president; Edward Brooks, Edwin W. Cowles, and Cullen Brown, vice-presidents; Charles Henry Stewart, secretary; George F. Porter, treasurer; William Kirkland, Alanson Sheley, and Peter Boughton, executive committee. In I839 Robert Stewart was president, and A. L. Porter, corresponding secretary. The society was in existence only a short time, but its spirit remained, and its principles grew increasingly popular. In January, 1842, the ex-slave, Henry Bibb, came to Detroit, and in 1844 and 1845 he lectured in Michigan under the auspices of the Liberty Association. a political organization which sought to promote the election of anti-slavery candidates. Horace Hallock was president, Cullen Brown, vice-president, and S. M. Holmes, secretary. On September 18. I850, Congress passed the Fugitive Slave Act. It provided that slaves might be arrested in any State, appointed special officers to secure their arrest, and directed that the testimony of fugitives, in any trial growing out of their arrest, should not be admitted. This law greatly incensed many citizens, and increased the strength of the anti-slavery sentiment. The proximity of Canada, where slaves became free men, caused Detroit to become a noted point of departure, and fugitive slaves were constantly passing through the city, and frequent, and sometimes successful, efforts were made by their owners to capture them. In October, I850, the arrest of a colored man named Rose created so great an excitement that, at the request of the mayor, General Schwartz called out three volunteer companies to preserve the peace; and on October 8, I850, the thanks of the Council were tendered to John Ladue, then mayor, for his action in the case. The attempts to retake fugitive slaves were in the main unsuccessful, for the majority of the people were opposed to slavery, and though the law upheld them, the slave-holders were foiled and outwitted. There was a complete chain of persons, extending to the slave States, who were organized for the relief and transportation of fugitive slaves. A paper in their interest, called the Voice of the Fugitive, was published, first at Sandwich and then at Windsor, by Henry Bibb. The issue of November 5, I851, contained the following notice: SLAVERY AND THE COLORED RACE. 347 UNDERGROUND RAILROAD. This road is doing better business this fall than usual. The Fugitive Slave law has given it more vitality, more activity, more passengers, and more opposition, which invariably acctlt:rates business. We have been under the necessity of tearing up the old strap rails and putting down the regular T's, so that we can run a lot of slaves through from almost any of the bordering Slave States into Canada, within forty-eight hours, and we defy the slaveholders and their abettors to beat that if they can. We have just received a fresh lot to-day of hearty looking men and women, on the last train from Virginia, and still there is room. In order to aid the runaway slaves a Refugee Home Society was organized at Detroit, and officered by the active members of the Liberty Association. The society bought a large quantity of land back of Sandwich, and aided in settling nearly fifty families. Its operations covered the period from 1854 to 1872. In order to hinder the working of the Fugitive Slave Law, the Legislature of Michigan, on February 13, 1855, passed a law prohibiting the use STOKHODER STOCKHOLDERS OF THE UNDERGROUND H. H. COMPANY Hold on to Your Stock!! Thei market has an upward tendency, By the express train which arrived this morning at 3 o'clock, fifteen thousand dollars worth of human merchandise, consisting of twenty-nine able bodied men and women, fresh and sound, from the Carolina and Kentucky plantations, have arrived safe at the depot on the other side, where all our sympathisinz colonization friends may have an opportunity of expressing their sympathy by bringing forward donations of ploughs, &e., fiining utensils, pick axes and hoes, and not old clothes; as these emigrants all can till the soil N. B.-Stockholders don't forget, the meeting to-day at 2 o'clock at the ferry on the Canada side. All persons desiring to take stock in this prosperous company, be sure to be on hand. By Order of the Detroit,.lprd 19, 1853. BOARD OF DIRECTORS. F.A(-SIlMII. OF HANID-PBlI. OF ITNDI)IR;ROU'NI) RAIl. ROAD. (Half size.) On December 3, 1851, the paper contained this item: PROGRESS OF ESCAPE FROM SLAVERY. In enumerating the arrivals of this week we can count only seventeen, ten of whom came together on the Express train of the Underground Railroad. This lot consisted of a mother with six children, and three men. The next day there came four nen, the next day two men arrived, and then one came alone. The latter tells of having had a warml combat by the way with two slave catchers, in which he found it necessary to throw a handful of sand in the eyes of one of them; and while he was trying to wash it out he broke away from the other, and effected his escape. The above fac-simile reduced, half size, of a hand-bill of that day, shows the spirit and humor that were sometimes indulged in. of the county jails to detain persons claimed as fugitive slaves, and directing the prosecuting attorneys in the several counties to defend them. On March I2, I859, John Brown arrived in Detroit, with fourteen slaves from Missouri. One of these slaves gave birth to a son while on the journey, who was named John Brown, and lived for many years in Windsor. Besides the slaves, John Brown had five of his own men with him. By a most remarkable coincidence, or as the result of a pre-arranged plan, Frederick Douglass, the colored orator, was present in Detroit, and lectured on the same evening that Brown arrived. After the lecture Douglass and Brown, with George De Baptiste, William 348 SLAVERY AND THE COLORED RACE. Lambert, John Richards, Dr. J. Ferguson, William Webb, and a few others, met at the house of William Webb, who was then living in the building now known as 185 Congress St. East, and held a preliminary meeting which resulted in the organization of the Harper's Ferry raid. Their plan was to make the vicinity of Harper's Ferry a place of rendezvous, and there assemble the fugitive slaves in sufficient numbers to protect them in their freedom. The treachery or folly of one of their number, who made known their plans, forced them to make a premature movement, and the result is a matter of general history. claimed to be the cause of the war. Faulkner was arrested on February 26. His trial began on March 5, and on that day, while he was being conveyed back to jail, he was struck on the head with a paving-stone and knocked down. The mob which surrounded him then sought to seize him, but the officers succeeded in getting him inside the jail. The next day he was again taken to court. The trial was concluded and he was sentenced. While he was being conveyed back to jail, a squad of the provost-guard, who were aiding the sheriff, were attacked. They fired, and one man was killed. The mob now became infuriated, and an attack was begun on the colored people. Many of them were fearfully beaten; their buildings were set on fire for the purpose of burning those who were inside; and paving-stones were torn up and thrown at those who tried to escape, thus driving them back into the flames. Many had always doubted Faulkner's guilt, and after seven years had passed, the doubt becoming almost a certainty, a pardon was procured, and on Friday, December 31, I869, greatly to his surprise, he was released. A number of gentlemen contributed a sum of money, and he was established at a stand in the market, which he occupied until his death, about seven years after he was pardoned. This riot caused great excitement, but it was the last manifestation of the prejudice against the colored people, who were soon after made citizens and clothed with full power of self-defense. Their efforts to obtain citizenship began in 1843, in which year a State convention was held on October 26 and 27, at the church on Fort Street, and they petitioned for the privilege of citizenship. In November, I850, the question of conferring the right of suffrage on colored people was voted on, and the vote in Wayne County was 608 for and 3,320 against conferring such right. On January 25, I865, a second State convention was held at the Croghan Street Baptist Church, and the Legislature was petitioned to grant the right of suffrage. The petition was not granted, but the Fifteenth Amendment to the Constitution of the United States, which, on March 30, I870, the Secretary of State declared fully ratified, made them citizens and voters. The restrictive word " white " was stricken from the Constitution of Michigan by a vote of the people on November 8, 1870, and the votes of the colored citizens were first cast in Detroit on the same day. THE JOHN BROWN HOUSE. The Emancipation Proclamation was one of the legitimate results of the meeting in Detroit. The first celebration in honor of the day of its issue was held on January 6, 1863, at the colored Baptist Church. One of the darkest pages in the history of Detroit is the record of March 6, 1863. The events that led to the doings of that day are as follows: A mulatto named William Faulkner, had been arrested, tried, convicted, and sentenced to prison for life for an alleged outrage on a little girl. The war with the South was then in progress; a draft was feared, and the ignorant and vicious were glad of an opportunity to vent their ill-nature on a race which was CHAPTER XLIX. RECREATIONS AND AMUSEMENTS. THE early French colonists had abundant opportunities for the manifestation of their natural gayety, even in this far-off wilderness. The whole region was a natural preserve, and its hunting and fishing facilities would have satisfied the most enthusiastic sportsman that ever threw a line or carried a gun. Oars plashed here and there along the river, and in handling the light canoe the dark-eyed French girls showed great skill and grace. Sunday afternoon and evening were especially given up to gayety. The people had been to mass in the morning, the penitents had been duly shrived, and the benedictions of the priests rested upon them: why should they not be gay? They, at least, seemed to know no reason, and in groups and parties they " carrioled" along the beach or paddled near the shore; young lovers strolled beneath the old pear-trees, and those tall, strong sentinels of the river-side dropped mellow offerings at their feet. Often the sound of music came through open doors, and within light heels and hearts chased the time away. (uns and fish-poles were alike in use, and the finny and feathery tribes should have known when Sunday came, for then there was danger all around. Bougainville, who came here in 1757, thus describes the foot-races of that day: 'There are in Detroit some foot-races between Indians and Canadians, and they are as celebrated as those of horses in England; they take place in the spring; from five hundred up to fifteen hundred Indians are generally present at them; the length of the race is one mile and a half (go and return), from Detroit to the village of the Pottowatamies; the road is broad and beautiful; there are some posts fixed in the ground at both extremities; the bets are very high on each side, and consist of furs on one part and French merchandise on the other, for the use of the Indians. The most celebrated racer is a Frenchman named Campau; his superiority is so well recognized that he is no more admitted into the races. In I76I, during a visit of Sir William Johnson, notwithstanding the dangers of the time, the following extracts from his diary show that amusements were not forgotten: Sunday, 6th (September). A very fine morning. This day I am to drive with Captain Campbell, who is also to give the ladies a ball, that I may see them. They assembled at 8 o'clock at night to the number of about twenty. I opened the ball with Mademoiselle Curie,-a fine girl. We danced until five o'clock next morning. Saturday, I2th.-This morning four of the principal ladies of the town came to wait on me. I treated them with rusk and cordial. After sitting an hour they went away. Sunday, 13th. * * * At Io o'clock Captain Campbell came to introduce some of the town ladies to me at my quarters, whom I received and treated with cakes, wine, and cordial. Monday, I4th. * * * I took a ride before dinner up toward Lake St. Clair. The road runs along the river side, which is all settled thickly nine miles. A very pleasant place in summer, but at other seasons too low and marshy. The French gentleman and the two priests who dined with us got very merry. Invited them all to a ball to-morrow night which I am to give to the ladies. Tuesday, i5th. * * * In the evening, the ladies and gentlemen assembled at my quarters, danced the whole night until 7 o'clock in the morning, when all parted very much pleased and happy. Promised'to write to Mademoiselle Curie as soon as possible my sentiments; there never was so brilliant an assembly here before. The several allusions to Mademoiselle Curie make it evident that his diary was not kept for the benefit and instruction of Mollie Brant and the ten children from whom Sir William was absent for a time. Another reference to the lady in question is contained in a letter from Captain Donald Campbell to Sir William Johnson, dated Detroit, June 9, 1762. He says: I gave a ball on the King's birthday, when a certain acquaintance of yours appeared to great advantage. She never neglects an opportunity of asking about the General. * * * I think by her talk Sir William had promised to return to Detroit. She desires I should present her best compliments. It is evident that these compliments were renewed through Captain Gladwin, for on April 7, 1763, Sir William Johnson wrote from Johnson Hall to Gladwin at Detroit: I have not forgotten the powerful effect of the charms of the lady who honors me with a place in her remembrance, and should be very happy in any opportunity which might offer of paying her my devoirs. The lady, however, yielded to the suit of one of the Detroit merchants, as appears from the following extract fron: a letter of James Stirling to Sir William Johnson, dated Detroit, April 27, 1765: Soon after my arrival here I was married to Miss Cuiellierric, who desires to be remembered to you in the most grateful manner and returns you hearty thanks for your civilities to her whilst at this place. Although several different names are given in these extracts, they all referred to the same lady, [3491 350 RECREATIONS AND AMUSEMENTS. _ Miss Beaubien, who was notably brilliant and accomplished. All gatherings of young people were enlivened by music and dancing, and if no violinist was to be obtained there were not a few demoiselles who could lilt the dancing tunes so blithely and so well as to make the violin almost needless. When the English came the officers made sad havoc with the time and thoughts of the lively maidens of that time; and in the warp and woof of revolutionary days, the scalp-cry of the Indians, the drum-beat of the garrison, and the howl of wolves, were mingled the music of the ball-room and the gay laugh of merry dancers. Captain Grant, of the navy, wrote to a friend, "We hop and bob every Monday night at the council-house." Later on dancing parties or assemblies were arranged for by subscription, and several invitations to these gatherings, written on the back of playing cards, are preserved. Some of the amusements of 1789 are described in a letter written by Miss Ann Powell, who was here in May of that year. She says: As soon as our vessel anchored, several ladies and gentlemen came on board.; they had agreed upon a house for us, till my brother could meet with one that would suit him, so we found ourselves at home immediately. The ladies visited us in full dress, though the weather was boiling hot. What do you think of walking about when the thermometer is above ninety? It was as high as ninety-six the morning we returned our visits. Whilst we staid at the fort, several parties were made for us,- a very agreeable one by the 65th, to an island a little way up the river. Our party was divided into five boats; one held the music, in each of the others were two ladies and as many gentlemen as it could hold. Lord Edward1 and his friend arrived just time enough t, join us; they went round the Lake by land to see some Indian settlements, and were highly pleased with their jaunt. Iord Edward speaks in raptures of the Indian hospitality: he told me one instance of it which would reflect honor on the most polished society. By some means or other, the gentlemen lost their provisions and were entirely without bread, in a place where they could get none. Some Indians travelling with them had one loaf, which they offered to his Lordship, but he would not accept it; the Indians gave him to understand that they were used to do without, and that, therefore, it was less inconvenient to them; they still refused, and the Indians then disappeared and left the loaf of bread in the road the travellers nust pass, and the Indians were seen no more. Our party on the Island proved very pleasant, which that kind of parties seldom do; the day was fine, the country cheerful, and the band delightful. We walked some time in the shady part of the Island, and then were led to a bower where the table was spread for dinner. Everything here is on a grand scale; do not suppose we dined in an English arbor! This one was made of forest trees and bushes, which being fresh cut, you could not see where they were put together, and the bower was the whole height of the trees, though quite close at the top. The band was placed without and played whilst we were at dinner. We were hurried home in the evening by the appearance of a thunder storm; it was the most beautiful I ever remember to have seen. The winter season furnished many a scene of gay festivity. The little French or Canadian ponies I Iord dwclard Fitzgerald, then at Detroit. were so plentiful as to be had for almost nothing; and box-runners, then much in vogue, were so easily constructed that every one could procure a "turn-out," and not only the river, but the Grand Marsh on the east, and the River Rouge on the west, became race-courses for the whole community. This last locality, the Red River, as the English always called it, was the favorite place for this sport, and fast pacers were in special demand on these occasions. The officers and ladies of the post, dressed in sable-lined robes, with masks to protect their faces, and beaver caps for the heads, were well sheltered from the winds. De Peyster in one of his poems relates at length how, on occasions, dinners of venison were barbecued in the open air, and served on the bank, with bearskins for seats, and no sign of a table,-a picnic in the winter time, with the deer and bears as lookers-on. The following advertisement, from the Gazette of January 21, 1825, gives characteristics of the sports on the Rouge: TERRITORY OF MICHIGAN AGAINST NORTH AMERICA. To Sportsmen. The subscriber will pace his horse Bas Blanc against any trotting or pacing horse, mare, or gelding in North America, from two to five miles, for any sum from fifty to ten thousand dollars. The race to take place on the ice, the present winter, at some place within the Territory, and the horses to be driven before a carriole, or rode, as the parties please. ISADORE NAVARRE. RIVER RAISIN, Jan. i8, 1825. O)ther sports on the ice, as practiced in his boyhood days, are thus described by Judge Campbell. When the sharp winter moved along, And the ice on the river was smooth and strong, From Bloody Bridge to fair Belle Isle Was seen the flash of the ringing steel, As over the bar the skaters pass, Andt through the crystal, clear as glass, (az l at the fish, that turn and stare At the strange doings in the air. On the wide shallows of Grand-Marais Before the breeze the rushes sway, And domes of plaited reeds appear,' Tempting the hunter's cruel spear. But livelier far, as the boys rush down, Is the clear, deep river before the town. From shore to shore they glide and swing Quickly as swallows on the wing, Or backward sweep in a circus ring, Or spread the eagle, or carve the ice With names, and many a strange device. And in the moonlight's silvery flow, Nimble and tireless as the roe, Again on the river the swarm flies out, Dodging and sliding and wheeling about, As when for the season the school is out, And urchins, fearless of disaster, Caper undaunted before the master. 1 The houses of the musk-rat. RECREATIONS AND AMUSEMENTI'S. 35s With curving sticks in fierce Inmlee - They drive the whizzing ball away, Or scamper il a inile long race To reach the bounds of prisoner's base. Or, twisting tight their 'kerchiefs stout, Hard and stiff as a Russian knout, And counting slowly up to ten, Call the Red Lion out of his den, And scurrying off in the goalward track Laugh as the clumsy loiterer's back Winces beneath the sounding whack. For picnic grounds the Woodbridge Grove, located at what is now the corner of Michigan and Trumbull Avenues, and also the grounds near the fort, were deemed desirable as late as I850. On Saturday afternoons and holidays the children could ramble in the woods, inside the present city limits. In the spring there were wintergreen berries and sassafras to be gathered; and later on, mandrakes, wild strawberries, and huckleberries called many to the fields. In the fall, hickory and hazel nuts gladdened the eyes and stained the fingers of those who went in search of them. On the route out, bullfrogs and tree-toads frequently enlivened the way, and on the homeward trip, fireflies illumined the path. Each period of the year brought its own peculiar games, and then as now kites, hoops, tops, marbles, and ball followed each other as regularly as the signs of the zodiac. Public exhibitions found but little favor, and the Solons of the Territory did not encourage them. On April 13, I827, a law was passed providing that " If any person, or persons, shall exhibit any puppet show, wire dancing, or tumbling, juggling or sleight of hand, within this territory, and shall ask or receive any pay in money, or other property, for exhibiting the same, such a person, or persons, shall for every such offense pay a fine of not less than ten nor exceeding twenty dollars." The most enterprising caterer to the amusementloving public was Major D. C. McKinstry. In 1834, when the city had a population of only about five thousand, he was at the same time proprietor of a theatre, a circus, a museum, and a public garden, all of them separate and distinct from each other; and in size and management they would be creditable even in the present day. The Circus occupied a large wooden building on the northeast corner of Gratiot and Farrar Streets; it was afterwards used as a theatre, then as a furniture factory, and was finally burned. The Michigan Garden, as it was called, is identical in location with what was recently known as Brush's Garden; it was bounded by Randolph, Brush, Lafayette, and Croghan Streets. The garden, in 1837, was described as being "located at the northern extremity of the town." It contained a restaurant and bath-rooms; also many kinds of fruit trees, and plants in great variety. The following literal copies of advertisements from the papers of that day furnish details concerning the garden and the entertainments there given: To SPORTSIEN!!! Rare sport at the Michigan Garden! Two Bears and one Wild Goose will be set up to be shot at, or chased by dogs, on Tuesday, 2oth October, at two o'clock 1i. tM. N. B.-Safe and pleasant seats will be in readiness for Ladies and Gentlemen. DETROIT, Oct. 19, I835. MICHIGAN GARDEN. The public are respectfully informed that the Garden continues open to visitors. The Museum, consisting of some of the finest specimens of Ornithology, Minerals, Coins, natural and artificial curiosities, and a Grand Cosmorama occupying one building of the Garden; another containing thirty-seven wax figures, of some of the most interesting characters. The Garden will be illuminated every fair evening, and a band of music will heighten the enjoyment of a walk through upwards of three thousand feet of promenade walk. Refreshments as usual. The Baths are likewise in order for company. A ug. T9, i840. The Museum was opened on May 13, 1834, occupying the two upper stories of the four-story building then owned by Mr. Godard, on the southeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street. It was burned out in the fire of January I, 1842. In after years several valuable private museums and collections existed, to which the public had access without charge. The collection of S. W. Higgins, who lived on the northeast corner of Williams and Elizabeth Streets, though not large, possessed much of value. It was gathered chiefly by his son, who, as an officer in the United States Navv, visited the Mediterranean and other foreign ports; it was especially noted for its specimens of cutlery from the interior of Africa. The best private museum was that of Dr. Louis Cavalli, located on Franklin Street, east of St. Antoine. It was established about the year 1846, and was open daily to all visitors, free of charge, until I852 or 1853. The collection embraced many rare stones, shells, and minerals, and was especially complete in insects. There were also mnany rare curiosities from Herculaneum. The celebrated men of the fourteenth and eighteenth centuries were represented in a series of fourteen hundred medals; there were also engravings in great variety, and copies of paintings by Raphael and Correggio. On the death of Dr. Cavalli, the collection was sold to the Smithsonian Institution. Among out-door sports, skating and coasting were always popular, and a favorite resort was known as Piety Hill. This hill, probably fifty feet high, lay inside of the Catholic grounds between Randolph, Bates, and Lamed Streets and Michigan Grand Avenue. Sleds would go from the summit, 352 RECREATIONS AND AMUSEMENTS. near the corner of Randolph and Congress Streets, through to Bates Street. Congress Street was finally cut through the hill, and the elevation was levelled many years ago. About I850 Shelby Street, from Jefferson Avenue to the river, afforded a fine opportunity for coasting, and sleds oftentimes went nearly a third of the way across the river. On December 7, I860, the first skating rink was opened. It was located between Third and Fifth, Beech and High Streets. Another was subsequently opened on the northwest corner of Woodward Avenue and Davenport Street. A rink was also built on the northeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Edmund Street; and in i86I, and for several years after, skating was a popular pastime with beaux and belles. the enterprise did not prove a financial success, the garden was closed July 29, 1884. letween 1830 and I840 many of the prominent *chants were accustomed on Saturday afternoons:ngage in a game of football, and in rolling can-balls on Jefferson Avenue, between Griswold Wayne Streets. Billiard-tables were in use )r to 1805. George Meldrum, in his estimate of es by the fire of that year, notes "one billiarde, $25." A noted game of billiards was played Detroit on April 12, 1859, between Michael lan, of New York, and John Seereiter, of Det. The match took place at Firemen's Hall, lan winning by ninety-six points. Lmong the noted events, in the way of recreaw, was a series of amusement meetings held in Young Men's Hall. The use of the hall was given by Luther ~__.~ ^ Beecher, and the first of a series of night entertainments, which lasted about two weeks, took place on March Io, I874. Those who aided gave their services; songs, stories, and music formed the programme, and the hall was filled to overflowing every evening. On June 7, I875, under the joint auspices of the Young i!LHI I^)m Men's Christian Association and the Home of the Friendless, the Authors' Carnival began at Young Men's Hall, and continued for a week. The aim of the entertainment was to represent appropriately the works of noted authors, and it was admirably carried out at an expense of over $5,000. c ar'-'* " t Roller skates and velocipedes came into common use in I875. The city license fees for amusements are as follows: Theatres, from $50 to $200 per r; circuses, $75 for first day, and $50 for each ceeding day; ball-alleys and billiard-tables pay per year for each alley or table. athletic and aquatic sports have been encourd by the organization of numerous societies. e Social Turn Verein, or German Gymnastic Assoion, was organized June I7, I852, and incorporI February 6, I855. In 1860 the society erected a lding on the south side of Sherman Street, be-.en Russell and Riopelle Streets, at a cost of 0oo..The Peninsular Cricket Club was organized 858. The cricket grounds are on the west side Woodward Avenue, just north of Fremont --- -TI --- c-V1 -- L~ 55 r —;-. —~ RECREATION PARK ENTRANCE AND RECEPTION Bl'lI)IN(;. As a place for out-door entertainments, Recreation Park affords all facilities that can be desired. It is located on the Brush Farm, the entrance being a few blocks east of Woodward Avenue, on Brady Street. The grounds, embracing eighteen acres, are fitted up to accommodate exhibitions of various kinds. The Reception Building has every needful appliance for comfort and convenience. The Park was opened on May IO, I879 A Zoological Garden was established on Michigan Avenue, near Tenth Street, and first opened on September 5, 1883. It was conducted by a corporation, and a large amount of money was expended, RECREATIONS AND AMUSEMENTS.353....... Street. One of the most noted games was played with the All England Eleven on September 25, 1879, the English cricketers being victors. On August 13, I867, a great Base Ball Tournament began on the cricket grounds and lasted nearly a week. The Detroit Gymnasium, an organization now extinct, grew out of a private gymnasium belonging to persons connected with the Lake Survey Office. Their apparatus was obtained by I). Farrand Henry, and he and Messrs. W. A. Throop and A. Selleck fitted up a gymnasium for personal use over a bookstore on Woodward Avenue, near Congress Street. Others desiring to participate, on February 9, I858, a club was organized, the members to pay five dollars per year each. On April 6, 1859, a new constitution was adopted, and in 1860 the Gymnasium was moved to the Seitz Building. Here it was largely patronized and became very popular. It was then moved to Congress Street, near Lamed, to what was known as the Gymnasium Building. Here it lost its popularity, and in I867 was practically closed. In I876 the apparatus was turned over to the Young Men's Christian Association, and in I885 was still in use by that organization. Scottish games and memories are kept alive through the Detroit Caledonian Club, organized in 1867. The Detroit Schuetzenbund, or German Shooting Club, was organized in April, 1855, and incorporated July, I866. Its building is located in a park of eleven acres, in Hamtramck, on the Mack Road. It was erected in May, 1873, at a cost of about $4,ooo; the entire property is worth $io,ooo. The Audubon Club, originally organized on February 24, I868, to secure the preservation of game, has now become a social club. The most popular and flourishing sporting organization is the Lake St. Clair Fishing and Shooting Club. It was organized April 1I, 1872, and incorporated on June 4 of the same year. The original plan was to limit the club to twenty-five members; the number was then increased to fifty, and finally to two hundred and twenty. A stock company was formed, which owns the buildings and apparatus. Members must be owners of one share of stock and pay an initiation fee of twenty-five dollars. The club-house cost $5,ooo, and is located at the north end of the St. Clair Flats Canal. The boats are free to members of the club. The house is in charge of a steward, and members pay a stipulated sum per day for board and lodging while at the house. Friends of members may be invited to the house, if they are not residents of Detroit or towns immediately adjoining. The Star Island House, a public hotel located near by, is a favorite resort in the summer season. The width, length, and general smoothness of the 23 Detroit River makes it extremely favorable for boating and for regattas. These opportunities are every year increasingly appreciated, and the boat clubs of Detroit are a marked feature in the sporting life of the city. There are few finer sights in a summer evening than the boating parties; the boats are often manned in part by ladies, and the gay uniforms and bright flags, the measured dip of the oars, and merry laughter, make a pleasing combination of sight and sound. The oldest boat club is the Detroit. It was organized February 18, I839, and re-organized August 23, I856. It owns one of the finest boathouses in the country, erected in I873, at a cost of $5,000. It was originally located between Hastings and Rivard Streets, and was moved to its present location, between Joseph Campau and McDougall Avenues, in I877. The Excelsior Boat Club was organized on May 14, I867, and incorporated June I4, I871. Amended articles were filed January 8, I878. The clubhouse, at foot of Joseph Campau Avenue, was erected in May, 1867, and has since been improved; with the boats and other property of the club, it is valued at $5,ooo. The Zephyr Boat Club was organized in June, I867, incorporated May 12, 1875, and disbanded in I88I. The Centennial Boat Club was organized September 14, 1875, and incorporated March 2, I876. Its boat-house, between Chene Street and Joseph Campau Avenue, cost $550, and was dedicated June 30, 1877. Other boat-clubs have been organized from time to time, but most of them may be said to be lying on their oars. For the purpose of general practice and the management of regattas and races, several of the clubs were united under the title of the Detroit River Navy. It was organized in August, I867, and re-organized in June, i868, and again on June 8, 1874. Among the occasions of special interest to boatclubs were: The annual regatta of the Northwestern Amateur Boating Association, July 14, 1870; the opening day of the Northwestern Regatta, on August I4, I877; and the arrival of the Shoe-waecae-mette Boat Club, of Monroe, on August 3, 1878, on their return from England; August 6, 1878, was the opening day of Detroit River Navy Regatta, and August 7 of the same year the opening day of Northwestern Regatta. On June 28, 1879, the Detroit River Navy Regatta took place. The Wyandotts won a twooared race, the Michigans won the four-oared, and the barge race was won by the Detroit Club. The National Rowing Regatta for I882 was held at Detroit, beginning on August 8. C HAPTER L. MUSIC A.NI) THE DRANMA.-ART, ARTISTS, AND INVENTORS. Music is indigenot settlers heard not onlh dians, but the air was links, larks, and robji squirrels and the call swept over the town f ormed a fitting chorus. There were soon added the din of drums, the plash of paddles, and the lusty songs of the traders as they rowed up and down the river. Music was need is to this region. The first y the rude rattles of the Invocal with the songs of bobons, to which the chatter of of the wild ducks as they Street, where they would drink "hot flip." In more of the city occasionally uniti and on such occasions the di of the hotels would be trar CO.~IN~ERIT AT THlE CAPITOL DY TETYROLESE MINSTREL, Who has performed In the cities. of BWutonq, gathier to sing and to recent days the singers Led in musical societies, ~ining-roomn of some one nsformed into a concert hall. Among the noted local vocalists Madame Varian Hoffman was prominent, and iii more recent day-, Edward Scovcl and 1). V. Bell, Jr., have attained more than local fame. Ronaldson Hunt, one of the best of ed to cheer the M eW AE WUrlk X-JXJLSU~BV5UBU~a UZU II WVW %pE ZasU199 character singers, loneliness of those uand all the principal cities, of the IU. States went from here to w i t h g r e a t a p p~l a u s e, r e p c b i f r m h so far from home, -r setkl non h California. therefore fife and Lais anad ~entlemen of this place, ' that he At various times fidlewee i cn- will give a Concert at the Capitol on Thurs- ehv be a fid le ere in on- i a. a nd F ti b zat e v e in ua i we h v b e a stant play; and theW vored with visits echoes of their from musical artones linger still ORDER OF PERFOIRMANCUL tists whose fame about the town, 1lot Tyrojese Song, Gth. Ship at sea (Geias~) is in all lands. and their memories 21d. Sweet Home, 7th. The Cuckoo Teea Prd are linked with the 3d. Tyrolese Song of Friendship, 5th. The Swims Z1j, a ThresaliParodi 4th. Ohk no, we never mention her, 9th. i'te all the andAmlimPtt music of to-day. 5&h Tyroese Song for Liberty, were here October In olden times, 23, i851; Adelina as now, t h We 9 h aNwTil at mUI IZ"4' "W Patti, July i, i86o; churches were the -two arsCfeWs, 8T~Wdi Gottschalk, April foster-mothers of nw kn uomW adh " liee obil mW i. 2, 1 i862; Carlotta Anne's for May Ad&Uthw"-5.Cesmts Tickets to be had at Woodworth's Lucca, Mario, An1$, I755, mention and at the Mansion House. n ihp aol the marriage of Detroit, JONe 21, 1532. nary BisopCaoul, Jean Baptiste Ro- FAC-SIMILE OF CONCERT BILLt OF FIFTY YEARS AGO. (Half size.) Phillips, and Camcoux, " Chorister panini at other of the Parish;"~ times. William IH. and the Pontiac Manuscript tells of an instrumental Doane and Philip Phillips have sung several times concert given on June 3, 1763, in honor of the con- in Detroit; and Dtidley Buck, the great organist, clusioni of ~peace. Carl Zerrahn, director Iof the Boston Handel andI Later on, in i 81 5, there were many excellent sing- Haydn Society, and Lyman Wheeler were in aters among the troops stationed here. Their favorite tendance at a Normal Musical Institute in July andl resort was the Yankee Boarding House on Bates August, 1876, and also in i877. These Institutes r3541 MUSIC AND THE I)RAMA. 355 were arranged by Professor S. S. Jackson, and were greatly enjoyed by all who participated. Among the musicians and teachers formerly residents of Detroit, the best known were P. De Coster, Professor Merceron, J. Monds, C. H. Levering, the Sofges, Sig. Martiney, C. Hess, H. Schonacher, G. A. Metzgar, E. Hoffman, the Yarndleys (Thomas, Richard, and Joseph), Signor P. Centemeri, Professor Philbrick, C. Swinscoe, T. M. Towne, J. Zundel, L. H. Blaisdel, J. Hammill Marum, and E. S. Mattoon. The oldest musical association in the city is the Harmonie Society. It was organized on June I, 1849, and incorporated in 1852. The corner-stone of its beautiful and convenient building, on the HARMUNI HAIA.I.. southwest corner of Lafayette and Beaubien Streets, was laid October 22, I874, and the hall dedicated on November I, 1875. The lots, building, and furniture cost about $60,ooo. The property is managed by nine directors, five of them, and then four, being elected on alternate years. The society employs a musical director, secretary, and steward; and its annual expenses are $7,500. Although officered and managed by Germans, it numbers among its members many leading citizens of other nationalities. The musical directors of the society have been: I849-1851, - Wiehle; 1851r-863, John Marx; 1863-1866, Charles Stein; I866-I871, H. Bishop; 187I-I873, Carl Hintz; 1873-I886, F. Abel; 1886-, W. Yunck. A society called the Detroit Musical Association was organized on November 2, 1850, with the following officers: U. T. Howe, president; C. S. Adams, vice-president; C. H. Avery, treasurer; V. T. Cole, secretary. The committee on music con sisted of J. L. VWhiting, C. A. Trozwbridge, C. -Hcs, C. R. Morse, and lU.. tIo-we. Under their auspices and managed by Professor Charles Hess, a musical convention was held from June 10 to 14, I85I, at the First M. E. Church, on the corner of WVoodward Avenue and State Street. Professor Saroni, of New York, was present and delivered an address. The Detroit Philharmonic Society was organized in I854. It was under the direction of P. Centemeri, and flourished until about 1860, when the director moved to New York. From I868 to 1870 another society, with the same name, was in operation, with A. Elder as president. The Concordia Society was organized on February 22, I865, under the leadership of W. Kopp. In July, I867, he was succeeded by F. Apel, and two months later by J. 'innette. He was followed in 1872 by Professor Abel I. I. isllop became the leader on June I, I874, and G. Ftrcytag on January 15, 188I. The society was incorporated April 10, i873, and meet at 175 Gratiot Avenue, between St. Antoine and Beaubien Streets. The Nicolao Ihilharmonic Society, with Joseph Nicolao as leader, was organized in 1873, and continued for several years. A musical society was commenced about 870 ill connection with the German Workingmen's Aid Society, and maintained for some years. ''le Detroit \lIusical Society was organized in the fall of 1870 in the parlors of the Michigan Exchange. In Felbrtary, 1872, tlhe services of Professor Abel were secured as musical director, and a society was organized by the name of St. Cecilia, but this name was soon exchanged for that of Detroit Musical Society. From its organization until the fall of I88o the rehearsals were held in Merrill Hall, except for the second year, when they were held in the Baptist Church, on the corner of Fort and Griswold Streets. On the completion of the new Music Hall, on Randolph, between Croghan and Lafayette Streets, the society, for a time, made the building its headquarters, and then returned to Merrill Hall. In I881 it numbered about two hundred active members, who paid five dollars per year, and three hundred honorary members who paid ten dollars per year. S. K. Stanton served as president until 1878, and was succeeded by C. H. Wetmore. The secretaries have been: 1875, Joseph Colt; 1876, J. G. Erwin; 1877, to October 2, 1882, F. T. Sibley. Owing to differences of opinion among the members, the society practically disbanded on October 2, I882. Four years later, in September, i886, it was revived, with L. S. Trowbridge as president, W. W. Munday as secretary, and F. K. Abel as musical director. From 1876 to 1879 a Catholic Musical Society was conducted under the direction of Professor Freytag. 356 MUSIC AND) THE DR)AMA. 356 MUSIC AND THE DRAMA. The Detroit Chorus Union was organized January 19, 1872, under the direction of Professor Jackson. He resigned May 17, 1872, and was succeeded by Professor Albert Miller. After practicing ten years, the society discontinued its meetings in i882. The Orpheus Musical Society, with E. C. Gore as director, and L. H. Thomas as pianist, was organ, ized in 1873, but has been harmoniously inactive for several years past. The Arion Glee Club was organized in February, 1874, with C. H. Thompson as director, and J. C. 24, 1883, with Oliver J. De Sale as chorus master, and J. De Zielinski and L. H. Thomas as associate directors. It had an active membership of over one hundred, and gave several successful concerts, but ceased after two years. In I874 a new factor in musical education appeared in the Detroit Conservatory of Music, established by J. H. Hahn. It was an outgrowth of the music department of the Detroit Female Seminary. Through its influence, classical music has become popularized, and the works of the great masters are familiarly known, and this is also true of the best class of modern composers. In I887 the Conservatory had 533 students and 21 instructors. The Detroit School of Music, established in 1883, Vet's Academy of Music, in 1882, and Mazurette's Musical College, established in 1887, are large and flourishing institutions. The meetings of the North American Saengerbund, June 24-27, 1857, and the Peninsular Saengerfest, which began August 30, I88o, under the auspices of the German societies, were both notable events. The first piano brought to Detroit was the property of Mrs. Solomon Sibley, formerly Miss Sproat. She had used it while attending school at Bethlehem, Pennsylvania, and after her marriage, in 1803, brought it with her to Detroit. It was transported on horseback from Bethlehem to Marietta, and we may, therefore, be well assured that it did not compare in size with the pianos of to-day. The first organ was brought here by Father Richard. During the War of ISI2, while he was occupying the farm in Springwells, the Indians removed the pipes of his organ and used them as horns, making the woods ring with their shouts and tooting. Either this organ was repaired or a new one procured by Father Richard, for after his death in 1832, an organ which had been used in St. Anne's was given to Trinity Church, and was subsequently in use at St. Joseph's Church. In 1831 St. Paul's Episcopal Church procured a new organ, and on the occasion of its first trial, on Friday, September 30, a concert was given under direction of Mr. Newell. The musical compositions of several Detroit authors have found numerous purchasers. Of various pieces here published, it is safe to say that over a million copies have been circulated. A single instrumental piece, the Detroit Schottische, composed and published by Adam Couse about 1854, reached a sale of over one hundred thousand copies in America, and was republished in several foreign countries. Signor P. Centemeri published a number of songs, meditative in character, that were deservedly popular. Of two songs written by C. T. Lockwood, of Pontiac, and published by Whittemore & Stephens, "Don't you MusIC STORE OF C. J. WHITNEY, 40 FORT ST. WEST. Built in I874. Batchelder as pianist. It was short lived. In 1878 a new society by the same name was organized, with G. B. Sihler as director. He was also director of the Detroit Zither Club, organized in May, 1877. The Schumann Society was organized September MUSIC AND THE DRAMIA. 357 go, Tommy," has reached a circulation of some five hundred thousand, and "Lottie Lee " nearly half as many. Of his " Bouquet March," nearly fifty thousand copies have been sold. Mr. J. H. Whittemore composed many pieces, some of which had a large sale. "'T is for him that mother's weeping," published in 1867, sold to the extent of one hundred thousand copies; half as many more of "By old Oak Orchard's rippling stream " have been disposed of. Several other of his pieces have sold to the extent of thousands of copies each. E. S. Mattoon published several pieces of merit, one was entitled " The Wood Nymph." J. C. Macy, a former resident, produced some very successful compositions. "The Little Flower you gave me" and "Bring back the Old Folks" have reached a sale of fifty thousand copies each. Messrs. C. H. Levering, C. Stein, and Richard Yarndley all published instrumental pieces, which find occasional purchasers. Professor S. Mazurette has written several pieces, of which "Home, Sweet Home, with variations," has probably had the largest sale. Of the compositions of M. H. McChesney, " There is no one to welcome me home " has sold to the extent of fifty thousand copies, and of " I 've been dreaming of my childhood" twenty-five thousand copies have been sold. Of the various compositions of J. L. Truax probably one hundred thousand copies have been issued; the "Wounded Heart," probably the most popular, has reached a sale of twenty-five thousand copies. The compositions of James E. Stewart and 0. F. Berdan are carefully written, and have found many purchasers. Among the popular leaders of brass bands in former days the names of W. H. Barnhardt, H. I ucker, H. Bishop, and H. Kern were prominent. The last-named leader was portly in the extreme, and able, apparently, to blow any horn that could be made. During the war with the South he went with the first regiment, and President Lincoln pronounced him "the biggest blower in the service." Among the leaders of the Opera House Band Ernest Sieger was prominent. He succeeded Kern, and was followed by Charles Graul; then came William Bendix, and then for teniyears H. Bishop was leader of the band. He was succeeded in 1877 by R. Speil. Gideon's Band —they of the fife and drumwere so called from Gurdon O. Williams, the amateur leader. They created much amusement between 1857 and I861. In 1882 there were five brass bands in the city,the Great Western, M. Hayek, leader; the Opera House, R. Speil, leader; the Light Guard, led by J. D. Elderkin; Gardner's Band, J. H. Gardner, leader; and Detroit National, led by M. Steyskal. The Theatre in Detroit seems to have been an American institution, for no record of any theatrical exhibitions is found until after the coming of the United States troops. In 1798 military and civic entertainments were common, and generally given in the old council-house. In I816 a theatre was fitted up in the upper part of the large brick storehouse at the foot of Wayne Street. The soldiers made the scenery, and the officers' wives painted it. Among the amateur performers in I829 were Major John Biddle and Lieutenant (afterwards General) James Watson Webb. This theatre was in operation almost continuously in winter seasons until about 1830. In that year a theatrical exhibition was given in a barn belonging to the Steamboat Hotel, kept by the well-known Ben Woodworth. Parsons, the manager, was a man of considerable talent, who subsequently doffed the sock and buskin, and became a clergyman. In the summer of 1834 a theatre was fitted up in the second story of the Smart Block, on the northeast corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues. The same year the brick building, still standing on the southeast corner of Gratiot and Farrar Streets, built for a Methodist Church but never dedicated, was purchased and fitted for a theatre. In 1836, and 1837 a wooden building, on the opposite side of Gratiot Street, was in use for theatrical exhibitions, as was also the Museum at the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street. After the fire which destroyed the Museum, the old wooden building on Gratiot Street was again used. In I848 theatrical entertainments were given at the City Hall. In 1849 the Metropolitan Theatre, on Jefferson Avenue opposite the Biddle House, was opened; it was subsequently called "The Varieties," and then the "Theatre Comique." It was burned and rebuilt, and in 1883 was turned into a livery stable. About 1864 an old church on the corner of Randolph and Congress Streets was converted into a theatre. It was called the Athenaeum, and used for theatricals several years. The old Baptist Church on the corner of Fort and Griswold Streets was also at one time used as a theatre. The Park Theatre, on Michigan Avenue, built in 1878, was turned into stores in I885. After the building of the opera houses, the better class of theatrical exhibitions were given in them. The first German theatre was located on the east side of St. Antoine Street, near Gratiot Street. In late years German theatricals have been given in Concordia Hall, on the east side of Rivard, between Croghan and Lafayette Streets. Among the more noted actresses who have appeared on the Detroit stage may be mentioned Julia Dean, who was here on October, 1849, and Charlotte Cushman, August 4, I85I. Ristori, the great 358 MUSIC AND THE DRAMA. Italian tragedienne, played on January II and 12, I867. C. B. Palmer and G. A. Hough-the former proprietor, and the latter manager, of the Detroit Athenaeum -gave five thousand dollars for the two entertainments. The plays given were "Marie Stuart" and "Elizabeth." The price of reserved seats was five dollars, general admission three dollars. The performances were given at Young Men's Hall, at that time the largest public auditorium in the city. The enterprise was not profitable, the net loss being about three hundred dollars. Modjeska was here December 12, 13, and 14, 1878, and again in October, 1883, and Janauschek from the 3d to the 6th of March, 1882. Mary Anderson, Sothern, Jefferson, Booth, and Barrett have visited Detroit repeatedly. Detroit is particularly noted as the birthplace of Bronson Howard, one of the most successful dramatists of our time. The American plays he composed have given pleasure to thousands. His " Fantine," a drama in five acts, founded on " Les Miserables," was first produced in September, 1864, at the Detroit Athenaeum. "Saratoga," his next piece, a comic drama in five acts, was produced at the Fifth Avenue Theatre in New York, in December, 1870, and was performed continuously for one hundred and one nights, and twice revived at the New Fifth Avenue Theatre. "Brighton," an English version of " Saratoga," was played by Charles Wyndham in London in 1874-1875 at the Court Theatre, and subsequently at the St. James, National, Standard, Criterion, and Haymarket theatres. It was presented two hundred and forty times in the years named. It was also adapted to the German, and produced in Berlin. In I880 it was revived and played in many cities throughout Great Britain. "Diamonds," a comedy in five acts, first produced at the Fifth Avenue Theatre, New York, in September, 1872, ran fifty-six nights. " Moorcroft," a comedy in four acts, produced in the fall of 1874 at the Fifth Avenue Theatre, was less successful, running only two weeks. " Hurricane," a comedy in three acts, was first brought out in Haverly's Theatre, Chicago, in May, 1878, and in the fall of I879 was played for four weeks at the Park Theatre in New York, and then in various other places. "Truth," the English version of "Hurricane," was produced at the Criterion Theatre in London, in February, 1879, and ran one hundred and fifty-two nights; in I880 it was performed in other of the principal English and Scotch cities, and up to 1883 had been produced over three hundred times in London. "The Banker's Daughter," a drama in five acts, was first performed November 30, 1878, at the Union Square Theatre, New York. It ran one hundred and thirty-eight nights, and has been performed repeatedly in the principal cities of the country. The English version, entitled "The Old Love and the New," was produced at the Court Theatre, London, on December 15, 1879, running one hundred nights or more, and has been given at least one hundred times in another English theatre. "Wives," a comedy in five acts, also produced in 1879, and "Old Love Letters," a one-act comedy of 1878, also achieved success. Among his later productions are "Green-room Fun" and "Baron Rudolph." In 1882 a four-act comedy, entitled "Young Mrs. Winthrop," began a successful run. In the way of comic operettas and farces, F. J. Thomas has achieved a local reputation. All of his plays were written especially for entertainments given by the Board of Trade for the benefit of the Industrial School. "A Child for Adoption" was performed in 1873; "The Honest Burglar" in I874; "Our Mamma" in I876, and "Engaged" in 1877. ART, ARTISTS, AND INVENTORS. Before the present century began, there were silversmiths in the city who produced elaborate and costly silver ware and ornaments, and skilled workmen in gold and silver have always found employment. Among our former quasz residents was Randolph Rogers, who, while living at Ann Arbor, was frequently in Detroit. His "Nydia," now in the University Museum, was exhibited here on April o1, 1862, at Young Men's Hall; his "Ruth" and " Isaac," the superb bronze doors in the Capitol at Washington, and our own Soldiers' Monument, all attest his well-earned fame. J. M. Stanley chose Detroit for his home in 1835. After a few years' residence, he wandered over all the WTest, gathering material for his brush. He returned in I863. During his absence he painted from life representative heads from forty-three different tribes, his collection including the portraits of one hundred and fifty-two Indian chiefs and noted characters. In anticipation of their purchase by the Government, the pictures were deposited in the Smithsonian Institution, and the nation suffered an irreparable loss in their destruction on January 24, I865, when a portion of the building was burned. In addition to these, Mr. Stanley produced one hundred and fifty other paintings, chiefly Indian scenes and studies. One of his best known single paintings is called " The Unveiling of the Conspiracy;" it portrays the Indian girl informing Gladwin of Pontiac's treachery. Another, "The Trial of Red Jacket," represents that chief in the centre of a group of warriors on trial for witchcraft. Seven of his works, " Uncas Gambling for the Buck," "The Trial of Red Jacket," " Indian Telegraph," "Blackfoot Card ART, ARTISTS, AND INVENTORS. 359 Players," "Hunters," and "On the War Path" have been chromoed; all, except the last, were produced in Berlin. The name of Alvah Bradish is familiar to the older citizens. He came to Detroit as early as 1837, and at intervals since then has resided here. From 1852 to 1864 he was Professor of Fine Arts in the university. He painted portraits of Stevens T. Mason, John Biddle, Judge Morell, Elon Farnsworth, H. S. Cole, E. P. Hastings, Z. Pitcher, R. S. Rice: D. Houghton, Hugh Brady, Lewis Cass, J. I883. Both exhibitions brought together articles old and new, curious and rare, expensive and desirable, and embraced nearly every department of fine arts. Crowds thronged the hall, and the exhibitions were in every respect creditable to the city. They were given under the auspices of the Fire Department Society, and their success was due very largely to the efforts of James A. Van Dyke. Among the local artists and amateurs represented in that exhibition were, F. E. Cohen, -. Von Brandis, L. T. Ives, George Watson, Robert Hopkin, ------------ ----- ~.~~~~~~..~~~-~;:.: ;; _':`-.ir-;7r.l ---- —=-;. -.. —. --- —-----------— -=rJ I..___=-;-~ --- —-— THE TOMLINSON GALLERY, 236 WOODWARD AVENUE, CORNER OF JOHN R STREET. Built in I870-.882. Kearsley, D. Cooper, Thomas Palmer, E. B. Ward, John R. Williams, A. S. Williams, Charles Lamed, S. Conant, George Duffield, and William E. Armitage. The name and fame of T. H. O. P. Burnham are preserved through his picture of the election scene of 1837. C. V. Bond was here from 1846 to 1853, and is favorably remembered. A Fine Art Exhibition at Firemen's Hall, commencing February I, 1852, lasted three weeks; it was repeated in February, 1853, and no local exhibitions of equal merit were held in Detroit up to R. S. Duncanson, George W. Clark, W. A. Raymond, D'Almaine, Mrs. R. W. Baird, C. F. Davis, A. Smith, Jr., -. Bovwman, and A. F. Banks. From June 25 to 28, 1862, a Loan Exhibition, managed by the ladies of the First Presbyterian Church, was held at Young Men's Hall, and many excellent works were brought together. Among the paintings were the following, claimed as originals: "Martin Luther," by Raphael, a landscape, by Salvator Rosa, and " Ecce Homo," by Guido. At various times some of the noted paintings of the world have been exhibited in Detroit. Dunlap's "Bearing the Cross" was here in September, 1826, o60 ART, ARTISTS, AND INVENT'ORS. 360~~~~~~~ ~ ART ARITADINOS and his "Calvary" at the Presbyterian Church in August, 1830, and in May, I840, with his "Christ Rejected," at the Baptist Church. Benjamin West's painting of "Christ Healing the Sick" was exhibited in July, I844, and Peale's "Court of Death" in July, I847. Rossiter's great paintings of "The Return of the Dove to the Ark" and "Miriam, the Prophetess, exulting over Pharoah" were exhibited on September 30, I85I, and for several days following, at Firemen's Hall. The following month, commencing with October 7, Dubufe's "Adam and Eve" was on exhibition at the City Hall. It had been on view at Detroit sixteen years before. About 1853 Powers' statue of "The Greek Slave" was on exhibition. Two French paintings, "Jerusalem in its Grandeur" and "Jerusalem in its Decay," were exhibited in I878. They were valued at $30,ooo. During the last two weeks of June, 1887, the great painting of Munkacsy, entitled "The Last Hours of Mozart,' for which General Alger paid $50,ooo, was exhibited at Young Men's Hall for the benefit of various philanthropic and religious institutions. In photographic work, Mr. J. E. Martin and the Messrs. Sutton were the first to give satisfactory results in Detroit. On March 6, 1855, there was a notice in the papers to the effect that the Messrs. Sutton had photographed by Turner's process with great success. Since then we have had daguerreotypes, ambrotypes, tintypes, ivorytypes, and photographs; and in no city is finer work produced, and nowhere in America are there larger or better equipped establishments. Large photographic work, crayon and India-ink portraits are made. From May 30 to June I, 1883, nearly fifty large and choice oil paintings by noted artists were exhibited at Randall's Art Gallery. All previous local exhibitions were dwarfed into insignificance by the Art Loan Exhibition projected by W. H. Brearley, and held in the fall of 1883. The first meeting in relation to it was held at the residence of Mrs. James F. Joy on December 6, I882; a subsequent meeting was held at the office of Newberry & McMillan, and a resolution passed favoring the proposed exhibition, provided a sufficient guaranty fund was pledged to make good any deficiency. Through the efforts of the promoter of the Art Loan, the following persons subscribed $I,ooo each as a guarantee: R. A. Alger, H. P. Baldwin, H. B. Brown, Clarence Black, W. Boeing, C. H. Buhl, W. A. Butler, Mrs. Jessie W. Brodhead, W. H. Brearley, A. II. Dey, James L. Edson, Moses W. Field, D. M. Ferry, E. S. Heineman, Charles C. Hodges, George H. Hammond, James F. Joy, Edward Kanter, W. W. Leggett, G. V. N. Lothrop, E. W. Meddaugh, W. A. Moore, C. R. Mabley, Mrs. C. R. Mabley, S. R. Mumford, James McMillan, Hugh McMillan, Richard McCauley, S. J. Murphy, Thorn dike Nourse, John S. Newberry, C. A. NewcomL, David Preston, Thomas W. Palmer, Francis Palms, Philo Parsons, George Peck, Thomas Pitts, C. C. Randall, George B. Remick, M. S. Smith, E. Y. Swift, James E. Scripps, George H. Scripps, Thomas S. Sprague, Allan Shelden, W. H. Tefft, David Whitney, Jr., Richard Storrs Willis, Willis Walker. An organization was effected, and committees were appointed as follows: Executive Committee: W. H. Brearley, chairman; Fred E. Farnsworth, secretary; John L. Harper, treasurer; H. P. Baldwin, Mrs. Richard Storrs Willis, Mrs. H. H. H. Crapo Smith, Mrs. Morse Stewart, Miss Adams, Mrs. E. C. Skinner, Mrs. E. G. Holden. C. C. RANDALL'S PHOTOGRAPHIC STUDIO, AND THE DETROIT ART STORE, CORNER MADISON AVE. AND WILLIAMS ST. Built in 1882. City Loan Committee: Mrs. Richard Storrs Willis, chairman; Mrs. Dr. Fitzhugh Edwards, secretary. Foreign Loan Committee: Mrs. H. H. H. Crapo Smith, chairman; Mrs. Justin E. Emerson, secretary. Printing Committee: Mrs. Morse Stewart, chairman; Miss Jenny Coyl, secretary. Transportation Committee: Miss Adams, chairman; Mrs. Gen. King, secretary. Property Committee: Mrs. E. C. Skinner, chairman; Mrs. Alexander Chapoton, secretary. Hanging and Arranging Committee: Mrs. E. G. Holden, chairman; Mrs. Alfred Russell, secretary. Finance Committee: H. P. Baldwin, chairman; Clarence Black, secretary. It was at first proposed to have the exhibition at ART, ARTISTS, AND INVENTORS. 361 Music Hall, and on April 5, 1883, a meeting to ratify the proposed plan for the exhibition was held at that place, and addresses were delivered by Bishop S. S. Harris, D. D., LL. D., Rev. C. Reilly, D. D., Rev. C. R. Henderson, S. M. Cutcheon, and O. W. Wight, M. D. At the meeting a letter was read from T. W. Palmer pledging $Io,ooo towards a permanent Art Loan, provided $40,000 additional was raised. Doubts having been expressed as to the safety from fire of Music Hall, it was decided to erect a building especially for the exhibition, and a tract of land on the north side of Lamed Street, between Bates and Randolph Streets, was rented for the sum of $500. Plans were procured, and at a total cost of $15,ooo a one-story brick building, 135 x 153 feet, was erected. The plan and contents of the several rooms were as indicated in the annexed diagram. A very complete catalogue of one hundred and seventy pages, furnished for the sum of twenty-five cents, showed the following list of articles: Oil paintings, 950; water-color paintings, 260; examples in sculpture, 102; bric-a-brac, 250; etchings, engravings, and other examples in black and white, I,ooo; designs in bronze, 56; textiles and fabrics, 103; curios and miscellany, 280. Total, 3,100. Supplementary exhibits brought up the total number to 4,851. An idea as to the completeness and variety of the exhibit is given by the statement that the various schools of art were represented by the works of one hundred and ninety-six American, one hundred and five French, sixty-four Italian, fiftyeight German, forty-five English, thirty-seven Holland, and twenty-three Spanish artists. An oil painting, entitled "The Betrothal of St. Catharine," was presented by Pope Leo XIII. The following Detroit artists had each one or more oil paintings on exhibition: W. B. Conely, L. T. Ives, J. A. Hekking, Robert Hopkin, Percy Ives, W. H. Machen, G. J. Melchers, J. C. Rolshoven, Mortimer L. Smith, George Watson, S. A. Whipple, John Antrobus, Miss Hattie Leonard,. Miss Annie Pitkin, and Delos Bell. The exhibition opened on Saturday evening, September I, 1883, and was continued during the months of September and October, and up to November IO. A total of 134,050 persons visited the building; the highest attendance was on October 27, when 6,476 persons were admitted; the lowest was on September 7, when there were 711 admissions. Originally a silver quarter was required as an entrance fee, but to accommodate those who wished to present tickets to their friends, ordinary tickets were finally placed on sale. The exhibition closed with a reception on Monday evening, November 12. The total receipts were about $45,ooo, and the expenses footed up $42,500.. X Y Z S T U V W P Q R K L M N 0 H K H'' J E G A _ K PLAN OF ART LOAN BUILDING. A-Office; B, entrance; C, exit; D, cloak room; E, gentlemen's room; F, entrance corridor; G, ladies' room; Y, refreshment room. H-Collections of Senator Palmer, Bela Hubbard, and a portion of the Home Loan. 1-Foreign Ioan (paintings from outside the City and State). J-The Cleveland, O., Loan. K-James McMillan's Collection. L-Annex to the Foreign Loan. M —Textiles, sculpture, etc. N-The C. F. Haseltine (Philadelphia) Collection. O-Combined collections of R. A. Alger, James F. Joy, H. P. Baldwin, F. Buhl, Mrs. C. H. Buhl, M. S. Smith, and Allan Shelden. P-Textiles and part of Home Loan. Q-Floral and Curios. R-Amateur Department. S-City Loan and Works of Detroit Artists. T-I)etroit Water Color Society and other Water Colors. U —'The Century Collection of original drawings. V-J. E. Scripps' collection of etchings, engravings, etc. W-The Colonial room (collections of rare and ancient furniture, pictures, etc). X-Bric-a-brac, textiles, fabrics, statuary. Y-Architectural photographs, Cesnola and Morgan pottery exhibits, refreshments. Z-Ancient paintings and religious pictures. During the progress of the loan and immediately after, a canvass was made for subscriptions to a fund of $4o,ooo, to be used in the purchase of grounds as a site for a permanent Museum of Art. For this fund each of the following persons subscribed one thousand dollars: R. A. Alger, Clara A. Avcry, II. P. Baldwin, Joseph Black, W. H. Brearley, C. H}. Buhl, James L. Edson, Charles Endicott, D. M. Ferry, Geo. H. Hammond, Bela Hubbard, C. B. Hubbard, G. V. N. Lothrop, James McMillan, Geo. F. Moore, W. A. Moore, S. R. Mumford, C. A. Newcomb, T. W. Palmer, Francis Palms, J. E. Scripps, G. H. Scripps, Allan Shelden, M. S. Smith, Frederick Stearns, Mrs. R. P. Toms, E. W. Voigt, Hiram Walker, E. C. Walker, Willis E. Walker. By request of Thomas W. Palmer, and as a testimonial of their services in behalf of the Art Loan, his pledge of $Io,ooo was applied to constitute the following persons subscribers to the fund for the site of the proposed building: Fred. E. Farnsworth, 362 INVENTORS AND INVENTIONS. 36 NETR N IVNOS. John L: Harper, Mrs. E. G. Holden, L. T. Ives, Mrs. E. C. Skinner, Mrs. H. H. H. Crapo Smith, Mrs. Col. J. T. Sterling, Mrs. Morse Stewart, John L. Warren, and Mrs. R. S. Willis. - A majority of the persons named met on February 27, 1884, a temporary organization was effected, and a committee on site appointed. At a meeting held on May 17, 1884, Mr. Brearley announced the purpose of James E. Scripps to give the munificent sum of $50,000 in futherance of the enterprise. Owing to the fact that there was no adequate law under which to incorporate, the friends of the enterprise were compelled to wait until after the passage of the law of February I6, I885, and then, on April I6, the Detroit Museum of Art was duly incorporated. It was placed under the management of eight -trustees, six of them to be elected by the persons who subscribed $i,ooo or more to the fund, and two by the board of aldermen on nomination of the mayor. Of those first elected two were to serve for one year, two for two years, two for three years, and the remaining two for four years, all trustees subsequently chosen to serve for four years. The first trustees were T. W. Palmer, W. A. Moore, L. T. Ives, W. H. Brearley, James E. Scripps, D. M. Ferry, James McMillan and Don M. Dickinson, the last two being appointed by the city. The officers for i885 were: President. T. WV. Palmer; treasurer, W. A. Moore; secretary, F. E. Farnsworth. During this year the original painting, "Peale's Court of Death," was presented by Geo. H. Scripps. The work of raising by subscription the sum of $ioo,ooo for a building was entered upon, and chiefly through the energy and persistence of Mr. Brearley by April 13, I886, the entire amount was subscribed, and on August 24, having fully succeeded in what he started out to accomplish, he resigned his position as a trustee, C. B. Hubbard, who had been elected secretary in May, I886, being elected a trustee in his place. In I888 Mr. Brearley was re-elected a trustee, and Mr. Hubbard took the place of Don M. Dickinson, removed from the city. The work of organization gradually went forward, and an art exhibition, lasting from May 29 to June 24, 1886, was held at Merrill Hall. The question of the site of the proposed Museum excited much interest, and was finally decided by the donation by residents on Jefferson Avenue of a lot on the southwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Hastings Street, the site costing $25,000, and during 1887 the organization began the erection of a building thereon. Inventors and Inventions. In variety and importance, the inventions of certain of our citizens are deservedly famous. Burt's solar compass, one of the most valuable of inven tions, was patented by William A. Burt on February 25, 1836, and fully perfected in 1850. It was examined and commended by Sir John Herschel in I85, and received a prize medal at the World's Fair of that year. It is called a solar compass because, by an ingenious arrangement, the rays of the sun are utilized by the instrument, which enables the surveyor to determine exactly the position of a due north and south line. By its use surveys can be accurately made in mineral districts where the old style of compass would be almost useless. Its value is so thoroughly appreciated by the Government that it is required to be used in government surveys; and without it a large amount of government land could have been properly surveyed only by the outlay of more money than the land was worth. The Calumet and Hecla Mine of Lake Superior, the largest and most productive copper mine in the world, was discovered through the use of this instrument. In connection with the subject of inventions, it is of interest to note that from I860 to 1863 Thomas A. Edison, while a train-boy on the Grand Trunk Railroad, was frequently in Detroit, and divided his time between the Telegraph and Free Press offices and the Public Library. While here he formed the idea of reading all the books in the library, and beginning with those on a lower shelf, he actually read a row of books occupying a shelf fifteen feet in length before other plans and duties caused him to desist. Among the books on that lower shelf were Newton's "Principia," Ure's 'Dictionary, and Burton's " Anatomy of Melancholy." With his name that of Charles J. Van Depoele should be mentioned; his electric light was first publicly exhibited on July 6, I879. The astronomical clock invented by Felix Meier is worthy of special mention, as in many respects it is the superior of all others. It was first exhibited in I879. It is eighteen feet high, eight feet wide, and five feet thick, and weighs four thousand pounds. It is run by weights weighing seven hundred pounds, and is wound up once in twelve days. The case is of black walnut, elegantly carved, and engraved with symbols of the United States. At the top is a marble dome, with a figure of Washington in his chair of state, protected by a canopy surmounted by a gilded statue of Columbia; on either side of the figure of Washington are colored servants in livery, guarding the doors between the pillars that support the canopy; on the four corners of the clock are figures emblematic of the march of life; the two lower corners are supported by female figures with flaming torches, one that of an infant, the second a youth, the third a man in middle life, and the fourth an aged man; still another figure, directly over the center, represents Death. All of these figures are INVENTORS AND INVENTIONS. 363 furnished with bells and hammers, and at the end of every quarter of an hour the infant strikes its bell, at the end of the half hour the youth strikes, the man strikes every three quarters of an hour, the old man strikes the hour, and the figure of Death gives the appropriate number of strokes for the hour. and extends the right hand, presenting the Declaration of Independence; the door on the left is opened by the servant, and all the Presidents from Washington to Hayes enter in procession, dressed each in the costume of his time. Passing before Washington, they raise their hands as they approach him, 11~i NEW JEVWELRY S'TORE OF M. S. SMITH & Co., COR. WOODWARD AVE. AND STATE ST. Built in 1883. The infant's bell is small and sweet-toned; the youth's bell larger and louder; the bell of manhood strong and resonant; that of old age diminishes in strength, while the bell of the skeleton has a deep, sad tone. When Death strikes the hour, a musicbox concealed within the clock begins to play; the figure of Washington slowly rises from the chair, SMITH'S CORNER, COR. OF JEFFERSON AND WOODWARD AvES. Built in 1839-68. Occupied for twenty years preceding 1883 by M. S. Smith & Co., Jewelers. walk across the platform, and disappear through the opposite door, which is promptly closed by the second servant. Washington then resumes his chair, and all is again quiet, save the measured tick of the huge pendulum. Figures of William Cullen Bryant and of Professor Morse, inventor of telegraphy, rest upon the pillars that support the 364 INVENTORS AND INVENTIONS. planetary system. The astronomical and mathematical calculation, if kept up, would show the correct movement of the planets for two hundred years. When the clock is in operation it shows local time in hours, minutes, and seconds; also the time at New York, Washington, San Francisco, Melbourne, Pekin, Cairo, Constantinople, St. Petersburgh, Vienna, London, Berlin, and Paris; the day of the week, calendar day of the month, month of the year, and seasons of the year; the signs of the zodiac, the revolutions of the earth on its axis and also around the sun; the revolutions of the moon around the earth, and with it around the sun; also, the moon's changes from the quarter to the half, three quarters, and full; and the movement of the planets around the sun. In connection with this clock, mention may be appropriately made of the clock set up by the firm of M. S. Smith & Co. on the outside of their store, on the corner of Woodward Avenue and State Street. It occupies the front of the second story and is both a curiosity and a public convenience; the dials are five feet in diameter and are illuminated at night. There are two life-size figures in connection with the works, one representing a smith with his hammer, and the other the emblematic Father Time, the figures together symbolizing "Smith's Time." Upon bells hung in full view both figures, in quick succession, give one stroke every quarter of an hour, two every half-hour, and three strokes a quarter of an hour before every full hour; four strokes are given every hour, and immediately thereafter an appropriate number for the particular hour. The clock and its fittings cost $6,ooo, and was first publicly shown on February 27, 1884. It is the only one of the kind in the United States, and there is but one similar to it in the world. The first successful gold pens were made by Lcvi Brown about 1840. He then lived in Detroit, but subsequently moved to New York. An invention of practical importance is the streetrailway track-cleaner and snow-plough of Augustus Day. It is used in many States by several roads, and is prized for its simplicity and efficiency. The planing machine of A. A. Wilder was at one time highly appreciated. He also invented a propeller wheel, still in general use. The patent refrigerators and freezing processes invented by William Davis have revolutionized the business of transporting flesh and fish. The use of kerosene to increase the illuminating power of coal gas, invented by F. H. Eichbaum, has come into general use. E. Fontaine's locomotive had trial trips on December 3, I880, and May 5, I88I, on the Canada Southern, where it made one hundred and eleven miles in ninety-eight minutes. The patent double-faced valves of James Flower, for water, steam, and gas connections, are in use all over the United States, as are also the seamless copper and brass tubes invented by John Bailey. PART VII. ARCHITECTURAL. 0 CHAPTER LI. HOUSES AN1) H()MIES. STO(RES ANI) BUSINESS BUILI)IN(;S. — Hi)USE ANI) STORE NUMBERS.-LIGHTING AND HIEATIN(.. HOUSES AND HOMES. 'I'HE houses of the first colonists were few and simple in construction. Less than a score of log huts, covered with birch bark or thatched \with grass, within a stockade of wooden pickets, made up the embryo city. It is safe to say that a more perfect "scene of quiet beauty" could nowhere else be found; the commodate them; in 1708 buildings were erected outside, and from time to time, as grants of land were made, or permits given, log houses in increasing numbers dotted the banks of the Detroit. They were scattered along at intervals of from a quarter to a half mile, and finally reached from the Rouge to Lake St. Clair, on both sides of the Strait. The growth, however, was slow; after the lapse of fifty F - ---- --- —------- - ---— —s --- - ---- ~~ — — 3 -I VIEW OF DETROIT IN 1796, FROM THIE ORIGINAI. PAINTING IN PARIS. Citadel. Present Wayne St. St. Anne's Church. Brig Gen. (;age. Old Council House. Griswold St. gray and brown of the roof, the rugged layers of years there were only from seventy-five to one hununhewn logs, the whitewashed chimneys, the green dred houses within the stockade, which was several of the surrounding forests, and the sheen of the times enlarged. The houses were usually built of placid river, afforded a rare combination of colors oak or cedar logs. In 1749, and probably before and a view that an artist might covet to portray. that time, stone for chimneys and ovens was obAs the years went on and the number of houses tained -from Monguagon and Stony Island. In 1763 increased, the stockade became too narrow to ac- there were lime-kilns near, and several stone buildL3671 368 H-OUSEIS ANDL HOMES. 368 HOUSES AND HOMES. ings inside the stockade. In 1870, while workmen were laying water pipes in front of the Cooper Block on Jefferson Avenue, they found between the curbstone and street-car track, at a depth of about four feet, the remains of an old chimney, with the iron crane still fast in the wall. Judging from its The chart is entitled " Topographical Plan of Detroit and of the Waters which form the junction of Lake Erie with Lake St. Clair. Prepared to illustrate the travels by General Collot in this part of the continent in 1796." The picture is of special interest because it marks the year when Detroit came into:z - RIVER FRONr OF JONES AND CASS FARlMS IN I8I9. De Garmo Jones House. Mouth of Savoyard. Cass House in original location. location, it was probably part of the cellar-kitchen of a house within the original stockade. In 1766 there were over a hundred houses in addition to the quarters for the troops. Three years later the stockade enclosed one hundred and twenty buildings, nearly all of them one story high, with a possession of the United States. It was made by a French spy. (See " French and Spanish Intrigues.") Some accounts state that at the time the Americans took possession, Detroit had three hundred houses. This number evidently included those outside the stockade, as in 1805 there were only about two hun-.-: --- -- -_ ---= -- -— L~l -- --— ~~-;rr — ~5 ----- - —- —j — ~~ —, Y ---rJ J I -i— I-J r7 C -- ------------— rri48,, P.\rr o:.' Si. ANNE'S STREET (NOW JEFFERSON AVENUE) IN i800. few of a story and a half. One house, near the present south side of Jefferson Avenue and a little west of Griswold Street, occupied in 1778 by Governor Hamilton, was two stories high. In 1773 the settlement included two hundred and eighty houses and one hundred and fifty-seven barns. The appearance of the river front of the town in 1796 is shown in a painting occupying one corner of a large chart in the Department of Marine in Paris. dred inside of the pickets. The accompanying engraving of a street in I80o is thoroughly characteristic. The original sketch was made by Lieutenant Jacob Kingsbury, and is said to represent a part of St. Anne Street. The large house on the right was occupied by one of the officers. The house first occupied by Governor Cass was located on the north side of Lamed, between First and Second Streets. Governor Cass bought it of HOUSES AND HOMES. 369.. the Macombs, and while he resided there a soldier with fixed bayonet was usually pacing to and fro in front. It next became the property of 0. Newberry, and subsequently had several different owners. It was originally located quite near the river, and in 1836, when the front of the Cass Farin was graded down, the house was left twelve feet above the street. It was then cut in twain, removed to its recent location, and repaired. There is some ground for believing that it was originally built in 1703. Mrs. Sheldon, in her History of Michigan, quotes a letter from Cadillac, in which he says he has built a house for the chief of the Hurons on a little eminence which overlooks their village, situated on the Canada shore. It was forty feet long and twentyfour feet wide and built of oak. The original site But straight its roof, its frame was sound From gable peak to level ground, Of sturdy beams so square and stout That time could never wear them out; For many a frigate safely rides With lighter keel and frailer sides. Strangers would pause to ponder o'er The low browed eaves and deep set door, And wondering ask what freakish fate Had saved that homely pile so late, When all beside was new and strange And change had oft succeeded change. But men are hurrying to and fro, Intent to lay its glories low; Thick through the air the shingles fly, The roof no more shuts out the sky, But vain each furious effort seems To wrench apart the seasoned beams, The oaks that lent them largest stood Of all the giants of the wood, TJHE OLD C.\ SS H,'Sl,O I,\ LARNED S'I'IEEI', JUST PRIOR TO ITS DEMOI,TION. of the Cass House fulfills these conditions, and as to the house itself, Governor Cass said to Mr. McKenney in 1826, "it is anterior to the time of Pontiac's war, there being on it now the marks of the bullets which were shot into it then." The house was demolished in August, 1882. The memories and romance that clustered about its oaken beams and rafters of fine-grained pine are admirably preserved in a historic poem by Judge Campbell, which, though not written for the public eye, has been kindly granted for this work. CASSINA. Half hid beside the noisy street, Gray with old storms and summer's heat, The ancient house seemed all alone, Hemmed in by walls of brick and stone, 24 lThat towered aloft, serenely great, When bold Champlain sailed down the strait And not a withered bough was seen ()r blemish on their crowns of green, W\hen the shrewd lord of Mont Desert First spoiled them of their branches fair, And bade his artisans to bring And shape them for the Huron King. Well mortised joints with bolt and brace Held the broad timbers in their place, Unmnoved by storm or earthquake shock As buttresses of living rock. Now axe and lever, day by day, Wear slow the stubborn logs away; And deep-sunk balls and hatchet scars Give token of long ended wars, When rival tribes came prowling round, And made each spot a battle ground. And day by day a curious throng Marks the dull task, and tarries long, 370 HOUSES AND HOMES. Well pleased to find some relic slight Memorial of its former plight,Perchance a hammered bolt or key Brought hither from beyond the sea When great King Louis held the throne, And claimed this region as his own. One stands aloof whose earnest face Bears witness to his Gallic race, With shoulders bent, and feeble frame, But eyes that glow like burning flame, He sees among that rubbish cast The records of a glorious past,Of brave explorers, on their quest To open wide the fabled west; Of fearless nobles, trained to know All haps that fortune can bestow; Of men of war and men of state, Who there were born or bowed to fate, And now beneath the clover lie, But leave a fame that cannot die. Those eyes look backward through the gloom, And see within the generous room Gay crowds of fair and joyous guests, With cheerful words and harmless jests, And pleasant songs of old romance,Their heritage from beauteous France; While music sounds, and dancing feet The solid floor in cadence beat, Or circle round in merry garnes, Lit by the chimney's crackling flames. There gathering with the closing year Old friends rejoice with Christmas cheer, 'While youths no more the past review, But turn impatient towards the new. And old and young observe the rite When crowns are worn but one brief night, And all the pomp of king and queen Hangs on the fortune of the bean. The past goes by him as a stream That flows in some enchanting dream, And in that waking dream he stands With smiling lips and folded hands, Serene as in his youthful prime, While fancy triumphs over time. He hears all tuneful sounds that lie Within the sphere of harmony, While in his fragile hand is skill To summon music at his will. He knows the wood whose even grain Will echo back the sweetest strain, And whence the subtle charm is lent To the great master's instrument. With anxious care his eye explores The rafters broad and well laid floors, And in a narrow plank of pine He finds the riches of a mine; For deftly carven, smooth and thin, Set in a shapely violin, In sweet accord its shell will ring A clear response to every string. So, gaining sweetness evermore, 'T will charm him with the sounds of yore, And make him lord, while life shall last, Of all the treasures of the past. Roused by that spell, his spirit woke, And plain before his sight there stood, Surrounded by a spreading wood, The new raised frame of jointed oak. Behind a murmuring river flowed, And sheltered in the low ravine Along its grassy banks were seen In every clear and sunny spot The lodges where the Wyandot Had found at last a safe abode. But fairer seems the view before The spacious mansion's open door. The bluff, a few short steps away, Looks down upon a tranquil bay, Through terraced trees that spread between An amphitheatre of green. The elm tree waves its drooping plume, The dark acacia wastes perfume That mingles in the dewy morn With fresher fragrance of the thorn; And emerald grass and blossoms sweet Reach the still waters at its feet. A deep ship-channel skirts the bay Southward a furlong stretch away, And eastward at the early gun The fort's broad standard greets the sun, While, loudly pealing, as it floats, They hear the mellow bugle notes. His fancy sees the changes wrought By age to age in deed and thought,The woodland vanished with the stream, Within the bay no waters gleam, The verdant slope a level made For populous thoroughfares of trade. And all things modern in the town, But those old timbers scarred and brown. So homeward plodding, sad and still, His thoughts go wandering at their will, Till, murmuring gently as they throng, They prompt him to a homely song. The Englishmen of Orange With promises and bribes Are sending out their runners To reach the northern tribes, And the chiefs of the great Five Nations Think fiercely of the day When the Frenchmen sacked their strongholds And spoiled them of their prey. And they long for the beaver meadows They won from the Huron braves, And the land of deer and bison Beyond Lake Erie's waves. But they shrink from the rough bushlopers, Who heed no forest law, And they fear the Lord of Cadillac, Who rules at Mackinaw. But the Fathers of the Black Robe Strove sharply with Lamothe, And the greedy horde of traders Would bring him fain to nought. For he deemed a land well peopled, A land of Christian men, Was better far than all the spoil That ever paid the hunter's toil, Or all the beasts that roam the wood, Or feed in trackless solitude Or lurk in rocky den. And he sued before King Louis On Erie's pleasant strait To plant a town and build a fort, Where all the nations might resort, And in their children's days might see In peace and true prosperity The founding of a State. His foes were strong and cunning While he stood all alone, HOUSES AND HOMES..., ~ ~ ~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~_.. 371 But he pleaded true and fearless Before the monarch's throne; And when his boon was granted, In triumph o'er the sea He hasted to lead westward His gallant company. Down the broad channel swift they flew In roomy barge and light canoe, And landed at the middle gate, The narrowest pass of all the strait Where the great Idol met its fate Beneath the waters blue. The tribes of the northern rivers, The tribes of the western plain, Came near, and built their wigwams Beside the fort domain. The warriors of the Mohawk No more the path beset And the Seneca came suing To smoke the calumet. While the great king Sastaretsi Chief of the Huron clan Close by his good French brother To raise his fort began. He begged Lamothe to teach him In all the Frenchman's ways, That his children might grow wiser And live in peaceful days. And so in the coming ages Their races should combine, And plant their corn and till their land, And fight beneath the same command. And bow in one cathedral grand Before a common shrine. Then quick made friendly answer The valiant chevalier,The Huron's soul is honest, The Huron's eye is clear, And gladly will I listen To hear in the cabin's gloom The humming of the spindle, The rattling of the loom. No softer fleece is gathered, To card, or weave, or spin, Than the dusky wool of the bison Or the fur of the beaver skin; And the low-voiced Huron women, As they sing in an undertone, Have fingers strong and supple As the maids that spin by the Rhone. And in the Huron clearings The corn grows tall and green, And the mats that deck their wigwam Are fit for a weary queen. Lamothe employed his craftsmen To build a house of frame, Where tall king Sastaretsi First lit the chimney flame. There oft in peace together The white chief and the red Were joined in friendly council Or broke as friends their bread, Till, restless at the malice Of knaves, who grudged his place, And smirched his name with slander, He won a further grace. Then from his western seigneurie He homeward sailed across the sea, And other chiefs with other thought Confounded all the work he wrought, And right was sold, and wrong was bought, With treachery bold and base. The Hurons left their village, And sought the Isle of the Lynn, But the house was all too pleasant That none should dwell therein; And threescore years were ended, And the lily flag was down When Pontiac and his allies Encamped before the town. But safely stood the mansion, Unspoiled of bolt or bar, For the Indians loved St. Martin, And the gray hairs of Navarre. Sprung from an old and kingly race, The glory of his dwelling place Came from his honored children more Than from his ancestry of yore Bedecked with cross and star. Behind the dormer windows That open on the strait First cradled were the Anthons, Renowned in church and state. The good and wise physician, Of all the red men known, Had lore of the German forest, Of star and mine and stone; And the slender, dark-eyed mother That held them on her knees, Sang songs of the Spanish border, The land of the Pyrenees. Who knows what golden threads of thought Before the infant memory brought, In manly eloquence were wrought Beneath those waving trees? There on the New Years gathered, Within the largest room, Around the roaring chimney, The household of Macomb. Straight sat the keen De Peyster, With learning quaint in store, But first, at sound of the fiddle, To dance on the well-rubbed floor. And there were the great fur traders, Whose will in the woods was law, With heart of a Highland chieftain, And grip of a lion's paw. And all were gay together With New Year's mirth and glee, While the children romped with the elders Or teased the grave Pani. And little they dreamed, in childish sport, Of high command in field and fort, And brilliant scenes in hall and court, At home and o'er the sea. The hale old house had flourished A hundred years and ten,Above the fort was floating The flag of stars again. A brave and honored soldier Came up to hold the town,A wise and manly ruler, A scholar of renown. And here he made his homestead And lived in quiet state, 372 HOUSES AND HOMES. Before the wandering emigrants In I807 G Began to crowd the strait. on the sout Along the sloping bank side, Street It In front of his open door, The tents of the forest chieftains Are mustered as of yore. And painted warriors, as they pass, Or smoke in groups upon the grass, Smile grim applause when stately Cass Moves downward to the shore. The spreading town has shouldered The useless fort away, i'" The grasping hands of Commerce Are closing on the bay, The garden and the orchard No ripened fruit retain, And idlers cross the wheat-fields And trample down the grain. Alas for the brave old mansion! q Alas for its ancient fame! ~i Old things make room for the present As ashes follow the flame. But all of the massy timbers Are sound and stiff and strong, And in their seasoned fibre lies A store of precious memories, That, wakened by the sounding bow, May murmur music sweet and low, - Or quiver into song. The old Moran House, built about 1734, was still standing in 1883, on Woodbridge Street, between St. Antoine and Hastings Streets. The Lafferty House was on the river, between what are now Twelfth and Thirteenth Streets. The main portion of this building was erected in I747; an addition was built in I815. The house was burned or demolished in 1861.;overnor Hull built a brick residence fifty feet square, theast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph as the first brick house in the town, and, up to iTHE OLD LAFFERTY HOI'SE. about 1820, the only one. In the fall of 1813 General Harrison occupied it as headquarters, but during the sickness in the army in the latter part of 1813 and early in I814 the officers' quarters were removed to the Cass House, and the Hull House became the general hospital; later on it again became the officers' quarters. It was used by General Macomb, and was subsequently occupied by William Woodbridge while secretary of the Territory, and then by Major John Biddie, brother of Nicholas Biddle, of United States Bank fame. In 1823, when Mr. Biddle became LUited States Register, he used it for the Land Office. About I830 an addition, extending to the avenue, was built on the west side. This was occupied by Z. Chandler as a dry goods store. In June, 1834, Mrs. Snelling, widow of Colonel Snelling, of the United States Army, leased it for a boarding house. It subsequently became the AmericanHouse. The Campau House, torn down in March, i88o, was on the south side of Jefferson Avenue, midway between Griswold and Shelby Streets, and is said to have occupied the site of the original headquarters of Cadillac. It was erected in I813, on an old stone foundation, THE OLD MORAN HousE. After the fire of I805 the first house built inside the limits of the old stockade was owned by Peter Audrain. It was on the north side of Jefferson Avenue, just below the Michigan Exchange. HOUSES ANI) HOMES. - ~ ~~~~~~~~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~.- — ~ 373 for Joseph Campau, by Ignace Moross, at a cost poses. Fifty-one buildings had been erected the of about $6,000. It was one of the most ancient, previous year. Up to this time the houses were and at the time of its destruction the best preserved built almost exclusively of hewn logs, many of them DETROIT IN 1826. From a Water-color drawing by Gen. Alexander Macomb. of any of the French houses of the olden time. The engraving of it is from a painting by Mr. Cohen in 1853. In 1813 there were about one hundred houses in boarded on the outside. The roofs were very steep, coming within a few feet of the ground. From one to three dormer windows were inserted, and frequently the edges of the roof were notched and painted red. The shingles were of white cedar, and often covered not only the roof but the sides of the house. Some houses were coated both outside and inside, Gov. HULL'S RESIDENCE. THE CAMPAU HOUSE. Detroit. In June, 1819, an official count showed one hundred and forty-two dwellings, and one hundred and thirty-one buildings used for other pur with plaster laid over cedar lath split so unevenly that the plaster varied from half an inch to several inches in thickness. Some of the older houses were 374 HOUSES A lined with birch bark, and mention is made, in one old trader's book, of deerskins sold for house linings. The outer front door was divided crosswise in the middle. The upper part might tlus be open while the lower half was closed. If the door was painted a bright green, it was an evidence of the taste and wealth of the householder. Each part of the door had its own fastening, and locks nearly a foot square; and knockers that would "knock up " a neighborhood were a part of the appurtenances. Door-bells and gongs are of comparatively recent introduction. Tight board shutters were provided for all the windows. The glass in the windows was of the smallest size, and, in many cases, so thor ND HOMlES. purpose, to make many a blazing fire. On the wall a crucifix hung; and in winter, spread in front of the bed, a bear or deer skin, dressed with the fur on, was deemed an essential. About the year 1828 the city began to grow more rapidly, but the number of houses erected barely kept pace with the demand, and almost any sort of a dwelling commanded a high rent. In 1852 there was a total of 4,685 buildings, of which 6oi were of brick, 7 of stone, and 4,077 of wood. The number of houses in the city in 1853, and their location, is indicated in the facsimile of the Henry Hart Map, published in that year. In I86o there were 8,243 dwelling houses; in 1874 there were 4,046 brick, and 16,255 wooden buildings, valued at about $22,000,000. Since 1877, under the regulation which provides that the fire marshal shall inspect all new buildings or additions, an account has been kept of the value of the buildings erected each year, and, making allowance for the fact that the cost of a building almost invariably exceeds the II 1.-S original estimate, it appears that I ~l ~'"- in 1878 fully $I,ooo,ooo was expended for new buildings, and an average of nearly $3,000,000 per year has been invested in buildings since that date. In 1882 there were 28,345 buildings assessed for taxes, and 1,310 new buildings erected. The first building moved in Detroit was the old church of the First Protestant Society. The work was accomplished by 868. a man who came for the purpose from Buffalo, bringing his rollers with him. Another removal of note occurred in 1862, when the brick house just east of the residence of James F. Joy, on the corner of Fort and First Streets, was moved a distance of sixteen feet,-a family living in and occupying it while the work was in progress. This was the first time such a feat was performed in Detroit. The Van Dyke residence, built in 1836 by F. H. Stevens, is said to have been built with the first pressed brick made in the United States. The first gravel roof was laid in 1848 on a small addition to store No. I15 Woodward Avenue. Slate roofs were first used about I853, one being then placed on the Newberry Warehouse at foot of Wayne Street. Ten years later they were common. The first row of brick dwellings under one roof was FOm')lNiKK RESIDENCE OF 1. H. HlxCHMAN. ONE OF ITHE 1,EA HOUSES IN TIE CITY. 117 Fort Street West. Built in 1848, removed in (T oughly patched up that half the light was excluded. All of the nails used were made by hand, and as wood was plentiful, the beams and rafters were large enough to do duty in any building of the present day. As a matter of course, a large chimney of stone occupied the center of the house. The inside furnishing was simple in the extreme. Carpets were almost unknown; Indian mats on yellow floors often supplied their place, and sometimes the 'floor was sanded. Here and there were a few rush or wooden chairs; a plain deal table stood at one side, and a dresser on the other, on which Queen's ware and shining pewter were displayed. In the bedroom was a wooden chest, and a high-post bedstead, with wood enough in it, if used for that ~- __ S. ^i.. I^ i~ E=S'' '...1...........-. '.... ' ---- -.. I /-T --- /L r sflo. --- / ---- i. y ~/ I s ~'i /,. " --- —---- --— '-..- '. _.___._, _:.... 11 K;. ~1c *i: k t~ u 14 'nH 0 33.a Po.1.1 Hrum Zr, Ul t6t 0 Ty. i i i I ___~C~C 376 HOUSES AND HOMES. erected by B. Wight in I853 on the north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Russell and Riopelle Streets. Bay windows were introduced in I860. beds, and the grounds of hundreds of citizens give ample evidence that there is no lack of aesthetic taste. Many of the houses have neat and well-kept lawns, and the introduction of lawn mowers in I868, and their general use since 1870, afford facilities for keeping lawns in order that yearly increases their number. Few, if any, cities have so large an area in proportion to population, or furnish so much dwelling room to their inhabitants. The United States census of I880 shows that Detroit has a greater number of dwellings in proportion to its population than any one of one hundred of the largest cities in the United States. The average number of persons to each house is only 5.68. Where dwellings are rented the lease usually expires on the first of May. The rent of dwellings varies from five dollars to two hundred dollars per month; an average dwelling in a good location can be had at from twenty dollars to fifty dollars per month. Most of the houses, however, are owned by their occupants, and the numerous engravings contained herein give ample evidence of beauty and variety of architectural style. The date of erection, given THE J-\MES AnnoTT RESIDENCE. Southeast corner of Griswold and Fort Street. Erected in I835. Torn down in i881. With the introduction of street cars in 1863, the suburbs of the city began to build up rapidly and all property on the outskirts greatly increased in value. At the same time, in part owing to the wealth accumulated during the war, new departures in architecture were constantly inaugurated, and now every year marks an increase of elaboration in both stores and residences, and the streets grow increasingly attrattive. Mansard roofs were introduced in I870. No street or avenue has a monopoly of fine residences. In every ward there are many elegant houses. Indeed, the city is noted for the unusual number of tasteful and.::.: elaborate homes it contains, and Detroit has probably several times the number of desirable residence streets of any city of its size. The exceptionally numerous and thrifty shade-trees are the pride of its citizens and the admiration of visitors; so numerous are they that from the top of the City Hall tower there seem to be as many trees as houses. The soil is well adapted for lawns and flower THE JOHN PALMER HOMESTEAD. Southwest corer of Griswold and Fort Streets. Built in I829. Removed in i869. in connection with each building, is of interest as showing the growth of the city and changes in styles of architecture. RESIDENCES. 3 77 TI tE - h FAtRIAt~ REtsiDElNCE, Northwest corner Farrar and Bates Streets. Built in i8t6. a I T 7: T I THE JOHN FARMER PROPERTY IN 18;q. Sooth side of Farmer btethtwecn MIonroe Avenue anti Bates Stteet. REsiDENCE OF GEN. LEWVIS CASS, Nortjhwest corner of Fort and Cass Streets. Built about:1840. Removed in 1876. 378 RESI DENCES. a THE D1JFFIELD HOMESTEAD. Residence of Rev. Geo. Duffield, D. D., northeast corner of Woodward Ave. and High Street. Erected in 1846. Torn down inT1883. a THE BaUSH HOMESTEAD IN 1830o. Between Randolph, Brush, Lafayette and Croghan Streets. Looking north from Lafayette Street. RESIDENCES. 379 RESIDENCE OF W. K. COYL, East sidle of Woodward Avenue, near Canmpus Martius. Torn dowii in x86o. RESIDENCE OF GOV. WM. WOODBRIDGE, on Woodbridge Street. Torn down in 1873. 380 R'E SID)E N CE S. FORMER RESIDENCE OF SOLOMoN., DAVIS., Southeast corner of Farmner and Bates Strveet~s. Built in x837. Removed in i883. RESIDENCE OF MRS. JAMEs A. VAN DYKE. 308 Jefferson Ave. Built inl 1836-72. RESI DENCES. 381 " ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~'-, -- RESIDENCE OF THE LATE FRANCIS PALMS. 357 Jefferson Ave. Built in 1848. RESIDENCE OF JAMES FLATTERY, 384 Jefferson Ave. Built in 1879. 382 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE R. H. HALL, 406 Jefferson Ave. Built in 1855. RESIDENCE: op A. H. DEY, 425 Jefferson Ave. Built in i862. RESIDENCES. 383 - RE~siDENCE oIv A. (C. MCGRAW, 460 Jeffersoni Ave. Built in 1852. RE~SIDENCE OF, A. E. BRUSH, 462 Jefferson Ave. Built in i828-70. -.0 i,~~~~::':~~~~~~~~t~~~t~~~zrR V E A,~L e I,vrKg II* I< RESIDENCE OF THE LATE JOHN S. NEWBERRY, 483 Jefferson Avenue. Built in 1875. A I RESIDENCE OF JAMES MCMILLAN, 515 Jefferson Avenue. Built in i373-80. 386 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF W. (4. THOMPSON. 478 Jefferson Ave. Built inii 876. RESIDENCE OF H. R. NEWBERRY, 481 Jefferson Ave. Built in 1852. RESIDENCES. -S.1.A....... _ x^~'i i~ ts ^^flfi~ofSilttflf ihIlrf~~ti^ 387 RESIDENCE OF THOMAS FERGUSON, 52T Jefferson Ave. Built in i853-83. RESIDENCE OF S. D. MILLER. 524 Jefferson Ave. Built in 1864. 388 RESIDENCES. FJiT777 r7 388~~U; l f$$ ' f.2.. _ <:I, x~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~ RESIDENCE OF THE LATE ROBERT P. TOMS, 526 Jefferson Ave. Built in 1876. THE THOMAS PALMER HOMESTEAD, 650 Jefferson Ave. Built in I848. Torn down in I886. RESIDENCES. 389 PESIDLECE OF W. K. IMUIR, 655 Jefferson Ave. Built in 1879.,-- -. - RESIDENCE OF JEREMIAH DWYER, 692 Jefferson Ave. Built in i888. 390 RESI DENCES. R1*sODENCE OF GEORGE MCMILLAN, 740 Jefferson Ave. Built in i870. RESIDENCE OF' THE LATE HUGH MOFFAT, 750 Jefferson Ave. Built in i86i. RESIDENCES. 391 0VI REKIDENCE OF (4EoRoE DAVO,'4 760.Jefferson Ave. Built in 1852. RESIDENCE OF S. B. GRUMMOND, SIO Jefferson Ave. Built in i852. 392 392 ~~~~~~~RESIDENCES. RESIDE.NCE, OF Mm;. CHARLEs Di'CHARME, 834 Jeffergon Ave. Built in iS69. RESIDENCE OF S. D. ELWOOD, south side of Jefferson Ave.. Haintramnek. Built in t870. RESIDENCES. 3913 RESIDENCE OF W. B. WESSON, south side of Jefferson Ave., Hamntramck. Built in 1838-56-64. RESIDENCE OF, J. GREENSLADE, 126 McDougall Ave. Built in I876. 394 RESI DENCES. RESIDENCE OF J. MICHELS, 182 McDougall Ave. Built in i875. RESIDENCE OF JOHN OWEN, 6i Fort St. West. Built in i873. RESIDENCES. _,.......... 395 RESIDENCE OF G. V. N. LOTHROP, 94 Fort St. West. Built in 1860-82. RESIDENCE OF H. A. NEWLAND, 177 Fort St. West. Built in I845-86. RESIDENCE OF EX-GOVERNOR H. P. BALDWIN, 10 Fort St. West. Built in 1875. RESIDENCES. 397 REsIDENCE OF JAMES F. Joy, 140 Fort St. West. Built in i845-62-82. RESIDENCE OF MRS. ZACHARIAH CHANDLER, 174 Fort St. West. Built in 1858. :: RESIDENCE OF RUSSELL A. ALGER, 150 Fort St. West. Built in 1885. RESIDENCES. 399 RESIDENCE OF ALLAN SHELDEN, i96 Fort St. West. Built in 1875. I FORMER RESIDENCE OF G. S. FROST, southwest corner of Fort and Third Sts. Built in 1845-69. 400 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF BENJAMIN VERNOR, 222 Fort St. West. Built in 1851. RESIDENCE OF, DON M. DICKINSON, 231 Fort St. West. Built in x867-75. Torn down in 1890. RESIDENCES. RESIDENCES. ~~~~401 RESIDENCE OF THE LATE N. W. BROOKS, 233 Fort St. West. Built in 1265. / ' Ifj I-J6-W~ THE FORMER DE GARMO JONEs RESIDENCE, Fort St., between Fourth and Fifth Sts. Built in i8px; moved forward in 1882. 402 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF ALEXANDER DELANO, 264 Fort St., corner of Fifth St. Built in 1858. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE J. P. PHILLIPS, 301 Fort St. West. Built in i874. RESIDENCES. 403 RESIDENCFE OF EMLY WARD. 807 Fort St. West. Built ill 869. \ w~~~~~~~ J ---.........~ -- ~_;,~. ll~ m-C^ —= cI m ' ',,,,, - m-" RESIDENCE OF HENRY HEAMES, 896 Fort St. West. Built in I874. 404 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OiF EDWIN REEDER. Indian Ave., near Fort St. Built in 1875', REiSIDENCE OF DANIEL ScoTTEN, Vinewood Ave., near Fort St. Built in 1856. RESIDENCES. 405 RESIDENCE OF THE LATE W. E. LOVETT, northwest corner of Fort St. and Vinewood Ave. Built in 1871. RESIDENCE OF BELA HUBBARD, Vinewood Ave., near Fort St. Built in i856. .5 33 3) S 'C 3, C 3,;t~ P~ r/z -44 a) cl, Z 4..;mPr. (1 Irx:vw RESIDENCES. 407 RESIDENCE OF C. H. BUHL,, 63 Lafayette Ave. Built in 1854-82. RESIDENCE: OF M. S. SMITH, -120 Lafayette Ave. Built in x872. 408 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF T. D. BUHL, 143 Lafayette Ave. Built in 1869. RESIDENCE OF GEORGE W. BISSELL, '144 Lafayette Ave: Built in 1855. RESIDENCES. RESIDENCES. 4~~~09 RESIDENCE OF E. Y. SWIFT, 184 Lafayette Ave. Built in 1877. ml RESIDENCE OF WV. A. BUTLER, 185 Lafayette Ave. Built in 1875. 410 R~ ECS RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF D. M. RICHARDSON, 409 Lafayette Ave. Built, in iL863. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE GEORGE H. HAMMOND, 105 Howard St. Built in 1876. RESIDENCIES.41 411 RESIDENCE oiF NEIL FLATTERY, 21 Washington Ave. Built, in 1859. THE UTOPIA BuILDING, Stores,, and Residences, northwest corner of Bagley Ave. and Clifford St. Erected by William Wreford, 1888. 412 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF RIGHT REV. JOHN S. FOLEY, Bishop of D)etroit, 31 Washington Ave. Built in I874-78. RESIDENCE OF J. W. WATERMAN, 50 Washington Ave. Built in I849. RESIDENCES. 4 131 RESIDENCF OF ROBERT' MCMILLAN, 77 Washington Ave. Built hi i850-79. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE M. I. MILLS, 79 Washington Ave. Built in 1850.' 41f4 R ESIDLENCES. RESIDENCE OF JOHN MOORE. 93 Washington Ave. Built in 1873. RESIDENCE OF' THE LATE Ex-GOVERNOR JOHN J. BAGLEY, corner Washington Ave. and Park St. Built in 1869. RESIDENCES. 415 IESIDEN(E OF THE LATE 8. F. HIODOE, i68 Henry St. Built iin i869. RESIDENCE-OF THE LATE DAVID PRESTON, 43 Bagg St. Built in i86o. 416REDECS RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF E. W. VOIGT, southeast corner of Second Ave. andl Ledyard St. Built in 1884. RESIDENCE OF' J. S. VERNOR, 164 Bagg Street. Built in i869. RESI DENCES.47 417 RESIDENCE OF THE LATE J. B. WAYNE, 477 Second( Ave., corner of Bagg Street. Built in 1876. RESIDENCE OF J. A. Roys, 305 CJass Ave. Built in 1865-72. 418 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF ALANSON SHELEY, 37 Si~~ Place. Built inI i874. RE:SIDENCE OF G. 0. ROBINSON. 425 Cass Ave. Built in 1876. RESIDENCES. 419 RESIDENCE OF 0). W. SHIPMAN, 4-9 Cass Ave. Built in 1877. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE J. C. WARNER, southeast corner of Second and Alexandrine Aves. Built in 1883. 420. RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF II. H. HUMPHREY, 25 Canfield Ave. Erected in i888. RESIDENCE OF WILLIAM COWIE, 112 Canfield Ave. Built in 1878. RESIDENCES. 421 RESIDENCE OF J. (C. DICKINSON, 40 Canfield Ave. Built in 1883. RESIDENCE OF EDWARD BURK, 33 Canfield Ave. Built in I884. 422 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF C. W. MOORE, 134 Alexandrine Avenue West. Built in i880. RESIDENCE OF J. E. SCRIPPS, 593 Trumbull Avenue. Built in 1879. RESIDENCES. 423 RESIDENCE AND BCILDINGS OF H. II. LEROY, 271 Woodward Ave. Built in 1840. RESIDENCE OF E. S. HEINEMAN. 428 Woodward Ave. Built in 1859. 424. ~~~~~RESIDENCES. 'RESIDENCE OF MRS. L. R. )IEDBTJRY, 444 Woodward Ave. Built. in i86i. RESIDENCE OF C. J. WHITNEY, 437 Woodward Ave. Built in 2x857-82. RESIDENCES. 425 RESIDENCE OF DAVID WHITNEY, JR., 443 Woodwardl Ave. Built in 1870. RESIDENCE OF JOHN PRIDDEON, 456 Woodward Ave. Built in i868. 426 RESIDENCES. 426 RESI DENCES. RESIDENCE OF J. S9. FARRAND, 457 Woodward Ave. Built in 1854. RESIDENCE OF SAMUEL HEAVENRICH, 468 Woodward Ave. Built in 1874. RESIDENCES. 42 7 RESIDENCE OF MRS. H. L. FRUE, 481 Woodward Ave. Built in 187o-83. RESIDENCE OF W. C. WILLIAMS, 500 Woodward Ave. Built in i866. 428 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF PHILO PARSONS, 530 Woodward Ave. Built in 1876. RESIDENCE OF F. W. HAYES, 6o8 Woodward Ave. Built in 1870. RESIDENCES.42 429 RE~sIDENCE OF WX. WV. LEGGETT, 645 WXoodward Ave. Built in 1283. RESIDENCE OF JOHN BABILLIoN, 632 Woodward Ave. Built in 1872. 430 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF JOSEPH BLACK, 665 Woodward Ave. Built in I878 RESIDENCE OF C. H. SMITH, 821 Wooiward Ave. Built in 1834. RESI DEN CES. 43' RESIDENCE oF A. G. LINDSAY, 88i Woodward Ave. Built ini i88o. RESIDENCE OF SIMON J. MURPIXY, 1005 Woodward Ave. oo 0s 0 a) co 0 0 0 Co a r/ RESIDENCES. 433 RE~sIDENCE, OF R. H. FYFF, 925 Woodwardl Ave. Built ini 1876. RESIDENCE op GEo. F. MOORE, 1010 Woodward Ave. Built in i88i. If. i4.. RESIDENCE OF H. S. PINGREE, 990 Woodward Ave. Built in 187I-83. RESIDENCES. 435 RESIDENCE (IF THE LATE JOHN BURT, 1073 Woodward Ave. Built in 1883. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE WELLS BURT, 1077 Woodward Ave. Built in 1883. 436 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF EDWARD S,"MITH, eorilei-Woodlward and Putualn Aves. Builtlri i888. RESIDENCE OF Wm. A. MOORE, 1015.Woodward Ave. Built in 1870. RESIDENCES. 437 RESIDENCE OF WM. H1. NTEVENS, 1025 Woodward Ave. Built in 1875. RESIDENCE OF C. A. NEWCOMB, 1085 Woodward Ave. Built in 1874. r__~T RESIDENCE OF THOMAS W. PALMER, 1040 Woodward Ave. Built in 1864-74. RESIDENCES. 439 RESIDETNCE OF C. C. BowEN, io95 Woodward Ave. Built in i872. RESIDENCE OF Wm. BOEING, 1101 Woodward Ave. Built in '1875. 440 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF THOMAS McGRAW, 1055 Woodward Ave. Built in i872. FORMER RESIDENCE OF L. L. FARNSWORTH, 1050 Woodward Ave. Built in 1876. Removed in i886. RESI DENCES. 44' RESIDENCE OF G4iLBERT AV LEE, nlortheast cornler ot 1Ferry Ave. and John R St. Built in z889. RESIDENCE OF SIDNEY B. DIXON, 56 Warren Ave. East. Built in i887. 442REIECS RESIDENCES. ------ -- - RESIDENCE OF G. S. WORMER, 57 High St. East. Built in i854-77. RESIDENCE OF D. M. FERRY, 31 Winder Street. Built in 1869. RESIDENCES. 443 RESIDENCE OF SI'1MON HEAVENRICH, 43 Windler Street. Bufilt in 1875. RESIDENCE: OF GEO. C. CODD, 26 Adelaide Street. Built in i874. 444 RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF H. W. RICKEL, 95 Adelaide Street. Built in i868. RESIDENCE OF ELISHA TAYLOR, 25 Alfred Street. Built in 1872. RESI DENCES. 445 - J-V RESIDENCE OF A. E. F. WHITE, 6i Alfred Street. Built ini 1872. RESIDENCE OF' THE LATE JAMES V. CAMPBELL, 91c Alfred Street. Built in 1877. 446 kESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF GEORGE JEROME, 85 Alfred Street. Built in 1877. RESIDENCES. 447 RESIDENCE oF C. AV. NOBiF, 66 Edmund Place. Built in 1873. RE~SIDENCE OF G. S. FROST, 86 Edmund Place. Built in 188:. RESIDENCES. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE HENRY P1. BRIDGE, i~i6 Congress St. East. Built, in 1848. FORMER RESIDENCE OF WM. AND WALTER S. HARSHA. 113 Larned St West. Built in 184.5. SUMMER RESIDENCES AT GROSSE POINTE. 449 EDGEMERE." Residenee of Joseph H. -Berry. Built in i882. " BEAURIVAGE." Residence of John B. Dyar. Built in i886. 450 SUMMER RESIDENCES AT GROSSE POINTE. "THE POPLARS." Residence of W. A. McGraw. Built in 1884. "SANS Souci." Residence of M. S. Smith. Built in 1885. SUMMER RESIDENCES AT GROSSE POINTE.45 451 ' ~LAKE TERRACE. Residence of Mrs. John S. Newberry. Built in 1875. " LAKE TERRACE." Residence of James McMillan. Built in 1875. 452 SUMMER RESIDENCES AT GROSSE POINTE. "THE PINES." Residence of Alfred E. Brush. Built in 1856. "OTSIKITA." Residence of W. K. Muir. Built in 1882. I I _ - 0 )ii jST ' Nt... -. -. "I -TONNANCOUR.' RESIDENCE OF T. P. HALL. Grosse Pointe, on Lake St. Clair. Built in x88o. \x \ \ 454 SUMMER RESIDENCES AT GROSSE POINTE. " BELLEHUTRST." Residence of H. A. Newlaud. Built in i873. -'S~UMMERSIDE." Rcsidence of Q2. V. N. Lothrop. Built in1x85o. SUMMER RESIDENCES AT GROSSE POINTE. 455 "CL~OVERLEIGH." Residence- of HI. B. Ledyard. Built in i882. "CLOVERLEIGH." Residence of Hugh McMillan. Built in 1E82. 456 SUMMER RESIDENCES AT GROSSE POINTE. "BELLE -MEADE. Residenice of D)udley B. Woodbridge. Built in i866. RESIDENCE OF THE LATE EDWARD LYON, Grosse Isle. Built in i865-76. STORES AND BUSINESS BUILDINGS. 457 ----------- STORES AND BUSINESS BUILDINGS. In olden times, much more than now, the corners of business streets were designated by the names of the owners or occupants of the buildings thereon. The southwest corner of Woodward and Jefferson Avenues was called Curry's Corner, and is -; so designated in the Act of Incorporation of YA E 8!imit i806. Years af- L terward it was known as Hallock's Corner..ofC l The first business place builtr,. of brick was a small, square, one-story building on the northwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street, TH S BLOCK, PESE in I820 by Thomas Palmer. It was on the southeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street. The second was built in 1821 by Peter Desnoyers, near the northwest corer of Jefferson Avenue and Bates Street. Smart's Block, on the northeast corner -1 =i Adr_. of Jefferson and Woodward Ave-...- p, - = nues, was erected in 1822, and was deemed at the time a very substantial and even elegant business building. It was torn downin 1857 to make room for the Merrill Block. The property on the southeast corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues was known as King's r -,,, OF MERRILL.. BO.oCK. Corner; it was NT1 o.5. a.. vs....\.\. vv^ VIEW OF THE NORTH SIDE OF JEFFERSON AVENUE AND GRISWOLD STREET IN I837. From an original sketch by Wm. A, Raymond. erected in i8o6 for the Bank of Michigan; the occupied until a few years ago by J. L. King as a next was the Government Warehouse at the foot clothing store. The building was commenced in of Wayne Street. The first brick store was built May, 1832, and finished in the winter of I833. 30 458 STORES AND BUSINESS BUILDINGS. In the fall of I857 an additional story was added the southeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Bates and other improvements made. Almost as soon Street. It was built for John R. Williams in I833 as the store was built the basement was occupied and torn down in 1881. Large plate-glass store I I -- NORTHWEST CORNER OF WOODWARD AVENUE AND LARNED STREET IN 1862. for restaurant purposes, and has continued to be so used ever since. This fact gave rise to a conundrum which obtained the prize at a minstrel show many years ago. The question was, Why is a man's windows were first introduced by George Doty. The following, from the Daily Advertiser of September I9, I849, gives interesting details concerning this window: THE A nROTT Bl.ocK IN 1845. Woodward Avenue, between Woodbridge and Atwater Streets. SHOW WINDOWS.-THE LARGEST GLASS YET. nose like King's clothing store? Answer.-Because nose like King's clothing store? Answzer.-Because George Doty, jeweler, has purchased, and is fitting up the buildthere is an eating establishment below. ing on the west end of the Daily Advertiser block, in a style The first four-story brick building was located on superior to anything in the Western States. His show windows STORES AND BUSINESS BUILDINGS. 459 will be a curiosity. The main glass in each of them is imported French plate, 5 by 7 feet in size, and cost $300. We believe these are the largest glass west of New York City, not excepting the large, fine ones in Cincinnati. The last years have witnessed many changes the finer commercial structures in various localities are the Ferry, Palms, Moffat, Godfrey, Schmidt, Newberry & McMillan, Campau, Williams, Buhl, Chandler, and Wesson buildings. There are, besides, a great number of costly ROTUNDA BUILDING. Southeast corner Griswold and Lamed Streets. Torn down 1879. and improvements in the construction of stores and business blocks. Nearly all the newer buildings are now provided with plate-glass fronts, and cut stone and ornamental iron - work are freely used. The upper stories of many large blocks are fitted up for. - offices. On Griswold Street, for nearly its whole length, the buildings are thus arranged. The first building _ erected especially Ifll WS with a view of furnishing office accommodations was the Rotunda, on Griswold Street. It was built in 1852. _In August, 1879, it "'"' -- g was torn down to VIEW OF S. W. CORNER OF GRISW make way for the Newberry & McMillan Building. Most of the banking, insurance, real estate, and legal business is done on Griswold Street, making it the financial center of the city,-the Wall Street of Detroit. Among and ornamental stores, many of them provided with elevators, operated by steam or hydraulic power. The Moffat Building was the first which had an elevator. Rents of stores and offices are as varied as the styles and locations of the buildings, and range from $io to $400 per month. An ~'-^^~~ -~average store in a desirable location X ^ \ H eY ^commands from -: \ est the river, and number towards the city limits; and when the - streets do not extend through to the river, the numbers begin at Iph__o O, NC their southerly end, near some one of the THE CLELAND BUILDING, STA-I principal avenues,- Built by H. A. C Jefferson, Michigan, Grand River, or Gratiot. Going from the river, the odd numbers, as I, 3, 5, and 7, are on the left hand, and the even numbers, as 2, 4, 6, and 8, on the right-hand side of the street. On all streets east of Woodward Avenue, and running nearly east and west, or at right angles with Woodward Avenue and parallel with the river, the numbers begin at Woodward Avenue, or the end nearest to it, and number outwards towards the city limits, the odd numbers on the north or left-hand side going from Woodward Avenue, and the even numbers on the south side of the street. On all streets west of Woodward Avenue, and running nearly east and west or at right angles with Woodward Avenue and parallel with the river, the numbers begin at Woodward Avenue, or the end nearest it, and number outwards towards the city limits; the odd numbers being on the south or left-hand side of the street, and the even numbers on the north side of the street. The only exception to this rule is in the case of Jefferson Avenue, where the numbers begin at Second Street and run east, the odd numbers being on the north side of the street, and on Madison Avenue, where the even numbers are on the ' south side. There is an average of about forty numbers to a block, including those on both sides of the street. LIGHTING AND HEATING. In the long ago people were economical in all things; even a spark was not needlessly wasted. If a fire was needed for any purpose, the flint and fire steel were brought together, and "behold how great a matter a little fire - kindleth." The cricket on the hearth never feared the cold, for the fire was E' NEAR GRISWOLD STREET. seldom out; like that leland in x88l. on vestal altars, it was kept constantly burning; if by accident it failed, perchance the old flint-lock was taken down, and the tow and wood were kindled by its use. Matches were introduced as early as I8i5. They consisted of little sticks dipped in sulphur; with which was supplied a small vial of oxide of phosphorus. The sulphur sticks, when inserted in the phosphorus, would at once take fire. This was considered a wonderful invention. In 1829 matches that would light upon being drawn through a prepared and folded paper were first used. A few l1 I';1( 468 LIGHTING AND HEATING. years later the ordinary friction matches became common. In 1780 wax lights or tapers were used sparingly, even by the rich. These lights were often made from the berries of the candleberry tree or bayberry bush, which usually grew near the sea. The berries were gathered in the autumn, and put into boiling water; a fatty substance exuded, which, on being skimmed off, melted, and refined, produced a beautiful green, transparent wax, from which candles were made. They would not easily bend or melt even in midsummer, and gave out an agreeable 4, 1879. On March 21, I880, the Van Depoele light was publicly shown in front of the Detroit Opera House. In July, I880, several Brush lights were put up on trial in the warehouse of D. M. Ferry & Co., but the light was not systematically tried until introduced by Wells W. Leggett, on September 13, I880. He obtained his power from the engine of the Detroit Free Press Company, and on the evening of the day above named, lights were put in operation at the following places: Two at the store of M. THE MOFFAT BUILDING, S. W. CORNER FORT AND GRISWOLD STREETS. Erected by Hugh Moffat in 1871. odor while burning. "Tallow dips" or mold candles, also sperm and lard oils, were more largely used. In 1850 star and stearine candles were popular illuminators, and soon after, burning fluid was introduced. Early in I850, and over a year before gas was manufactured elsewhere in Detroit, H. R. Johnson made gas for his hotel at the foot of Third Street, and continued to do so until the Gas Company went into operation. In the fall of I85i gas was first supplied by a Gas Company. In I861 kerosene oil began to be extensively used. The Brush electric light was publicly exhibited for the first time in connection with a circus, on June S. Smith, three at Steinfeld's clothing house, two at the Russell House Bazaar, one at Prittie's drug store, two each at the Detroit and Whitney Opera Houses, two at the Coliseum, one each at Frizelle's and Stearns' drug stores, and one at the tailor shop of Mr. Tripp. In May, I88I, a stock company was organized in Detroit to supply the power and lights, and on September 13, I88I, they were supplying thirty-two lights; on September I3, 1882, one hundred and thirty; on January 1, 1883, two hundred and forty-five, and on January I, i884, three hundred and fifty. Their works were located on the west side of Third Street, between Fort and LIGHTING AND HEATING. 469 Congress Streets. The price charged varied from sixteen dollars to eighteen dollars per month per light, according to the number of hours that a light was required. The Edison incandescent light was first introduced and used in Metcalf Brothers' dry goods store on January 27, 1883. The Excelsior Electric Light Company was incorporated September 7, 883, and on November I had four lights in operation. The light of the United States Electric Light Company is in use in the establishment of C. R. Mabley & Co., who own the apparatus for and make their own light. It was first used on December 24, I883. The lighting the streets of Detroit by public lamps was first discussed in 1827, and on March 12 a committee of the Common Council reported in favor of lighting Jefferson Avenue. Nothing further was done until May 21, 1834, when a council committee reported in favor of lighting the avenue from Cass to Randolph Street. They presented the following estimate: " Twenty lamps, including posts, at $5; three quarts of sperm oil per night, seventyfive cents; total cost per year, $262.50." On January 2, 1835, the committee was ordered to carry into operation the plan, and on the 29th James Delaney was appointed lamplighter at $Io per month. On February 19 forty lamps were ordered, and soon after an ordinance in regard to public lamps was passed; but both lamps and ordinance " went out" in about three months, and again darkness reigned. On March 14, 1849, the City of Detroit Gaslight Company was incorporated. The company was slow in its operations, and on March 8, I851, was re-organized under the title of the Detroit Gaslight Company. The work was now successfully prosecuted, and on September 24, 1851, the streets, for the first time, were lighted with gas. The works were on the north side of Woodbridge Street west, between Fifth and Sixth Streets. In 1867 new works were erected at the foot of Twenty-first Street, and gas was first supplied from there on September 27 of that year. In 1871 additional works at the corner of Chene and Franklin Streets were completed. Up to I88i nearly fifty miles of street pipe had been laid by this company. The Mutual Gaslight Company was incorporated in I871, and re-organized in I878 as the Mutual Gas Company. Its works are in Hamtramck, just outside of the city. They went into operation on November 26, I872. In I88I the company had nearly sixty miles of street pipe. The two companies engaged in a lively competition for several years, but after July, 1877, by agreement between the companies, the Detroit Gas Company supplied gas only to consumers on the west of Woodward Avenue, and the Mutual only to persons on the east of Woodward Avenue. The increasing demand for gas is shown in the fact that in 1860 the Detroit Gaslight Company produced only 26,892,000 cubic feet. In 1870 the amount produced reached 85,427,000 cubic feet, and in i880 the combined product of the Detroit and Mutual Companies amounted to 162,775,00ooo cubic feet, the two companies in that year consuming about twelve thousand tons of coal and five hundred thousand gallons of naphtha. Street lamps lighted by the use of naphtha were introduced on July 12, 1877. The lamps were put up and supplied under contract with the Michigan Gaslight Company. In 1878 naphtha lamps exclusively were used. On January I, 1884, there were in use 1,929 gas lamps and 1,743 naphtha burners. The expense for lighting the lamps in I883 was $72,301; they burn an average of seven hours. On July 3, 1883, the council voted to light a portion of Woodward and Jefferson Avenues with twenty-four electric lights, to be supplied by the Brush Company. In June, 1884, a contract was made with the same company to light the entire city with electricity, and on January i, 1887, they had in operation 122 towers and 114 pole lights, two of the towers were 175 feet high and the balance 150 feet. The expense of the public lights in 1886 was $115,781. The office of gas inspector was established by ordinance of December 2, I86I, under the title of "inspector of gas meters." The inspector was appointed by the Council. A strange provision of the ordinance was that his salary of $600 a year was to be paid by the gas company whose products and apparatus he was to inspect. Under the revised ordinances of 1863, as amended September 7, 1870, the gas company was to pay $600 of his salary, and the city to supplement it with $400 more. In I871 the lamplighters were selected by the Gaslight Company, who paid for one third of their time, the city paying for the other two thirds; yet all of their time not employed in lighting or cleaning lamps was given to the gas company. Since the ordinance of March I6, 1872, the title of the incumbent of the office has been "gas inspector," and the entire salaries of the inspector and lamplighters are paid by the city. The inspector is appointed yearly by the Council, and is charged with the duty of testing the meters and the quality of gas supplied. The lamplighters are selected by the inspector. In I883 there were twenty-two, at a salary of $55 each per month. The inspectors have been: 1862-187I, Alfred Marsh; I87I-I875, James T. Wright; 1875-1877, Christian Blattmeier; 1877, Julius S. Kloppenburg; 470 LIGTHTING; AND) HEATING.C; 470 LIGHTING AND HEATING.~~ 1878, Michael Quinn; I879, George H. Moore; 1880-1884, John Archer; 1884-1886, John O'Riley. Originally, the inhabitants of Detroit found fuel near at hand and easily procured, except during the days of war. At the time of Pontiac's Conspiracy it was brought in boats from Belle Isle. During the War of 1812 laborers were so few, and soldiers so lawless, that the farm fences near the town were freely used for fuel, and in after years the Government paid a considerable sum for damages on this account. The earliest record as to stoves is found in a letter dated Pittsburgh, September 30, 1797, from Quartermaster- General John Wilkins, Jr., others began to keep small lots for sale. In I85o P. I. Price made a specialty of the business. Two years later the firm of Pittman, Trowbridge, & Jones began. Since then various firms have engaged in selling coal. The amount of coal sold in Detroit in several decades is estimated to be as follows: between 1840 and I850, an average of I,ooo tons yearly; between 1850 and I860, an average of Io,ooo tons; between I860 and 1870, an average of 30,000 tons, and between 1870 and I880, an average of 80,000 tons. The use of coal for fuel became increasingly popular with the year 1873, the Argand stove extensively introduced that year -- 7_ 4__ L- r, J. E. PITTMAN'S COAL DOCK. On River, foot of Riopelle Street. Built in x875. to Matthew Ernest at Detroit. He says, "By boat which went a few days ago, I sent twenty stoves for the use of the garrison at Detroit. These will aid in making the soldiers more comfortable and save firewood." During this period, and as late as 1825, stoves were obtained from Montreal, and rented during the winter season. They hardly came into general use until about 1830. Coal was introduced in 1836. In the fall of this year three coal stoves were procured by C. C. Trowbridge,one for himself, one for St. Paul's Church, and one for Judge Sibley. The coal and transportation cost eighteen dollars a ton. The use of coal was only occasional and confined to a few persons, until 1848, when E. W. Hudson, B. L. Webb, and one or two affording advantages not previously possessed. So rapid is the increased use that it is estimated that in I886 about I50,ooo tons of anthracite and 250,000 tons of bituminous coal were sold in Detroit, and not less than 200,000 cords of wood. The use of steam for heating buildings was first known in I857. The first building fitted for the purpose was the residence of E. A. Brush, in the old Michigan Garden. The fittings were put in by J. Flower & Brothers. Soon after this, steam began to be used in the larger tanneries, and now it is used in scores of establishments and residences. On September 12, 1878, the Detroit Steam Supply Company was organized, with a capital stock of $85,000. The company supplied steam either for LIGHTING AND HEATING. 47I power or heating purposes; it was generated in a series of ten boilers of one hundred horse-power each, located on the corner of Atwater and Griswold Streets; four miles of iron pipes, covered with wood, conveyed the steam through various streets, and from them it was supplied to customers. The company began to supply steam on December 25, 1878, and ceased to do so on September I, 1884, the profits not warranting a continuance. Under ordinance of I88I, all steam boilers are now subject to yearly inspection, and all engineers are required to pass an examination as to fitness for their position. W. J. Wray, the first city boiler inspector, was appointed September 27, I88I, for a term of three years. During 1883 he inspected three hundred and thirty-nine boilers. His successor in 1884 was John Carroll. THE COVI. BLOCK. Northeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Campus Martius. Erected by W. K. Coyl in 1860. CHAPTER LI I. COUNCIL HOUSES.-COURT-HOUSE OR CAPITOL.-CITY HALLS.OPERA HOUSES AND PUBLIC HALLS. COUNCIL HOUSES. AT different periods of time three several buildings have been designated by the title of " Council House." before I came, built, as I suppose, by Governor Hull. It was understood to be a reservation, and was in possession of the officers of the Government long before I came here. I don't know how the reservation was made, but it was understood to be a Government property under the British Government before it became the property of the United States. This was the tradition relative to these premises." B. Woodworth testified that "the Indian _ Department lot was treated as a reservation by the Indian Department, and was occupied by said Department for ten years prior to I8i6, to my knowledge." The records of the Governor and Judges contain no reference to the erection of the building, and when the lot was surveyed by Abijah Hull, on February 9, 1807, it was marked as belonging to the United States. At one time there was in the city clerk's office art unexecuted deed from the Governor and Judges to the United States, dated February II, I807; and a memorandum, without date, found among OLD COUNCIL HOUSE, Southwest comer Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street. Original appearance. The first, a large wooden building with arched ceilings, was near the river, on the east side of the alley known in early days both as St. Antoine Street and Campau - Alley. It was burned in the fire of I805. o;' The second stood on the southwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street. The following facts make it evident that the building was a relic of British occupation: In I85I the Farmers and Mechanics' Bank filed a bill in chancery against the city and others to recover the value of "the Indian blacksmith and carpenter's shop lot." The lot had also been occupied by Woodworth's Hotel, and was immediately in the - rear of the Council House. During the trial Governor Cass testified as follows: I understood that the British Government had some Indian Department Buildings on said premises. The Council House was on these premises COUNCIL HOUSE, AS ENI.ARGED. the Governor and Judges' papers, apparently written about the time the deed was dated, says: "Lot I2, l4721 COUNCIL HOUSES. 473 section 4, is built on as Council House." The building was certainly in existence as early as May 4, I807, for old court records show that the District Court, for the District of Huron and Detroit, met in it on that date. An official order from James May, adjutant-general of the Territory, dated August I, 1807, makes several references to the building; and a military order in possession of the Historical Society, dated December 15, I807, says, " His Excellency, the Commander-in-Chief, having obligingly given up the Indian Council House, you will have to fit it up for the militia as the Major Commandant may direct." The same manuscript speaks of providing materials "for putting the Indian Council House in a proper situation for the accommodation of troops." The house was built of stone, and was originally but one story high. In 1826 or 1827 the Masonic Order was allowed to add another story, made of boards with split lath and plaster on outside, and to use it for their meetings. The lower room would accommodate about two hundred persons. It was used for almost every purpose; courts, fairs, and elections were held in it, and religious and political societies used it in turn. The Indian Department occupied a portion as late as 1831. It was burned in I848. The history of the third Council House is certainly a moving one. It was originally called Military Hall, and occupied part of the old cantonment 3' on Fort Street. In 1827 it became the property of the city. In September of that year it was decided to open Fort Street from Woodward Avenue to the Cass Farm, and this necessitated the moving of the building. The First Protestant Society offered to give it room in the rear of their church on the northeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Lamed Street, provided they could have occasional use of it. Their terms were accepted, and on September 9, I827, the Council appointed a committee to superintend its removal and repair; on October 19, 1827, De Garmo Jones was paid fifty dollars for moving the building. In the spring of 1833, after the First )SL E ()R CAI'ITOI.. Protestant Society built their brick session room on Woodward Avenue, they had no further use for the building, and on June 5 the Council gave the First M. E. Church permission to move it to the rear of their lot, on northeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Congress Street. In its new location, as on Larned Street, it was occupied by the Common Council, and gained the name of Council House. After tarrying on Congress Street for six years, on July 9, 1839, the Council gave the building to the colored M. E. Church, and they moved it to Croghan Street near the northwest corner of Hastings Street. In I841 it was moved to the north side of Fort Street, between Brush and Beaubien Streets. Here it was used as a Methodist Church, and about 1848, after the society had built a brick church, it was torn down. 474 THE COURT HOUSE OR CAPITOL. THE COURT HOUSE OR CAPITOL. "Far off, in solitary pride, Lonely amid the pastures wide, The Territorial Court House stood In bold relief against the wood. Behind, from bone-strewed plains, arose A noisy crowd of carrion crows, Disturbing by their clamorous caws Those who both made and dealt the laws." -CAMPBELL. and he was eventually paid $600 for superintending the erection of the building, Mr. Wait's estimate of the cost was $ 1,250.99, but on May 31, 1823, D. C..McKinstry offered to build it for $7,000. There must have been a mistake somewhere, for on July 25, 1823, the Governor and Judges contracted with I). C. McKinstry, Thomas Palmer, and De Garmo Jones to erect it for $21,OOO. The bill for After the fire of 805, an Act of Congress of April 2 1, 806, authorized the laying out of a new town of Detroit and of ten thousand acres adjoining. The Act gave the Governor and Judges power to dispose of the ten thousand acres, and such portion of the town lots as were not needed to satisfy the claims of inhabitants, and to devote the proceeds towards building a Court House and a Jail. On September 13, i8o6, the Governor and Judges decided that the Court House should be built in the center of the Grand Circus, and on November 3 following $20,000 were appropriated for its erection. Nine years passed away without further action, and then, by Law of November 7, 1815, the Act locating it on the Grand Circus was a a cn:o X 0 U 0 a 5 p: L) 0 U 0 u Qr extras footed up $3,500 additional. The terms of this singular contract were as follows: The contractors were to have 6,500 and 92-I00 acres of the Ten Thousand Acre Tract at $2.122 per acre, and one hundred and forty-four city lots, named in a schedule, at an average price of $50per lot. Inaddition to erecting the building they were to pay the creditors of the Detroit Fund,within three years, $12,000, and to have $3,000 of tile debts due said fund. The building was to be completed before December I, 1824. The corner stone was laid in ancient masonic form on Monday, September 22, 1823, by the members of Zion, Detroit, and Oakland Lodges. The Masons met at their hall at eleven o'clock, and proceeded in procession to the place; at 12 M. William A. Fletcher delivered the address, and at the conclusion a at the expense of to al 0 cl 0 0 or 0 wF. IL fc I 44 repealed, and it was decided to locate it at the head of Griswold Street. Nearly nine more years elapsed, and then plans were solicited. Various drawings were submitted; that made by Obed Wait was accepted, bountiful dinner was provided D. C. McKinstry. THE COURT HOUSE OR CAPITOL.-CITY HALLS. 475 In those days the erection of so large a building w\as an extensive enterprise. The finishing consumed several years, and no part was occupied until May 5, 1828, when the Legislative Council met for the first time within its walls. In his opening address at that time the president of the Council said, "Permit me, gentlemen, to congratulate you on the honor that is conferred on us in being the first to occupy this splendid hall as a legislative body, and may the laws we here enact be as creditable to us as this noble edifice is to its projector and its architect." In order to aid the contractors who built the Jail, as well as those who built the Court House, the (overnor and Judges, between the years of 819 and 1826, issued scrip to the amount of $22,500, in sums of $2.00, $3.00, $5.oo, $10.00, and $20.00, receivable in payments for lands, or redeemable out of moneys received from sale of lands. The lands were sold at such low prices that, on June 23, I828, the Council were impelled to pass an Act guaranteeing the scrip issued by the Governor and Judges, and pledging the faith of the Territory to make good any deficiency arising from sale of the lands; the same act authorized the Governor and Judges to accept the Capitol. The building was sixty by ninety feet in size, and the cupola, one hundred and forty feet high, was a favorite place from which to view the city. In 1847 it was decided to remove the State Capitol to Lansing, and the last session of the Ifegislature held in the building closed on March 17 of that year. For the subsequent history of the building, see chapter on Board of Education. CITY HALLS. The old City Hall, size fifty feet by one hundred feet, was located just east of Woodward Avenue, in the middle of Michigan Grand Avenue; the history of its erection is as follows: On December 21, i833, a committee of the Council was appointed to select a site for a Market and City Hall. It was thought that Michigan Avenue would be selected, and on I)ecember 27 a meeting of citizens opposed to that location, was held, but on the same day the committee of the Common Council reported in favor of the site named. On January 3, I834, C. C. 'Trowbridge and Henry Howard were appointed a committee to procure a design. On March 19, r834, a plan was presented by Mr. White, and on April Io following a contract was entered into with John Scott to erect the building for $I1,449, one fourth payable in advance. The lime used in its election was burned on the Campus Martius, and the building was completed and first occupied on November 18, 1835. It cost $14,747, this sum representing the visible proceeds of the lots sold by the city on the Military Reserve. The lower part, up to the spring of I856, was occupied by stalls for the sale of meat; it was then fitted up for city offices, a safety vault being added in I863. The city clerk and collector had their offices in the second story.' The council-room in the upper story of the old City Hall was used for various public entertainments, and was at one time rented continuously for weeks as a theatre. Courts held their sessions there, and several religious bodies, at different times, had the use of it. Originally of a brick color, the building was afterwards painted a slate color. After the completion of the new City Hall, it was formally vacated by the Common Council on July i8, 1871. It was afterwards given to the Board of Education, to be fitted up for the public library, but they surrendered it on receiving the site in Center Park. It was finally sold for $1,025, and torn down in November, 1872. The new City Hall has probably no superior among the municipal halls of the country; both the building and its site command universal admiration, and are in every way well adapted for the convenience of the people and the officials. The grounds embrace an entire square, bounded east and west by Woodward Avenue and Griswold Street, and north and south by Michigan Avenue and Fort Street. A portion of the square was purchased by the city in I854 for $I8,000. Five years later, on September 30, 1859, a citizens' meeting voted $250,00o towards the erection of the building, and on November 15 a committee on plans was appointed, consisting of C. H. Buhl, mayor; B. L. Webb, comptroller; J. Shearer, J. S. Farrand, and E. Le Favour. On March 6, I860, so much of the square as formed part of the Campus Martius was set apart by the city as a portion of the site. On April 23, I86i, the committee on plans reported in favor of designs submitted by James Anderson. The war with the South delayed the erection of the building, and nothing further was done until August 28, I866. A contract was then made with Charles Stange to build the basement for $58,625. On April 23, 1867, A. W. Copland, W. H. Langley, and J. W. Waterman were appointed a committee to go East and inspect methods of heating. On May 21, 1867, A. Chapoton was appointed superintendent of construction, and on November 26 of the same year the comptroller was directed to advertise for proposals for completing the building. 1 In i857 the offices of the mayor, sewer commissioners, surveyor, and assessor were in the old seminary building on the site of the new City Hall. The growth of the city business required still more office room, and in I866, and up to the completion of the new City Hall,-the offices of the city surveyor, board of sewer commissioners, and some other city officers, were located in the Williams Block on Monroe Avenue. 476 CITY HALLS. On February 13, I868, the bid of N. Osborne & Son, of Rochester, N. Y., for $339,578, was accepted. Five days later they reported to the Council that, by an error in the footings, $60,ooo was omitted from the total of their bid, and that, although the next lowest bid was $469,500, they would do the work for $379,578, or $20,000 less than the sum they originally intended for their bid. In accordance Auditors, subject to approval of the Common Council and Board of Supervisors, under which the county was to pay $I2,000 a year, quarterly, in advance, for fifteen years, the county to fit up its own rooms, except that the city was to pay part of the expense of fitting up the Circuit Court room. The agreement was accepted, and city and county officers occupy the building. In 1883 the county obtained OLD CITY HALL AND SURROUNDINGS IN I862. with their proposition, a contract was made the following day. On August 6, I868, the corner-stone was laid with imposing ceremonies; an address was made by C. I. Walker. The original contract called for a plain flat roof, but the Council decided in May to have a mansard roof, at an additional cost of $3,500. It was expected that the county offices would be located in the building, and a special committee of the Common Council was appointed to decide upon the rooms to be occupied by them and the price to be paid by the county. On March i, 1870, the committee reported an agreement with the Board of a new lease and considerable more room than they had previously occupied. On June 2o, I871, the last payment was made to the contractors, and the city took formal possession. On July 4 the building was formally opened, the occasion being celebrated by a procession, speeches, etc., and on July i8 the City Council held its first session in the new council chamber. The building is on the western half of the square. It has four fronts, but the principal entrance is on Woodward Avenue. It is two hundred and four feet long from north to south and ninety feet wide. The first story is thirteen feet high, the second eighteen, and the third twenty-one; the height of OPERA HOUSES ANI P ---— - -- --- the building to the cornice is sixty-six feet, and to top of flag-staff two hundred feet. The style is Italian, with a mansard roof. The walls are of Amherst sandstone, from near Cleveland. The building is intended to be fire-proof. The halls have marble floors, and the main floors rest on brick arches, supported by iron beams. The total cost of the building was $600,000, and the square of land on which it stands is worth as much more. On the several cornices of the first section of the tower are stone figures, each fourteen feet high, representing Justice, Industry, Art, and Commerce. The number of steps to the top is: from sidewalk to entrance door, 13; to stairway, 67; to the clock, 143; to the top of the tower, 213. From the tower, which is reached by iron | stairways, a mag- -=_/ nificent view is af-__ forded. The usually clean streets look cleaner still in the distance; the groves of shade- trees, the elegant residences, the river and its shipping, the Canadian shore and Belle Isle, all unite to form a panorama not often excelled. The weight of the bell in the tower is 7,670 pounds,;unl it cost $2,782. lThe clock is the Tlrp, largest in the United States, and there is but one larger in the world; it cost $2,850, and was set running on July 4, I871. The pendulum weighs one hundred and twenty-five pounds. The striking part is wound once in eight days, and the running part every thirty days. The weights have a fall of one hundred and twenty feet. The clock has four dials, each eight feet three inches in diameter. In the evening the dials are illuminated, and the figures can be plainly seen. The contract for keeping it in order is awarded yearly. On either side of the eastern portico is an old cannon. These cannon originally belonged to the fleet of Commodore Barclay, and were captured at the battle of Lake Erie on September IO, 18I3. After the battle the fleet was taken to Erie, Penn. When that station was abandoned as a naval dpo6t UBLIC HALLS. 477 ie Government, the guns were ordered removed etroit. Here they were placed on the GovernWharf, between Wayne and Cass Streets. ral years later the wharf and these guns were hased by Oliver Newberry. The guns were set ie ground, and for a long time, as occasion ired, vessels were fastened to them. One of cannon eventually came into possession of a dry, and was about to be broken up, when a:ription of one hundred dollars was raised for urchase, and on April 12, 1872, it was presented ie city. On May 17 following, its mate was ented by Messrs. Moore, Foote, & Co., and on 4, I874, both guns were mounted in their present position, and addresses appropriate to the occasion deliv ered. A presentation of still greater historic interest was made in August, I884. One of our oldest citizens, Bela Hubbard, having caused statues of Cadillac, La Salle, and Fathers Marquette and Richard to be prepared by Julius Melchers, presented them to the city, and had them placed in the niches provided for statues on the east and west fronts of the building. The statues cost several are worthy of the building ITV HALL. thousand dollars, and and the donor. OPERA HOUSES AND PUBLIC HALLS. In olden times the Indian Council House, near the river and east of Griswold Street, was in requisition for balls and other entertainments. After the fire of I805 the Council House, on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street, became the place where public meetings of every sort were held. Woodworth's Hotel was also a favorite meeting place. In the spring of 1833 the Presbyterian Session Room was completed. It was a small brick building on the east side of Woodward Avenue, in the 478 ()'OPERA I)10USES ANi) PI'TULIC -IALLS. center of the block between Congress and Larned Streets. It was a favorite lecture and debating hall; and, up to 1850, all the public exercises of the then nue 51. E. Church, was fitted up as a public hall, and first used as such by the St. Andrew's Society in 1867. The building was torn down in April, I883. The Ietroit Opera House, facing the Campus Martius was opened March 29, I869, and seated i,800. In I887 the interior was almost entirely rebuilt, and all the floors were utilized for the auditorium, the seating capacity being increased to 2, I00. Whitney's Grand Opera House, on northwest corner of Shelby and Fort Streets, seated 1,400, and was first used in 1875, and was torn down in 1887. The building of the Harmonie Society is on the southwest corner of Lafayette and Beaubien Streets; it seats 1,303, and was dedicated November I r, I875. The Gymnasium, Hall and Rooms of the Detroit Young Men's Christian Association were formerly located on west side of Farmer Street, between Monroe and Gratiot Avenues. The building was dedicated February I4, 1876, and the hall, with the rooms opening into it, would seat 800 persons. It is now, used as a storage and provision store. Coyl's Hall, facing the Campus Martius and adjoining the Detroit Opera House, was built in I860, ARBEITER HALL. very popular Young Men's Society took place within its walls. The State Capitol was also used for lectures and exhibitions of various kinds. Young Men's Hall, on the north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Bates and Randolph Streets, was dedicated Novem- - ber 27, 1850. It seated about 500 people, and was the wonder and pride of the city for many years. Firemen's Hall, located on the southwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street, was opened October 23, I851. It seated nearly i,ooo, and was deemed exceedingly desirable for concerts. Merrill Hall, in the Merrill Block, on northeast corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues, was the next hall used for public entertainments. It was opened November I, I859, and, with the gallery, will seat I,ooo persons. Young Men's Hall, in the Biddle House Block, was first used November 21, I861. It seated 1,500, and for many years was a popular place of resort. Since I875 it has been but little used for lectures. Arbeiter Hall, owned by the German Workingmen's Aid Society, located on the northwest corner of Catherine and Russell Streets, seats 1,300; it is chiefly used by German citizens. It was opened May 17, 1868. St. Andrew's Hall, formerly the Woodward Ave ORIGINAL APPEARANCE 01' DETROIT OPERA HOUSE. REMODEIED IN I887. and could accommodate 600 persons. It is chiefly used for business purposes. Masonic Hall, on north side of Jefferson Avenue, A -op I I ~ -t t 1T - It o -t I *l.. t t. I - *I UFL'KA HUOUbLb AiNI) 'ULI(C fIALLS. 479 between Griswold and Shelby Streets, was dedicated sons, and costing $ioo,ooo, was opened on SeptemJune 24, 1857. ber 13, i886. Good Templars' Under the proviHall was on north- sions of State Laws, east corner of approved May 24, Woodward Avenue 1I879, and March I8, and Grand River 1 88I, requiring the Street. Kittelber- mayor to appoint ger's Hall is on three building inRandolph Street near spectrs, the Council, Monroe Avenue. ----- by ordinance of AuFunke's Hall was on gust i8, I882, providsouth side of Ma- ed for their appointcomb near Beaubien ment, with power Street. It has been to inspect all buildused as a dwelling ings or platforms for many years. erected, or to be Barns' Hall, in the used for public gathBarns Block, corner erings, and to decide of Woodward and on the safety of all G;rand River Ave- = such structures. Innues, was first fitted spections are made up as a hall by the at the request of Red Ribbon Club, owners, agents, or and dedicated on lessees, or of any June io, I879, as - member of the MeReform Hall. After tropolitan Police, and the disbanding of VHI UN ()RI(;IN.AI OI'EIhA IIOSE. are certified to if satthe club it took its isfactory. Forsuch name from the _ services the comblock in which it is | - -o _ missioners are paid located. __ -_ at the rate of $3.00 White's Grand per day by owners Theatre, formerly — r agents. The AMusic Hall, facing I com missioners Randolph Street, * have been: 1882, and between Cro-! I Patrick H. Mcghan and Lafay- Williams, George ette Streets, was D. Mason, and erected in i88o, H e n r y Spitzley. and opened as I883-I885, PatMusic Hall on rick H. McWillAugust 31 of iams, Edward W. that year; it seated Simpson, Henry F`ORMER MUsic HALL, AND WxI'Tri's GRAND TH-EATF'r. 3,000, and was FORMER Music HALL Spitzley. i885 -much the largest 1887, Patrick H. hall in the city. In the summer of 1883 it was ar- McWilliams, Edward W. Simpson, Charles W. ranged for a theatre, and on January i, 1886, was Hathaway. 1887-, Patrick H. McWilliams, entirely destroyed by fire. Edward W. Simpson, Edward R. Harris. A new theatre on the same site, seating 2,500 per CHAPTER LIII. OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. IT is not proposed in this article to include the minor establishments, but only the older or more important public houses, and in these the changes have been numerous, making it evident that few persons "know enough to keep a hotel." After the city came under American control, and as early as I805, the Dodemead House, near the southeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Shelby Street, was one of the best-known taverns. At the same time, and until 1827 or later, Colonel Richard known characters of that time. He came to Detroit in 806, and as early as May, 1812, was keeping a hotel on the northwest corner of Woodbridge and Randolph Streets. In I818 he built a new house on the same site, and opened it in March, I8i9. This house was the chief headquarters for passengers by vessel and steamboat, and in it the various stage lines had their offices. The " long room" was in almost constant requisition for fairs and public meetings, and for many years no public dinner was WOODWORTH'S STEAMBOAT HOTEL. Smyth was keeping Smyth's Hotel, called, in 1823, the Sagina Hotel, and subsequently the Michigan Hotel. It was on the west side of Woodward Avenue, between Jefferson Avenue and Woodbridge Street. From 1830 to 1834 it was kept by John Brunson. The most noted caravansary was Woodworth's Steamboat Hotel. The landlord, familiarly known as "Uncle Ben," was a brother of the author of "The Old Oaken Bucket," and one of the best all that it should be unless given at this noted resort. In the spring of 1844 the house was purchased by Milton Barney, and on May 9, 1848, it was burned. The same fire destroyed the Wales Hotel in the adjacent block, on the south side of Jefferson Avenue, just east of Randolph Street. The building which formed the nucleus of that hotel was erected by Governor Hull in 1807. In February, 1835, it was fitted up for a hotel, and in May following was opened by John Griswold as "The American." He [480] OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. 48I \\as succeeded by Mr.Pratt, and as early as June, 1 37, Petty & Hawley were proprietors. They were succeeded by Colonel Dibble, and he by Austin Wales. During 1840 Simon Burk and S. K. Harring officiated as landlords. In May, 1841, they were succeeded by H. A. Chase and Joshua Van Anden, from Rochester, N. Y. In September, 1841, or earlier, Mr. Chase retired. Mr. Van Anden continued until August, 1845, when the house was extensively refitted, and opened on January I, I846, as Wales' Hotel, by Austin Wales and his two sons. They were proprietors of the house when it was burned. Harriet Martineau, who visited Detroit in June, I836, in her "Society in America," gives this account of her stay at this house: We reached the American just in time for breakfast At that long table I had the pleasure of seeing C the healthiest set of faces I had be- [ held since I left England. The By breakfast was excellent, and we were i served with much consideration; but. i_ 3: the place was so full, and the accommodations of Detroit are so insufficient for the influx of people who are betaking themselves thither, that strangers must patiently put up with much delay and inconvenience, till new houses of entertainment are opened. We had to wait till near one o'clock before any of us could have a room in which to dress. Another noted hostelry of the past, known as the Mansion House, was located near what is now the northwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Cass Street. The building had a varied history. - Erected by James May after the fire of 1805, from the remains of the old stone chimneys, it was successively a residence, jail, court-house, the British quarters, again a residence, and finally a hotel. Originally it was a story and a half high. From 81 5 to 1824 it was kept by Major Whipple, an old captain in General Wayne's army. He was succeeded by John Brunson, who kept it until 1827, when it was purchased by John E. Schwartz, who raised it, greatly enlarged it on both sides, and built a verandah in front and on the western side. He opened it as a hotel on Thursday, May 3, 1827. In July, 1829, Isaac J. Ullman was proprietor. In 1830 the house was sold to Colonel Andrew Mack, and on May 24 formally opened by him. Three years after it was closed as a hotel. As seen from the river, the house and its surroundings presented a homelike and at tractive appearance. The hotel contained thirty bedrooms; it had a frontage of seventy feet, and was two hundred feet deep, extending through to Lamed Street. It was torn down about I836. In I817, and for some years after, John Palmer was keeping a hotel on the south side of Jefferson Avenue, between Bates and Randolph Streets. About I828 John Garrison built and kept a house called the "Yankee Boarding House," on the east side of Bates Street, between Jefferson Avenue and Lamed Street. He was succeeded by Mr. Wattles. In 1831 the house changed hands, Mr. Sherward becoming proprietor. Mr. Williams followed Mr. Sherward, and kept the house until I833. D. Petty succeeded him, and changed the name of the house THE MANSION HOUSE. to the New York and City Hotel. Soon after this Mr. Anderson took charge, and was followed by Horace Heath. In 1837, or earlier, Orson and Valentine Eddy succeeded Mr. Heath. Mr. Eddy died in 1838, and the house remained closed until I840. We now turn back to 1835 or I836,when Russell Chase rented of Mrs. McMillan a house which he called the Franklin House, on the southwest corner of Bates and Lamed Streets. In the spring of I837 J. C. Warner became the proprietor, and kept it until I840. He then purchased of John Largy the old New York and City Hotel, and named it the Franklin House. From I840 to 1845, liquor was sold here, as at other houses, but after that date no bar was kept on the premises. In I846 S. Finney 482 OLD TAVERNS AND) NEW HOTIELS. 482 OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS.~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~ succeeded J. C. Warner, and kept the house five years. After 1846 the name of the house was changed from Franklin to Franklin Coldwater House, and J. C. Warner again became the landlord. He continued in charge until the summer of 1854, when he erected and took charge of a new brick hotel called the Franklin House, on the southeast corner of Bates and Lamed Streets; on October I, I856, he leased it to John R. Tibbetts, who kept it until December I, 1865. Messrs. Winn& Emery then became proprietors. From 1866 to September, I869, A. H. Emery managed it alone. He was succeeded by Charles Ruhl, who remained until May I, I876, and was followed by A. Montgomery. On July i, 1879, Messrs. Montgomery & Peoples became proprietors. In September, 1880, they sold their interest to Messrs. Andrew & J. C. Warner. Soon after the management was assumed by Warner & James, and on December i, 88i, C. Friedman became manager. The Eagle Hotel, on the south side of Woodbridge Street, near Gris — wold, was erected _. about I830 by Alexander Campbell. "' In 1837 Horace Heath, the proprietor, was a zealous advocate of theB l cause of the patriots during the Patriot War. In April, 1838, the house was purchased by William Shaw, and in November of the same year by THE NATIONAL Messrs. Crawford & Murray. In 1845 B. B. Davis was the landlord. B. S. Farnsworth bought the building in 1853, and kept it as a hotel for ten years. He was succeeded by W. Hickey, who kept it two years, after which it ceased to be used as a hotel, and on April 13, I866, it was burned. In 1832, and for at least five years after, Thomas Cliff kept a tavern on the west side of Woodward Avenue, just above Clifford Street. He was succeeded by Mr. Busby, and in 1840 Mr. Turk was keeping the house. The New York and Ohio House, made memorable by the great fire of January I, 1842, which originated in or near it, was in existence as early as 1834. J. & L. Ward were the proprietors until 1837, when it was purchased by T. G. Hadley. In December, I838, he sold to William Shaw, who was occupying the hotel at the time the entire block in which it stood was burned. Of the leading hotels of the present day, the Michigan Exchange is a few months the oldest. It was opened on June 27, 1835, by E. A. Wales. In 1837 it was managed by Austin Wales. Soon after it was sold to 0. B. Dibble, who, in 1846, sold it to Mr. Goodnow, and he to Edward Lyon, who opened it on January I, 1847. In I85i H. A. Barstow was associated with Mr. Lyon in its management, under the firm name of H. A. Barstow & Co. In 1852 the firm name was Fellers & Benjamin. In 1835 a five-story addition was built, with one hundred feet front on Shelby Street by one hundred on Woodbridge Street, and this year Lyon & Barstow were managers, followed in 1859 by Fellers, Barstow, & Benjamin. In I868 an enlargement was made on Jefferson Avenue by the then proprietors, E. & F. Lyon. From 1874 to 1879 H. Porter was as, sociated with Ed. -. -'?'. ward Lyon, aftel which the hotel was -— '-'" ----.... conducted by Mr. Lyon until May i, I88I, when he retired, and was succeeded by J. D. aI:9B ^III. Lyon and V. J. 5/s] W~] ai Ferguson. In May, Jf1lJ I882, Mr. Lyon retired, and Mr. Ferguson became sole proprietor. The Russell House inherited the site _-f~aB '- ' ~- and the business of the old National. HOTEL IN 1846. The last-named house was opened on December I, 1836, with S. K. Harring as proprietor. In April, I838, Austin Wales was manager. In April, 1840, it was newly furnished and opened by Edward Lyon. He was succeeded on January I, 1847, by H. D. Garrison, who soon gave place to H. A. Barstow, and under his management, in September, 1847, the hotel was enlarged by a brick addition of thirty-five feet, by seventy-five on Woodward Avenue. In April, I851, the house was closed for the purpose of being rebuilt and improved. The wooden portion on Michigan Avenue was moved away, and in I852 a practically new hotel was opened by Fellers & Benjamin..In 1857, William Hale bought the property, enlarged and improved the hotel, and on September 28 it was opened as the Russell House by } OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. 483 W. H. Russell, with William J. Chittenden as chief clerk. On December I, 1861, MIr. Russell was succeeded by L. T. Minor, Mr. Chittenden continuing as clerk. In 1863 H. P. Stevens was proprietor. The next year W. J. Chittenden and C. S. Witbeck entered into a partnership as proprietors of the house. In I875 a large addition was made on the southerly end of the Woodward Avenue front, and a similar enlargement in 1876 on the Michigan Avenue side. The same year L. A. McCreary became associate proprietor. In I88I Mr. Witbeck died, and in that year the central portion of the hotel was torn down and a new building was erected, and first present Detroit Opera House. The original building was moved from theJones Farm by Mr. Ballard, and opened as a hotel I838. In 1840 it was kept by Patrick & Andrews. An advertisement in I844 announced that they would carry passengers to and from their hotel and give them a dinner for twentyfive cents. After one year Mr. Patrick retired. Mr. Andrews continued the hotel until I861, when the property was sold to J. F. Antisdel & Brother, and in 1867 to Dr. E. M. Clark; the house was then torn down. A hotel bearing the name Mansion House, on the west side of Griswold Street near Atwater, was RUSSELL. HOISE, Corner Michigan Grand and Woodward Avenues. used in March, 1882. His Royal Highness the Prince of Wales, the Grand Duke Alexis of Russia, Lady Jane Franklin, and Miss Elizabeth Dix, the great philanthropist, have been guests at the Russell. The St. Joseph House, kept by Amos Lewis, on the corner of Bates and Woodbridge Streets, was burned April 27, 1837. The Detroit Cottage, kept by O. Field, was of some note from 1837 to 1840. It had been the Lamed residence, and was near the southwest corner of Woodward Avenue and Lamed Street. Andrews' Railroad Hotel occupied the site of the built and conducted by J. Hanmer, as early as I837. On February I6, 1840, it was partially destroyed by fire. After being repaired it was kept by B. S. Farnsworth. In March, 1849, John Moore became landlord, remaining until i852. Since then it has frequently changed proprietors. The United States Hotel was located on Woodbridge Street, between Griswold and Shelby Streets. It was in use in I837. In I840 H. Heath was the landlord. After the burning of the New York and Ohio House, William Shaw became proprietor and continued until 1845. From I845 to 1846 it was 484 OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. kept by M. T. Robinson. On October 31, 1848, it was burned. The Central Railroad House, kept by John Chamberlain, on the northeast corner of Michigan Avenue and Griswold Street, was burned on May 17, I84I. In I846 William Shaw was keeping a tavern called the Michigan Railroad Hotel, on the northwest corner of Michigan Avenue and Griswold Street. In 1849 he sold the building to W. Garrett, and on September 23, I850, the house was burned. The Coyl House, located on the west side of Woodward Avenue just north of Woodbridge Street, was burned in the fife of January I, 1842. The same year Messrs. Hobert & Terhune were keeping a temperance hotel at the corner of Washington and Michigan Avenues. In 1843 the landlord was William Champ. remaining until 1868, when he was succeeded by H. W. Graves. In I869 the names of Hackett & Ross appear as proprietors; in 1870 and 1871 Mr. Hackett was sole proprietor. In 1872 he was succeeded by M. G. McCall, and after that time the building was used for other purposes. In I846 the Grand River House, on the northwest corner of Griswold and Grand River Streets, was conducted by Marvin Salter. He was succeeded in I848 or I85o by S. & J. French. In 1862 the proprietor was A. Goodman, who, six years later, erected the Goodman House on the same site. The Northern Hotel, on the east side of Woodward Avenue, near the Grand Circus, was opened in March, 1846. In December, 1847, William Perkins, Jr., became proprietor of a hotel on the northeast corner of Grand River and Middle Streets. In r - I~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~ ANDREWS' RAILROAD HOTEL AND PONTIAC DEPOT. The Commercial Hotel, on the southwest corner of Woodbridge and Second Streets, was conducted by John Murray in I842, and was burned on October 6. A new hotel by the same name was erected on the old site, and opened March 23, 1846, by John Murray. In June, 1850, B. S. Farnsworth became proprietor and remained four years. The house was burned August 19, i856. From 1845 until the great fire of May, 1848, A. Leadbeater kept the Indiana House, on the south side of Atwater Street near Randolph. Soon after the fire he opened the Western Hotel, on the northwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Third Street, I856 he built a large brick addition on Middle Street, and in 1877 a large four-story addition on Grand River Avenue. The hotel has always had a large patronage. Johnson's Hotel, on the southeast corner of Third and Woodbridge Streets, was opened early in June, 1848, by H. R. Johnson. Mr. Johnson retired in I852, and for the next seventeen months the house was kept by Czar Jones. During 1853 Mr. Johnson resumed the management, and continued till 1857, when S. B. King became the proprietor. In i86I the name was changed to Bagg's Hotel, and it was conducted by McDonald, Russell, & Co. In OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. 485 1I62 and I863 R. McDonald & Co. were proprietors. In 1864 Sheldon & Graves were conducting the hotel, and they changed the name to Cass House. In 1865 Sheldon & Tyrrell were managers, and from i866 to 1878 the Tyrrell Brothers. in 1878 it was kept by Johnson & Ferguson, and in 1879 E. Ferguson became sole proprietor. The building was torn down in 1885, and during i886 an entirely new hotel, called The Wayne, was erected at a cost of $100,000. From the spring of I850 for nearly three years William Shaw kept a hotel on the southeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Grand River Street. The building was then turned into stores. In 1848 Colonel N. Prouty was landlord of the Buena Vista House. The building is still standing stories was added. Many thousands of dollars have been spent upon the house for alterations and enlargements, but during much of the time for the last ten years the house and stores underneath have been unoccupied; and speculations and rumors as to probable occupants are as common as remarks upon the weather. The house was first opened on June 7, I85I, by Colonel O. B. Dibble and his son Charles. After the enlargement of I86I, on November 4, it was opened by J. & A. B. Tabor. They were succeeded in August, I871, by J. F. Antisdel, who remained two years, and was followed by H. P. Stevens. On February 7, 1874, John Stevens became the manager. In 1875 J. M. Maxwell was in charge; and his successors, at various times up to i88o, have been Howell & Schoaff, Gay WALI.ES HOTEL. BURNED IN THE FIRES OF 1S4; on Sixth Street, between Walnut Street and Grand River Avenue. The Biddle House was erected in I849 by a:;tock company upon the site of the old American or Wales Hotel, on ground belonging to the estate of John Biddle. Various changes took place in the company, and finally Luther Beecher became sole proprietor. In I860 and 186i a large addition was built on the east side, and Young Men's Hall erected in the rear. On July i, 1871, Mr. Beecher obtained a one-hundred-year lease of about two thirds of the block bounded by Jefferson Avenue, Woodbridge, Randolph, and Brush Streets, and as he owned the balance, he controlled almost the entire block. In 1872 he purchased the rights of the Young Men's Society, and in 1873 the Woodbridge front of six & Van Norman, and N. H. Williams. The City Hotel on Lafayette Avenue, on the site of the present Abstract Building, was built by Rodman Stoddard in I850. Upon his death, in 1853, Nathan Stone became the proprietor. From I856 to 1859 it was kept by C. M. Stoddard. He was succeeded in I859 by H. L. Reeves, who remained till 1862, when C. M. Stoddard resumed the management. In 1866 Nicholson & Emery became managers, and in 1868 were succeeded by E. Polhemus, who was the last to occupy the house as a hotel. The building was torn down in 1874. From I850 to I859 H. R. Andrews, with G. W. Thayer as clerk, kept the American Temperance House in the old arsenal building on the northwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Wayne Street. 486 OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. The building was afterwards used as a Soldiers' Home, and was demolished in I868. At various times a building on the southeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Williams Street was occupied as a hotel; and on December 22, 1851, a wooden building there located, known as the Grand Circus Hotel, was partly burned. In 1852 N. Stone was the proprietor, and in 1863 S. Weaver. A later brick building was at one time called Purdy's Hotel, and in 1875 was known as the Pierson House; it subsequently became a Turkish Bath establishment. The Merchants' Exchange, on the southeast corner of Griswold and Woodbridge Streets, was built by James Abbott, and opened by John Moore on September 22, 1852. He remained until December 31, 1866, when the building was converted into stores. The Peninsular Hotel, originally part of the old National, was moved to the southeast corner of Macomb and Grand River Avenues, by Charles Selkrig, in 1852. After him W. T. Purdy was manager for two years, and then John Small. From 1862 to I865 W. Eisenlord was proprietor. In 1867 the names of J. T. and L. M. Ives appear as managers, and in 1869 J. T. Ives only. Other landlords succeeded, but none remained long, and in 1879 the building was torn down. Blindbury's Hotel, on the corner of Michigan and Washington Avenues, was erected by John Blindbury in 1852. He kept it until his death in I864. B. C. Hills succeeded him, followed by R. I). Johnson, who was proprietor from 1865 to 1867. In 1868 J. F. & W. W. Antisdel became managers, and the name was changed to Antisdel House. After a few years W. W. Antisdel became sole manager. In May, 1883, W. A. Scripps bought the property, and W. W. Antisdel became a partner with him in conducting the house. The Garrison House was for many years an unfinished brick building on the northeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Cass Street. In 1854 it was enlarged, finished for a hotel, and opened on January I, 1855, by A. A. & S. P. Pond. In 1856 and 1857 George Millard was manager. In 1859 it was kept by J. J. Garrison, and in 1860, I86I, and 1862 by Garrison & Gillman. In I863 and 1864 it was kept by I). C. Goodale, in 1865 by Cole & Kingsley, in i866 and 1867 by H. H. and J. E. Cole, in I868 and 1869 by J. J. Rhodes, and in 1870 and I871 by Rhodes & Kingsley. After Mr. Rhodes' death in 1871 the house was rebuilt and turned into stores. The hotel now known as the Madison, on the northeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randolph Street, was originally called the St. Charles Hotel, and was opened by W. ''. Purdy and S. Cosens in 1852. In 1853 G. F R. Wadleigh was proprietor, and A. H. Goodrich in 1855, and the name was then changed to Tremont House. In 1862 and I863 D. S. Headley was proprietor, from I866 to 1870 D. C. Goodale, and in I870 G. Tucker. In 1873 the name was changed to Revere House, and W. Gray was proprietor, followed in 1874 by 0. WT. Penny. He was succeeded in 1879 by Cunningham & Barnard, and thev in i880 by W. H. Leland, who changed the name to Leland House. In November, 1880, the hotel was closed for repairs, and opened March 9, 1881, by George H. Martin & Co. as the Madison. On June I following M. V. Borgman took possession, and on August 20, 1883, George Scheller. In December, 1883, the lease and good will of the house was purchased by J. I. Wrilder, who was succeeded in I884 by R. G. Phillips, The Waverly House, immediately opposite the Michigan Exchange on Jefferson Avenue, was opened by Cook & Baldwin in April, 1852. They kept it until November, 1853. J. P. Whiting then managed it for a year, and Whiting & Luff for several years. After this time it was rented for other purposes. The Howard House, on Congress Street, between Woodward Avenue and Griswold Street, was opened in I853, with J. C. Davis as proprietor. In I855 he was succeeded by George Millard, who remained three years or more. In 1862 M. W. Burchard was acting landlord; in 1863 Mrs. R. A. Bishop; in 1864 J. Haggenbach; from I865 to I869, A. A. Corkins. In 1869 G. O. Williams was proprietor, succeeded in 1870 by Mrs. G. O. Williams. From 1871 to 1875 it was conducted by J. B. Hamilton, in 1875 by Hamilton & Clark, in I876 by Booth & Root, in 1877 by G. P. Booth, and in 1878 by L. J. Clark. On May 3, r880, Van Est & Graves became proprietors, and the name was changed to Griswold House. In 1881 the house was enlarged on the north side and extensively refitted. The Lamed House, on the northeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Third Street, was opened by 0. Whitney on May 30, I853. In I862 M. W. Warner was in charge, and in I865 George Niles. The building was torn down in 1884, and the Griffin House erected. The Railroad Exchange, on the south side of Michigan Avenue, between the Campus Martius and Bates Street, was opened by C. J. Beardslee, who kept the hotel until I868. In 1870 J. F. Lobdell was manager. After 1878 the building was torn down, and the Mansfield Market erected on its site. The Finney House was built in 1854 by Seymour Finney, who kept the house until 1857. In 1858 Parshall & Antisdel were proprietors. From 1859 to 1870 J. Parshall was sole manager; in 1870 C. P. Lord; from 1872 to 1876, A. H. Emery; from 1876 OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. 487 to 1883, N. H. Williams. In 1883 A. H. Emery again became manager. The Brighton House, on the southeast corner of Grand River Avenue and Gillman Street, was erected in 1863 by Harvey King. The block on the northeast corner of Fort and Randolph Streets was fitted up as a hotel in I865, and conducted until 1879 by C. D. Erichsen. He then moved to a building on Farmer Street, between Randolph and Bates Streets. The first - named building was turned into stores, and the hotel name transferred to the new location. The Eisenlord House, on the corner of Cass and Lewis Streets, was built by William Eisenlord in I866. In I886 E. C. Harvey became proprietor, anc M. V. Borgman became the proprietor, and the name was changed to Bernard House. On January 15, I88I, the property was sold to W. A. Jones. In 1883 he was succeeded by R. J. Calvert. In 1887, after being entirely refitted, it was opened on May 16 by N. P. Grummond as Hotel Benedict. The Brunswick House, on the southeast corner of Griswold and State Streets, was opened in 1878 by A M. Van Duzer and J. D. Tucker. In 1879 E. H. Hudson was proprietor, in I880 J. M. Hannaford, in I88 M. W Field, and on June 29, 1882, the house was sold to Messrs. Dickinson & Carr The Standish House, on the north side of Congress Street near Woodward Avenue, was opened WILLIAM PERKINS' HOTEL AND STORE, Northeast corner of Grand River Avenue and Middle Street. Hotel built in 1838-56. Store in I877. under his management has decidedly improved. Hotel Henry, at the head of Monroe Avenue, was erected in I870, and up to 1882 was conducted by John Henry. Hotel Renaud, on the northeast corner of Adams and;rand River Avenues, was so named in 1875 by its owner, George F. Renaud. Hotel Goffinet, on the southeast corner of Randolph and Lamed Streets, also dates from 1875. It was conducted by James Goffinet until 1878, when in 1879 by L. B. Clark. Rice's Hotel, occupying a part of the same block with the Standish House, was opened in 1879 by John D. Rice. In I88i the Williams Block, on the north side of Michigan Avenue, facing the Campus Martius, was fitted up as a hotel, and opened on August I as the Kirkwood, with C. P. Howell as proprietor. He was succeeded on April 30, I882, by Messrs. Hartzell & Co. In July, 1882, owing to difficulties between landlord and proprietors, the house was I 4 88 OLD TAVERNS AND NEW HOTELS. closed. In 1 883 a portion of the building was again OIpened as a hotel with the same name. and conducted by John C. Williams. Since 1885 Lewv B. Clark has been proprietor. During 1887 the elegant hotel named "The Wayne" was first opened. It is located on the site of the old Cass Hotel, and is immediately opposite the Michigan Central Railroad Depot. The Cadillac was opened in April, i888. It is on the cornier of Michigan Avenue and Rowland Street, THE KmiRKNOOD HOTE~L, CORNIFR MNONROE AvENUEF AND CADILLAC SQUARE. CHAPTER LIV. IMPORTANT FIRES.-FIRE MARSHAL.- FIRE LIMITS.-CHIMNEY SWEEPS. IMPORI'ANT FIRES, MANY of the fires which have occurred at Detroit are vitally connected with important historical facts. Some of them affected all the future of the city. The mention of many will recall collateral circumstances, locate various events, and suggest items of interest. In the following list there has been no endeavor to recall every fire, but only those which destroyed one building or more, or an exceptionally large amount of property. Soon after it was founded the settlement suffered from torch and flame. I703. This year Indians set fire to a barn filled \\ith corn and other grain, located outside of but tadjoining the stockade. There was a high wind at the time, and the flames spread, consuming the church and the houses of the priest, Commandant Cadillac, and M. Tonty, as well as part of the stockade. At this fire Cadillac's hand was burned and many of his papers destroyed. I7I2. The MIascoutins and Outagamies, when tley besieged the fort, threw hundreds of burning missiles inside the pickets, which set fire to the thatched roofs of the houses. The inhabitants put out the fire with swabs attached to long poles, and then covered the roofs with bear and deer skins. At this time the church, storehouse, and several other buildings outside the stockade were demolished because they were so near as to endanger the fort if set on fire. I805. The next fire of which any record has been preserved was the notable one of June II, o805, which, on account of its results, was the most important local event that has taken place in l)etroit. The town came out of this fire entirely changed,-built on a new plan, with new streets and new names, a new basis for the land titles, and a new and original system of local government; in fact, every interest of the inhabitants, social, political, and commercial, was affected by the event so appropriately commemorated in the seal of the city. I he inhabitants of Detroit, especially the trustees, sIenm to have had a premonition of the calamity \hich so completely swept away the town; the very tirst ordinance passed was in regard to protection from fires, and the records show that a large portion of each of their sessions was spent in framing regulations about fires, and fining the inhabitants for not obeying them. At their last meeting on June 3, eight days previous to the fire, the inspectors were ordered to inspect the premises of householders once a week, to see if their fire-buckets and firebags were in order. The fatal day arrived. A careless laborer, in the employ of John Harvey, a baker, was sent to harness the horses in a small stable situated on St. Anne Street, on what is now the north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Shelby and Wayne Streets. The fire of the man's pipe was communicated to the hay, and about nine o'clock in the morning the conflagration began. There was little or no wind at first, and no one was much alarmed. The old firepump was brought into use, but as supplying it from the river was a slow and tedious process, the firemen resorted for water to a hatter's vat. The fur and shreds from the vat soon clogged and disabled the engine, and the fire spread apace, in less than an hour reaching the pickets on the eastern side of the town. Meantime the inhabitants were not inactive. They formed in double lines, obtained water, passed it from hand to hand, and poured it on the flames; but the effort availed but little, and was soon discontinued. Some of the people continued to throw water from buckets and basins; others rushed hither and thither with ladders and fire-bags, but all in vain. Boats, pirogues, and canoes were now in requisition. Furs and flannels, beds and bundles, goods and groceries, were placed therein, and with heavy hearts and heavy loads the boats were pulled away, in many cases only to be overtaken and destroyed by the burning shingles that filled the air. The margin of the river was thickly lined with tables, chairs, chests, and bedsteads. In many cases household goods and household gods were preserved only by being thrown into the water. The excitable French population grew almost frantic as they saw houses, shops, and barns, one after another, turned to ashes almost in a moment. The thatched buildings, many of them a century old, moss-grown, and made sacred by a thousand memories and traditions, handed down from those who risked their 32 L48')1 490 IMPORTANT FIRES. 490 IMPORTANT FIRES. all in the first settlement on the banks of the Detroit, flamed and flashed, and faded out of sight. The narrow streets, ranging from twelve to twenty feet in width, offered little or no hindrance to the spread of the fire, and by one o'clock, out of nearly two hundred buildings inside of the stockade, but one was left, the stone chimneys alone remaining to mark the sites of the others. The building left standing was owned by Robert McNiff, and was located on St. Anne's Street near the site occupied in recent years by the Campau House. A warehouse just outside of the stockade, at the foot of what is now Wayne Street, on the southeast corner of Woodbridge Street, was also saved; it was owned by Angus McIntosh, and occupied by Colonel H. J. Hunt. On the western side of Woodward Avenue there were a number of buildings untouched by the fire, which extended no farther than the middle of the block between Griswold Street and Woodward Avenue. Rev. John Dilhet, a Roman Catholic clergyman, gives this account of the fire: I was occupied with Mr. Richard when a messenger came to inform us that three houses had been already consumed, and that there was no hope of saving the rest. I exhorted the faithful who were present to help each other, and immediately commenced the celebration of low mass, after which we had barely time to remove the vestments and furniture of the church, with the effects of the adjoining presbytery, when both buildings were enveloped in the flames. In the course of three hours, from 9 o'clock till noon, nothing was to be seen of the city except a mass of burning coals, and chimney-tops stretching like pyramids into the air. Fortunately there was no wind during the conflagration; this allowed the flames and smoke to ascend to a prodigious height, giving the city the appearance of an immense funeral pile. It was the most majestic, and at the same time the most frightful spectacle I ever witnessed. The city contained at least one hundred and fifty houses, mostly frame, which caused the fire to spread with the utmost rapidity. The number of people in the town being unusually large, there was ample force for removing the merchandise and furniture of the inhabitants, which were in a great measure saved. No personal injury was sustained during the fire. This last statement is evidently a mistake, for an appropriation bill of December 8, I806, contains an item that not over $20.25 was to be paid to Catherine Lasselle for "nursing a child crippled by the conflagration of the I th day of June." Other injuries are spoken of and further particulars narrated in the following letter from the agent of the public stores at Detroit to Governor Harrison: DETROIT, June 14, 1805. SIR,I have the painful task to inform you of the entire conflagration of the town of Detroit. About ten o'clock on Tuesday last a stable, immediately opposite the factory, was discovered on fire. The first intimation I had of it was the flames bursting through the doors and windows of the house; T immediately gave the alarm, and with great exertion saved my papers, and about two thirds of the goods of the factory; my private property was entirely consumed. In less than two hours the whole town was in flames, and before three o'clock not a vestige of a house (except the chimneys) visible within the limits of Detroit. The citadel and military stores were entirely consumed, and the furniture belonging to the estate of Colonel Hamtramck shared nearly the same fate; the china is the only thing I can mention to be the contrary. 1 have removed the factory goods to the ship yard, and am now fixing a place to arrange them for disposal, agreeable to the original intention of the establishment, and I will speedily forward a statement of the loss that has been sustained. The situation of the inhabitants is deplorable beyond description; dependence, want, and misery isthe situation of the former inhabitants of the town of Detroit. Provisions are furnished by contributions, but houses cannot be obtained. Mr. Dodemead lives in a corner of the public storehouse at the ship yard; Mr. Donavan with his family have gone to Sandwich; and Mr. Audrain, with many others, occupy the small house below Mr. May's. A number of families are scattered over the commons without any protection or shelter. I have been very much bruised and hurt by my exertion to save the property. My right arm particularly is so much swelled that I can hardly hold the pen to write these few lines, and my mind is equally affected with the distressing scenes I have witnessed for the last three days. I am, Sir, your ob't serv't ROBERT MUNRO. Just previous to the fire, Jacques A. Girardin, a baker, kneaded a batch of bread and placed it in his oven. When the fire ceased burning he bethought him of his loaves, and proceeded to his bakery. To his astonishment he found that the bread was not only uninjured, but well baked. It was dinner time and also a time of need; and his hot and hungry neighbors were generously supplied from this unexpected store. A list of losses by the fire, presented to a committee of citizens, foots up t39,847, but the total loss must have been much greater, as the names of several score of persons, known to have been living in the town at the time, are not included in the list. After the fire some of the people were cared for in farm houses along the river; others erected tents and shanties on the commons in the rear of the -old town. In a letter to James Madison, Secretary of State, dated August 3, I805, Governor Hull says, " On my arrival (July ist) every house was crowded, and it was more than a week before I could obtain the least accommodation. I am now in a small farmer's house about a mile above the ruins, and must satisfy myself to remain in this situation during the next winter, at least." It was fortuitous, indeed, that the fire did not occur in winter, for although there was much discomfort, the mild weather made it endurable for a time. The country people soon poured in, with materials to be paid for when the citizens were able, and also offered their assistance to raise new buildings. Timber, plank, stone, lime, brick, and other materials necessary for building were of course in great demand,-a state of affairs which appears to have been peculiarly satisfactory to the lumbermen, and in a letter to James Madison, written August IMPORTANT FIRES. 491.. 3, I805, and on file at Washington, Governor Hull makes known the horrible suspicion of the people. He says, " It has not been ascertained how the fire took place, but it is generally believed it was by design, and by persons interested in the lumber trade. Contracts had been previously made for all the lumber at the mills, and which could be sawed this season, which was a novel arrangement in this country." Was it in deference to this belief that Governor Hull issued a proclamation on September 4, i805, forbidding all persons, on pain of fine and imprisonment, to cut any timber in the St. Clair pinery? or was it because he purposed to prevent, as he did prevent, the people from building on their old lots, in order to secure the adoption of a new and really better plan? Such, at least, was the result of his efforts, for no houses were built during all that year, In connection with plans for the relief of the people, some curious statements are made by Mr. Gentle. He says: Two or three days after the fire, the sufferers met in McComb's orchard and appointed a committee to forward petitions to different parts, and to receive contributions for the relief of the sufferers. Through neglect the petitions were not forwarded until about six weeks afterwards. By that time the public commiseration had in a great measure subsided; and this, we may suppose, was the reason why in all the United States not one cent was raised for our relief. Three weeks after the fire a vessel arrived from Michilimackinac and brought a contribution of nine hundred and sixty-one dollars, addressed to Frederick Bates, James Henry, and Robert Abbott, to be distributed amongst the most necessitous of the sufferers. Soon after, a bill of exchange of one thousand and ten dollars was received from Montreal by Elijah blrush for the same purpose. Mr. Brush disposed of the bill to PR. and J. Abbott, and received four hundred dollars prompt payment. Meantime Mr. Bates gave up his part of the charge to Mr. Henry. Some part of the Michilimackinac money being in bills on Montreal, Mr. Henry gave them over to R. and J. Abbott, to the amount of $336. The whole in R. and J. Abbott's hands is $925; in Mr. Brush's, $400; in all, $1,961. 'owards spring, I806, a meeting of the sufferers was held, and a committee empowered to compel those to whom this money was Intrusted to give an account of its expenditure. A demand was made, but the answer not being satisfactory, it was resolved to enter suits against them at the following September term, if previous to that time they did not comply with the above demand. The disposal of these contributions gave rise to much controversy, and the matter was considered by the Governor and judges on October 22, i808, when "Judge Woodward laid on the table a resolution for the appointment of a committee on the subject of sundry considerable sums of money subscribed by the inhabitants of Montreal and Michilimackinac for the relief of the sufferers by the conflagration of Detroit." It does not appear from the old records that a settlement was then made, and it is not probable that any settlement would have been thoroughly satisfactory to all parties. There is no evidence that any of the funds were misappropriated. As late as October 20, 1817, Solomon Sibley, who, in some way, became the custodian of a part of the funds, turned over to the University the sum of $625.67. as part of the donation received from the citizens of 5Mackinaw, and from some other party, enough more (part or all of which came from Montreal) was turned over to make up the sum of $940. (See History of the University). The remembrances of 1805 made the people careful and vigilant; and for twenty years thereafter no record or memory exists of a single conflagration. 1825. On the 27th of September the brewery of Abbott & Converse was consumed, with a large quantity of beer and barley. 1827. Two years later the Detroit Gazette announced the second burning of the brewery on the I7th of February, as follows: Between 8 and 9 1'. ut. a fire broke out in the brewery of Messrs. Abbott & Converse, situated on Palmer & McKinstry's wharf, adjoining the storehouse and wharf of Dorr & Jones. After most severe and unceasing exertions for upwards of four hours, the fire was so far checked as'to warrant the hope that no farther damage would be done by it. On taking a survey of its ravages, it was found that in addition to the brewery, the ashery of Thomas Palmer, the shop of R. W. Paine, wagon maker, and the shop. of Mr. Ewers, cooper, were destroyed. Several small buildings were torn down and others damaged. 1830. On April 26 the Detroit Gazette office, the dwellings of John Smith and Judge McDonnell,the stores of Major Brooks and Mr. Griswold, and the offices of Dr. Clark and Thomas Palmer were burned. 183I. On Sunday, January I6, at one P. M., a building on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street, occupied by Mr. Heartt as a hardware store, and also by Mr. Wendell, was burned. The flames extended to an adjoining building, occupied by Dean & Hurlbut as a saddle and harness store; also to the adjacent dwelling house occupied by the Messrs. Moon, Cole, Porter and Dr. Henry, which was destroyed, together with many household goods belonging to John Farmer, stored, during the absence of the family, over Dean & Hurlbut's. Total loss, about $8,000; insurance, $4,000. June 8, Judge Leib's house in Hamtramck was burned. December 9, the dwelling of Julius Eldred, French & Eldred's woolen factory, S. Phelps' grocery and bath-house, also a house owned by B. Campau and occupied by Mr. Moon as a grocery and by Mr. Fairbanks as a dwelling, were destroyed. All were located on and near the corner of Randolph and Atwater Streets. Loss, $9,00o. 1832. March 16, a cooper shop, with dwelling occupied by Mr. Sutton was burned. March 28, house and stable owned by Mrs. Hanks, occupied by J. Keeney. Two horses burned. 492 IMPORTS September 15, stable of Robert Abbott, below the city, burned. I833. July I5, Mr. Goodell's barn, near the jail. August 15, the new dwelling of Mr. Beaulien took fire; Lieutenant Morris, with several U. S. soldiers, aided in putting out the fire. October 5, a fire at I A. M. in Z. Kirby's leather store and W. & F. Brewster's dry goods store, in or next to Smart's Block. Roof burned and some of the goods. I834. Sunday, January 12, cabinet warehouse of Moore & Britton, corner of Randolph and Atwater Streets, entirely consumed. January 15, Beardsley's blacksmith shop. August 21, steamboat, Oliver Newberry, partially burned; loss, $i,ooo. 1835. On Sunday, December 13, at 10.30 A. M., a fire, corner of Lamed and Brush Streets, burned an unfinished building belonging to the proprietors of the Journal and Courier; one adjoining building was also entirely destroyed, and several others partially burned. 1836. February 17, a fire began about 8 P. M., which burned N. T. Ludden's grocery and John Hale's dry goods store and shoe shop on Atwater Street, near Berthelet Market. September 6, Rice & Clark's steam saw-mill and sash factory. Loss, about $1 5,00o. I837. January 4, at 3 P. M., a fire on the northeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Shelby Street, in T. C. Sheldon's block, burned the Free Press office, H. A. Naglee's confectionery and bakery, Rufus Brown's grocery and A. Chaffee's blacksmith shop. Total loss, about $23,000. April 27, at I2.30 A. M., a fire broke out in the bakery of Mr. White on Woodward Avenue, which burned seventy-three buildings. It extended on Woodward Avenue from Woodbridge to Atwater, on Atwater, both sides, from Woodward to Randolph; on both sides of Wcodbridge to the Steamboat Hotel, near Randolph Street, leaving in three blocks only one brick house and a range of low wooden buildings, opposite the Steamboat Hotel. Loss, about $200,000. Following is a list of the property destroyed: John Farmer, block of three stores; J. L. Whiting, storage and forwarding house; J. White, bakehouse; M. Bishop, provisions and groceries; McKenzie & Graves, provisions and groceries; F. Moore & Co., provisions and groceries; S. Fletcher, Ilall of Amusement; Garrison & Holmes, grocery; J. Roberts, cigar manufactory; Little & Wells, chair manufactory; A. C. Pierce & Co., wholesale grocers; J. Farrar, general store; Jesse McMillan, grocery and liquor store; Robert Terhune, crockery warehouse; Amos Lewis, St. Josepll House, Michael Dougherty, upholsterer: iNT FIRES. William Dickenson, groceries; William Andrews, groceries; Mrs. Copland, bakery and confectionery; George Miller, groceries; Michael Kelly, provisions and groceries; C. L. Bristol, new block of live stores. I838. May I, building on northwest corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues burned. The occupants were: John McReynolds, loss $ I,ooo, insured for $6,ooo; T. H. Hickcox, loss $3,000ooo; George I)oty, loss $5,000; I)e Graff & Townsend, loss $I,ooo, insured; William Phelps, loss $300. December 17, a bowling alley, tailor shop, grocery and barn, at foot of Woodward Avenue, burned at I A. M. 1839. February 9, at 3 A. M., a woodshed, stable, two horses and a cow, belonging to Mr. Wilkins on Jefferson Avenue. June 26, Wednesday, at o1 P. M., T. M. Ladd's two-story house on Cass Farm. September I, evening, Great Western, at the wharf of Gillett & Desnoyers. i840. September 26, 4.30 A. M., corner of Griswold and Lamed Streets, a barn and four horses burned; the property of 0. Field. October 3r, a barn and several small buildings on southeast corner of Monroe Avenue and Farmer Street, belonging to Major Kearsley. December I7, Fletcher's Hall of Amusement and Campbell's liquor store, foot of Woodward Avenue. 1841. Sunday, January 3, at 6.30 A. M., Major Dequindre's house, corner of St. Antoine and Woodbridge Streets. May I7, C. L. Bristol's house, opposite the Capitol, and Central Railroad House, on Michigan Avenue, kept by John Chamberlain. Loss, $9,000. 1842. On Saturday, January i, a fire broke out about io I. MI., probably in the chimney of the New York and Ohio House. old wooden buildings. located on the northwest corner of Woodward Avenue and WVoodbridge Street. The fire burned over the entire block, bounded by Woodward and Jefferson Avenues, Griswold and Woodbridge Streets, consuming twenty-five buildings, including the two finest four-story brick stores then in the city. Entire loss, $200,000. Among the buildings were those of Messrs. Ludden, Garrison, John Palmer, Webb & Douglass, Dequindre, Moore, Chandler and Dwight. The following business places were burned out: Advertiser and Free Press offices, the Museum, F. Raymond's clothing store, Warren's confectionery, Gardner's crockery store, G. & J. G. Hill's drug and grocery store, A. C. McGraw's shoe store, E. Bingham's drug store, Nelson's grocery, Salsbury's grocery, Johnson's tailor shop, the Custom House, and many small establishments. At this fire the officers and soldiers of the Fifth IMPORTANT FIRES. 493 United States Regiment did effective service, for which they were thanked by the Common Council. April 27, the Canadian steamer Western burned at Watkins & Bissell's dock. October 6, I P. M., 0. Newberry's warehouse and part of the Commercial Hotel. Loss, $3,000. i843. February 20, at corner of Woodward Avenue and Woodbridge Street, a building occupied by A. H. Stowell, B. B. Moore, and Witherell's law office. 'I'he adjoining buildings, occupied by A. M. Bartholomew and M. F. Dickinson, were much injured. August 12, several small buildings, also a horse, corner of Woodbridge and Beaubien Streets. October i8, at 1.30 A. M., on south side of Jefferson Avenue, between Bates and Randolph Streets, the building occupied by George Egner, confectioner; Tyler & Beaufait's hat store; Dr. Bartholick, druggist; and Gantry, tailor, were burned; also Barney Campau's dwelling. I844. November 4, the house of G. Mott Williams, corner of Congress and Wayne Streets. This was the first fire that had occurred since the one last noted, over a year previous. December 13, early in the morning, Campau's Block, on northwest corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues, partly burned. The stores were occupied by \W. & D. Bennett, druggists. Loss, $5,000. Adjoining store of De Graff & Townsend slightly damaged. I845. March I5, 2 A. M., Detroit Iron Company's Foundry entirely consumed. 1846. August 28, Mr. Holmes' residence on Larned Street much injured; barn burned, also a carpenter shop and R. H. Hall's stable. I847. March 8, dwelling on Woodward Avenue, owned by C. \V. Morgan, occupied by J. C. W. Seymour. Loss, $60o. July 24, dwelling near Central Depot, owned by Mr. Lothrop, of Jackson, occupied by Mr. Le Roy. September 5, tannery of W. Parker, near Water Works, burned. Loss, $Io,ooo. December 21, an extensive fire broke out about I o'clock in the block on north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Randolph and Brush Streets. It was first discovered in Long's wagon shop. It spread rapidly half way to Brush Street, west to Randolph Street, and north to the alley between Jefferson Avenue and Lamed Street, burning all as far east as William Moore's livery stable. 1848. January 24, residence of Samuel Pitts on Jefferson Avenue. Loss, $3,000. April 12, 9 P. M., barn used by D. Smart, corner of Russell Street and Jefferson Avenue. May 4, Odd Fellows' Hall, on Woodward Avenue, considerably damaged. May 9, an extensive conflagration occurred. It burned more buildings and destroyed much more property than any previous fire. It originated in De Wolf's storehouse, better known as the "old yellow warehouse," located on the river between Bates and Randolph Streets, and was caused by sparks from the propeller St. Joseph, then lying at the dock. The fire extended from this point northeast nearly to the southwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Beaubien Street, burning most of the buildings, nearly three hundred in all, south of Jefferson Avenue to the river; and from the middle of the block between Bates and Randolph Streets to the middle of the block between Brush and Beaubien Streets,-a space equal to six squares. For many years the locality was designated as the "burnt district." Of the buildings burned, one hundred and seven were dwellinghouses, and between three hundred and four hundred families were left homeless. Among the more prominent buildings burnred were the old Council House, the Berthelet Market, Wales Hotel or the American House, and Woodworth's Steamboat Hotel. The fire broke out at 10.30 A. M., and lasted till 4 P. M. The sparks were so numerous and so large that, east of Woodward Avenue, nearly every house had to be watched, and sparks brushed from the roofs. The whole city was alarmed, and there was great fear that the fire could not be subdued. Several buildings were blown up and others torn down, to hinder the progress of the flames. Furniture was carried for safety to points a mile distant, and many families, nearly that distance away, commenced to pack their most valuable goods. The total loss exceeded $200,000, on which there was but $34,000 insurance. Sufferers by the fire were relieved by committees of citizens. August 22, William Barclay's foundry burned; it was a large wooden building, on the corner of Lafayette Avenue and Shelby Street. Loss, about $12,000. October 31, II P. M., United States Hotel, on Woodbridge between Griswold and Shelby Streets. 1849. February 14, three wooden buildings near the Commercial Hotel. One entirely, and two partially consumed. April I4, Born's shoe shop and dwelling on Lamed Street, between Bates and Randolph Streets, burned. May 22, twelve o'clock midnight, a fire broke out in the machine shop and engine buildings of the Pontiac Railroad Depot, and the buildings and their contents, including many valuable patterns, tools, etc., were destroyed. The engines were removed without injury. The depot was on the southwest corner of Gratiot and Farmer Streets. June 5, Wilcox's carpenter shop, on the north side of Farrar, between Monroe and Gratiot Avenues, 494 INMPORTY entirely, and the adjoining old brick theatre partially destroyed. June 14, John Edwards' old Ferry House, at the foot of Woodward Avenue, was burned. August 23, a fire on Monroe Avenue, near Randolph, burned Northrop's blacksmith shop, Graves' paint shop, and a.carpenter shop. December 7, a fire on south side of Jefferson Avenue, between Bates and Randolph Streets, originating in a frame building next to M. H. Webster's hardware store, burned Stewart's botanic store, Hirsch & Silberman's cigar store, William Lambert's clothes cleaning establishment, and other business places. November I9, officers' quarters at Fort Wayne burned. I850. March 28, about three o'clock A. M., a fire broke out on northeast corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street, and Collins' eating house, Banks' clothing store, Rankin's shoe store, Marsh's jewelry store, and the stores of Rowe & Co., oyster dealers, and Bates & Henderson, tailors, were destroyed. May 1, the Williams' Block, on south side of Jefferson Avenue, corner of Bates Street, was damaged by a fire in the upper stories; building occupied by Carpenter & Rice, J. & W. Thompson, and James Lowry. June 17, a grocery, on corner of Jefferson Avenue and Beaubien Street, and several wooden buildings were burned. September 23, a barn attached to the Michigan Railroad House, on northwest corner of Griswold Street and Michigan Avenue, was set on fire, and the flames communicated to the hotel, which was totally destroyed. October 29, fire in a carpenter shop on State Street, in rear of O. M. Hyde's dwelling and First M. E. Church. The last two buildings somewhat damaged. November I9, the M. C. R. R. Depot, with all its contents, was burned. Loss, $I50,000. The burning of this depot was the culminating act in the "Railroad Conspiracy Case," and had much to do with that celebrated trial. 185I. April II, the Seamen's Home Hotel, on Atwater Street, together with three or four other wooden buildings. May 3, F. P. Markham & Brother's book store, on Jefferson Avenue, next to Firemen's Hall, also James Riley's house in the eighth ward. December 22, Grand Circus Hotel and barn. 1852. January 23, car manufacturing shop of M. C. R. R. and much lumber. April I6, Cooper Block, on Jefferson Avenue, between Griswold and Shelby Streets, nearly consumed. ANT FIRES. September 28, three dwellings and two barns, corner of Congress and Russell Streets. October 15, C. C. Jackson's house, on Woodward Avenue, between State and Grand River Streets, burned, and D. C. Holbrook's much injured. 1853. February Io, the furniture factory of Stevens & Weber, above Grand Circus, burned. February 15, Ellis's dry goods store, southeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Congress Street. June 23, a fire on Gratiot Street, near Beaubien; four buildings entirely, and several others partially destroyed. May 30, the dry kiln of Sutton's pail factory, on Fort Street West, burned. August 15, a pottery on Orleans Street, near Gratiot, was totally destroyed, and a man burned to death. November 8, old Bowling Alley, on Monroe Avenue near the Campus Martius, known as the Palo Alto Saloon, and two adjoining buildings, occupied as a bakery and a meat shop, were burned. 1854. January Io, the First Presbyterian Church, on northeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Lamed Street, with half the block between Lamed Street and Jefferson Avenue, the fire extending to the old Boston shoe store of L. L. Farnsworth. The fire began in Smith & Tyler's shoe store, on Woodward Avenue, and consumed the grocery stores of T. Lewis and George Davis, T. H. Armstrong's hat store, Foster's paint shop, a barber shop, P. Teller's residence on Lamed Street, and the Presbyterian Church. The burning of the church was a sad but splendid sight; as the flames streamed up and enveloped the steeple, they illuminated half the city. The picture given of the fire is from an oil painting produced from a sketch made by Robert Hopkin the morning after the fire. The original appearance of the church is more accurately shown in connection with the history of the churches. January 22, M. C. R. R. offices, at foot of Third Street, burned. Loss, $Io,ooo. June 26, Colored Baptist Church, known also as Liberty Hall, on Fort Street East, between Beaubien and St. Antoine Streets. June 29, Phillips' sash factory, part of the Peninsular Hotel barn, a bakery, and four dwellings, burned. August 6, Lutheran Church, on Monroe Avenue, corner of Farrar Streets, and two frame dwellings. August 19, a number of barns and sheds between Lamed Street and Jefferson Avenue and Brush and Beaubien Streets. September 19, two wooden buildings on Atwater and First Streets burned and two others injured. October 20, Ingersoll's carpenter-shop, on Woodbridge, between Bates and Randolph Streets, burned. IMPORTANT FIRES. 495 December 22, cooper shop and three dwellings on Gratiot Avenue. December 23, Wenzell's tin shop and adjacent buildings, on Woodward Avenue near the Campus Martius. 1855. January 24, Wilcox's carpenter shop on Farrar, between Monroe and Gratiot Avenues, consumed. March 7, Long's livery stable, on Woodbridge Street in rear of Firemen's Hall. May 28, grocery and feed store of Todd & Van August 17, Mechanics' Hall, on Griswold Street, partially consumed. August I9, Commercial Hotel, on Woodbridge and First Streets. September 19, dwelling houses, occupied by the Misses Scott and Mrs. J. C. Ladue, corner of Hastings and Lamed Streets, partly burned. December 24, C. & P. Mellus's saw factory, on Fort Street East, near Beaubien. I857. January I3, old Abbott Block, on Atwater Street. BURNING OF FIRST PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH. derwarker, southeast corner of Woodward and Grand River Avenues. September 4, Cass Warehouse, foot of First Street, occupied by Williams & Buckley, burned. Loss, $30,o00. I856. May 13, German Theatre, corner of Rivard and Macomb Streets, burned, two other buildings injured. May i8, Tribune Building, northeast corer of Woodward Avenue and Woodbridge Street. February 12, New York Boiler Works and Hall's Hotel, on Atwater near Hastings Street. June 20, fire in Tenth Ward, caused by inhabitants seeking to drive disreputable persons out of the ward. 1858. February 5, the old Smart Buildings, known also as the " Scotch store " of Campbell & Linn, on northeast corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues; also the adjoining brick stores on Woodward and Jefferson Avenues, occupied by 496 IMPORTANT FIRES. Sheldon & Brother and Amberg & Co., were burned. Loss, $o5,oo0. February 14, large wooden building, corner of Brush and (ratiot Streets, occupied by Moross & Provost. March 7, old \\ooden theatre on northwest corner of State and Farrar Streets. The old brick theatre opposite partially burned. April i, Hyde's planing mill, in Tenth Ward. April I6, Moffat's saw mill, in Tenth Ward. September 20, old barn on Cass Farm, belonging to Mr. King. December 31, Tribune Building, northeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Woodbridge Street. 1859. February 8, stables of Grand River House, near corner of XGriswold and (rand River Streets. March, 24, Funke's hat store, King's clothing store, and Elliott's paint shop, on north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Bates and Woodward. April 25, Grigg's chair factory, on northwest corner of Brush and Gratiot Streets (formerly used as a warehouse by the D. & P. R. R. Co.), and eight other buildings. May 22, dwelling of A. H. Stowell, on northeast corner of Griswold and Grand River Streets, partially burned. June 5, old railroad freight building, on Michigan Avenue, site of New City Hall, partially burned. June 20, William Phelps & Company's store, 98 Jefferson Avenue, damaged, and three or four other stores burned. At this fire R. WV. Wright, by overexertion or inhaling of smoke, was much injured. July 29, \V. F. BIelman's grocery, corner of John R Street and Woodward Avenue. i860. January I, old Whig Cabin, next to Biddle House, occupied by several small firms. Loss, $5,000. January I9, Blindbury's planing mill, on Atwater Street, between Rivard and Riopelle Streets. Loss, $3,000. January 29, frame house, corner of Lamed and Brush Streets. Loss, $1,ooo. March 5, box factory, rear of 200 Macomb Street. Same day, old oilcloth factory, on Jefferson Avenue, near St. Aubin Avenue. Loss, $400. March 18, residence of H. H. Wells, corner of Jefferson Avenue and Rivard Street, greatly damaged. May 3, two houses on Hastings, between Fort and Lafayette Streets. Loss, $I,ooo. May 5, dwelling on Lamed Street in rear of the Cathedral. May 30, a row of one-story buildings, corner of Michigan Avenue and Third Street. Loss, $I,ooo. June 3, several piles of lumber at Pitts' Mill. Same day, D. M. Richardson's match factory. Loss, $12,000. June 17, J. Taylor & Co.'s grocery, a two-story building, corner of Macomb and Grand River Streets. Loss, $4,000. July 4, old l)etroit Institute, or Fowler Schoolhouse, in use as a livery stable, with eleven horses, burned. Loss, $3,200. July 7, barn near Woodward Avenue and between Columbia and Elizabeth Streets. July ii, frame dwelling, corner Park and Sproat Streets, occupied by Mr. Deming, burned; several others injured. August I I, several stables in alley near Beaubien and between Congress and Lamed Streets. Loss, $1,500. August 12, two buildings, on Lamed near St. Antoine Street, partially burned. August 29; fire on the dock between Cass and First Streets; Newman's roofing establishment and Pittman's warehouse burned, and other buildings damaged. Loss, about $5,000. I)ecember I, stores of J. Van Baalen, P. Carr, W. G. Peters, H. S. Lapham; Wanbeq & Musche, J. O'Connor, and D. McCormick, burned; they were on north side of Michigan Avenue, between Griswold and Woodward Avenues. I86i. January 4, fire on north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Griswold and Woodward Avenues. D. Amberg's clothing store burned and S. Grigg's furniture store badly damaged. January 25, Traub Brothers' jewelry store, on south side of Jefferson Avenue, between Bates and Randolph Streets. February i, old wooden buildings on west side of Woodward Avenue, from Atwater Street to dock, including Brady warehouse. All burned. Loss, $7,000. February 22, fire in Scotten, Granger, & Lovett's tobacco factory, on Randolph Street, and in A. Lingeman's jewelry store, at head of Michigan Grand Avenue. March 15, Mechanics' Hall, in use for police court, on Griswold Street, partly burned. May 5, residences of S E. Pittman and Mrs. Van Anden burned, also two or three smaller buildings on Woodbridge Street, near St. Antoine. May 29, building on Sixth and Locust Streets, occupied by Mrs. Starkey's select school. June i, F. E. Eldred's tannery, in Springwells, badly damaged. June Io, Quinlan's grocery, corner of Seventh and Grand River Streets. Loss, $2,500. July 4, house belonging to Mr. Flattery, occupied by Mr. Elliott, also adjoining residence and two barns, corner of Rivard and Lamed Streets. July 13, old building, formerly a Catholic Church, on the Church Farm in Hamtramck. July I8, Michigan Oil Company's store, iTT Woodbridge Street. IMPORTAN August 22, two houses on Maple, between Orleans and Dequindre Streets. September 6, large barn and shed in King's stockyard, also a bull. December 23, store on corner of Macomb and St. Antoine Streets. December 26, residence of Mr. German, corner of Clinton and Chene Streets. 1862. April 2, M. C. R. R. engine house. Eight locomotives badly damaged, $20,000 worth of property destroyed. August 12, steam sawmill of H. A. & S. G. Wight. Loss, $75,000. 1863. January I, fire at Heavenrich Brothers' store, 78 Woodward Avenue. Loss, $5,000. January 7, twelve o'clock P. M., W. E. Tunis's store, near northwest corner of \Voodward Avenue and Lamed Street, upper part occupied by Pelgrim & Gray. February 3, T. J. Haywood's store, on Atwater Street, between Griswold Street and \Voodward Avenue. March 6, during the riot against the negroes in connection with the trial of Faulkner, the city was fired in some twenty places, and eighty-five buildings on Lafayette, between Brush and St. Antoine Streets, on Brush near Congress, and on Beaubien near Croghan, were burned. July I8, Congress Street MI. E. Church nearly destroyed. 1864. September 23, warehouse occupied by B. O'Grady and Black & Young, on dock at foot of First Street. September 30, large brick factory and shop of Morhous, Mitchell, & Bvram, on south side of Woodbridge, between Beaubien and St. Antoine Streets. I865. April 23, Campbell & Linn's dry goods house, on northwest corner of Woodward Avenue and Congress Street. Loss, $50,000. October I8, M. C. R. R. freight house and large quantity of freight. Loss, $1,500,000ooo. 1866. April 26, in the evening, the passenger and freight offices and depots of the D. & M., and MI. S. & L. S. Railroads, also the freight depot of the G. W. R. R., at foot of Brush Street and extending to St. Antoine Street, were burned, together with over eighty cars, the steam ferry Windsor, and an immense amount of freight. Loss, over $I,000,000. Eighteen lives were lost at this fire, and in this respect it was the most disastrous the city ever experienced. May 6, three distinct fires took place, burning the hardware store of Charles Busch, on north side of Jefferson Avenue, near Bates, a carpenter shop at 112 Randolph Street, and a two-story house on Clinton Street. IT FIRES. 497 October 9, Frost's woodenware works, on Wight. at foot of Leib Street. Loss, $20,000. November 24, the paint shop of M. C. R. R. Loss, $80,000. 1867. June 3, \Vorcester, Standish, & Co.'s paint factory and eight dwellings. Loss, several thousand dollars. June 28, the box factory of Dewey & Brady, and last factory of Mumrford, Foster, & Co., on Atwater Street, at foot of Riopelle Street. i868. January 2, old wooden building, on northeast corner of Atwater and St. Antoine Streets, occupied as City Mission Lodging House. April 4, part of the old Merchants' Exchange " Hotel. It was occupied by the Detroit Stove Works and H. P. Baldwin & Co. December 7, Hubbard & King's planing mill. Loss, $20,000. 1869. January 23, old Athenaeum, formerly Congress Street WI. E. Church. June 29, Fulton Iron \Works, corner of Franklin and Brush Streets. Two firemen badly injured. Loss, about $50,000; insurance, $20,000. July i, the picture frame factory of Date & Berry, on southwest corner of Randolph and Atwater Streets. Loss, $60,000. 1870. January 9, a two-story frame building, used as grocery and dwelling, on Wight Street, between \Valker Street and Joseph Campau Avenue. Five persons burned to death. 1871. February I I, Trowbridge Block, at foot of Bates Street, on west side, partially burned. Loss, $60,000. March I, Peninsular Dressed Lumber Company's Works, on southeast corner of Atwater and Riopelle Streets. Loss, $50,000. May I 1, IPullman Car shops, on northeast corner of Croghan and I)equindre Streets; three cars and one of the shops burned. Loss, $50,000. June 11, F. Stearns' drug store, on west side of Woodward Avenue near Lamed Street. Loss, $16,588. July 31, Excelsior Club Boathouse and boats, on south side of Atwater, between Chene Street and Joseph Campau Avenue; also four ice-houses belonging to Seitz Brothers. December 4, the tobacco factory of M. Rosenfield & Co., 19 Jefferson Avenue, on north side, between First and Second Streets. Loss, $20,000. December 30, F. Stearns' drug store, on west side of Woodward Avenue, burned,-second time this year; four lives lost. Loss, $64,ooo. 1872. July I4, brick store at 522 Gratiot Street. Loss, $ o10,000. July 29, four stores, numbers 948 to 954, on Michigan Avenue. Loss, $9,500. August 5, match factory, on corner of Grand 498 IMPORTANT FIRES. River Avenue and Thirteen-and - a-half Streets. Loss, $20,000. September io, the gymnasium building, on the southwest corner of Congress and Randolph Streets; also a picture-frame store on Jefferson Avenue. Loss, $30,000. October 7, brick store, I45 Woodward Avenue. Loss, $43,000. November 15, brick carpenter shop and woodworking room of M. C. R. R. Loss, $oo00,ooo. December 5, fire at Pullman Car Works. Loss, $18,000. I873. February 9, foundry on corner of Atwater and Dequindre Streets. Loss, $11,500. April 13, Tribune printing building, on north side of Larned, between Griswold and Shelby Streets; also property belonging to the Michigan Farmer and Commercial Advertiser offices. Loss, $I 12,000; insurance, $55,o0o. May 15, Schulenburg's billiard factory, on Randolph Street, partly burned. Loss, $1 5,000. June 7, Propeller Meteor and Buckley's warehouse, at foot of First Street. Loss, $87,000. June 30, destructive fire in K. C. Barker & Co.'s tobacco factory, south side of Jefferson Avenue, near Cass Street. September 2, Republic Brewery, on Elmwood Avenue. Loss, $14,000. October I I, Weber's planing mill and lumber yard, a brewery, nine dwellings, and other buildings in the block bounded by Hastings, Rivard, Maple, and Sherman Streets. Loss, $35,000. November 27, distillery on corner of Lamed and First Streets. Loss, $12,000. December 20, Hinnlan's oil store, 54 Jefferson Avenue. Loss, $I2,000. December 30, Farrington, Campbell, & Co.'s spice mills. Loss, $25,000. I874. February I8, tobacco works, 152 Randolph Street. Loss, $20,000. March 5, Kieler's Hall, 339 Lafayette Street East. April 14, burial-case factory, on southeast corner of Congress and Third Streets. Loss, $75,000. I875. April 29, at night, Weber's furniture factory, on corner of John R., between High and Montcalm Streets; also fifteen dwellings. Loss, $250,000. June 14, Adams' saw mill. Loss, $8,ooo0. June 30, bridge and iron works, on Foundry Street, near Michigan Avenue, partially burned. Loss, $30,ooo. 1876. March 25, Fort Street Presbyterian Church, on corner of Third and Fort Streets, a large and elegant stone building, was almost entirely destroyed. The fire was probably caused by a defective chimney. Loss, about $0oo,ooo. June 13, market shed on Michigan Grand Ave nue. The heat was so intense that the plate-glass windows in the Russell House, McKinstry and Williams Blocks, were largely destroyed. December 30, Wight's saw mill. Loss, $30,000. I877. May 7, Phillips's show-case factory and D. M. Ferry & Co.'s box factory, on northwest corner of East Fort and Beaubien Streets. Loss, $23,000. May 29, seven small houses and three barns on corner of Hastings and Mari)n Streets. Loss, $8,ooo. June 5, Charles Tegler's planing mill and other buildings on north side of High near Beaubien Street. Loss, $1 5,000. June io, steamer R. N. Rice, of the Cleveland line, burned at foot of Wayne Street. Loss, $40,000oo. July 5, house, barn, and sheds, 46 Lewis Street. Loss, $2,600. July 22, Theatre Comique, on Jefferson Avenue opposite the Biddle House. Loss, $12,000. September 17, the cracker factory of Vail & Crane, on southeast corner of Woodbridge and Randolph Streets. Loss, $9,700. September 20, several factories at 34 Atwater Street, occupied by C. B. Seitz, W. H. Scott, and W. O'Callaghan. Loss, $7,000. November 9, frame store and dwelling, I I Joseph Campau Avenue. Loss, $2,200. December 14, M. M. Gisler's house, 1062 Woodward Avenue. Loss, $4,000. 1878. January 13, Amos Chaffee's brick store, occupied by Barnes Brothers and Hazard & Brewster, on Jefferson Avenue. Loss, $32,000. March 26, tower of engine-house on Alexandrine Avenue struck by lightning and destroyed. April 29, Free Press Building burned. Loss, $44,000. May 22, coal-shed and coal of Gas Company, and Bigley's packing and ice houses, at foot of Twentysecond Street. Loss, $12,000. May 23, Berry Brothers' varnish factory. Loss, $45,000ooo. August 11, several one-story stores, dwellings, and sheds, at 485 Grand River Avenue. Loss, $6,500. October 24, Doane's flour mill, corner of Lamed and Second Streets. Loss, $12,000. I879. May II, Post and Tribune Company's printing office. Loss, $30,000. May 28, Holy Trinity Anglo-Catholic Church and rectory partly burned. Loss, $2,000. August 13, propeller Steinhoff and a warehouse at foot of Griswold Street. Loss, $I9,oo0. Two persons burned to death. November 23, brick house, I69 Fort Street West. Loss, $5,500. Also, Kaiser's brick tannery, 219 Riopelle Street. Loss, $4,000. i880. May 3, M. Maier's.trunk factory, 55 Monroe Avenue. Loss, $6,000. IMPORTANT FIRES. 499 ------ July 27, brick store and dwelling, 316 Rivard Street. Loss, $4,200. October 13, old warehouse, corner of Second and Front Streets. Loss, $4,700. November 4, H. McCain's dwelling, 379 Clinton Street. Loss, $2,000. 1881. January 2, M. J. Reardon's store and dwelling, 445 Trumbull Avenue. Loss, $1,250. January 12, boiler explosion and fire at Union Steam Mills, corner of Ninth and Woodbridge Streets. Loss, $25,000. January 22, comb factory, 203 Mullett Street, owned by William Roth. Loss, $4,303. February 6, a two-story dwelling, 474 Congress Street East, occupied by H. Hunter. Loss, $1,000. February 27, store of Amos Chaffee, I41 Jefferson Avenue, occupied by Barnes Brothers. March 18, two dwellings, 280 Congress Street East. Loss, $I,ooo. March 31, G. M. Traver's store, III Woodward Avenue. Loss, $8,ooo. April 20, store and dwelling, 646 Twelfth Street. Loss, $1,500. April 30, Frost's woodenware works, Wight near Adair Street. Loss, $41,000. May 4, barns and dwelling, 268 to 272 Alfred Street. Loss, $1,500. May 6, Detroit Lithographic Office, 54 Bates Street. Loss, $6,000. May I6, frame store and dwelling, 356 Chestnut Street. Loss, $1,200. July 20, J. E. Davis & Co.'s store, corner of Jefferson Avenue and Wayne Street. Loss, $45,500. August 23, frame buildings, 70 to 74 Catherine Street. Loss, $6,500. September 3, Delray Glass Works burned. October 27, L. Laurense's moulding factory, on Atwater Street near Bates. Loss, $2,000. December 5, Sowden's Mills, on Gratiot near Dequindre Street. Loss, $1,325. December I2, store 271 Michigan Avenue. Loss, $I,Ioo. December 29, J. E. Davis & Co.'s drug store, on Woodbridge Street near Bates. Loss, $3,000. 1882. January 20, C. Schulte's soap factory, Woodbridge Street West. Loss, $1,768. January 22, Horace Turner's upholstering stores, foot of Woodward Avenue. Loss, $17,550. March 7, Barnum's wire works, I2 and 14 Atwater Street East. Loss, $5,549. March 23, T. Hawley's building, 280 Atwater Street East. Loss, $6,500. May I, Martz Brothers' brewery, 487 Orleans Street. Loss, $4,500. June 19, Shefferly's planing mill, 193 Croghan Street. Ioss, $16,300. July 22, McGregor's machine shop, corner of St. Antoine and Atwater Streets. Loss, $3,500. August 5, J. Hartness's soap factory, I I9 Father Street. Loss, $2,500. September rI, Seitz's icehouses, foot of McDougall Avenue. Loss, $2,500. September 20, Detroit Dry Dock Co.'s sawmill, foot of Orleans Street. Loss, $18,000. October 24, Backus & Sons' planing mill, corner of Fort and Eleventh Streets. Loss, $150,000. November I4, William Saurs's cooper shop, Berlin Street. Loss, $I0,000. November I8, Backus & Sons' lumber yard, corner of Fort and Eleventh Street. Loss, $4,682. December 30, carriage factory, Randolph Street. Loss, $5,776. 1883. January I, candy store at No. 8 Grand River Avenue. Loss, $3,296. January 8, Telegraph Block, southeast corner of Congress and Griswold Streets, badly damaged. Loss, $19,4I4. January 22, factory on the corner of Randolph and Atwater Streets. Loss, $3,058. February 28, Miller's soap works at 606 Woodbridge Street West. Loss, $7,I00. March 30, Gisler's carriage shop, on Larned Street West. Loss, $6,000. April 4, lumber yard of Mr. Japes, at 643 Gratiot Avenue, burned. Loss, $5,500. April 13, furniture stores at 47, 49, and 51 Jefferson Avenue.- Loss, $30,410. May io, John Marr's cooper shops at corner of Bagg and Twelfth Streets. Loss, $5,000o. May 21, explosion of boiler and fire at Wolverine paper mills. Loss, $14,650. August 2, Henkel & Voorhees's flour mill at southwest corner of Randolph and Woodbridge Streets. Loss, $31,450. August o0, Saurs's cooper shops at corner of Arndt and Berlin Streets. Loss, $18,376. November 21, Detroit Dry Dock engine works badly damaged. Loss, $5,747. Since the organization of the Fire Commission, great care has been taken to keep a record of fires, with the following result: Year. 1867 1868 1869 1870 I87I 1872 I873 1874 1875 Number of Fires and Alarms. 212 137 152 I90 191 128 154 240 322 Total Loss. $I85,473 99,828 240,490 172,960 239,006 192,935 390,315 I95,249 250,909 Number Year. of res Total Lo. and Alarms. I876 232 202,433 I877 340 238,832 1878 234 177,933 1879 261 89,687 I880 191 77,619 1881 230 150,011 1884 338 306,302 1885 327 273,85( i886 332 1,117,997 500oo FIRE MARSHAL.-FIRE LIMITS. CHIMNEY SWEEPS. FIRE MARSHAL. This office was first established by ordinance, approved April 3, I860. The ordinance greatly curtailed the powers of the chief engineer, and gave the marshal power to enforce ordinances as to fires, to cause chimneys to be cleaned, to examine premises as to their safety against fire, and to oversee the fire wardens. The salary of the marshal was fixed at $600, and that of the chief engineer reduced from $500 to $200. The proposed action greatly displeased some of the firemen, and on April 2, I860, they held a large meeting at Firemen's Hall to protest against it. Their protest, however, was of no avail, and the ordinance was approved the next day. The office of fire marshal was abolished on March 26, I867, by the Act creating the Fire Commission. The following persons have served as fire marshals: I86I, H. A. Snow; 1862, James Battle; I863-1866, William Champ; I866, J. H. Van Schoick, By Act of May 23, 1877, the office was revived, but with such additional power and increased duties as to make it virtually a new office. The Act provided that a fire marshal, and, if need be, an assistant fire marshal, should be nominated by the fire commissioners, and appointed by the council. It is the duty of the marshal to be present at all fires, to inquire into their origin, recommend precautionary measures, and to prevent the transportation and storing of dangerous materials; and all persons erecting or altering buildings are required to get a permit from him. The charge for a permit within the fire limits is, for repairs costing less than $I,ooo, one dollar; for repairs costing over $i,ooo and less than $5,ooo, two dollars; and for every additional $i,ooo, twenty cents. The marshal has power to stop repairs or alterations in a building, in case they increase the fire risk. George Dunlap was the first marshal under the law, serving till April I, I880, when he was succeeded by W. H. Baxter. FIRE LIMITS. Fire limits were first prescribed by ordinance passed October 7, 1845, the limits including all the territory between Randolph and Cass Streets to Lamed, along Lamed to Griswold, up Griswold to Michigan Avenue, on Michigan Avenue to Bates Street, on Bates to Larned, along Lamed to Randolph, and down Randolph to the river. Within these limits no building was to be erected over twenty feet in height, unless built partly of stone or brick, with fire walls ten inches above the roof. After the great fire of May 9, 1848, a new ordinance was passed, which prescribed that wooden buildings of more than twelve feet in height, twenty feet in length, and sixteen feet in width, should not be erected within the limits defined by the following streets: Beaubien from the river to Congress, along Congress to Randolph, along Randolph to Monroe, down Monroe and Campus Martius to Michigan Avenue, on Michigan Avenue to Shelby, down Shelby to Fort, on Fort to the west line of the city, which, at that time, extended only to the Forsyth Farm. Since I848 the limits have been gradually extended, and they are frequently changed. CHIMNEY SWEEPS. The oversight and cleaning of chimneys received the attention of the trustees in 1802. Fines were then inflicted for dirty or defective chimneys, and, in some instances, dangerous chimneys were ordered to be torn down. A curious illustration of the changes that take place in public opinion and in law is afforded by the fact that, by ordinance of 1836, the fire-wardens were authorized to "cause chimneys to be burned out," while later and present ordinances provide that if any chimney burns out, the owner shall be fined for not preventing it. By ordinance of November I8, 1845, and up to 1859, the fire-wardens were to nominate, and the council to appoint a chimney sweep; the firewardens, however, held no regular meetings, and oftentimes no sweeps were appointed. By ordinance of November 15, 1869, the office was dignified and disguised under the title of inspector of chimneys. Two or more sweeps are appointed yearly by the council. The present ordinance allows the chimney sweep to charge twenty-five cents for each story that the chimney passes through, and when the chimney has more than one flue, ten cents per story for each additional flue. CHAPTER LV. THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT.-THE STEAM FIRE DEPARTMENT.THE FIRE DEPARTMENT SOCIETY. THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT. THE earliest fire extinguishers consisted of long poles with swabs attached, and with these the first /abi/anzs of Detroit literally mopped out the fires. When the sparks flew so thickly as to be dangerous, packs of furs were opened, and deer and bear skins, with the fur downwards, were spread upon the roofs; if they were green they would not be injured, and in any case a little water (lid not hurt them, and they often did as good service in protecting their owner's property from fire as they had originally done in protecting their four-footed wearers from the cold. The first mention of a fire engine occurs in connection with the proceedings of the Court of Quarter Sessions. It reads as follows: 'Tuesday, March 13, I798. The Court received the account of Thomas Cox respecting the engine, by which it appears there is a balance remaining in his hands of $i6.47VY. How this money came into his hands does not appear; possibly it had been collected to pay for repairing the engine left by the English when the post was surrendered. At the second meeting of the trustees of the town, on February 23, 1802, an ordinance entitled " Regulations for securing the town of Detroit from injuries from fires" was drafted. It was the first that they acted upon, and was adopted two days later. It required all chimneys to be swept every two weeks between October and April, and every four weeks the rest of the year, the sweeping to be done on Saturdays before 9 A. M., under a penalty of $5.00, and a further penalty of $io.oo if a chimney took lire. Each householder and shopkeeper was also required to have two bags holding three bushels each, to place goods in, in case of fire, and to keep at his shop, where it would not freeze, a keg or light barrel filled with xWater, having ears on each side, with a lever or pole to pass through them so that two men could carry it. Two buckets, holding about three gallons each, one ladder to each chimney fastened on the roof, and one other long enough to reach up to it, were also to be provided. The householders and shopkeepers w\ere required to take or send the kegs or buckets to every fire under a penalty of $5.oo for each neglect, and every householder capable of assisting was directed to turn out on the first cry of fire; a line was then to be formed from the river to the fire for the purpose of passing water, and any person refusing to appear, or concealing himself, was fined $2.00 or imprisoned for two weeks. James May, Jacques Girardiri, and Auguste Laffrey, together with twelve United States soldiers, were required to assemble at the engine house, and take the engine out on the first notice of fire, under penalty of $5.oo for any neglect or refusal; and Francis Frerot, director, Presque Cote, Sen., Theophilus Mettez, Baptiste Peltier, Charles Poupard, and Presque Cot6, Jr., were required to appear at the same time, each armed with a good felling axe, to be used as circumstances might require. Any one of the above not appearing when alarm was given was to be fined $5.oo. It appears that the trustees were not observant of their own regulations, for on March 24, I803, they fined three of their o\wn number, and also their secretary and assessor, for violation of the fire ordinance, and the next day another trustee, Joseph Campau, was also reported to be fined. On May 2, 1803, Joseph Harrison and Joseph Campau were appointed inspectors of ladders, buckets, fire bags, water barrels, etc. There was continual trouble in enforcing the fire ordinance, the inspectors reporting some persons without buckets, others without ladders; the barrel of water frozen in some places, and the barrel empty in others, the shop bags filled with goods instead of being ready for use, the ears off the barrels and the poles missing. In a word, then as now, ordinances were not obeyed. On one of their rounds a quick-witted widow saw the inspectors coming, and knowing that her barrel was empty and that her excuses for previous neglect would not avail, she jumped into the water-cask herself, saying, "You see, gentlemen, the cask is full." Of course there was a hearty laugh, and the gallant inspectors could do no less than to obtain water and fill the widow's cask themselves. The old records make it evident that the trustees L uJl] 502 THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT. were morbidly apprehensive of fire; regulations were made and inspectors of chimneys appointed at almost every meeting. On September I9, I803, a committee was appointed to ascertain whether the engine was in order for immediate use; on September 26 thirteen persons were appointed to work the engine, under direction of " Dr. Win. M. Scott, Esq.," and on Monday, March 4, I804, James Dodemead was appointed in his stead. On May 11 Charles Curry and J. Bte. Piquette were appointed inspectors of fire regulations. On MIonday, October I, the trustees ordered "the screws of the engine to be put in good order." May I I, 1805, they resolved that "the Board do determine that from and after the first Monday in June next, the Inspectors of fire regulations do go around once every week during the time of their appointment." On Monday, June 3, Dr. McCoskry and Robert Munroe were appointed inspectors of fire regulations " within the pickets," and John Gentle and John Harvey "for the suburbs," with orders to go around once a week. Before the time for their second tour there were neither houses nor chimneys to inspect, for the fire of June i had destroyed the town. (See history of fire.) After the fire of I805, no traces of fire regulations or apparatus appear until April I, 1811. George McDougall then applied to the Governor and Judges for a donation lot in the city of Detroit, near the center thereof, whereon to erect a frame building for the fire engine. There is a tradition that during the War of I812 Commodore Perry's flag-ship was provided with a fire-pump, which, after the war, became the property of I)etroit. On December 4, I8I5, an ordinance provided for the appointment, by the trustees, of six householders, who were to be furnished with three "battering rams," to demolish buildings in case of fire; and another, of January, I816, appointed twelve householders as "axemen," six as "battering men," and twenty-four as "fire-hook men." On February 5, I817, the ordinance was revised, but no important changes were made. The next year, on September 23, the Board of Trustees organized a fire company of eleven axemen, with B. Woodworth as captain; fourteen fire-engine men, with D. C. McKinstry as captain; and fourteen bagmen, with H. J. Hunt as captain. There was evidently much trouble this year occasioned by evil or mischievously disposed persons stealing or hiding some of the apparatus. On September 30 the secretary of the trustees was directed to "procure information as to where the Fire hooks and Battering rams are," and on November 14 John R. Williams was authorized to provide eight battering rams and two fire hooks. The Gazette of December i6, i8i8, contained the fol- lowing: NOTICE. Any person who will give such information as will lead to the recovery of the fire hooks and battering rams belonging to the city, which have for some time been lost or concealed, will be duly rewarded. THOS. ROWLAND, Secretary. The notice was evidently of no avail; new firehooks had to be obtained, and at a meeting of the trustees, January 28, I819, Harvey Williams presented an account of $55 for making them. On March 13, 1819, a meeting of the citizens was held at the call of the trustees " to consider the propriety of raising a tax to buy a fire engine." The tax was voted down, because a scheme was in progress to procure one by means of a lottery to come off April I. A communication in the Gazette of March 26 made the following plea for the plan: " Let every citizen buy a lottery ticket as soon as possible in order to procure the means to lessen the danger from fire." Ten per cent was to be deducted from the eighty-four prizes for the purpose of purchasing the engine. The value of the property put up was $4,040, and it was to be disposed of by selling 808 tickets at $5.00 each. The lottery did not draw, and meantime the old engine was repaired and the following notice appeared: FIRE! FIRE! The members of the Eagle Engine Company are hereby informed that the engine is now fit for use, and that agreeably to the by-laws of the Company, they must assemble every Monday morning at sunrise for the space of six months. N. B.-There not being a suitable building erected in which to keep the engine, it is in the care of Captain H. Sanderson, at whose house the Company will meet until further directions. By order of the Acting Captain. J. W. COLBORN, Clerk. JIarch- 31, I8i9. On April 28, I819, a bill for repairing the engine, amounting to $87.10, was presented by H. Sanderson; it was paid May I I, and on the same day John W. Tompkins was paid $130 for building a house for the engine and for fire-hooks. In January, 1820, J. D. Doty was secretary of the fire company and Robert Irwin director. On September 11 following, another meeting was held to consider the voting of a tax to purchase an engine, but the people again voted against taxation. The condition of affairs at this time is set forth in the following from an editorial in the Gazette for January 19, 1821. The Corporation, it is true, is in possession of a small engine, but it is much too small and is believed to be out of repair and unfit for use. The fire company met once a week at sunrise for several weeks for drill, but at this date the organization is extinctThe article further argued that buckets were preferable to " tubs with ears " to be carried on a pole, and complained of the unwillingness of the citizens THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT. 503 to "shoulder their tubs when alarmed by cry of fire." On March 29, 1821, the chairman of the Board of Trustees and H. J. Hunt were appointed a committee to wait on the Governor and Judges, and solicit an appropriation towards procuring an engine. It is to be presumed that the committee were unsuccessful, for on April 9 a citizens' meeting voted $400 to procure one, the amount to be collected by a tax on real and personal property. Meantime the editorial in the Gazette bore some fruit, for on May 16 the board of trustees repealed that part of the ordinance which required a wooden vessel with loops and pole to be kept by citizens. Notwithstanding the vote in favor of purchasing a fire engine, the trustees were slow in procuring it; but finally, on December 24, they resolved " to carry into immediate effect the vote of April 9 last, and to raise $600 instead of $400 to purchase a fire engine." This resolution, like many others, was never carried out. On October I6, 1824, a committee of the newly created Common Council was appointed "to ascertain where a suitable site for the Engine house could be obtained, and to make an estimate of the expense of removing said building," and application was made to the trustees of the university for the privilege of " placing the engine house in front of the academy." On March 2, 1825, the council appointed a "committee to procure information from New York, Philadelphia, and such other places as they may think proper, relative to the price and quality of a Fire Engine for the City," and on March I5 the committee "was authorized to remit the funds in the Treasury, applicable to the purchase of a Fire Engine, directly to such maker of engines as they might think proper, accompanied with an order for the immediate forwarding of a Fire Engine; provided the price thereof did not exceed six hundred dollars." On April 7 a committee was appointed to apply to the Legislative Council for such exemptions and other provisions as would facilitate the establishment of a Fire Company; and on June 4 a committee of the Council was appointed " to superintend. the removal, repairs and painting of Engine I —ouse." The building was moved "in front " of the old academv,-on the site now occupied by the store of Farrand, Williams, & Co. On June 4, 1825, an elaborate fire ordinance, modelled after the New York ordinance, was passed; among its various provisions was one making it the duty of every watchman or patrolman, upon the breaking out of fire, to alarm the citizens by crying "Fire!" mentioning the street where it was, that the firemen and citizens might know where to go, and householders were enjoined to "place a lighted candle at the windows of their respective dwellings, in order that citizens might pass along the streets with greater safety." Tnis custom was kept up until the telegraph alarm went into operation, and many a time the nights were filled with terror by the hoarse shouting of "Fire!" the hurrying crowds of men and boys, and the rattling of the engines as they were pulled over the uneven walks and pavements. On September 28, 1825, the council gave notice that a Fire Company would be organized the succeeding day, and it was resolved "that it be the duty of the Chief Engineer to raise a hook and ladder company, to consist of not less than eighteen men." On October 4 inquiry was made in the Detroit Gazette as to the whereabouts of the fire engine, for which the citizens had paid four or five years previously. The engine finally arrived, and the Common Council records for December I, 1825, say that "an account was audited and allowed of $54 for transportation and storage of a Fire Engine from New York." On January It, 1826, the council tendered the thanks of the corporation to W. & J. James, of New York, for gratuitous commission services, in procuring a fire engine on September 21, 1825. As the balance due William &k John James, in payment for the engine, was not remitted until June 13, a resolution of thanks was certainly their due. The engine, the first one really purchased by the corporation, was named "Protection No. I." It remained in use for upwards of thirty years, and OLD NO. I, "THE GOOSENECK." served as the organizing machine for Engine Companies Nos. 3, 4, 5, 8, and 9. For many years after it was laid aside it occupied the post of honor on review days, and in Fourth of July processions was drawn about on a platform. Concerning the man 504 THE OLD FIRE agement of this engine at a fire, on February 17, 1827, the Detroit Gazette says: Those citizens who had the management of our little engine deserve praise for their activity and perseverance, yet it was a general remark that not sufficient alacrity was displayed by them in getting their engine to the scene of action. The disaster will doubtless lead to the permanent organization of a fire company, and to the adoption of such regulations, by our citizens generally, as will, at a future time, prevent a recurrence of the confusion which then existed. A few days after, on February 22, the records of the council show the appointment of a "committee to ascertain the practicability of repairing the old Fire Engine belonging to this city, and to contract for said repairs at any sum not exceeding $25." At the same meeting it was resolved that "E. P. Hastings, Marshall Chapin, R. A. Forsyth, Henry S. Cole, and Edmund A. Brush be requested to associate to themselves such persons as they may think proper for the purpose of taking care of said Engine;" also that " Aldermen Palmer and Chapin be a committee to ascertain the number and condition of the fire hooks belonging to this city; and, if necessary, to procure so many as that the whole number shall amount to six; and, also, to report on the practicability of converting the Flag staff at the cantonment into ladders for the use of the city." On March 12 a council committee on improvements reported in favor of purchasing a new engine, repairing the old one, procuring twelve good fire hooks, well provided with handles, the organization of suitable fire companies, and-the procuring of a "triangular bell for fire alarms only." On March 31 Fire Company No. 2, with thirtyone members, was organized, and required by the council to have the old engine repaired at a cost of not exceeding $127, and to use the same for a time. On May 14 they were authorized to increase their number to thirty-six; on September 9 the old fire engine was again ordered to be repaired at a cost of not exceeding $275, and on November 26 a bill for repairs was audited at $313.63. Great encouragement was afforded to firemen by an Act of the Legislative Council of April 4, 1827, which exempted them from military service in time of peace and from serving on a jury. By Act of July 31, 1830, the number exempted was limited to forty. By Act of March 14. I840, aH firemen were exempted from military and jury duty. On January 21, I830, the council contracted for four additional fire ladders. On April 28 they decided to organize a Hook and Ladder Company, and the chief engineer was directed to procure more fire hooks, also six ladders, and caps and wands for use of himself and wardens. The following day the first firemen's inspection and review was held. It took place on the Public Wharf at 4 p. M., and DEPARTMENT. was participated in by Companies Nos. I and 2, and the newly organized Hook and Ladder Company. The organization of the last company was fully perfected two days afterward. In January, 1831, a new engine was procured for Eagle Company No. 2, and on April I3 following the council borrowed $800 of the Bank of Michigan to pay for it. On September 14, 1831, the chief engineer was directed "to procure a tub or cask mounted on wheels, to be attached to one of the engines for use in case of fire." On May 3, I832, the council supplemented that primitive arrangement by ordering "six reservoirs, to contain io,ooo gallons each, to be built and connected with logs of five-inch calibre for use in case of fire." On September 4, I833, the council disbanded Company No. 2 for neglect of duty. The organization of a hose company was recommended by a committee of the council on July 9, I834, and on October 8 a hose company was organized, and also a new company for No. 2. On December 2, 1835. Company No. 3 was organized, placed in possession of the "old original" engine, and located near the Berthelet Market, at northwest corner of Randolph and Atwater Streets. On April I3, 1836, the company was disbanded by the council, and another company, consisting of David Smart and twenty-two others, was recognized as Company No. 3. On August 11 the council Resolved, that a committee be appointed with authority to contract for the erection of a building on the Female Seminary lot, on northeast corner of Fort and Griswold streets, for use of Engine Company No. 2. The building was duly erected, and occupied by the company until December 12, 1853; they then moved into their new building, on the north side of Lamed Street, between Woodward Avenue and Bates Street. This building was elegantly fitted up, and at the time, and for many years, was the finest in the city. The engine house for No. 3 was on the north side of Lamed, between Brush and Beaubien Streets, and in 1884 was still standing. In September, 1836, a new and elaborate fire ordinance was passed by the council. It provided that at the time of a fire the mayor, recorder, and aldermen should severally carry "a white wand with a gilded flame at the top, and each of the engineers shall wear a leathern cap, painted white, with a gilded front thereto, and a fire engine blazoned thereon; and shall, also, carry a speaking trumpet, painted black, with the words 'Chief Engineer, Engine No. i,' etc., as the case may be, in white letters." Each of the fire wardens was to wear a similar cap, painted white, with the city arms emblazoned on the front, and to carry a speak THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT. 505 ing trumpet, painted white, with the words "Chief Fire Warden," and "Fire Warden No. i," etc., in black letters. The cap of each foreman was to have the word " Foreman " painted on the front, together with the number of the company to which he belonged, and each member was to have the number of his company painted upon the front of his cap. The same ordinance required each building in the city to have one fire bucket for every fireplace or stove, to hold two and a half gallons each, marked with owner's name, number of his house, and name of street; the buckets were to be "suspended in some conspicuous place in the entry near the front door of each house, so as to be ready for delivery and use in extinguishing fires." One half of the number of bAckets required might be deposited with the city, and if lost two dollars was paid the owner for them. After a fire all buckets that were unclaimed were left at the market house, to be called for by their owners. / previous. The office existed in name up to I867, but on the creation of the Fire Commission it was discontinued. In 1836 the council provided for paying five dollars to the person first giving an alarm and ringing the bell. At this time the bells were tolled instead of rung. In I84I, a change from tolling to ringing was made, and those who had charge of the bell rung it so effectively that the whole city was startled by the quick and rattling character of the alarm. In 1847 the council divided the city into districts, and a watch was kept in the steeple of the Presbyterian Church, on the corner of Woodward Avenue and Lamed Street. The locality of a fire was indicated, then as now, by taps upon a bell. A night watchman was subsequently stationed in the cupola of the National Hotel, now the Russell House, and afterwards in the steeples of the State Street and Jefferson Avenue Presbyterian Churches. In March, 1857, a steel triangle was ordered, upon which alarms were to be given. It was hung in the cupola of the old City Hall, and for years periodic efforts were made to so place it that it would give a satisfactory alarm, but all efforts were fruitless. In 1858 the city was divided into two districts, the first, second, fifth, eighth, and ninth wards composing the First District, and Companies 2, 4, 5, 8, Io, and 12, and the Hook and Ladder Company were to do duty therein. The Second District comprised the third, fourth, sixth, seventh, and tenth wards, and Companies I, 3, 6, 7, 9, and I, and the Hook and Ladder Company were to attend all fires in the district. In I866 the entire city was divided into five fire districts, and two companies were designated to attend all fires and alarms originating in each district. A general alarm was first sounded by ringing all the bells, and then the number of the ward was given. Tt irning again to the history of the companies we tind that on October 4, I836, the mayor notified the council that he had contracted with Mr. Smith of New York for a new fire engine of the most approved kind, to be delivered in New York, October 15. On January 23, 1837, the Committee on Fire Department was "requested to ascertain the most eligible site which can be obtained for the erection of a permanent building for the use of Engine Company No. i, the Hook and I.adder Company and a Hose Company, and the terms upon which such site can be had, and whether by purchase or by lease." On February 3 it was resolved " that the fire engine lately arrived be delivered to Engine Company No. 3, provided the number of members of that company shall be increased to not less than twenty-five by the 18th inst." It was also resolved! that the sum of fif'v AN OIL) Fi;INE BU'CKET. By the same ordinance the council, in the month of May of each year, was to appoint one or more fire wardens in each ward, who were clothed with power to enter any house and examine all chimneys and fireplaces. They were also authorized, at the time of a fire, to "direct the inhabitants to form themselves in ranks for the purpose of handing buckets and supplying water." Soon after the passage of this ordinance the number of wardens was increased to five in each ward. In 1845 there were three for the first ward, and two each for the other wards; the following year there were four in the first, and three in each of the other wards. The number of wardens was subsequently increased to a chief and four assistants, and finally seven wardens were assigned to each ward; the office by this time became a sinecure, and in June, 1857, it was publicly affirmed that, with a single exception, not a warden had been present at a fire for two years 33 506 THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT. dollars be appropriated, and expended under the direction of the Chief Engineer, for painting the engine formerly belonging to Company No. I, and lately in possession of Company No. 3, and that said engine be hereafter designated and considered as engine No. 4," also that "the Chief Engineer be requested to use his efforts to embody a company to be attached to Engine No. 4." The effort to organize this company was not immediately successful. A house was built for them in the rear of Washington Market in the summer of 1840, but the company was not officially organized until May 18, 1841. The names of the officers of the companies in January, 1837, were: Company No. I: C. Hurlbut, foreman; John Owen, assistant foreman; A. Ewers, treasurer; R. E. Roberts, secretary; James W. Sutton, steward. Company No. 2: Thomas J. Reese, foreman; G. H. Jones, first assistant foreman; Charles C. Trowbridge, second assistant foreman; H. J. Caniff, secretary and treasurer; \V. H. Wells, engineer. Company No. 3: Francis E. Eldred, foreman. In January and April of this year very disastrous fires occurred; the supply of hose was insufficient, and the firemen declared that they were unable, on that account, to do good service. There can be no question of the heroism that some of them displayed. The members of Company No. I suffered severely, and many had their coats entirely destroyed by the flames. At the burning of the Great Western, in 1839, the gallant boys of No. 4 stationed themselves within fifteen feet of the fierce flames, and remained until they were extinguished. The heat was so intense that it was necessary to throw the water over them as they stood at the brakes. On June 6, 1837, Hurlbut Hose Company No. I was formed, and in February, 1844, LeRoy Hose Company No. 2. In I838 the firemen had so increased in number that plans for mutual improvement began to be suggested, and on August 21 they opened a reading room and library. In January, 1839, the council obtained the use of the lot on the northwest corner of Lamed and Bates Streets, and the same year the first Firemen's Hall was erected, at a cost of $3,300. It was paid for by the city, aided by the firemen. It was of brick, thirty by fifty feet, and was first occupied in I)ecember, 1839. The lower story was used by Protection Company No. i, Hurlbut Hose Company No. I,and the Hook, Ladder, and Axe Company. The upper room was used for some time by the common council, and in 1852 for a public school; it afterwards became the office of the Water Works. The entire building was finally occupied for business purposes. It was torn down in 1872, to make room for the store of Farrand, Williams, & Co. During 1842 one thousand feet of hose was contracted for, and for nearly six months the question of how to obtain $860 in good money, to pay for it, was before the council. So difficult was it for the city to support the department that a proposition to turn over the engines and apparatus to the Fire Department Society was seriously discussed. The records of the council for June 15, I842, contain the following: Resolved, that a committee, with the Mayor as chairman, be appointed to receive proposals from, and to confer with the Fire Department of the city, relative to the sale to them of the fire engines, hose, hose carts, and other apparatus now in use by the Fire Department. And that said committee be authorized to make such sale and conveyances for such consideration as they deem most advisable for the city.....................j f — j __ -- 5 --- —-— C ---; — Z — C _ — C -- L ~ — _j — -------- ----— I---— i -- ''' = ---c-e i;" _ ---I;i- 1 ----------- --- -— ;:~ --- c. --— ~- r- ~~~--------... ~- ~ --- —— ~-' ~:~-`:;~~' i:: ~ —~- "".....~-~ ~ '""""..~.~~.~~~..~,~r:~~::.iS5:l -r:__-..-;rs.:;::::...-..... —.....~-~~~::I:~ ~"' ""~iltr:::.-:::::~.-ri. ''';~':r-~~:"' '' SII:::::;.,r OLD FIREMEN'S HALL. On June 27, I843, the'council further Resolved, that the Recorder be authorized, in consideration of the valuable services rendered the city by the firemen thereof, to sell and convey, for and on behalf of the Mayor, Recorder, Aldermen, and Firemen of the city of Detroit, all the fire engines, hose, hose carts, hooks and ladders, trucks and the appurtenances of the various fire companies, and now owned by the said city, to the Fire Department of the city of Detroit, provided that said matters and things continue to be used for the purposes for which they were obtained. As the Fire Department Society did not dare to assume the risk which the purchase would involve, this piece of financiering failed. The hard times finally passed away, and there was no occasion for further considering the proposition. The credit and ability of the city was, however, so uncertain that, lest the property should be attached, a law of Feb THE OLD FI~RE DEPART MENT.ENT 507 TH.L IEDEATET 0 ruary 6, I843, and amendment of March 9, 1844, exempted it from execution. By this time the growth of the city made another company desirable, and on August 19, 1845, Phoenix Company No. 5 was organized. A new en-ine was then procured, and in 1846 an engine house was built for this company, on Clifford, at the head of Griswold Street, The following temporary officers were appointed: N. Greusel, foreman; F. Raymond, assistant foreman; W. W. Duffield, secretary. The name of the company was soon changed to "Alert," and then to l"Rough and Ready." A new engine was provided in October, and the company was officially recognized by the council on November 6, I846. A building was erected for them in 1857 on the northwest corner of Lamed and St. Antoine Streets. In January, I849, two companies, Union No. 7 and Mechanics No. 8, were organized. The house of No. 7 was on the corner of Larned and Riopelle Streets. Company No. 8 was located on Third Street, between LIafayette and Howard Streets. From the year I830, it had been customary to have an annual review of the Department. In 1849 a firemen's parade was arranged for September 26, during the session of the State Fair, and a torchlight procession for the evening. For some reason, Company No. I was disaffected, and voted not to turn out, and on November 20 it was disbanded. The other companies paraded, adding greatly to the attraction of Fair week. These parades were always occasions of great interest. The gaylydecorated engines, polished to the last degree of brightness, the festoons and wreaths of flowers with which they were ornamented, the red shirts and spotless black pantaloons of the firemen, and the firemen themselves, were the admiration of all eyes; and the "throwing" was watched with anxiety and delight by both boys and men. Members of the company which threw the largest stream, highest or furthest, were as proud as Grecian victors. A victorious engine was mounted with an immense broom, and sometimes with several, and to say "She carries the broom" was the highest praise. The steeple of the Presbyterian Church, on the corner of Woodward Avenue and Lamed Street, the steeple of the Baptist Church, on the corner of Fort and Griswold Streets, and the Cupola of the City Hall, were favorite places for testing the "highest water." Different companies often challenged each other in order to test the muscle of members and "machines." Sometimes bonfires were built, or false alarms raised, that one company might mislead or defeat another and be first at a fire. In case defeat seemed probable in a trial of skill, members of some companies did not hesitate to cut their own hose, or the hose of other companies, in order to carry out their plans or make good their claims. These were days when not only the safety of the city was in care of the firemen, but they also held the balance of political power, and neither council nor citizens dared refuse their requests. Because of the power the organizations possessed, disreputable persons sought to become firemen, and in sonec OLD NO. 5 ENGINE HOUSE, CLIFFORD STREET. About this time it became the custom for firemen to visit other cities and receive visits in return. On these occasions the Detroit Fire Department always performed its part thoroughly and well. Concerning the preparations for one of these events a paper of August 12, 1845, says: At a meeting of the committee on behalf of the Fire Department of the city of Detroit, convened at the National Hotel on the morning of the Iith inst., the following preamble and resolutions were adopted. Whereas, Ithaca Hook and Iadder Co. No. 3, having complimented us by a visit to the " City of the Straits." Resolved, that there be a torchlight procession, to form at eight o'clock this evening at King's Corner. Resolved, that we invite our guests of Ithaca to partake of a dinner on the late Camp ground on Jefferson Avenue, at two,'clock i,. hi. on Tuesday. On July 2, 1849, Company No. 2 went to Rochester, New York, on the steamboat Baltic; their engine was sent on the Mayflower. The popularity of these occasions made the office of a fireman attractive, and when the growing city 'cquired a new company its formation was not diffiC'lt. The residents of the Third and Fourth \\ards met on Monday, September 22, I845, at the Firemen's Hall, and resolved to form a company, to be called Michigan Engine Company No. 6. 508 THE OLD FIRE D)EPARTME~NT. 5O~~~3 THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT.~~~~~~~~~~~~ — companies they were admitted. The firemen's balls then became disgraceful routs, and as these balls succeeded each other in rapid succession, and as every one was expected to buy a ticket whenever asked, the tax became somewhat oppressive. The worst characters among the firemen, however, would, at the time of a fire, do deeds of daring that were the admiration and pride of the city. A fire of any moment afforded a scene of excitement that now is never paralleled. The loud cries, the hoarse shouting, the rattling thud of the breaks, and the picturesque dress of the firemen, were in marked contrast with the quiet and system of the present day. "Start her liveterous " b'hoys tugged at the - ropes, and "pulled away" for a fire. Oftentimes a rival company reached the scene before their hose-cart arrived, and to prevent another company from getting water that they wanted i themselves, a - barrel or box would be hastily thrown over the engins we fai hydrant, and it could not be had A lis as fast as the stream from the nozzle. Often, just as without a streugm (Fro a painting o gle. If noise could have drowned a fire few fires would have made any headway after the engines were fairly at work. In his energetic endeavors the foreman often mounted the "machine," and "Up with her, boys!" " Down with the brakes!" ". Be lively!" and a hundred other ejaculations flowed from his lips as fast as the stream from the nozzle. Often, just as the stream began gaining on the fire, the hose would burst and drench the bystanders, and then there was loud and fervent comment. Sometimes, owing to the scarcity of water or of hose, one machine played into another, and an engine that could not throw out water as fast as another threw it in was said to be L-5 I, ',I "washed." This was considered a deep disgrace, and when such instances occurred, firemen have been known to throw up their hats and abandon the engine. In order to avoid such difficulties, great care was taken that no one of the companies was supplied with an engine better than the others. During these years the duties of firemen were very laborious and exhaustive, and it became customary to supply them with refreshments after a fire, especially if in the night. Citizens whose property was saved often vied with each other in the hospitalities which they profilt^/-r 1f/' Lfered to the M^^^ltt'>t ^.^, Dgi s faithful firef men, and many i:/:~' t. gallons of coffee and baskets of hard boiledeggs, with other accessories, were provided. The folRobert olowing notices 7 ----..,?: tell their own Tohe undersigned takes this method of gratefully acknowledging his indebtedness to the firemen of the city for their prompt efficiency in saving his residence from destruction by / fire on Sunday mnorning; and to his neighbors for the rendered by them, in with _hot coeead sund arresting the con~p~4~T~-LL-~_. ---57~_.~ = =.,, -A flagration. ~ —~~_.~_ __. -~_._.~.__~. - -___a____....~. --- gZ. PITCHER. Airil Ist, i85I. E OLDEN I'IME. Robert llopkin.) Protection Co. No. I tender their thanks to Dr. Pitcher and Mr. Thomas C. Sheldon, for refreshments after the fire on the morning of the 3oth ult. JESSE MCMILLAN, Secretary. Money was frequently sent to the companies or the Department in acknowledgment of services rendered, and from time to time elegant speakingtrumpets of silver were presented. One such was presented by the citizens of Windsor for valuable services rendered at the time of a fire. If the people neglected to furnish refreshments, the companies after a fire often regaled themselves with hot coffee ldl " sundries " at their own houses. TH by THE OLD FIRE On such occasions the following song was popular with many of the firemen: FIREMEN'S DRINKING SONG. Here is to Number One, drink her down, Here is to Number One, drink her down, Here is to Number One, for their boy) are full of fun, Drink her down, drink her down, drink her down. The first two lines of each verse were constructed alike, and the refrain was the same in all, the third lines of the verses were as follows: Here is to Number Two, for their boys are good and true, Here is to Number Three, and you 'd better let her be, Here is to Number Four, for the boys they make her roar, Here is to Number Five, for the boys are all alive, Here is to Number Six, for the boys they give her fits, Here is to Number Seven, for they are all a going to heaven, Here is to Number Eight, for they never get there late, Here is to Number Nine, for they make the best of time, Here is to Number Ten, for they are all Irishmen, Here is to Number Eleven, hope to meet them all in heaven, Here is to Number Twelve, they 're too far away to hear the bells. Further recollections of the "old days" are contained in the following lines, written by William H. Coyle, and forming part of an ode read at a firemen's benefit at the National Theatre on July 8, 1850: When, in the dccp and dim midnight, Is heard a cry of wild affright, A shriek, that pierces slumber's ear, And chills the blood with horrid fear,,While peals th' alarmn from many a spire, And the dread sound of " Fire! Fire!" Wakes the still city, who appears, Swift thro' the darkness, with loud cheers? " Protection." gallant Number One, When bell and trumpet calls each son Of daring forth, lifts her broad shield, The first to rescue, last to yield. The noble " Eagle," Number Two, Often tried, and ever true, With engine new, that can't be beat, Comes thundering down the torch-lit street. The " Wolverine " next, Number Three, No laggard in the field will be. Stout arms are theirs, that never tire, But bravely work, thro' smoke and fire. Old " Lafayette," staunch Number Four, A torrent, long and strong, will pour; With zealous pride in her loved name, She '11 front the hottest, fiercest flame. Heroic " Phoenix," Number Five, Impatient, dashes on, to strive Against the foe, on fearless wings, And from the ashes conquering springs. Old " Rough and Ready," Number Six, Mounts foremost on the roof to fix Her pipe; in peril sure and steady, At the bell tap always ready. I)EPARTMENT. 509 Intrepid " Union," Number Seven, When cinders flash and fly to heaven, Wheels into line, a Spartan band, And fights the fire-fiend hand to hand. "Mechanic," veteran Number Eight, On duty never known too late, Mans her brakes, and makes them ring, As flood on flood the quick strokes fling. Now " Hurlbut Hose," and young " Le Roys," Take each their post, while 'mid the noise And smothering smoke, the trumpet blows, " Clear the track!" " Keep off that hose!" " Hook, Axe, and Ladder, scale the walls!" " Pull hard, my lads! it rocks, it falls, Down tumbling in a blood-red blaze! Hurrah! " And now in chorus raise Three cheers, my boys, we 've won the fight; Three more! Good night! good night! good night! The mottoes of the companies also indicated the spirit of the times. That of No. I read, " Deeds are fruits, words are but leaves." The motto of No. 4 was " When danger calls we're prompt to fly, and bravely do, or bravely die." The back of Engine No. 5 bore the legend, "Man the brakes and keep me clean, and I'll take the butt from any machine." Rescue Hook and Ladder Company No. I had for a motto the words, "\Ve raze to save. In 1851 the condition of the Department was as follows: Protection i, eleven members, engine built 1835, 250 ft. hose. Eagle 2, fifty-one members, engine built 1848, 5oo ft. hose. Wolverine 3, forty-four members, engine built 185, 350 ft. hose. Lafayette 4, fifty-four members, engine built 1851, 400 ft. hose. Phoenix 5, forty-three members, engine built 1848, 500 ft. hose. Rough and Ready 6, twenty-nine members, engine built 1846, 500 ft. hose. Union 7. forty members, engine built 1851, 500 ft. hose. Mechanics' 8, thirty-two members, engine built 1850, 400 ft. hose. There were also four old engines not in use. Hook and Ladder Company had no members. The company officers consisted of a foreman, first, second, and third assistants, and a secretary. Committees were appointed by each company monthly, to care for the engine. The upper story of each engine house was fitted up as an assembly room, and many of the rooms were really elegant and inviting. Oftentimes the firemen plated their engines at their own expense, and the members of some companies contributed more than the city to further the objects of their organizations. ta t T- Tt noTV 4l. 5IO THEL UOLD 1 IKL The condition of many of the streets at this period oftentimes made the drawing of the engines a very hard task, especially if but few members of a company were present. There was great rivalry among the companies to get the "first stream on." Drays were frequently used, and paid for by the council; if no dray was at hand, the companies ran on the sidewalks, to the danger of pedestrians, and the damage of shadetrees and other property. As the companies increased in number, the rivalries increased in intensity, until legitimate and praiseworthy emulation was transformed, in some cases, into petty and malignant jealousy, and in the effort to be first at a fire, some of the companies would crowd others from the walks, and even run into them, n DAINGE damaging the engines, and making the costs for repairs frequent and expensive. There K was also much disturbance at the engine houses caused, l. by the boy meenbers of the hose companies, and for this reason in March, I855,. the boy companies were disbanded, and the hose was thereFIREMEN'S BANXE after cared for FIREMEN AN by the men. This entailed more work and increased the dissatisfaction and disorder. In order to remedy some of the existing evils, the council, on April 24, 1855, prohibited the running of fire engines upon the sidewalks of paved streets between the hours of 6 A. M. and IO P. M., and prescribed a penalty of five dollars, or five days' imprisonment, at the discretion of the mayor's court. This greatly displeased the firemen, and on the following week the council repealed the clause imposing the penalty of imprisonment, and adopted an ordinance providing for the expulsion or suspension of the guilty party from the Fire Department. Certain of the firemen, however, were stiii dissatisfied, and at the semi-annual review, on May 2, they held a meeting to discuss their grievances, after I DEPARTMENT. which some of the members of Companies I, 4, 5, 6, 7, and 8 abandoned their engines and left the service; numbers of them marched through the streets with hats reversed. On the same day, at the call of the mayor, a meeting was held, and a large number of prominent citizens, many of them old firemen, tendered their services for the protection and management of such engines as were unmanned. On the following day the employees of the M. C. R. R. and of Jackson and Wiley's Foundry organized a fire company, called Mayflower No. 76, and volunteered to go to all fires needing their services. On May 15 new companies for Nos. 5, 6, and 8 were organized by the council, and by June 13 eight new companies had been formed. The names of some companies were then changed as fol'O FLY lows: Phoenix 5 the, fto rWashington, and then back or'?'jilsi?" again to Phenearl., a yearReady6 to Neptune 6 and Mechanics' 8 to Continental 8. The members w ~~~~~i' of this last company were uniformed in Continental -soldier style, and in the summer of I857 the company built a new house on the COMPNY Nor 4 site of the old one. Besides the furnishing it cost something over $5,000, of which the coimpany raised $3,000, and the remainder was paid by the city. The speedy and successful reorganization of the Department did not please the dissatisfied members of the old companies, and for nearly a year there were numerous false alarms believed to have been given by former firemen. On June Io, I856, Detroit Company No. 9 was organized, and on November 21, 1856, took possession of a new brick building on north side of Gratiot near St. Antoine Street. They were provided with a new engine, which was first used on May 26, i857. On June 9, i856, Operative Company No. Io was organized. 'T'hey occupied a brick building on the north si(lc of Orchard, corner of Fifth Street. A R THE OLD FIRE DEPART:ME\INT. 5I new engine for this company arrived, and was tested at the same time as the new engine of No. 9. A company known as Spouters No. 11 was organized February II, I857. They were originally designated the Hamtramck Spouters. Their engine house, built in 1859, was located on the corner of Jefferson and St. Aubin Avenues. Woodbridge Company No. 12 was organized in March, I857. They were located on the corner of Fort and Thompson, now Twelfth Street. A company, styled (;ratiot Fire Company No. 13, was organized November 23, 1857, but a committee of the council reported against accepting it. By firemen, and especially by members of Company No. 2, "Old Joe," the firemen's dog, will be remembered. He was a large black Newfoundland, bought, when two years old, by John Atkinson of a sailor, and given to Robert McIillan. He belonged to Eagle Company No. 2 for six or seven years, was always on hand at fires, and ready at the first tap of the bell to seize the ropes and bark the alarm. He was provided with a fine collar, and was a general favorite, and on his death, in May, I858, was sincerely mourned. The accompanying picture of Old Joe is from an oil painting, and the painter alone is responsible for the perspective. date a steam fire engine was first tried in Detroit. It was one of Silsby & Co.'s make, and by agreement its merits were to be compared with the service rendered by hand engines. The trial took place on the Campus Martius. The engines on a bell signal were to start at 2 P. M., and meet in front of the City Hall. Long before two o'clock the avenue was thronged with people anxious to see the race and the trial. Engine companies 8 and 10 were selected as representing the hand-engine companies. The time of arrival and commencement of throwing was as follows: Arrival. tHour. Min. Sec. No. Io, 2 o'clock 9 47 No. 8, 2 " II IIs Steamer, 2 " II 20o Commenced to throw water. Hour-. Min. Sec. 2 o'clock 10 5434 2 " 13 4734 2 " 22 46,4[ -— ` On the succeeding day the steamer was again tested, and for two hours it threw a continuous stream with great force, abundantly evincing its advantage in endurance over hand power. On November 5, 1859, another trial took place, and the steamer won still more favor. By this time interest in the volunteer companies had almost passed away. Company No. 2 disbanded on December 31, I859. Upon the introduction of steam fire engines the city authorities took possession of the different engine houses, but a number of the companies still kept up a sort of club organization, and at their meetings it was customary for them to sing this song, composed by a member of Lafayette Comlpany No. 4: THAT OLD MACHINE AND HOSE. AIR —" The Floating Scow of Old Virginny." The sun has gone down in the western sky, Night's putting her mantle on, The moon and stars are taking their place, To shine when the sun is gone. There is scarcely a breath to stir the leaves, All nature seems in repose, And the door is locked on the old machine, The old machine and hose. Chorus.-Then give us back that old machine, That old machine and hose, Oh! give us back that old machine, That old machine and hose. 'T is now the fireman seeks for rest, His labors all being done, And kind emotions fill.hs breast As he reaches his welcome home. His mind is free from sorrow and care, He banishes all his woes, And only thinks of the old machine, The old machine and hose. Chorus. OLD JOE, THE ISIREMEN'S DOG. Even after the reorganization of the department in 1855, peace did not always reign, and among those who joined the companies were many unworthy members. On August 4, I858, some members, or pretended friends, of Company No. 4 started a dangerous bonfire on the corner of Lamed and Wayne Streets, and when No. 8 arrived they cut their hose and threw stones at the men. In fact, the disorder was almost as great as it had been in i855; the property of the companies was neglected, and the hose allowed to go uncared for until much of it became unfit for use. September 2, I858, marked the beginning of a new era. On that 1 2 THE OLD FIRE DEPARTMENT. Now the fireman is growing old, His race is nearly run, IBut he has nothing to regret, His duty he's nobly done. So when he is dead and gone to rest, And taking his last repose, )rag over his grave that old machine, That old machine and hose. Ch orus. nies 3 and 4 disbanded. The second steamer arrivedl Janiary 7, 186i, and, under the name of Neptune No. 2, was located in the engine house of old No. 6, on the corner of Lamed and St. Antoine Streets. On July 24, i86, a third steamer, known as Phoenix No. 3, was procured, and located in the house of old No. 5, on Clifford Street. On June 25, 186I, an ordinance was passed which provided for paid hand fire engine companies; the foremen and stewards were to be paid $50 a quarter and members $25 a quarter, and twenty-three men were appointed for each of four companies On January 24, 186o, the Council Committee on Fire Department was requested to.report on the expediency of procuring one or more steam fire engines for the city; and soon after this, proposals Pil(F:NI STE.AM FIRE ENGINE- NSO. 3, AS IT.PPEARED IN THE FUNERAL PROCESSION OF PRESIDENT LINCOLN, APRIl. 25, i865. for furnishing steam engines were invited. On May 29 propositions were received, and on June 26 a contract was made with the Amoskeag Manufacturing Company of Manchester, N. H., for a steamer to cost $3, 150. The engine was duly received, and on October 4, I86o, it was housed and manned for service. It was named Lafayette No. I, and was located on the northeast corner of Lamed and Wayne Streets. On October 9 the council formally appointed the officers and members, and a paid Steam Fire Department was inaugurated. A second steamer was ordered November 20, I860, and on the 27th of the same month Compa organized. Members of the hook and ladder companies.were to be paid $120 a year, and by ordinance of June 17, 1864, this was increased to $i60. The steamer K. C. Barker No. 4 arrived February i, I865, and was stationed in the engine house at the corner of Orchard and Fifth Streets. It cost $4,500, and was ready for use February 1. On February 17, I865, the paid hand fire engine companies were disbanded, and on May i6 the chief engineer resigned. On June 27 the steamer James A. Van Dyke No. 5 was procured. It was located on the corner of Lamed and Riopelle Streets. STEIANI FIRE DEPART INIENT. 513,.____ ~ ~ ~ SEA FIRE ---~c DEARMET 513___ _ ___ ---- _ _ __ _, In October, i866, the city contracted for a fire alarm telegraph. It was known as the Key and Bell plan, and had wooden boxes. The work of putting it up was begun I)ecenber 26, and it was accepted the same month. The apparatus cost $5,700. On January 4, 1867, it was tested by the Committee on Fire l)epartment, the fire marshal, and members of the council, and gave good satisfaction. By this time public opinion was ready for the establishment of a Fire Commission, and on March 26, 1867, it was created. The chief engineers of the old Fire Department were appointed by the council, with salaries varying from $300 to $500. Their names and terms of office \were: I825, D.C. MeKinstry; 1830, Levi - Cook; I831, J. L... Whiting; 1832, Marshall Chapin; ~ I833-I835, Levi -. Cook; I835, Noah Sutton, H. V. Disbrow; 1836, H. V. Disbrow; 1837, Chauncy Hurlbut; 1838, Theodore ll Williams; 1839 -I842, C. Hurlbut; i842, Matthew Gooding; I843 -1845, H. H. LeRoy; 1845-I847, James SI. ', ~, - Stewart; 1847-1849, \Villiam Barclay; FIKE COMMS11SIONER S OF I849-I85 i, William CLORNER L.\ANED Al first Act took the oath of office and entered upon their duties on April I, 1867. They at once found much to do; the houses needed fitting up, and the machines needed repairing. The hand engines and some lots and buildings which seemed undlesirable were sold; and from year to year, since the organization of the commission, the value of the property and the efficiency of the force have steadily increased. The department is managed upon military principles, each person being held strictly accountable for the w-ork assigned to him; everything is required to be (lone nd reported with much precision, and all dletails come before the board at its \eekly meetings. The captain of each company reports to the chief;;-:^: —. \ ~ ~ engineer the facts as to all alarms given and fires attended, specifying. on each occasion, the presence or absence of each member of the company. These reports are made daily, certified to by the chief engineer, and reported to the board. For all expenditures a system of checks and balances is provided, and a complete record is kept of all articles used. All orders for sup FICE, AND ENGINE HOUSES, ND WAYNE STREETS. l)uncan; I851, L. 1i. Cobb; 1852-I854, John Patton; 1854-I857, William Duncan; 1857, William Lee; 1858, William I)uncan; 1859, William Lee; I860, William Ilolnes; 1860-I863, James Battle; i863, Thomas Oakley; I864-1867, James Battle. THE STEiAMN FIRE DEPARTMENT. The present Steam Fire Department is believed to be one of the best organized in the country. It was created by Act of March 26, I867, and reorganized by Act of March I8, I871. The latter Act reconstituted the commission, remedied some defects in the law first passed, and defined more fully the powers of the board. A further Act of March 31, 1871, legalized some technically illegal acts of the commission. The commissioners named in the plies of any kind must be signed by the president of the commission; each company is charged with the supplies furnished, and the chief engineer and captain of each comnpany are required to certify that articles are needed before they are furnished or procured. The yearly expenses and the value of the property of the department have been as follows: Years. Expense. Inventory. Years. Expense. 1867 I868 I869 1870 1871 I872 I873 1874 1875 $63,469 $I31,852 71,138 152,529 69,025 166,778 78,106 202,730 85,845 217,I55 71,062 241,69I 105,806 299,382 I09,799 334,630 I09,766 338,939 1876 I877 1878 1879 I880 i88i 1882 I884 1885 $109,423 112,059 103,655 104,022 III,I97 I17,290 I42,536 I94,357 188,758 Inventory. $344,334 360,189 367,272 398,895 417,867 412,384 439,041 520,819 570,562 514 ST~lEAM1/ FIRE DEPARTAMENThLI.:'1' 514 STEAM FIRE DEPARTMENT. Engine HousesPrior to the organization of the commission, and for several years thereafter, the engine houses were Built. 1884 884 1886 1886 Location. Twentieth Street near Michigan Avenue. Lamed near St. Antoine Street. Corner Ferry and Russell, Corner Sixteenth and Warren Avenue. ELgiznes. When the Fire Commiission organized, it came into possession of five steamers, all of which, except one, were still in use in 1883; some of them, however, have been so thoroughly rebuilt as to be practically new. Vermilion red, as an emblematical color, is the distinguishing mark of all the department property. The body of the engines, hose carriages, supply wagons, the firealarm boxes, and posts indicating location of cisterns, are all of this color. The ordinary steamers weigh from two to three tons each, cost an average of $4,o00, and have a capacity of from five to six hundred gallons per minute. The self-propeller weighs four and a half tons, was pur ENGINE HOUSE, CORNER LARNED AND ST. ANTOINE STREETS. used as polling places and occasionally for political meetings. In the fall of 1870 the board prohibited the use of the engine houses for any purpose not actually connected with the work of the department. The upper part of each house is neatly fitted up with beds and furniture for the accommodation of the firemen, and all the regular force are required to lodge in the building. Each house is provided with a tower about seventy feet high, and a continuous watch is kept from 8 P. M. to 6 A. M., the time being apportioned between the members of the company. All the hours are struck by those in charge of the tower. In the City Hall tower a watchman is on duty day and night. The location and date of erection of each building is shown in the following table. Some of the houses, however, have been almost entirely rebuilt since the date given: Built. Location. 1849 Corner Lamed and Riopelle Streets. 1856 Orchard near Fifth Street. 1857 Corner Lamed and St. Antoine Streets. I857 Corner Lamed and Wayne Streets. 1867 Corner High and Russell Streets. 1870 Corner Lamed and Wayne Streets. I87I Corner Sixth and Baker Streets. 1873 Corner Elmwood Avenue and Fort Street. 1873 Eighteenth near Howard Street. 1874 Hastings near Lamed Street. 1876 Alexandrine near Cass Avenue. 1879 Montcalm West near Park Street. 1879 Clifford near Woodward Avenue; 1882 -Sixteenth at head of Bagg Street. 1883 N. W. corner Gratiot and Grandy Avenues. ENGINE HOUSE, CORNER LARNED AND RIOPELLE STREETS. chased in January, 1874, at a cost of $5,ooo00, and was the third machine of the kind built in the United States; it can propel itself on the paved streets STEAM1;2 FIRIE DEPARTMENT.NT 515 STEAM FIRE DEPARTMENT. 515 at the rate of a mile in four minutes. Each steamer is supplied with a patent heater, by which the water in the boilers is kept at such a temperature that steam can be generated in two or three minutes, and the kindling and coal are always in place in the fire-box. In 1874 3eaufait's automatic lilghter was supplied for each engine. It consists of a match so arranged that, as the engine is drawn out of the house, it comes in contact with a rough surface, and with all the engines except the self-propeller, are drawn by two horses. The stalls are so arranged that the horses' heads face towards the front of the engine, and on an alarm being given, they can pass without delay to their proper places. When an alarm is given from any box, the same stroke of the hammer that strikes the gong in the engine house, disconnects a wire and allows a weight that holds the stall-doors to drop. The doors of the stalls then fly open, the horses are released, and actually bound to their places; the harness, which is sus I ENGINE HOUSE, CORNER FORT ST. AND ELMWOOD AVE. EIGHTEENTH STREET ENGINE HOUSE. the fuel is ignited. In 1872 the engines were supplied with Mayor's relief valves, which regulate with ease the size and flow of the stream. Ten years later Siamese connections, by which the force of several streams can be concentrated in one, were adopted. Each engine is provided with a hose-carriage, carrying from 800 to 12oo feet of hose, which, with the carriage, weighs about two tons. In 1883 the department had nearly 23,650 feet of hose. Prior to 1873 all the hose-carts were two-wheeled and drawn by one horse. On January 8, 1873, the first four-wheeled cart was introduced, and since 1878 all the hose-carts have been four-wheelers, and they, pended over the place where the horses take their position, is dropped upon them and adjusted; and within seven seconds from the time of an alarm, the engine can leave the house. The horses are exceptionally well cared for, and since 1882 an infirmary has been maintained in connection with the engine house on Alexandrine Avenue, and disabled horses are there cared for. When the commission was organized there was but one hook and ladder company, the truck for which was built in 1852. It was replaced by a new one on November 17, I870. A second hook and ladder company was organized in 187r, a third in i8Si, and a fourth in 1884. Company No. 2 516 STEAM FIRE DEPARTMENT. has a patent fire escape extension ladder. A reserve fire escape ladder and truck went into service in January, 1880. Each truck is provided with ladders, buckets, axes, ropes, crowbars, lanterns, and Babcock fire extinguishers. Two chemical engines, or large Babcock fire extinguishers on wheels, were procured in 1876; they throw a fluid that quickly smothers an incipient fire. On January I, I883,.... a protective company, composed of seven men, was established. They were stationed _ e at the Hastings Street - engine house, and are provided with a twowheeled, eight-gallon chemical engine, and a large number of waterproof covers to spread over articles that would be damaged by water. ExS(;IxE Ho".Fl,, HAlXSIGl;! The names of the.,1ATINED engines in 1883 were: Lafayette No. I, Neptune No. 2, Phoenix No. 3, K. C. Barker No, 4, Jas. A. Van Dyke No. 5, Detroit No. 6, L. tH. Cobb No. 7, Continental No. 8, and Chauncy Hurlbut No. 9. Nos. IO i: = _ and I are unnamed. Rescue Hook & Ladder I _ No. I, Eagle No. 2, - Alert No. 3, and - No. 4. Chemical No. i, Chemical No. 2, Chelm- ii ical No. 3. In I883 there were also three reserve engines, for use ii in special emergencies. The Fire Alarm Telegraph. The telegraph which E.N(;. IN,,',.I was put up in I866 proved so unreliable that in I869 a contract was made for the Gamewell apparatus. It was completed and tested November 3, and accepted on November 7, 1870. The cost of the apparatus and putting up was $8,500; with it were furnished seven hundred white cedar telegraph poles, six repeaters, seven enginehouse gongs, seven galvanometers, and sixty boxes. S, On the erection of the apparatus, the services of the bell-ringer in the steeple of Dr. Duffield's church were dispensed with, and on January 20, I872, an electro-mechanical bell-striker was put up in the City Hall, for the purpose of giving alarms on a large bell there located. During 1887 all wires within half a mile of the corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues were put under ground. Since these improvements, the Detroit fire alarm is believed to be almost perfect. There B TE ______ _ is a complete metallic circuit starting from and returning to the central office on Larned, near St. Antoine Street. The line, as it passes about the city, is "looped" at convenient intervals; each loop embraces several TWE':EEN CONG'RESS AND) boxes, and is supplied 1,REET. with a repeating wire which conveys the alarm from the loop to the central station, fr,:n whence it is convce ed to all the other stations. Each loop is connected at the central station with a galvanometer, similar to a compass in its construction. When the loop is in good working E B~~~ = ~gHiorder the pointer of the galvanometer (a magnetic needle) is always deflected from its natural position. If __;i~, )'/ —_ —PS-~" an examination of th:: galvanometer of any particular loop shows the needle to be in its natural position due;\xNi,)liN A\ENUE. north, it becomes evi(lent that the loop is out of order or broken. With the aid of what is called a "switch board " any portion of the loop line may be disconnected from the battery, and in case any of the wires are out of order, the particular part of the loop that is affected is readily determined. On the arrival of an alarm from any loop, a repeater at the central station shuts off an alarm EX I STEAM FIRE DEPARTMENT. 517 from any other loop until the first alarm is fully given. If two alarms are given from two different boxes on the same loop, at about the same time, an automatic non-interference arrangement connected with each box shuts off the completion of an alarm from the second box until the alarm first given is completed. The fire-alarm boxes are kept locked, and the keys deposited in the nearest and most convenient store or house; all members of the police force are also provided with keys. Within each box is a brass hook, and in giving an alarm the hook is pulled firmly downwards as far as it will go, once, then allowed to slide back. If the line is in working order, a small bell in the same box j will at once ring. The pulling of the hook causes an =. alarm to be struck. ____ =. on the gong at the _ engine houses, and = rings the bells in all the fire boxes. If the bell in the box does not ring, it is evident that that box or part of the line is out of order,and an alarm should ^ then be given at the next nearest box. If on going to a box the bell within is heard giving an alarm, the signal should be counted, the same as the signals are counted from the tower bells; ENGINE HOUSE, CORNER if it is evident from the number that the alarm is not for the same fire, then the hook should be pulled. Each box has a particular number, and the pulling of the hook causes the slipping of a bar into certain notches, thus registering the number of the box. On an alarm being given, the City Hall always, and up to 1837 t'.i2 to\ver bells also struck the number of the box. Ten regular and rapid strokes are first given, indicatting that a fire has broken out; the number of the box from which the alarm comes is then given. If the alarm comes from Box 73, seven regular strokes are given; then, after a short pause, three strokes; the general alarm of ten strokes and the number of the box given is twice repeated. Lists of the number and location of each box are printed, and reference to a list will show the vicinity of the fire. At each of the engine houses the fire-alarm instrument is enclosed in a walnut case with a glass front, which shows the working of the machinery. Connected with each fire-alarm box, but entirely distinct from the other apparatus, is a small bell, attached to a w ire that reaches all the boxes and all the engine houses, and with these bells by a system of signals information is conveyed, or help summoned, from any engine house. To protect the apparatus from damage during thunder _ _____= ~storms, nearly all the fire-alarm boxes are provided wvith ':.__ -- ~/'5::large copper wires, 'K- '.-:-!-.: ---- which extend to the ground, and carry off any surplus of - electrical currents. __ -. The followingshows the number of fire alarni boxes in use in various years: Year. Boxes. 1867 49 1868 50 1869 5 I87o-1872 6o 1872 68 I873-1875 77 1875 89 1876 I04 1877 96 I884 140 1885 15I I886 i88 Hllt;i AN) R USSELL STREETS. In addition to the care of the engines, hose, horses, and apparatus, the department has the care of the fire hydrants and cisterns, each company having charge of those within its district, and it is the duty of the captain to see that those in his district are kept in order, and that ice and snow do not accumulate on or about them. In 1883 red posts were set up near the hydrants to denote their location. The cisterns hold from one hundred to five hundred barrels and cost from $65 to $r1,oo, and both they and the hydrants are paid for by the Fire Commission. The following table gives thi number of cisterns and hydrants in different years: 5i8 STEAM FIRE DEPARTMENT. Years. 1867 1868 1869 I870 1871 1872 1873 1874 Reservoirs. 134 144 144 136 I35 134 146 157 Hydrants. 265 305 330 365 394 420 463 535 Years. 1875 I876 1877 1878 1879 I880 1884 1885 Reservoirs. 170 I71 172 172 172 I75 216 247 Hydrants. 60o 606 662 689 746 758 1,000 1, 19 Apparatus, Buildings, and Telegraph. Each member of the commission is chairman of, and serves on two committees. The commissioners named in the original Act were T. H. Hinchman, Williatm Duncan, L. H. Cobb, and J. W. Sutton. The term of T. H. Hinchman expired April i, I87I. He was re-appointed for two full terms. On his election to the State Senate in the fall of I876, he resigned, and was succeeded in December by L. H. Cobb, who, Commissioners. The Act of March 26, 1867, determined the length of term of each of the first four commissioners, and I~~~~~~~~~' 2v2m ENGINE HOUSE, CORNER O)I SIXTH AND BAKER STREETS. ENGINE HOUSE, MONTCALM STREET WEST. on the expiration of their terms, others were to be nominated by the mayor and appointed by the council for terms of four years each. The commissioners serve without pay and cannot hold any political office; if nominated for any such office, a commissioner must decline within ten days or his place will be deemed vacant. Each commissioner serves as president of the board during the last year of his term. Their first meeting was on April I, 1867. Regular meetings are held every Monday at 4 P. li. at the office, corner of Lamed and Wayne Streets. The commission is divided into eight committees, viz., on Finance, Supplies, Men, Horses, Water, as one of the first commissioners, had previously served from 1867 to I873. Mr. Cobb died April I, 1879, and T. H. Hinchman was appointed his successor, retaining the position until November, 1880, when he resigned, and was succeeded on November 5 by R. W. Gillett. On April I, I872, Jerome Croul was appointed as the successor of William Duncan, and was succeeded in April. 1888, by Bruce Goodfellow. On April i, 1873, Joseph Godfrey was appointed the successor of L. H. Cobb. Mr. Godfrey died January 7, I875, and P. Henkel was appointed to fill his place. The term of J. W. Sutton expired April 1, 1870. B. Vernor was appointed as STEAM FIRE DEPARTMENT. 51;) his successor. He was succeeded on August 27, 1886, by W. J. Stapleton. The chief officers appointed by the commission, and their terms of service, have been: Secretaries, B. F. Baker, April 1, I867, to July 24, 1871; F. H. Seymour, July 24, 1871, to January I, 1881; James E. Tryon, from January I, I88; Chief Engineer, James IBattle, from April i, 1867; Assistant Engineer, J. R. Elliott, from April I, 1867; Superintendent of Telegraph, M. H. Gascoigne, from 1873, and W. J. Gardner, from January, 1885; Surgeon, William Brodie, M. D., from 1873; Veterinary Surgeons, A. J. Murray, 1876 to I879; Robert Jennings, from 1879. Firemen. All members of companies are required to be citizens of the United States, and over twenty-one years of age; they are also required to furnish reliable references, to pass a medical examination, and also an examination as to business ability and moral character. The endeavor of the commissioners from the first has been to secure the best men possible consistent with the - -— = pay allowed, and as ENGINE HOUSE, ( a result, the character and morale of the force is calculated to reflect credit on the city. The bravery and devotion of the men and their faithfulness in time of danger are worthy of all praise. MIany of them have suffered serious injury, as the result of heroic efforts to save life and property. In July, I88I, one of the firemen, Mr. McOueen, was instantly killed by falling walls. It was the first fatal accident in fourteen years. The uniform was adopted in November, 1870. It is of blue cloth with brass buttons, upon which are the letters D. F. D. All members of the department are required to join the Firemen's Fund Association within one month after their appointment. Leave of absence for not more than five hours may be granted by the captains of either engine or hook and ladder companies, provided not more than one stationary man or one pipeman is granted leave of absence at the same time. Leave of absence for engineers of steamers, for men of hook and ladder companies, may be granted only by the chief engineer. Permission to be absent for more than five hours is granted only by the president, upon the endorsement of the captain, countersigned by the chief engineer. Substitutes, in all cases, must be procured by those who wish to be absent. Daily reports are made of the absences of each member of the company, the condition of the apparatus, and the visits of the officers, ^ - ^ < H < X and a summary of ~]~'_z>-~...... these reports is:' ^-'^' -~ ''made by the chief -:: ]5: e neeengineer to the. ~ ~:?. -— = —.__. — cboard. Money or rewards for services can be received only by the chief engineer, must be turned over by him to the board, and cannot be used except by permission of that body. A fire company consists of ten persons, JUr -5one captain, one f engineer, one fireI H I~_l~iUh d88 1driver, one hose-cart driver, and five pipemen. 1,000 flm t rThe number of TLIFR D eto SFire(REEe. Fmen employed during the several years has been: 1867, 62; 1868-1871,72; 187I, 78; 1872-1874,8I; 874-I877, 10o7; 1877, 119; 1878, ii5; 1879, I27; i88o, 137; 1881, 142; r883, 177; 1884, 83; 885, 2 6. Of those serving in I885 one hundred and eighty-nine devoted thir full time; the rest of the force. who are under enigaement to serve when needed, are men engaged in various business-occupations, who pursue their ordinary avocations during the day, and report and sleep at the company quarters at night. They -ire paid from $240 to $300 per year; the salaries of the men in constant service range from $65o to $i,ooo per year. The Detroit Firemen's Fund Association MER CL was incorporated on April I7, 1867; its objects are 520 THE FIRE DEPARTMENJT SOCIETY. 5 TH FIEDPRMETSCEY to afford relief to sick and disabled firemen who are connected with the Fire Department, and to relieve the widows and children of deceased members. Any member incapacitated from attending to his work is entitled to five dollars per week, for such time as a committee deem proper; and by a twothirds vote of the trustees, a larger sum, not exceeding twelve dollars per week, may be granted. In case of... ideath, a sum of not... over one hundred - dollars may be appropriated for funeral expenses. Widows and children are relieved by such monthly pay- _ ments, and for such length of time, as the trustees may agree upon. ____ The initiation fee of active members is five dollars, with annual --— i dues of four dollars, payable quarterly. Honorary members I pay five dollars a year, i j but have no privileges. The annual meeting is on the first Monday of April. Twentytrustees are elected on the last Saturday in March before the annual meet- l ing, each fire company being entitled to one trustee. All active members of the Fire Department are members, and there are besides a large number of ENGINE HOUSE, SIXTEEN.I honorary members. Further provision was made for tie welfare of the firemen by Act of June 16, 1885, wlhich pi )vided that all members of the Fire Departmlnt wlho have been employed for the period of twentV-four years, dating from October 24. I860, may, by vote of the commission, be placed on the list of retired firemen, and all such persons shall be paid thereafter, (luring their lifetime, a sum equal to one-half of the salary paid them at the time of retirement, providcd the amount to be paid to those retired does not exceed $450 per year; and, in case of the death of tany fireman while in the discharge of his duty his widois to be paid tie sum of $300 per year, or if he leave no w\idow, but living children, the sum of $300 is to be paid the children until they are 16 years of age. THE FIRE DEPARTMENT SOCIET'Y. The public interest felt in the Fire Department, and the facilities which old Firemen's Hall afforded for meetings, led to the organization of this society. A constitution was drawn up by James A. Van Dyke, and adopted in January, 1840. The first election was held January 20, when the following officers were chosen: Robert E. Roberts, president; Frederick Buhl, vicepresident; Edmund R. Kearsley, secretary; Darius Lamson, treasurer; Elijah (oodell, collector. The Board of Trustees was composed of the officers of the society, the chief rE TH Iengineer, and delegates elected from each company. aThe object of the organization was to harm onize the interests of kii) t~'!~!I~?~:;' '0 ~~ J the firemen, and to provide for the relief of disabled and indigent firemen an(l their families. ()n February 14. 1840, tile s ociety was incorporated under the name of the Fire DeH, HEAD OF BAGG STREET. partment (of the City of Detroit. il embership certificates were fixed at two dollars each; other fund(s were received from entertainments of various kiads. and from donations of citizens whose propetrtv was saved froin loss. The society became increasingly popular and the funlds grew\ quite rapid(ly, and in September, I848, there was $6,ooo in the treasury, aLnd after many meetings andl much consideration of the question, it was deci(led to build a large Firenlcni's Hall. 'I'}ie l](t on the southwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Randclol)ll Street, from which the old Council THE FIRE DEPARTMENT SOCIETY. 521 House had a few months before been swept by the fire, was purchased, and on January 15, I849, J. A. Van Dyke, H. H. LeRoy, and Hugh Moffat were appointed as a building committee. Comparatively little was done until a year later; then, on January 26, I850, it was resolved to solicit loans of money in sums of fifty dollars and upward, and gifts of building material, or goods of any kind that could be turned to account in erecting the structure. From this time the work went forward; on July 4, 1850, the corner-stone was laid, and the occasion celebrated by a parade of all the fire companies, the reading of the Declaration of In Mr. Van Dyke retired from the presidency; the department tendered him its thanks for his untiring zeal and successful efforts in its behalf, and resolved, as a token of high esteem and affectionate regard, to procure his portrait to adorn the walls he had spent so much time to raise. The portrait, a very striking one, was painted by Hicks of New York, and cost, with its elegant frame, nearly $700. After the completion of the Hall the department inaugurated a course of lectures, the first of which was given on January 7, 1853, by J. A. Van Dyke; his subject was " The Fire Department of Detroit, A STEA^M FIRE F NNGINE. dependence, an original ode by W\. H. Coyle, and an oration by U. Tracy Howe. On February 14, I85I, the department gave a supper and concert in aid of the enterprise, which were very successful, and on October 23, 1851, the Hall was opened with a concert by Theresa Parodi. She subsequently addressed a letter to the president of the department, in which she complimented the ltall by saying, "I think it one of the very best that I have ever sung in." The formal dedication, by a grand ball, took place on Thursday evening, I)ecember 4. The lot cost $9,000 and the building $8,000oo. ' he Hall is fifty-six by seventy-five feet and twentysix feet high. It was originally seated with armchairs, and was for many years the best public hall in the city. On the completion of the Hall, 34 Past, Present, and Future." One month later U. Tracy Howe delivered an address on "The Fine.rts." I)uring I854 a donation of $ioo was received from James Stevens, and on January 15, I855, the department adopted the following: AResolvcd, that this Fire Department appropriate the $o0o received from Mr. James Stevens towards the purchase of a lot in'Elmwood Cemetery, to be used for the interment of deceased firemen. D)uring 1876 the society erected an elegant Firemen's Monument on the lot. It cost $5,083. In I858 the walls of the Hall were raised and the front and roof re-constructed at a cost of $6,ooo. The Hall was re-opened on July 8 with a concert by Miss Caroline Richings. On August 21, I858, the department opened a library and reading room, 522 THE FIRE DEPARTMENT SOCIETY. The wealth of the corporation continued to increase, and on January 25, I859, an Act of the Legislature gave it power to hold $60,ooo worth of property, and exempted it from taxation. The disbanding of the companies, caused by the introduction of steam engines, made it impracticable to elect trustees from the several companies, and, by Act of March 15, 186I, it was therefore provided that, on approval of the society, twelve trustees should be elected by ballot at the annual meeting on the third Monday of January, six to be chosen for one, and six for two years, and six annually thereafter. These trustees, with the president, vice 28, I870, but no practical results grew out of the action. Meanwhile, many members neglected the payment of their dues; the officers held that they had thus forfeited their rights as members; and on May 21, 1877, the Legislature provided that every member who had failed for three years or more previous to January I, 1878, to pay his dues should cease to be a member; and that members failing for three years after that date to pay their dues should forfeit their membership; the Act also provided that new members, selected by the trustees, might be admitted by a two-thirds vote of the society at any lawful FIREMEN'S HAI.I, S. W. CORNER OF JEFFERSON AVENUE AND RANDOLPH STREET. president, and secretary, were to manage the affairs of the society. On November 30, I86i, the society voted in favor of this method, and provision was made for reducing the dues to fifty cents per year. Notwithstanding this reduction, the membership constantly decreased, and as there was little occasion to apply its funds to the use originally intended, the Legislature, on April 3, I869, authorized the society to maintain "an Institution or Institutions for moral and intellectual improvement and the relief and instruction of such homeless and destitute persons of the city of Detroit as the Board of Trustees may select." The society accepted the provisions of the Act on September meeting. By an Act approved April 21, I883, it was provided that property to the amount of $I20,ooo should be exempted from taxation, and each member was authorized to appoint some one to succeed him on his demise; and in case any member neglected to appoint his successor, the trustees were authorized, on the death of a member, to name a successor, who should have and exercise all the rights of the original member. In 1883 there were about one hundred and thirty members, and the property of the corporation amounted to nearly $Ioo,ooo, about one half being in cash or its equivalent. There being no longer any special need for the THE FIRE DEPARTMENT SOCIS-TY. 523 continuance of the organization, the society, on April i6, i886, decided to divide up and apportion* its assets and wind up its career. Accordingly, $500 each was given to St Mary's, St. Luke's and I larper Hospitals, to establish in perpetuity a free bed for members of the society, or the widows of members, and when there are none of these left, then the members of the present Fire Department are to become entitledl to the benefits. The society then gave to each of its i i16 members the sum of $500 in cash, and deposited a reserve fund of about $20,030 in the custody of C. H. Wetmore, Luke Crossley and Joseph Hudson as trustees, said amnount to be applied to the benefit of needy memnl)ers of the organization and their friends. The several valuable paintings belonging to the society were presented to the Public Library. The building of the society was sold to the Board of Water Commissioners for $40,000. The presidents of the society have been: i840, Robert E. Roberts; i841-i843, John Owen; i843, Chauncy Hurlbut; 1,844-i847, David Smart; 1847 -i852, James A. Van Dyke; I852-i855, Eben N. Willcox~ 1855- 1857, John Patton; i857, Robert T. Elliott; i858, Robert E. Roberts; I859-i861,John D. Fairbanks; i86i, Benjamin Vernor; 1862, H.H. Wells; i863, H. WV. Newberry; i864-I866, L.H. Cobb; i866-i868, S. G. Wight; i868-i870,T. H. Hinchman; 1870-i872, Robert McMillan; i872 -1874, Jerome Croul; 1874-i876, W. S. Penfield; 1876-i878, J. S. Vernor; 1878, T. H. Hinchman; 1879, William Adair; i880-i882, Alexander Copland; i882-1i884, R. S. Dillon; 1884, John Campbell; i885-i888, Joseph Hudson. The secretaries have been: i8,o, E. R. Kearsley; 1841, WV. B3. Wesson; i842-i846, H. Ml. Roby, i846-i848, B. D. Hyde; 1848, P. C. Higgins; 1849 -i85i, R. W. King; i851-i854, R. E. Roberts; i854-i857, C. S. Cole; i857-1859, B.Vernor; 1859 -i 86 i, G. W. Osborn; i 86;-, H. Starkey; 1 862-1i877, George WV. Osborn; 1877-1879, G. C. Codd; 1879 -i886, Mark Flanigan; i886-i 888, D. R. Peirce. I I PART VIII. RELIGIOUS. I CHAPTER LVI. ROMAN CATHOLIC MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS.-CHURCHES.- BISHOPS AND DIOCESES.-THE CATHOLIC UNION. MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. THE first settlements in the West differed from nearly all the eastern colonies, in that the settlers were not Puritans, but members of the Roman Catholic Church. Long before the first posts were established, the Jesuit and Sulpitian missionaries, with unsurpassed devotion to their faith, and with skill and courage that no difficulties could overcome, traversed the entire West, exploring, studying, and planning for the future of their Church. One after another they visited the region of the lakes, and the Indian soon learned to respect the "black gowns," and in form, if not in fact, to adore the Crucified. Of the earlier visitors to Michigan Fathers Raymbault and Jogues came in 1641; Dablon, in I655; Menard, in 166o; Allouez, in I666; Marquette, in I668; and in the spring of I670 the Sulpitian Galinee was at Detroit with La Salle. A bishop and nuns from the highest ranks, representing the best blood of France, followed in the footsteps of these priestly explorers. Father Hennepin came in I679. Twenty years later the settlement was determined upon, and in I701 the cross was set up on the shores of the Detroit. It was well that the old faith was represented by the ancient Gallic Church: independent but faithful, zealous but liberal, the impress of her spirit remains to this day. St. Anne's Church. One of the first acts of Cadillac was to provide a place of worship. IHe arrived on July 24, which was St. Anne's Day, and two days later he laid the foundations for a chapel. Father Francois Valliant, a Jesuit, and Father Nicholas Constantine del Halle, a Franciscan, both aided in the pious work. Cadillac's letters and various other old manuscripts make it evident that he preferred the Franciscans, who were usually in charge of the posts. TIhe directors of the colony, however, chose to establish a Jesuit missionary, and agreed to allow 800 francs yearly, necessary food and clothing, and free transportation for those who were sent to the settle ment. The personal preferences of Cadillac did not trouble the colonists, and ere the settlement was a month old the little log church just outside the stockade was completed, the rude cross pointed to the sky, and thereafter the bell was daily rung and daily prayers were said; and when harvest time had passed, the priest's granary was full. Father Valliant and Cadillac did not agree, and early in the fall of I701 Valliant left the settlement. The presence of a Franciscan priest was distasteful to the Jesuits, and, hoping that the settlement would prove a failure and that the Indians would return to Mackinaw, they evaded the king's orders directing them to establish themselves at Detroit, and for several years after Valliant left there were no Jesuits at Detroit. In 1703 some Indians, who had become disaffected, set fire to a barn, and as a result the church and the home of the priest were burned, together with other buildings. A new church was immediately erected, in which, as will appear, Father del Halle was buried. With the year 1704, so far as is now known, the records of the church began; and, excepting those of the Roman Catholic churches of St. Ignace and Kaskaskia, which date back to I695 and I696, there are no manuscript records in the West so ancient and so interesting as those contained in the thin quarto volumes now in possession of the parish priest of St. Anne's. The records are complete from the beginning, and the faded and yellow pages tell the history of events that thrilled the hearts of the colonists of Detroit for generations before the war of the Revolution. Their authenticity is attested by the signatures (as witnesses at weddings and burials) of Cadillac, De la Forest, De Noyelle, Tonty, Bellestre, Dubuisson, Boishebert, and other noted military characters. The record of births, deaths, and marriages, from I704 to I744, is contained in a small book of three hundred and thirtyfour pages. The following translation of one of the pages gives evidence of a care which has preserved them to the present time: The undersigned Recollect Priest, exercising vicarial functions at Fort Pontchartrain of Detroit, declares that the present book 15271 s1Y2Eia: ' *l Iy'I{ ae ~?k ff. l'e I I I |~ /~a~/~~c/zee~l~e/ti~- (i^(JW2i^- c 4141 l 6 ^- ~ ^":^-" -4 ":9elpip"'*^, A: <^ w ^p ar j '/ C.^"~'~~~~~~ee ~4f-~ T^ v I~ ~ ""?b r>^^e ~ s? ^R^ a, 9^^?r ^t^^^^^^^^ ^ ^^yn^?-^^f^ ^^^^^eX>^2^^ H r y^^T^ ^< ^ ^. ^9 j /^ " y^/^^/ 9^&M. ^-^ -..^< ^U-rryt^ 9e^^><. -^ Wtw-y FIRST P(;F. 0} SIT. ANNE'S RECORDS. l5[8' MISSIONARIES ANI PRIESTS. 529 contains thirteen sheets of paper, being the veritable first Book or Registry of Baptisms and Interments at Fort Pontchartrain, and that it has been prepared and arranged by the venerable Pere Dominique de la Marche, formerly Professor of Theology and Recollect Priest, my predecessor at this said mission of Fort Pontchartrain; and for the purpose of giving to this Registry all necessary force and value, I have requested Monsieur Antoine de la Mothe Cadillac, Commandant for the King at said Fort, to honor it with his signature. Done at said place the s5th of Janlary, 1709. FRERE CHERUBIM DENEAU, Recollect Miss. Priest. We, Antoine de la Mothe Cadillac, Lord of the places of Douaguet and Mont Desert, Commander for the King at Fort Pontchartrain, certify that the present book contains thirteen sheets, being the First Registry of Baptisms and interments; in faith of which we have signed. Done at said Fort, January i6th, 1709. IA MOTHE CADILLAC. A reduced fac-simile is given of the first page of the record; the size of the original is seven by eight and three quarters inches. The second entry tells of the baptism of the child of a soldier and an Indian woman. From 1704 to 1709 three or four other books of registry were formally opened by the priests in charge. and a special registry is preserved, in which baptisms of savages, principally of the Huron tribe, are noted. Between April 24 and August I6, I706, during an attack on the fort by the Indians, while walking in his garden outside of the stockade, Father del Halle was seized; he was soon released, but as he turned to enter the fort he was shot and instantly killed by one of the Indians; the place of his burial was the chapel in which he had officiated. In after years, when newer and larger churches were erected in different localities, the remains of del Halle were four times removed, the first time in I709. Two of the removals are described in the following translations from the records: In the year of our Lord 1723, May i3th, at the request of Rev. Father Bonaventure Leonard, Franciscan Missionary for the post of Detroit on Lake Erie, we the undersigned declare having been on the ground where was formerly the church in which had been buried the late Rev. Father Constantine del Halle, Franciscan, fulfilling the functions of a missionary for the said post; and, according to the indication given us, we recognized the exact spot where his remains would be found. The Rev. Father BonavenTranslated, the entry reads: I, brother Constantine del Halle, missionary, Recollect Priest, and Chaplain at Fort Pontchartrain, certify that I have conferred holy baptism on Marie Thderse, legitimate daughter of M1onsieur Antoine de la Mothe Cadillac, commandant for the King, and of Madame Marie Therese Guion, the Father and Mother. There was for Godfather, Bertrand Arnauld, and for Godmother, lMd'lle Genevieve le Tendre. In faith of which we have signed, this 2d of February, 1704. FRERE CONSTANTINE I)EL HALLE, Recollect. ARNAI D. GENEVIEV E I.E TENDRE. ture paid two men to make researches in the said ground. The samle day these men found the coffin of the late Rev. Father, who was recognized by the marks every one has seen; that is, a small cap, many pieces of cloth of his cloak, very distinct marks on his body of a string and of haircloth. After that examination the Rev. Father Bonaventure ordered the body to be taken into the church. In testimony whereof we assure whomsoever it may concern of the truth of our present attestation. Made at the Post of Detroit on Lake Erie, May i3th, 1723. (Signed) H. CAMPAIt. PIERRE HUBERT LACROIX CHS. CHESNE. BONAVENTURE. In the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred and fiftyfive, the thirteenth day of July, we, priest, Franciscan, and chaplain at the Fort of Detroit, in the name of His Majesty, the King Louis, and fulfilling in the said place the holy functions of priest, rector in St. Anne's parish, according to the resolution taken December 24th of the preceding year (1754) have transferred from the old church into the new one, first, the remains of the venerable Father Constantine del Halle, heretofore Franciscan AMissionary, who had been killed by the Indians in 1706, in the performance of his holy duties. In the year 1723 these remains had been already transferred into the said old church, and buried under the steps of the altar by our predecessor, Rev. Father Bonaventure Leonard. W'e have deposited them, pro tenmfore, tinder the steps of the altar in the new church, until the lengthening and other improveinents may be made; then we will give him a last sepulture conformable to his dignity and to the miracles performed through his intercession; these miracles are related by many persons worthy to be trusted. Finally, we have transferred also to the new church all the other bodies and bones found in the old one, and we have said a Requiem Mass for the rest of their souls. (Signed) SIMPLE BOCQUET, Priest, Franciscan Missionary. Immediately after the death of Del Halle, Cadillac induced two Franciscans to take charge of the little flock, one of whom remained three years. In 1708 it was decided to build a new church, and in the following year it was erected, proof of which is found in papers deposited with the Department of Marine in Paris. In 1712, at the time of the attack of the Outaganiies, the commandant burned the church lest it should afford a place of refuge to the Indians. About this time, on account of the discouraging condition of affairs, many of the inhabitants left the settlement, and consequently there were several unoccupied houses, one of which was used for church purposes. On June 6, 1721, Pierre Francis Xavier de Charlevoix, a Jesuit missionary, arrived on a visit to the colony, and remained nearly two weeks. Two years later, on May 13, 1723, Father Bonaventure arrived, and within a year he began the erection of a church, which was duly completed and was the first to receive the name St. Anne's. It was situated near the stockade, and was probably the first church located inside the pickets. Both the church and the cemetery then occupied a portion of the property now lying between Griswold and Shelby Streets, on the north side of Jefferson Avenue. 530 MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS.. Concerning priestly life and labor at this time, Father Emanuel Crespel, who visited the settlement in I729, says: In the spring I made a journey to Detroit on the invitation of a brother of our order, who was there on a mission. In seventeen days I reached Detroit, and was received by the priest I went to visit with a warmth which showed the extreme pleasure we experience in meeting one of our countrymen in a distant region; besides, we are brethren of the same order, and quitted our country for the same motive. I was therefore welcome to him on many accounts; nor did he omit any opportunity of convincing me how pleased he was with my visit. He was older than I, and had been very successful in his apostolic labors. His house was agreeable and convenient; it was, as I may say, his own work, and the habitation of virtue. His time which was not employed in the duties of his office was divided between study and the occupations of the field. He had a few books, the choice of which afforded a good idea of the purity of his morals and the extent of his knowledge. With the language of the country he was familiar: and the facility with which he spoke it made him very acceptable to many of the Indians, who communicated to him their reflections on all subjects, particularly religion. Affability attracts confidence, and no one was more deserving of the latter than this good man. He had taught some of the inhabitants the French language; and among them I found many whose good sense and sound judgment would have made them conspicuous even in France, had their minds been cultivated by study. Every day I remained with this man I found new motives to envy his situation. In a word, he was happy, and had no cause to blush at the means by which he became so. In 1733 Father de la Richardie founded the Huron mission at Sandwich. He afterwards went to Montreal, and was succeeded by Father Peter Potier, who as early as 1742 was in charge of a mission among the Hurons on Bois Blanc Island. In June, I747, the Hurons fell out with the French, and Potier returned to Detroit. In I748 friendship was restored, and Fathers Potier and De la Richardie built a church and established a mission among the Hurons at Sandwich. For several years prior to 1761 Father J. B. Sallenauve was in charge of the Sandwich mission, and then Father Potier, who in the interim had been in Detroit, was again at Sandwich. Concerning Father Potier, the Pontiac manuscript says, "The French, who knew and respected the Jesuit Father as a worthy ecclesiastic, considered him as a saint upon earth." He spent much of his time in Detroit, where he died July I6, I78I. His death was occasioned by a fall which fractured his skull. In 1754 Father de la Richardie was again in charge of the Huron mission, which was still at Bois Blanc Island. With the year I749 immigration took a new start, and so great was the increase of the inhabitants in Detroit that a larger church became a necessity; and in 1754 Father Bocquet, who then had charge of the parish, determined that one should be erected. Accordingly, either on the old site, or in its immediate vicinity, just west of the present Griswold Street, and covering a part of Jefferson Avenue, the church was erected. In March of the following year it was consecrated by the Right Rev. Henri Dubreuil de Pontbriand, Bishop of Quebec. He was here the i6th of March, and spent several weeks in the vicinity. It will be borne in mind that, at this period, in addition to the inhabitants inside the stockade, there was a large number of settlers on both sides of the river and on either side of the fort. It was not always safe or convenient for them to attend services at the fort, and therefore as early as 1763, and probably soon after the capitulation of 1760, Jacques Campau, in pursuance of a religious vow, built a small church, about twenty by thirty feet in size, on his farm, now known as the James Campau Farm, or east half of Private Claim 9I. The building stood near the river, and was known in more recent times as the Red Chapel. On May I3, 1787, Father Frechette, for the first time, said mass in it, and the odor of incense mingled with the smell of appleblossoms from the surrounding orchards. The building was burned in August or September, I843. It was doubtless at this church that these services alluded to in the Pontiac manuscript took place: On Sunday, ist of May, about three in the afternoon (the French then returning from vespers), Pontiac, with forty chosen men, appeared at the gate. On the Moon day, the gth of May, the first day of Rogations, according to custom, the curate and all the clergy made a procession out of the Fort very peaceably. The mass was celebrated in the same manner. With regard to the feelings of the Indians towards Pothier, the manuscript says: Father Potier, a Jesuit missionary of the Hurons, who in the quality and by the power he had over them, had brought part of them, particularly the good band, within the bounds of tranquillity, by refusing them the sacrament. We find also in the same document the following interesting item: Thursday, June i6th. It is usual, in places besieged and blockaded, to observe silence, and not on any account to ring the bells of the churches, in order that the enemy might not know the time the people go to church. The bell of the French church of this place had not been rung since the commencement of the siege. The commander having inquired of the curate why the bell was not rung, permitted it to be rung, and it commenced its function by ringing the Angelus. Trustees for the parish of St. Anne's were appointed as early as 1744, and the pews were probably first rented about that time. An old account book in possession of the writer contains this entry: Widow McDougall, Dr. September 28th, 1781, cash paid her seat in the church, i6s. The best known of the older priests was the MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS......~~~~~_ 53I Rev. Gabriel Richard, of the order of Sulpitians. He arrived here on the feast day of Corpus Christi, in June, 1798. He was a man of great catholicity of spirit, much esteemed by both Catholics and Protestants, and for nearly a quarter of a century labored assiduously for the interests of his flock, and the whole city as well. His connection with educational and publishing interests is set forth elsewhere. In I807, on the invitation of Governor Hull and others, he preached several times in the Council House. Although an accomplished French scholar, his English was defective; yet his discourses commanded respect because of the character of the man, and because they were devoid of churchly assumption. During the War of I812 he was imprisoned for a time at Sandwich, because of loyalty to the United States. After his release, during the period of distress that succeeded the war, he was actively engaged in ministering to the necessities of the people. In I823 he had the rare honor, for a priest, of being elected a delegate to Congress; he served until 1825. This is the only instance in the history of the Territory or the State where a clergyman held this position. A short time before his election one of his flock married a second wife, without having obtained a divorce from the first. For this he was excommunicated by Father Richard, and so injurious were the consequences that he sued for damages, and obtained a judgment for $r,II6. Father Richard was unwilling or unable to pay the amount, and was imprisoned in the old jail, remaining there three or four weeks. After he was elected to Congress, Messrs. Louis Beaufait, Charles Rivard, and Joseph Berthelet became his bail, and one evening, about nine o'clock, he was released, and proceeded to Washington, where he faithfully served the Territory. At the time of the first visitation of the cholera he was unselfishly active in affording temporal and spiritual relief to the sick and dying; finally, on September 13, 1832, at 3 A. M., he was himself carried away by the dread scourge. His decease was universally lamented, and both Protestants and Catholics were sincere mourners at the funeral, which took place at 5 P. M. He was buried in a crypt beneath St. Anne's. Beside him, in other crypts, are the remains of Fathers Vanderpoel and I)e Bruyn, Louis Antoine Beaubien, and a sister whose name is unknown. A memorial window, bearing an excellent likeness of Father Richard, occupies a conspicuous place at the left, as you enter the church. It cost $400. The church in which Father Richard first officiated is shown in the view of the city as it was in 1796. It wvas a large building, towering far above the surrounding houses. In the fall of 1799 it was repaired and enlarged at an expense of about $3,000. On June i, I805, it, with the rest of the town, was burned. At this time Rev. John Dilhet was associated with Father Richard. The ruins of the old church, overgrown with weeds, remained on what is now Jefferson Avenue until 1817 or later. After the fire a tent was erected on the Commons, and for a short time services were held therein. Meldrum's warehouse, which stood not far from the foot of the present Woodward Avenue, was next negotiated for, the trustees, on August 27, voting to offer $300 New York currency for the property. Whether they bought it or not does not appear, but for about four years it was occupied by the church. From the Meldrum Warehouse, as early as the first of January, 1809, the services were transferred to Spring Hill Farm, so called, now known as Private Claim 30 in Springwells. This farm was rented of the United States, for $205 per year, by Father Richard. The Government had taken the farm in settlement of its account against Matthew Ernest, who, while collector of customs in Detroit, became a defaulter to the amount of $6,000 or $8,00oo. Father Richard remained on the farm until N.ovember I, i8io, or later, and was so unfortunate that in 18I I the United States had to sue for a portion of the rent. During this period occasional services were held in a chapel built on the Malcher or Church Farm in Hamtramck. It was evidently the congregation which worshiped in this chapel that had the disagreement with Father Richard spoken of in Spalding's " Life of Bishop Flaget." The trouble seems to have grown out of the proposed removal of the old cemetery from the church grounds, through which Jefferson Avenue had been extended. The disagreeing members were also opposed to the building of St. Anne's on the site it now occupies. On February 24, 1817, Bishop Flaget issued a pastoral letter reproving the schismatic members at Detroit and interdicting their church. In order to fully settle the difficulty, the bishop, in company with Reverend Fathers Bertrand and Janvier, and Messrs. Godfroy and Knaggs, left St. Thomas for Detroit on May 15, 1818, They made the entire journey on horseback, and on June I, when within ten miles of Detroit, they were met by a number of persons who escorted them into the city. The bishop soon brought about a reconciliation between the chief members of the congregation on the Melcher Farm, and they agreed on behalf of the congregation to remove their dead from the street and lot, to contribute towards the erection of the new church in Detroit,,and not to speak of the past, but to bury it in oblivion. On his part, the bishop promised to raise the interdict on their church, to permit burials in the cemetery, and to send them a priest once a month. 'he preliminaries of the reconciliation having been satisfac MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. torily adjusted, the bishop determined to render the ceremony of removing the interdict as public and solemn as possible. Accordingly, on Tuesday, the 9th of June, 18i8, he was conducted to their church in grand procession, the discharge of cannon announcing the approaching ceremony, and the music of the regimental band mingling with that of the choristers. Addresses were delivered in English and French. An affecting public reconciliation took place between the schismatics and their pastor, M. Richard, who shed tears of joy on the occasion. A collection of $500 was taken up on the spot, which the bishop considered a substantial omen of a permanent peace." The corner-stone of St. Anne's was laid the same day. Later in the day, while the bishop was returning from a dinner party at General Macomb's, his horses took fright, and he was thrown down the high bank, then existing below what is now Cass Street, receiving a severe injury on the right shoulder from which he never fully recovered. On June 17 the bishop, with Father Bertrand, left in a sailing vessel for Montreal. He returned on July 27, and remained until September 3, when he went up to Sault St. Marie, returning on the I Ith of October. When he arrived he was quite ill, but gradually recovered, and on November I he confirmed two hundred persons. Soon after this he commenced a "spiritual retreat" at the Matcher Farm church, discontinuing it on the I7th for a trip to the River Raisin, and resuming it after his return on December 30. The exercises were abundantly profitable to the people. On April 19, 1819, he again visited the River Raisin, returning in May. On the 29th he took his final departure from Detroit, going by steamer to Erie. The first church on the Malcher Farm was built of logs, and was consecrated May Io, 809. During the year 1834 it was repaired. The following extract from a letter of Rev. Mr. Kundig to Bishop Lefevere, dated January 12, 1857, gives interesting particulars as to its condition at that time: He, Bishop Rese, ordered me to repair the old shabby church, which I did by taking off the casing and shingles. But the night following, February 22d, 1834, the whole concern was, by a great storm, blown to the ground. It had looked as old as if it was Noe's Ark itself. He then put up a new church, he built the additions to the old and worthless house and repaired it, and from that time he took care to have a clergyman remain there. The new church was built by a man named Payee, and was consecrated by Bishop Fenwick. At various times Fathers Bernier, Warlop, Vanderpoel, Kilroy, Maxwell, and Duboix were stationed here. Father Duboix procured a bell for the church in 1848. The building was burned on July 13, I861. Returning to the history of St. Anne's Church, we find that in I798 the use of about an acre of ground was given for a cemetery. Seven years later, on account of the wider streets laid out in rebuilding the city, after the fire of 1805, a new church location became desirable. Accordingly, Father Richard presented a petition asking for a definite grant of the ground the church had been using for a cemetery, and on October 4, I806, the Governor and Judges passed the following: Resolved, that the Roman Catholic Church be built in the centre of the little military square, on section No. r, on the ground adjacent to the burying ground; the said lot fronting on East and West Avenue (Michigan Avenue) two hundred feet wide and running back two hundred feet deep, and bounded on the three sides by three other streets. It will be noticed that no title was conveyed by the above resolution, and the description does not define all the land which was actually conveyed at a subsequent date. About six months after the passage of the resolution, " The Catholic, Apostolic, and Roman Church of St. Anne, of Detroit," was incorporated under a general law for the incorporation of religious societies, passed a few days before. One of the provisions of this law was that trustees could acquire and hold personal property, "slaves excepted;" but no society could hold more than two thousand acres of land at one time, and the property was liable to taxation. The articles of incorporation were drawn up and signed April I2, 1807, and recorded three days later, in Liber 2 of Ieeds, page I49. The following persons were named in the articles as trustees: Antoine Beaubien, Francois Chabert, Gabriel Godfroy, and Jacques Campau. The corporators were Charbert Joncaire, Henry Berthelet, Pierre Desnoyers, Charles Poupard, Joseph Beaubien, Antoine Cecille, Etienne Dubois, Alexis Cerat, Joseph Cote, Presque Cot6, Gabriel Godfroy, and Francis Frerot. On January lI, I817, in consideration of the relinquishment by the church of all right to the property lying within the limits of the then new Jefferson Avenue, the Governor and Judges conveyed to the church certain property which they had previously occupied on Jefferson Avenue, near Griswold, and also the interior triangle of Section I, sixteen lots in the block adjoining on the north, and thirteen lots in Section 9. Under the treaty of Fort Meigs, of September 29, 1817, St. Anne's Church also obtained an undivided half of the six sections of land given by the Indians. This land was located in Monroe County, and was sold about 1840. On March 26, 1834, the Governor and Judges gave a new deed for the interior triangle of Section I and the sixteen lots adjoining on the north, shown on John Farmer's map of 1831. The chief point of difference between this deed and that of 1817 was, that the new deed gave the church the right either to dispose of the property or to erect buildings for any use, instead of exclusively for church purposes. In I841 a brick residence for the bishop, facing Randolph Street, was erected on the property. MISSIONARIES The house was built about an old wooden dwelling. Tradition says that the property.on which the wooden house stood was given to the church to be used as long as the building should remain standing, and that the brick encasement was designed to preserve the inner building. A careful investigation of the deeds fails to afford the slightest evidence upon which to found any such tradition. As to the erection of the church, the following advertisement from the Detroit Gazette of August 19, 1818, gives interesting facts: GlE:Ar 13\ARG.AI! Offered by Gabriel Richard, rector of St. Anne, 200 hard dollars will be given for twenty toises of long stone, of Stony Island, delivered at Detroit, on the wharf of Mr. Jacob Smith, or two hundred and forty dollars, if delivered on the church ground. Ioo barrels of lime are wanted immediately. Five shillings will be given per barrel at the river side, and six shillings delivered on the church ground. It has been said that the stone for St. Anne's was brought in bateaux up the Savoyard Creek, but the above advertisement indicates nothing of the kind, and the late Peter Desnoyers, on two different occasions, told the writer that the statement as to the conveying of the stone up the Savoyard was entirely incorrect. The stone was furnished by J. 13. St. Amour and Iouis Desvalcour. The timber was supplied by Messrs. Young and St. Barnard, and was obtained on Pine River, St. Clair County. It was while this church was in process of erection that Father Richard issued the "shinplasters" which were so extensively counterfeited. It was at first intended to have a row of pillars about the outside of the church, and numbers of them were procured. This plan, however, was reconsidered and abandoned; several of the pillars were finally used in building a porch in the rear of the bishop's residence. The steeples were completed and tinned over in the fall of 1820. While putting on the tin, the workmen used a pot of live coals to heat their irons, and by some carelessness one of the steeples took fire. It was late at night when it was discovered, and one of the firemen, who had been out on a hunt all day, was thoroughly tired out; when aroused and warned to hurry up, he carelessly turned over in bed, saying, "Oh, never mind! It won't burn much till morning; it's all green timber." His careless prophecy proved true, and the old steeple still remains. In 1820 the basement was opened for use. The upper portion of the church was completed and first used December 25, I828. There was placed in it the pulpit and two of the side altars saved from the fire of 1805, and these relics are still preserved. The old bell, with its birthmark of 1766, rescued from that fire, no longer rings the Angelus. but is laid away as a memorial of the past. AND PRIESTS. 533 The size of the church is sixty by one hundred and sixteen feet. Originally there was in the center an octagonal dome, thirty feet in diameter and thirty feet high, and two small cupolas at the rear. The center dome was surmounted by a representation of the sun, on which was a human face, and over it a cock. On the smaller cupolas were representations of the moon and a fish. The center donme and the cupolas were removed in I842. The next year the towers were fully enclosed and the front porch erected In the spring of 1850 the brick extension in the rear was added, and it, with a wing extending out to Bates Street, was used for school purposes, and a school with several hundred pupils was maintained here up to 1864. The changes of the passing years have affected not only the property, but the customs of the church. A curious illustration of past scenes, and of the mingling of the duties of the territorial militia with those of the church militant, half a century ago, is afforded by the following copy of an official letter on record at Lansing: ADJUTANT GENERAL'S OFFICE, DETROIT, May 28th, I820. SIR,By general order of the 2Ist inst., which will be inserted in the next Gazette, the company lately commanded by Captain Beaufait in the second Battalion of the first Regiment, has been consolidated with that commanded by you. It therefore becomes necessary that you should take immediate measures to carry that provision of the General Order into complete effect on or before the first Monday of June next. You are also hereby directed to cause your company to be assembled at 3 o'clock 1i. M1. of that day, at which time the Adg't. and Insp. General will attend in person for the purpose of inspecting the state of their discipline, and of introducing the system of discipline established by law. In the interim you are requested to appear with your company, on the General Parade ground in the rear of this city, on Saturday next at 2 o'clock P..I., with a view to prepare your men to attend as a military escort at the celebration of the anniversary of the institution of the feast of the blessed sacrament of our Lord Jesus Christ. Your obt. serv't, JOHN R. WILLIAMS. To Capt. 7acques Campalu, and to Capt. P. Godfroy, on the sulyect of the consolidation of their companies. A further relic of the olden time is the following advertisement from the Gazette of June 2, 1820, which has reference to the same occasion: NO T I C. E. According to ancient custom, the solemn Procession in commemoration of the llessed Sacrament, commonly called the Lord's Supper, will take place on Sunday next at 5 o'clock i,. At., within the enclosure of the Church of St. Anne. A short address, explanatory of the ceremnony, will be delivered at half past four. Christians of all denominations are welcome. It is expected, however, that they will conform to all rules observed by Caltlolics on such occasions by standing, walking and kneeling. The Military on duty only may remain covered. 534 MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. It is enjoined on all persons to preserve profound silence during the whole ceremony. N. 1B.-A collection will be made, the proceeds of which will be employed in completing the steeples of the Church of St. Anne, and covering them with tin. bell hung untolled and unrung; and instead thereof, men stood upon the street corners, and with crecelle or rattle called the people to prayer. The Rogation days, spoken of in the extract from the Pontiac Manuscript, were publicly observed up to I828, and probably somewhat later. On these days the procession proceeded from St. Anne's, circled about the farms, and blessed and prayed for the fertile fields, while seeds and grain were brought to the altar to receive the priestly blessing. These were the halcyon days of security and peace. The corporation of St. Anne obtained possession of a large amount of land when it was of comparatively little value, and as a natural result is now the wealthiest church organization in Detroit. It has also received at least one valuable gift. On February 15, 1845, Presque Cote, one of the original corporators, deeded to Bishop Lefevere, for the church, Lot No. 6i in Section 2, located on the west side of Woodward Avenue near Lamed Street, and now occupied by the stores of T. A. Parker and James L. ST. ANNE'S CHURCH. Original appearance. In earlier days, this procession on Pentecost, or Whitsunday, was succeeded by the feast of Corpus Christi. On such occasions, almost the entire settlement turned out, and nearly all united in the procession. Priests with lighted candles and acolytes bearing small flags preceded the host, which was held aloft enclosed in the ostentorium, and shielded by a canopy, which was usually borne by four prominent citizens. The highest military officers often assisted in this service; and it was no unusual sight to see Major-General Macomb, of the United States Army, and General John R. Williams, of the Territorial Militia, assist in carrying the canopy. This naturally secured the co-operation of the troops and the militia; and thus, with the booming of cannon and a general parade of soldiers, these occasions possessed uncommon interest. The procession usually formed at St. Anne's, proceeding from thence to the little chapel on the Campau Farm, or to similar chapels on the Lafontaine and Godfroy Farms on the west of the town, and and to other shrines temporarily erected. These public processions were kept up until about I825. At this same period, during the last week of Lent, the church ST. ANNE'S ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH. MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. 535 Fisher. The deed, which is recorded in Liber I6, page 157, provided that the property could never be alienated, sold, or rented away from the corporation, and imposed the further condition that forty masses annually be said for the repose of the souls of the father and mother of the grantor, his brother Joseph and sister Madeline; and ten masses yearly for himself, after his decease. This property affords a yearly income of about $4,000. In I883 the estimated value of the whole property belonging to the church was $250,000. In I88o the church sold a portion of the property fronting two hundred and fifty feet on Larned Street and extending on Randolph to Congress Streets, for $ioo,ooo, and five years later they sold the remainder of the entire square to the Bagley estate for the sum of $113,880. The last services in the old building were held on June 27, 1886, and the following week it was torn down. Prior to this last sale several lots on the south side of Howard, between Eighteenth and Nineteenth Streets, had been purchased at a cost of $ti,500, and upon these a church, chapel and parochial residence was erected at a cost of about $1oo,ooo. Services were first held in the chapel on June 28, I886. The church was completed and blessed on October 27, I887. It seats 1,400. The old church seated eight hundred and fifty, and in I880 there was an average attendance of five hundred and fifty. At that time, the priest's salary was $700; the expenses for the choir, $700, and for sexton, $300. The total annual expenses were $3,500, and the receipts from pew rents $2,500. The parish contains eight hundred families, and includes all French inhabitants west of Woodward Avenue. The following is a list of the priests whose names appear in St. Anne's records. The date of the first and last entry by each is given. It will be noticed that several must have been here only on a visit, their names appearing but once: I. Constantine del Halle, Priest, Franciscan Missionary. February 14, 1704; April 24, I706. 2. Dominique de la Marche, Priest, Franciscan Missionary, First Lecturer in Theology. August I6, 1706; July 29, 1708. 3. Cherubim Deneau, Priest, Franciscan Missionary. January 14, I709; May II, 1714. 4. Hyacinthe Pelfresne, Priest, Franciscan Missionary. August 20, 1715; March 25, 1718. 5. Calvarin, Priest of the Foreign Missions, VicarGeneral of the Mission. March I, 1718; August 3, I7i8. 6. Jean Mercier, Priest of the Foreign Mission. Officiated at baptism. August 3, 1718. 7. De Thaumur, Vicar-General, Superior of the Mission of the Holy Family. August 3, 1718; March 25, 1728. 8. Antoine de Levis, Priest, Franciscan Missionary. December 12, 1717; March 9, 1722. 9. Bonaventure Leonard, Priest, Franciscan Missionary. June 28, 1722; July 8, I757. Io. P. Daniel, Priest, Franciscan Missionary. August 3I, 1735; June 19, 1738. II. Lamoirinie, Jesuit Missionary. November I, I738; April 13, 1739. I2. Jean Baptiste de la Riviere, Jesuit Missionary, witness of a wedding. January 27, I737. 13. C. de la Richardie, Jesuit Missionary. October 19, I741; August 17. 1743. I4. De Gasmar, Jesuit Missionary, officiated at Baptism. September I, 1743. 15. Simple Bocquet, Franciscan Missionary, Vicar General. September I8, I754; January 14, 1781. I6. Louis Coller, Chaplain for the Troops. January 14, 1760. 17. S. Payet, Rector. September 30, 1782; July 4, I785. 18. Pierre Hubert, Vicar-General; afterwards Bishop of Quebec. October 31, 1784; December I, 1784. I9. Pierre Frechette, Vicar-General. November 29, 1785; August 4, I789. 20. Dufaux, Vicar-General; died in Sandwich, buried in the church. August 30, I793; July 14, I798. 21. Edmund Bastie, Vicar-General. November 3, 1794; November 3, 1797. 22. Michael Levadoux, Vicar-General. August I6, I796; June 4, i8oi. 23. Gabriel Richard, Vicar-General. October 23, 1797; September 13, I832. 24. John Dilhet, Rector. August I8, 1803; June I, I805. 25. Marchand, Rector; died in Sandwich, buried in the church. June 4, 1809; July 3, I823. 26. R. Janvier, Rector. March 4, 1814; I822. 27. R. Francois, Rector. May i, 1815. 28. Fran~ois Vincent Badin, Vicar-General. June r, 1815; i828. 29. P. D. Kelley, Rector. July 2, I8I5. 30. Hermant. I826; 1827. 31. Patrick Kelley. 1829; I831. 32. Jean Baptiste Hatchey, Priest. September 4, I830. 33. F. Baraga, Vicar-General. September 15, 1832. 34. Francis Vincent. I832; I842. 35. P. Lastrie, Rector. June 2, I833. 36. Vanderpoel. May I, I834. 37. Peter Kindekins, Vicar-General. October, 1842; May, I848. 38. P. Hennaert, Vicar-General. May, 1848; July, 1853. 39. C. Moutard. July, 1853; October, 1856. 40. B. J. Soffers. October, I856; October, 187I. 536 MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. 41. T. Anciaux. October, I871; October, 1885. 42. Peter Grand. July i8, i886. Holy Trinity Church. This society was the second Catholic parish organized in Detroit. Its first house of worship occupied the northwest corner of Michigan Avenue I839. In August, 1849, the building was moved to the northeast corner of Porter and Sixth Streets, where it did good service until June, 1856, when it was demolished to make room for a brick edifice, which was consecrated October 29, i866. This building will accommodate I,I34 persons, cost $30,000, and was extensively repaired in i870 at HOLY TIINITY CA'THOI.IC CHLIUCH. and Bates Street, and was purchased of Alpheus White, in August, I834. The building was originally owned and used by the First Protestant Society, and a picture from a sketch made December 21, 1840, by Robert T. Elliott, is given in connection with the history of that organization. The steeple was added and other alterations made in August, a further cost of about $1o,ooo. In 1880 the value of the church property, aside from the school, was $50,000. The priest's residence, built in I85I, cost $2,000, and with the lot was valued, in i880, at $5,ooo. Three services of mass are held each Sabbath, the average attendance at each in 1880 being respectively 1,200, 800, and I,ooo. The choir cost MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. 537 - $700 per year, and the total yearly expenses were $4,000. The pew rents amounted to about $3,400. In March, 188i, an elegant white bronze tablet, at a cost of $375, was erected in memory of the seventeen acolytes and members of the church who perished in the Mamie disaster, which occurred on the Detroit River, July 22, 1880. The parish, in I88I, embraced the territory bounded by Third Street, Grand River Avenue, Eleventh Street, Na December, 1848; from January, I849, to August, 1850, mass was celebrated by priests from the bishop's residence; Rev. M. F. 1' Etourneau, August, 1850, to March, I851; Rev. Patrick Y. Donahoe, March, 1851, to December, 1852; Rev. Francis H. Peeters, December, 1852, to February, I869; Rev. A. F. Bleyenbergh, February, 1869, to December, 1883. In December, 1883, Rev. Robert Doman was placed in charge of the parish. Rev. J. Savage became assistant priest on July 24, 1870, and was -- -- -- ---- TFE.IETMORIAIL T.\IUI.ET. Design furnished by J. II. Eakins, founder of tho Detroit Bronze Company. tional Avenue, and the river, and numbered eight hundred families. The regular clergymen have been as follows: Rev. Bernard O'Cavanagh, I834-1839; Rev. Martin Kundig, July, 1839, to May, 1842; Rev. Lawrence Kilroy, January, I841, to October, 1847; Rev. John Kenny, March to June, 1843; Rev. M. Gannon, July, 1843, to May, 1844; Rev. W. Quinn, July to October, I844; Rev. E. Dillon, May, 1846, to December, 1847; Rev. John Farnan, October, I847, to February, 1848; Rev. M. E. E. Shawe, March to 53 succeeded by Rev. Fathers James Byrne, Peter Leary, P. A. Baart, and D. Coyle. In I887 Rev. James Savage succeeded Rev. Mr. Doman. St. Afary's Church (German). The first Roman Catholic services in German were conducted by Father Martin Kundig in St. Anne's Church, on Sunday, between 8 and o1 o'clock A. M. in October, 1833. In 1836 Rev. Anton Koop conducted the services, and in i837 he was succeeded by Rev. Clemens Hammer, who remained 538 MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. till August, 1840, when Martin Kundig again took charge of the flock. He soon made preparations 1 remained until 1861. Fathers T. Majens, J. Nagle, and L. Cloessens, of the Redemptorist order, were then in charge for several years. In - 866 Father F. N. Van Emstede was in charge; in 1867 and I868 Rev. J. B. Hespelein, and from I868 to 1872 Rev. John D. Dyker. In May, 1872, the church was placed under the care of the Franciscan Fathers, and in I877 an elegant residence was erected for their use on Croghan Street, adjacent to the church, at a cost of $20,000; the lot cost $3,000. 1 S.ci?,.'iRfilf'd , ,,.=.r;,,,,, _-_TE:i --— ~-i ----I-;i-_ --- ---— ' --- —-- -- ST. MARY'S CATHOLIC CHURCH. (Original building ) FRANCISCAN FATHERS' HOUSE, ST. MARY'S CHURCH. for a church building on the southeast corner of St. Antoine and Croghan Streets, and on June Io, I841, the corner-stone was laid. The church was consecrated June 29, 1843. It was 60 by I25 feet; and had 231 pews, with seating capacity for about i,ooo persons. Its original cost was about $I5,000. The value of the church, priest's house, and lot, in 1880, was $5o,ooo. Fathers Skolla and Godez succeeded Father Kundig in 1842, and on the completion of the church Rev. Mr. Koop was put in charge of the parish. In January, I847, Rev. Martin tiasslinger took charge, and the society was incorporated on September 28, 1847. In 1853 Rev. A. Schefflar became the priest, and in 1856 or 1857 he was succeeded by Father Bernick, who ST. ANNE'S CATHOLIC CHURCH, MISSIONARIES AND PRIESTS. 539 In i880 the total yearly expenses of the chi were $io,ooo, of which amount $500 was for choir. About $3,000 was received from the pt The average attendance was eight hundred. I hundred and seventy-five families belong to parish, which in I88I included all the Germans tween Russell and Third Streets, and south of line of Napoleon Street. During 1884 the old cht was torn d(own, on August 16, 1,',5. the new chu was dedicated. It seats 1,200, and cost al $65,000. SS. Pc/tr and Pain's Church. The corner-stone of this church, on the north, corner of Jefferson Avenue and St. Antoine Str was laid on June 29, I844. and the church was finished and consecrated four years after, on June 29, I848. Archbishop Eccleston, of Baltimore, preached in the morning, and the vesper service was conducted by Archbishop Kendrick, of St. Louis. While Bishop Lefevere was in charge of -i the diocese it was called the - Cathedral. It is built of brick, is - eighty feet in width, one hundred and sixty feet in length, and seventy-two feet high. It seats i,ooo, and cost $30,000. A chime of bells costing $4,ooo, presented by Mrs. Ann Keveny, was consecrated on April 15, I879. The priest's house, next to the Cathedral, was built in 1858, and cost $7,000. The property in I880 was estimated as worth $80,o00. The first pastor was Father MI. E. E. Shawe. He served from 1848 to 1853, with Father John Farnan as assistant. Father Shawe was followed by Father Duffy. After him came Fatl I Iennaert, who had charge most of the time twenty-three years, Fathers Hennesy and Gone being associated with him a part of the tir After Father Hennaert came Father Ernest V I)yke, who remained one year, and was succeec by Father O'I)onovan, who remained until June 1877. The Jesuit Fathers then took charge, Fat] Mieje serving until June, i880, and being follow by Fathers Walshe and Frieden. The number of families worshiping at this chu in I880 was about three hundred, representing thousand five hundred persons. The average tendance at the earliest mass was fully I,000. 1 parish is bounded on the east by Dubois Street, the west by Randolph Street, on the north by Gra and Adams Avenues, and on the south by the river. The church expenses for I880 were $3,500. St. Joseph's Church. This church was originally located on a part of a large triangular tract of land owned by the society on the south side of Gratiot Avenue, between Riopelle and Orleans Streets. It was a wooden building, forty-four by one hundred feet in size, cost $5,000, and seated five hundred people. It was consecrated May 25, 1856. After the completion of a new church the old one was moved to Jay Street, and used for school purposes. On August 3, I88I, it was partially destroyed by fire. In I863 a residence for the priest was erected on I1! ~ ~.............. ------ --- -ii~i-~~ CH-IURC N F\N RININ CATHED).RAL OF~ SS. PETER AND) PAxUL. Orleans Street, at a cost of $5,000. In August, 1870, the foundations of the present church building were laid. It is situated on the southeast corner of Orleans and Jay Streets, on a lot facing one hundred feet on Jay Street, and extending two hundred and thirty feet on Orleans through to Antietam Street. The edifice is built of stone, and is seventy by two hundred feet in size. It was completed, excepting the tower, and consecrated on November I6, I873. It will seat 1,500. The cost, without the tower, was about $125,o00. After ten years, in the fall of 1883, the erection of the tower was begun; it is estimated to cost $18,ooo. The value of the church property in I880 was $I30.000. The total yearly expenses, aside from interest, was $3,000, of which $i,ooo was for the AIC 'fT hT A 1 TC A XTT-1 DPT'ITr4 5 40 111 no1W15 \1 priest and $550 for the choir. The pew rents amount to $5,500 per year. The parish numbers one thousand two hundred families. At the six o'clock morning mass there is an average attendance of 500; at half past seven, I,500; at nine o'clock, for children, I,ooo. In 1856 a mutual benefit society was established rX.LN V-1 X~. As". cost $io,ooo, and the original structure $I5,ooo. It was enlarged in 1872 at a cost of $30,ooo, and now seats' 1,200. The lot for the priest's house cost $9,050, and the house itself, which was built in 1867, cost $7,000. The property was valued in I880 at $ioo,ooo. The salary of the priest was $700; the choir cost $450, and the total yearly expenses were $3,400. The yearly receipts from pew rents were $2,800. Mass is celebrated twice each Sabbath, with an average attendance at each of 900 persons. The first priest, Rev. J. A. Hennesey, served until his decease on October ii, I875. He was succeeded by Rev. Charles Reilly, D. D., who continues in charge of the parish, which includes all north of the alley between Columbia and Elizabeth Streets, and is bounded on the west by Grand River Avenue, and on the east by Gratiot Avenue. St. Vincent de Paul. This church is located on the east side of Fourteenth Street, between Dalzelle and Marantette Streets. The building was con ()ORIG(;INA. S. JOSEPH'S CHURCHi AND PRIEST'S HOUSE. in connection with the church, the members of which receive $5 a week in case of sickness, and in case of death the funeral expenses are paid. The parish includes all the German-speaking Catholics east of Randolph Street. The priests have been: 1856-1859, Rev. Francis Van Campenhaudt; spring to fall of 1859, Rev. John A. Koenig; fall of 1859 to 186, Rev. Charles Chambille; 1861, Rev. A. Durst; 1862 to -, Rev. J. F. Friedland. St. Anthony's Church is located on the Gratiot Road, just outside the city limits. The building cost $6,000, and was completed and blessed on July 5, 1857. It seats 300, and the average attendance at early mass in i880 was 300. The total yearly expenses were $1,075. The names of the various priests have been: 1857 to August, i858, Rev. Leopold Panlonski; 1859, Rev. J. A. Koenig; i860, Rev. P. Nagel; November, I860, to January, 1864, Rev. August Durst; January, 1864, to October 9, 1867, Rev. J. F. Friedland. Rev. P. Andre commenced his term in 1867, and is still in charge in I884. St. Patrick's Church. This church, located on the southwest corner of Adelaide and John R. Streets, was consecrated on March 17, 1862. The lot Sr. JOSFI'l's I \( 1X 11C ('II'K(CIt. ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCHES. 54I secrated December 2, I866. The lot cost $2,900, and the church about $i6,ooo. It contains two hundred pews and will accommodate 800 persons. During I887 an addition was made to the building which cost $6,500, and increased the sittings to 1,300. It was first used in December, I887. The priest's house, built in I866, cost $4,800, and the lot $3,000. In 1880 the church property, exclusive of the school, was worth $28,000. The parish then contained 1,1oo families, and included all Catholics west of Eleventh Street and National Avenue to Twenty-sixth Street, and all south of Grand River Avenue. Mass was said three times on Sunday, with an average attendance at each service of 900. Rev. A. F. Bleyenbergh, the first priest, took charge in December, 1866, and left in February, I869. He was succeeded by Rev. M. Willigan, who left in the fall of 1871, and was succeeded by Rev. E. Van Pamel, who remained until June I, 1877, when Rev. M. O'Donovan took charge. He was succeeded July I, I886, by Rev. J. G. Doherty. Streets, and was consecrated December 8, I867. It is of brick, fifty by one hundred and ten feet in size, and cost $Io,ooo. It will seat 900 persons, ST. PATRICK'S CATHOLIC CHURCH. - and there is an average attendance at each service of mass of about 400. Value of property aside from school in I881, $I5,000. The parish extends from Dubois Street to Connor's Creek and includes all south of Gratiot Avenue. In I880 the salary of the priest was $700; the yearly expense of the choir $300; and the total expenses $I,500. The priest's house cost $2,000. The priests have been: I867 to 1877, Rev. G. E. M. Limpens; 1877 to I88i, Rev. J. C. Pulcher; I88i to 1887, Rev. J. Savage; 1887-, Rev. James Wheeler. St. Boniface Church. This congregation was organized in the fall of I869, and for fourteen years met in the chapel of their school building, on the west side of Thirteenth Street near Michigan Avenue. It seated 400, and in 1880 there was an average attendance of fully that number. The income from pew rents in the same year was $2,000. The total church expenses were $3,000. The priest's house, of brick, was erected in 1873, at a cost of $6,000. The first priest, Rev. A. Kullman, remained until October, 1872. He was succeeded by Rev. B. J. Wermers. In I880 there were two hundred families in the parish, which included all the German Catholics west of Third Street. During 1882 and 1883 the society erected a church on the southeast corner of High and Thirteenth Streets. The corner-stone was laid on August I3, 1882, and. the church was consecrated August I9, 1883. The building seats 600, cost about $30,000, and the lots in 1883 were valued at $5,000. I _ ST. ANTIIONY'S Grc'.l'AN CATHOLIC CHURCH. Our Lady of Help. This church is located on the west side of Elmwood Avenue, between Larned and Congress 542 ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCHES. St. A/bert's Church. This parish was organized in 1870. The church is on the west side of St. Aubin Avenue between Winter and Fremont Streets, and was consecrated on July 14, 1872. The lot cost $2,000 and the church $II,000. Itseated 1,200, and the average east by Randolph Street, on the west by Third Street, and it extends to the river. The salary of:he priest is $700, the cost of the choir $I,ooo, and total yearly expenses $4,000. From pew rents $2,300 are yearly received. Rev. Ernest Van Dyke has been in charge since the church was first organized. The estimated value of the church property in I880 was $35,000. St. Joachim's Church (French), formerly Church of the Sacred Heart. The first building of this congregation was blessed on June 11, 1875, and was on the north side of Fort Street,between Chene Street and Joseph Campau Avenue. The lot cost $1,150, and the building $4.000. It seated 300. In 1882 the name was changed to St. Joachim. lDuring I886 a new church was erected on the northwest corner of Fort and Chene Streets. The lot cost $5,ooo, and the building $40,000. It seats i,ooo, and was consecrated on June 13, I886. Rev. M. L. Laporte, %'; the first priest, was succeeded on October 2, I885, by Rev. J. M. Dangelzer. The parish includes all French Catholics east of Woodward Avenue to Connor's Creek. Church of the Sacred Heart (German). The brick church of this congregation is on the southwest corner of Prospect and Grove Streets. It cost $15,ooo, and was consecrated June 27, I875. It seats 8oo, and in 880 there was an average attendance of 400 at mass, The total yearly expenses ST. VINCENT DE PATUL CATHOLIC CHURCH AND PRIEST'S HOUSE. attendance in 1880 was 750. The parish includes all Poles in the city east of Woodward Avenue. The priest's house, built in 1872, cost $1,600, and his salary is $700. The expense of the choir in I880 was $420 and the total church expenses $2,400. The church property was then valued at $ 5,ooo0. Tne several priests of the parish have been: 1871-1873, Rev. Simon Wieczorek; 1873-1875, Rev. Theodore Gieryk; 1875-1879, Rev. A. Dombrouski; 1879-I882, Rev. John Wollouski; I882 -I886, Rev. D. H. Kolasinski; 1887- Rev. V. Bronikowski. The new church opened for service on July 4, 1885, seats 2,400, and cost about $80,ooo. Owing to dissensions among the congregation, it was entirely closed during the latter half of i886 and the first half of 1887. St. Aloysius (Pro-Cathedral). The building occupied by this congregation, originally built for the Westminster Presbyterian Church, is located on the east side of Washington Avenue, near State Street. It was bought by Bishop Borgess in the spring of 1873 for $25,000; $I 2,000 additional were spent in improvements, and it received the name of St. Aloysius and was opened on August 24, I873. The priest's house, which was bought at the same time as the church, cost $i 5,ooo0. The church seats 728, and in I880 there was an average attendance of 400 at each mass. The parish is bounded on the north by the alley between Columbia and Elizabeth Streets, on the CATHOLIC CHURCH OF OUR IADY OF HELP. of the church in I880 were $1,300, and about $I,800 was received from pew rents. The cost of the choir was $240. There were then 275 families in the parish. Rev. Eugene Butterman, O. S. F., the first ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCHES 543 priest, remained until 1878, when he was succeeded by Rev. David Kersting, O. S. F. The parish in i880 included all Germans living north of Napoleon Street and between Third and Russell Streets. The priest's house was built in i875, __ costing about __ $2,000. The value =.. of the church property in 88o, aside from the school, was $20,000. Road. The Redemptorist Fathers, who were in charge, soon obtained a lot on the southwest corner of Dix Road and Grand Junction Avenue in Springwells, and on July 17, I88I, the church, costing $5,000, was consecrated. It seats._......._ = 850 people. A house for the priest — __= -_:- - was built at the -- -.-. - same time. The St. Wenceslaus' Church. This society includes all the Bohemians in the city. The church, a wooden structure, is located on the north side of Leland Street, between Beaubien and St. Antoine Streets; it cost $4,000, and. seats about 200. It = was consecrated in 1874. The lot was given by the executors of the Van ' Dyke estate. The society began with sixty families, and in I880 there was an average attendance at mass of 250 persons. Father Tichy, the first priest in charge, remained till 1877, and was succeeded by Rev.Wenceslaus Tillek, who remained till March, i879. From that time there was no priest in charge until April 26, 1884, when Rev. W. Koerner was appointed. expenses in i88o were $550. parish includes all of Springwells as far east as Twentysixth Street. In I887 the following fathers had charge of the parish: Rev. Terence Clarke, Rev.D.Mullane,and Rev. C. Laffneur. St. Cassimer's Church. The church and school of this society occupy a brick building on the southwest corner of Twenty-third and Myrtle Streets. The six lots owned by the society cost $2,330. The building cost $7,670, and was consecrated April 29, 1883. Rev. Paul Gutowski, the first priest, was still serving in 1884, and the school in the same building was taught by three Polish Franciscan Sisters. The parish includes all Polish Catholics living west of Woodward Avenue. ST. BONIFACE CATHOLIC CHURCH. The yearly St. lionaventure Church and Monastery. This establishment, under the management of the Capuchin Fathers, is located on the east side of Mt. Church of JMost Holy Redeemer. Elliott Avenue, opposite the entrance to Mt. Elliott This parish began church services in March, I880, Cemetery. The grounds embrace about four acres. in a hall over P. Ratigan's grocery on the River The Fathers arrived on May 8, I883, and tempo - -~ -~ - - 1 1 ' I I-IT TI l -1T 1 T/- 1 C A XT7-N TN TI-N. T- T' 544 KOMAN (A 1 -HU)LI L L ^n. — Di 3nur D L. AINL 1UtILOO. rarily occupied a residence formerly connected with Street, near St. Antoine Street, and on November Mt. Elliott Cemetery. On July 29, 1883, the corner- i, 1884, it was blessed and set apart for their use. Rev. W. Hendrickx took charge on November 9....... — " " r During 885 a brick front, costing $4,300, was added to the old building, and on July I9 it was dedicated. It seats 275. St. Elizabeth's Chuzrch. This parish was organized in November, 1884, 3 5 Be. - and includes all Germans between Dequindre Street iand Elmwood Avenue and Hunt and Hale Streets. The lots of the society, eight in number, on the '?-':-;'~~"~ 1southeast corner of Fremont Street and McDougall [{ i'*' X;11- - 'Avenue, were donated. The building cost $6,ooo0, A':'... -..::!:i;;:::i.:/i was dedicated June 21, 1885, and seats 300. The -. ----:'; 'a,^ i.. lower part of the building is used for school purposes, and the upper part as a church. Rev. A. Swenson, for eleven years assistant pastor of St. Joseph's Church, was the first pastor, and is still in charge. St. Charles' Church. This church is located on Field Avenue, near Champlain Avenue. The two lots cost $700, and 2Di t the building $i,5oo. It was dedicated May 15, 1887, and is under the charge of Rev. W. Hendrickx.: —7b a,-.Grotto of the Bllessed Virgin Mary. (c tt7 4hEcO ()ne of the most attractive, and for this country most peculiar, structures connected with church life is the grotto erected "in memory of the apparition ST. Al.l.irT'S CAT1r OI.mI ( Cii'R(u stone of one of their buildings was laid. It is of brick, one O. hundred and fifty feet square, '...... and includes a church forty-five by one hundred and ten feet in size, fronting on Mt. Elliott Avenue, and also a chapel The church will seat 500. It was consecrated July 14, 1884. The monastery in rear of the church will accommodate thirty persons. The cost of the two structures was about $75,00o. Church of Our Lady of Sorrows. This society is composed of Belgians and Hollanders. They bought, for $5,ooo, the old Salem Lutheran Church, on Catherine ST. ALOYSIUS PRO-CATHEDRx\L AND PRIEST' S HOUSE. RO.',IAN CATHOLIC CI-URCItIl'. at Lourdes." It is near the Church of the Assumption, in the township of Hamtramck, about seven miles from Detroit on the Gratiot road. It was built through the exertions of Rev. Father A. Vandendriessche, who has been in charge of the parish since 1851. The grotto is located at the end of an avenue of trees nearly I,ooo feet long, planted through the same zeal that caused the grotto to be reared. The entire cost of the structure is estimated at $6,000, though much of the work has been gratuitously performed. It was begun by the blessing of the ground, on the last Sunday of May, I88i, and just a year from that time mass was said for the first time. Within the grotto, ten feet of the wall on either hand are occupied by four rows of massive stones, all dressed to the square, the face of each stone bearing an emblem of the church or of the Virgin. They are also inscribed with the names of various deceased priests. On each of the stones in the ceiling will be engraved the name of one of the popes, with the date of his death, and the name of the donor of the stone. At the base of the arch is a narrow projection or cornice of stone, bearing on its sides the inscriptions: "Hail, Mary, full of grace; the Lord is with S-ullSHOPS AND DIOCESES. 545 thee "; "Holy Mary, mother of God, pray for us sinners," the words being separated by stars. On the rear cornice is the word "sanctus" thrice repeated. T'he floor is of marble. ROMAN CATH()OLIC BIS(HOPS ANI) DIOCESES. A diocese was first created for New France on June 3, 1658, and Francis de ILaval (le Montmorency k t1 I I1 I 4 A, t Sr i eLAB+/o> ^: -^. AG^ a g7 / t R gzaD ^c^!^,./,. p Wt.,.l~t~r;~f C~f~e~ ~..,.',... fim^- ^^ ^*. y Zr:.. — L^- 0 r1 4 u. W;L:j, " ~-^ /..~z twl- '?" /7 6r y,g gct? vA / < d/ -y Ze 4 zn 6 C Cr4, j - Ax -gt. Xay^X -7^-c /'~,-~ $, a~~~fiFa0C+Z Ma'^,4 tSrt A 6 a ^ /t ~2~ d//4c64/6 t#llccvrcg.W OSYL/ CCG S e'd,&6 ' -vv~f t? fX~y tZ < < gew (/t/e/ /; *.y/f v ', 6 -z 7 4/94 iM^^ Ao^/'^ Gc f f ARTICLES- OF INO RaORA/Tt PAG 2 -t 7t/z* *d//X xu {C s.rc[6 pl A-s Rh ^ w ty t ~ ' @ C C-,t ^ ffiq; ZCe &'v M2.- 'te _ R 4 ARTICLES OF INCORPORATION, I AGE 2. Ls,6lt /? /- / q-< Aot /^e^^/^e^^y^ e^ c^^AJc<^wf^ t^ ^y ^r '" WAS 3/-' a^^^^w~Z- - ^. ARTICLES OF INCORPORATION, PAGE 3. ^~^^~e j^'X^ ^^<-^-~~tl,~~-~~ ccs 6>c CL~fe~ C ^ J^/^zy^ '^ wS ^ C rzT ^'/e^~c ^^i^ /^^ - /$~~~f/""l ~ (/A^.'^^-^ ~-^ M"'-U~:e^^.^IC ^ 2W^ ~~~~/L~ /3^^^Q2 J^ ^^ ^^^ f^^IRTILE OFICOPRAINP:H3 L5621 THF113: ELIIIODJ8Tf sPISCO5AL63 ----- ~~563 ~~~~~~~ ~~~~~~~~~~7 7 e m 0212 J p~~~~B~~~~ic~s. ZaZ?~ 9y-nt3 j_~~ c~-I) ~jPi~~~~~8-,b" ez-L, ~ CY-c h~/y/-: e-) I -^^^ ",/", zepz 9, cCA~f~-2 I ARTICLES OpI TNJCORPORA~rrON P..,,7, as trustees. Robert Abbott, Philip Warren, Jerr ean, Edv in W. Goodrin, Seth L. Papineau, Robert P. Lwis, James Kapple, Timothy urphy, and.Joseph Dornal(. At et n eeetilt, held October 30, 1822, it as e,,/,,1 b'elt.eohn ImsPP,.i John Farmer, 1. F. H. Witherell n Ia mN o d ib e * \f ~pltt1 P l y t ih e v a c a n c y oc c a s io n e d ytt anrda ad!i, JVsep'I Donald, Seth I,. pineau, and l:i \. (;oodSlhin. In September, 1822 Alfred Brunson d Samuel Baker were appointed to Detroit Circuit. Coner ing his stay in Detroit, r. Brunson gives this fhe house h tied otsith, his sheoI raented had been occupied by tlhc India black_ hpansw e in/tl fS/.!'amrnabas's I 1S//s1/,. This mission was inaugurated July 15, 1883, on Grand River Avenue near Sixteenth Street. Their chapel, on the corner of Grand River Avenue and Fourteenth Street, was first used on October 14, I883. The lot and building cost nearly $3,000. The mission was originally under the care of Rev. S. V. Frisbie, and Rev. G. Mott \Villiams. On January i, 1884, it was placed in charge of Rev. Paul Ziegler. ST. GEORGE'S CHURCH. Formerly the Anglo-Catholic Church. St. George's Church, formerly Holy Trinity. The society known as Holy Trinity was established May i, 1876, in St. Andrew's Hall. It then moved to a store on Fort Street West, near Twentieth Street, and there, on July 18, I876, the pastorate of W. R. Tillinghast began. On July 29, 1877, the society moved to a building on the northeast corner of Fourteenth Avenue and Howard Street. The lot cost $I,500, and the church and furnishing about $4,500. The building seats 600. It was badly damaged by fire on May 28, but ST. LUKE'S MEMORIAI. PROTESTANT EPISCOPAL CHAPEL. St. Luke's Memorial Chapel is located on the grounds of St. Luke's Hospital, just west of the main building. It is of brick, cost $7,ooo, and was consecrated February 27, 188I, the anniversary of the birthday of the wife of C. C. Trowbridge. It was erected by Mr. Trowbridge as a tribute to her memory, and is an elegant and substantial testimonial. both of the worth of the THE PROTESTANT El dead, and of the wisdom that remembers the dead by doing good to the living. It is designed to 'ISCOI'AL CIURCHES. 591 a church was erected, which, with the lot, cost $8,ooo. The building was dedicated May 13, 1883. with a sermon by Rev. George Worthington. On January I, I882, it was placed in charge of Rev. G. Mott Williams. Sf. Josef h's lCemorzia Chapfel. This chapel is located on the northeast corner of Woodward and Medbury Avenues, and cost about $9,oo0. The lot was donated and the chapel erected by Mrs. IL. R. Medbury. It was consecrated July 9, I884. The rectors have been: Rev. W. J. Spiers, November, I884, to February, I886, and Rev. B. Hamilton since. 7'Trini/' Church. (Extinct.) This society was incorporated June 25, I838. It worshiped in the old capitol, and in 1839 reported forty-three communicants, with Rev. Richard Bury as rector. It existed only a year. St. JTark's Chunch. (Extn-zzc.) This enterprise w a s commenced as a mission in rented rooms on Twentv-fourth Street, near Mlichigan Avenue, in August, 1873, by Rev. Mr. Lightner, then in charge of Grace Church. After t\v o months' labor, Mr. Lightner transferred the work to Rev. E. McGee. Under the supervision of MIr. McGee two lots on the southwest corner of.I..s.cPA CFIURC. Twenty-third and Ash ORIGINAL ST. MATTHEW'$S P. E. CHt-ICH. accommodate the inmates of the hospital, and others in that neighborhood, and will seat 125. Services were conducted by the chaplain of the hospital, Rev. August Bush, until his death in May, I883, and since then by various clergymen. St. 7 allef/ew's C/hurch (W(Colored). The cong'r'eation t h1 u s l l (lesignated lirst met for worship, in I847, in an old 1a building on Fort Street, ST. MIATTHEW'S west of Beaubien Street, previously occupied by the African M. E. Church. The Society remained there until their church, on the southeast corner of Congress and St. Antoine Streets, was completed. This was built in the fall of I85r, but being encumbered by debt, it was never consecrated. Services were conducted by Rev. W. C. Monroe until I859. Rev. Mr. King then served the church for a brief period, and as early as April, 1859, Rev. S. V. Berry was in charge. The church had no members, as such, because it was not fully organized. Many of those who attended held membership in other parishes. The present BIishop of the Island of Hayti, James Holly, attended this church. In 1864 the building was sold to the Hebrew cohgregation, Shaary Zedec. A portion of the avails was invested in a lot on the southwest corner of St. Antoine and Elizabeth Streets, on which, in 1883, 1r ~sr~y. v W~L~ UII11"IKL.. Streets were purchased at, I ST. JOSEPH'S MEMORIAL P. E. CHAPEL. 592 ANGLO-CATHOLIC AND REFORMIED EPI'SCOPAL CHURCHES. a cost of $950, and a brick chtrrch, costing $2,500, with one hundred sittings, was erected. The society was fully organized April 22, and incorporated on May a, 1874. Mr. McGee left in 1876, and was succeeded by Rev. Mr. Rudd, who remained only about six months. Rev. G. E. Peters then served for a short time, an I in 1 877 services were conducted by a lay reader. O.i February 14, 1879, the society transferred the property to Emanuel Reformed Episcopal Church; it was subsequently returned to the Protestant Episcopal Church, and on May 25, i880, was sold to a society styled St. John's Evangelical Lutheran Church. Sf. Andzrew's Mission. This mission is located on the northwest corner of Fourth and Putnam Avenues. The lots cost $2,203 and the building $2,000. It will seat 400. It was opened January 17, I886, under the charge of Rev. A. A. W. Hastings. BISHOPS, DIOCESES, AND CONVENTIONS. When the diocese of Michigan was created, a canon of the church provided that any diocese with six presbyters might elect a bishop. The Episcopalian Church in this region had been classed as mission ground, but it was decided to create the Diocese of Michigan, and on September Io, I832, this was done. In 1833 the standing committee voted to put the diocese under the care of Bishop Mcllvaine of Ohio. At the convention of 1835, held at Tecumseh, Henry J. Whitehouse was elected bishop. He declined, and as one of the clergymen in charge of a parish soon after left, there was no legal authority to elect a bishop. By the passage of a new canon, the House of Bishops was allowed to elect a bishop for a diocese on application, even if there were not the requisite number of clergymen with charges in the diocese. Under this last canon, in June, 1836, Rev. Samuel A. McCoskry was elected bishop, and on July 7, he was consecrated at St. Peter's Church in Philadelphia. On December 2, 1874, Michigan was divided into two dioceses, and on February 24, I875, at Grand Rapids, Rev. George B. Gillespie was consecrated Bishop of Western Michigan. Bishop McCoskry resigned on March II, 1878, and was succeeded by Rt. Rev. S. S. Harris. He was elected June 6, and consecrated September 17, 1879, at Detroit. This city has had the honor of furnishing three bishops for other dioceses: the Rev. W7. E. Armitage, rector of St. John's Church, consecrated Bishop of Wisconsin; Rev. B. H. Paddock, rector of Christ Church, consecrated Bishop of Massachusetts; Rev. W. E. McLaren, formerly pastor of Westminster Preslyterian Church. now Bishop of Illinois: and Rev. George Worthington, of St. John's Church, Bishop of Nebraska Conventions of the diocese were held at Detroit in November, 1835; October, 1836; June, I840, I845, I847, and I85I; November, 1852; June, 1853, 1855, 1857, I860, I862, I867, I87I, I877, 1878, I879, i88o, i88I, and 1883. At the first convention, April 20 to 27, 1834, Bishop McIlvaine of Ohio was present, and preached on the first and last day of the session. The diocese owns an episcopal residence, bought in I866, at a cost of $12,ooo. In I879 it was enlarged, and partly rebuilt, at a cost of $8,000. Its estimated value in I880 was $20,000. The creation of a diocesan fund, the interest to be used to pay the salary of the bishop, was begun in I854. In 1883 the fund amounted to $84,000, which sum is invested, and in the care of trustees appointed from year to year by the convention. On January 30, i88o, the Church Association of Michigan was organized to assist the religious, charitable, and educational interests of the Protestant Episcopal Church in Michigan, by acting as the trustees of gifts or legacies given in aid of any of the enterprises of the church. From i88o to I883, C. C. Trowbridge was president, and John H. Bissell secretary and treasurer. REFORMIED EPISCOPAL CHURCHES. Efpi5hany Reformed Episcofal Czhurch. This society was organized and incorporated March I0, i88o, with fourteen members; during the year the number increased to forty. The first EPIPHANY REFORMED EPISCOPAL CHURCH. services were held in what had been St. Mark's Protestant Episcopal Church, and the society for a REFORMED EI'ISCOPAL CHURCHES. 593 time controlled that property. It was eventually turned over to its origilal owners, and the society built a new church on the south side of Myrtle Street near Trumbull Avenue. The lot cost $600 and the church $I,400. The church was first used on Easter Sunday, i880. It has two hundred sittings, and the average Sunday morning attendance during that year was 60. The total annual expenses were $400. Up to 1883 the society had no regular ordained pastor, although in 1882 it was supplied for a time by Rev. Dr. W. H. Poole. The services after that time were conducted by Rev. Frederick Woolfenden for several years, and then by various temporary supplies. In March, I887, Rev. H. T. Wirgman began his pastorate. Elmanuel Reformed Episcopal Churc/h. (Exrtinct.) This society was organized in January, I879, by Rev. P. B. Morgan. The first meetings were held in the First Congregational Church, and subsequently in Young Men's Hall, in the Tabernacle Church on south side of Duffield Street near Woodward Avenue, in the Y. M. C. A., and St. Andrew's Halls, in the Opera House, the Industrial School building, and then again in the Tabernacle Church. The society was incorporated on February 13, 1879. Rev. Dr. Morgan left in January, I88I, and after that date services were conducted by lay readers. Number of members in I880, 1 I. Average attendance, 35. Total yearly expenses, $350. In March, I882, the society disorganized. CHAPTER LX. THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. -OCCASIONS OF INTEREST TO PRESBYTERIANS. PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. First I'resbyterian Church. THE organization known as the First Protestant Society inherited the title, building, and property of the old society whose name it bears. By the adoption of certain Articles of Faith, on Janlart23, 1825, it became a Presbyterian Church, with twelve male and thirty-seven female members, and became the third Protestant denominational Mary Hunt, Sarah Hubbard, Theodocia C. Petit, Nancy Caniff, Mary Gillett, Sophia Seymour, Lucy Brown, Melicent Hunt, Mary Rice, Mary Owen, Matilda Hurd, Asenath Lee, Emily )eming, Ann Henry. At this time the society had no minister. Rev. Noah M. Wells, who had been previously called, arrived in May, 1825, and became the first pastor. On November 5, 1825, the (overnor and Judges "ordered that a Deed issue to the trustees of the Protestant Church for the ground heretofore ordered i 2 3 4 5 6 7 iE\w OF CIU:RC:HES ON EAST SIDE OF WOODVWARD AVEN'E IN 1849. i. First Methodist Episcopal Church. 2. Congress Street. 3. ()d Burcllard Building. 4. St. Paul's }Episcopal Church. 5. Session Room. 6. First Presbyterian Church. 7. 1,ar1ed Street. church organized in Detroit. The names of the first members were as follows: Stephen C. Henry, Eurotas I'. Hastings, John J. D)eming, Ashbel S. Wells, Elijah Converse, J. W. Woolsey, Seth Beach, Cullen Brown, Justin Rice, Wim. IB. Hunt, Phebe Crosby, Mary Chapin, Catharine Jones, Fanny Mack, Hannah Roby, Elizabeth Noble, Temperance Mack, Lovicy Cooper, Rebecca Converse, Elizabeth Cass, Margaret Audrain, Jane Kelly, Jane Palmer, Martha Ten Eyck, Mary J. Scott, Almira Willcox, Lydia Sanderson, Mary McMillan, Abigail Goodwin, Mary Brewster, Achsah Goodin, Lucretia Goodwin, Catharine Bronson, Ann Hunt, Ruthy Edwards, to be conveyed to them." This deed, which was the first one made for the lroperty, gave them what was known as the " English burying-groulnd,'' o Woodward Avenue, including all of the block west of the alley between Woodward Avenue and Bates Street. The deed is dated I)ecember 9, and was recorded December 21, 1825. The gift was certainly a munificent one, even at that day. In 1827 the city came into possession of the Military Reserve and buildings of old Fort Shelby, on Fort Street, and in September the Assembly Room, or Military Hall, was removed to a lot on I.arned Street in rear of the church. It was there used as L5941 THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. 595, - a session-room, both by the Common Council and the church. This same year the presbytery of Detroit was created, consisting of Rev. Noah I. Wells, of Detroit, Rev. E. Prince, of Farmington, Rev. Isaac W. Ruggles, of Pontiac, Rev. William M. Ferry, of Mackinaw, and Rev. William Page, of Monroe. In March or April, I832, there was a revival at Detroit, and seventy persons joined the church. In the spring of 1833 the church erected a brick session-room on Woodward Avenue, and during the year Mr. Wells resigned. After his /. - I departure the pulpit __ --- j was supplied by ----- - Rev. George Horn- ' ell and Rev. George ' Sheldon until June, IM 1834, when Rev. J. -.. P. Cleveland became the pastor. A plan for a new church had been drawn by Alonzo Merrill, as early as... 1831. In the spring of 1834 the work of - - erection was begun. Alanson Sheley was the contractor. As a preliminary step, the old wooden church was sold. It was purchased by Robert Hilton, who, with Mr. Caniff, John Farrar, and ftI^ jB others, proposed to establish a Universalist Church. The building was moved to the northwest FIRST PRESBvT corner of Michigan Avenue and Bates Street, where it became a Roman Catholic Church. After the sale of the church the congregation met in the Capitol until their new church was completed. It was of brick, sixty by ninety feet, with a steeple one hundred and thirty feet high. The total cost reached $30,0oo. It had one hundred and forty-six pews, with galleries on three sides, and seated nearly one thou sand persons. It was dedicated April 28, 1835, with a sermon by the pastor, and the exercises were made particularly interesting by the singing of an original hymn written by Mrs. L. H. Sigourney On May 27, 1835, Rev. Mr. Cleveland was regularly installed. At this time the church had two hundred and twenty members. Mr. Cleveland resigned in 1837, and on November 26 preached his farewell sermon from Jonah iii., 2. On October I, 1838, Rev. Geo. Duffield became the pastor. OnOc=:,=____^ tober I6 following, " -'"~ - -a clock, which had _=X \ ~ been contracted for -"' three months before, was completed and began to keep town time in:-:..: --- — the tower. In January, 1840, Horace Hallock started a branch Sunday:~~-__'-. school in the City '-::-=-3 --- -: ___ — Hall, which was continued for nearly three years, with an average attendance '%-:.2-: _ -_....... l of some three hundred scholars. In December, I844, the society lost a number of its members by the organization of the First Congregationruary I I, 1849, other members left the congregation and founded the Seco n d Presbyterian Church. In February, 8 5, the old brick session-room, N CHith the ground on which it stood, was sold; the building was torn down, and a brick block erected the same year. In the fall of 1852 Dr. Duffield visited Europe and Palestine in search of needed health and rest. He remained abroad about a vear, and during his absence the pulpit was supplied by Rev. Myron Barrett. On January IO, 1854, the church, with several rEl 596 THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. other buildings in an.adjacent block, was entirely burned. When the flames caught the tall steeple it was a magnificent sight. After the fire the remains of the old bell which had called thousands to prayer and praise were dug out of the ruins, and numerous souvenirs in the shape of tea-bells were cast. They were inscribed, " Iart of the old bell destroyed January IO, I854," and readily sold at $5 each, bringing many dollars into the fund for a new church. The old bell rings no more for fire, but its voice in many households gives a welcome call to tea and toast. On July I5, the first Sunday after the fire, services were held in Firemen's Hall, and in the old Young Men's Hall on January 28, and continuously thereafter until the completion of the new brick church on the northwest corner of State and Farmer Streets. This building was dedicated September 9, I855. The lot, one hundred by one hundred and twenty feet, cost $8,ooo; the church, seventy by one hundred, cost $40,000. It has one hundred and forty pews, and seats about 700. To aid in building their church the society received about one half the net proceeds from the sale of the old property; the rest was -given to the Jefferson Avenue and Fort Street Presbyterian churches. In March, 1862, the side galleries in the audience room were removed and other improvements made. In April, I865, Rev. W. A. McCorkle was called as associate pastor. Three years later, in June, I868, while Dr. Dufficld was giving an address of welcome to the delegates of the International Convention of the Y. M. C. A., a sudden illness seized him, from which he did not recover. He died Tune 26. His associate continued as pastor until May, 1871, when he resigned. In September, 1871, Rev. Dr. G. D. Baker became the pastor, and served until December i, 1884. His successor, Rev W. A. Barr, served from October, 1885, to August, 1887. The pastor's salary in I880 was $3,000. The cost of the choir, $1,200. The sexton was paid $300. The total annual expenses, reaching $6,ooo, are almost entirely defrayed by the receipts from pew rents. The property in 188o was estimated to be worth $55,000. The average attendance at the morning services was 400. Number of members in 1830, 86; in I840 and 1850, the same number, 448, is reported in each decade; in I860, 300; in I870, 368; in I880, 753. This society has the favored distinction of being the only one that has ever attempted to sustain a school for the Chinese. Since 1872 a number of these "Celestials" have been found here on every Sabbath, in the care of faithful and benevolent teachers. Scotch or Central Presbyterian Church. The preliminary meeting which resulted in the organization of this church was held in a room in the old City Hall, on November o0, 1842. Two weeks after, the lot on the northwest corner of Farmer and Bates Streets was purchased for $500, and a plan for a wooden church, forty by seventy feet, agreed upon. The building was opened for worship in an unfinished state on September 6, 1843. Regular services THE CENTRAL PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH. in the completed church began in October, 1844. It cost $3,500 and seated 600. On February 21, I845, the society decided to unite with the United Associate Church of Scotland, and on April 14 following a church was fully organized, with sixty-five members, and Rev. David Inglis as pastor. He resigned on May I, 1846, and was succeeded by Rev. Mr. Torrance, who preached for about six weeks. Rev. Mr. Dalrymple, from Scotland, then served the church for two months, but declined a call. Rev. John McLellan entered upon the pastorate in December, 1847, was installed in I848, and resigned in April, I854. Rev. John Hogg, the next THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. 597 -— - pastor, served from December, I854, to April, 1858. He was succeeded by Rev. Stephen Balmer, who was ordained in November, I860, and resigned July I, I866. During the next three years there was no regular pastor. On July 29, 1869, Rev. George McBeth Milligan was installed. IDuring his pastorate the old church was sold, and moved to Washington Avenue. A brick church was begun, and the basement first used on July, 3, 187I. On November 5 following, the main audience room was dedicated. Including the galleries, the church seats 1,200, and cost $26,000. On April 12, I879, the congregation --.-,-.decided to unite with the Ameri-. can Presbyterian ' —' Church, and the n a m e of the church, except: ': — ' ': for corporate purposes, was — ---- changed to Central P'resbyteri- -: an. Mr. Milligan soon after resigned the pastorate,preaching --- I' his farewell sermon on October October 24, entered upon Iis duties November I5, was reg- FORT STREET Pi ularly installed on December i, N i, ~:~ 'P::r of its present strength and influence. The first record states that on August 7, i848, the First Presbyterian Church appointed a committee to co-operate with Rev. R. R. Kellogg in establishing the society. On September o1 he commenced holding services in the old capitol; on February 21, 1849, a society was fully organized with twenty-six members, and on March 19, I849, was incorporated as the Second Presbyterian Church. In August following they began the erection of a brick church on the southeast corner of Lafayette Avenue and Wayne Street. The building, forty-five by seventy-five feet, was dedicated on April 7, i850. _~ ~ ~ (~'~It cost $4,364. On May2 I, I850, Rev. R. R. Kellogg was installed as the pastor, and continued as such until he resigned on September I, 1853. He was succeeded by Rev. Henry Neill, who entered upon the pastorate in January, and was installed October i8, 1854. During his pastorate the church building on the southeast corner of Fort and Third Streets was erected.;1YTEKRIAN CHURCH. The lot cost $7,ooo, and the building$70,ooo. It was dedicated November I8, I855. It was built RES 1876, and resigned on February 25, 1878. On April 25, 1879, Rev. J. F. Dickie was installed as his successor. The average attendance at morning service, in I880, was 400. The pastor's salary was $2,000. The total church expenses were $2,760. The number of members in 1850 was 300; in i860 and 1870 the number is given at 350 for each decade; in I880 there were 292 members. Fort Street Church. The beginnings of this society gave no indication of lime-stone, the main audience room was sixty by ninety feet, had 120 pews, and seated I,ooo persons. The basement was twelve feet high and would seat 400. The height of the spire from the ground to the top was two hundred and thirty feet. On the completion of the new building, the old church was sold to the United Presbyterian Society. On June 17, I857, Mr. Neill resigned. The church was then supplied for three months by Rev. P. S. Byington. He was succeeded by Rev. James Means, who remained six months. Rev. Dr. Ervin 598 THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES.. Hall then preached two months, and was followed by Rev. W. A. McCorkle. Rev. Azariah Eldridge was installed pastor on December 2, I858. On March 19, I859, by special Act of the Legislature, the name of the society was changed to Fort Street Presbyterian Church. Mr. Eldridge resigned on June 4, I865. Rev. VW. H. Clark then supplied the pulpit for three months. In October, 1865, Rev. S. T. Clarke began his ministry. He was installed July i, I866, and resigned in November, i868. On February 8, I869, a call was extended to Rev. Arthur T. Pierson, of Waterford, New York, who was installed May 5, I869. In August, I882, he resigned, and on January 7, 1883, Rev. A. P. Tinker entered upon the pastorate as his successor. Owing to poor health, on March i, I884, he resigned. He was succeeded by Rev. H. T. Miller, who served about a year, and on Sept. 30, I885, was suc-.. ceeded by Rev. Dr. -- Wallace Radcliffe. On January 30, -~ ---r870, a young people's prayer meeting _ --- 'was established, and this year the ____ entire interior of the -Acf — of reconstructing amounted to about $90,000, two thirds of the amount being provided by the insurance. All the appointments of the church are exceptionally complete, even to a service of tableware for festival use, made expressly for the church, with a picture of the building on each piece, J. D. Hayes, after the fire, duplicating his original gift of fifteen hundred pieces. The pastor's salary in 1880 was $4,500. The choir cost $1,300. The sexton was paid $770. The total expenses were $7,500, and $9,000 was received from pew rents. The property was then valued at $ioo,ooo. The church has l< ---,. sittings for 1,300. - ~:~ ~-,(- The average at-f '.. -- = — =_ tendance at Sunday church, and as far as necessary the exterior also was repaired and improved at a cost of $30,000, and on the evening of December 29, I870, the church was reopened with a vocal and instrumental concert. About 5 A. M. on March 25, 1876, a fire broke out in the church which destroyed the building. Whitney's Opera House was morning service in I880 was 850. Number of members in 185o, 62; in I86o, I96; in 1870, 282; in I880, 686. In addition to its own Sunday school, the church sheltered for many years a Sunday school which was established in 1853 in a public school building in the Eighth Ward. When school buildings could no longer be used for Sunday schools, the school was removed to this church, where it was held until 1874, when its continuance was no longer deemed desirable. then engaged for In its earlier lite it the Sabbath ser- accomplished great vices, and the pub-. -- good. lie, as well as the old congregation, J./eHrsoi Avenue throngredatheui JEFFERSON AVENUE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH. C*ZurcA. thronged the build- Church. ing from Sabbath This society was to Sabbath. Meantime the work of rebuilding the incorporated January 25, the church was organized church went forward, and as the old plan was February 8, I854, and began Sunday-school serclosely followed, the present building is almost a vices in the old Detroit Institute, a school building fac-simile of the original. on the north side of Jefferson Avenue, between It was dedicated on June io, 1877. The expense Beaubien and St. Antoine Streets. THE PIREISBYTER From here, in October, they moved to the old Congregational Church, on Jefferson Avenue. The Rev. Joshua Cook was then serving as pastor. In the spring of 1855 Rev. H.ugh McElroy took charge of the congregation, and on December 9 of the same year the brick church on tile north side of Jefferson Avenue, between Russell and Rivard Streets, was dedicated. The church witli lot cost $50,ooo. The audience room is sixty by ninety feet, with one hundred and seventy pews, and will seat i,ooo. During i886 Mrs. John S. Newberry and her children commenced the erection of a chapel in the rear of the church, on the corner of Lamed and Rivard Streets. It is designed as a memorial of her husband, long connected with the church, and the structure will be exceptionally complete in all respects. The cost will be about $50,000, and it will be completed during I888. Mr. Mc-. Elroy was installed as pastor on July 2, 1856, and died December 24, I857. A tablet of Italian marble, in the church, bears testimony to his worth. He was succeededl by Rev. William Hogartl, I). D., who was installed June 30, 1858, and resigned July 13, 1873. The pulpit was then supplied by various clergymen until May 6, 1875, when Rev. R. J. g _ Laidlaw was installed, He resigned February 8, J 878, and was succeeded in May by Rev. E. B. Mason, who was installed on May I5, i879. In December, I88i, he resigned, and on April 19, 1882, Rev. A. H. Kellogg was installed his successor, and served until April, 1883. He was followed by Rev. T. A. Hoyt, who served one year, and was succeeded in December, I884, by Rev. J. G. Williamson, and lie resigned in the fall of 1887. The pastor's salary in 1880 was $3,250. The choir cost $i,ooo. The sexton was paid $365. The total yearly expenses were $5,250, and $4,250 were raised from pew rents. Number of members in 1860, I89; in 1870, 346; in I880, 360. The average attendance at morning service in I880 was 300. Wesmiznsfer C.hi-rchi. This society was organized with thirty-one members, on October 6, 1857, and incorporated on Octo JIAN CHURCHES. 599 ber 26. The first services, with Rev. Henry Neill as pastor, were held in the United Presbyterian Church on Lafayette Avenue, corner of Wayne Street. The society worshiped there until Januuary 13, I86i, when the brick church, on the east side of Washington avenue, between State and Grand River, was dedicated. The building was sixty-six by one hundred feet, and seated five hundred and fifty persons. In April, i86r, Mr. Neill resigned. On July 14, Rev. G. W. Prime entered upon the pastorate, and was installed October 23, i86i. In the summer of 1866 his health failed, and he went abroad. The church was then temporarily supplied by various clergymen until July, 1867. Rev. W. E. McLaren then became the pastor, and soon after the ESTMI11NS'I ER PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH. building was extensively enlarged and repaired at a cost of $17,000. It was rededicated December 8, 1867. Mr. McLaren was installed January 12, I868, and resigned in February, 1872. He was succeeded in April by Rev. William Aikman, D. D, who was installed June 5, I872. On March i, 1873, the society sold their property, and it passed into the possession of the St. Alovsius Catholic Church. The last service of the Presbyterian Society was on March 2, I873. On the first Sunday of the previous November evening services had been commenced in one of the buildings of Harper Hospital, and on and after March 9 all the church services were held at the same place. A Sunday school had been conducted in the building by R. C. Smith since i865, and this was now transferred to the church. 6oo THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. Prior to their removal, the society had bought; for $i6,ooo, a lot on the northwest corner of \oodward Avenue and Parsons Street. A large brick chapel, costing $20,000, was erected on the rear end of the lot. and on May 10, 1874, it was dedicated. It seated three hundred and sixty persons. Dr. Aikman resigned on May T, I877, and was succeeded by Rev. Frank 'T. Bayley, who preached his first sermon January 27, and was installed March 7, I878. On February ii, 1883, he resigned on account of his wife's health, and soon after removed to Portland, Maine. In June, 1883, Rev. Nathaniel West, D. D., entered upon an engagement for six months; his term expired in November, and on the 26th of that month a call was extended to and accepted by Rev. G. H. Duffield, and on April Io, I884, he was installed. In 1879 the audience room of the chapel was enlarged, increasing its capacity about fifty sittings. The church cost $35,000 and seats 860. It was first used November 13, and was dedicated November 29, 1881. The estimated value of the church property is $65,ooo. During the summer and fall of 1887 various improvements were made in the audience room, a tower costing $12,030 erected on the southeast corner, and on November 6, the building was re-opened for service with appropriate exercises. The number of church members in i860 was 72; in 1870, 192; in 1880, 252. The average attendance in 188o was 350. Calvary Church. This church is an outgrowth of a mission Sunday school. The school was started in May, 1868, in a small building on Harrison Avenue which had been a grocery; in October it was moved to a cottage on Michigan Avenue near the toll-gate. In the summer of 1869 a lot was purchased on the southeast corner of Mayberry Avenue and Butternut Street, and a frame building, thirty-six by seventyfive feet, was erected at a cost of $3,500. It was dedicated December 13, I869. On October 3, 1872, a church was organized and incorporated with sixteen members. Rev. Dr. J. G. Atterbury, the first pastor, served until August, 1874. He was succeeded by Rev. William Grandy, as stated supply. On November 24, 1878, Mr. Grandy resigned, and on October 29, 1879, Rev. G. W. Barlow was installed. The church seated 300. The average morning attendance in 1880 was 200. The number of members, 115. The pastor's salary was $1,400, and the total annual expenses, $i,80o. During 1887 the society erected a new church on Michigan Avenue, facing Maybury Avenue. The lot cost $4,000 and the building $17,00ooo. It seats 776, and was dedicated January 25, I888. Union Church. This society had its beginnings in a mission Sunday school established by Z. R. Brockway. He was efficiently aided by John S. Newberry, James and Hugh McMillan, Mrs. H. A. Wight, and many others. The school was opened March 8, 1863, in a primary room of the Bishop School. It was largely attended from the first, and within a year subscriptions were obtained from persons of every denomination, to erect a building for the school. The last $400 of the amount received was obtained at a union meeting at the Jefferson Avenue Presbyterian Church, D. L. Moody, of Chicago, making an appeal for the money. CALVARY PRESBYTERIAN CHIURCH, ORIGINAL BUILDING. On Mlarch 20, 1864, the chapel, a neat wooden building, was first occupied. It was located on the northwest corner of Russell and Napoleon Streets, and in I866 was enlarged by an addition, twenty by thirty feet in size. In the summer of i868 it was moved across Russell Street to the grounds of the old City Cemetery in order to make room for a new brick building, seventy-five by eighty feet, which was dedicated February 17, I869. It could seat 2,150 children, and cost $16,ooo. Mr. Brockway did not favor a church organization, and it was difficult to determine the full results of the efforts put forth. In 1872 he was called to another field of labor, interest in the school began to wane, and for a time it was entirely closed. On May 15, 1874, the Presbyterian Alliance secured the property, and on February I8, 1875, a church was organized with sixteen members. Rev. A. E. Hastings was appointed pastor, and continued as such until his death on November 28, i88o. Rev. Louis R. Fox succeeded to the pastorate on April IO, I881. THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. 60o The building can accommodate 1,200 adults. The pastor's salary in 188 was $,5oo00, and the total yearly expenses, $2,000. Number of members in 1880, o05. Average attendance Sunday mornings, ioo. Value of property, $20,000. MJemorial Church. This church is the outgrowth of one of the oldest mission Sunday schools in the city. The school was first established on February 2I, I858, in the (erman Reformed Zion Church, on Russell between Sherman and Catherine Streets. On July 20, I862, the school was moved to a hall on Clinton Street between Russell and Riopelle Streets, and on October 19 of the same year it was moved to the Tenth deceased father, mother, and wife. The project was entered upon, and the chapel was dedicated January 16, I88i, and on January 27, i881, a church with fifty-one members was organized, with Rev. D. M. Cooper as pastor; he was installed on November 21, 1883. The church was dedicated December 17, I882. It is located on the northeast corner of Joseph Campau and Clinton Avenues. The total cost of lots, chapel, church, and furnishing was $35,000, of which amount $2,000 Was received from the sale of the old property. To make up the balance, Leonard Laurense gave $5,000, Rev. D. M. Cooper $25,500, Adeline S. and Irene Sprague, each $I,ooO. In addition to the amount already mentioned, Mr. Cooper made provision.. -~ --- —-..-,.' ~. UNION PREISItYTEIIAN CHI'RCH. \Ward Public School building on Lamed Street. The school did not flourish, and in the fall of 1854 it was transferred to the primary school building on Clinton Avenue near St. Aubin Avenue. In September, i866, the buildings near by, which had been used as barracks, were sold at auction; the one which had served as a hospital was purchased for the school at a cost of $325. Lot 70 of the Chene Farm, on Clinton Avenue opposite the Duffield Union School, was leased for a term of fifteen years, and on December 31, I856, the Clinton Avenue Mission Chapel Society was incorporated. The building was fitted up, and first opened on January 27, 1867; and here the school grew and prospered. During I880 Mr. Leonard Laurense, who had been connected with the school for many years, conceived the idea of building a Memorial Chapel in memory of his deceased wife, who had been a zealous worker in the school. Rev. D. M. Cooper proposed to unite in the enterprise, and erect a church with the chapel, as a memorial of his 39 IIEMI(ORIAL PRESBYTERI\AN CHIURCH. for the erectionof a parsonage adljoining tile church, to cost not less than $6.ooo. 1The church is provided with a chime of four bells, and several stained glass windows, which reproduce the exceedingly elaborate emblems and decorations prepared at immense cost of time and labor for the ter-centenary Presbyterian celebration held at Philadelphia in I872. They have not been produced for any other edifice, and are artistically and historically the most valuable memorials to be found in any church in the country. Following the dedication, the pastor arranged for a series of memorial discourses, the first on December 24, 1882, by Leonard WV. Bacon, D. I., upon his grandfather, David Bacon, and his father, Dr. Leonard Bacon, who was born at Detroit. On the day of this address, an elegant memorial tablet, placed in the church by himself and his relatives, was for the first time unveiled. Addresses were subsequently delivered: On Rev. John Monteith, by John Monteith, of Missouri. On Rev. Noah M. Wells, by George D. Baker, D. D, 602 THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES.. On George Duffield, D. D., by D. Bethune Duffield. The subjects suggested by the memorial windows were discoursed upon as follows: Italy, by Rev. Henry C. McCook, 1). I)., of Philadelphia; Scotland, by Rev. James F. Dickie, of Detroit; Ireland, by Rev. James McLeod, of Buffalo; England, by- Rev. Wm. M. Blackburn, I). I)., of Cincinnati; France, by Rev. Wm. P. Breed, D. I)., of 'Philadelphia; Switzerland, by Rev. H. A. MacCracken, 1). D., of Pittsburgh; Bohemia, by Rev. A. T. Pierson, D. D., of Indianapolis; Holland, by Rev. J. Ambrose Wight, D. D., of Bay City; Germany, by Rev. Zachary Eddy, D. D., of Detroit; Hungary, by Rev. David M. Cooper. The average attendance in 880, on Sunday morning, in the chapel, was I80. Total yearly expenses in i88o, $500. The church has accommodations for 500 persons; the chapel for 300. TrinibuIll AvenueZ Church. This enterprise began with a Sunday school, organized March I8, 1877, in a small wooden building at No. 484 Trumbull Avenue. The present building is located on the southeast corner of Trumbull Avenue and Fulton Street. The lot is one hundred feet on Trumbull Avenue by one hundred and twenty-four on Fulton Street. The society was organized August 28, I88, with 72 members. The lot cost $2,503, and the building and furniture $7,300. The chapel was dedicated July 3, i88i. It is of brick, forty-six by eighty-one feet, and seats 500. Rev. Allen M. Dulles became the first pastor in November. 188i. He resigned in 1887, and was succeeded in January, 1888, by Rev. R. J. Service. The church building cost, including the furnishing. about $27,000, and was dedicated February 26, 1888, It seats 800. its first meetings in the old Wayne County Court Room, corner of Griswold and Congress Streets, moving from there to the old City Hall, and then purchasing, for $6,500, a church which had been erected by the Second Presbyterian Society, on the southeast corner of Lafayette Avenue and Wayne Street. The first service of the new owners was UNITED PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH, ORIGINAL BUII1.DING. held on December 23, 1855. In 1869 the building was extensively improved, at a cost of about $T 1,000, and the seating capacity increased from 500 to 650. It was rededicated on September 12, 1869. In 1887 the property was sold to the Government for $43,500, as part of the site for the post-office, and the church purchased a new site for a church on the northeast corner of Second Avenue and Gilman Street, at a cost of $13,200. The first pastor, Rev. Samuel Patton, was installed December 27. 1854. Mr Patton died after serving about two and a half years. Rev. J. P. Scott, D. D., began his labors July 29, was installed November 30, 1859, and on January 20, 1878, resigned the pastorate, preaching his last sermon February 24. He was succeeded by Rev. R. Turnbull. The pastor's salary in 1880 was $1,500, and the total yearly expenses $3,000. The number of members in I860 was 30; in 1870, 123; in I880, 301; The average attendance Sunday morning in i880 was 375. The church had a debt of $5,000, in I880, which has since been paid. An occasion of special interest to this society was TRUMBULL AVENUE PRESBYTERIAN CHAPEL. United Presbyterian Church. This society was organized May 8, 1853, and held THE PRESBYTERIAN CII URCHES. 603 the annual convention of the first synod of the \Vest, which commenced its sessions in the church on August 28, I883. French, or French and German Presbyterian Church. (Extinct.) A society known as the French Presbyterian Church was organized as early as March 3, 1854, and purchased on that day a lot on the south side of Catharine Street near Russell Street for $700. On September T, 1856, a society called the French and (erman P'resbyterian Church was incorporated, and on October 18 following the original society transferred the lot to the new organization. A wooden church was then erected, which was dedicated February 22, 1857. The society did not prove harmonious or successful, and on April 22, I86i, a society in charge of Rev. H. Miller, a branch of St. John's Lutheran Church on Monroe Avenue, obtained the use of the building. It was subsequently sold to still another Lutheran congregation. HamtramckG Church. This church had its origin in a mission school held in the Marine Hospital. The school prospered. and a building was erected for it on the southeast corner of Frontenac Avenue and Congress Street. It was dedicated February 6, I870. The lot cost $500 and the building $3,500. It seats 300. On October 25, 1883, a church was organized with 26 members, and was cared for by Rev. T. D. Iartholemew, nwho took charge of the enterprise the previous May. On May 22, 1886, he was succeeded by Rev. H. S. Jenkinson, who was regularly installed at that time. Thzird Avclnue Church. The school, of which this church is the successor, was incorporated on March 17, and organized on May I 1, 1867. The lots were given by F. J. B. Crane, and a building, costing with furnishing about $4,40o, was erected. It was dedicated on May 10, 1868, and during its entire history had an attendance of 200. The property was controlled by five trustees, elected by the Sunday school. On November 5, I886, the school voted to organize a Presbyterian church, and on November I1 following, a church was organized with 21 members. About $1,5oo was then expended in alterations and repairs, and on February 21, 1887, the building was dedicated as the Third Avenue Presbyterian Church, and Rev. J. M. Barkley installed as pastor. The building seats about 400. Reformed Church of 4America. This society was organized in I)ecember, I872, with 42 members. In August, 1874, they dedicated their church, which is on the south side of Catharine Street in the middle of the llock between Dequindre Street and St. Aubin Avenue. The lot cost $650 and the building $1,100. The building seats 200. It is held in trust by the Board of Home Missions. Rev. H. R. Boer was the first pastor, serving from 1872 to 1874. Rev. M. Kirkenoeld took charge in 1875, and on account of failing health resigned in 1 877. The church remained without a pastor until June 25, 1882, when Rev. (. Niemeyer became pastor and served until June, 1884. The number of members in i880 was 38. OCCASIONS OF INTEREST TO PRESBYTERIANS. 1833, October 12.Reserve in Detroit. 1837, ()ctober 23. Michigan in I)etroit. 1842, October 14. -Meeting of Synod of Western -First meeting of Synod of -Synod again met in Detroit. I)UTCIt REF-ORMIED CHII[RCH. 1845, June 19 to 24.-Joint Convention of Congregational and Presbyterian ministers and delegates from churches in northwestern States. D)r. Lyman 1 It is a curious fact that in the second volume of Dr. Beecher's Autobiography, edited by his son, Rev. Charles Beecher, this meeting is stated to have been held in Chicago. The narrative says, " In June, 1845, Dr. Beecher attended a convention at Chicago, of Congregational and Presbyterian Churches. * * * The convention was a great and good one, whose influence will be felt powerfully for good through all coming time. It will, I trust, avert a schism between Congregational and Presbyterian Churches anti consummate and perpetuate their union. * * * I preached for the Methodists on the Sabbath, on justification by faith, with great delight and multiplied Amens, and the other 604 THE PRESBYTERIAN CHURCHES. Beecher and Professor Calvin E. Stowe were present. June 9, I848.-Meeting of State Synod. May I6 to 29, I850.-The Presbyterian General Assembly convened at Detroit. Many distinguished persons present. October 27, 1864, and July 12, I870.-Meetings of State Synod. May I6 to 30, i872.-Presbyterian General Assembly in session in Detroit. In November, 1872, the Presbyterian Alliance of Detroit was organized, and in February, 1874, it was incorporated. It is composed of the sessions of the Presbyterian Churches in the city, together with such Presbyterian ministers and elders residing in said city as shall by election be admitted. Its object is the founding and establishment of Presbyterian churches, missions, and schools, and such tokens of emotion and approbation; and though my theories often swept across their track, the stream of feeling swept them along, and they still cried Amen! It was a delightful time of boundless liberty and heart melting and flowing onward of the copious stream of truth." other work as may promote the interests of said denomination in the city of Detroit and its vicinity It is a consulting and advisory body, securing unity of opinion and harmony of action in matters of common interest. It is sustained by voluntary contributions. When money is needed an assessment is made upon the churches according to their several abilities. This call is usually presented to each church under the direction of its session after its own method. The presidents have been: I873, Rev. Wm. Hogarth; 1874, Rev. Win. Aikman; I875, Rev. A. T. Pierson; 1876, Rev. George D. Baker; 1877, Rev. Robert J. Laidlaw; 1878, Jacob S. Farrand; I879, Elisha Taylor; I88o, George W. Hoffman; I881, Rev. James Dickie; 1882, John Cameron; I883- 885, Rev. G. W. Barlow; I885, Rev. J. F. Dickie; I886, E. A. Fraser; 1887, Elisha Taylor. Treasurers: 1873-i876, James H. Muir; I876 -I884, George E. Hand; I884-1887, J. S. Farrand; 1887, James Joy. Secretary: Rev. J. G. Atterbury. 1880, October ii. Synod of Michigan met in Detroit. CHAPTER LXI. THE BAPTIST CHURCHES.-OCCASIONS OF INTEREST TO THE DENOMINATION. First Baflist Church. THE Rev. Henry Davis, a Baptist minister, is said to have conducted services in the old University Building, on Bates Street, in the spring of I826. After Mr. Davis left, the church was without a pastor for several years, but was kept together largely through the faithful efforts of Francis '. Browning. In I831 the society was admitted to the Michigan Baptist Association, and in July Rev. S. (oodman became the pastor, remaining one year, after which, notwithstanding they were now left without a shepherd, the members of the flock were not hopeless; for in September, I833, the old frame church was sold to James Witherell, and a new church was begun on the original site. The old building was moved to the site now occupied by the Detroit Opera House. In the spring of 1834 Ilder Loomis, agent of the New York Baptist Convention, was employed three months, and in November following Rev. Robert Turnbull commenced his labors. On January I, 1835, the new church was dedicated. It was of brick, fifty by seventy feet, with a steeple one hundred feet high. On August 31, I836, delegates assembled in ORIGINAL BUILDING OF FIRST BAPTIST CHURCH. This date is, probably, one year too early, as the records of the trustees of the University do not show that the use of the building was granted prior to May 28, 1827; on that date a resolution appears on record, "that the Baptist Society may have lower room for minister for six months." (n July 3 following, the Detroit Gazette contained a notice that the " trustees of the University had given the Baptists permission to use the lower room of the academy. Preaching by Rev. Henry Davis." On August I9, T827, Mrs. Nancy Cobell was baptized, this being presumably the first baptism by immersion in Detroit. The society was fully organized on October 20, I827. Mr. Davis was compelled to resign on account of failing health in April, 1828, and on June IO of the same year the city donated to the society the lot on the northwest corner of Fort and Griswold Streets. In May, I829, Mr. Browning announced to the church "that he had concluded to go forward and build a house of one story, twenty-two by thirty-five feet, as a meeting room for the church, upon the lot granted by the city council last year," and in November, I830, the old records speak of a proposition to meet in their house of worship. FIRS ST BRICK BAPTIST CHURCH, CORNER FORT AND GPISWOLD STREETS. L6o51 6o6 THIE BA1'TIST ClI URCI IES. Detroit, and the Ilaptist State Convention was organized. The p a;torate of Rev. R. 'R. urnllull lasted two years a:'d a half. Ile then went East, and as an aulthor achlicvcd extended fame. It was during his pa:;tcr:: te that 'Mrs. Jameson visited Detroit; she att nlc(lc service here, and thus records her impression of thle church and its services: The church is one of the largest iij the town, pIlain in applearance, bllt the interior handsome, and in good taste. The congregation Nwas not crovwded, but composed of most respectable, serious, well dressed people. * * * On closing his sermon, he commenced a prayer, anli I have seldom listened to one more eloquently fervent. Both the sermon an(l the prayer were extemporaneous. He prayed for all people, nations, orders, and conditions of men throughout tIle world, ilcludting the Ilingr of Great Britain, but thle prayer for the Prc:ident of the United States seemed to me a little original, and atlinirably celculated to suit the twvo parties who are at present divided on the merits of that gentleman. The smuppliant besought the Almighty t!ihat if Mr. Van Bturen were a good man, he might b nmadtle better, andl if a bad man, lie might be speedily regenera:ted. stucceeded by his son, Rev. Charles K. Colver, wuho remained( until June, 1857. After he left, the church was supplied by Rev. (;. W. Harris, editor of the Christian l-Ierald, and Rev. S. Cornelius. On January I, 1858, scRvN. J. WN'. Taggart vwas settled as pastor. In the sulnimer of I859 the old chulrch was torn down, and the erection of the third church on the same site was beLgun. The corner-stone was laid September 8, I859. While the chtlrch was building the congregation found temporary quarters, first in the old Congregational Church on Jefferson Avenue antd then in the hall in Coyl's building on Woodward Avenue, above State Street. In I86o several members of the church organized the Lafayette Street Baptist Church. Rev. lir. Targart's labors closed in June, I86i. In July Rev. J. HI. Griffith conlmenced pastoral work, and in November following he was ordained. After about tw-o years the congregation began to use the basement of their new church, and on October iJ, I863, the main audience room was dedicated. It had an average \-idth of sixty-six feet and was seventy feet long; the wiidth across the transepts was eighty feet. The tower Vwas not completed, but the cost of the church and furnishing reached $25,000. It seated l- 65o persons. Mr. (;Griffith resigned on April 14, 1867. Rev. (;. S. Chase succeeded him in I)ecem)er, I867, and remained until February, 1870. I-le, with other members of the church, tllen vithdrew and formed tlie 'Park Street 1Baptist Church. Ablout this time it was decided to sell the lFort Street site, and build a newchurch on the corner of Cass Avenue and 1agg Street. The lots were bought anti StrREETS. a brick clhaplel erected, which was first used in May, 1872. Rev. L. M. \\Woodruff, wvho succeeded 'Mr. Chase, remained until July, 1872. In January, 1873, the FI'rst tclld ark Street Churches were united, PRev. Johlln 3latthews, of the l'ark Street Church, serving aLs pastor from I'ebruary to November, 1873. In Jtly, 1874, Rev. N. C. Mallory commenced his pastorate. IIe resigned in I879, and was succeeded on July I by Rev. Z. Grenell. On April 25, I875, the new church on Cass Avenue was dedicated. The lot has a frontage of one hundred feet on Cass Avenue by one hundred anti fifty feet on Bagg Street, and cost $9,ooo. The length of church and chapel is one hundred and thirty-eight feet, and width seventy-four feet. The main audience room is sixty-five by one hundred SECOND ImRICKi BAl'TIST CI(IlCeI, CORNER FORT AND G(RISW\OLID After Mr. Turntbull left, the churc:h was pastorless until February, 1838, \w;hen Rev. 0. C. Comstock was settled over it and remained until September, 1839. He was succeeeded in FebrLuary, 1841, by Rev. Howell Smith, and in September of the same year Rev. Andrew 'Ten 1rook was ordained and settled as the pastor. In 1844 MIr. Ten BIrook was called to the chair of AMental and AM1oral Science in the Michigan University, and in September, 1844, Rev. James Inglis was ordained as pastor. He remained until the spring of 1847. In October following Rev. Samuel Haskell accepted the pastorate. In 1849 several members organized the Tabernacle Baptist Church. Rev. Mr. Haskell left in March, 1852, and Rev. Mr. Colver became pastor in April, I853. He remained( until March, I856, and was THE BAPTIST CHURCHES. 607 feet. It has 122 pews and seats 700. The chapel cost $Io,ooo and the church $50,000. The length of church and chapel is one hundred and thirty-eight feet, and width seventy-four feet. From August I6 to 20, 1850, the church was occupied by the annual meeting of the Amherstburg Baptist Association, to which the society belonged. In September, 1851, the society was received into the Michigan Baptist Association. On June 26, 1854, the church was burned. Services were then held for a time in an old school-house on the south side of Fort near Hastings Street. In February, 1857, the society bought their present property on the north side of Croghan near Beaubien Street for $3,800 of the First German Reformed Zion Church, which society had built it in 1851. In I881 it was extensively repaired, at a cost of $3,000. In I875 the church adopted J. Newton Brown's Baptist Church Manual. Number of members in 1840, 15; in 185o, 8o; in 1860, 221; in 1870, I65; in I880, 306. Number of sittings in the church, 275. The average attendance at morning service in I880 was I50. The pastor's salary was $700. The total yearly expenses were $875. The property was valued at $I8,ooo, and encumbered with a debt of $12,000. Rev. W. C. Monroe, the first pastor, served from 1836 to I847. Rev. S. H. Davis was pastor from 1847 to I85I, and was succeeded by Rev. D. G. L....:-r_ -~ -C... _ CASS AVENI'E BAPTIST CtIIRCtI. The pastor's salary in 1880 was $2,500; the choir cost $250; and the total annual expenses were $4,500. The pew rents amounted to $5,ooo. The property was valued at $75,000. The average attendance on Sunday morning was 400. Number of members in 1830, 10; in 1840, 153; in 1850, 265; in 86,in 86 n 1870, 266; in i880, 42I. Seconld lZ a iist ChG/urch (Coloredi). This church was organized in 1836, and held its first services in private houses. As early as March 30, 1836, the society contracted for a building to cost $480. The church, however, was not built, and in 1839 the society held meetings in a building also used for school purposes, on the south side of Fort Street, between Beaubien and St. Antoine Streets, subsequently known as Liberty Hall. On March I8, 1839, the society was incorporated. SECOND BAPTIST COLORED CHURCH. Lett, who remained until 1856. In 1857 Rev. William Troy was pastor. He was followed by Rev. G. W. Anderson, who served from 1859 to I861. Rev. S. Chase served from April I, 186I, to April I, 1874, and Rev. J. P. Wills from May I, 1876, to December, I88I. He was succeeded on October I, 1882, by Rev. W. R. Davis, who remained only one year. 608 THE BAPTIST CHURCHES. in December, i88I, and the pulpit was temporarily supplied by various persons until July, I882, when Rev. C. R. Henderson was called. He preached his first sermon as the pastor on September 3. The church has 500 sittings. The average attendance at morning service in I88o was 300. The pastor's salary was $2,000, the choir cost $I,o0o, and the total annual church expenses were $4,40o. The property was valued at $35,000. Number of members in 86o, 60; in I870, 242; in I880, 386. In 1883, lots for a new church building on the southeast corner of Woodward Avenue and Winder Street were purchased at a cost of $22,503. In I886 the Lafayette Avenue building was sold, and on tile first Sunday in August of the same year the chapel on Winder Street was dedicated. The church, which is built of Ionia stone, is deemed the handsomest in the city, and was dedicated on January 19, J887. It cost, including the furnishing, $132,500, and will seat,5oo00 persons. First German Church. This society was organized August I8, 1864, and reorganized by a Council of Baptist Churches on January 18, I869. The first meetings were held in the French Baptist Church, and then in tllh Clinton Avenue Sunday School building. Theirchurch, on the northwest corner of St. Aubin Avenue and Mullet Street, was dedicated May 8, I870. The lot cost $700 and the church $2,000. In the winter of i882 and I883 an addition was made to the front of the building. It seats 300. The parsonage, on the same lot, was built in 1875, and cost $500. The average attendance in I880 was 200. The pastor's salary was $450, and the total yearly expenses of the church $900. Value of the property, $3,000. Number of members in 1870, 51; in I880, 130. The following have served as pastors: S. Thoms, from 1864 to 1868; C. Jung, fronm 868 OR(;INxA LAFAYETTE AVENUE BAPTIST CHURCH. Woodward Avenue Church. The first steps towards organizing this church were taken at a meeting held on June 3, I860; and on June 15 following, fifty-six persons, mostly from the First Baptist Church, united together as the Lafayette Avenue Baptist Church. The society first met in the Tabernacle Church, on Howard near Second Street. In October, 1860, the church was received into the Michigan Baptist Association. On Wednesday, February 13, i86I, Rev. John Matthews was installed as pastor, and on December 12, 1862, the society was incorporated. In 1863 a lot seventy-five by one-hundred and thirty feet, on the south side of Lafayette Avenue between Cass and First Streets, was purchased for $3,125, and a chapel seating 250 was erected. It was first used on January 31, 1864. On October 6, I865, Mr. Matthews resigned, and on December 28 following. the main church was dedicated. The total cost of the church, chapel, and furnishings, was $26,000. On January 29, i866, Rev. M; Taylor was called as the pastor. lHe resigned on September 29, and was succeeded on November 2 1, 866, by Rev. Alfred Owen, who was installed January 20, 1867. In May, 1876, the society projected a mission which developed into the Eighteenth Street Baptist Church. The pastorate of Mr. Owen closed July i, I877, and for a time Rev. F. B. Cressey supplied the pulpit. He was succeeded on October 22 of the same year by Rev. W. WX. Hammond. He resigned FIRST GERM:\N BAPTIST CHURCH. THE BAPTIST CHURCHES. 609 to 1876; H. Fellman, from I876to i880; I880-I886, F. C. Koehler; I886-, R. Otto. Zion Church (Colored). This society has no building. It was organized in 1870. meeting at the house of George French, 339' Macomb Street. Rev. George Hurlbut was pastor from I870 to 1872, and they have had none since. Number of members in 1870, 45, in i88o, 25. The society incorporated January 25. 1871. Ai'ghteentih Stret lChurch. This church grew out of a mission established by the Lafayette Avenue Society. A meeting was held at that church on May I, I876, to consider the subject, and on MLay 15 it was decided to establish the Eighteenth Street Mission. A lot on the east side of Eighteenth Street near Marquette was purchased at a cost of $1,1oo, and a church, costing $3,400 additional, was erected. Rev. F. B. Cressey, the first pastor, began his labors May 15, and on May 20, I877, a Sunday school was commenced with one hundred and sixty-two scholars. The building was formally dedicated June 3, 1877, and regular preaching services began June Io. The average attendance at church in the morning, in i88o, was I25. The salary of the pastor was $1,20O, and the total yearly expenses, $1,300. In May, I88o, the church was enlarged, and the seating capacity increased from 275 to 500. The pews are all free. The church proper was organized July 1, 88o., with one hundred and eighteen members; reorganized on July 6, and formal recognition service held on July II, i880. The property was then valued at $6,500. In March, 1882, Rev. Mr. Cressey resigned, and on March 26 he was succeeded by Rev. M. H. Worrall. He died in 1887, and was succeeded by Rev. W. H. Stiffler. TWELFTH STREET BAPTIST CHURCH. 7gve/f lh S-tree Church. This is the outgrowth of a Sunday school organized in the fall of 1876 in the upper part of a store on Grand River Avenue between Twelfth and Thirteenth Streets. The prosperity of the school led to the obtaining of a lot on the southeast corner of Twelfth and Linden Streets, and the removal thereto of the unused Park Street Baptist Church. On January 6, 1878, the school first met in that building. On May I Rev. S. V. Titus commenced his labors as pastor. On September 19 a church was organized, and on September 29, 1878, the society was incorporated. Mr. Titus resigned, and was succeeded on May 12, I886, by Rev. R. E. Manning. The society began with forty-one, and in I88o had one hundred and nineteen members. The lot cost $800, and the removal and refitting the church, $55o. The church seats 380. The pastor's salary in I88o was $i,ooo, and the total yearly expenses $1,300. The value of the property was $4,000. The average attendance was 200. In the fall of 1883 the lecture room was enlarged and other improvements made, at a cost of about $600. Second German Church. This society had its beginnings in a German Sunday school, commenced February 20, 1876, in the EIGHTEENTH STREET BAPTIST CHURCH. 61o THE BAPTIST CHURCHES. Calvary Presbyterian Church. A church was then organized, and with twenty-five members was duly recognized on August I6, 1877, and on September 25 it was received into the Michigan Baptist Association. The church building, located on the east side of Mt. Hope Avenue, between Michigan Avenue and Ash Street, was first used June 29, and formally dedicated I)ecember I6, I879. The lot cost $400 and the building $420. The church seats 90. In 880 there were twenty-four members, and an average attendance Sunday morning of 30. The property was valued at $i,ooo. The church was organized by Rev. C. Jung, who served as pastor up to i882. On January I, 1883, Rev. A. Freytag became his successor. succeeded by Rev. T. C. Johnson, and he, in October, 1882, by Rev. John Spears, who continued the services where they were begun, in a private house, at 421 Hastings Street. In November, I883, that prop-::: ---:-, -. I...==.::C CLINT(N AVENUE BAPTIST CH.\fIEI.. SEC(NI (;ERMAN,IAPTIST CHU'RCH. C/Zinon Avenue Church. The church building of this society is located on the southeast corner of Joseph Campau and Clinton Avenues. The society was organized November 30, 1880, with fifty-two members. The chapel was dedicated on December 12, i88o. The lot cost $2,000 and the building $5,000. It seats 500. The first pastor, Rev. J. I). Pulis, began his pastorate November 30, i88o, and closed it April I, 1885. He was succeeded on October 4, I885, by Rev. C. E. Conley. The average attendance at the morning service in I88o was 250. The pastor's salary was $1,2oo, and the total annual expenses $I.ooo. A church costing $13,000 was dedicated October 7, 1884. It seats 500. Sh/iloh Church (Colored). This society was organized December i, I83I, by Rev. John P. Wills. Twenty-five members, mostly from the Second Baptist Church, united with the society. Mr. Wills died on May 14, I882, and was CI.INT()N AVENUE IBAPTIST CHLRCHI. erty was sold; services were then held for several months in a hall at 258 Gratiot Avenue. In the spring of I884 a building on Columbia Street, between Hastings and Prospect Streets, was purchased for $1,300, and fitted up for church services. Rev. Louis Auger has served as pastor since August, i885. 'THE BAPTIST CHURCHES. 6I F;irst 1French 1BaIptist Church. This church was organized September 20, 1857, and incorporated May 2, 1860. The first services were held in the old Congregational Church on Jefferson Avenue, which was used until their own building was completed. It is located on the north side of Sherman Street between Rivard and Russell Streets. The lot was donated by General Cass, and the brick church was dedicated February ii, I862. It seats 200 persons and cost S2,000. Mather again served for two or three years, and then for some time the church was without a pastor. Rev. J. Campbell came next, and remained two years. On July 20, 1859, it was decided to sell the chapel, buy a lot on Washington Avenue, corner of Clifford Street, for $6,ooo, and erect a church. On October i, 1859, the society laid the cornerstone of a brick church, and on August 26, i860, it was dedicated with preaching by Dr. James in the morning, and Dr. Inglis in the evening. It cost $io,ooo, had sixty-nine pews, and seated about 500. In this church, from I859 to 1864, Rev. James Inglis served as pastor, and in the fall of I864 Rev. E. Curtis took charge. He remained through I865, and was the last minister of the society. On April 20, 1863, the old church on Howard Street was sold to a society calling themselves the " Ioward Street Church of Christ," and on March 19, I867, the church on Washington Avenue was sold for $17,ooo to a Jewish congregation. The proceeds of the sale were used in liquidating debts, and the balance divided among those who had paid for the erection of the church. In I850 the society had 45 members and in I860, I O. After the sale of the church many of the members joined other societies. A year or two after the church was sold a few of the members began meeting for worship in the chapel built about I869 by Dr. Richard Inglis on the south side of Duffield Street, near \oodward Avenue. The frame of the building had formerly been a barn, but was refitted and practically built anew. About twenty persons, remnants of the old Tabernacle flock, with some additional members were worshiping there in I883. The building was owned by William Cowie. Park.Sr-cct Chiurch. (Exti nct.) This church was organized by Rev. G. S. Chase in February, I870, mostly from among members of the First Baptist Church. They dedicated their wooden church on the northeast corner of Park and Duffield Streets, on October 2, 1870. It cost $5,500 and seated 420. In 1870 they had 73 members. In I872 Rev. John Matthews became the pastor, and in January, 1873, the society united with the First Church. In December, 1877, their building was removed to Twelfth Street, and became the property of the Twelfth Street Baptist Church. Warren Avenue Church. This society was organized in May, 1885, and first occupied their chapel in July of the same year. It is located on Fourth near Warren Avenue, and cost, with the furnishings, $700. The first regular pastor, Rev. John Matthews began serving the church in the fall of 1887. THE FIENCH BAPTIST CUTIRCH. The pews are free. The average attendance in 1880 was about 125. Nutnber of members in I86o, 49; in 1870, 157; in i88o, loo. Rev. R. B. Desroches is the pastor, and his salary is $700. The total expenses in 1880 were $8oo. The property was estimated to be worth $3,500. Tabernacle Chl u-rch. ( I/EtZZcf.) This society was a branch of the First Baptist Church. The first meeting was held July 17, 1849, and on July 21 a Council of Churches organized the society. (n October 28, 1849, Rev. J. Inglis took charge. Services were held in the Detroit Institute, on the north side of Jefferson Avenue near St. Antoine Street, and in Septelber, I850, in Young Men's Hall. About this time General Cass donated a lot on Howard Street, between Second and Third Streets, and in the fall of 1852 a chapel thirty by forty feet was erected. In August, I852, Rev. A. E. Mather succeeded Mr. Inglis, and soon after services were held in the new chapel. It seated 200. Mr. Mather remained a few months, and the church was then without a pastor for a year. In October, 1854, Mr. Inglis again took charge, but in the summer of 1855 lie resigned. Rev. A. E. 612 OCCASIONS OF INTEREST TO THE DENOMINATION. North Baptisti Church. This society began seven years ago as a Sunday school, in a school-house, on the Holbrook Road, where it remained nearly four years. In October, 1884, Rev. E. M. Blanchard took charge, and the place of meeting was changed to the Bagg residence, on the corner of Woodward and Horton Avenues. The society continued there one year, and then removed to Brown's Hall, on the corner of Woodward and Milwaukee avenues. It numbers about 80 members. OCCASIONS OF INTEREST TO THE DENOMINATION. The semi-centennial of the organization of the Baptist Church in Detroit was observed on September 25, 1877. Sessions of the Baptist State Convention have been held in Detroit as follows: At the First Church, beginning August 31, 1836, October Ii, I85o, and October I4, I864; at the Lafayette Church on October 8, I869; and again at the First Church on October 19, 1875. The Detroit Baptist Social Union was organized May 20, 878. It was established to propagate and establish the principles and practices of the Baptist Church. The membership fee is $2.00. The following have served as officers: Presidents: I878 and I879, A. H. Wilkinson; I880-1881, C. C. Bowen; 1882, Rev. Z. Grenell; I883, D. A. Waterman; 1884, J. D. Standish. Secretaries: 1878-1881, Rev. F. B. Cressey; I88I, S. C. Annabel; 1882-, J. T. Beadle. Treasurers: I878-I881, Solon Prentiss; 188i, D. A. Waterman; I882-, George E. King. The National Baptist Anniversaries for 1884 were held at the Cass Avenue Church, beginning on May 21, I884. CHAPTER LXII. THE CONGREGATIONAL CHURCHES.- NOTABLE CONGREGATIONAL GATHERINGS. CONGREGATIONAL CHURCHES. First Conzgregatzonal Church. After the visit of Rev. David Bacon, we have no record of the presence of a Congregational minister in Detroit until I843, when the following notice appeared in the Daily Gazette: The Rev. E. McDowell, of the Eastern Congregational Association of Michigan, will preach to-morrow (Sunday) in the City Hall, at 3 o'clock p, Mr. The public are invited to attend. Preaching may also be expected at the same time and place every Sabbath until further notice. to the society. In his biography the fact of this visit is not mentioned. Mr. Hammond resigned his pastorate on July 5, I847, and was at once succeeded by Rev. O. C. Thompson, who preached for about two months, when failing health compelled him to give up the charge. Rev. R. R. Kellogg then served as pastor for a short time, and on November II, I847, it was agreed to engage Rev. W. W. Atterbury to fill the pulpit for six months. During the winter evangelistic services These services, which were soon discontinued, had no connection with the organization of the First Congregational Society, which dates its beginnings from the autumn of 1844, when a series of Sunday meetings was held at the City Hall and also in the Scotch Presbyterian Church, corner of Farmer and Bates Streets, by Rev. Henry L. Hammond. On November 25, I844, at a meeting held at the residence of C. G. Hammond, preliminary steps were taken to form a church. On December 8 following, at a meeting held in the City Hall, the plans were completed, and on December 23 the First Congregational Society of Detroit was incorporated. A Council of the Churches was held December 25, and the society duly organized with thirteen members. On January 5, 1845, a Sunday school was established. On March 31 a lot was purchased on the southwest corner of Jefferson Avenue and Beaubien Street for $2,0oo, and the society commenced the erection of a church. Services were held meantime, first in the City Hall, then in the Capitol, and finally in the Circuit Court room, on the corner of Congress and Griswold Streets. On Sunday, December 14, I845, services were first held in the basement of the new church. On August 30, 1846, the building was completed and dedicated. It was of brick, cost about $5,000, was forty-five by seventy-five feet in size, had i80 pews, and seated about I,ooo. Iuring the first two years of the existence of the church, David Hale, of New York, paid $600 a year to the support of the pastor, Rev. H. L. Hammond. On January 16, 1847, the noted revivalist, Rev. C. G. Finney, visited Detroit, and preached every evening for the week following. Several were added FIRST CONGREGATIONAL CHURCH. Original building were held in the church by the Rev. J. P. Avery. On July IO, 1848, Rev. H. D. Kitchell was called to the pastorate; on Sunday, October I, 1848, he preached his first sermon, and on December 6 he was installed. In the fall of 1852 the subject of a new church in a different location began to be agitated. On January IO, I853, it was decided to locate on the southwest corner of Fort and Wayne Streets. The lot cost $Io,ooo and the building and furnishing L6I31 6I4 CONGREGATIONAL CHURCHES. $45,908. The church was dedicated September 21, I854. The old church and lot sold for $9, 50. On November 2, 1864, Rev. H. D. Kitchell resigned, and on December 2, Rev. S. MI. Freeland was called. He commenced his labors on March 20, 1865, and in less than a year a movement for a Second Congregational Church was inaugurated. Mr. Freeland resigned as pastor of the First Church, andover one hundred members went with him into a new organization. In April, I866, Rev. A. Ballard began to preach for the First Church. He was called ^ soon after, corn-. menced regual4ar' i866, he was in- i0 stalled. On December 9,1869, the quarter centennial of the organization of the church was observed with appropriate exercises. Dr. Ballard resigned on February 5, 1872, and the pulpit was supplied by Rev. Mr. McWilliams, Rev. Professor Estabrook, and others, until September, 1873. Rev. Dr. Z. FIRST CONGREC Eddy then be was 500, the pastor's salary was $3,500, the yearly expense of the choir $9oo, the sexton was paid $300, and the total annual expenses footed up $6,ooo. The value of the property was $50,000. About $5,500 is received annually from pew rents. The number of members in 1850 was 166; in i860, 355; in 1870, 279; in 1880, 516. Sc'coznd Chzurch. The first effort to establish a society called the Second,5..C on gregational A C Church was b~ a " o:cil o, f C~h rche o made by Rev. become1" pastor4; othnefoc Orson Plarker, hundr.e ~ and a society.4 chrc ten ko ate b thus called was incorporated on J january 24, 1 85o. It was proposed ofTI Woodward Avue andto build a church on \\ccdward.Avvenue to be called Detroit the.f~L~t' chc Tabernacle, and 4 on Fchruarv 14, 1850, a fair was held in a vacant store on Jefferson Avenue to obt:iin funds in I~~~~~I ~aid of the enterprise. The society held meet-;!.I, L ings for a time in ilechanics' I all, but the enterprise w-as soon abandoned. The later an(l Msuccessful society branched off fromn the First Church i i 9 March, i 866, was incorporaATIONAI CHURCH. ted March 19. and organized by a Council of Churches on April 3. Rev. S. dI. Freeland resigned as pastor of the First Church to become pastor of the new flock, which numbered one hundred and ten persons. The society first met in the church then known as the Tabernacle Baptist, on the corner of Washington Avenue and Clifford Street. In July, i866, a lot was purchased near the corner of WVoodward Avenue an(l Sibley Street for $5,000, gan his pastorate. He was installed October o, and resigned just ten years later; his successor, Rev. W. H. Davis, accepted a call to the pastorate in April, 1884. In the summer of I874 the church was extensively repaired and improved at a cost of $12,260. The number of sittings in the church is 940. The average attendance at Sunday morning service in 1880 CONG(REGATIONAL CHURCHES. 615 and a chapel forty by sixty feet erected on the rear of the lot. It was completed at a cost of $6,000, and dedicated July 23, 1867. In 1870 the society had one hundred and ninety-seven members, and from pew rents. The value of the property was $60,00o. The average attendance was 375. Number of members in I870 was I97; in 1880, 279. Tr-ubullZ Avenue Church. This society is the outgrowth of the Ninth or Trumbull Avenue Mission School, which was established in I868 on the west side of Trumbull Avenue near Howard Street. The building was dedicated November 7, I868. The cost of the property was about $1o,ooo. The school flourished, and on April 27, I88I, a church w-ith seventy-three members was organized, with Rev. R. \W. Wallace as pastor. He served until the fall of 1887, when he resigned, and was succeeded by Rev. A. ''. Swing. The building seats 500, and the average attendance at church services in I88 w\as Ioo. The total yearly expenses were $2,500. In August, I88I, the building was moved to a lot which cost $4,500, on the northeast corner of Baker Street and Trumbull Avenue. In its new location the building was dedicated on October 16, I88i. The property was then valued at $io,ooo, and at that time there was a debt of $3,000 on the property..Spriznvells Ch urch. The building of this organization is located on the Crane Farm, on the west side of Lovers' Lane, about five hundred feet from the river. The lot, worth $600, was donated by George Jerome and other owners. The church cost $2,600, and while SECOND CONG(;iGA.TIONAI. CHURCH. this year they purchased an adjoining corner lot for $5,500, and in the fall of 1872 began to build a church. The basement was completed and first used August 23, I874. The chapel was then sold to the African M. E. Church for $300. The body of the church was dedicated November 21, 1874. It seats nearly I,200. The cost, including furnishing, was about $70,000. Mr. Freeland resigned, and his pastorate ceased March 1, 1875. He was succeeded, on April i, by Rev. George Porter, as special supply to October I. Rev. W. T. Sprole then entered upon the duties of the pastorate. He was followed in September, i878, by Rev. R )eWVitt Mallary, \ho remained a year, and in October, I879, Rev. Moses Smith became the pastor. In February, i888, he resigned. From the time the society built its new church it was heavily in debt, and being unable to pay a mortgage on the property, on February 21, 1879, the church became the property of the mortgagee, and the society for a time worshiped in the chapel of the Cass Avenue Baptist Church. Arrangements were finally made to rent the church, and on November 22, 1880, the congregation subscribed enough to purchase the church, and again became owners of the property. The pastor's salary in I880 was $2,500, the yearly cost of choir, $550, and the total annual expenses, $3,500. Four thousand dollars a year was received TRUMBULL AVENUE CONGREGATIONAL CHURCH. in an unfinished condition, was first occupied by the Sunday school in December, 1879. It was seated with chairs, and could accommodate 300. It was gradually completed, and in January, I88I, was 616 NOTAB'A BLE CONGREGAA'I`IONA;L G;ATHERINGS.Y:;S 6i6 NOTABLE CONGREGATIONAL GATHERINGS. turned over by the building committee to the care of the First Congregational Society. A church Fremont Street 'oli:sh.1/ision. This is located on the northeast corner of St. Antoine and Calhoun streets. The school was organized in March, I884. The lot cost $I,200 and the building and furnishing $t,ooo. In I885 the building was enlarged at a cost of nearly $r,200, and will now accommodate 450. The school is under the care of Rev. N. S Wright, and has an average attendance of over 200. NOTAB.IIL CONGREGATIONAL GATHERINGS. In May of the years 1845, 1854, 1859, 1864, and I880 the State meetings of the General Association of Michigan were held in Detroit.. ~ ~ ~ ~ -- SPRINGWELIS CONGREGATIONAL CHURCH. society was organized in the spring of 1881, with twenty-five members. The enterprise is the outgrowth of a mission school established about 1868, under the care of the First Congregational Church after I875. Preaching services were begtin in November, I880, with an average attendance of 75. In i88i this and the Trumbull Avenue Congregational Church were both under the pastoral care of Rev. R. W. Wallace. On February 19, 1882, Rev. S. R. Bonnell became the first regular pastor; he resigned on October I5, and on March 15, I883, Rev. A. B. Allen entered upon the pastorate. HIIarier AveZllle.11'ission. This mission is located on the south side of Harper Avenue, between Woodward Avenue and john R. Street. The building was dedicated on March 4, i883. The lot cost $f,6oo and the building and furniture $i,o;o. The building can seat 200. The school was established on July 23, undei the care of Rev. O. C. Thompson. A church was organized May 19, I885, with Rev. C. A. Wright as pastor. He was succeeded in September, 1886, by Rev. P. W. Sinks, who remained until August 7, 1887, and was succeeded on November 4 by Rev. Norman Plass. Mt. Hotpe Mission. This mission school is located on the wvest side of Mt. Hope Avenue, about one block south of Michigan Avenue. The building cost $400 and is on leased ground. It was first occupied.on October 19, 1882. S - / MIT. HOPE AVENUE MISSION. On October 17, i870, the Triennial Council of the Congregational Churches began its sessions in the Second Congregational Church. Many distinguished delegates were present, including Presidents Woolsey and Magoun and Rev. Dr. Storrs of New York. On September 7 to I, 1858, the forty-ninth meeting of the American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions was held in Detroit. Mark Hopkins, LL. D., Ieonard Bacon, LL. D., and many other noted clergymen, were present. Twenty-five years later, from October 2 to 6, 1883, the sessions of the Board (the seventy-fourth), were again held in Detroit, at the Central Methodist Episcopal Church, which was tendered for the meetings. There was a very large attendance, and much interest was manifested in the services. CHAPTER LXIII. THE LUTHERAN CHURCHES. St. JoIhn's Gcrman Evanglical C hizrch. THIS society grew out of services first held by Rev. F. Schmid on August I8, I833, in a carpenter shop owned by John Ilais, located on the corner of \Woodbridge and Bates Streets. On September 22 following, two elders, Valentine Ruehle, Jr., and David Striker, were elected. On January 30, 1836, the Governor and Judges sold the society Lot 54, in Section 6, on the northeast corner of Monroe Avenue and Farrar Street, for $40. Mr. Schmid preached until July, I836, 'and then the society obtained the services of Rev. J. I'. Schw abe as a pastor; the services were held in the Presbyterian Session Room. on Woodward Ave- ri nue. Mr. Schwabe remained until, hii January, 1837, and soon afterward (lied. Iuring 1837 a wooden church, thirty-five by fifty feet, was erected on the Monroe Avenue Lot, and in March it was nearly completed. On October 22, 1837, Rev. M. Schaad was called whvo continued until February, I86r, when he, with a part of the congregation, left the society, and organized a German Iresbyterian church, holding services in a building on the south side of Catharine near (ratiot Street, erected in 1867 as a French and German Presbyterian Church. Rev. C. Haass was again called as pastor of the original society, and in April, I862, he began a pastorate which is still continued. In 1872 the congregation sold the property on Monroe Avenue for $25,o000, and in February, 1877, the building was torn down. After the sale of the property the church on Russell Street, E R_ 57between Antietam and Chestnut Streets, was erected. It was dedicated on September 20, 1874. The lots cost $1 3, 100, and the church and school $72,ooo. The chiurch debt, in I88o, was $30,o000oo. The church seats nearly 1,500 persons. The number of commu872, AND SECOND BUILDING OF nicants in 840 was CHURCH. 175; in 1850, 375; in I86o, 638; in 1872, i,550; in 1874, 1,272; in 1876, 1,346; in I88o, 1,250. In I88o, the total yearly expenses. and receipts from pews, were about $5,ooo each. The salary of the pastor was $1,200. The average attendance at Sunday morning service was 750. On September 23, I883, the semi-centennial organization of the church was observed with appropriate exercises, sermons were preached by several clergymen from other cities, and three bells, purchased at a cost of $1,600, were dedicated. SI. Paul's German Evangcelical ChurcA. This society, a branch of the original Monroe Avenue Church, was organized with twenty-four members on October 21, and incorporated on November I, I872. Its brick church, located on PART OF MONROE AVENUE IN I ST. JOHN'S to the pastorate. He remained until June, I841, and was succeeded in October by Rev. F. Herman, who served until August, I852, and was followed by Rev. C. Haass, who arrived on August 19. Soon after this the church was sold, moved to the southeast corner of Beaubien and Beacon Streets, and turned into a dwelling. It was afterwards burned. A new brick church, fifty-six by seventy-five feet, was then erected. It seated 850, and was dedicated January 9, I853. Rev. Mr. Hartman of Chicago preached the sermon. On August 6, 1854, at twelve o'clock at night, the inside of the church was almost entirely destroyed by fire. Mr. Haass left in September, and in October, 1854, Rev. C. F. Soldan became pastor, remaining one year. He was succeeded by Rev. Herman Miller, [617] 40 6 8 THES LUTHERAN~ CHURCHES.3 S 6_8 TN the corner of Seventeenth and Rose Streets, was dedicated on February 16, I873. The church cost $i8,ooo, and seats 700. The lot cost $1,850. Rev. J. G. Hildner was the first pastor, and in I883 was still serving. In 1880 the number of communicants was I,ooo, representing 200 families. The average attendance at church was 250. The pastor's salary was $700. The total yearly expenses were $3,000, and the receipts from pews, $I,700. Adjoining the church is a brick parsonage, which cost cost $I,375 __ The church.____- = _____ debt, in i88, was II,000.ooo St. ark __ _ __ Germanz Evangelical Clzhrch. This is locat- ___ --- —-- ---- ed on the corner -- _ of Military and -- __Di. Avenues. - - Th e i r fi rs t - __; building now =used as a school, cost $,300, and -- - the lot$450. It - =-i l was dedicated January i6, 1r884. OnJune 14, i885, Rev J. S. Fismer beand a church IS costing $3,500 j i a was erected. It. -- was dedicated - November 6, 1887, and will_ 887, and will ST. JOHNos GEIM\N F ANGELICseat 400. Trinity Evangelical Lutheran Czhurch. This church was organized in the year 1850, and incorporated March I0, 185 i. The first pastor, Rev. J. M. G. Schaller, accepted a call in November, 1850, and meetings were begun in a building on Woodbridge Street, in rear of Christ Church. In I851, J. H. Toepel and about twenty-five others bought, for $200, the old frame warehouse on Woodbridge Street, between Shelby and Wayne Streets, which had been used as a Bethel Church. It was moved at an expense of $200 to a lot sixty by one hundred and fifty feet, costing $1,o50, on the north side of Lamed Street, between Rivard and Russell Streets, and fitted up at a further cost of $300. Rev. J. M. G. Schaller stayed three years. and in 1854 accepted a call from St. Louis. In 1854 Rev. H. Fick succeeded Mr. Schaller, but soon after his coming, owing to his failing health, an assistant had to perform much of his duty. In 1856 an addition, equal in size to the original building, was erected, and the seating capacity increased to 400. In I858 Rev. A. Wesserman became pastor, and in January, 860, he was succeeded by Rev. _ w. _ A_ J. A. Huegli, who was still L~___ CHURC AND S Oserving in I 883. In i866 a lot -- with dwelling, - -ason the northeast corner of of_ C e a.i-CGratiot Avenue an d Prospect Street, was purchased for $6,000, and a b ric k church, fifty by one hundred and three feet, costing $I 5,000 was erected. It was dedicated October 24, I866, and seats seven hundred persons. The old church was turned into a dwelling. Number of communica n t s L CHURCH AND SCHOOlw HO)IiSE. in I86o, 200, in 1870, 400; in i88o, 450. The average attendance at morning service in i88o was 500. The yearly cost of mainltaining the church was about $2,ooo, and the saime amount was received from pew rents. Including the parsonage, the property was valued at about $30,000, and in 188i there was a debt of $4,000ooo. This society shows much activity in promoting the interests of their denomination in Detroit. (O)n January 8, I888, they dedicated a new mission building located on the southeast corner of Dubois street and Endicott Avenue. The lots cost $1,2oo00, and the building $830. It seats 128 persons. A day school is maintained in the building.:AL THlE LUTHERAN CHURCHES. 619 Zion E-vangelical Lutheran (~ urch. This society was organized August 22, 1882, by Rev. K. L. Moll. The building is located on the west side of Welch Avenue, near Michigan Ayentue. The lots cost $I,200 and the church $8,ooo. It was dedicated July 8, 1883. The first pastor, Rev. C. F. Schatz, commenced his labors October....... 15~i, i1882. Bet hlehemi Evani~,oelical Lltherat C/hurcih. This society was organized on Easter Monday, 1887. The church is located on the east side of MeKinistry Avenue,. between Fort Street and IDix Avenue. The lot cost $2,000 and the bUilding,. $6,ooo. It seats fioo, and was dedicated November 20, 1 887. Rev. F. 'Fresselt, its first pastor, took charge July1 31, 1887. The church began with twenty-four members. 5'.Paul's Evangeli'cal Lutheran Church. The church occupied by this society is located on the northeast corner of Joseph Campau Avenue TRKINITY EVA\NGELICAL Lui'HERAN CHURCH. liTnnelEvani~,rclicai Luthera n Churcih. [h~is organization is a branch of Trinity Church. It was organized in i864 wvith fifteen members, and incorporated August 14, i 865. Their first church, a wooden ~ building, twenty-six by fifty-six feet, was erected on Trrumnbull Avenue. betweeni Orchiardl and Plum Streets. It was dedicatcd Novml~r; 185,and scated three hundred and fifty persns On Januar-11y i 2, i 873, thecir brick chur1ch, size, fortv-eight by one hundrcd and twclve feet, on the corner of Scventeenth antid Pine Streets, was dedicated. The lot cost $i,6oD, and the church $14,000. The building seats nine hundred lpersons. The olr building was turned into a school-house and subsequently torn downi. R~ev. K. L Moll, the first Ipastor, camtie to the city FebruaryV 6, i866, and is still serving in 1 884. In 1870 the nmiiber oif comimuniicants was 460, or sixty-six heads of famiilies, and in i88o, 1,346, or one hundred and forty-five heads, of families. TFhe av- 7N erage attendance at morning service in i88o was 8oo. Trhe lpastor's salary in i 88o was $6oo. The total yearly expenses were $2,500, and the receipts from pew rents, $1,700. There was a church debt of $9,000. The JA~ parsonage was built in i871, antd cost $i,- ST. PAUL'S GERMAN EVANGELICAL CHURCH, 300. Corner Seventeenth and Rose Streets. 620 620 ~~~~THE LUT HERAN CHURCHE'S. and Jay Street. The society was organized in October, 187 1, and incorporated September 8, 1872. It afibliates with Trinity Church, from which its first members came. The church was consecrated September 8, I187 3. J'he lots, cost $2,300, the church $8,954, and the parsonage $2,000. The average attendance in i 88o was 500. The pastor's salary was $6oo. The yearly expenses were $2,500, and the receipts from pews $i,6oo. The church debt, in i8i, was $i,ioo. The church seats 700. During 1883 a tower was added to the chiurch, and a chime of three bells procured, at a total cost Of ab1oult $5,ooo. They were consecrated on. Septcmb —r 9, i833. of families in connection with the church in i 85o, i 86o, and 1 870 was 35, and in i 88o, 40. 'hhe pews are free. The total yearly expenses are $700. Thle pastor's salary in i88o wvas $330. IMMANUEL EVANGELICAL LUTHERAN CHURCH. ORIGINAL ImMANUEL EVANGRLICAL LUTHERAN CIIURCH. Rev. E. IDankwvorth, the first pastor, was succeeded on February 15, i1878, by Rev. C. H. Rohe; on August 17, 1882, he was followed by Rev. II. J. Schuh, and on January 1, 1885, Rev. G. F. H. Meiser became pastor. Ehe church began with 17 members in i 8 -i. and in i 88o had 50o. St.-Ma/f hewz's E_'vangelic'al Lutheran Church. This society was organized and incorporated November io, 1845. They held their first services in the City Hall. Their brick church, on the south side of Congress Street, near Rivard Street, was dedicated on August 2, 1846, and seats 200, with an average attendance of 130. The lot Cost $200. The, parsonage, on the same lot, cost $400. On August 8, 185o, the Chtirch united with the Evangelical Lutheran Synod, of Buffalo. Rev. J. F. Winckler, their first pastor, remained until i856, and then wvent to Buffalo,-'New York, ts- become a professor in the Lutheran College. The number The value of the property was $i0,oo0, and there was a debt of $800. The pastors hav~e been: 1845-i857, J. F. Winckler; 1857-i859, Sigmund1.ritsclicl; 1859, 'William- (Grafxau; i86o-i864, F'redl,pplinig; 1864-1871i, Charles Schiadow; 1871-1875, lenry Meir; 1875, Charles Schadow; 1876, none; ZION EVANGELICAL LUTHERAN CHURCH AND SCHOOL. THE LUTHERAN CHURCHES.62 621 _ -- ~~~~~~~~~penses about $900. TF he valuLe of the property was $I 5,ooo; and there was a church debt Of $1,300. ____ ______ ~ ~~he pastors have been: A. Berkey, November _____ ~ ~ -20, 1848, to June 20, 1852; E. Berker, August i i, __ ________ ~~~~1852, to September 24, 1854; E. Spies, October i, El ~ ~ ~ ~~_1854, to January 3, I856; H. Hoff, January i9, to __ ~~~~~~~February 1, 1857; A. Shroeter, -May i i, 1857, to __________ ___ ~~~~~March 6, i86o; C. Cast, October 28, i86o, to Feb_____ m~~~~~~~~~~rary 26, i 866; P. Greding, February 26, i 866, to ____ ~~~~~~~~~August 6, 1870; John Baumgertner, September 19, 1870, toMy1,1873; John Niehoff, May 12, 1873, _________ ____ ~~~~~~~to March 1, 1876; William Hansen, from May 3, __________ 1~~~~~~~~876. S.5 P'eter's German Evangelical Lu/Aheran Ch4urcA. ____ ~~~~~~~~~~This congregation was gathered in the spring of 1878 by Rev. Emil IDankworth. Their church, located onl the northwest corner of Pierce and Chene Streets, on lots costing $1,450, was consecrated in June, 1878. The building seats 1,2oo, and cost $7,000. In i88o there was a debt of $6,ooo. In ___ ~~~~~~~~~i88o there was an average attendance Of 450 at ~~~~~~~ ~~~~~ morning set-vice; number of communicants, 750. The pastor's salary was $684, antid the church expenses abou~t $1,084 yearly. Mr. Dankworth died in the spring of 1 887, and Was Succeeded by Rev. C. ST. PAUL's EVANGEICA\L Lrrif-u.s Cmir Tyr 1877, John Grabati; 1 877- i 88o, Alexander Lange; i88o-,John Kin~derman. Zz'io (;Cw7?an ELtformcti Churclh. This congregation was organized on November 20, 1 849, and incorporated May 22, 185o. 'Their first meetings were held in the City Hall. On April 12, 1852, they dledicatedI their brick Chnrch, onl the north sieof Croghan, near Beanbien Street. In February, 1857, they sold it to the Second Baptist Colored Church for $3,800, and] on July 9 of the same year it was resolved to buy the lots on the east side of Russell, between Sherman and Catha- I rine Streets, onl which the present church - is located. They cost $750. The church, thirty by forty feet, was erected at a cost U BH ~ ' of $ i,6oo. In 1862 it was enlarged at a P, cost of about $2,200. The parsonage was erected in 1857 at a cost of about $1,5oo, including the lot. The church seats 200, and in i88o bad an average attendance of 75. In 185o there were 65 COMMu'nicants; in i86o, 107; in 1870, I2o; and in 188o, 135. The salary of the pastor in 188o was $6oo, and the total annual cx- ST. MNA'TTHEW's EVAN IGLICM. LUTHERAN CHURCH. 6_22 THE LUTHERAN CHURCHES. Fredenrich, and he in the fall of I887 by Rev. G. Schramm. Salem German Evangelical Lutheran Chu, ch. (Extinct.) This societvy owned and occupied the building originally erected in I857, on Catharine Street near Gratiot Street, as a French and German Presbyterian -- Church. On March 9, i862, a German Lutheran Church was organized in the building, and contin- -- ued there about two years, with Rev. H. Gundert ST. PETER'S GERMAN EVANGELICAL LUTHERAN CHURCH. From November, 1884, Rev. C. A. Otto served the parish, and on January 2, I886, became its regular pastor. Soon after Mr. Otto came the congregation sold their property on Catharine Street for $5,000, to the Catholic congregation of Our Lady of Sorrow, and purchased lots on the southeast corner of Joseph Campau Avenue and Illinois Street for $1,45o, and erected a church which cost $3,300. It vwas dedicated May I7, I885, and seats 35~. ZION GEI nIAN REFOX.N[IED CHURCH. as pastor. The society then disorganized, and 1 the property passed into the possession of a new J society, which was organized in June, I864. On,: November 26, i865, the building was dedicated, and on January 20, 1866, the society was incorporated. The property was purchased February 26, 1866, for $2,ooo. The three-story brick parsonage!!' I cost $i,5oo, and the entire property in i88o was worth about $I 2,000. The number of sittings in the church is 250, and the average attendance in ml 1880 was 175. Number of members in 1864, 4; in I870, 37; in i88o, 230. Pastor's salary, $400.'i Yearly expenses of the church, $700. The first pastor was Rev. J. J. Schmidt. In October, I877, he was succeeded by Revr. J. Sturmer. For.-,TEr SAIEM GERMAN EVANGELICAN LUTHERAN CHUlCH. THE LUTHERAN CHURCHES. 623 Rev. Emil Hardrat was pastor in 1883 and on November 21, 1886, was succeeded by Rev. Wilhelm 13unge. Christ Evan.~elical Lutheran U. A. C. Chzrch. This society was organized February 20, 1887; the letters U. A. C, as part of the title of their church, meaning Unaltered Augsburgh Confession. Their lots, on the northeast corner of Scotten and Wolff Avenues, cost $800, and their building $1,026. It was dedicated May 22, 1887, and seats 180. Rev. L. A. C. Detser is the pastor. Chrikst Evangelical Lutheran Church. This church is located on the northwest corner of Twenty-sixth and Myrtle Streets. The corner stone was laid on June 5, 1887. The lot cost $800 and the building $1o,ooo. It seats 700, and was dedicated October 30, 1887. Rev. E. Frommel is pastor. Trz)zity Lutheran,lisszin. Is located on the corner of Pulford and Beaufait Avenues. The lot cost $1,200 and the building $So). It was first used in November, I886. It is under the care of Trinity Church, on the corner of Gratiot Avenue and Russell Street. ST. LUKE'S GERMAN EVANGELICAL LUTHERAN CHURCH. Sf. Lu ke's German Evangelical Lutheran Church. The small wooden building of this society is located on the south side of Leland Street near St. Antoine Street. The church and lot cost $1,500. The building was erected for a Swedish Lutheran Church, designated as St. John's. Rev. 0. C. Amble was the founder of the society. The enterprise failed of support, and services were continued only about a year. The church was then unoccupied until i 8S, when it was rented, and opened on June 5, with services by Rev. John J. Schmidt. It has two hunLdred sittings and an average attendance of sixty persons at services. In I88i there were twelve members. The services were discontinued in I886, and the building turned into a dwelling. Sf. Johtn's Indepentdent Lutheran Churlch. This society purchased the old St. Mark's Episcopal Church property, on the southwest corner of Twenty-third and Ash Streets, on March 25, i88o. The church and parsonage are valued at $4,ooo. In i880 there were about one hundred communicants. The total church expenses, including the pastor's salary, were $700. ST. JOHN'S INDEPENDENT LUTHERAN CHURCH. CHAPTER LXIV. THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH.-THE NEW JERUSALEM CHURCH.-THE UNITARIAN CHURCH.-THE UNIVERSALIST CHURCH -UNITY CHURCH.JEWISH CONGREGATIONS.-GENERAL CHURCH STATISTICS. THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH. The First Chrzistan Church. A society known as Disciples, Campbellites, or Christians held meetings in Detroit in a private house as early as 1838. In I846 meetings were held in a school-room near the corner of Congress and Randolph Streets, under the leadership of Rev. W. K. Nay. The same year the use of the State Capitol was obtained, and services were held each Sabbath, and about this time Mr. Nay was succeeded by Rev. Eli Regal. He was serving as pastor in October, 185 I. After worship-.... ing in the Capitol for a few months, the society moved to the Odd Fellows' Hall, on Woodward Avenue: then, on April 9, 1848, to Fowler's school building, on the north side of Jefferson Avenue near St. Antoine Street; from this place they moved to the old City Hall, where they remained until 1863. Several members of the society then purchased WA.\SHINGTON AVENL the old Congregational Church on Jefferson Avenue, and on January 3 of that year held their first services there, with Rev. Isaac Errett as pastor. He remained until January I, 1865, and was at once succeeded by Rev. W. '. Moore. Under Mr. Moore's pastorate, on October 15, 1865, the Howard Street congregation (whose history is given separately) united with the Jefferson Avenue Church, but in January, I868, they left to re-establish their own society. Mr. Moore remained until February, 1866, and was succeeded on March 15 by Rev. A. J. Hobbs, who continued until April I, 1867. He was followed on May i, 1867, by Rev. '. V. Berry, and in July of the next year a portion of the congregation, with Mr. Berry, the pastor, left the Jefferson Avenue congregation, and commenced services at St. Andrew's Hall. In I869 and I870 Rev. M. S. Clapp was pastor of the congregation at St. Andrew's Hall. Meantime the Jefferson Avenue Church had as its pastors B. A. Hinsdale in I868, 0. P. Millar in 1869, and H. H. Black in 1870. In March, 1871, the two congregations united, and soon after, under the pastorate of Mr. Clapp, they began worship-.... ing in the Washis:.-. *~ ington Avenue edifice. This building formerly belonged to "=:- the Scotch Presbyte-....., rian Church, and was purchased for and presented to the society by Colin Campbell and Thomas Linn, at a cost of — _. C. | | R32,600. The lot cost $7, oo, and the property in i88o was valued at $,ooo.00 Rev. Gilbert J. Ellis su(ceeded Mr. Clapp "E CHRISTIAN CHURCH. on July, 187 I, and remained until November 1, I875. Rev. T. D. Butler served from September I, 1876, to March, 1878, and Rev. (George Clendenning from September 1, 1878, to April, i88o. The next regular pastor was Rev. WV. 13. Thompson, whose term began in July, 1883. The church seats 600, and the pews are free. The pastor's salary in i88o was $I,500, and the other church expenses about $400 per year. The average attendance in I88o was 150. Number of members in 1860, 75; in 1870, 175; inl 1880, 230. >241 LI THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH. 625 Church of Christ. This congregation, worshiping on the corner of Fourth and Plum Streets, is a part of the original society of Disciples. After a portion of the congregation had left to organize a church on Jefferson Avenue, the remainder, for a few months, wor gan Exchange. On July I4 following, Sunday morning services, which had been held at the house of S. Hall, were first held at this place. On January 13, I846, Mr. Field rented a store underneath, and fitted it up for meetings, and on Sunday, May 3, an upper room in the Republican Block was first used. The society on December 6 moved from there to the United States Court Room, over the Post Office, on the corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street, and there, on January 30, 1848, was fully organized. In September, meetings were held in the County Court Room, on the corner of Griswold and Congress Streets. In I85I Rev. Jabez Fox became pastor, and on July I8, 1852, the Detroit society of the New Church was incorporated. The society then moved to the old Congregational Church on Jefferson Avenue, holding their first services there on July 22, 1855, and the same year the pastorate of Mr. Fox ceased. In I856 Rev. G. Field again became pastor, and as early as February, 1858, the society moved to a room over 154 Woodward Avenue, near the Campus Martius, remaining there nearly a year, and then moving back to the old Congregational Church. A lot and building on Macomb Avenue near Park Street was next bought and fitted up at a cost of $4,oo000, and dedicated August 26, 1860. From this time until 1862 there was no pastor. In the latter year Rev. G. Field returned, and remained until I866. ])ISCIIPI ocS (O CHRIST CHURCH. shiped in the City Hall. Finally, the society purchased of the Tabernacle Society a little frame church on I-Howard Street, for $2,ooo, and orn May 29, I863, was incorporated as the Howard Street Church of Christ, which is still its legal titie. The 'Howard Street Church seated 200. On October 15, I865, the society united with that worshiping on Jefferson Avenue, and in April, i866, the old church on Howard Street was sold, and soon afterwards turned into a dwelling. I)uring the first week of January, I868, the two societies separated, and on July 26, this society first used its building on the northwest corner of Fourth and Plum Streets. The lot cost $i,8oo and the building $3,000. The church seats 300. All the pews are free. The average attendance in I880 was 200. Number of members in i850, 60; in i86o, IOO; in 1870, 120; in i880, 220. In 1880 the estimated value of the property was $6,000, and the yearly expenses about $500. During I883 the society established a riission on the corner of Fourteenth Avenue and Ash Street. The lot cost $1,250 and the building $1,350. It was first used on May i. 'The society has no clergyman, so called, the services being conducted by elders and deacons. New Jerusalem Church. The first church of this name in Detroit was organized with seven members on August 25, 1839, at the house of Nathan Goodell, by Rev. H, Weeks. Services were held until the summer of I842, and then discontinued until March I4, I844, when Rev. G. Field began teaching the doctrines of this church in the second story of a building opposite the Michi MISSION CHAPEL-DISCIPLES OF CHRIST, From December, i867, to March, I868, Rev. W. G. Day was pastor. He was succeeded by Rev. E. C. Mitchell, who remained from I869 to I872. During his pastorate the church property was sold for $6,ooo and the proceeds used in the purchase of a lot on the southwest corner of Cass and High 626 THE NEW JERUSALEM CIHUICH.I Streets, which cost $6,000. A new church costing $8,000 was then erected, and dedicated November 3, 1872. It seats 330. In 1873 Rev. L. P. Mercer became pastor. -Ie remained until 1877, and I)ctroit, and at his suggestion services were held in the United States Court Room, corner of Jefferson Avenue and Griswold Street. On his return trip from the West, another meeting was held in the old seminary building on Griswold Street, and as a result of these meetings, in the spring of 1850, a room vwas rented in the old Odd Fellows' Hall, an Act of Incorporation obtained from the Legislature, and on October 6, I850, the church was organized and became a corporate body. 1)uring the summer and fall of 1850 occasional meetings were held by Rush R. Shippen, Dr. Hosmer, Rev. C. M. Taggart, and Rev. T. C. Adam. In April, i85I, Rev. J. A. Penniman, of Savannah, Georgia, conducted services, and on July 4 of this year Rev. T. J. Mumford became the first regular pastor. Ile was installed on August 24. Under his pastorate the two lots on the northwest corner of Lafayette Avenue and Shelby Street were secured at a cost of $3,000, and a church erected, and dedicated on September 8, 853. It cost $I2,000, and had sittings for 488 persons. In I859 Mr. Mumford went East on account of his health, and this year the pulpit was supplied by Rev. Richard Metcalf. H-e was followed, in the fall of i860, by Rev. Mr. Silsbee, and on )ecenm NE\ JERUSALEMI CHIRC(H. was succeeded in the fall of 1879 by Rev. J. B. Parmelee, who remained only a few months. Rev. George Field then served the church for three months, and the pulpit was afterwards supplied temporarily by various persons until April I, 1881, when Rev. H. C. Vetterling came. He remained but a few weeks, and was followed by Rev. J. R. Hibbard, who, as the presiding minister of the Michigan Association, cared for the church in the absence of a pastor. (n September 16, 1883, a regular pastor was secured, Rev. A. F. Frost beginning his duties on that date. The number of members in 1840 was 7; in 1 850, 38; in 1860, 1870, and 1880, the number was 70. The average attendance in I880 at morning service was 80. The pastor's salary was $i,ooO, and the total yearly expenses, $I,200. Value of the property, $15,000. THE CONGREGATIONAL UNITARIAN CnmiCnI. The Confgregational Unifarian Church. The beginnings of this society date from the winter of 1849-1850. Rev. F. W. Holland, secretary of the American Unitarian Society, then paid a visit to ber 31, 1860, Mr. Mumford's pastoral term was formally closed. After Mr. Mumford's withdrawal the pulpit was supplied temporarily until 1862. Rev. S. S. THE UNIVERSALIST CHURCHI. 62 7 Hunting then became the pastor, beginning January I, I862, and remaining until March 21, 1863. During his term, on January I9, 1862, the annual conference of the Western Unitarian Churches was held in Detroit. Rev. A. G. Hibbard became pastor October I7, I864, and remained until March 25, I866. Rev. Jason F. Walker then served for nearly comb Avenue and Park Street. Their first Sunday evening service was held there on ()tober I6, the building was dedicated on October 18, and will seat 750. The lot on which the building stands is leased for fourteen years at a nominal rental, the price of the lot to be fixed at the end of the lease. The church and furnishings cost $50,00ooo. More than two years, and was followed for a few months by Rev. C. Macauley. Rev. W. R. G. Mellen next entered upon the pastorate, was installed March 4, I869, and continued for two years from that date. -- During his term, in 187r, extensive improvements== were made to the front entrance of the church and to the basement,. and the? interior was titted with - -. new pews, organ, etc., at a --—. _ cost of $I 7,500. On Maay 19, 1872, Rev. Calvin Stebbins became the pastor, - remaining until January 5, - -. 1879. Rev. T.,. Forbush became pastor on _ May 5, 1880. and resigned on March I6, i886. He was succeeded on December i, 1887, by Rev. Reed Stuart. The average attendance on Sun(lay morning in 1880 was 250. The pastor's salary was $2,500, the choir cost $1,700, and the total annual expenses reached $5,000 The amount realized from pew rents was $3.000 per year. The numrnl).r of members in I85o was r4o; in 186o, 260; in I870, 300; in I880, 380. The debt in C i88r 1was $5,ooo, and the church property was valued at $6,ooo000. Church of Our Father (Univcrsalzs). This society was organized and incorporated in May, I879, and in 1880 had one hundred and se\enty-five members, wAith Revx. E. L. Rexford, 1). D., as pastor. They held their first service in Whitney's Opera House on April 20, 1879, remaining there until October, i88I, and then moving into their stone church on the northwest corner of Ma - -~ — -~ -- -----— pZ-i — I- r^-; ---=F —F- ----;- —';-r --- —-r --- = --- —==-i- — I i.::: 'ITTRCH OF OULR FATHTFR - UTIVERSALIST. half the total cost was paid by S. J. Murphy. The average attendance in 188o at the Opera House was 300. The number of miembers, 8 o. The yearly expenses were about $4,000, of which $3,000 was for the pastor's salary. In 1883 a State convention of Universalists held its sessions in this church; the opening session was on the 6th of October. Un'ty Church. This society was organized June 7, 1882, with 628 THE MISSION CHURCH. —JEWISH CONGREGATIONS. fifteen members, with Rev. C. E. Hulbert as pastor, and incorporated December 14, 1882. It is evangelical in character, but not connected with any denomination. In 1882 it had twenty members, i -"%L i.... house, and for the next three years over the store of Silberman & Hirsch, on Jefferson Avenue. The rabbi, at this time, was Rev. S. Marcus. He was succeeded, after his death in 1854, by Rev. L. Adler, who remained seven years. During most of his term the society met in a room over Dr. Scherer's drug store, at No. 39 Michigan Grand Avenue. On March 5, I860, the society was incorporated anew, and in 1861 bought the old French Methodist Church on Rivard Street, between Croghan and Lafayette Streets, and dedicated it on August 30. Rev. A. Laser now served three years, and was followed by Rev. Dr. I. Kalisch, who remained the same length of time. After he left, the old place of worship was sold, and the forms of service modernized. The temple on the corner of Washington Avenue and Clifford Street was purchased for $17,000, and dedicated on August 30, 1867. Rev. E. Eppstein was the first rabbi of the new temple, remaining till 1870. H-is successor, Rev. Dr. K. Kohler, served two years. Rev. E. Gerechter served for one year, Rev. L. Wudner for three years, and in September, 1876, Rev. Dr. H. Zirndorf took charge. He was succeeded on December i, 1884, by Rev. L. Grossmann. Only men are admitted as members of the society: the number in 1850 was 12, in I860, 40; in 1870,60; in 1880, Ioo. The church seats 600. The average attendance t service in I880 was 500. The salary of the rabbi vas $2,500, and the total uannual expenses were P5,50o. The property was worth $25,000. THIRD AVENUE MISSION SUNDAY SCHOOL TIIILD)IN'G IN 1884. and on December 14 of that year was incorporated under the title of Third Avenue Mission Clhurch. On January i, I887, the name was changed to Unity Church of Our Lord Jesus Christ. The. first services were held in the Third Avenue Mission Sunday School building. In 1886 the society purchased three lots on the: northeast corner of Brigham and Crawford Streets for $I,8oo, and erected a building at a cost of about l" $1,ooo, which they first occupied on Au!gust I of the same year. Bet/ El Jewzish Society. This society was organized in August, 185o, incorporated on April 21, I851, and reorganized in I853. For the first two years they met in a private BETH FEL SYNAGO(;tGE. GENERAL CHURCH STATISTICS. 629 Connected with the church is a Hebrew Relief Society, of which the presidents have been: D. J. Workum, E. S. Heineman and Simon Heavenrich. The congregation is known as R~eformed Hebrews, and their service differs but little in method from that observed in Protestant churches..S/hary Zedec Jew/is/ Society. This society was organized September 27, i 86 i, xvith a membership of seventeen. It m-et over IDr. Scherer's drug store, on Michigan G-rand Avenue near Bates Street. In 1864 the society bought the 01(1 St. 'Matthew's Colored Episcopal Church, on the southeast corner of St. Antoine and Congress Streets, for $4,500, and on September 23, i864, it was dedicated for their use. In the fall of 1876 the old church was sold and torn down, andl the erection of a new one, to cost $i 5,ooo, begun. T'fhe congregation, becoming divided in sentiment, was unable to pay for the schmidt; I871-1874, B1. Moscowitz; May, 1882 -1884, Joseph Rappoport; i 884-, M. Caplan. Gowi~,regationz of Hozese of Jacob. This society of Jews was organized in 1 879, at the house of Mr. Kinsell, on Gratiot Avenue. On November 14, i883, they purchased, for $3,200, the church and lot of the Evangelical Association, on the corner of Hastings and Montcalm Streets. Their first regular minister, Rev. Reuben Brode, was elected in May, 1887. GENERAL CHURCH STATISTICS. The following tables, the first of the kind that have been compiled for Detroit, give a variety of interesting facts. All churches of the same general faith or practice are grouped together: NUMBER OF CHURCH IBUIL1DING.S. Roman Catholic AlethIIod'ist Presbytcrian FEpiscopalian Baptist li8oo isio'i82Co1830li840 I I I I 2 I I I ~~~i 2 II Newv Jerusaileii tienhorgi n Christian (I ic le Congregatsional Unitarian Jewi~sh1 Undenomn namtional Totals1 5 9 I85oII86o i87o i88o 4 5 9 14 4 9 8 I3 2 4 7 9 3 6 7 15 2 3 7 II 2 4 6 9; I I I 1 2 2 1 1 1 I 2, 2 18 I34 -52 -8o Nvmmaiio Or A1EAMEBum1S. SYNAGOGUE OF SHAARY ZEDEC. Roman Catholici Methodist Preshbyteria ii E~piscopialI a n Baptist ILutheral, 2 Newe Jerusalecm ChristianI Congreceat ional Unitarian Jewish ITotals 1830 184.) 1250 8(o 15~7.) i88o 78 281 5? 821 1,471 2,489 86 448 81o 1,1 37 1,661] 2,0(02 40 211 47 728 2,01 i6 3, 368 10 i68 290) 440 1,011) 1, 701 7 38 70 71:) 70 6o 75 t 5 450 i6O 255 4 76 795 140 2 60 ~-,co0 380 112 40 mol 3135 214 T1,195 2, 562,856 7, 416 12, 290 new building, and on April 1, 1879, it wvas turned over to the contractors. After the sale of the old church the congregation selparated into three portions, meeting in Kittelberger's Hall on Randolph Street, in Funke's Hall on MVacomb Street, and at the corner of Gratiot and Hastings Streets. Late in 1881 a number of them united in rentingr the building they had been forced to sell, and used it as a sngge and finally they purchased it for $rio,50), and in February, 1885, it was dedicated for thieir use. They are known as orthodox Israelites, and observe many of the ancient forms and cereMonies. The number o~f members in 1 870 wvas 48; in i 88o, 35. The officiating readers have been: 1865-1868, Laser Kontrovitch; 1868, A. Gold PFRCFN-,'rsoE OFl CHINIlCH MEMjBERS TO POPULATION. Roman Cathsolic I M\ethodist Preshyterian E'piscopaliant B aptist Lutheran 2 New jertusalem - Christian Congregational Unitarian Jewish Totals I830.035.0118 ('04i 1840 m S o m01i86o I 1870 I i8.030.048.0)31.018.025.0:28.010.0i8.007.006.017.024.015 009.003.005.005.010.025.003.003.003.085.095 I127.025.029.014.003.006.003 I mi6.079 630 GENERAL CHURCH STATLSTI( NumBER OF SITTINGS. 1820 i83o Roman Catholic. 815o 850 Mlethodist. 200 Presbyteriall 450 1LpIiscopalian 350 IBaptist 200.lutheran.I New Jerusalem Christian Congregational Unitarian Jewish Totals 85o 2,051 1840 i85o i86o 1870 i88o 1, )300 3, 300 4,484 7,3841 12,012 500 I1,700- 3, 600 49305. 6,1 CI3 TC00 1x,60o 3,800 4, 550i 6,950 700 1, 500 2,650 4,810 7, 405 65o 650 1,275 2,445~ 3, 545 350 550 i, 600 2,550l 6,350 200~ 330 1300 900 1,000 I1 9000 I1,24 0, 2, 090 488 5oo 500o 900 1,0501 4.50 5 0,300 - 18, 8971 30),184 47,145 Roman Catholic Methodist Presbyterian Episcopalian Baptist Lutheran Newv jerusalem Christian Congregational Unitarian Jewvish Universalist Tlotals Cs. Average At- Total Church telndance at Expenses in.Morning ser- 1880. vice in i88o. 9, 450' $44,400 2, 511, 24, 625 3, T10 2,i 2,715 42,325 1, 780) 15, 575 3,630 18,384 60) 1,200 3_50 900 87, 0,50(1 500 5,50(1C 30 4000 25,61 $204,219) I i Value of Church Property in i88o. $774,303,000 336, 750 579, 875 154,000 209,00(1 3 15, 00(1 21T, 000 110, 000 461000o 25, 000 $2, 573,625 PERCENTAGE OF SITrINGS TO POPULATION. 1820 1830 1840 i85o i86o i2870 2880 Roman Catholic.59.82 11.15 098.092.0 Methodist.09078 024.051 P)resbvterilan.202.Io8 1 076 o83 o0-5 o6o Episcopalialu I 157 -076.071 -028 0 6oi.063 IBaptist.0)10 -070.030.027.030 1 030 1lutheran 038.026.035 -032.054 Nesw Jeru~salem I 002.002 Christian o0i6.007 Cong-regational.047.021.015 i8 Unitarian I *oi 006 (104 Jewish 0: I 00(X9 Totals.589.92I.487.487.410 375,.4111 IAs the Catholic cihurcihes keel) no delillite record o~f tile 01111 -her (If families connected with their parisibes, and no record of indisidual names,, it is not possible to collpute their numbers with accuracy. [The total numnber of families reported frolo the several Catholic parishes in i88o svas 7,16?,, andI their authorities estimate an average of fise persons to each famnily as adherents of the church. 2 The Lutheran churches keep their records with greater acctlracy, but have 110 uniform method, some keeping lists of families, and others of commnunicants ouly their statistics are, therefore, not as satisfactory as one cotlid wvish. A grouping of the figures for some of these churches, and carefml estimates from others, givre a total of 6,iim communicants of Lutheran churches in 1880. 2 Not including the school property of tile churches. CH-APTER LXV. THE FIRST SUNDAY SCHOOL.- IMISSION SCH(OOIS. —SUNI)AY SCHOOI STATISTICS.SUNDAY SCHOOI, UNIONS, CONVENTIONS, AND CELEBRATIONS. THE FIRST SUNDAY SCHOOL. WE know not how they became entitled to the name of "directors," but the following card, printed in the Gazette, fully identifies the founders of the first Protestant Sunday school in Michigan, and shows when the school began: SUNDAY SCHOOL. At a meeting of the Directors of the Sunday School Association of the city of Detroit,' Mr. Lemuel Shattuck was unanimously appointed Superintendent thereof, and it was resolved that the school shall go into operation on Sunday, the 4th inst., to commence at half past 8 o'clock A. AM. The object of the Association is to instruct children and others in the art of reading, free of expense, and to stimulate them to exertion in acquiring the rudiments of knowledge. Rewards will be distributed to the deserving. Much benefit has been received from similar institutions in most of the populous towns in the United States. IThe citizens of Detroit have contributed liberally for this establishment, and it is hoped they will now exert themselves to send every one, male and female, that needs instruction. H. J. HUNT, A. E. WING, H. M. DICKEY, L. SHATTUCK, I1. STEAD, Directors. I)ETROIT, Oct. I, I818. It will be observed that the modern idea of Bible instruction was not a prominent feature. A notice and report contained in the Gazette of January 7 and 14, I820, gives details of some of the now obsolete methods then in use, and reveals a state of morals that does not recommend the past as being better than the present. The notice reads: SUNDAY SCHOOL. At a meeting of the S. S. Association of the city of l)etroit, held at the Academy on Saturday, the 25th inst., the president and vice-president being absent, the Rev. J. Monteith was called to the chair. The report of the school was presented by the Superintendent. For reasons appearing, the business of the annual meeting having been suspended since September last, the Association proceeded to elect the following officers to serve through the ensuing year: Hon. Willialn Woodbridge, president; Henry J. Hunt, vice-president; Levi Brown, treasurer: John J. I)ening, secretary; directors, Rev. J. Monteith, Maj. J. Anderson, B. Stead, A. G. Whitney, and D. G. Jones. Resolvede, that the report of the superintendent be read in the Presbyterian Church of Detroit, on Sunday, the 29th inst., and that he be requested to furnish such parts of it for publication as he may think proper.- Minutes of A ssociation. J. J. DEMING, IETROIT, Dec. 25th, 18i9. Secretary. The report reads: The degraded state of the learning and morals of a great portion of our citizens has long been a subject which deserved the commiseration of the well-wishers to the good of society and the prosperity of religion. Being till recently deprived of the means of the general diffusion of knowledge, and especially that of a moral or religious character, and exposed to all the demoralizing influence of war, without the sufficient means to check the force of that influence, our youth have been usually left to grow up in the practice of vice without restraint, and uninfluenced by the motives a religious education inculcates. The Sabbaths have been profaned by companies of noisy boys, and an improper and unlawful course of conduct pursued by certain classes of people, disgraceful to the community which permits it. The people of color have also attracted much attention. Being excluded from the usual privileges of society, and especially of our ordinary schools, the condition of most of them was that of extreme ignorance and degradation. That such evils have existed in Detroit is no reproach on the virtuous part of the community; but so long as we suffer them to continue without emotion, or desire not their removal, they will stand a monument of our disgrace as men, citizens, or Christians. While facts like these were daily presented to our view, motives, powerful and commanding, urged us to concentrate our influence in mitigating the evil by promoting a knowledge of the doctrines and practice of the duties of the Christian religion. In accomplishing such desirable ends, the good effects of Sunday schools in various parts of the United States had been attested; and under the impression that such an institution would be equally beneficial as well in bettering the condition of the poor children as those of the wealthy, the Sunday School Association of the city of Detroit was formed in September, 1818. The object of this association, as expressed in its Constitution, is to establish schools for the instructing children and others in a knowledge of the Holy Scriptures, and in the art of reading when necessary, of aiding and stimulating them in a profitable employment of the Lord's Day, and of inculcating the principles of religion and morality. Though our means would not allow that systematic.nd extensive exertion which is made in more populous and highly favored towns, yet the pecuniary aid and personal assistance necessary to the commencement of a school was promptly and liberally supplied. '1he scliool was opened the first Sabbath in October, i818, and the services of some respectable and benevolent individuals were tendered as teachers. Necessity has, however, compelled us to carry on the labor of the school with fewer teachers, and a greater variety to each class, than would have been desirable, and doubtless the progress of the children has, in many instances, been retarded by having teachers with whom they were unacquainted. * * * Some books have been procured for the benefit of the school, but it has been a subject of regret that we have been able to procure but few of such as we desired. The attendance of the children has been so irregular as materially to retard their progress in the studies assigned them, and at times to discourage and almost overthrow the design of the teachers. There have been many, however, whose punctuality at school has shown how valuable the instruction they receive is deemed, and how careful [63I1 632 6 SUNDAY SCHOOLS. are the parents that they go so seasonably as not to lose those lessons which a punctual attendance secures to them. The time of holding the school has varied from the morning to the afternoon at several times, to conform to the public religious exercises, but there has been uniformly one school each Sabbath. It has been the invariable regulation of the school that it should be opened with reading a portion of Scriptture and prayer. There have been two general divisions among the scholars, —such as were entirely illiterate, and such as could read. To the former have been taught reading, spelling, etc. To the latter have been assigned portions of Scripture, hymns, catechism, and other select lessons, which contain the leading truths of morality and the Christian religion, to be committed to memory. To some have been proposed questions or tasks, on which they were to exercise their judgment and give in the result in writing. The task of communicating religious instruction to the illiterate is extremely difficult. As soon as the scholars were capable of receiving it, either by reading or conversation, it has been the usual practice to give it. Of this class have been most of the people of color, who have been found as equally destitute of a knowledge of the most obvious truths of the Bible as they were of the first rudiments of reading. But the greater part of the school has consisted of the children of respectable families who enjoy the privileges of ordinary schools. The school has been divided into ten classes, to each of which, when we could be supplied, a teacher was assigned; and to stimulate the i)upils to exertion and improvement, printed tickets have been given to the deserving. These tickets have a notminl al value attached to them, and have been redeemed in books, tracts, and religious periodical works, particularly The Guardian, or Youth's Religious Instructor, which is regularly received from New Haven. Regular minutes of the attendance, behavior, and recitations of the scholars, as well as of the attendance of the teachers or visitors, have been kept by the Superintendent, and it has been the usual practice at the close of each school to report the number of verses in Scripture, hynmns, questions in catechism, etc., that were recited during the time. Since the colmmencement of the school, about one hundred and fifty scholars have been admitted, of whom twenty-two are people of color. The average attendance each Sabbath fortyeight, of whom about thirty have been able to recite lessons to their teachers. Some idea of their improvement can be formed froln the following statement: Those of the people of color who have learned to read since the conmmencemnent of the school are now able to recite from twenty to fifty verses of Scripture at each attendance. Among the other classes, a girl of seven years of age has recited 1,793 verses in Scripture, 570 verses in hymns, and 776 answers in catechism,- in all, 3,I39. Another of ten years, 2,063 verses in Scripture, I,248 verses in hymns, and I,o6i answers in catechism, in all, 4,369. Another, who attended twenty-four Sabbaths only, recited 3,829 verses in Scripture, comprehending the four Gospels and Proverbs, besides other select portions of the Bible,,I0o5 verses in hymns, and 250 answers in catechism, —in all, 5,I84. These are a few out of many similar instances which might be selected from the records of the school to show the industry and emulation of the scholars. The greatest recitation in one day, by thirty scholars, was 1,737 verses in Scripture, 735 in hymns, and 3) answers in catechism, —in all, 2,492. Recited by the whole school since the commencement, 38,445 verses in Scripture, 1,140 verses in hymns, 10,32I answers in catechism, 462 answers to Cumming's questions, given in writing, and 48 prayers. Total, 60,686. This will make an average of 35 verses per day to each scholar. * * * It is particularly understood that no tenets peculiar to any religious denomination are taught in school. There appears to be a visible improvement in the morals and manners as well as intellectual knowledge of the scholars; and instead of idle profaners of the Sabbath, many of them observe the day, and become diligent seekers of religious knowledge. The difference between those children regularly attending the Sunday School and those who do not, even while enjoying equal advantages on other days, is very apparent; and it is to be regretted that every class of our youth cannot be induced to spend the Sabbath in so profitable a manner. It is hoped and earnestly requested that more exertion be made by parents, guardians, and masters, to have those under their care attend regularly and punctually at the hours of school, and to co-operate with the teachers in enforcing, by precept and example, the instruction they receive from themn. It is presumed other similar schools might be advantageously established in Detroit or vicinity. Few children consider attending the school a confinement. * * * We cannot conclude this report without gratefully acknowledging the pecuniary aid that has been bestowed and the patronage which has been given to the school by the citizens. No other institution recommends itself for its cheapness so well as ours, and those small expenses which were necessarily incurred will doubtless be defrayed by a liberal public. But to those who have devoted their time and talents to the laborious duties of teaching, much more is due. You have merited the approbation and gratitude of the whole community. If other reward is necessary, we must refer you to that satisfaction which you now feel in your own breasts in a review of the great good you have done. Your deeds are known and remembered in Heaven. Out of the number of those who have been engaged in the institution, one has been called from us to the eternal world. It is but just that a tribute of respect should be paid to the memory of the pious and benevolent Hugh M. Dickie, for some time one of the directors and teachers of our school. He enlisted his feelings ardently in the work. He had the affections of his scholars and was an able support of the institution. While we bow with submission to the wvill of God, in all his righteous dispensations, teachers and scholars should be impressed with the importance of being prepared for death. Joyful indeed will be the lot of that teacher who is the honored instrument of leading a child fron the ways of ignorance and vice to a knowledge of the religion of Jesus Christ, and of saving his immortal soul. Teachers! what a motive to persevering diligence in the discharge of duty. By order of the Board of Directors. L. SHATTUCK, Superintendent. The whole expense of the school, including books, stationery, tickets, and fuel, for the fifteen months of its existence, has been only $3T.oo. About a year after the school began, the following advertisement appeared in the Gazette: SUNDAY SCHOOL FOR PEOPLE OF COLOR. Mr. Rowe will teach persons of color, of both sexes, fromi 3 to 25 years of age, on Sundays, gratis. Those who wish to attend are desired to call on Mr. Rowe for a ticket previous to their entrance into his school as pupils. DETROIT, _uly 22nd, I8I9. It would appear that this separate school w\as not long maintained, for the report shows that colored children were in attendance at the main school. The second annual meeting was held December 6, 182o, and at this time the report showed that I60 different scholars, fr:mln three to nineteen years of age, had attended during t':. year, nineteen of them being colored. The smallest attendance on any Sunday was 35, and the largest 83. The average attendance was 57, and an average of 30 had lessons, the recitations averaging 543 verses of Scripture, 24 MISSION SCHOOLS. 633 611. hymns, 327 questions in catechism, and 2 prayers for each Sunday. The books used were the Bible, Brown's Catechism, Emerson's Evangelical Primer, Episcopal Catechism, Coleman's Catechism, Cumming's (uestions, and Watts's Psalms and Hymns. The school was held from 1.30 to 3 o'clock P. M. At the beginning of 1820, the school owed the superintendent $17.00. During the year the collections amounted to t34.44; the expenses were $4.25, leaving a net balance of $26.8I due the superintendent. Among the teachers were Episcopalians, Iresbyterians, and Methodists, all uniting in the work with the utmost harmony. The second report says, " Libraries are frequently established in Sunday Schools, and did our funds permit, it would be of essential service to connect one with this school." On Sunday, December 17, 1820, the school assembled at the academy and lproceeded to the church, where a sermon was preached by the Rev. John Monteith. During this and the following year Lemuel Shattuck continued to superintend the school, which was eventually transferred to the Presbyterians. MISSION SCHOOLS. From time to time, as the city has grown, mission schools have been established in various localities, sometimes under the fostering care of a particular church, but often sustained by individual members of different churches. In the fall of 1851 Rev. V. E. Boardman, then residing in Detroit as agent of the American Sunday School Union, arranged to establish a mission Sunday School in the Fourth Ward School House, a small, one-story wooden building on the south side of Fort Street, between Hastings and Rivard Streets. He appealed to the Congregational Church for teachers, received responses from a number of persons; and during the continuance of the school most of the teachers were members of that church. After fifteen years of service the school was discontinued because of a rule adopted by the Board of Education which forbade the use of school buildings for Sunday Schools. No other convenient place in that vicinity could be found, and the school necessarily ceased. When it was first established, that part of the city was sparsely settled and there were no churches in the immediate vicinity. WVhen it closed, the neighborhood was well supplied with churches and Sunday schools. Francis Raymond was superintendent of the school during most of the time that it was in existence. It was held at nine o'clock A. M. and had an average attendance of Ioo. The following persons, with others, were connected with the school: Professor Moses Coit Tyler, B. F. 41 Jacobs, the well-known Sunday School and Y. M. C. A. worker, Mrs. E. 'M. Sheldon, authoress of "History of Michigan," James H. Muir, Joseph and Thomas Berry, Col. F. W. Swift, and Miss C. Crossman. Iuring the summer of 1851, Mr. Boardman also established wlhat was known as the Elizabeth Street Sunday School. A meeting, held on the evening of June 15, was attended by Sylvester Larned, John Robinson, A. N. Reynolds, Miss Nancy Fisher, Jonathan R. Axtell, I)avid B. Reeve, Mrs. Nancy Reeve, Margaret and Elizabeth Beattie, Agnes Robinson, Mrs. Sheldon, and many others. After consultation it was decided to organize a school, and MIr. Axtell was appointed superintendent. The school was held in a small cottage on the north side of Elizabeth Street between \Voodward Avenue and P'ark Street, which was occupied during the week by a day-school. This building soon became too small, and Mr. Larned volunteered to secure better acconmmodations. Not finding a suitable place, and being encouraged and aided by the friends of the school, he erected a building on Cass Avende, a little south of Elizabeth Street. It was first occupied on September 21, I851, with a Bible class of 30, an infant class of 28, and a goodly number of male and female classes. Mrs. E. MI. Sheldon had charge of the infant class for some time; she was succeeded by Mrs. John Winder, and about the same time Francis Lambie became interested in the school. The teachers were mostly connected with the Second Presbyterian Church, and the school was considered a mission of that society. George S. Frost succeeded AMr. ILarmed as superintendent, and in October, I855, Hovey K. Clarke became his successor. A short time after, as the neighborhood was cared for by other churches, the school was discontinued and the building converted into a dwelling. A school, held in the Industrial School Building, was organized in November, 1864, by Miss Elmore, who was teaching the day-school, and added this to her other duties. The school grew, and Messrs. A. I. F. White, Ransom Gillis, Henry Wastell, and Bradford Smith, Miss L. E. V. Dolsen, Miss Helen Hudson, and others came in to assist. On December 17, I865, John Harvey was elected superintendent, and has occupied that position ever since. The school is undenominational. In I880 the enrolled list of members numbered 250, with an average attendance of 140. It is held at 2.30 P. M. The school has accomplished an amount of good second to no other effort of the kind. Several schools established as mission enterprises have developed into churches, and are described in connection with the church that now represents them. 634 SUNDAY SCH-OOL STATk~ISTiics. SUNDAY SCHOOL STATISTICS. The appended Sunday School Statistics, compiled by the writer in 1863 and I 87o, and then published in the daily papers, contain many facts of interest, and are the only statistics of the kind ever gathered in Detroit. SUNDAY SCHOOL STATISTICS FOR i863. SUNDAY SCH-OOL1 STATISTICS -continued. Denomination - Location - 4 Superintendents. E MISSION SCHOOLS. H Denomination - LocationSulperintendents. o H, -, -~ BAPTIST. Fort Street, corner of Griswold, Rev. J. H. Griffith Sup't Howard Street, near Second, Rollin C. Slnith, Sup't Washington Aventie, corner of Clifford, Rev. J. Inglis, SUP't High Street, near Rivard, Arthur Treadway, Sup't Croghan Street, near Beaubien (colored), C. E. Silsby, SUP't CONGREGATIONAL. Fort Street, corner of Wayne, R. W. King, SUP't DISCIP'LES. Jefferson Avenue, corner Beaubien, Jos. Hawley, Sup't Council Roon, City Hall, George F. B~rowl, Sup't EPISCOPAL. Congress Street, corner of Shelby, A. A. Rabineau, Sup't Woodward Avenue, corner of High Street, H. P3. Baldwin, SUP't Jefferson Avenue, near Hastings Street, C. C. Trowbridge, SUP't Woodwvard Avenue, corner WNoodbridge Street, S. W. Johnson, Sup't Michigan Avenue, corner (If Tirumbull Avenue, G. A. Farwell, SuIpt Congress Street, near St. Antoine Street, (colored) Tr. Labobert, Sup't HEBREW. Rivard Street, near Croghan, Rev. A. Laser, Sup't METHODIST. Woodward Avenue, corner State Street, H. A. Graves, Sup't Congress Street, corner ot Randolph, C. Peigrim, SUP't Lafayette Avenue. corner of Fourth, R. Colciough, Sup't WValnut Street, corner of Seventh, 1'. Rattenbury. Sup't IBeaubien Street, corner Croghan, A. T.1 Barns, Sup't Ileaubien Street, corner of Croghan, R. Burchele, Sup't Lasalle Avenue, near Dalzelle, G. Straicher, Sup't Lasalle Avenue, near Daizelle, J. P. Vandermnetlen, Sup't Lafayette Street, near Beaubien (colored) R. M. Slnith, SUP't MIISSION SCHOOLS. Abbott Street, corner of Sixth, E. C. Walker, Sup't Cass Avenne, near Elizabeth Street, G. S. Frost, Sup't Catharine Street, near St. Antoine, E. D. Fitch, Sup't Lamned Street, near Dubois, F. M. Su~mner, Sup't East Fort Street, near Hastings, F. Raymond, Sup't 2.00 1P(1. 4.00 2.00 2.30 2.30 2.45 9.00 AM 2.301. 0 I.30 2.001. 1 9.00 A. 1. 4.-30 9.00 A 9. 00 9.00 9. 00A Il 9. 00 14 13 8 30 106 5 3 235 106 30 230 Wooduard Avenlle, corner Farnswvorth Street, T1. 1L. Partridge, Sup't Bishop School House, Z. R. Brockway, Sup't Orphan Asylum, Jefferson Avenue, F'. D. Taylo~r, Sup't Bethel, Woodbridge Street, corner of Bates, S pt P NEW JERUSALEM. M\acoimb Avenue, near Park St., George Field, Sup't PREFSIIYTER IAN. Fort Street, corner of Third, H. C. Knight, Sup't lafayette Avenue, corner (If 'Wayne, John Camueron, SUP't Washington Avenue, near Slate Street, I-I. K. Clarke, Sup't Jefferson Avenue, iiear Rivard Street, H. Hallock, Sup't State Street, corner Farmer, A. Sheley, Stp't Bates Street, corner of Farmer. James Ure, Sup't Russell Street, lear Catharine, P. Volrath, Sup't SRiIORNIED. M\onroe A ventue, colruer o~f Farrar Street, Rev. C. Haass Sup't Catharine Street, near St. Antoine, M~. Buss, Sup't 2.-30 3.00 2.00 " 2.00 2.00 2.00 2.00 cc 2. "ZO 1-30 4 4 2.03 1,30 41 2.00 'C 3 1 14 15 30 24 7 9 38 150 30 30 25 209 70 155 230 130 36 32j1 2201 170 9 6 40 49 8 9 52 45 26 20 200 132 550 383 400~ 280 i6xi 100 470, 160 68 38 70 40 376 2.53 191 151 -II I68 147 95 ii8 98 56 40 7 7 5 1 107 70 130 79 I'N 11A R I A N. Lafayette Avenue, corner of Shelby, Rev. S. S. Hunting, Sup't 12. 00 Al. 20 i16o 64 Morning Schools IC Afternoon 34 Total WIuuler (If schools 44 Total InlImlwr of officers andI teachers 781 lotal number of children oII scilool registers 6,652 To~tal average alttelldllce 4,626 Probable nulmber (If children attending two or more schools, 65o According to the census (If September i, 1862, the total nuluber of children in tile city between the ages Of 4 and iS was.. 15,398 The numnber attending tile publlic schoolSs was. 6,747 As an interesting fact, in this connection, it may be Inentioned that, as compared with the nulnber of families in the city, the average was five children to every tllree families. 3') 13 I15 24 14 9 17 19 SUNDAY SCHOOL STATrISTICS FOR 1870. METHODISTr SABIBATH SCHSOOLS. Name. Stuperintendceit. I I 16 9 15C (C 230 73 90 Central Central Mission 110 Simpson J efferson Aventie 35 La fayette Avenue First German 112 First German Mission Second German 58 Lafayette Avenue Mission Lafayette Avenue Mission 6o NO. 2 I. H. Fonda H. Hitchcock G. W. Hough J. Oakes A. V'. Barns F. Bechler F. Schultz C. Weimer J. S'. Thompson Edwin Reeder Itn r. A cc S1 5 54 25 30 18 23.0 04 600 275 275 400 75 70 150 150 8o.10 v 0 410 200 6o 6o 130 139 69 SUNDAY SCHOOL STATISTrics. 635 SUNDAY SCHOOL. ST~xrisrics -- conlinuedl. M ETH-10IST' SARRATH SCHOOLS. SUN DAY SCHOOLit S-rris-rics -- continued. C 0N GR E ATI 0NAI.. Name. Superintendent. C. Peigrimi 19 G. H. Smith 6 Mr. Long 6 271 I7 42 30! Name. ISuperintendent. First I 1. C. Bostwick Second F. D. Taylor Second Mission W. H. Bronson TLotals, Schools 3 -C$ 34 23 29 220 1)2 185 170 50 405 African African No. 2 Evangelical Association Totals, Schools 13 40 I I 71 51 2, 57 I I1,i755 Increase since 1863 schools, 4 teachers, 89 scholars, 1,258. Average attendance, 85o. Increase since 1863: Schools, 2 teachers, 29 scholars, Average attendance, 285. 290. PRES13YTERElAN. lirst A.IeeSnth 3 3 8 Fort Street Bradford Smth 40 3,00 260 Jefferson Avenute H. Hallock 38 330 260 W.estininster G. ilU1tlap I5 1 20 75 Calvary Mission WV. P. Kellogg 29 250 i65 United J. Cameron 26 225 118 Scotch Rev. Mr. Milligan 28 210 i 6o Fort Street Mlissionl John Harvey 15 200 125 Totals, Schools 5 228 2,093 I1,505 Increase since 1863: schools.i teachers, 87 scholars, 830. Aserage attendance, 586. MIISSION SCHOOLS. Union 'Mission Z. R. Brockwvay io08 T, 250 938 I ndustrial School Johin Harsey I5 150 75 Hatnttrainck Mission L,. Lasvrence I5 150 100 Clinton Avenue F. M. Stunner 25 330 200 Tlord Street C. NV. Nohle 30 400 210 N'inttt Avenuie I). M\. Richards'n 25 500 270 W~oodwvard Avenue R. C. Smith 24 200 162 Totals, Schools 7 242 5,000)I( 1,955 D ecrease since 1863 otf schoots, 2 increase of teachers, 1.57 scholars, 2,015. Average attendance, 1,342. St. -John's Refornied. *Trinity Salemn *Ittlt anm el Totals, Schools. L UT H E R.N. Rev,. C. Haass I Rev. J. A. Huegli IRev J. S.Schi-nidt Rev. K. L. lMoll 4L 10 I 10 I 250 I 100 i 6o i 225 70 40 22 510 i 435 *Not strictly a Suntda school service. Increase since i863: schools, 2;tahr,3;shlr,3 Average attentlance, 269. NEW JERL-SALEM. Hf. lBigelosv 13 8o 6o Increase since 1863: teachers,3 scholars, 50. Average attendance, 35. UN ITARIAN. First A. WV. Rice 2~ 158 140 Increase since 1863 teachers, 3; scholars, 58. Average attendance, 76. HEBR E W. *Hebresr Rev'. D~r. K. Kohler 2 40 30 * Meets on Saturdays. D~ecrease since 1863: teachers, 7; scholars, 30. Average attendance, 10o. Total number of Sabbath schools, 54; increase since i863, i0. Number of officers and teachers, 1,251; increase, 468. Number of children enrolled, 1 2,1 15; increase, 5.363. Av-erage attendance, 8,691 increase, 3,975). Forty-fouir of the schools were held in the afternoon, and ten in the morning; the increase was wholly of afternoon schools. The morning schools met at Q A. Mi. of the afternoon schools EPISCOIAL.. St. John's J. on v r 5 9 700 St. Paul's J. F. Sterling 22 130 C.hrist C. C. Trowbridlge' 32 323 St. Peter's A. Matthewv 26 200 St. Stephen s Rev,. I). Lurtnsd'n. 25 136 St. John's Mission Isaac lDe (Graff 32 250 Grace 38 202 TPotals, Schools 7 234 11. 942 56o 216 150 140 '75 1, 411 Increase since 1863: schools,i; teachers, 45; scholars, 93 Aserage attendance, 318. ILaf Svc Get Fre * IP) Avi BAPTIST. ~~~~three meet at 12 P'. M. o3fe at I.30,, twventy-one at 2, st A. H. Wilkinson 19 i8o I30 th ayette Aventue (3. S. Gulley 20 175 t25 thrteen at 2.30, four at 3, one at 3.30, and one at 4 ond (colored) C. E. Silshee 30 250 200 P. M.,mait Rev. C. Jung 14 125 100 i q iy itch S. Finney 22 I70 110 From careful observation and iqiy it is believed irk Street Rev..5. Chase 10 6o 6o ______ -- that the number of children attending two or more Tlotals, Schools 6 115 960 725 schools in 1870 did not exceed 5oo, and the proporHeld temporarily itt a private hottse till church is ready. tion was much less than in 1 863. The proportion ncrease since 1863: schools,i teachers, 29; scholars, 276. of children attending Sabbath schools in 1i863, as 2orage attendance, i'q compared with the enrollment made by the State DISCIPLES OF CHRIST. for school purposes, was about 40 per cent. The irth Street Walter Sanderson 121 70 _50 number of children attending in 1879, as compared Andrew's Hall J.M. L. Cato phellI 61 70 6o:erson Avenue Rev. H. H.IBlack. 12 110 70 vwth the similar census for 1869, was 46 per cent. Totals, School 3 30. 250 18 The average attendance on the public schools for nraesince 1863: schools, i; teachers, '15; scholars, 1172. I 869 was 7,127, the average attendance on Sabbath ctage attendance, ix. schools in 1870 was 8,6oi. Fot St. jefl A v 636 SUNDAY SCHOOL STATISTICS. SUNDAY SCHOOL STATISTICS FOR i88o. As there is no uniformity among the Lutheran and Catholic churches as to the holding of Sunday schools, and as both of these denominations make a specialty of giving religious instruction in their day schools, the total number of children receiving religious instruction can be determined only by combining the number of week-day scholars, under their auspices when such schools are held, with the number of Sunday-school scholars connected with the churches of the same denominations that have no day schools. That method was adopted in the following table: SUNDAY SCHOOL STATISTICS FOR 188o. SUNDAY SCHOOL STATISTICS FOR 1880- continued. I LUTHERAN. A 3 St. Paul's, corner Seenteenth and Rose St. Paul's, corner Seventeenth and Rose Streets 17 St. Paul's, corner Jay Street and Joseph Campau Avenue I Reformed Zion 20 St. Luke's (German Evangelical) I St. John's 31 St. Peter's, catechetical 2 St. Matthew's, do I Salem, do I inmanuel, do 2 Trinity, do 3 Total 79 METHODIST EPISCOPAL. I 200 150 300 I5o i8o 120 60 40 _o_ 3 3 3 400 150 30 40 240 225 1,8251 300 140 25 30 200 200 1-355 ROMAN CATHOLIC. I St. Patrick's St. Anne's St. Joseph's St. Peter's and St. Paul's St. Aloysius Our Lady of Help Sacred Heart (German), catechetical Sacred Heart (French), do Trinity, do St. Albert's, do St. Vincent de Paul, do St. Boniface's, do St. Mary's, do St. Anthony's, Totals BAPTIST. Cass Avenue Clinton Avenue Eighteenth Street Twelfth Street Lafayette Avenue Second Baptist (colored) First French First German Second German Total PRESBYTERIAN. First Jefferson Avenue Calvary Union Westminster Fort Street United Clinton Avenue Central T'rumbull Avenue. Hamtramck Dutch Reformed, Catharine Street Total PROTESTANT EPISCOPAL. Christ Mariners' Emanuel All Saints' Grace St. Mary's St. John's Church of Messiah St. Paul's St. Peter's St. James' St. Stephen's Total Anglo-Catholic Reformed Episcopal, Epiphany 75 14 I4 25 12 5 3 4 5 I10 I 1i88 14 26 3' 20 24 22 10 25 5 177. O O ~ 6oo 550 200 8o 1100 1000 450 390 15~ 140 275 225 350 300 8o 70 750 700 450 425 700 500 6oo 450 6oo0 00 80o 70 6,385 5,830 415 303 337 240 360 265 175 145 133 125 125 70 1oo go I20 I05 35 30, 803 I,373 400 260 231 189 225 I90 700 510 330 263 350 280 224 159 175 140 150 iI6 250 o90 oo00 65 120 70 3,255 2,432 450 287 50 30 200 150 81 46 238 182 250 19o 700 450 o110 85 310 260 230 i6t 180 151 50 40 2,849 2,032 Ioo 60 80 70 Central Fort Street Tabernacle Simpson Jefferson Avenue Morning Mission Sixteenth Street First German Second German Junction Lafayette Avenue African Zion (colored) Ebenezer (colored) Bethel Evangelical Association Total Third Avenue Union Mission Bethel New Jerusalem Church of ()ur ather Unitarian Christian, Plum Street Church Christian, Washington Avenue CONGREGATIONAL. Fort Street Woodward Avenue Trumbull Avenue Fort Wayne Total Grand total 63 31 25 38 32 32 19 19 i8 12 19 5 8 25 342 22 7 9 I5 17 18 13 650 475 225 189 250 18o 625 443 340 275 500 272 268 200 I15 90 137 10 120 50 I28 85 31 20 40 35 140 130 3,559 2,554 240 I98 120 97 1oo 70 120 100 208 119 151 112 I35 105 32 235 I 1 33 225 175 42 630 335 I5 I 94 IT 122 I, 284 820 1,640 22,I 41I7, 257 I 40 32 25 55 30 35 28 2t 20 20 8 24 328 39 8 27 8 34 22 60 15 31 22 23 8 297 8 I2 SUNDAY SCHOOL UNIONS, CONVENTIONS, AND CELEBRATIONS. A territorial Sunday School Union, auxiliary to the American Sunday School Union, was organized on March 22, 1831, to encourage and aid those engaged in Sunday school work, and to promote the establishment of new schools. Jonathan Kearsley was president, E. P. Hastings, secretary, and )e Garmo Jones, treasurer, with directors representing the several counties then in existence. On March 6 of the following year, the society held an anniversary at the Presbyterian Church. Its second annual report, presented in March, 1833, showed that there were then in the Territory 68 schools, 422 teachers, and 2,672 scholars. In some form or other, similar organizations have existed ever since; and occasional meetings have been held to promote the Sunday school cause. On June 24, I857, a State convention was held in De SUNDAY SCHOOL UNIONS, CONVENTIONS, AND CELEBRATIONS. 637...... troit at the First Presbyterian Church, and General Cass delivered an address. On October 23, I866, a State convention was held in the same church. D. L. Moody and Ralph \Vells were present. On June 14, 1870, a State convention was held in the First Congregational Church; Rev. Thomas K. Beecher, D. W. Whittle, and B. F. Jacobs were the chief speakers. In connection with the convention, a children's meeting was held at the Detroit Opera House, at which addresses were made by Rev. T. K. Beecher and Professor J. M. B. Sill. The Sunday School celebrations of the olden time were always held on the Fourth of July, and for many years constituted one of the features of that national anniversary. On July 4, 1838, the exercises were held in the Presbyterian Church. The celebration of July 4, I842, was a very notable one. About one thousand children marched in a procession which was nearly a mile long. The exercises consisted of dialogues, etc., by the children. Ten years later two thousand children took part, and the exercises were held at the Presbyterian Church. The next year, on September I5, 1853, the celebration took the form of an excursion on the steamboats Keystone State and May Queen. This is believed to have been the last Union Sunday School celebration held in the city. On Sunday, April 24, 1864, various Sunday schools met in Young Men's Hall to hear addresses from Chaplain C. C. McCabe, B. F. Jacobs, and J. M. Strong, of the Christian Commission. CHAPTER LXVI. UNION RELIGIOUS SOCIETIES.- UNION ME'ETINGS.-REVIVALS AND REVIVALISTS. UNION RELIGIOUS SOCIETIES. Young Ailen's Chrzistiazn Assocziation. The first society in Detroit bearing the name of Young Men's Christian Association was organized on September 27, 1852, at Young Men's Hall. Rev. H. D. Kitchell, chairman of a committee appointed at a previous meeting, presented a constitution and by-laws, which were adopted, and the following officers were elected: president, Edward C. Walker; vice-presidents, T. C. Miller of the Episcopal Church, S. M. Holmes of the Congregational Church, R. C. Smith of the Baptist Church, L. L. Farnsworth of the Methodist Church, I-. C. Knight of the Presbyterian Church; recording secretary, B. Vernor; corresponding secretary, George Mosely; treasurer, C. N. Ganson; managers: First Baptist Church, J. M. Gregory, H. Glover. Congregational Church: Rev. H. D. Kitchell, E. D. Fitch. Tabernacle Baptist: At. S. Frost, Seymour Finney. First Presbyterian Church: George S. Frost, Wm. A. Raymond. Second Presbyterian Church: Rev. R. R. Kellogg, B. F. Bush. First M. E. Church: S. Phelps, James Fenton. Second M. E. Church: Rev. C. C. Olds, W. C. Sabine. Lafayette St. M. E. Church: I). F. Q2uinby, J. Willetts. St. Paul's P. E. Church: James V. Campbell, H. 1'. Baldwin. Christ I. E. Church: Wm. N. Carpenter, James E. Pittman. Mariners' PI. E. Church: E. Hewitt, Wm. IHenderson. Wesleyan Methodist Church: S. A. Baker, Amos Page. At this meeting an address was delivered by Mr. Hoyt, of Boston, who spoke in glowing terms of the work of the Y. M. C. A. of that city. Rooms were procured in the Phoenix Block, on south side of Jefferson Avenue between Woodward Avenue and Griswold Street, and a very complete reading room was established. On January 30, 1853, the president delivered a lecture on the demand for the Association and its work, which was so highly appreciated that it was published in pamphlet form by vote of the board. In May, 1853, nearly all the original officers and members were re-elected, and during this year several lectures were given before the Association by the different pastors of the city. In February, 1854, old records show that "several hundred dollars of debt" was troubling the organization. At the annual meeting, held May 22, I854, D. B. Duffield was elected president, and in May, 1855, he was succeeded by Hovey K. Clarke. On August 20 of this year Geo. S. Frost, E. C. Wilder, H. E. Baker, and E. M. Clark were elected delegates to the International Convention held at Cincinnati. This year terminated the existence of the Association. A second organization of the kind was called the Young Men's Christian Union. Prior to its establishment, the Free Press of October 24 and November 7, 1858, contained articles nearly a column long, urging the revival of the Y. M. C. A., and on I)ecember 4, 1858, in response to notices given in the churches, a meeting was held in the basement of the Baptist Church, a constitution was adopted for a society as above named, and the following officers were elected: president, G. S. Frost; secretary, L. S. Trowbridge; treasurer, Caleb Ives. The Free Press of October 30, 1859, contains this record of their work: It is n(,t quite a year since the Young Men's Christian Union of this city wvas organized. It has a tract department, through which the entire city is visited monthly, and a tract placed in the hands of every one who will receive it. Bibles are also circulated through this means, and all the work of colportage regularly performed. Besides these methods of labor, direct missionary work has been done by visiting the jail and imparting religious instruction to the prisoners, and holding prayer meetings in various localities where, from the isolation of the neighborhood, or from the peculiar condition of the people, they are not within the influence of any church. At the small chapel on Catherine Street near HIastings, they also sustain a prayer meeting and two Sabbath schools. The tract organization was very complete. Eightyone visitors were enrolled, nearly 40,000 visits made, and about the same number of tracts distributed, at a cost of $175. At the annual meeting, held on December 5, 1859, Mr. Frost was again chosen president. On January 22, I860, an anniversary meeting was held at the First Baptist Church, at which addresses were made by Rev. Messrs. Hogarth, Blades. Neill, Eldridge, and others. At the request of tie Y. M. C. A. of Richmond, Va., the following Friday, January 27, was observed by all the associations in the 1638 UNION RELIGIOUS SOCIETIES. 639 1) country as a day of special prayer for the preservation of the Union. During I860 the work of conducting Sunday schools and distributing tracts was extensively carried forward. At the second annual meeting, held November 26, the following officers were elected: president, Robert W. King; secretary, Charles H. Barrett; treasurer, M. H. Croft; Sunday-school visitor, D. Bethune Duffield; superintendent of tract distribution, C. H. Barrett; members of executive committee, George S. Frost, Francis Lambie, R. 0. Wheeler, Bradford Smith, A. T. Barns, H. H. Iunclee, V. B. Smith, J. H. Muir, Andrew Bates, and George B. Dickinson. The excitement of the war with the South, and the assumption of work so clearly belonging to the churches as the establishing of Sunday schools, caused the Association to decline in favor, and the organization ceased in i861. The third Society dates from August I, I864. At that time none of those most active in its organization were aware that any such society had previously existed in Detroit. Its origin was as follows: \Nhile on a visit to Chicago, the writer chanced to attend an International Convention of the Young Men's Christian Association, and was made the corresponding member of the Executive Committee for Michigan. Returning to Detroit, correspondence was had with Mr. Pond of Boston, chairman of the Executive Committee, as to what was expected of a corresponding member. The organization of an association was then undertaken, and every Protestant pastor visited and an endeavor made to enlist them in the work. After obtaining from nearly all the ministers the names of two persons, members of their churches, to represent them in a meeting, the persons themselves were visited, and a preliminary meeting was called for July 28. At this meeting a committee on constitution was appointed, and August i their report was adopted, and soon after James W. Farrell was elected president; F. D. Taylor and A. Treadway, vice-presidents; Silas Farmer, corresponding secretary; A. Howard, recording secretary; and '. I). Hawley, treasurer. Funds were solicited, and the work of fitting up rooms in the third story of Merrill Block was begun. Over $1,ooo were expended for this purpose, the design being to command immediate respect for the enterprise. The rooms were formally dedicated on November 28, and public exercises were held in Merrill Hall on the same floor. Addresses were delivered by Rev. Messrs. G. W. Prime, J. H. Griffith, B. H. Paddock, W. Hogarth, and J. M. Buckley. The rooms were at once visited by large numbers of persons, and became the head quarters for all sorts of benevolent and philanthropic enterprise. On June 24, 1868, the thirteenth International Convention of the Associations began its sessions in the Central M. E. Church. This gathering is noted as being the largest, and up to that time the most profitable ever held; also for tie sad fact that, while delivering the address of welcome, the Rev. Dr. Duffield fainted and fell. This fall was the precursor of his death, which occurred a few days later. In the fall of I871 the Association acted as almoner for many associations, distributing over $io,ooo in money and hundreds of cases of goods for the relief of sufferers by fire in northern Michigan. The growth of the work caused an increasing need for larger and more eligible rooms. From time to time various plans were proposed for the accomplishment of this end, but nothing definite was reached until January 15, 1875, when, on the strength of pledges of $250 each from ten persons towards the first payment, a lot on Farmer Street, between Monroe and Gratiot Avenues, was purchased for $14,0Io, payable in five annual instalments. The property fronted sixty feet on Farmer Street, and ran back nearly one hundred and forty feet, with an alley all along one side, across the end and half way up the other side. The building on the lot had been erected in I851 as a hotel barn. Subsequently, and at the time of the purchase, it was occupied as a factory, and was not thought to possess any permanent value. On the strength of the purchase, several thousand dollars were subscribed, but not enough to pay for the lot or erect a building. Meanwhile, it was necessary for the Association to move, and it was finally determined to build a new front to the old building, and fit it up for temporary occupancy. This was done at an expense of about $4,000, and very comfortable quarters were secured. The house was dedicated on February I4, 1876. The free-will offerings then made were noticeably given with hearty good-will and manifest appreciation of the results secured with so small an outlay. The property was held by the following special trustees, elected on April 5, I875: F. D. Taylor, Silas Farmer, Walter Buhl, Arthur Treadway, Leonard Laurense, E. C. Hinsdale, and Horace Hitchcock. The work grew, and two additional rooms were fitted up for use. In January, I877, an arrangement was made with the Woman's Christian Temperance Union, by which they were given the use of one half of the first story for two years on condition that they finished off and floored the room, which was then unfinished; this was done at a cost of $700, and after two years the Association received $400 a year rent therefrom. 640 UNION RELIGIOUS S)OCIETES. Soon after the opening of the building the apparatus of a defunct gymnasium was procured, a room was fitted up for its reception, and the most convenient gymnasium in the city offered to the use of those joining the Association. Not long after the library of the Mechanics' Society was placed in the care of the Association for five years from August I, I877, and members of both bodies had equal use of it until June I, 1882, when it was again trans-ferred to the Mechanics'Society. The library, added to other advantages, brought in hundreds of new members, and before the close of 1877 the Association numbered over twelve hundred paying members. During its earlier years one of the most successful plans for obtaining funds was the annual strawberry festival, conducted by young ladies from the several churches; the receipts for several years averaged $500 per year, and the festivals were acknowledged to be the most attractive entertainments held in Detroit. The Authors' Carnival, given in June, I875, under the joint auspices of the Home of the Friendless and this organization, netted the Association over $i,ooo. In its earlier years the Association was specially indebted to its treasurer, Walter C. Skiff, who not only contributed liberally but often preserved the credit of the Association by advancing money to pay its bills. On his decease in 1870 he left a bequest of $5,000 to the Association, payable after his mother's death, on the condition that the Association possess, in addition, a property worth $20,000. At the present time the Association is sustained by membership fees and special donations. The religious work has included a wide range of effort. A Monday evening service has been continuously maintained. Services at mission chapels, and at suitable seasons, open-air meetings have also been held. The jail is visited, and a Bible class at the House of Correction is especially appreciated. The noon meeting has been successful from the first. One of the most important meetings was the Saturday evening Bible reading. When conducted by Rev. A. T. Iierson, it had an average attendance of over three hundred. Literary, social, and educational helps in the way of classes, lectures, and receptions have also been supplied. From I876 to I882 a statement of its meetings and its work was published in a weekly or monthly bulletin. On the I2th of October, I880, a conference of ladies and gentlemen was held at the residence of a friend of the work, and it was determined to raise the sum of $70,00o for the purpose of purchasing a more suitable home for the Association in order to enable it fully to carry out its plans of Christian work. The work of canvassing began, and about $40,000 was pledged, and then the project was allowed to sleep. Meantime the trustees were unable to furnish the Association with rooms free of rent, and at the same time pay the interest due on the purchase price of the property, and finally they were directed to sell, and on March 24, I882, sold the property for $15,ooo. The Association, in May, 1882, moved to 250 Woodward Avenue, occupying the store on the ground floor. From here, in April, I883, they moved to the second, third, and fourth stories of the Williams Block on Monroe Avenue, facing Campus Martius, where they had thirty rooms, which were formally opened on April 5. The rooms were handsomely fitted up at a cost of about $2,500. From here in April, I886, they moved to a building known as the Casino, on Griswold Street, opposite the High School, and in October following they removed to Witherell Street, near Woodward Avenue, remaining there until November 4, I887, when the Association took possession of its new building on the northeast corner of Grand River Avenue and Gris\old Street The erection of the building was begun in I886, the corner stone being laid on October 19 of that year. A little more than a year afterwards, on November 6, I887, the building was formally dedicated. The lot cost $30,000, and the total cost of the lot, building and furnishings was $ I8,ooo, the last $37,000 of the amount being subscribed or guaranteed at a banquet given in the building the evening before it was dedicated. The furniture was almost entirely provided by ladies interested in the work, and the building as a whole is supplied with everything that could be desired to attract and benefit the young men of the city. One of the most hopeful features of the work is the Boys' Branch, established on September 12, 1882, chiefly through the efforts of Mrs. J. E. Foster. They have an enrolled membership of over one hundred, conduct various meetings, and publish a monthly bulletin, called the Branch Record, which is sprightly and healthful in character. The Association was incorporated on January I2, I874, and the annual meeting is held on the second Tuesday of January. The society is managed by twenty directors, all of whom must be members of churches holding the doctrine of justification by faith in Christ alone. The directors are elected by the members, and the officers, except the secretaries and treasurer, are selected from and elected by the directors. The presidents of the Association have been: I864 and I865, James \V. Farrell; i866 and 1867, F. I). Taylor; 1868, Silas Farmer; 1869 and 1870, David Preston; 1871 and I872, Bradford Smith; I873 and I874, E. C. Hinsdale; I875-I879, F. D. Taylor; I879-I884, E. W. Wetmore; I884 -S. M. Cutcheon. The paid secretaries have been: 1864-1866, 1). D. Davis and James Westaway; UNION RELIGIOUS SOCIETIES. 641 I866-1869, W. H. Gibbs; I869 and 1870, John Seage; I871, (. C. Yemans; I872-I876, E. B. Moody; 1876-I881, C. E. Dyer; 1883-, L. F. Newman. The Railroad Branch had its origin in a meeting held in the Hall of the Association on May 7, 1876, at which addresses were delivered by Messrs. Lang Sheaf, and H. W. Stager, of Cleveland, who had been invited for the occasion. Several prominent railroad officials were present, and the movement proved a success from the outset. A committee was appointed, a room on Woodbridge near Third Street secured, and on June 21 it was formally opened, with T. C. Boughton as superintendent. The work grew rapidly, and on November 21 a room was obtained at the Grand Trunk Junction, and neatly fitted up for the use of the men there employed. Religious exercises were held on the Sabbath, and occasionally on week days, and reading matter provided. In November, 1877, John H. Fry succeeded Mr. Boughton, and three months later H. I). Warren became the superintendent of the rooms. After a few months Mr. C. E. Dyer took charge of both the main Association and the Railroad Branch. In November, I878, I. G. Jenkins became the secretary of the Railroad Iranch. In.February, 1878, a room more easy of access to the men seeming desirable, quarters were fitted up under the office of the yard master on the depot grounds, and the room on Woodbridge Street was given up. On the 29th of August following, a new building at the Junction was first occupied. It was erected at a cost of $1,ooo. In August, 1883, the building was moved to vacant ground near the original location of the rooms. The secretary issues a little monthly paper called the Headlight, which contains much information of value. This outgrowth of the Y. M. C. A. has resulted in the establishment of several reading rooms for railroad men at stations along the lines of roads centering in Ietroit, and is constantly developing in power and usefulness. Cz'i, Counly, and State z'bile Societles. The first Bible Society in the State was organized at Detroit in November, i 86. Its first anniversary was held November 4, I817, and the reports showed that $146 had been received in subscriptions. The following persons were officers in I817: Lewis Cass, president; William Woodbridge, first vice-president; C. Lamed, second vice-president; Rev. J. Monteith, corresponding secretary; H. J. Hunt, recording secretary; Henry Brown, treasurer. The organization. was in existence in 1820, but ceased soon after. On November 3, 1830, a County Bible Society was organized with the following officers: president, Lewis Cass; vice-presidents, John Biddle and B. F. H. Witherell; recording secretary, C. C.Trowbridge; corresponding secretary, Rev. N. M. Wells; treasurer and depository, E. P. Hastings; executive committee, J. J. Deming, J. Owen, H. Whiting, W. Ward, and E. Bingham. This society remained in existence for several years, and distributed many thousand Bibles and Testaments. In October, I838, a State Bible Society was again formed, and in 1845 the local society received the following notice: WAYNE CO. BIBLE SOCIETY. A meeting of the friends of the American Bible Society was held at the Presbyterian Session Room, October 7th, I845,-J. Kearsley chairman, NW. Phelps secretary. The chair stated the object of the meeting to be to resuscitate or reorganize the Wayne County Bible Society auxiliary to the American Bible Society. Messrs. A. Sheley, A. McFarren, and J. V. Watson wvere on motion appointed a nominating committee. They reported for president C. C. Trowbridge; vice-president, C. (;. Hammond; treasurer, John (wen; secretary, Samnuel Hastings. Report adopted and the nominees elected. W. PHELPS, Secrelary. This third organization seems also to have died out, for on February 2, 1857, under the influence of the revival sentiment of that year, a new society was organized and a constitution adopted. The depository, from time to time was established at various bookstores, but in April, 1877, it found an appropriate home in the rooms of the Y. M. C. A., and was placed in the care of Mrs. J. E. Foster. In i886 it was removed to the Newsboy's Home, and in 1887 transferred to the care of Phillips & Hunt. During I886, at an expense of about $1,200, which amount was contributed by the churches, a canvass of the city was made, and as far as possible every family destitute of the Bible was supplied, either by a sale or as a gift. The sales amounted to $3I5, and 349 Bibles were given away. Unzon Befhel Soczety. This enterprise was organized on September 20, 1830, under the auspices of the Western Seamen's Friend Society. Fifteen years later an old warehouse on Woodbridge Street between Shelby and Wayne Streets was procured, the centre of the second floor cut out, and an audience room with a gallery was thus obtained. The building was dedicated April 2, 1846, with a sermon by Rev. Dr. Duffield. Rev. Dr. Harrison was put in charge, and large numbers of sailors and others gathered at the services. The building was eventually sold to the Trinity Lutheran Church. On September 8, 1850, a hall on the second floor of store No. 66 Jefferson 642 UNION MEETINGS.- REVIVALS AND REVIVALISTS. Avenue, on the southwest corner of Cass Street, was dedicated for the use of the Bethel Church, with a sermon by the Rev. Dr. Kitchell. At this time Rev. A. M. Fitch was chaplain. From I85I to 863 Rev. N. M. Wells was pastor. At the beginning of his term, a room was fitted up in the Hawley Block, on the northwest corner of Bates and Woodbridge Streets, and there the society held services until 1862; from that year until 1865, services were held in rooms on Woodbridge Street, just west of Wayne Street, with Rev. Mr. King in charge; from I865 to I868, a room in the Board of Trade Building was used, and the Rev. William Day was in charge. After I868 the services were discontinued. Society of Bethel hWorkers. This organization dates from December 30, I884, and owes its existence chiefly to. the earnest and self-sacrificing efforts of Mrs. A. N. Moffat. The chief object of the society is to maintain a sailors' boarding-house under strictly religious auspices, with daily Gospel or temperance meetings. The first rooms were located on Brush Street, in the basement of the (;lobe Hotel. The old Mansion House, corner of Griswold and Atwater Streets, was subsequently rented, and on June 20, I885, formally opened by the society with appropriate exercises. The work is largely self-sustaining, and many persons are known to have been greatly benefited by the efforts put forth. City Tract Societies. The first society of the above character was organized on March 22, 1831, but no details of its work have been found. In 1839 a society called the Michigan Tract Society was in existence, with B. F. Larned as president and Charles Cleland as corresponding secretary. A society, called the Detroit City Tract Association, was instituted on January 12, I846, with the following officers: Rev. George Duffield, president; H. L. Hammond, vice-president; H. Hallock, general superintendent; A. McFarren, treasurer, and F. Raymond, secretary. Ward Superintendents: First Ward, John Hulbert; Second Ward, Charles M. Howard; Third Ward, David French; Fourth Ward, Ross Wilkins; Eifth Ward, Thomas Rowland; Sixth Ward, J. D. Baldwin. The principal object of the organization was to circulate gratuitously the tracts and other publications of the American Tract Society. The city was divided into fifty-nine districts. Monthly reports were made by each visitor, and a great amount of faithful labor expended. The society continued its efforts up to 1853, and was then discontinued. Detroit Evangelical Alliance. The object of this organization is to promote Christian fellowship among the different church societies. It was organized in Detroit, June 30, 1873, and the following officers elected: president, C. I. Walker; corresponding secretary, Rev. G. D. Baker; recording secretary, Silas Farmer; treasurer, Jacob S. Farrand. The time for the annual meeting is in October, but only two sets of officers have been chosen. Those in office in 1883 were: Jacob S. Farrand, president; H. E. Baker, secretary; W. H. Brearley, corresponding secretary; Rev. A. T. Pierson, Rev. J. M. Arnold, and F. D. Taylor, executive committee. On October 30, I877, on the invitation of the society, the Biennial Conference of the Evangelical Alliance of the United States was held in Ietroit, at the First Presbyterian Church. There was a arge attendance and much interest in the exercises. The organization then ceased, but in I888 an entirely new society, by the same name, was organized. Detroit Mlinisterial Union. This organization dates from I850, and is composed of the pastors of the several so-called evangelical churches of Detroit. They hold weekly meetings on Monday morning to discuss any subject or question connected with the religious prosperity of the city or the country. UNION MEETINGS. IMAorning Prayer MJeetings. The Union morning prayer meetings were an outgrowth of the deep religious feeling that pervaded the entire country immediately subsequent to the panic of I857. The first of these meetings in Detroit was held at 8 A. M., March 4, in the basement of the Baptist Church, corner of (riswvold and Fort Streets. The attendance of active business men was a marked feature from the outset, and the meeting grew apace. On account of the large attendance, the meetings, after March 29, I858, were held in the body of the church. Other morning meetings were held in the Congregational Church on Jefferson Avenue, and a noon meeting in the Waterman Block, and in several churches? The meeting in the Congregational Church continued till the last of April. On May 4 the meeting in the Baptist Church was discontinued for one week, and a committee appointed to consider the subject of its continuance. On May Io it was resumed, to be held from 8 to 8.45 A. M. On July II, I859, as the church was to be torn down, the place of meeting was changed to the basement of the Second M. E. Church, on the corner of Randolpl R]EVIVALS AND REVIVALISTS. 643 and Congress Streets. After the burning of that church, on July 18, 1863, the meetings were held in the basement of the First M. E. Church, corner of Woodward Avenue and State Street. Here it was continued till March 4, 1872, when, on its fourteenth anniversary, the last of the morning meetings was held, the attendance not seeming to warrant a further continuance. Noon Meetings. In addition to the noon meeting of 1857, which was held in the Waterman Block, and kept up from March to the middle of May, a noon meeting was several times attempted in the Y. M. C. A. rooms, on the corner of Jefferson and Woodward Avenues; but the attendance was always small and the meetings were soon discontinued. The only successful and continuous noon meeting was opened Tuesday, February 15. 1876, in the Y. M. C. A. building, on Farmer Street. It has been continued daily ever since, with an average attendance of from twenty to thirty persons. On May 30, 1882, the first service was held at the rooms in the Mather Block, and on April 2, I883, the first service was held in the rooms on Monroe Avenue. It is held from 12 to 12.30 M., and many evidences of its value have been made manifest. REVIVALS AND REVIVALISTS. The first effort of different denominations to cooperate in a series of religious meetings was made in 1865. The meetings, under the direction of Rev. E. P. Hammond, began on Sunday afternoon, February 26, 1865, at the Fort Street Congregational Church. The house was filled with children and Sunday-school teachers, and the service was remarkable for its solemnity and power. The morning meetings in the Woodward Avenue M. E. Church were soon crowded, and at the evening meetings in various churches, there were always more than could be seated. The closing service was held on March 19. A series of union meetings, conducted by Messrs. Whittle and Bliss, was commenced on the evening of October 6, 1874, at the Second Congregational Church, and closed on the i9th of November. These meetings were inaugurated and conducted by the Y. M. C. A., but were heartily supported by most of the Protestant clergymen and grew in interest to the end. The services, held chiefly in the Central Methodist and United Presbyterian churches, are gratefully remembered by many persons. A memorial service, in memory of P. P. Bliss, who perished in the Ashtabula railroad disaster, was held on Sunday afternoon, January 7, I877, at Whitney's Opera House. By invitation of the Clerical Union, the Rev. George F. Pentecost came to Detroit, and led a series of religious services, commencing on January 4, I880, and closing the I8th of March. Most of the meetings were held in the First Congregational and Fort Street Iresbyterian Churches, and were highly enjoyed by the multitudes who attended. I)uring his stay, meetings for business men were conducted a part of the time in Merrill Hall and also in a vacant store on Jefferson Avenue near First Street. In the spring and fall of 1883 Harry F. Sayles, known as the singing evangelist, conducted a series of revival meetings in the Eighteenth Street Baptist, Second Congregational, Third Street Mission, Fort Street Methodist Episcopal, and Twelfth Street Baptist Churches, his successive engagements in these various churches affording the best of evidence of the public appreciation of his labors. Commencing on Friday, November 21, 1884, and lasting over Sunday, a Christian Worker's Conference was held in Music Hall, conducted by D. L. Moody. All the meetings were very largely attended. From January 3 to io, I886, a series of special religious services were held in various churches, the meetings being specially notable from the fact that all evangelical churches in the city participated. Special invitations to the meetings were systematically distributed throughout the city. During this same period Rev. Mr. Rainsford, of New York. conducted a series of noon meetings at St. Paul's P. E. Church, and also held other services some of them being highly interesting and largely attended. CHAPTER LXVII. POVERTY, AND ITS RELIEF.-THE POOR COMMISSION.-CITY PHYSICIANS.-THE COUNTY POOR. POVERTY, AND ITS RELIEF. THE first settlers were mostly poor, but for many years pauperism was unknown. The pluck that inspired the coming to a wilderness, and the vigilance which a residence in such wilds demanded, precluded that supineness of which poverty is born. True, there were times of trial and seasons of distress; crops failed, and more than once gaunt famine hovered about the palisades of Pontchartrain. Such times, however, were only incidental. Game and grain were usually plentiful, and the few families who dwelt here ate their own bread and asked no alms of strangers. Not until the Yankees came did "beggars come to town," and then not because the Yankees set the example of begging, but because upon their advent the population increased, and as towns grow, beggars multiply. The relieving of the poor enlisted the attention of the Governor and Judges soon after the Northwest Territory was organized. By act of November 6, 1790, the Court of Quarter Sessions appointed one or more overseers of the poor for each township, and old records show the appointment in I80I, for the township of Ietroit, of Jacques Girardin; James May, Robert Guoin, and Gabriel Godfroy were appointed in I803; Joseph Campau was appointed in place of Guoin in December, I803, and reappointed in I804. In I806 the sum of twenty-five dollars was appropriated by the Governor and Judges for the support of the poor in Detroit. By law of March 30, 1827, each township was authorized to elect two overseers of the poor. On October 29, I829, each township was authorized to elect five directors of the poor, and the office of township overseer was to terminate after April, 1830. By Act of February 26, 1831, the plan of one director for each township was revived, and in March the following was appended to the notice of an election: Immediately after closing the polls, a tax will be voted for the maintenance and support of the poor of Detroit for the ensuing year. At this time the city marshal acted as the almoner of the city, and from time to time small sums were placed in his hands for distribution. On March 14, I840, the council appointed a committee to contract with the superintendent of the county poor for the support of city paupers at eighteen cents each per day. The Council Proceedings for I847 and 1848 show that when occasion demanded, it was customary for the aldermen to vote such sums as they deemed necessary for the support of the poor. The office of city director of poor dates from Acts of April 23, 1833, and March 7, 1834, which conferred upon the council the power to do for the poor what under the State law the county directors were required to do. Up to February 21, I849, the officer was appointed by the council; after that date he was elected. Under the ordinance of January 14, 1862, the director advertised for proposals, and bids were received from various persons for furnishing groceries, meat, flour, and wood. Under ordinance of December I4, 1869, the poormaster gave orders for needed articles upon stores in different parts of the city. Orders amounting to $17,323 were given on about two hundred different stores in 1878; the wood bill for the same year amounted to $3,760. The amount given at any one time to the same person, or the total amount given to the same person or family in a given length of time, was entirely discretionary with the director of the poor; his orders on the stores were paid monthly by the city treasurer. That this discretionary power was not always wisely exercised is evident frokn the report of a committee of the Common Council made in April, I870; it shows that of 1,236 families who received provisions in February of that year, 400 could not be found, and 223 were unworthy; wood was also reported to have been delivered to I20 different families that could not be found. Under the ordinance in force in I879 it was the duty of the director, when applied to for relief by or for any person, to investigate the case, and if such person were not in a condition to be removed to the county poorhouse, temporary relief might be given. In case of the death of persons without means, the director had power to give orders on the city sexton for their burial, and in I877, 333 paupers were thus buried. In all cases of relief granted, whether from public funds, or [6441 THE POOR COMMISSION. 645 from funds or articles furnished by individuals, it was the duty of the director of the poor to enter in a book the name of the person receiving aid, the name and number of street he lived on, also the number of his ward, with the kind and amount of relief furnished, and names of the persons on whom the orders were drawn; all of which information was open to the inspection of the public, and reported monthly to the council. It was also the duty of the director, within ten days after the monthly report was made, to furnish lists of the persons relieved, arranged by wards, with their residences, to the city clerk, and the clerk was to cause not over one hundred copies to be printed, and placed at the disposal of the aldermen. In 1877 5,000 persons, representing 1,250 families, were relieved, and the total expenditure by the city for the support of the poor in that year was $37,284. Add to this the salaries of the city physicians, $2,400, the cost of the general vaccination of that year, $4,000, and the city's proportion of the expenditures by the county in behalf of the poor, and we have a total of nearly $80,000 paid by Detroit in 1877 for the benefit of the poor, in addition to the thousands of dollars expended through private charitable organizations. The salary of the director was $[,6oo, and his term of office two years. A deputy director was also appointed yearly, with a salary of $I,200. The office ceased on the creation of the Poor Commission. Following is a list of superintendents and directors: City Superintendents of Poor: 1827, C. Conant, Levi Cook; 1828, Levi Cook, I). C. McKinstry; 1829, I). C. McKinstry, Cullen Brown. Iirectors of Poor: I830, Robert Smart, James Abbott, Jerry Dean, S. Conant, J. J. Deming; i83r, J. J. Garrison, James T. Penny; 1832, S. Conant, A. S. Porter; 1833, H. M. Campbell; 1835, A. C. Caniff, J. Eldred; 1837, Robert Stuart; 1838, S. Conant; I839, Robert Stuart; 1840, J. J. Garrison, G. Paull; 184r, I). VW. Fiske; 1842-1843, H. Newberry, Francis Cicotte; 1844-1847, Mason Palmer; I847, William Cook; I848-I849, A. C. Powell, (;. V. Hooper; 1850-1862, L. B. Willard; 1862 — 866, W. V. James; 866-I870, L. B. Willard; 1870-1872, Stephen Martin; 1872-1878, L. B. Willard; 1878-1880, W. V. Kies. THE POOR COMMISSION. The Poor Commission was created by Act of May 31, 1879, and did away with the offices of director of poor and city sexton. The board consists of four persons nominated by the mayor and appointed by the council, who serve without compensation. Under Act of May 20, I88I, the board appoints its own officers. The first commissioners were appointed for terms of one, two, three, and four years. Since I880 one has been appointed each year for a term of four years. Under the laws and ordinances governing the Board, its members are authorized to co-operate with charitable societies and the county superintendents of the poor. If any person needing hell) has resided less than a year in the city, the relief extended is paid for out of the county treasury. By Act of April o1, 1883, the power to relieve all such county poor is lodged with the Poor Commission of Detroit. They have power to purchase and contract for all needful supplies for the poor, also to receive and distribute voluntary donations; they contract for the care of the sick poor, and have charge of the burial of those that die; they may procure railroad tickets for such paupers as wish permanently to leave the city or county. All sick or other poor requiring permanent support are, if possible, moved to the county poorhouse. The commissioners are required to keep a detailed record, alphabetically arranged, showing nationality, age, sex, condition, place and length of residence in city of each applicant for relief, together with a statement of cause of destitution, usual avocation, and the kind and amount of relief afforded. The expenditures during the first seventeen months of the exi.ence of the commission, ending June 30, I881, were $32,608. The chief items were: orders on groceries, $9,966; provisions furnished, $5,650; railroad fares paid, $264; wood, $4,854; care of sick poor, $5,880; burial of poor, $1,430; 1,648 families, including 6,022 persons, were relieved. The report for the fiscal year ending June 30, 1887, showed that aid had been given to 1,146 families, or 3,743 persons. The value of the provisions distributed was $15,108.75; of wood, 924'2 cords were supplied. The total expenditures for the year were $34,826.94. In furtherance of their work, on I)ecember 13, I880, the commissioners opened a store in Firemen's Hall, from which they supl)lied various articles of food to persons in need. The store was closed on March 26, I88I, and they returned to the old plan of giving orders on grocers. These orders may be presented at any grocery; but a printed notice on the order forbids the delivering of liquors, or of any articles except flour, potatoes, sugar, bread, tea, coffee, meal, rice, lard, soap, beans, fish, candles, oil, and matches. The amount and price of each article must be noted on the order, and certified to by the grocer. The office of the commission was at first located in the City Hall, but in November, I881, it was moved to the New Market Building. The commissioners have been: i880, Thomas Berry, A. W. Copland, Henry Heames, and Joseph B. Moore. 646 CITY PHYSICIANS. 188, T. Berry, H. Heames, J. B. Moore, E. Kanter; I882-1884 W. K. Muir, H. Heames, E. Kanter, J. B. Moore; I884-I886, \V. K. Muir, H. Heames, J. B. Moore, S. Heavenrich; I886, H. Heames, J. B. Moore, F. K. Walker, S. Heavenrich; 1887, J. B. Moore, F. K. Walker, S. Simon, W. V. James. P. H. Dwyer, secretary, and John F. Martin, superintendent, have served from I879. CITY PHYSICIANS. The first intimation of the existence of this office is found in the Proceedings of the Council for May I, 1829; because of fear of small-pox, the following resolution was passed: Resolved, that the gratuitous services of the medical gentlemen of the city be respectfully solicited in behalf of our citizens whose pecuniary circumstances render them objects of their benevolence. In 1837 there was another "small-pox scare," and Doctors Russel, Rice, Cowles, and Breckenridge were appointed to vaccinate the poor at the expense of the city. An Act of February 21, I849, provided for the election of one city physician each year. By the charter of 1857 the council was given the power of appointment, and in May of that year the number of city physicians was increased from one to four. By ordinance of January 31, 1860, the city was divided into three districts, and one physician appointed for each district at a salary of $300. An ordinance of January 9, 1874, provided for increasing the number of districts and physicians to six; and on an order from the mayor, the director of the poor, or an alderman, it was their duty to attend the sick poor in their respective districts. An ordinance of January 14, 1879, divided the districts as follows: First District, Wards 'Fen and Thirteen; Second District, Wards Six and Eleven; Third I)istrict, Wards Four and Seven; Fourth Iistrict, Wards One, Two, and Three; Fifth I)istrict, all of Wards Eight, Nine, and Twelve lying south of Michigan Avenue; Sixth District, Ward Five, and all of Wards Eight, Nine, and Twelve lying inorth of Michigan Avenue. The physicians were required to furnish all medicines for the poor at their own expense, and when requested by the Common Council were to examine into and report all sources of danger to health in their several districts; and under ordinance of 1863, it was their duty to vaccinate without charge any person applying to them. On making affidavit at the end of each quarter that all persons who called for that purpose had been vaccinated, they were entitled to $I2.50 per quarter in addition to their regular salary, which was determined yearly by the council. In 1877, under a general plan of vaccination, the six city physicians reported that between June 29 and July 17 they had vaccinated 6,054 persons. Under ordinance approved May 31, 1882, the district system was abolished, and provision was made for two physicians for the entire city, to be appointed by the Board of Aldermen on the second Tuesday of June in each year. The charter of 1883 provided that the city physicians should be appointed by the Board of Councilmen on nomination of the Board of Health. The appointees are required to have a regular diploma from a respectable medical collage, with five years' experience as a physician, and to give their whole time to the city patients. An office assistant is also provided, who, in the year ending June 30, 1884, filled 8,070 prescriptions and prescribed for 2,148 cases. The out-door physicians made 6,55I calls. The city physicians have been: 1842 and 1843, J. H. Bagg; 1844, C. N. Ege; I845 and 1846, H. Lemcke; 1847, Z. Pitcher; I848-1851, L. H. Cobb; 1851-1853, J. B. Scovel; 1853, P. Klein; 1854, E. IP. Christian; I855-I857, J. B. Scovel; I857. District I, W. Cowan; District 2, C. R. Case; Iistrict 3, S. M. Axford; District 4, J. B. K. Mignault. I858. District i, William Cowan; District 2, C. R. Case; District 3, S. M. Axford; I)istrict 4, Robert Mullaney. I859. District i, I. M. Allen; District 2, L. Davenport; District 3, E. Lauderdale; District 4, H. Kiefer. 1860. District i, Ira M. Allen; District 2, Louis Davenport; District 3, Edward Lauderdale; I)istrict 4, Wm. J. Cranage. 186i. Iistrict i, Chas. H. Barrett; District 2, Caspar Schulte; I)istrict 3, F. W. Sparling; District 4, Dwight D. Stebbins. I862. Iistrict I, I. M. Allen and J. M. Alden; District 2, Edward Schroeder; District 3, C. R. Case; District 4, R. Mullaney. I863. District i, L. H. Cobb; District 2, Nicholas Pfeiffer and P. Klein; District 3, C. R. Case; District 4, R. Mullaney. I864. District I, L. H. Cobb; District 2, Edward Kane; District 3, J. M. Alden; District 4, Davis Henderson. I865. District I, L. H. Cobb; District 2,/E. Schroeder; District 3, J. M. Alden; District 4, R. Mullaney. I866 and 1867. District i, Henry Newland; District 2, E. Schroeder; District 3, Davis Henderson; District 4, R. Mullaney. I868. District i, Henry F. Lyster; District 2, C. H. Barrett; District 3, C. Schulte; District 4, Wm. A. Chandler. I869. District i, H. F. Lyster; District 2, F. X. THE COUNTY POOR. 647 Spranger; District 3, C. Schulte; District 4, W. A. Chandler. 1870. Iistrict I, John M. Bigelow; District 2, Andrew Borrowman; District 3, Peter I'. Gilmartin; I)istrict 4, Elisha Leach. I871. District i, H. F. Lyster; District 2, John Flinterman; District 3, Wm. H. Lathrop; District 4, W. A. Chandler, I872. District I, H. F. Lyster; District 2, J. Flinterman; District 3, H. E. Smith; District 4, William G. Cox. I873. District I, Joseph C. Ferguson; District 2, Alonzo Harlow; District 3, Henry 0. Walker; District 4, R. A. Jamieson. 1874. District I, Harris A. Goodwin; District 2, A. Harlow; District 3, J. C. Ferguson; District 4, H. 0. Walker; District 5, Hamilton E. Smith; District 6, R. A. Jamieson. 1875. District I, H. A. Goodwin; District 2, A. Harlow; District 3, J. C. Ferguson; District 4, H. E. Smith; District 5, Theo. F. Kerr; District 6, Chas. Ewers. 1876. District i, H. A. Goodwin; District 2, J. P. Corcoran; District 3, J. J. MIulheron; District 4. G. A. Foster; District 5, T. V. Law; District 6, Chas. Ewers. 1877. District i, Chas. F. Herzog; District 2, C. Schulte; District 3, Augustus Kaiser; District 4, Geo. A. Foster; District 5, Geo. W. Montgomery; District 6, Edward Lichty. 1878. District I, A. F. Hoke; District 2, John Georg; District 3, A. Kaiser; District 4, \Wm. A. McDonald; District 5, Albert G. Bissell; District 6, E. Lichty. I879. District I, J. W. Monaghan; District 2, O. P. Eaton; District 3, G. Jacobs; District 4, H. E. Smith; District 5, A. Harlow; District 6, J. J. Mulheron. i880. District i, F. Kuhn; District 2, G. Jacobs; I)istrict 3, 0. P. Eaton; District 4, T. V. Law; I)istrict 5, H. E. Smith; District 6, R. A. Jamieson. I88I. District i, F. Kuhn; I)istrict 2, J. G. Johnson; District 3, A. Thuener; District 4, T. V. 1awtv; District 5, W. Chaney; District 6, R. A. Jamieson. 1882. E. J. McPharlin, Ferdinand Kuhn; C. P. Frank, assistant. I883. W. Chaney, G. D. Stewart; C. P. Frank, assistant. 1884. G. D. Stewart, E. A. Parkinson, C. P. Frank. 1885. G. D. Stewart, S. H. Goodwin, C. P. Frank. I886. S. H. Goodwin, C. P. Frank, Joseph Schulte. 1887. Alonzo Bryan, F. D. Heisordt, Joseph Schulte. THE COUNTY POOR. Under Michigan Territory, by law of October 8, I805, on notice to three justices of the peace that a person was poor and incapable of self-support, they, as constituting the Court of Quarter Sessions, were authorized to direct the marshal to contract for the support of such person at a cost not exceeding twenty-five cents a day. By Act of February I, 1809, the judges of the district courts were authorized to appoint three overseers of the poor for each district. In 1817 the poor were again placed in care of the Court of Quarter Sessions, with provisions similar to those of the Act of 1805. On February 17, 1824, an act was passed giving the county commissioners the care of the poor, and under their direction the sheriff was to advertise yearly for proposals for the care of paupers. By Act of June 23, 1828, the Board of Supervisors was empowered to appoint three directors of the poor for the county, and by Acts of July 22, 1830, and March 7, 1834, the Ioard of Supervisors was given power to appoint one or more superintendents of the poor. Under the Revised Statutes of 1838 the county commissioners were authorized to appoint three superintendents of the poor, to hold office one year, and to have the general superintendence of the county poor and the poorhouse. The Act of March 11, 1844, which created the Board of Auditors, authorized the appointment of three superintendents of the poor yearly for terms of three years each. An Act of I885 provides that three superintendents of the poor, and the Board of Poor Commissioners of Detroit, shall jointly constitute a board to care for the poor of the county. They are charged with the care of the county asylum, the poorhouse and farm; with the control of those who are sent there; and of the sick poor sent to hospitals or State asylums. They are expected to pay weekly visits to the poorhouse and the asylum, and to constantly provide for and supervise the management of both institutions. From time to time they contract with various hospitals for the care of the sick poor, the usual price being about $3.50 per week. The total expense of caring for the sick, poor, and insane in I870 was $33,523; and for the year ending September 30, I887, $63,176, of which $25,762 was expended for provisions; there were also used provisions raised on the farm valued at $7,317, The superintendents are paid $50 each per month. If a poor person has lived in the county less than a year he is deemed a county pauper, and the whole county is chargeable for his support. If he has lived longer than a year in any part of the county, the township or city where he resides is under obligations to take care of him. 648 THE COUNTY POOR. The county superintendents of the poor have been:-838-I841, James Hanmer, Ammon Brown, W. B. Hunt; I841-1843, W. S. Gregory, S. H. Aldrich, James Haniner; 1843-I845, James Hanmer, Morrison Swift, W. G. Porter, T. J. Owen (part of term); I845, Titus Dort, Peter Desnoyers, Ammon Brown; 1846, Charles Peltier, Ammon Brown, James Bucklin; 1847, C. Peltier, J. Bucklin, Warren Tuttle; I848, C. Peltier, W. Tuttle, Elijah Hawley, Jr.; 1849, XV. Tuttle, Ira M. Hough, C. Peltier; I850, C. Peltier, Ira 5I. Hough, E. Hawley, Jr.; 1851, D. A. A. Ensworth, E. Hawley, Jr., J. Shearer; I852, C. Peltier, E. Hawley, Jr., I. M. Hough; I853, Hugh O'Beirne, I. M. Hough, R. P, Clark; I854-I857, F. W. Hughes, I. M. Hough, R. P. Clark; I857-I860, James Safford, M. T. Lane, Titus Dort; I860, J. Safford, M. T. Lane, D. Sackett; I861-I863, M. T. Lane, S. XV. Walker. T. T. Lyon; I863, R. I). Hill, S. W. Walker, T. T. Lyon; 1864, T. T. Lyon, B. Hodgkinson, A. Sheley; I865-I869, B. Hodgkinson, William Ialy, A. Ives; I869-I871, B. Hodgkinson, William Dyson, William Daly; I87I-I873, William Dyson, E. Visger, B. Hodgkinson; I873-1875, J. A. Patrick, W. Dyson, E. Visger; 1875, J. A. Patrick, A. Ives, J. R. Hosie; I876, J. A. Patrick, J. R. Hosie, J. Xv. Keith; I877, M. Dunn, J. W. Keith, N. P. Thayer; I878-I879, N. P. Thayer, M. Dunn, Jacob Guthard; I880, M. Dunn, J. Guthard, J. C. McDonald; 1881-I882, M. Dunn, J. C. McDonald, I). Shanahan; 1883, J. J. Vrooman, M. Dunn, I). Shanahan; I884, J. J. Vrooman, D. Shanahan, G. M. Henry; I885, J. J. Vrooman, G. M. Henry, P. Blake; I886, G. M. Henrv, P. Blake, A. Mitchie; I887, H. Horner, P. Blake, A. Mitchie. County Poorhouse. The first record concerning a poorhouse in Wayne County is found in an Act of June 23, 1828, authorizing the people to vote, on the first Monday of July, on the question of erecting a building. The vote was against its erection: many persons, however, deemed such an institution a necessity, and by Acts of July 22, 1830, and March 3, I831, the Board of Supervisors was authorized to build. On September 22, I830, a meeting of citizens of Detroit was held, and a resolution passed in favor of the project. Messrs. H. M. Campbell, S. Conant, and D. French were appointed a committee on site and plan, and in October, I831, the Board of Supervisors appointed a committee to contract for a building. This committee proving negligent, on March 8, 1832, a new resolution was passed to purchase land for a poor-farm, the expenditure for land and building not to exceed $1,200. In accordance with this resolution, on March 27, 1832, about seventeen acres were purchased at a cost of $200. The land was on the east side of the Leib Farm, and fronted on the Gratiot Road. On October 4, I832, a contract was made with I). French to erect a house for $950. His contract was duly fulfilled, he was paid on December 31, I832, and-remarkable fact-the entire cost of land and building was $50 less than the amount appropriated. The building was a wooden structure, long and low. On January 5, I833, J. P. Cooley was appointed keeper. While these preparations were going on, that fearful scourge, the Asiatic cholera, was hovering over the city. In the season of 1832 it began its work, and in I834 carried death and sorrow to many households; nearly fifty children were made orphans, many of whom were sent to the poorhouse. Moved with pity for their condition, on March 8, I833, the Sisters of Charity, through Bishop Rese, applied to the Board of Supervisors, asking to be put in charge of the county house, as most of the parents of the children had been of their faith. A contract was at once entered into with them, with the privilege of revoking it at any time. Under this contract, in July, I834, Rev. Martin Kundig, the German Roman Catholic priest, who had won golden opinions from all sects by his assiduous labors in behalf of the victims of the cholera, was installed as superintendent. In March, 1836, he contracted to take care of the poor for sixteen cents per day each, but as provisions were very high, and as he was compelled to take his pay in county warrants, he lost much money. In I837 he agreed to care for the poor at twenty-two cents each per day. During the summer there were from 80 to I00 inmates in the poorhouse, with an average of sixty confined to their beds. At the close of this year he was again compelled to take his pay in warrants, as the county had nothing else to give him, and on these he lost from 40 to 60 per cent. Appreciating the value of his services to the State, the Legislature of i 837 voted him $3,000, but this did not make up his losses. The next year he had charge of three hundred persons, and was obliged to feed and clothe them without the aid of a dollar of current money from the county. This so embarrassed him that his personal property was seized and sold at auction. On April I, 1839, the inmates of the poorhouse were removed to the farm now occupied by the county. That Mr. Kundig did not lose his interest in tlh poor is evident from the following extract from the records of the Common Council: Tuesday, 5ranuary 12fh, i841.-A communication was received fromn Martin Kundig, pastor of Trinity Church, enclosing $50, and tendering the thanks of his congregation for the kindness with which their poor have been treated. Accepted, and on motion of Alderman Paull, THE COUNTY POOR. 649 Resewolved, that the Committee on Poor be requested to tender the thanks of the Common Council to the pastor and congregation of Trinity Church for their donation of $50, as well as the manner in which this gratuity was communicated. In I839 the county commissioners were authorized to sell the property on the Gratiot Road, but no purchaser was found until February, 1846, when it was sold for $1,124. The present farm of two hundred and seventy-seven acres, known at time of purchase as the Torbert Farm, was bought on February 22, 1839, for $i,6oo. It lies in the township of Nankin, about sixteen miles west of Detroit, on the line of the M. C. R. R., and two miles east of the village of \Wane. The property, with the buildings and appurtenances, is valued at about $ioo,ooo. The buildings first obtained were two large loghouses that had been used as a tavern. In 1845 the first brick building was erected, at a cost of about $4,500. In 1853 or 1854 an additional brick care of the patients, has a salary of $800, and is appointed by the superintendents of the poor. Prior to the erection of the asylum, incurable patients were kept at the county house, or sent to Kalamazoo. At the present time the county asylum is used for the temporary detention of insane persons, who are to be sent to one of the State Insane Asylums, and also for the safe keeping of insane poor pronounced incurable and sent back from th' State asylums. Poor persons, deemed insane, are sent to the county or the State asylum on a certificate of two physicians to the judge of probate, who on receiving such certificate gives an order for the patient's admission. County Physiczans. In addition to the county physician at the asylum, two others are appointed yearly ty the lBoar(l of COUNTY INSANE AsvI.U.lt. COU'NTY POORHOISE. building was erected, and in I859 still another was put up for a hospital, at a cost of about $1,6oo. I)uring I887 the buildings were enlarged and illproved at a cost of about $30,000. The average number of inmates in the county house in 1887 was 366. Detroit stands charged directly with about three sevenths of the expense of their maintenance, in addition to nearly five sixths of the balance chargeable to the county at large. County Insane Asylum. This building, located on the county farm, was first occupied in August, I869, It cost $24,000. It is two hundred and fifty-two feet long and from thirty-eight to fifty-six feet wide. In 1876 wings were built on the east and west sides, and during I883 and I884 two additions, costing about $4,500 each, were erected. In I887 there was an average of two hundred and thirty-seven inmates. The total cost to the county is about twenty cents per day for each inmate. The county physician for the county buildings is charged with the medical Auditors, at a salary of $450 each. Their duties are confined chiefly to the city, where they attend county patients at the hospitals. It is also their duty to attend the coroner's inquests. The following persons have served as county physicians: 1843, Linus Mott; I845, Z. Pitcher; I846, E. Hurd, Linus Mott; I847, Charles Perrez; I848-I851, Peter Klein; I851, J. B. Scovel; 1852, P. Power; I853, C. Hastings; 1854 and I855, P. Klein; 1856, O. P. Chubb; I857, L. Davenport; I858-I859, S. M. Axford; I860, C. R. Case; i86r, J. M. Alden; 1862-I865, C. H. Barrett; i865, L. H. Cobb; I866, J. M. Alden; I867-1869, H. A. Smith; I869 and I870, P. J. Chavey; 1871 and 1872, P. P. Gilmartin; 1873 and 1874, C. C. Yemans; I875, and I876, E. Lichty, C. Schulte; I877 and I878, A. Borrowman, D. L. Dakin; I879 and I880, H. O. Walker; T. F. Kerr; I88I and 1882, E. Lichty, J. W. Monaghan; I883, C. Schulte, F. W. Owen; I884-I886, F. W. Owen, Aloys Thuener; I886, F. W. Owen, J. McMahan; 887-, G. D. Stewart, J. McMahan. CHAPTER LXVIII. CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. THE year I817 marks an era in the life of the city. The first. bona fide newspaper, the first university schools, the first public library, and the first charitable society were all established in that year. Prior to that date individuals had not associated themselves into public societies of any sort; but in this year the Yankee element began to assert itself, and very soon institutions of almost every kind were organized or projected for Detroit. Of these, one of the earliest, the Moral and Humane Society, was founded December 29, I817. Its objects were to suppress vice and to report any poor children destitute of education. It lived three years, and in I820 expended $64.37 in carrying forward its work, no details of which are to be found. The next on the list of extinct societies, the Young Men's Benevolent Society, an offshoot of the Young Men's Society, was organized January 7, 1848, with S. Barstow as president; Z. Chandler, treasurer; and J. V. Campbell, secretary. The city was divided into seven districts, and each district assigned to a committee of three, whose duty it was to inquire into and report upon all cases of need presented to their notice. In 1850 E. C. Walker was president; in 1852, U. T. Howe; in I855, Bela Hubbard; in I859, Morse Stewart. W. A. Raymond was secretary in 1852. Soon afterwards this position was filled by R. R. Elliott, and he served as secretary, and A. H. Adams as treasurer, up to I86o, when the society disorganized, as its work seemed no longer required. The expenditures of the society for the first six years were: 1848, $480; 1849, $694; I850, $648; I851, $1,406; 1852, $1,407; 1853, $i,i65. Total, $5,803. After a lapse of six years, on May 17, I866, a similar effort was inaugurated under the title of the Detroit City Mission Board; the first officers were: president, E. Taylor; secretary, J. G. Ray; treasurer, Caleb Van Husan. The society was managed by an executive board chosen from the several cooperating churches and charitable societies. The services of W. A. Bacon as city missionary were secured, and under his leadership one of the most complete plans ever devised for the moral uplifting of the poor was brought before the society. It was almost utopian in its completeness, embracing systematic inquiry and furnishing information upon every possible subject connected with the health, homes, and habits of persons needing help. The society entered upon its work with its headquarters at the rooms of the Y. M. C. A., and for some two years its members visited and systematically relieved the poor. On January 2, I868, a still more practical work was undertaken, by the opening of a lodging house in a building on the northeast corner of Atwater and St. Antoine Streets. The house was soon literally thronged with newsboys and tramps, some of whom were lodged free, and others at very low rates. The receipts, however, were not equal to the expenses, and the lodging house was discontinued in June, I868. After this date the society had only a nominal existence, and on November 2, I869, its property was donated to the Woman's Hospital and Foundlings' 'Home. St. Vincent's 1emale Orphan Asylum. This asylum may be called the successor of the oldest charitable institution in the city. Early in I834 its progenitor, a society called the Catholic Female Association, was organized " for the relief of the sick and poor of Detroit." At this time the poorhouse on the Gratiot Road was almost uninhabitable, and the inmates were greatly neglected. Ascertaining these facts, the society, in the spring of I834, petitioned the board to remedy the evils. Almost simultaneously with this request the cholera broke out in the city, and Father Kundig, who was specially active in the care of the sick, soon found himself burdened with the guardianship of about thirty children, committed to his care by those dying of that dread disease. He was forced to find homes for them at various places, and boarded them at his own expense. Some were sent to the county house, and others were gathered in a building on Larned Street near Randolph, and the Female Association undertook to care for them. In order to obtain funds the members, on December 31, 1835, held a Fair at which over $i,6oc were received in one evening; such an amount, even in these days, would be deemed extravagantly large; and in that day it was convincing proof of the sympathy and appreciation of the public. A similar Fair was held in November of the succeeding year. i6501 CHARITABLE AN1) BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. 65 In the spring of I836 twenty acres of land adjoining the county farm on the Gratiot Road were leased, a building erected thereon by Father Kundig, and the orphans removed thither. The house had never less than twenty inmates, and one hundred and forty different children were cared for. Aided by the Association, a school, which was free to all, was opened, and maintained until 1839. The officers of the Association for I837 were Mrs. Emily Leib, president; Mrs. John Watson, vicepresident; Mrs. J. A. Van Dyke, treasurer; Miss Ellen O'Keefe, secretary; Miss Mary Palms, assistant secretary. Father Kundig, who was appointed superintendent of the poor in I834, continued in office until 1839. Such wvere the difficulties of the position, resulting in part from the panic of 1837, that he became bankruplt, and in the spring of 1839 certain of his creditors seized and sold the clothes belonging to the thirty orphans then in his asylum. After the purchase of other poorhouse property by The Sisters finally purchased a lot two hundred and fifty-two by two hundred and sixty feet on McDougall Avenue, between Lamed and Congress Streets, at a cost of $i6,ooo, and erected a building at a cost of nearly $70,000. ''he main structure is one hundred and thirty by sixty-eight feet, with two wings, each sixty by thirty-two feet. The building was dedicated July 19, I876. Up to I882 the asylum had no regular revenue, but was dependent on voluntary donations, and the proceeds of an annual Fair, which was usually very successful. Since I882 it has been supported by an assessment upon the several Catholic congregations in the city. Only girs are received. During 886 the institution cared for one hundred and eighty-six; two hundred and fifty can be accommodated. It was incorporated in September, 187I, and the annual meeting is on the last Monday of January. The names of the Superiors who have had charge are Sisters Loyola, Lucretia, Edmond, and Mary Stella. The Ladzies' Protestlantt (Oihan Asylum. This institution was organized May 18, I836, incorporated March 21, I837, and newly incorporated June 9, I859. On the date first named, a number of ladies met in the Presbyterian Church on Woodward Avenue to consider the propriety and necessity of establishing an orphan asylum. At this meeting Mrs. J. P. Cleveland presided, and Mrs. E. P. Hastings acted as secretary. After considerable deliberation it was decided to complete an organization, and Mrs. Charles Stuart and Mrs. John Farmer were appointed a committee to draft a constitution. At a subsequent meeting this committee reported a constitution and by-laws, which were adopted, and the following ladies were elected officers: Mrs. C. C. Trowbridge, first directress; Mrs. Robert Stuart, second directress; Mrs. 'I'homas Palmer, third directress; Mrs. E. P. Hastings, treasurer; Miss E. S. Trowbridge, secretary; Mrs. Charles Stuart and Mrs. II. J. -Iunt, auditors; Mrs. Godard and Mrs. John Farmer, Committee of Finance; Mrs. Macomb and Mrs. Crocker, Committee of Maintenance; Mrs. C. Stuart and Mrs. Ambrose, Committee of Education; Rev. Robert Turnbull, Major Benjamin F. Lamed, Major Henry Whiting, Eurotas P. Hastings, Charles C. Trowbridge, and Jerry Dean, Counselling Committee. The Association at once commanded sympathy and support; Cullen Brown gave the use of a house on Beaubien, just south of Fort Street, rent free, for one year. On Friday, January 13, 1837, the ladies took possession, and on February I following the asylum was opened under the superintendence of Mrs. Charles Chambers, assisted by her husband. She was paid a salary of $200. ST. VINCENT'S CATHOLIC FEMALE ORPHAN ASYLUM. the county in I839, the asylum was closed, and the orlhans distributed among farmers and acquaintances until homes could be obtained. The present institution had its first home in an old building on the south side of Larned Street, just west of Randolph. It was opened by the Sisters of Charity on June 5, 185i. The next year this building was removed, and a brick building, with a frontage of seventy-five feet and a depth of twenty-five feet, erected on the site. It was first used in October, I852. At that time there were forty orphans in the establishment and a large dayschool was maintained. The asylum was subsequently moved to the brick building formerly known as the bishop's residence, on the west side of Randolph, between Congress and Lamed Streets. Here the asylum remained until I876, having an average of from one hundred to one hundred and fifty children. 652 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND I s~riITUTIONS. During the first year eleven orphans were received, all of whom were in the asylum at the close of the year. A city lot was now donated to the society by Elon Farnsworth, and George Hunt gave an acre of land on his farm, fronting on Jefferson Avenue near the corner of Adair Street. On June 8, 1837, the following officers were elected: first directress, Mrs. C. C. Trowbridge; second directress, Mrs. C. Stuart; third directress, Mrs. T. Palmer; treasurer, Mrs. E. P. Hastings; secretary, Miss E. S. Trowbridge; Committee of Finance, Mrs. Lois Campbell and Mrs. Mason Palmer; Committee of Maintenance, Mrs. John Hulbert and Mrs. Crocker; Committee of Education, Mrs. Kirkland and Mrs. John Farmer; auditors, Mrs. Henry J. Hunt and Mrs. Henry Whiting; counsellors, E. P. I ~-~ - ~ JL - LgLL —p Eldred advanced the necessary means for completing a portion. In the latter half of January, 1840, eight girls and seven boys became its first inmates. The original building was forty-two feet square, and cost $6,833. The wing on the west side was added at a cost of $4,000, and was dedicated February 13, 1872. Owing to the society's plan of binding out the children in its care, their number in I845 had diminiahed to five, and in June, 1846, the society, being in debt to the amount of $700, decided to close the institution until such time as there should be greater need, and larger means for, carrying it on. The building was rented for $ioo a year, the few children left were boarded in a private family, and for the next six years even the annual meetings were unattended. On June 10, 1852, the society was reorganized, and the following officers elected: first directress. Mrs. John Winder; second directress, Mrs. Rev. M. Allen; third directress, Mrs. A. M. Bartholomew; secretary, Mrs. Rev. R. R. Kellogg; treasurer, Mrs. O. C. Thompson. Thirteen orphans that had been placed in a house on Randolph Street were transferred to the care of the new organization; but as the property on Jefferson Avenue had been rented to private parties and also needed repairs, they remained where they were until May, 1853, when the society again took possession of its premises. The first years after their return were years of small resources and great labor. Iay after day. as regularly as she cared for her own household, the first directress solicited or purchased the day's supply of food for the little ones, and then carried it to them, paying fare at the toll-gate, then located this side of the asylum. From time to time, as children died, she took the little coffins into her own carriage, and bore them to the cemetery. The annual meeting of the society is held on the second Thursday in January. It is controlled by a Board of Managers, consisting of two persons from each of the Protestant churches of the city. The board selects directors and other officers. The average number of inmates is thirtv-five, and sixty could be accommodated. The yearly expenses are $2,000. The means of revenue are annual membership fees of $1.oo, collections in churches, proceeds of lectures, and interest on reserve funds. The property in I880 was estimated to be worth $ 5,000. The principal officers since I852 have been: first directress, I852-I860, Mrs. John Winder: i86o1864, Mrs. C. I. Walker; I864-1878, Mrs. Lewis Allen; 1878, Mrs. A. (;. Lindsay; 1879-, Mrs. E. C. Brush. Recording secretaries: 1853 and 1854, Mrs. A. L. Story; I855-i86o, Mrs. E. M. Clark; I860-1886, Mrs. P. E. Curtis. Treasurers: PROTESTANT ORPHAN ASYLUM. Hastings, C. C. Trowbridge, Major Henry Whiting, Mr. Crocker, Major Benjamin F. Lamed, and John Owen. On November 14 it was decided to move the asylum to a house owned by Messrs. Hastings, Kercheval, and Newberry, and the society also determined to erect a building of its own as soon as funds could be obtained. The citizens responded liberally to the call for this purpose. Plans were prepared, and in the fall of I837 Messrs. H. B. Lothrop and H. H. LeRoy volunteered to supervise, without charge, the erection of the building, The work began; but lack of funds, owing to the hard times that soon came on, caused the work to stop, and the building remained unfinished until Julius CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. 653 1852-I855, Mrs. O. C. Thompson; I855-1876, Mrs.S. Davis; 1876-1878, Mrs. A. G. Lindsay; 1878-1886, Mrs. D. R. Shaw; I886-, Mrs. Jas. Nail..f/. iary's Hospzf/a/. This hospital, the first in the city, was established by four Sisters of Charity, in an old log building on the southwest corner of Randolph and Lamed Streets. It was opened for occupants on June 9, 1845, under the name of St. Vincent's. The first superior in charge was Sister Loyola, who, with Sister Rebecca, became identified with its history and success; and both sacrificed their lives in the exercise of duties connected with the hospital. It is proper to mention here, to the lasting credit of their order, that their hospital is the only one to which persons with contagious diseases were ever admitted; this fact made their name, "Sisters of Charity," not a barren title, but a blessed and practical reality. Such patients were, of course, isolated from T the others..fter about five years of service in the original location, the Sisters erected a building on Clinton Street near St. Antoine; and the name was then changed to St. Mlarv's. The lot running through from Clinton to Mullet Street, with a frontage of eighty-seven feet, was donated by Mrs. Antoine Beaubien. The building occupied In this building, for twenty-nine years, the ministrations of the Sisters were freely given and thankfully received. On November 21, I879, their pres ST. MA,\v's HOSPITAL. (Original Building.) ent elegant structure, in the same block, but facing St. Antoine Street, was formally opened. It was erected at a cost of $50,000, on land worth $ 5,000, and in I880 had accommodations for one hundred and thirty inmates. A free dispensatory is maintained in connection with the hospital. The old building, which is just back of the new one, is used for clinical purposes. The patients are mainly received on an order from.i:i the director of the poor, but others are frequently accommodated; applications for admission are made to Sister Mary Francis, who has charge of the hospital. The price of board and attendance is from $4.50 to $IO.OO per week. 5/f. AAndrew's Society. A society by this name was in existence in 1835, with A. D. Fraser as president. The present society, composed of Scotchmen and their descendants, was organized November 30, 1849, and incorporated July 2, 1877. Its annual meeting is on November 30, with regular meetings on the first Monday of each month. Its object is to relieve natives of Scotland, their children, or grandchildren. It has about one hundred members, each of whom pay $2.00 annually as dues. The chief officers of the organization have been: Presidents: 1850 and 1851, J. L. Lyell; 1852, E. ~G4~R. i! -* " II& --- ST. MITAR'S HOSPITAL. (New Building.) the entire width of the lot, was fifty-four feet deep, and cost $Io,ooo. It was first occupied on November 6, I85o, and had accommodations for one hundred and fifty patients. 654 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. Anderson; 1353, Duncan Stewart; 1854, Robert Linn; I855, William Adair; 1856, Hugh Moffat; 1857, William Barclay; i858, George McMillan; 1859, James S. Blair; I86o, Robert Linn; i86i, V. J. Scott; 1862, James Black; I863, V. J. Scott; I864, J. Stewart; I865, J. B. Wilson; I866, J. Forsyth; 1867-1870, Nicol Mitchell; 1870, A. McAdam; 1871, Jas. Anderson; 1872, T. McGregor; 1873, J. B. Wilson; 1874-1878, W. Adair; 1878-I880, J. McGregor; I880-I832, John B Wilson; 1882-1884, J. C. Cobb; 1884, Wm. Adair; I885-, George Hendrie. Treasurers: 1850-1852, Geo. Kennedy; 1852, R. McDonald; 1853-1868, E. Anderson; 1868-1874, R. Hosie; 1874, Thomas Linn; I875 -1877, John McGregor; I877-, William Lockhart. Secretaries: 1850-185r, James Black; 1852, James Cameron; 1853, William Barclay; 1854, John Wilson; 1855, George Hutton; 1856-1859, Alexander Reekie; 1859-1861, Peter Young; I86I1863, A. McLean; 1863-1865, Robert HIosie; 1865, William Buchan; I866, Alexander MacAdam; 1867-1871, George T. Gray; 1871, D. T. Corrie; 1872, William Gillis; 1873-1876, George T. Gray; I876, Andrew Smith; 1877, R. Laidlaw; 1878-1880, John Pettie; 1880-1883, Thomas T. McMillan; I883, Robert Lisk; I884-, R. Fleming. Working men's Aid Society. This society owns what is known as Arbeiter Hall, on the northwest corner of Russell and Catharine Streets. It was organized September 24, 1851, and incorporated February 17, 1867. The hall was dedicated on May 17, I868. The lots and building cost $32,000. The annual meeting of the society is on the first Tuesday in January. It numbers about five hundred members, who pay an initiation fee of $ 5 and dues of $5.00 per year. Any able-bodied man of good character, between twenty-one and fifty years of age, is eligible to membership. The society pays its members $5.00 per week during actual sickness, and $425 to the family on the decease of a member, $300 of which comes from a State organization. In case the wife of a member dies, $Ioo is given him. Lafayette Benevolent and Mutual lAidt Society. The organization of this society dates from February 3, 1853. It was incorporated in September, 1857, re-incorporated in June, 1863, and again, by special Act, in January, 1868. Its annual meeting is held on the third Thursday in June. The Board of Directors, who have general management of the society, meet on the first and second Thursdays of each month. It has about one hundred members, who pay yearly dues of $3.00 each. The membership is confined to persons of French descent or affiliation, and others who speak the French language. Sick members are allowed $5.00 per week for not more than six months, on the occasion of any one illness; and $40 are granted towards funeral expenses in the event of decease. The society has a lot and a building on the north side of Gratiot Avenue, between Beaubien and St. Antoine Streets. It is worth about $S,ooD, and was purchased October 4, I865, for $3,500. The society spent $2,300 in refitting it, and took possession December 1, 1865. The presidents have been: 1853-1856, Daniel J. Campau; I856, Charles Domine and Francis X. Cicott; 1857, Edward N. Lacroix and Israel I. Beniteau; 1858, Pierre Desnoyers; I859, Thomas Campau; 1860, Israel I. Beniteau; I86I, Edward V. Cicotte; I862-I865, Edward N. Lacroix; I865 -1867, F. X. Demay; 1867, Chas. J Dossin; I868 -1871, Jean B. R. Gravier; 187I, Aug. Paulus; 1871 -1873, A. Gaudron; I873-I875, J. Goffinet; I875 -1877, P. J. 1). Van Dyke; 1877-1879, J. Belanger; 1879 —1883,J. L. Favre; 1883-1886, CM. Rousseau; 1886, J. L. Favre; 1887-, Peter Dupont. The Industrzal School. In response to a notice read in the several Protestant churches, about sixty ladies gathered at the First Congregational Church, on June 2, 1857, to consider the establishment of an organization for the special purpose of breaking up the begging from house to house by children. At this meeting it was resolved to form a society, and on June 16 it was fully organized. Its present scope is somewhat larger than was originally contemplated. Any gir-l under fourteen or boy under ten needing clothes and schooling is deemed a proper subject for it: benevolence. Its first rooms were in the upper stories of 26 Monroe Avenue; they were opened October 5, 1857, with sixteen scholars. Mrs. M. G. Tyler served as teacher and matron. Within a month, during which time the school had increased to seventy-nine scholars, the matron was compelled by illness to resign. Mrs. E. M. Sheldon succeeded her, and continued in charge until May I, 1858. The school was then moved to its present site on the northwest corner of Washington and Grand River Avenues In order to obtain funds for carrying out its work, cards, with the address and object of the school printed thereon, were sold, to be given to children who solicited alms. This plan was discontinued about 1870. Funds are now obtained from membership dues of $.00o per year, and frop various entertainments. Those given under the auspices of gentlemen prominent in the Ioard of Trade were particularly successful. Among the early supporters of the society, the name of John Hull deserves special mention. For a long period CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. 655 of time he gave all the meat needed for the daily meals of the pupils, amounting to hundreds of pounds. Since his death, Thomas Barlum has followed in his footsteps and, year after year, gives large quantities of meat. In I866 the society purchased for $6,000 the lot and building they were occupying, and in January, I868, they became a corporate body. On June I, I879, the old building was put into the hands of workmen to be demolished, and the school was kept at No. 13 Grand River Avenue until the present tasteful structure was completed. It stands on the old site, cost $12,000, and was dedicated on December 9, 1879. C. I. Walker and Rev. Z. Eddy made appropriate addresses on the occasion. In 188o the building and lot were estimated to be worth $20,000. The building can accommodate two hundred children. The average attendlance is fifty in sulmmer and one hundred in winter. The society is managed by representatives selected from various Protestant churches. Its annual meeting is on the second MIonday of January, and regular meetings are held on the first Monday of each Imonth. A teacher and a matron are constantly emlloyed. The annual cash expenses of the institution are about $1,500. One practical work as occasion offers. The girls are taught to prepare vegetables, to wash, scrub, and clean, to set the table and serve as waiters, and from 3 to 6 p. M. every day they are taught to sew by ladies who visit the school for that purpose. ()I.) INDUSTRIAI. SCHOOL BUILDING. Since November, 1866, a Sunday school has been held in the building, which most of the children attend. The chief officers have been: first directress, 1857-1864, Mrs. H. H. Brown; I864-1868, Mrs. W. A. Butler. Presidents: i868, Mrs. W. A. Butler; I869, Mrs. G. V. N. Lothrop; 1870-I872, Mrs. Cleaveland Hunt; 1872 -I874, Mrs. Colin Campbell; 1874-1877, Mrs. W. G. Henry; 1877-1884, Mrs. C. Van Husan; 1884, Mrs. E. H. Butler; 1885-1887, Mrs. J. Black 1887-, Mrs. W. W. Leggett. Retj cording secretaries: 1857-1862, Mrs. D. B. DIuffield; 1862-1866, Mrs. L. Allen; I866 -1870, Mrs. C. Hunt; 1870, Mrs. M. H. Webster; 1871-, Mrs. J. Harvey. Treasurers: 1857-I859, Mrs. A. H. Dey; I859-I866, Mrs. S. E. Noyes; 1867-1870, Mrs. C. Campbell; 1870-, Mrs. G. N. Fletcher. St. Josejph's Retreat (for'merly Milchitran Retreatfor the Insane. ) The grounds formerly occupied by this institution were originally used by the Sisters of Charity for farm purposes, and convalescents from St. Mary's Hospital were sent there to recuperate. Sister Mary De Sales had charge, and under her direction, on January 25, i86o, the Sisters opened the Insane Department in a large frame building on Michigan Avenue just beyond Twenty-fourth Street. In 1870 a brick building was erected at a cost of about $20,000. THE NEW INDUSTRIAL SCHOOL. daily meal is furnished regular scholars, and good lessons and attendance will procure reward tickets, payable in clothing. In this way nearly two suits a year are provided for the children. Boys are taught to split wood, sew on buttons, and do other 656 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. It accommodated ninety patients, and was usually nearly full. It received its funds from friends of the patients, who paid for their care. The grounds embraced twenty-one acres, and the entire property was owned by the Sisters in charge. It was incorporated December 27, 1870, and reincorporated on November 30, 1883, by the name of St. Joseph's Retreat. The property at the same time was conveyed to the following trustees: Sarah Tyler, Mary Reed, Lydia Miller, Elizabeth Sweeney, and Mar In order to aid the enterprise, a number of ladies from the several parishes gave a dinner in Hubbard's Grove, on July 4, 1865, which netted about $600. The sale of the property on Lafayette Avenue necessitated a removal, and on April 3, I866, the society was reorganized, and the following month took possession of one of the buildings of the Harper Hospital on Woodward Avenue, and remained there until their own building was completed. It is located on the south side of Fort Street West, just beyond Clark Avenue. The society, on September 13, 1865, purchased a strip of land about two hundred and fifty feet wide, extending to the river, a distance of one thousand seven hundred feet, for '$8,400. They subsequently exchanged the river front for a strip adjoining on Fort Street, and in 1880 Robert P. Toms gave them an additional piece of land which cost him $I,500. They now have five hundred and fifty feet on Fort Street by about nine hundred feet deep, or nearly nine acres. Their building was erected in 1868 at a cost of $22,500; the corner-stone was laid on August 21 of that year. With the grounds, the property is worth $50,ooo. In 188o they had other property, worth an additional $50,ooo. Among the gifts that largely Increased their possessions, that of Henry L. Walker was one of the largest. His will, which was probated January 29, I874, gave to the hospital $10,000 of Second National Bank Stock, $7,000 in mortgages, and a house and lot worth $5,000 on Howard Street. The bequest was subject to an annuity of $300, to be paid to his invalid sister. She consented to remove to the hospital, where she was handsomely cared for during the three years she lived. His housekeeper, by the terms of the will, FORMER ST. JOSFEPH's RETREAT FOR THE INSANE. garet C. Mullen. Ne\v trustees are elected yearly on the first 'uesday of March. The property occupied in Detroit became very valuable, and it was decided to sell and remove to Dearborn. Accordingly grounds were procured at that place and a building costing $1 50,000 erected. It was first opened October 28, 1886, and will accommodate 175 persons, and has an average of 125 inmates KS'. Luke's Hospizal, Chwurch HIome and Orphanage. This institution was incorporated March 16, 1861, and again on March 3I, I866. The annual meeting is on the first Tuesday after Easter, and regular meetings of the Executive Committee are held the first Monday in each month. The society had its origin in a bequest of $1,5oo made by Mrs. Caniff, which at the death of her husband was to revert to St. Paul's Church as the nucleus for a hospital to be called St. Luke's. The further sum of $900, the use of which she left to three nephews during their life, was eventually to revert to the hospital. These bequests stimulated the organization of the institution, but no funds were realized therefrom until 1878, when the sum of $2,100 was obtained. The hospital was opened in a building on the south side of Lafayette Avenue, between Griswold and Shelby Streets, the use of which was donated by Mrs. H. R. Andrews, by lease dated April 29, 1864. About $600 were spent in repairs, and on July i8, 1864, the hospital was opened for patients. ST. ItKE;'s HOSI'ITA., CItlUR-H HOME AND ORPHANAGE. has the use of the Howard Street House and $300 per year. In addition to the above, Frank Nevin made a bequest of $1,500. CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. 657 In order to provide greater security for the trust, those who held the property conveyed it on April 23, 188I, to the following nine trustees, who were elected for life; H. P. Baldwin, T. H. Eaton, C. C. Trowbridge, E. Lyon, R. P. Toms, T. Ferguson, Robert McMillan, F. E. Driggs, and S. D. Miller. After the death of Mr. Trowbridge and Mr. Toms, George H. Minchener and H. C. Parke were elected to the vacant trusteeships. At the time the property was conveyed to trustees, the scope of the institution was enlarged to include the care of orphan children. Although managed exclusively by members of the Protestant Episcopal Church, and intended primarily as a home and hospital for the aged, sick, and poor of this denomination, persons of all denominations may be admitted. Some are admitted free, and the charge for other patients, including medical attendance, ranges up to $7.00 per week. There is an average of thirty-five inmates, and from fifty to seventy-five can be accommodated. The annual expenses are about $6,ooo; very many articles, however, are donated. The institution is maintained by collections in the several parishes, by membership fees of $2.00 a year, by voluntary donations, and the sums paid by inmates. The chief officers have been as follows: presidents: I86 - 1866, Bishop S. A. McCoskry; I866-1873, Henry P. Baldwin; I873, George S. Swift; 1874-1877, William E. Warriner; I877-1882, F. E. Iriggs; 1882, C. C. Trowbridge; I883 -T.I. Eaton. Recording secretaries: I861-1864, 13. Vernor; I864-I866, A. A. Rabineau; 1866-1871, Sidney D. Miller; 1871-1873, C. L. Atterbury; 1873 -1882, Preston Brady; 1882-, George H. Minchener. Treasurers: I86 -I864, W. Parker; I864 -i866, M. W. Field; I866-I873, A. A. Rabineau; I873, S. D. Miller; 1874-, H. I'. Baldwin, 2d. The Detroit Ladies' Society for the Suipport of Hebrew VWidoli s and Orphanzs zi the State of Jizchzigan. This society was organized in July, i863, and incorporated March 21, 1865. The annual election is held on the second Sunday in October. Its aim is to help needy Israelite widows and orphans. It has about eighty members, who pay quarterly dues of $I.OO each. The society has no building, but provides for the care of its beneficiaries wherever it deems best. The chief officers have been: Presidents: 1864, Mrs. E. S. Heineman; 1865-1869, Mrs. F. Hirschman; 1869-I872, Mrs. S. Schloss; I872-I883, Mrs. E. S. Heineman; 1883, Mrs. H. Frank; I884 -Mrs. E. S. Heineman. Secretaries: 1864-1866, Mrs I. Frankel; i866-I868, Mrs.S. L. Knoll; 1868, Mrs. S. Cohe; I869, Mrs. E. Eppstein; 1870-1872, Mrs. H. Hill; 1872-1874, Mrs. E. M. Gerechter; i874-I879, Mrs. I. Frankel; 1879, Mrs. E. Kallman; 1880 —882, Mrs R. Karpeles; 1882, Mrs. L. Sloman; 1883-, Mrs. H. A. Krolik. Treasurers: 1864-1866, Mrs. M. Trounstine; 1 866-1869, Mrs. B. Prell: I869-I872, Mrs. E. S. Heineman; 1872-r875, Mrs. S. Schloss; I876-, Mrs. A. Landsberg. Harper Hospital. This institution represents one of the largest donations ever made to any object in Detroit; and it is not greatly to the credit of other and more wealthy citizens that one who made most of his riches elsewhere should have given most of the means for the establishment of this magnificent charity. Walter Harper did not hold to his wealth as long as life lasted, but became his own executor, and lived to see his gift of a hospital in active operation. He accumulated his property in Philadelphia; came to Detroit about I832, and lived here an almost unknown citizen for more than a quarter of a century preceding the execution of his deed of trust of February 4, 1859. This deed conveyed nearly one thousand acres of land, most of it within a few miles of Ietroit, and also three dwellings in Philadelphia, to a Board of Trustees, for the purpose of establishing the hospital which bears his name. The property was then estimated to be worth about $30,000. The only condition that he made, as to himself, was that he be paid during life an annuity of $2,000, one half of which was to be devoted yearly to the discharge of a mortgage of $8,500 on the property until it was paid. On March 2, 1864, he voluntarily reduced the amount of the annuky he was personally to receive to $600 per year. The deed of trust provided for the establishment, in the discretion of the trustees, not only of a hospital, but of a school, to be organized and conducted according to the system of Emanuel de Fellenberg, as exemplified by institutions at Hofroyl, in Switzerland, and also in Prussia, the special object being to afford poor but deserving youths opportunities of learning the ordinary arts and trades without a long and unsatisfactory apprenticeship. At almost the first meeting of the trustees, on March I5. I859, they received a further accession of property in trust. Mrs. Ann Martin, more familiarly known as Nancy Martin, deeded for the benefit of the hospital a five-acre lot in Detroit and fifteen acres of land in the Ten Thousand Acre Tract near the city, the property thus given being then valued at $15,ooo. By the terms of the gift the hospital was to be located on the five-acre lot and was to maintain a lying-in department; Mrs. Martin was to have a small house built for her use and to receive an annuity of $600. On July i, 1864, she 658 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. i. gave an additional three acres, which was only partly paid for, to the hospital, subject to a few life privileges. In accordance with the terms of the gifts, a house which cost only $450 was built on the five-acre lot for the occupancy of Mr. Harper and Mrs. Martin. The house was subsequently moved to Fremont Street, at a cost of $2I4, and here both lived until the death of Mr. Harper, on August 28, 1867, after which Mrs. Martin made the hospital her home. The gift of Mr. Harper was a surprise to the public, and a greater wonder still was that from Nancy Martin, whom the older citizens remembered as a coarse, rough-spoken woman, who for many years had kept a vegetable-stall in the old market, and lived with Mr. Harper as his housekeeper. About two years after her first gift, she relinquished the market business; and her spirit and manner became Farrand, David Cooper, Frederick BuLhl, Buckminster Wight, A. C. McGraw, and G. I). Russel. They organized on February 7, 1859, by electing Rev. G. Duffield, D. D., president; David Cooper. treasurer, and D. B. Duffield, secretary. After the death of I)r. Duffield, Buckminster Wight, on July 7, I868, succeeded him as president; and on his decease, F. Buhl was chosen president. R. W. King took the place of Ir. Duffield as a trustee, and on December 6, I868, became secretary of the board; D. M. Ferry took the place of B. Wight. On the death of David Cooper, his son, D. M. Cooper, succeeded him as trustee,'and on January 12, 1880, succeeded Mr. King as secretary. The annual meeting is on the second Monday of January. During the progress of the war with the South, on June 13, 1864, and I)ecember 15, I865, the trus HALMxai' HosPIrT~AL. (Original Buildings.) much more mild and womanly than before. She died on February 9, 1875. Her portrait and that of Mr. Harper adorn the reception room of the hospital as the honored founders of one of the most extensive charities in the city. Under Act of March 20, I863, the hospital was incorporated on May 4 following. It is managed by a board of seven trustees. The first board were named in the articles of incorporation, and unless incapacitated were to serve during life, and were authorized to receive a reasonable compensation for such care and attention as they gave to the trust. Vacancies in the board can be filled only on nominations made by the first Protestant (Presbyterian) Society, which submits, from time to time, as a vacancy occurs, the names of three persons to the board, and they decide which of them may serve as trustee. The first trustees were George Duffield, Jacob S. tees purchased, for $10o,587.50, five acres adjoining the lot they already possessed on Woodward Avenue; and the entire tract of ten acres was offered to the Government, rent free, as a site for a military hospital, provided it would put up suitable buildings. The offer was accepted, and eleven buildings were erected and furnished at a cost of $60,o00. On October 12, I864, the hospital was ready for use, and hundreds of sick and wounded soldiers were brought here to be nursed. At the close of the war, on December 12, I865, the buildings were turned over to the society on the condition that they would receive and care for discharged, invalid soldiers from Michigan. On December 28 following, the Michigan Branch of the United States Sanitary Commission agreed to pay the hospital $2,ooo and such other amounts as their funds would admit on condition that the hospital receive and care for the soldiers then in the Soldiers' Home in the old Ar CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. 659.......... _ - senal Building on corner of Jefferson Avenue and Wayne Street; and on the following day twenty soldiers were removed from the home to the hospital. In 1883 about a dozen Michigan soldiers were cared for at the hospital, at the expense of the State. The hospital was opened for ordinary patients in January, i866, and up to I883 had an average of about fifty inmates with accommodations for one hundred. The price of board, including medical attendance, ranges from $3.50 to $7.00 per week. The hospital admits for treatment those of all nationalities and religions, and the physicians treat all diseases not contagious. Any person, church, society, or association contributing to the treasury of the hospital one thousand dollars or less is entitled to have constantly one patient free of charge in care of the hospital, at the rate of one month in each year for every one hundred dollars contributed; of a sum less than one hundred dollars are entitled to proportionate privileges. Annual subscribers of one hundred dol-l lars are entitled to have a patien t on the books, TaHE of the subscripn and in the care of the hospital, for eight months of the year for which the su bscription is made. Subscriptions of seventy-five dollars a year secure a similar privi lege for six months, those of fifty dollars for four months, and those of twenty-five dollars for two mronths. Annual subscribers of any lesser sum are entitled to have a patient on the books for a time equal to double the amount of the subscription at the established rates for pay patients. Any mersoo, church, or association ppaing by successive annual subscriptions a total sumi of one thousand dollars may claim the privilege (f the provision above mentioned. On D)ecember 3, I867, a dispensary for the poor was opened, and on the 7th of January following rules for its mnianagement were adopted. It was to be open from IO A. M. to 12 M. On February I, I869, it was transferred to the Medical College established in one of the buildings. An unexpected and liberal bequest was made to the hospital by the will of James Thompson, of Almont, who died in I88o. He lived alone, and being without relatives, asked a friend, some years before his death, what he would recommend him to do with his means; this friend advised with him and called the attention of R. W. King to the request. Mr. King then wrote to Mr. Thompson, setting forth the objects and opportunities of Harper Hospital, but received no reply to his letter, and the matter had almost passed from his mind. The "bread cast on the waters" was, however, not wasted, for in his will Mr. Thompson made the trustees of the hospital his residuary legatee, and they derived from his estate the sum of $11,225. The assets of the hospital in i88i were estimated at $150,000. In I882 a portion of the property fronting on Woodward Avenue was sold for the sum of $71,566. - Contracts were then let for a new brick building, in the rear of the old grounds fronting on John R. Street. Itwas and finished durforaltal ing 1884, the Iodate two~ hdredtotal cost footing up about $II5,ooo. The patients were removed from the old building to the new strucr.. (New Building.) ture on April 12, and the hospital formoally opened on June 19, I884. It will accommodate t\ ()hlundired and fifty patients. I 'I'A jIorle df the zc Findless. The origin of this institution dates from May, i86o, when the Iadies' Christian Union was organized. Their first annual report was made on July 8, 1861. Soon after the society was organized, Mrs. I-I. R. Andrews gave the use of a house on Lafayette Avenue, between Griswold and Shelby Streets, and here, in the summer of 186o, she superintended a home for women who wished to reform. In December of the same year, largely through the efforts of Mrs. S. L. IPapineau, the home was fully established. On Tuesday, February 26, 1862, it was moved to No. 72, on the east side of Brush Street, between Congress and Lamed Streets. Here the society continued until May 23, 1863, when they removed to the north side of High Street, between Woodward Avenue and John R. Street. Their present capacious and attractive home, on 660 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. the south side of Varren Avenue near Woodward Avenue, was dedicated October 21, I874. The grounds cover eight lots, each thirty by one hundred and fifty feet, and were purchased in I868 for $3,600. The building was erected at a cost of $30,500. In 1882 there was a debt on the property of $3,500, which was secured by a mortgage given to the Thompson Home for Old Ladies, and. that organization also held three of the lots originally purchased by the Home of the Friendless; during 1883 the mortgage was paid, the lots repurchased, and the organization now controls all of the property they originally purchased. of the committee are changed every two months. In the year I866 the society commenced taking as boarders the children of widows and persons in service. In I875 the boarding at low rates of single women needing a temporary home was also made a part of their work. The president's statement of the work of thi society in I88I is as follows: 'he work of the Home of the Friendless is to care for friendless and homeless women and children. We average per day three such women, and twenty children, for whom and from whom we never receive a penny of compensation. Secondly, we board at a sum that is almost nominal, children who have one or more parents out at service. Also the childreni of parents where either the mother or father are confined in jails or the House of Correction. Much has been done for suchl i:.i. their unhappy parents. Thirdly, we board waif and stray old ladies who are depetndent upon relatives better able to pay for than to give the care tilt need. Fourthly, we have a standing contract with the lady managces of the Thompson Home to furnish their Home with light, licit, and water; to supply their table with food, and do their laundry work, for a specified sumi per capita ($2.50 per we-ek). The association was incorporated on January 6, I863. Its annual meeting is on the first Tuesday in MIay. The Board of Managers was originally composed of twenty-five members, but in 1879 thc number was increased to thirty, representing all denominations except the Catholic. In former years the society elected as vice-presidents twenty (ir thirty ladies, resident in different parts of the State. and through them received many donations; but ot late the practice has fallen into disuse. The home is now supported by subscriptions of $I.oo a year from all who wish to enroll themselves as members; by voluntary donations of money, food, and clothing, and by an annual donation reception. Among its most generous contributors are many of the proprietors of the meat and vegetable stalls at the Central Market, who, since I862, have filled tlic "Home basket" every \Vednesday and Saturday when brougiht by boys from the home. The annual expense of maintaining the home is about $4,500. This amount, however, does not include the value (,f articles donated. One of the most efficient means of making thte home known to the public, "The Home Messenger." was first issued on Iecember i, i168, as a montlily paper. It was temporarily discontinued in l)ecember, 1879, but was revived as a quarterly in March, 1882. The society derived some $2,200 revenlue frorf the sale of two editions of the "Home Messenger Cook Book," first published in I873. It was compiled by Mrs. Rev. George Duffield and her daughter, Mrs. Morse Stewart, and is regarded with great favor by those who have used it. The average number of inmates in the home is sixty-five, and there are accommodations for eighty. THE HOME OF TJlE FRIENDLESS. In 1881 the Home of the Friendless received a bequest of $ro,ooo from Mrs. Fanny I)avenport Waterman, and in 1883 the corporation became the residuary legatee of Mrs. Sarah Prentiss, of Romeo, and received from her estate the sum of $8,430. Originally the society was somewhat broader in its aim than now, undertaking the care of any woman who wished to return to a virtuous life. Now the home is maintained rather as a preventive of vice than as a reformatory institution, and therefore "common drunkards, prostitutes, children of depraved habits, persons bearing the taint of disease or insanity, or who are subject to fits; and also profane or hopelessly idle persons, or those guilty of any flagrant vice, are not received." The change in purpose and in name was made about the time the institution was moved to High Street. In order to facilitate the work and to prevent the application at the home of improper cases, all persons seeking admission must apply to some one of a reference committee of seven ladies, selected from different parts of the city so as to be easy of access. Such persons as they recommend are admitted as transient boarders free of charge. Two members CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. 661 General visitors are always welcome, and Thursday is especially set apart for the friends of inmates. Since 1875 a teacher for the children has been constantly employed. The principal officers have been: presidents: I860-1862, Mrs. M. H. Webster; 1862 -i865, Mrs. Seth Reed; 1865 —I867, Mrs. William A. Howard; I867-1870, Mrs. I)avid Preston: 1870 -1875, Mrs. Morse Stewart; 1875, Mrs. WX. I. Johnson; 1876-, Mrs. Morse Stewart. Treasurers: I860-I867, Mrs. \V. A. Howard; 1867-, Mrs. David Carter. Recording Secretaries: I86o-1864, Mrs. I. M. Gilman; 1864-1866, Mrs. Morse Stewart; I866, Mrs. John H. Griffith; 1867-1870, Mrs. William Oakes; I870-1883, Mrs. D. W. Brooks; 1883-, Mrs. W. C. Duncan. Mlrs. 1). l'reston and I'rs. Morse Stewart were elected special trustees in 1863, and were in office in 1888. Sf. Anthony's /afle Orp(han A.syl/um. This institution, a Roman Catholic asylum, for boys only, is located on the north side of the Gratiot Road, just outside of the city limits, and about four miles from the City IHall, on the so-called Church Farm. The grounds embrace ninety-six acres. The building was opened on May 26, 1867. The entire property is worth $5o,ooo. The land was deeded by Bishop Lefevere to a board of twelve trustees, consisting of two each from the following churches: Cathedral of St. Peter and St. Paul, St. Ann's, Holy Trinity. St. I'atrick's, St. Vincent de Paul, and Our Lady of Help. The trustees became a corporate body on January 23, I867, \Vhile managed by the corporation, the asylum was conducted by four Sisters of the order of the Immaculate Heart of Mary, from Monroe. By arrangement with the Lady Superior, they received $1oo a year each and board. Under the management of the trustees, annual collections were taken up in the six churches represented in the board, and they alone could send orphans to the asylum. Subscriptions were also obtained from individuals, and some moneys were received from the sale of farm produce. This arrangement did not prove a success, and on January 16, I877, the corporation was dissolved and the property deeded to Bishop Borgess, by whom the institution was placed in the care of lay members of the Franciscan order, and collections in the parishes then became voluntary. The average number of orphans in the asylum is about eighty. After the boys reach the age of thirteen they are either bound out or other homes are provided. The officers of the corporation were: l'resi dents: 1868-1871, M.B. Kean; 1871-1874, '. J. ). VanD Ivke; 1874-1877, Jeremiah Calnon. Secre taries: 1867, Edward Brennan; 868-1870, P. J.I). VanDyke; 1870-I875, W. B. Moran; 1875, George H. Slater; 1876, 1'. J. I). Van 1)yke; I867-I873, William IBuchanan; 1873, A. Chapoton; I874-I877, H. F. Brownson. [IVolnenl's Josfi'ial alnd lFoztndlins' tIomne. It is a noteworthy fact that this institution, as well as the Home of the Friendless, grew out of organizations called Ladies' Christian Unions, one of which was established in 186o, and the other in I868. These Unions were originally designed for rather different work than that afterwards pursued, but both soon found their appropriate sphere in the noble charities they now carry forward. The Ladies' Christian Union, auxiliary to the City Mission Board, was organized at the Congregational Church on January 29, 1868. The society held several meetings without agreeing definitely on a particular line of work, but finally, on October 19, a proposition was made to establish a Women's Hospital and Foundlings' Home. The plan met with favor, and on October 28 a society was organized. The buildingl No. 40 Cass Avenue \as rented, and on November I I Miss Eleanor E. Howe, M. D., \as placed in charge. The incorporation of the society took place on June 5, I869, and on November 2 of the same year the City Mission Board transferred its property to this organization. This was sold and the proceeds used in the purchase of a house and lot No. 499 Beaubien Street, costing $2,ooo. A very successful fair, in the fall of 1870, enabled them to complete the payment in full. In April, 1872, they sold the property and purchased five lots on Putnam Avenue, removing temporarily to one of the Harper Hospital buildings. In July following they sold the Putnam Avenue lots and bought a property on the west side of Thirteenth between Linden and Mulberry Streets. The lots cost $3,000. Here their home was erected at a cost of $I4,000, and formally opened on January 20, 1876. The institution is designed to accommodate foundlings and women about to become mothers. Most of the patients are unmarried, and more than two thirds are from other States or from Canada. All applications for admission are passed upon by an advisory committee, but no foundlings are sent away. The admission fee for patients is $20, and is reckoned as payment for board at the rate of from $3.00 to $1o.oo per week, according to size and location of room. While these are the terms, residents of the State are never refused admission for want of means, but received without regard to creed, color, or nationality. The price of board for infants is from $I.oo to $3.00 per week. The so 662 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES ANI) INSTITUTIONS. ciety hope eventually to provide a home for sick poor, whether women or children. The hospital can accommodate forty women and eighty children, and a yearly average of one hundred women and one hundred and twenty-five children are cared for. It is supported by membership dues, THE WOMAN'S HOSPITAL AND FOUNDLING'S HOME. sub:;criitionls, donations, entertainments, and fees. The annual expenses, aside from the articles contributed, are about $2,500. Since April, 1877, religious services have been held every Sabbath by Mrs. J. E. Foster, librarian of the Young Men's Christian Associatiol; and her ministrations, rendered not only at the Home, but afterwards, have proved a blessing to many unfortunate women. One of the most unique features of this charity has been its Baby Receptions. The first of these was held June IO, I874, when twenty-six little ones, dressed in their best and decorated with ribbons, received their friends. Attached to the breast of each child was a card bearing its name and age. It was a pretty sight, and one that appealed so strongly to compassionate hearts, that at the second reception, in the following December, only one of the twenty-six remained. The annual meeting is on the first Tuesday in January. The board is composed of two ladies from each of the Protestant churches. The property is held by eleven trustees. The chief officers have been: Presidents: I868, Mrs. R. Hawley; I869-1871, Mrs. L. L. Page; I87I-I876, Mrs. R. Hawley; I876-1878, Mrs. J. F. Joy; I878-1881, Mrs. J. J. Bagley; I88I-, Mrs. J. F. Joy. Recording secretaries: I868-I871, Mrs. G. M. Lane; 1871, Mrs. M. J. E. Millar; I872-I874, Mrs. F. B. Terry; 1874-1878, Mrs. G. M. Lane; I878 - I88i, Mrs. Richard Macauley; I88I-, Mrs. J. S. Conklin. Treasurers: I868, Mrs. Z. R. Brockway; 1869, Mrs. H. R. Andrews; 1870-1873. Mrs. H. Glover; 1873, Mrs. W. H. Bronson; I874-I876, Mrs. J. P. Gilmore; 1876, Mrs. G. N. Fletcher; 1877 -1885, Mrs. A. W. Rice; 1885-, Mrs. C. E. Fox. House of Providence. This home for destitute and abandoned children, and lying-in hospital for unfortunate and destitute females, is conducted by the Sisters of Charity, with Sister Mary Stella in charge. It was organized in 1869, and incorporated in I872. It cares for children until they are six years of age, after which time they are given for adoption or transferred to an orphan asylum. It has in its care a yearly average of one hundred and ten children and seventy women. 'he home, opened in August, 1869, was originally situated on Fourteenth Avenue, between Dalzelle and Marantette Streets. On March 24, 1876, it was moved to the Old Beaubien homestead, on the northwest corner of St. Antoine and Elizabeth Streets. The house is maintained by sums paid for board and by voluntary donations. The cost of maintenance, including probable value of contributions of food, is about $4,00ooo per year. The property is worth $20,000. The Eva{ngelical Lutheran Orphan Aizd Society. Although not located in the city, this institution is practically one of the charities of Detroit. Rev. G. Speckhard was the founder and first teacher of the society, which was organized March IO, 1873, HOIUSE OF PROVIDENCE. and incorporated on April 5 following. It was originally located at Royal Oak, where the society procured twenty-three acres of land. Subsequently it was removed to Norris, where it makes use of twenty acres of land donated by Colonel Norris. The building cost $13,500, and was dedicated July CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. 663 25, 1875. The annual meeting is held on the second Thursday in March. Any member of Trinity or St. Iaul's Lutheran churches may be a member of this society. Its particular object is to educate orphans and deaf mutes. The actually destitute are admitted free; others pay not more than $120 each per year. Sixty children can be accommodated, and the average attendance is thirty-three. The total yearly expenses are about $3,ooo. Contributions for its support are taken up in the churches. Rev. J. A. Huegli, the first president, served until March T4, I878, when he was succeeded by Rev. C. H. Rohe. In 1883 Rev. J. A. I-Iuegli was again serving. C. H. Beyer, the first secretary, still remains in office. aJ/(t/ia J'nCvolentc::: Soci. t: -:. This society was - I organized April 30, 1873, and incorporated July 21, I875. It holds regular meetings the second Monday of each month. The officers are elec-:?I. ted quarterly. It numbers about thirty members, who pay, T I yearly dclues of $6.oo00 -- each. Its special objects are to assist members in the case LITTLE SISTERS' HOm. I tion, embracing the entire block bounded by Scott, Hale, Orleans, and Dequindre Streets, was donated by Bishop Borgess, and in 1881 was estimated to be worth $5,ooo. The house was erected at a cost of $22,000oo, and occupied on October i, I876. An additional building, costing $24,000, was constructed, and opened on October 8, I882. Two hundred and fifty persons can now be accommodated. The funds for these 'structures were obtained from the Catholic bishop and clergy and from other benevolent individuals. The home is maintained without any regular revenue. The Little Sisters go about from day to day soliciting the — _I____________ means for its support. The poor of both sexes, and of any religious faith, if old and destitute, are re-.:=:~ ceived on the reconm- mendation of any of the Catholic clergy of the State. In I882 - there were one hundred and twenty inmates, sixty-five men and fifty-five women. The society was incorporated December 12, 1874. The property is vested in five trustees, members of '~ --- —~-~ —~-5-:a.~~. ~_..the order, who are elected at the annual FOR T HE AGED POOR. meeting on the second Monday in January, The home is conducted by a Mother Superior and eleven Sisters, who do their own work, keeping no servants. Sister Michael the Archangel, the first Superior and Superintendent, was succeeded by Sister Marie Claire. Visitors are admitted from I I A. M. to 5 P. A. on week days, and from I to 5 P. M. on Sundavs. The 7'homipson HomeZ for Old Ladies. This organization, up to the time of the completion of its own home, made use of part of the building owned by the Home of the Friendless Association on Warren Avenue. The institution owes its existence to the beneficence of Mrs. David Thompson, who in I874 contributed the sum of $io,ooo in cash as a fund for its establishment. This money was transferred to the Home of the Friendless for a mortgage of $3,500 and three lots on Warren Avenue; the loan was repaid and the lots redeemed in 1883. In December, 1882, Mrs. Thompson made a further donation, purchasing a E of sickness, provide for funerals in the event of death, and also to assist members in obtaining employment. Officers.-PIresidents: 1873, P. Palmieri; 1874 -1877, A. Dondero; I877, V. Forni; 1878, P. Palmieri; 1879, W. De Tomaso; I880, P. Poli; 1881, E. Bartley; 1882, A. Dondero; 1883, John Arcetti. Secretaries: 1873, A. Prussolino; 1874, P. Palmieri; 1875. G. Conti; 1876, P. Palmieri; I877-I879, P. P'oli; 1879-188I, P. Palmieri; I88I, J. Dondero; 1882, F. Pauli; 1883, G. Martello. Treasurers: 1873-1877, V. Forni; 1877, A. Dondero; I878 -1880. V. Forni; i880 and I881, A. Dondero; 1882, P. Pauli; 1883, A. Dondero. The Lizlle Sisterss' Home for the zAg ed Poor. The Sisters in charge of this home were invited here by Bishop Borgess in 1872. Their first home, the old Piquette House, on the northwest corner of Fort Street and Fourteenth Avenue, was opened May 20, 1874, with twenty inmates; the use of the house-was given by its owners. Their present loca 664 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. lot for the home on the southeast corner of Cass and Hancock Avenues; the lot is one hundred and twenty-six feet on Cass by one hundred and fiftyfour on Hancock Avenue, and cost $5,90o. On this property, during I884, she completed the erection of an elegant and substantial structure, sixty by ninety feet, containing forty rooms. The building has a tower eighty feet high and the entire cost reached fully $32,000, all provided by the generous donor. It was formally opened October 22, 1884, A society for the management of the home was incorporated on April Io, 1875. The annual meeting is on the second Tuesday in January. The object of the institution is to provide a home for aged women. In its original__ location it had = accommodations for only eleven persons, and many applications were unheeded for want of room. A Committee on Application is annually elected, and no person is received into the home as an inmate without rec o m me ndation from this committee, nor except on their order. No person is admitted who has not resided in Michigan during the managed by a board of thirty-two trustees, who, with the other officers, must in all cases be ladies belonging to or attending the Protestant churches of the city. The trustees elect the officers from their own number. The thirty-two trustees named in the articles of incorporation were divided into four classes of eight persons each, and one of these classes goes out of office every year. The annual expenses are about $1,500, and the home is supported by donations and interest on the admission fees. The officers have been: Presidents: 1875-I 877, M\rs. David Preston; I877-, Mrs. David Thompson. Secretaries: I875 -I882, Miss E. P. Kirby; 1882, Mrs. J.S. Newberry; 1883, Miss E. P. Kir-, \ iby; I884 -"'- / a | Mrs. J. S. Newcstberry TIreasadpe ' X 26 1 n~~5 i 88o, Mrs. John S. Newberry, 188o-, Mrs. -::_ ~ R. G. Evans. Th e Whorkfig The beginning of this organization dates from March 7, I877, at which time the first meeting in regard to it was held in the hall of the Young Men's Christian,N HOME. Association. Its constitution was adopted April 26, officers were elected May 4, and the society was incorporated December 3, i877. The annual meeting is on the first Monday in April. Twenty lady trustees, who must be members of Protestant churches, elect the officers and also the executive committee of five ladies, who meet weekly. The home was opened on May 28, i877, in a portion of the Haigh Block on Jefferson Avenue. It was afterwards moved to No. 41 Congress Street West; then, on June 6, i88i, to No. 78, north side of the same street, and on April 25, 1883, to No. 120 Cass Street. In 1887 they purchased the lot on the northeast corner of Adams Avenue and Clifford Street, at a cost of $io,ooo, and during I888 expect to complete a building of their own. It is designed to afford a safe and respectable boarding THE THOMPSC ten years preceding her application, unless by the unanimous vote of not less than sixteen of the managers present at a regular meeting. Persons under sixty years of age are not admitted either as boarders or pensioners, unless by a vote of two thirds of the whole number of managers. All candidates for admission must furnish satisfactory testimonials of the respectability of their character and the propriety of their conduct. Pending admission, each person is received on a probation of three months, after which time the Board of Managers acts definitely on the case, and if not confirmed as a permanent inmate, the admission fee, which is not less than $300, after deducting board at the rate of three dollars per week, is returned. The business of the corporation is controlled and CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTI UTIONS. 665 place for girls and women who are temporarily out of employment, and has an average of twenty-one boarders paying at the rate of $2.00 per week. Giris employed in stores and shops, whose homes are far from their places of business, find here a pleasant resting place and a good dinner for the small sum of fifteen cents. In connection with this work an intelligence office is maintained. which, from the first, has been wonderfully useful. Applicants for help pay fifty cents; those seeking places pay fees of twenty-five cents each, and these sums do much towards sustaining the institution. No recommendations are given or required other than such as ordinary good judgment would dictate. Iuring the year I886 over three hundred and fifty women were provided with steady employment, and a large number with occasional work. In addition to supplying help in the city, hundreds of giris have been rescued from temptation by being sent to various parts of the State, when thus sent out of the city, both their character and that of the place to which they go are carefully investigated. The annual expenses of the home are about $2,ooo, and it is the aim of the society to make it self-sustaining. The following officers have served: Presidents: 1877, Mrs. J. J. Bagley; 1878, Mrs. D. M. Richardson; 1879, Mrs. L. B. Austin; 1880, Mrs. J. B. Mulliken; I88I-1884, Mrs. W. F. Linn; 1884, Mrs. J. B. Mulliken; 1885, Mrs. W. F. Linn; I886 -Mrs. J. K. Burnham. Corresponding Secretaries; 1878, Mrs. M. J. E. Millar; I879, Mrs. L.B. Austin; I880, Mrs. W. F. Linn; I88I, Mrs. J. B. Mulliken; 1882-1884, Mrs. M. H. Marsh; I884, Mrs. H. Gardner; I885, Mrs. Belle W. Reynolds. Recording Secretaries: 1877, Mrs. J. N. Fuller; 1878, Mrs. S. Nay; 1879-I882, Miss A. M. Harrah; I882, Mrs. H. N. P. Blodgett; 1883, Mrs. H. A. Chaney; 1884-1886, Miss Emma Hayward; I886-, Mrs. Lou Burt. Treasurers: 1877, J. B. H. Bratshaw; 1878 and I879, G. W. Hoffman: i880, Mrs. Ira D. BUsh; I88i, Miss Gertrude Banks; 1882, Mrs, M. H. Marsh; 1883, Mrs. J. B. Bloss; I884-I886, Mrs. H. A. Chaney; I886 —, Mrs. A. C. Bacon. Zoar Asylum of Zzon German Reformed Church. This asylum was incorporated in 1880, and established in I88I, by the church above named. Its grounds consist of thirty lots in Springwells on Harvey Street, between the River Road and Fort Street. They cost $5,500; the building cost $2,336, and was opened April I, 1882. In January, I887, its inmates were thirty-six orphans and ten widows and six men. 43 The Detroit Day Nursery and Kindergarten Association. This society was organized and incorporated November 21, 188i, chiefly through the efforts of Mrs. E. C. Preston. The object' is to provide a place where children from infants up to six years old can be cared for and taught while their parents are at work, on payment of five cents a day for each child. Further amounts necessary to sustain the institution are obtained by membership fees of $2.00 per year and voluntary donations from those favoring this practical charity. Luther Beecher gave the society Lots 17 and 18 on the north side of Church Street, at head of Tenth, valued at about $2,500, and in 1882 a brick building costing $5,00o was erected thereon. It was formally opened on January 18, 1883. The first trustees were Mrs. Newell Avery, Mrs. Z. Eddy, Mrs. Jefferson Wiley, Mrs. D. M. Richardson, Mrs. D. V. Bell, Mrs. C. H. Buhl, Mrs. W. N. Hailmann, Mrs. H. E. Champion, Mrs. William Keavey, Mrs. M. H. Marsh, Mrs. E. C. Preston, and Mr. Hoyt Post. The first officers of the society were: President, Mrs. E. C. Preston; Vice-President, Mrs. George H. Hammond; Secretary, Mrs. W. E. Anthony; Treasurer, Mrs. H. E. Champion. In 1883, Mrs. S. W. Itsell became Secretary and Mrs. M. E. Gibbs Treasurer. Convent of the Good Shepherd. This institution was inaugurated on November 22, 1883, by five Sisters of the Order of the Good Shepherd, who arrived here from St. Louis on that day. In anticipation of their arrival the property known as the Ward residence at No. 792 Fort Street West, near Nineteenth Street, was purchased at a cost of $24,000. The object of the institution is to reclaim fallen women and to rescue those in danger of going astray. Grace Hospital. This institution, now in process of erection, is located on the northeast corner of Willis Avenue and John R. Street. The lot has a frontage of 370 feet on Willis Avente and of I61 feet on John R. Street, and is worth fully $30,000. It was given, in I869, by Amos Chaffee, an old and well-known citizen, as a site for a Homoeopathic Hospital, but at the time there seemed to be no one with sufficient time or ability to secure the utilization of the gift, and Mr. Chaffee was left to even pay the taxes on his munificent donation. During 1879 a society called The Ietroit Honmeopathic Association was incorporated, but no definite steps were taken to secure the gift or proceed with the work of securing 666 CI-ARITAIBLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. --—........... a hospital until August 22, I886, when, in course of a conversation upon the subject, James McMillan said to Dr. C. A. Walsh, "I wish you would have Mr. Lloyd prepare plans for a hospital building to cost $1oo,ooo, and I will pay for its erection." Soon afterwards, John S. Newberry engaged to give $ioo,ooo as an endowment to provide for the running expenses. After these gifts were made known, Mr. Chaffee very generously conveyed the title to the land, which had reverted to him. The only condition made to the gifts was that the hospital be maintained forever free to all needing its offices and unable to pay for its benefits. The building is intended to be a model structure, and when completed will be turned over to the care of the following trustees: James McMillan, H. R. Newberry, Don M. Dickinson, D. M. Ferry, Ransom Gillis, J. B. Mulliken, M. S. Smith and Dr. C. A. Walsh. l'etroit Emergency Hospitzal. This hospital, located at the junction of Michigan Avenue, Porter and Second Streets, is a thoroughly practical humane institution. The building cost about $30,000oo, and was opened March i, 1888. The design is to treat immediately all cases of accident or sudden ailment, and the services rendered are entirely free. Its ambulance is the most conmplete of any in the city, and is fitted with a variety of appliances for the benefit of patients, to be used if needed while the patients are being conveyed to the hospital or their homes. A free dispensary is also maintained. It is under the management of the Michigan College of Medicine and Surgery. Detroit Association of Chlarities. The list of charitable institutions may well be concluded with this society, which co-operates with and seeks to make more effective the work of all the others. In 1883 fifty-two different churches and charities availed themselves of its knowledge and its methods. The special object of the association is to prevent imposition, repress street begging, and to better the condition of the honest and deserving poor. It seeks to assist charitable societies and the public generally to direct their benevolence into channels where it will do good rather than harm. To this end the association investigates the cases of all applicants for relief who may appeal to citizens, church societies, charitable institutions, or city officers. The city is divided into convenient districts for investigation, with an office and committee for each district, and a central office at o1 Merrill Block. The association undertakes to furnish suitable employment to those in need of work, and gives orders for meals and lodgings, which are good only when endorsed by the police officer in charge of the central station. Professional beggars and those unworthy of aid are thus detected, as all applicants are brought under the eye of this one officer. By the efforts of the association, a law providing for the punishment of those who purposely neglect to provide for their families, was passed, and its influence has been salutary in many cases. The expenses for 1883 were $2,067, obtained chiefly from subscriptions. In 1883, 2,236 cases were brought to the notice of the association; work was obtained for 1,209 persons, and the needs of all looked after. The society was first established in 1878, largely through the efforts of Mrs. Morse Stewart. It was reorganized on April 22, 1880. The presidents have been: 1878-1880, George C. Langdon; 188o-188I, L. L. Barbour; 1882, C. C. Trowbridge; 1883-1886. G. V. N. Lothrop; 1887-, IH. K. Clarke. The secretaries have been: I878-1880, W. H. Smith; 1880-1883, John Stirling; 1883-1886, R. R. Elliott; i886-, J. A. Post. The total value of the property of the various private charitable and philanthropic institutions reaches fully $650,000, and the total yearly expenses foot up about $35,000, nearly I,ooo persons being cared for. Ilrs. Ml'orse Sfewart. The history of the charities of Detroit may be appropriately concluded with a brief sketch of the life of Mrs. Isabella Graham Duffield Stewart, only daughter of Rev. George Duffield, D. D., and Isabella Graham Bethune Duffield. Mrs. Stewart was notably prominent in the founding of several of the most succssful of the city charities, and greatly influential in a variety of philanthropic enterprises. Her father, for thirty years the pastor of t'ic First Presbyterian Church in Detroit, was noted as a preacher, a man of deep and varied learning. and a liberal contributor to the religious literature of his day. He was especially interested in the educational development of his adopted State, above all in the Michigan University, of whose Board of Regents he was for many years an active and useful member. Mrs. Stewart was born in Carlisle, Cumberland County, Pennsylvania, February I 1, 1830. She was a woman of marked individuality of character, and many of her moral and mental traits may be traced to her ancestry upon both sides, which for generations included many names of high standing in church and state. The Duffields were originally of Huguenot origin, which is equivalent to saying that its members were earnest r~~~~ ~ ---- Ci ARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUT (ONS. 667 in the cause of civil and religious liberty. Mrs. Stewart's paternal grandfather was chaplain to the first American Congress, and because of his staunch loyalty to the Union cause, was known as i the tighting parson." Upon her mother's side she was the grand-daughter of Divie Bethune, a leading merchant in the city of New York in the early part of this century. His intellectual ability, skill, and energy gave him a prominent place among the business men of his time, and though he died in the prime of life, he left a halndsome estate to his famlily. Mrs. Stewart's great-grandmlother was the Isabella Graham, so well known for her benevolent and charitable work, and elevated religious character. She is enshrined in the memory of many now living as a type of that rare union of faith and works which designates the true follower of Christ, and is especially remembered as the founder of the first orphan asylum in the United States. In the philanthropy of!sabella Graham, in the ardor and energy of " the lighting parson," in the religious zeal and mental ab)ility of her father, we can easily trace the same qualities which were so noticeably prominent in the life of Mrs. Stewart. She was accustomed to speak of her pious ancestry as her "glorious heritage," and her life made it evident that other things besides money are transmitted to a child, that the mysterious and infinitely more important inheritance called character, those tendencies for good or evil which influence future generations long after we are forgotten, are even more surely transmitted. In the winter of 1838-9, when nine years of age, Mrs. Stewart came to Detroit, and this city was her home ever after. She was married on April 6, 1852, to Dr. Morse Stewart, and became the mother of six children, five of whom survive her. Although her married life was one of great happiness, she was not exempt from the many cares and duties inseparable from the management of a large household, and the education of a family. She was an unusually devoted wife and mother, and in the sick room was a skillful, tender and unwearied nurse. Her charity truly "began at home," and all other work was set aside if husband or children needed her services. Her heart, however, was too large to be wholly confined to the domestic circle, or absorbed by the duties which with many women serve as an excuse for limited activity. She longed to comfort and help the sorrowful and unhappy outside of the sheltered and fortunate home which Providence had given her. Her work in connection with the public charities of Detroit began in I86o, with the organization of the Home for the Friendless. Mrs. Stewart was the first to propose the organization of this institution, always held a prominent place upon its Board, and for many years served as its president, and held that office at the time of her decease. In connection with this institution she established and for many years edited the " Home Messenger," and it subsequently became the organ of several of the Protestant charities of the city. The idea of an "Old Ladies' Home" was also first conceived by her, and was carried out through the liberality of Mrs. Mary Thompson, who fully and completely equipped and endowed the commodious establishment known as "The Thompson Home for Old Ladies." As is indicated elsewhere, the organization of the Detroit Association of. Charities was also due to Mrs. Stewart's untiring labor. In 1875-6, while in Europe, she became interested in a similar system then existing in the city of London, and procured papers and descriptions of its methods of work. and upon her return home devised a plan for adapting it to Detroit. She then communicated with the Mayor, asking him to call a meeting of citizens to consider the subject. The Mayor responded promptly, a meeting was called at his office, and as a result the Association of Charities was organized, and has been in continuled existence and working order since that time. The last of Mlrs. Stewart's many good works, and one which enlisted her warmest sympathies, was the establishing of the Woman's Christian Association. Her former work had been more for those who had become helpless and dependent, but it had been the desire of her life to see young women so trained to self-support and self-reliance that if reverses came they might be able to provide for themselves, and maintain the self-respect which comes from honest and independent labor, and as all good training must have a genuine religious basis, she wished the institution to partake of the nature of a Christian school and home. In order to meet these demands the Woman's Christian Association was established. Womanly sympathy, however, has enlarged the sphere of its benevolence, and the work has not been wholly confined to women, in several instances helpless boys and men, for whom no other refuge seemed open, have been aided and cared for. It was the ardent desire of Mrs. Stewart to see this organization established in a home of its own. The last effort in which she was engaged wvas for the accomplishment of this end, and in reply to an inquiry in regard to her hopes and expectatio)ns, she said: " I have done what I could; my plans and methods may not prevail, but I have no concern about ultimate success; it is Christ's work, and He will take care of it." Her associate members on the Board were greatly afflicted by the death of their President, but feel as she did, that the work is " Christ's work," and that they are called upon to redouble their energy now that their strong adviser is taken away. In reviewing the long list of Mrs. Stewart's benevolent works,it may also be stated 668 CHARITABLE AND BENEVOLENT SOCIETIES AND INSTITUTIONS. that Detroit owes Harper Hospital to a suggestion made by her. The facts are that when Mr. Harper decided to make his will he sent for his old friend and pastor, Dr. I)uffield, and told him that his design was to leave his large property to the First Presbyterian Church of Detroit. Dr. Duffield advised differently, but said if he wished to give his property for religious and charitable purposes, making the church his almoner, he would take the matter under consideration and advise with him further. Mr. Harper then gave him to understand that it was his intention to convey his property through him, as he had implicit confidence in his integrity. Subsequently Dr. Duffield brought up the subject in his own home, remarking that the church had no need of such a property, and that he was somewhat puzzled as to how to advise Mr. Harper. His daughter, Mrs. Stewart, then said: "Father, Dr. Stewart says the charity Detroit especially needs is a Protestant hospital." " That's true," was the reply, and as the result of this conversation Mr. Harper's gift was directed to the founding of the hospital which bears his name. Nancy Martin's contribution to the same object was also made out of her regard for, and confidence in, Dr. Duffield. Mrs. Stewart, who knew her well, had frequent conversations with her as to the disposal of her property in the line of the same charity upon which Mr. Harper had decided, and it may be proper to state that Mrs. Stewart always felt a regret that the contribution of Nancy Martin had not received the same recognition as that of Mr. Harper. She felt that a maternity department in connection with the hospital should have commemorated the name of Mrs. Martin. Among other works carried out by the wonderful energy and executive ability of Mrs. Stewart was one of a patriotic character. During the dark days of our civil war, she opened a correspondence throughout the State soliciting supplies for the soldiers and tendering the use of her own residence as a place to receive, arrange, and ship them. IIer suggestions brought a quick and generous response, and for weeks she worked almost singlehanded, shipping supplies by rail and express to various points where Michigan soldiers were stationed, and when the work so enlarged as to require more help, she turned it over to an organization composed of representative ladies in the city and State. In its early days Mrs. Stewart was an active member of the Woman's Christian Temperance Union. A little mission called the "Bethel" was also for a long time with her a favorite place for Christian work. She met a class who gathered once or twice a week for Bible readings, and no meetings were so well attended as those when she presided. She was a favorite teacher, always had a clear apprehension of her subject, and a happy and lucid manner of presenting her thoughts. Interested in all objects for the elevation of society, Mrs. Stewart took a prominent part in organizing the Art Loan Exhibition of I885, whose complete success paved the way for the present beautiful Museum of Art, of which Detroit is justly proud. Those who worked with Mrs. Stewart for this object will remember days of discouragement, when but for her energy the work might have been abandoned. This brief outline of a life work filled wtith a noble benevolence, gives but a faint idea of her striking character. She possessed a fine personal presence and a dignified bearing, a brilliant mind strongly tending to intellectual pursuits, wAith social gifts and a harrn of manner which made her remarkable in any circle. She willingly put aside all personal indulgence, gave up study in which she delighted, and society of which she was an ornament, to work for others. It mattered not who they were, the soldier, the orphan, the old, the young, helpless childhood or more helpless age, the honest and self-respecting poor, or the fallen and degraded, all alike came under her ministry. As none were beneath the compassion of her Divine Master, so none were beyond the pale of her sympathy and aid. The inspiration to such a life must always be love to God, which finds its expression in love to man, but to accomplish her work other qualities were necessary, and these she possessed abundantly. She had a clear mind, great power of organization, a serene cheerfulness which never faltered, and the facile and ready use of her pen. These were among the gifts which enabled her to do so much, but greater than all was her unwavering faith that Divine assistance would certainly be given to all earnest Christian endeavor. All her work seemed cumulative in character; it was continually being amplified and rounded out into greater beauty, usefulness and perfection. But in the midst of it all, her beautiful life came to a close, and rarely has such a bereavement fallen upon the city as came upon Detroit on the morning of May 27, 1888, when the announcement was made of her sudden decease. She was still in the prime of a noble life of active benevolence, and the cause of Christian philanthropy lost in her one of its most able supporters. It is, however, a useful lesson to other lives to learn how much good can be accomplished, how many charitable enterprises established, by the enthusiasm and devotion of one large-hearted and high-minded woman. The benefit of such a life is not ended in the grave, for the remembrance of her untiring labors for the destitute and unfortuntate must stimulate others to follow in the same path. PART IX. LITERARY. I I I CH-APTER LXIX. EARLY METHOIS OF PUBLISHING.-THE FIRST NEWSPAPERS.-THE NEWSPAPER GRAVEYARD. ---LIVING PAPERS AND PERIODICALS. -CITY PRINTERS. — NEWSBOYS. EARLY METHODS OF PUBLISHING. THE publishing conveniences of early days were few indeed. Notices at first were left at the door of every house, and in the time of the Pontiac War were nailed to the church door. A few years after, the town crier made his appearance; an old account book shows that that position was filled by Thomas Williams, who, on January 25, 1781, is credited eight shillings for "publishing to bring in straw," and on August 12 the estate of Jacques St. Martin is charged by A. & W. Macomb with fourteen shillings, paid to Thomas Williams for "drum-beating and publishing." The drum was evidently used to attract attention to the notices. In still later days other methods were in use; and Theophilus Mettez, who was a publisher of religious books, became also the general publisher of news. It will be remembered that about 1809 the inhabitants were chiefly French, and could not have read an English paper, even had one been issued, therefore some other method of making public announcements became necessary. No occasion called more people together or afforded better opportunities for notices than the weekly services at St. Anne's. Friend Mettez, the printer and bookbinder of that period, was equal to the demand of the times; at the close of service in St. Anne's, he would change his acolyte dress for his regular habit, station himself at one side of the edifice, and, from Sunday to Sunday, announce the entertainments of the coming week and other events that were to occur. In this way due notice was given of the races on the Rouge, the auction sales of merchandise, and of all the current events of that primitive period. Tradition says that an Episcopalian lay reader, William McDowell Scott, was accustomed, at the close of his services, to announce the time and place of the next fox-hunt. The publication of one kind of notices by criers is within the memory of many persons. Before the present police system was established, when a child was lost a crier went through the city ringing a bell and at intervals raising the cry, "Child lost! Child lost!"-a cry that always startled and alarmed. THE FIRST NEWSPAPERS. In the parts of Canada governed by the French no printing of any kind was allowed to be done. The English settlements were supplied with papers at a very early date. Within three years after Halifax was founded, namely on March 23, 1752, the first number of a paper called The Halifax Gazette was issued. This was the first newspaper published in what is now known as Canada. It was a fourpage sheet, of two columns to a page, and was printed by John Bushnell. The next paper issued in Canada was called The Quebec Gazette. Volume I, Number i, is dated June 21, I764. It started with a list of one hundred and fifty subscribers and was printed in both French and English. West of the Alleghanies the earliest paper was The Gazette, issued at Pittsburgh by John Scull and Joseph Hall. The first number was dated July 29, 1786. A little more than a year afterwards, on August I, 1787, John Bradford issued the first number of The Kentucke (;azette at Lexington. It was published for many years. It is said that a paper was also published at Knoxville in I793. The first paper which appeared north and west of the Ohio was called The Centinel of the Northwest Territory, ald was published by William Maxwell at Cincinnati. No. i was issued November 9, 1793. It was a half sheet, quarto form. It was purchased in I796 by Edward Freeman, who changed its name to Freeman's Journal. He is said to have printed it on paper made at or near Cincinnati. The paper was finally published at Chillicothe. The Sciota Gazette was published at Chillicothe in 800o by Nathaniel \illis, the father of N. P. Willis, Fanny Fern, and Richard Storrs Willis. In I799 there was published a paper called The Western Spy and Hamilton Gazette. In 1823 its name was changed to National Republican and Ohio Political Register, and the same year it was merged with Freeman's Journal. On December 9, I804, The Liberty Hall and Cincinnati Mercury first appeared. It was published for eleven years, and then united with The Cincinnati Gazette, which was [669] 670 THE NEWSPAPER GRAVEYARI). established in 18o6. In 18o8 a paper was published at Vincennes, and The St. Louis Republican and The Missouri Gazette are said to have been published the same year at St. Louis. The Pittsburgh Commonwealth, a paper which paid special attention to news from Detroit, was first issued on July 24, I805, and was published as late as May, I809. THE NEWSPAPER GRAVEYARD. The newspaper history of Detroit abundantly illustrates these lines of an old hymn:"Dangers stand thick through all the ground To push us to the tomb." Since I809 the city has witnessed the rise and fall of one hundred and eighty-one different and distinct literary ventures in the way of papers and magazines. The first of these was The Michiz'ran Essay or Impfartial Observer. It is said that "history repeats itself." As to this paper, that which is neither history nor fact has been repeated over and over again, one person after another having copied the misstatements of some predecessor. As a sample of a score of other statements I quote the following:The Essai du Michigan or Observateur Impartial * * * was first issued by Father Gabriel Richard, * * * James M. Miller being the printer. It was printed mainly in French, but had an English department. In collecting materials for the history of Detroit I found in Worcester, Massachusetts, Volume I, Number I, of this, the first paper ever issued in Michigan; I had photographs taken of its four pages, and they show that this identical number has a history of its own. It was sent to Isaiah Thomas of Worcester, author of the first "History of Printing" published in America. On the margin is the following: UTICA, N. V., August 3, i8io. Mr. Thomas: SIR,-I send you this paper, published by a friend of mine, to insert in your " History of Printing." If he sees your advertisement he will send you more, perhaps, of later date. Your obedient servant, C. S. MCCONNELL. The paper was undoubtedly printed on a small hand-press brought overland to Detroit from Baltimore by the Rev. Gabriel Richard, and one or more books were printed before the paper was issued. Father Richard, however, was not the publisher, and his name nowhere appears in the paper. It is distinctly stated at the head that it is "printed and published by James M. Miller." It is dated August 31, 1809; was to be published every Thursday, and has four columns to a page, each page being 9Y by 16 inches. The title is not in French, and instead of being printed mainly in that language, but one and a half columns out of the sixteen are in French, not one tenth of the paper. The make-up consists of articles from the London Morning Chronicle, Liverpool Aurora, New York Spectator, Pittsburgh Commonwealth, Boston Mirror, and items credited to Baltimore and I)utch papers. There are also extracts from Young's "Night Thoughts" and from Ossian; three short poems on Evening, Happiness, and Futurity; a communication on Manufactures, and short prose articles on Politeness, Early Rising, and Husbandry. The information from Europe is from four to five months old, and that from various parts of the United States was new from four to six weeks before its publication in the Essay. There are no local items of any sort whatever, and of course no telegraphic or market news, and but one advertisement,- that of St. Anne's School. In the only article at all of the nature of an editorial, "the public are respectfully informed that the Essay will be conducted with the utmost impartiality; that it will not espouse any political party, but fairly and candidly communicate whatever may be deemed worthy of information, whether foreign, domestic, or local;" and " gentlemen of talents are invited to contribute to our columns whatever they suppose will be acceptable and beneficial to the public, yet always remembering that nothing of a controversial nature will be admissible." Elsewhere in the paper the publisher announces that he proposes to print several works, such as " Nine Days' Devotion of the Sacred Heart of Jesus; a Manual of Agriculture; cards of small pictures for the study of history, geography, etc.; and a Cyclopedia of Anecdotes for children." The price of the paper was "$5 a year to city subscribers, $4.50 by mail to residents of Upper Canada and Michigan, and $4 to more distant subscribers." Advertisements not exceeding a square were to be 50 cents for the first, and 25 cents for each subsequent insertion. After the facts concerning this paper had been brought to light three additional copies were found. One of them twas obtained by H. E. Baker, of The Post and Tribune, from Thomas Lee, of Ieeville, in whose possession it had been for nearly fifty years; the other was found by William Mitchell, of Detroit, among a lot of old papers. Both of these copies are duplicates of the one already described. A fourth copy of the same issue is known to have been in the collection of the old Detroit Museum, and still another copy of Volume I, Number I, is known to be in existence. It thus appears that the only copies that have ever been described, or that any living person has seen, were of Volume I, Number I, and no authentic statement has ever been made that more than one number was issued. Brown's THE NEWSPAPER GRAVEYARD. " Campaigns of the Western Army" says, "Only three numbers were issued;" but from the connection in which this statement appears, it is evident that it was made merely to indicate that the paper was short-lived, and not to fix definitely the number of issues. It is doubtful whether more than one number was printed. Mr. Miller, the publisher, came here from Utica, and died at Ithaca, New York, in the spring of 1838. The second paper published in Michigan was The Detrofi Gazette, a weekly, issued by Sheldon & Reed. Its publication was continued without intermission for nearly thirteen years, and fortunately nearly every number has been preserved. It was a Democratic paper, and established at the suggestion and under the patronage of Governor Cass. The first number was issued on July 25, 1817. The'price was $4.00 a year to city subscribers and $3.50 when sent by mail. It was printed in the old Seek House, near Wavne Street. Its situation was then described as being "on Attwater Street, a few rods above the public wharf." In October, I818, it was moved to a small wooden building on Griswold Street, just below Jefferson Avenue. The print measured 9I by I6% inches, made up in four columns. The type was bourgeois and long primer, evidently second-hand. The press used was one of Ramage's, and as the platen was only half the size of the sheet, it required two pulls to make a complete impression. On the last page a few of the more important articles were reproduced in French. Occasionally the type-cases were overtaxed, and the number for October I8, 1822, gives the names of signers to a call for a public meeting in so many kinds and sizes of type that one might imagine that the compositor had just returned from a wake. That publishers had their tribulations then as now is evidenced by a notice in The Gazette for September i, 1818. After warning the people against a person who had defrauded them, the publishers say: Citizens who have been wronged by scoundrels have only to send a notice of their wrongs and the name of the scoundrel to this office in order to put the public on guard. Such notices will be published gratis. In the last number of the paper, printed on April 22, I830, this notice appears: Some light-fingered gentleman entered our office and took from thence a double-cased silver watch with a steel chain and two gold seals and a key. The man who would steal from a printer ought to be compelled to drive a snail through the Black Swamp to Boston in dog-days, and suck a dry sponge for nourishment. An editorial of July 14, 1820, shows that they had other perplexities. It says: We have in the city of Detroit 82 subscribers; at River Raisin, 7; in other parts of the Territory, I9; total, Ii8 subscribers in Michigan Territory; 2 subscribers in Upper Canada, and 32 in different parts of the Union. Total subscribers, 152. Not one of the advertisements have been paid for, and only go subscribers have paid for the paper. Possibly in order to get their pay more readily, the price was reduced the next year to $3. The following extract from the Carrier's Address of January I, 1822, is suggestive: Detroit, thy little capital, Thy little villages likewise, In miniature shall mimic all That mankind see beneath the skies. Ambition still shall find the means To show capacity of sconce; And Council House shall furnish scenes For those who spout for fame or pence. Still shall delicious whitefish run In millions through our noble strait; And many a daughter, many a son, lie born to bless our future State. Foolish quarrels, friendly greetings Will be numerous as ever; And weddings, dinners, births and meetings Shall make, at times, all sorts feel clever. In July, 1828, The Gazette was leased to II. L. Ball for nine years; John P. Sheldon became editor, and January, 1829, witnessed the beginnings of what is doubtless the most remarkable event in the history of the press of Michigan. A man named John Reed had been convicted of larceny in the circuit court of \Vayne County. When the jury was being drawn for trial of the case he challenged one of the jurors for cause, but his challenge was overruled, and lie had to make use of his statutory right of peremptory challenge in order to have the objectionable juror dismissed. It was not claimed that any of the other jurors were objected to. The objectionable juror did not sit. The prisoner had no occasion to use his remaining right of peremptory challenge, and the trial was conceded to have been fairly conducted. Nevertheless the Supreme Court, in January, granted Reed a new trial on the ground that he had been illegally compelled to exhaust one of his rights of peremptory challenge. On January 8, I829, after the adjournment of the court, Mr. Sheldon published an article in his paper headed, "Progress of the Perfection of Reason in Michigan." The first paragraph said: The Supreme Court of the territory terminated its December session last week. As usual there was but little business done, and a portion of that little, we are led to believe, was but poorly done. Then followed nearly a column of what would, in this day, be deemed a mild criticism of the action 672 THE NEWSPAPER (RAVEYARI). of the court in granting a new trial of the case named. This article was followed in subsequent issues by others of the same import. For these articles, on March 5, Mr. Sheldon was arrested for contempt of court, and fined $1oo. E. A. Brush and E. I'. Hastings offered to pay the fine, but Mr. Sheldon refused to accept their offer, and was committed to jail. On the evening of the same day a public meeting to consider the subject was held at the Mansion House, a noted old hotel on Jefferson Avenue near Cass Street. Major Kearsley was called to the chair, with H. V. Disbrow as secretary. Resolutions condemning the action of the judges were passed and a committee was appointed to take up subscriptions to pay the fine, in sumis of not more than I22 cents from each person. Meantime arrangements were being made for a public dinner to be given in the jail in honor of Mr. Sheldon, and on May 7, I829, for the first and only time in Michigan, a prisoner in jail was tieated to a complimentary dinner. Nearly three hundred persons were present, John Garrison was chairman, and Judge John McDonnell and Louis Davenport were vice-presidents. When it is remembered that the entire population of Detroit, a year later than this time, numbered only two thousand two hundred persons, it will be seen that nearly every adult male in the city must have been present at this dinner, and the jail, which then occupied the site of the present public library, was filled to overflowing. The meeting was both serious and hilarious. Songs, toasts, and speeches were the order of the day, and the old jail rang and rang again with the cheers of the gathered throng. The first toast, for John P. Sheldon, was offered by Major Kearsley; the second, "The Press," by D. C. McKinstrv; and the third, " Liberty of speech and of the press guaranteed to every citizen by our laws and constitutiona jury must decide on the abuse of either," was offered by John Farmer. These toasts were succeeded by a dozen others of similar character. Mr. Sheldon remained in jail nine days, and during his imprisonment wrote several articles for his paper dated " Wayne County Jail." On March I4, the fine having been raised, a committee, accompanied by a large number of citizens, waited on him at the jail with a carriage, and went with him to the Mansion House, whence, after a luncheon, he departed for Oakland County, where his family resided. On April 23, Mr. Sheldon retired from the editorial chair and was succeeded by Ebenezer Reed. For several weeks after, the paper was filled with notices from eastern papers concerning the affair, with comments on the action of the judges. All this advertising, however, failed to make the paper pay, and on October I, this lamentation appeared in its columns: Our subscription list in Michigan bears no proportion tL the number of subscribers we have in other States. Foreign subscribers pay in advance, while those in Michigan pay or never pay, as it may chance to suit their fancy. Sometimes we get a pig or a load of pumpkins from them, and once in a great while there is a man of mettle who pays cash for his paper. The last number of the paper was issued on April 22, 1830, the press and printing material being entirely destroyed by fire four days later. The fire was set by a printer named Ulysses (. Smith, who was imprisoned for the offense. On June 17 it was announced that the paper would be re-established in about twenty days, but they must have been days of the Rip Van Winkle order, for it never reappeared. The names of subsequent newspaper ventures in the order of their establishment are as follows: The i1zAchi an tHerald published by H. Chipman and Joseph Seymour. It professed to be neutral, but really favored the Whigs. It was a weekly at $3.00 a year. The first number was issued May IO, 1825, and the last, April 30, I829. The Gazette Franfaise. This, the first French paper published in the Territory, was issued from the Gazette office: E. Reed, editor. It was in octavo form, issued the first and third week of each month, at $1.50 per year. Volume I, Number 1, was dated October 31, 1825, and contained this suggestive editorial: 'he editor requests the patrons of the Gazette to recollect that this is only a venture, and it depends a great deal upon their generosity if he will continue or not. 'hey must not borrow the Gazette fromn their neighbors. If they wish the editor to continue to publish, they must all subscribe. At least three numbers of the paper were issued. The Detroit Telegraph. A paper with the above title was issued in September, 1829; it was probably short-lived. The Herald of /itrature and Science, a small quarto, was issued by the Detroit Debating Society as a monthly, at six shillings a year. Volume I, Number I, was dated May 14, I831. Four or more numbers were issued. The Michizran State Register, a semi-monthly, documentary and historical in character, was first issued July I, I836, price $3.00 a year. G. L. Whitney, publisher, and George Corseliu;, editor. The thirteenth number was issued Febr.iary I, 1837, and the magazine was then probably discontinued. THE NEIW\VSPAPER GRAVENYAR')D. 673 Detroit Lit'Zening.Spfctatfor and Lzeraoy GazCctte. This paper was published by B. Kingsbury and G. P. Burnham (both from Boston) at Republic Hall, I44 Jefferson Avenue. It was a semi-weekly, issued on W\Nednesdas and Saturdays, at $4.oo a year. It was printed by G. L. Whitney. The first number was issued October 20, 1836, and it was in existence as late as May 20, 1838. 7'he.Sy in Azhtc/zgan was a weekly devoted to the Whig cause. It was edited by E. M. McGraw, published by Morgan Bates, and printed by Harsha & Bates. The first number was issued June 12, 1837, and it continued as late as November 13, 1838, when it ceased for a time. During 1839 it was revived, and published for about a year. about two months, and was afterwards revived, and published during the early part of 1840. 7'The fichigan Obserrver was first issued on Saturday, June 17, 1837. Rev. Warren Ishan was editor. It was a weekly, devoted to religious and moral subjects, and was discontinued after the issue of June 22, I839. The [lorld was the title of a monthly issued for a short time in I837. E. Bordman was publisher, and W. Harsha, printer. Th7e Jseffersonian I)emocrat, a campaign paper of I837, was issued in the interest of John D. Ellis of Monroe. Mr. Butterson was editor. The Defroit Mlorlning Post. This paper, the second established by Kingsbury & Burnham, was $6.00 per year. It would be appropriately described as a daily issued at irregular intervals. The first number was issued in July, 1837. Our old fellow-citizen, ex-city marshal, and legislator, I'atrick McGinnis, went to work on the paper as "devil" in 1837. One day Mr. Kingsbury, who was always ready for a practical joke, sent him over to the Free Press office with a tin measure to borrow " a gill of editorial." As the verdant messenger entered the composing room, he met MIr. Bagg, the editor, and made known his errand. Ba-gg immediately stepped to the wall, and taking down a picture of a jackass, handed it to McGinnis, saying, "'ake that to Mr. Kingsbury." Instantly taking in the situation, I'at blurted out, " Arrah, now, Mr. Ilagg, give over wid your tricks on a poor Irish boy. Sure it's an editorial my master wants, and not the editor." In 1838 J. M. Berger was proprietor of the paper and fl. Kingsbury, Jr., editor. In this year a weekly was issued at $2.50. In I)ecember, (;. R. Griswold became proprietor, and he and Kingsbury were associate editors. In January, 1839, the paper was consolidated with Th7e Craftsman (f l'ichirlan. 'his paper was first issued in May, 1838, by E. J. Roberts, as a weekly at $3 oo a year. After its consolidation with the l'ost, a Democratic paper, called 7he Mzorning Post and COaftsman, was issued by Kingsbury & Roberts, until June, when it was changed to The Evening Post and Craftsman. In the fall of 1839 it suspended for The Day' Book, a daily penny paper, was published by William Harsha in i838. Eight or ten numbers were issued. The MichiZgan Arrziculturist, H. H. Snelling, editor, was first issued in October or November, i838, and continued till January 8, 1839. The price was $2.00 a year. The IEglantine was in existence in January, I839. The Mfirror of the Lakes, a literary and society paper in quarto form, was published by HI. 1I. Snelling, at $3.00 a year. Volume i, Number 9, is dated March 2, 1839. 7'The JourLzal (f Jftlacation was being published in January, 1839. 77e %Sir/-t (f '76, or Theller's iDaily Republican wAdvocate, was first issued on August 17, I839. Iaily and weekly editions were printed. H. H Snelling was publisher, and Dr. E. A. Theller, editor. It was intended to aid the cause of the Patriots, and the editor w\as imprisoned for participating in the Patriot \War. The paper was issued as late as October 17, 1840. The lVestern Farmer, a semi-monthly agricultural paper, at $i.oo a year, was first issued by Josiah Snow on January I9, 1841. On October 15, 1841, 3. F. Armstrong became the publisher, Mr. Snow serving as editor. In 1842 Bela Hubbard served as editor, and with Number 5 of this year William Harsha became proprietor. On January 21, I843, he sold the paper to 674 THE NELWSPAPER GRAVEYARD. D. D. T. Moore, who soon removed it to Jackson, changed it to a monthly, at fifty cents a year, and issued it in April, 1843, as The Michzgan Farmer and Western Agriculurzist. In December, 1844, it was sold to W. F. Storey and - Cheney. In 1845 it was sold to and edited by H. Hurlbut. In April, I846, H. G. Woodhull became a partner. In December, 1847, Warren Isham began to conduct it, and with the new volume it was changed to a semi-monthly, and the price raised to $i.oo per year. In I849 it was enlarged, and published both at Jackson and Detroit. In I850 Warren Isham was both editor and publisher. in 1853 xV. S. Duncklee and R. F. Johnstone purchased the paper of \Warren Isham, and the next year Mr. Duncklee sold out to Miss I,. B. Adams. In the fall of 1854 Miss Adams purchased The Farmer's Compzanion and Horticultural Gazelfe, which had as editors C. Fox, J. C. Holmes, Linus Cone, and Charles Betts. C. Fox was publisher. It was established as a monthly on December T, 1852. Mr. Fox died, and the last number was dated September, 1854, after which it was merged with the Michigan Farmer, and on January I, 1859, that paper was changed to a weekly. In September, i86I, it was sold to Mr. Doty, who continued it for about a year. In the fall of 1862 W. S. Bond and George Snyder became proprietors. In September, I864, they sold it to H. N. F. Lewis, who changed it into a paper called The WVstlern Rural, which, in the fall of 1869, was moved to Chicago. 7/zc Rat Gazette. A paper with this name was issued in September, 1839, by the Typographical Union. The Michigan Christian Herald. This paper was published in January, 1842, as a monthly, by the Baptist State Convention. The price was fifty cents a year. R. C. Smith was publishing agent, and Rev. A. Ten Brook editor. At some time prior to 1845 the paper was changed to a weekly, and S. N. Kendrick became associate publisher. In 1844 Rev. J. Inglis was editor. In I845 Miles Sanford was associated with Mr. Inglis, in 1848 he was succeeded by Rev. G. W. Harris. The same year the paper was transferred to Mr. Allen, and in 1850 the names of M. Allen and 0. S. Gulley appeared as publishers. The price was $2.00 a year. In January, 1863, the paper was sold to several members of the Baptist Church, and re moved to Kalamazoo, and in the fall of 1866 Rev. J. A. Clark sold their interests in the paper to the Baptist Standard of Chicago, and that paper supplied the unexpired subscriptions. The Michizan Literary Gem, a monthly, at $.00o a year, was in existence in March, 1842. The Wlashzinzgonian. This paper, the organ of the State Temperance Society, was published originally at Jackson, then at Marshall, and finally at Detroit. The first number issued here was dated March 12, I842. It was a semi-monthly at $.00o, and lived a year. The Detroi/t Daily Times, an evening, anti-slavery journal, was published by Warren Isham at $8.00 a year. The first numlber appeared May I4, 1842. It ceased in November. The o Consitutzional Democrat was first issued on May 25, 1842. It was a semiweekly, at $3.50 a year, issued by Currier, Briggs, & Co., with E. I). Ellis as editor. After October i, 1842, it was issued but once a week, at $2.00 a year. In 1844 it was changed to a daily, and in I845 it was merged with The A.merican Citizen, a weekly paper, devoted to the free-soil party, which was in existence as late as May I4, I847. The I 'estern Catholic Register. This paper, the first number dated July 23, 1842. was published by Eugenle '. Smith. It was issuedl every Saturday, at $1.50 a year, and existed just; year. Th/' )elroizt )daily;azette. Volume I, Number I, was issued I)ecember 19, 1842, by Sheldon McKnight, at $6.oo a year. A weekly was also published at $2.00. The paper was continued for some three years. The Detro't Magazine was first published in October, 1843, by S. N. Gantt. It was short-lived. L'Amzie de la Jeunesse (Friend of Youth), a French paper, was first issued on May 23, 1843. It was a weekly at $3.00 a year, published by James A. Girardin, with E. N. Lacroix as editor. Nine numbers were issued. The American Vrineyard, a temperance and anti-Catholic sheet, was issued by E. McDonald as early as September, 1843; it was discontinued and then revived. The last number was dated May 19, 1848. THE NEWSPAPER (RAVEYARI). 675 7'/c 7' ar,,-c/i'alg Obsrt7''r, with Rev. George I)uffield as editor, and I). 13. Iuffield as "tiscal agent," was printed by Geiger & Christian, and was first issued on Monday, November i8, I844. It was a weekly, at $2.00 a year, and was in existence as late as October 5, I846. 7'he )ctrozit Iczgi'/sfcr a weekly, first issued in I)ecember, 1844, was published for two months by I arsha & Willcox. 7'e Del)rozi ])Dail NVcws was first issued on July 7, 1845. It was a handsome sheet, neutral in politics, filled almost exclusively with original matter. It was published by MI. 1'. Christian, C. A. Hedges, E. M. Geiger, J. Campbell, and D. HI. Solis, all practical printers. Irice, $4.00oo a year, or ten cents a week. 7'he IVeslferi't _trCeszior was issued in the interest of the colored people. \'olume I, Number I, was dated Mlarch 29, 1848. The I1ichit',anz Journal (f Homtwopathy was published by Drs. John Ellis and E. H. Drake. The first monthly numl)er was issued in November, 1848. S. 1. lThayer succeeded E1. 1I. Drake, and at the close of the year it wvas discontinued. The WcVester L'iterary i3ziscellacn was published by George Brewster at $i.oo a year. \'olume I,- Number I, was issued in April, 1849, and was probably the only number printed. Iecllman's Lizftrary fzkiscellany, was the most pretentious and popular magazine ever printed in Detroit. It was established by J. K. \Wellman. The first number was issued in July, 84 9, with D. F. Quinby as editor. It was an octavo of forty-eight pages, at $2.00 a year; and as the Eastern magazines had not attained their later popularity, it soon had six thousand subscribers. The magazine numbered among its contributors N. 1'. Willis, Rev. H. D. Kitchell, Rev. S. I). Simonds, Rev. D. D. Whedon, Rev. E. Thompson, Jacob M. Howard, Washington Irving, Horace Mann, Rev. I)avid Inglis, Rev. B. St. James Fry, Rev. B. F. Tefft, Moses Coit Tyler, T. I). \ilkins, and Rev. W. 1t. Collins. In February, I851, the magazine was sold to Luther Beecher and D. F. Quinby, and its name changed to Monthly Literary Miscellany. In July, 1852, Mr. Beecher sold his interest to H. S. Sparks and - Russell, and the next month A. G. Wood was admitted as a partner. In January, 1853, the name was changed to Western literary Miscellany; in the spring or summer, Wood, Sparks, and Rus sell sold their interest to Quinby, and on August 20, 1853, he sold to Mrs. E. M. Sheldon, and for the fourth time a new name was given to the magazine. It was now called The W\estern Literary Cabinet. Eight pages were added to the magazine, and Mrs. Sheldon published in it a series of very interesting translations of documents concerning Detroit, obtained bIy Governor Cass while United States Minister to IFrance. Tlhese translations formed almost the whole of the volume she subsequently issued under tlhe title of "Early History of M\ichigan." The last number of the magazine was issued in August, I854. It was discontinued on account of the death of Mr. Sheldon. The'.Torthwestern Adthvocat', a Whig paper, was Ipublished in October, 1849, by Josiah Snow. It lived but a short time. 7lhe Dclrozit D)eaiy Herald, a penny paper, was first published November 26, I849; its last issue was I)ecember 6, 1850. Its proprietors were John N. Ingersoll and W. T. Young. 7'/h' ltmcLric' ai GL'anecr, literary in character, was published by Annin & Reed, at $I.oo a year. Volume I, Number I, was dated January I, I850. Only a few numbers were issued. /Tc ilon/thly csperiazzn (and1 Odd Fellows' Literary JMa' azine, published by John N. Ingersoll and Henry Barns, at $2.00 a year, appeared in January, 1850. In the May number for 1852 the names of Moulton, Craw, & Company are given as publishers. The magazine existed three full years; the last year the words "()dd Fellows'" were dropped from the title, and "American " substituted. The,Medium, a semi-monthly magazine, at $i.oo a year, was devoted to the interests of the Swedenborgian or New Jerusalem Church. It appeared first at Jackson on December 25, 1848; was afterwards moved to Marshall, and on January 15, I850, to Detroit. It was published by Jabez Fox. Soon after its removal to Ietroit, EI. W. Barber became associated with Mr. Fox. About 1853 the paper was moved to Cincinnati, and then to New York. Its name was changed to New Jerusalem Messenger on February I, 1863. Le Citoyen was a French literary paper, in quarto form, issued on Saturdays, at $2.00 a year. L. J. Paulin was publisher, and E. N. Lacroix editor. It was issued for six months. Volume I, Number I, was dated May ii, I850. 676 THE NEWSPAPER (RAVEYARD. The Peninsular Fountain, a temperance journal, was first issued Saturday, May 17, I85I, with Henry C. Knight, editor. The business management was controlled by Morgan Bates. It lived less than a year. The Northwestlern llLusical HIerald, published by A. McFarren and edited by Charles Hess, made its appearance in May, I85r. The price was fifty cents a year. There was little of either money or music in it, and it was soon discontinued. The Western Evangelist, a weekly, at $I.oo a year, was first issued in the fall of I85o by Jabez Fox. He was succeeded by Rev. S. A. Baker, who published the paper as late as 1852. The Detroit Comzmerczial ulletin, edited by George W. Pattison, was an old paper revived. It began for the second time as a penny daily, about 1851. It was burned out in the Cooper Building in the fire of April i6, 1852, and was not again issued. The 'Republican, a German weekly, was published about five months, in 1852, by M. Kramer and Alois Wuerth. The Students' Offering, published by scholars of the Eighth Ward School, was first issued in 1853, and continued through three or more volumes. The Atlantis, a German literary monthly, edited by Christian Esseleine, was issued for several months in I853. The Detroit Catholic Vindicator, edited by Thomas R. Elliott and published by Daniel O'Hara, was a weekly quarto, at $2.00 a year. The first number was dated April 30, I853. Dr. Hasset succeeded Mr. O'Hara as proprietor, and continued the paper, at $2.50 a year, until January, I860, when it was merged into The Detroit Guardian. Volume I, Number I, of this paper, a Catholic weekly at $I.50 a year, was issued January 2I, I86o, by T. C. Fitzgibbons, and continued for five months or more. The Detroit Daily Times (No. 2). This was published by G. S. Conklin and E. T. Sherlock, with J. N. Ingersoll as editor, at $3.00 a year. It appeared in May, 1853, was purchased by Ingersoll & Tenny in November, 1854, sold De cember, I855, to an association of journeymen printers, and continued by them until the spring of I856. The Peninsular Journal of Medicine, an octavo monthly, was originally published at Ann Arbor. Its first issue was dated July, 1853. E. Andrews, A. M., M. D., was editor. In July, 1854, I)r. A. BI. Palmer became associate editor, and iti July, 1855, the office of publication was removed to I)etroit. Dr. Andrews now retired, and I)rs. Z. Pitcher, A. IB. 'almer, William Brodie, and E. P. Christian served as editors. After the number for March, I858, it was united with The lledical Indetiendent. The first number of this paper, edited by Drs. H. Goadby, E. Kane, and L. G. Robinson, was isstued March I, i856. In March, I857, Moses Gunn and L. G. Robinson became editors, and the magazine was called The Izninsular anlt Ind(Tendel' nt. In April, i858, it was edited by A. B. Palmer. Moses Gunn, and Frederick Stearns. The last number was issued in March, I86o. The ItichiganR Hnomwopfathic Journal was first issued in October, 1853, by Drs. John Ellis and S. B. Thayer, and was continued for a little over a year. The Michztan Journal of Education and Teachers' Magazine was published by G. E. Pomeroy & Company, at 34 Woodward Avenue. Number I of Volume I appeared in January, 1854. It was edited by E. 0. Haven. D. D., who afterwards became successively president of the Michigan, Northwestern, and Syracuse Universities, and a bishop of the Methodist Episcopal Church. The second volume was published by H. Barns, and edited by J. IM. (;regory, afterwards Superintendent of Public Instruction and president of the Industrial College of Illinois. With Volume VI Professor A. Winchell of the Michigan University became its editor. It was printed for a number of years at Ann Arbor, but was finally removed again to Detroit, where it was discontinued about I860. Waymarks in the Wilderness, a monthly magazine devoted to Scripture studies, was published by James Inglis & Company. The first number was dated May, 1854, Number 9 came out in January, I855, and soon after the magazine was discontinued at Detroit. 1THE11 NEWSPIAPER GRAVEYARD. 677 T/he Liztle Iolverine, published by Mrs. E. M, Sheldon at thirty cents per year, was first issued in May, 1854. Only four numbers were printed. The A/shlar, a monthly, devoted to Masonic interests, was published by Allyn Weston, at $2.00 a year. The first number was issued in September, 1854, and it was continued for at least three years. The J)aily EFvenzigr News (,No. 2). This second daily with the title of News was first issued on March 19, I856, by the Franklin Printing Association, composed of William S. Bond, Charles S. Stevenson, Charles Miller, 0. S. Burdick, F. 1). Ross, and Henry Metz. The paper soon becamne quite popular, gaining a circulation of five thousand copies. Troubles, however, arose be tween the managers, and after about three months it was discontinued. The Fi'reman's Journal, a weekly paper at $1.75 a year, was first issued in September, i856, by George W. Pattison, and was in existence as late as the fall of I86i. Presonz's United Stalfes Bzank NiXoe RLporter made its first appearance December 4, 1856; ). I'reston, proprietor. It was published twice a month for nearly five years, and then monthly until D)ecember, I865, when it was discontinued. The price was $1.00 a year. Brown's Reporter, published at first by John Irown, and then by J. H. Kaple & Co., was issued from 1857 to 1859. The lfMagazine of Travel was issued from January, r857, to 1858. It was conducted by W. & W. P. Isham. 7he Youzng Ven's Journal and Advocate of Tenzmferance was published in September, 1859, by Green & Brown. It was alive in 186i, but in the following year gave place to The Transcrlipt, a temperance paper, published at $I.oo a year by S. D. Green. The Detroit Herald, a weekly at $2.00 a year, was in existence in 1859. C. O'Flynn and Dr. Alvord, editors. It was discontinued about I861. The Spirit of the Week, a military and sporting paper, with Frederick Speed as editor, was first issued March 17, I86o. It was short lived. The Michiganl Democrat was published by John S. lBagg, in I860, as an ultra Democratic paper. It existed only a few months. The Detroit I'rdefiendent, a political paper, was issued from about September I to December I 5, 186o. It was published by S. J. Martin. The People's Press, a w-orkingmen's paper, published by S. J. Martin, was issued from December 15, 1860, to April I, 1861. T. C. Fitzgibbons was editor. The Democratic Farmer was first issued on March i, I862. It was a weekly at $i a year, but was short lived. John S. Bagg was editor. The PeoSle/s Uniot Press, a semi-weekly, was first issued September 30, i862. It wvas published by 0. S. Gulley, and at least four numbers were issued. The Trte L)Democrat was issued from the office of G. W. Pattison in the fall of 1863 as a campaign paper. The American; Homo'opathzic Observer, a monthly homoeopathic journal, was established by Dr. E. A. Lodge in January, 1864, and discontinued with the number for December, 1885. The price was $2.50 a year. Der Radiczale Democrat, a G(erman P'residential campaign paper, was published by F. A. Schober & Company, and edited by R. I)iepenbeck and Karl Schmemann. The price was $4.00 a year. The first number was dated July 14, and the last October 19, I864. The Shrapnel, a weekly campaign paper published in 1864 by S. B. McCracken, was designed to represent the more ultra or radical Democratic sentiment of the period. It was commenced the last of July, and continued through the campaign. Froth, an illustrated comic monthly, lithographed, was issued on Monday, December 12, 1864, by several gentlemen connected with the Detroit & Milwaukee 678 THE NEWSPAPER GRAVEYARD. Railroad. After Number io, it was printed from type. It was discontinued in November, I865. The Christian Unionist, published monthly by E. A. Lodge, at $1.50 a year, lived a few months only. The first number was dated January, I865. The Detroit Journal of Commerce, a weekly at $2.oo a year, was established in 1865 by Thomas K. Miller. It was subsequently, in:868, owned by Barry & Gradwell. On August I9, J871, they sold it to Browse T. Prentis, who transferred it to a stock company. It was then merged with The Daily,oSun, a paper first issued on October 2, I874, and continued until I876. The Peninsular Herald was first issued at Romeo, in June, 1864. It was subsequently removed to Detroit, where it made its first appearance on October 24, I866. It was published and edited by Rev. John Russell and C. P. Russell. On December I, 1869, it was sold to a joint stock company. January 12, I871, it was transferred to F. N. Newman, and on February i, 1872, the name was changed to The New World. The last issue was dated July 3, 1873. The Detroit Review of Medicine and Pharmacy, a monthly at $3.00 a year, was established in April, I866. It was edited at first by Drs. G. P. Andrews, E. W. Jenks, T. A. McGraw, and S. P. Duffield. They were succeeded about I870 by Drs. W. H. Lathrop, A. B. Lyons, and Leartus Connor. SFrom I871 to 1877 Dr. Connor was sole editor. In January, 1877, it was merged into The Detroit Medical Journal. The Peninsular Journal of Medicine, the second magazine of its name, was a monthly octavo, edited by Drs. H. F. Lyster and J. J. Mulheron. It was first issued in July, I873. In January, 1875, Drs. T. F. Kerr and J. J. Mulheron were editors, and in January, I876, the last named became sole editor. With the number for December, 1876, the Journal was merged into The Detroit Medical Journal, which was edited by Drs. L. Connor and J. J. Mulheron and published by E. 13. Smith & Company at $3.00 a year. It was published only in 1877. The Western Medical Advance and Progress of Pharmacy, a quarterly, edited by W. H. Lathrop, M. I)., was published from June, 1871, to June, 1873. The Detroit Price Current, a weekly sheet, was issued from i85 Jefferson Avenue during I866 and 1867. The Detroit Monitor, a daily evening paper, published by Joseph Warren, at twelve cents a week, was first issued on June I, 1867, and discontinued after four months. The Mechanic and Inventor, was first issued on September 23, 1867, at fifty cents a year. It was the organ of the Mechanics and Inventors' Association. In December, I874, it was merged with The Scientzfic Manufacturer a paper established by R. A. Sprague in September, 1873. After its union with the above journal, the paper was called The Scientific Manufacturer and Patent Intelligencer. In the fall of 1874 it was merged with a paper called The Journal of Commerce (iA. 2 established in 1874. In April, 1876, this last named paper was merged with The Sunday Times, and in February, I877, this was suspended. The Odd Fellows' Wreath, originally published at Mason by D. B. Harringtot. was first issued here on September I, I868, at $1.50 a year. After August, I869, it was moved to Chicago and called The Western Odd Fellow. The Western Catholic was first issued on September 12, i868, by David Barry & Co. Messrs. M. J. & W. Dee afterwards became editors and proprietors. It was a weekly at $2.00 a year. In January, 1872, it was moved to Chicago. Batfist Tidings. This paper, a monthly at $2.00 a year, was moved from Mason to Detroit by D. B. Harrington, and first issued here on October 17, I868. After July 29, I869, it was consolidated with the Standard, of Chicago. THE NEWSPAPER (RAVEYARD. 679 L' lmnfartial, a French weekly, was issued by a French society and edited by Mederic Lanctot. The first number was issued November 20, I869. It was to have been published every Wednesday and Saturday, at $4.00 a year. Only ten numbers were issued, and it was succeeded by The Anti-Roman Advocate, which was first issued by Mr. Lanctot in March, i870, and discontinued in August. L' Efoile Canadienne, was published by Joseph A. Oulette and J. A. Girardin, and issued on Thursdays at $2.50 a year. Volume I, Number I, was dated January 19, 1871; it lived just a year. The Soni, Journal, a musical monthly, at $1.oo a year, first published January i, I871, by C. J. Whitney & Company, was discontinued in April, 1877. Our lMutual Friend, a rather pretentious literary weekly, at $2.50 a year, \\as established in April, 187I, by W. C. Armstrong & Company, but lived only a few months. The Popular Appfieal, a five-column folio weekly, at $2.00 a year, was commenced by S. B. McCracken in September 1871, and discontinued in November of the same year. 'The DeL)etfoi Comntmercial Bulletin, a w\eekly, at $2.00 a year, was in existence during ten months of 171. It was published by Hopkins, Hethrington, & O'Neil. The Leather Apron was first issued in July, I872; only a few numbers were printed. Our Yankee Land, an amateur monthly paper, was first issued by A. W. Bagg in January, 1872, at fifty cents a year. During the year the price was raised to $i.oo. With the number for October, 1873, the paper was discontinued. The Detrozi Pul/fitl, a monthly at $i.oo, edited by Rev. J. P. Scott, containing sermons by various I)etroit pastors, was first issued in September, 1872, and was continued three years. The.lystic Star, a Masonic monthly, at $1.50 a year, edited by Rev. J. M. Arnold, was published in 1872 and part of 44 1873 by F. N. Newman, and was then moved to Chicago. The Boy of the Period, an amateur venture of C. H. & 0. M. Leonard, was first issued in November, 1872, as a monthly, at fifty cents a year. It ceased with the issue for August, 1876. The ichZtg-anZ Journal of Homntwotath'v, a quarterly, at fifty cents a year, published by Dr. E. R. Ellis, began in July, 1872, and was discontinued in April, I873. T//he ichizgaz/n, /ditoli/t